summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/1320-h
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
Diffstat (limited to '1320-h')
-rw-r--r--1320-h/1320-h.htm24317
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/cover.jpgbin0 -> 76444 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_430-a.jpgbin0 -> 56063 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_430-b.jpgbin0 -> 61122 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_431.jpgbin0 -> 65083 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-a.jpgbin0 -> 35970 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-b.jpgbin0 -> 8746 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-c.jpgbin0 -> 13513 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_433.jpgbin0 -> 40234 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_434-a.jpgbin0 -> 26589 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_434-b.jpgbin0 -> 20912 bytes
-rw-r--r--1320-h/images/ill_pg_439.jpgbin0 -> 3358 bytes
12 files changed, 24317 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/1320-h/1320-h.htm b/1320-h/1320-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..097d59d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/1320-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,24317 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
+"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
+
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" lang="en" xml:lang="en">
+ <head> <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
+<title>
+ The Project Gutenberg eBook of Criminal Psychology, by Hans Gross.
+</title>
+<style type="text/css">
+ p {margin-top:.2em;text-align:justify;margin-bottom:.2em;text-indent:4%;}
+
+.c {text-align:center;text-indent:0%;}
+
+.cb {text-align:center;text-indent:0%;font-weight:bold;}
+
+.cig {text-align:center;text-indent:0%;font-weight:bold;
+font-size:130%;}
+
+.enlargeimage {margin: 0 0 0 0; text-align: center; border: none;}
+ @media print, handheld
+{.enlargeimage
+ {display: none;}
+ }
+
+.hang {text-indent:-2%;margin-left:2%;}
+
+.lettre {font-size:105%;margin-left:5%;font-weight:bold;}
+
+.modern {font-size: 75%;margin:4% auto 4% auto;}
+
+.nind {text-indent:0%;}
+
+.nonvis {display:inline;}
+ @media print, handheld
+ {.nonvis
+ {display: none;}
+ }
+
+.r {text-align:right;margin-right: 5%;}
+
+.s1 {margin-left:1em;}
+.s3 {margin-left:3em;}
+.s5 {margin-left:5em;}
+.s6 {margin-left:6em;}
+.s7 {margin-left:7em;}
+.s8 {margin-left:8em;}
+.s10 {margin-left:10em;}
+
+small {font-size: 70%;}
+
+ h1 {margin-top:5%;text-align:center;clear:both;}
+
+ h2 {margin-top:4%;margin-bottom:2%;text-align:center;clear:both;
+ font-size:120%;}
+
+ h3,h4,h5 {margin:2% auto 2% auto;text-align:center;clear:both;}
+
+ hr.full {width: 100%;margin:2% auto 2% auto;border:4px double black;}
+
+ table {margin-top:2%;margin-bottom:2%;margin-left:auto;margin-right:auto;border:none;
+font-size:90%;}
+
+ body{margin-left:4%;margin-right:6%;background:#fdfdfd;color:black;font-family:"Times New Roman", serif;font-size:medium;}
+
+a:link {background-color:#ffffff;color:blue;text-decoration:none;}
+
+ link {background-color:#ffffff;color:blue;text-decoration:none;}
+
+a:visited {background-color:#ffffff;color:purple;text-decoration:none;}
+
+a:hover {background-color:#ffffff;color:#FF0000;text-decoration:underline;}
+
+.smcap {font-variant:small-caps;font-size:100%;}
+
+ img {border:none;}
+
+.blockquot {margin-top:2%;margin-bottom:2%;
+margin-left:10%;margin-right:10%;}
+.blockquot p {margin-top:2%;margin-bottom:2%;text-indent:-2%;margin-left:2%;
+font-size:90%;}
+
+.caption {font-weight:bold;font-variant:small-caps;font-size:85%;}
+
+.figcenter {margin-top:3%;margin-bottom:3%;
+margin-left:auto;margin-right:auto;text-align:center;text-indent:0%;}
+
+.figleft {float:left;clear:left;margin-left:0;margin-bottom:1em;margin-top:1em;margin-right:1em;padding:0;text-align:center;}
+
+.figright {float:right;clear:right;margin-left:1em;margin-bottom:1em;margin-top:1em;margin-right:0;padding:0;text-align:center;}
+
+.footnotes {border:dotted 3px gray;margin-top:5%;clear:both;}
+
+.footnote {width:95%;margin:auto 3% 1% auto;font-size:0.9em;position:relative;}
+
+.label {position:relative;left:-.5em;top:0;text-align:left;font-size:.8em;}
+
+.fnanchor {vertical-align:30%;font-size:.8em;}
+
+.pagenum {font-style:normal;position:absolute;
+left:95%;font-size:55%;text-align:right;color:gray;
+background-color:#ffffff;font-variant:normal;font-style:normal;font-weight:normal;text-decoration:none;text-indent:0em;}
+@media print, handheld
+{.pagenum
+ {display: none;}
+ }
+</style>
+ </head>
+<body>
+<div>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 1320 ***</div>
+
+<hr class="full" />
+
+<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary=""
+style="border: 2px black solid;;margin:auto auto;max-width:50%;
+padding:1%;">
+<tr><td><p>Every attempt has been made to replicate the original as printed.</p>
+<p>Some typographical errors have been corrected;
+<a href="#transcrib">a list follows the text</a>. German and French spellings have not been altered from the original.</p>
+<p class="c"><a href="#CONTENTS">Contents.</a><br />
+<a href="#INDEX">Index:</a><small>
+<a href="#A">A</a>,
+<a href="#B">B</a>,
+<a href="#C">C</a>,
+<a href="#D">D</a>,
+<a href="#E">E</a>,
+<a href="#F">F</a>,
+<a href="#G">G</a>,
+<a href="#H">H</a>,
+<a href="#I-i">I</a>,
+<a href="#J">J</a>,
+<a href="#K">K</a>,
+<a href="#L">L</a>,
+<a href="#M">M</a>,
+<a href="#N">N</a>,
+<a href="#O">O</a>,
+<a href="#P">P</a>,
+<a href="#Q">Q</a>,
+<a href="#R">R</a>,
+<a href="#S">S</a>,
+<a href="#T">T</a>,
+<a href="#U">U</a>,
+<a href="#V-i">V</a>,
+<a href="#W">W</a>,
+<a href="#Z">Z</a></small><br />
+<a href="#FOOTNOTES">Footnotes</a></p>
+<p class="c">(etext transcriber's note)</p></td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<div class="figcenter">
+<img src="images/cover.jpg" alt="" title="" />
+</div>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_i" id="page_i"></a>{i}</span></p>
+
+<p class="cb">CRIMINAL PSYCHOLOGY</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_ii" id="page_ii"></a>{ii}</span>&nbsp; <br />&nbsp; <br /></p>
+
+<div class="modern">
+<p class="cig">MODERN CRIMINAL SCIENCE SERIES</p>
+
+<p class="c"><i>Published under the auspices of the American Institute of Criminal Law
+and Criminology</i></p>
+
+<p>1. <b>Modern Theories of Criminality.</b> By <span class="smcap">C. Bernaldo de Quirós</span>, of Madrid.
+Translated from the Second Spanish edition, by Dr. <span class="smcap">Alfonso de Salvio</span>,
+Assistant Professor of Romance Languages in Northwestern University.
+With an American Preface by the Author, and an Introduction by <span class="smcap">W. W.
+Smithers</span>, of the Philadelphia Bar.</p>
+
+<p>2. <b>Criminal Psychology.</b> By <span class="smcap">Hans Gross</span>, Professor of Criminal Law in the
+University of Graz, Austria, Editor of the Archives of Criminal
+Anthropology and Criminalistics, etc. Translated from the Fourth German
+edition, by Dr. <span class="smcap">Horace M. Kallen</span>, Professor of Philosophy in Wisconsin
+University. With an American Preface by the Author, and an Introduction
+by <span class="smcap">Joseph Jastrow</span>, Professor of Psychology in the University of
+Wisconsin.</p>
+
+<p>3. <b>Crime, Its Causes and Remedies.</b> By <span class="smcap">Cesare Lombroso</span>, late Professor of
+Psychiatry and Legal Medicine in the University of Turin, author of the
+“Criminal Man,” Founder and Editor of the “Archives of Psychiatry and
+Penal Sciences.” Translated from the French and German editions by Rev.
+<span class="smcap">Henry P. Horton</span>, M.A., of Ithaca, N. Y. With an Introduction by <span class="smcap">Maurice
+Parmelee</span>, Associate Professor of Sociology in the University of
+Missouri.</p>
+
+<p>4. <b>The Individualization of Punishment.</b> By <span class="smcap">Raymond Saleilles</span>, Professor
+of Comparative Law in the University of Paris. Translated from the
+Second French edition, by Mrs. <span class="smcap">Rachael Szold Jastrow</span>, of Madison, Wis.
+With an Introduction by <span class="smcap">Roscoe Pound</span>, Professor of Law in Harvard
+University.</p>
+
+<p>5. <b>Penal Philosophy.</b> By <span class="smcap">Gabriel Tarde</span>, Late Magistrate in Picardy,
+Professor of Modern Philosophy in the College of France, and Lecturer in
+the Paris School of Political Science. Translated from the Fourth French
+edition by <span class="smcap">Rapelje Howell</span>, of the New York Bar. With an Editorial
+Preface by <span class="smcap">Edward Lindsey</span>, of the Warren, Pa., Bar, and an Introduction
+by <span class="smcap">Robert H. Gault</span>, Assistant Professor of Psychology in Northwestern
+University.</p>
+
+<p>6. <b>Crime and Its Repression.</b> By <span class="smcap">Gustav Aschaffenburg</span>, Professor of
+Psychiatry in the Academy of Practical Medicine at Cologne, Editor of
+the “Monthly Journal of Criminal Psychology and Criminal Law Reform.”
+Translated from the Second German edition by <span class="smcap">Adalbert Albrecht</span>. With an
+Editorial Preface by <span class="smcap">Maurice Parmelee</span>, Associate Professor of Sociology
+in the University of Missouri, and an Introduction by <span class="smcap">Arthur C. Train</span>,
+formerly Assistant District Attorney for New York County.</p>
+
+<p>7. <b>Criminology.</b> By <span class="smcap">Raffaele Garofalo</span>, late President of the Court of
+Appeals of Naples. Translated from the First Italian and the Fifth
+French edition, by <span class="smcap">Robert W. Millar</span>, Esq., of Chicago, Professor in
+Northwestern University Law School. With an Introduction by <span class="smcap">E. Ray
+Stevens</span>, Judge of the Circuit Court, Madison, Wis.</p>
+
+<p>8. <b>Criminality and Economic Conditions.</b> By <span class="smcap">W. A. Bonger</span>, Doctor in Law
+of the University of Amsterdam. Translated from the French by <span class="smcap">Henry P.
+Horton</span>, M.A., of Ithaca, N. Y. With an American Preface by the Author,
+and an Editorial Preface by <span class="smcap">Edward Lindsey</span>, of the Warren, Pa., Bar, and
+an Introduction by <span class="smcap">Frank H. Norcross</span>, Justice of the Supreme Court of
+Nevada.</p>
+
+<p>9. <b>Criminal Sociology.</b> By <span class="smcap">Enrico Ferri</span>, of the Roman Bar, and Professor
+of Criminal Law and Procedure in the University of Rome, Editor of the
+“Archives of Psychiatry and Penal Sciences,” the “Positivist School in
+Penal Theory and Practice,” etc. Translated from the Fourth Italian and
+Second French edition, by <span class="smcap">Joseph I. Kelly</span>, late Lecturer on Roman Law in
+Northwestern University, and Dean of the Faculty of Law in the
+University of Louisiana, and <span class="smcap">John Lisle</span>, late of the Philadelphia Bar.
+With an American Preface by the Author, an Editorial Preface by <span class="smcap">William
+W. Smithers</span>, of the Philadelphia Bar, and Introductions by <span class="smcap">Charles A.
+Ellwood</span>, Professor of Sociology in the University of Missouri, and
+<span class="smcap">Quincy A. Myers</span>, formerly Chief Justice of the Supreme Court of
+Indiana.</p>
+</div>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_iii" id="page_iii"></a>{iii}</span></p>
+
+<p class="cb">
+THE MODERN CRIMINAL SCIENCE SERIES<br />
+<br />
+<i>Published under the Auspices of</i><br />
+<br />
+THE AMERICAN INSTITUTE OF CRIMINAL LAW AND CRIMINOLOGY</p>
+
+<hr class="full" />
+
+<h1>Criminal Psychology</h1>
+
+<p class="cb">A MANUAL FOR<br />
+JUDGES, PRACTITIONERS, AND STUDENTS<br />
+<br />
+<span class="smcap">By</span> HANS GROSS, J.U.D.<br />
+<br /><small>
+<i>Professor of Criminal Law at the University of<br />
+Graz, Austria. Formerly Magistrate of the<br />
+Criminal Court at Czernovitz, Austria</i></small><br />
+<br />
+<small>Translated from the Fourth German Edition</small>
+<br />
+<span class="smcap">By HORACE M. KALLEN, Ph. D.</span><br />
+<br />
+<small><i>Assistant and Lecturer in Philosophy in Harvard University</i></small><br />
+<br />
+WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY JOSEPH JASTROW, PH.D.
+<br /><small>
+<span class="smcap">Professor of Psychology in the University of Wisconsin</span></small>
+<br /><br />
+BOSTON<br />
+LITTLE, BROWN, AND COMPANY<br />
+1918<br />
+<br />
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_iv" id="page_iv"></a>{iv}</span><br />
+<br /><small>
+<i>Copyright, 1911</i>,<br />
+<span class="smcap">By Little, Brown, and Company</span>.<br />
+<i>All rights reserved</i><br /></small>
+</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_v" id="page_v"></a>{v}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="GENERAL_INTRODUCTION_TO_THE_MODERN_CRIMINAL_SCIENCE_SERIES" id="GENERAL_INTRODUCTION_TO_THE_MODERN_CRIMINAL_SCIENCE_SERIES"></a>GENERAL INTRODUCTION TO THE MODERN CRIMINAL SCIENCE SERIES.</h2>
+
+<p>A<small>T</small> the National Conference of Criminal Law and Criminology, held in
+Chicago, at Northwestern University, in June, 1909, the American
+Institute of Criminal Law and Criminology was organized; and, as a part
+of its work, the following resolution was passed:</p>
+
+<p>“<i>Whereas</i>, it is exceedingly desirable that important treatises on
+criminology in foreign languages be made readily accessible in the
+English language, <i>Resolved</i>, that the president appoint a committee of
+five with power to select such treatises as in their judgment should be
+translated, and to arrange for their publication.”</p>
+
+<p>The Committee appointed under this Resolution has made careful
+investigation of the literature of the subject, and has consulted by
+frequent correspondence. It has selected several works from among the
+mass of material. It has arranged with publisher, with authors, and with
+translators, for the immediate undertaking and rapid progress of the
+task. It realizes the necessity of educating the professions and the
+public by the wide diffusion of information on this subject. It desires
+here to explain the considerations which have moved it in seeking to
+select the treatises best adapted to the purpose.</p>
+
+<p>For the community at large, it is important to recognize that criminal
+science is a larger thing than criminal law. The legal profession in
+particular has a duty to familiarize itself with the principles of that
+science, as the sole means for intelligent and systematic improvement of
+the criminal law.</p>
+
+<p>Two centuries ago, while modern medical science was still young, medical
+practitioners proceeded upon two general assumptions: one as to the
+cause of disease, the other as to its treatment. As to the cause of
+disease,&mdash;disease was sent by the inscrutable will of God. No man could
+fathom that will, nor its arbitrary operation. As to the treatment of
+disease, there were believed to be a few remedial agents of universal
+efficacy. Calomel and bloodletting, for example, were two of the
+principal ones. A larger or<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_vi" id="page_vi"></a>{vi}</span> smaller dose of calomel, a greater or less
+quantity of bloodletting,&mdash;this blindly indiscriminate mode of treatment
+was regarded as orthodox for all common varieties of ailment. And so his
+calomel pill and his bloodletting lancet were carried everywhere with
+him by the doctor.</p>
+
+<p>Nowadays, all this is past, in medical science. As to the causes of
+disease, we know that they are facts of nature,&mdash;various, but
+distinguishable by diagnosis and research, and more or less capable of
+prevention or control or counter-action. As to the treatment, we now
+know that there are various specific modes of treatment for specific
+causes or symptoms, and that the treatment must be adapted to the cause.
+In short, the individualization of disease, in cause and in treatment,
+is the dominant truth of modern medical science.</p>
+
+<p>The same truth is now known about crime; but the understanding and the
+application of it are just opening upon us. The old and still dominant
+thought is, as to cause, that a crime is caused by the inscrutable moral
+free will of the human being, doing or not doing the crime, just as it
+pleases; absolutely free in advance, at any moment of time, to choose or
+not to choose the criminal act, and therefore in itself the sole and
+ultimate cause of crime. As to treatment, there still are just two
+traditional measures, used in varying doses for all kinds of crime and
+all kinds of persons,&mdash;jail, or a fine (for death is now employed in
+rare cases only). But modern science, here as in medicine, recognizes
+that crime also (like disease) has natural causes. It need not be
+asserted for one moment that crime is a disease. But it does have
+natural causes,&mdash;that is, circumstances which work to produce it in a
+given case. And as to treatment, modern science recognizes that penal or
+remedial treatment cannot possibly be indiscriminate and machine-like,
+but must be adapted to the causes, and to the man as affected by those
+causes. Common sense and logic alike require, inevitably, that the
+moment we predicate a specific cause for an undesirable effect, the
+remedial treatment must be specifically adapted to that cause.</p>
+
+<p>Thus the great truth of the present and the future, for criminal
+science, is the individualization of penal treatment,&mdash;for that man, and
+for the cause of that man’s crime.</p>
+
+<p>Now this truth opens up a vast field for re-examination. It means that
+we must study all the possible data that can be causes of crime,&mdash;the
+man’s heredity, the man’s physical and moral<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_vii" id="page_vii"></a>{vii}</span> make-up, his emotional
+temperament, the surroundings of his youth, his present home, and other
+conditions,&mdash;all the influencing circumstances. And it means that the
+effect of different methods of treatment, old or new, for different
+kinds of men and of causes, must be studied, experimented, and compared.
+Only in this way can accurate knowledge be reached, and new efficient
+measures be adopted.</p>
+
+<p>All this has been going on in Europe for forty years past, and in
+limited fields in this country. All the branches of science that can
+help have been working,&mdash;anthropology, medicine, psychology, economics,
+sociology, philanthropy, penology. The law alone has abstained. The
+science of law is the one to be served by all this. But the public in
+general and the legal profession in particular have remained either
+ignorant of the entire subject or indifferent to the entire scientific
+movement. And this ignorance or indifference has blocked the way to
+progress in administration.</p>
+
+<p>The Institute therefore takes upon itself, as one of its aims, to
+inculcate the study of modern criminal science, as a pressing duty for
+the legal profession and for the thoughtful community at large. One of
+its principal modes of stimulating and aiding this study is to make
+available in the English language the most useful treatises now extant
+in the Continental languages. Our country has started late. There is
+much to catch up with, in the results reached elsewhere. We shall, to be
+sure, profit by the long period of argument and theorizing and
+experimentation which European thinkers and workers have passed through.
+But to reap that profit, the results of their experience must be made
+accessible in the English language.</p>
+
+<p>The effort, in selecting this series of translations, has been to choose
+those works which best represent the various schools of thought in
+criminal science, the general results reached, the points of contact or
+of controversy, and the contrasts of method&mdash;having always in view that
+class of works which have a more than local value and could best be
+serviceable to criminal science in our country. As the science has
+various aspects and emphases&mdash;the anthropological, psychological,
+sociological, legal, statistical, economic, pathological&mdash;due regard was
+paid, in the selection, to a representation of all these aspects. And as
+the several Continental countries have contributed in different ways to
+these various aspects,&mdash;France, Germany, Italy, most abundantly, but the
+others each its share,&mdash;the effort was made also to recognize the
+different contributions as far as feasible.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_viii" id="page_viii"></a>{viii}</span></p>
+
+<p>The selection made by the Committee, then, represents its judgment of
+the works that are most useful and most instructive for the purpose of
+translation. It is its conviction that this Series, when completed, will
+furnish the American student of criminal science a systematic and
+sufficient acquaintance with the controlling doctrines and methods that
+now hold the stage of thought in Continental Europe. Which of the
+various principles and methods will prove best adapted to help our
+problems can only be told after our students and workers have tested
+them in our own experience. But it is certain that we must first
+acquaint ourselves with these results of a generation of European
+thought.</p>
+
+<p>In closing, the Committee thinks it desirable to refer the members of
+the Institute, for purposes of further investigation of the literature,
+to the “Preliminary Bibliography of Modern Criminal Law and Criminology”
+(Bulletin No. 1 of the Gary Library of Law of Northwestern University),
+already issued to members of the Conference. The Committee believes that
+some of the Anglo-American works listed therein will be found useful.</p>
+
+<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="">
+<tr><td align="center" colspan="2"><span class="smcap">Committee on Translations.</span></td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left" rowspan="13" valign="top"><i>Chairman</i>,</td><td> <span class="smcap">Wm. W. Smithers</span>,</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">&nbsp; &nbsp; <i>Secretary of the Comparative Law Bureau of the American Bar Association, Philadelphia, Pa.</i></td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Ernst Freund</span>,</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">&nbsp; &nbsp; <i>Professor of Law in the University of Chicago</i>.</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Maurice Parmelee</span>,</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">&nbsp; &nbsp; <i>Professor of Sociology in the State University of Kansas</i>.</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Roscoe Pound</span>,</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">&nbsp; &nbsp; <i>Professor of Law in the University of Chicago</i>.</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Robert B. Scott</span>,</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">&nbsp; &nbsp; <i>Professor of Political Science in the State University of isconsin</i>.</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">John H. Wigmore</span>,</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">&nbsp; &nbsp; <i>Professor of Law in Northwestern University, Chicago</i>.</td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_ix" id="page_ix"></a>{ix}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="INTRODUCTION_TO_THE_ENGLISH_VERSION" id="INTRODUCTION_TO_THE_ENGLISH_VERSION"></a>INTRODUCTION TO THE ENGLISH VERSION.</h2>
+
+<p>W<small>HAT</small> Professor Gross presents in this volume is nothing less than an
+applied psychology of the judicial processes,&mdash;a critical survey of the
+procedures incident to the administration of justice with due
+recognition of their intrinsically psychological character, and yet with
+the insight conferred by a responsible experience with a working system.
+There is nothing more significant in the history of institutions than
+their tendency to get in the way of the very purposes which they were
+devised to meet. The adoration of measures seems to be an ineradicable
+human trait. Prophets and reformers ever insist upon the values of
+ideals and ends&mdash;the spiritual meanings of things&mdash;while the people as
+naturally drift to the worship of cults and ceremonies, and thus secure
+the more superficial while losing the deeper satisfactions of a duty
+performed. So restraining is the formal rigidity of primitive cultures
+that the mind of man hardly moves within their enforced orbits. In
+complex societies the conservatism, which is at once profitably
+conservative and needlessly obstructing, assumes a more intricate, a
+more evasive, and a more engaging form. In an age for which machinery
+has accomplished such heroic service, the dependence upon mechanical
+devices acquires quite unprecedented dimensions. It is compatible with,
+if not provocative of, a mental indolence,&mdash;an attention to details
+sufficient to operate the machinery, but a disinclination to think about
+the principles of the ends of its operation. There is no set of human
+relations that exhibits more distinctively the issues of these
+undesirable tendencies than those which the process of law adjusts. We
+have lost utterly the older sense of a hallowed fealty towards man-made
+law; we are not suffering from the inflexibility of the Medes and the
+Persians. We manufacture laws as readily as we do steam-rollers and
+change their patterns to suit the roads we have to build. But with the
+profit of our adaptability we are in danger of losing the underlying
+sense of purpose that inspires and continues to justify measures, and to
+lose also a certain intimate intercourse with problems of theory and
+philosophy which is one of the requisites of a professional equipment<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_x" id="page_x"></a>{x}</span>
+and one nowhere better appreciated than in countries loyal to Teutonic
+ideals of culture. The present volume bears the promise of performing a
+notable service for English readers by rendering accessible an admirable
+review of the data and principles germane to the practices of justice as
+related to their intimate conditioning in the psychological traits of
+men.</p>
+
+<p>The significant fact in regard to the procedures of justice is that they
+are of men, by men, and for men. Any attempt to eliminate unduly the
+human element, or to esteem a system apart from its adaptation to the
+psychology of human traits as they serve the ends of justice, is likely
+to result in a machine-made justice and a mechanical administration. As
+a means of furthering the plasticity of the law, of infusing it with a
+large human vitality&mdash;a movement of large scope in which religion and
+ethics, economics and sociology are worthily cooperating&mdash;the psychology
+of the party of the first part and the party of the second part may well
+be considered. The psychology of the judge enters into the consideration
+as influentially as the psychology of the offender. The many-sidedness
+of the problems thus unified in a common application is worthy of
+emphasis. There is the problem of evidence: the ability of a witness to
+observe and recount an incident, and the distortions to which such
+report is liable through errors of sense, confusion of inference with
+observation, weakness of judgment, prepossession, emotional interest,
+excitement, or an abnormal mental condition. It is the author’s view
+that the judge should understand these relations not merely in their
+narrower practical bearings, but in their larger and more theoretical
+aspects which the study of psychology as a comprehensive science sets
+forth. There is the allied problem of testimony and belief, which
+concerns the peculiarly judicial qualities. To ease the step from ideas
+to their expression, to estimate motive and intention, to know and
+appraise at their proper value the logical weaknesses and personal
+foibles of all kinds and conditions of offenders and witnesses,&mdash;to do
+this in accord with high standards, requires that men as well as
+evidence shall be judged. Allied to this problem which appeals to a
+large range of psychological doctrine, there is yet another which
+appeals to a yet larger and more intricate range,&mdash;that of human
+character and condition. Crimes are such complex issues as to demand the
+systematic diagnosis of the criminal. Heredity and environment,
+associations and standards, initiative and suggestibility, may all be
+condoning as well as aggravating factors of what becomes a<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xi" id="page_xi"></a>{xi}</span> “case.” The
+peculiar temptations of distinctive periods of life, the perplexing
+intrusion of subtle abnormalities, particularly when of a sexual type,
+have brought it about that the psychologist has extended his laboratory
+procedures to include the study of such deviation; and thus a common set
+of findings have an equally pertinent though a different interest for
+the theoretical student of relations and the practitioner. There are, as
+well, certain special psychological conditions that may color and quite
+transform the interpretation of a situation or a bit of testimony. To
+distinguish between hysterical deception and lying, between a
+superstitious believer in the reality of an experience and the victim of
+an actual hallucination, to detect whether a condition of emotional
+excitement or despair is a cause or an effect, is no less a
+psychological problem than the more popularly discussed question of
+compelling confession of guilt by the analysis of laboratory reactions.
+It may well be that judges and lawyers and men of science will continue
+to differ in their estimate of the aid which may come to the practical
+pursuits from a knowledge of the relations as the psychologist presents
+them in a non-technical, but yet systematic analysis. Professor Gross
+believes thoroughly in its importance; and those who read his book will
+arrive at a clearer view of the methods and issues that give character
+to this notable chapter in applied psychology.</p>
+
+<p>The author of the volume is a distinguished representative of the modern
+scientific study of criminology, or “criminalistic” as he prefers to
+call it. He was born December 26th, 1847, in Graz (Steiermark), Austria,
+pursued his university studies at Vienna and Graz, and qualified for the
+law in 1869. He served as “Untersuchungsrichter” (examining magistrate)
+and in other capacities, and received his first academic appointment as
+professor of criminal law at the University of Czernowitz. He was later
+attached to the German University at Prague, and is now professor in the
+University of Graz. He is the author of a considerable range of volumes
+bearing on the administration of criminal law and upon the theoretical
+foundations of the science of criminology. In 1893 he issued his
+“Handbuch für Untersuchungsrichter, als System der Kriminalistik,” a
+work that reached its fifth edition in 1908, and has been translated
+into eight foreign languages. From 1898 on he has been the editor of the
+“Archiv für Kriminalanthropologie und Kriminalistik,” of which about
+twenty volumes have appeared. He is a frequent contributor to this
+journal, which is an admirable representative of an efficient technical
+aid to the dissemination of interest<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xii" id="page_xii"></a>{xii}</span> in an important and difficult
+field. It is also worthy of mention that at the University of Graz he
+has established a Museum of Criminology, and that his son, Otto Gross,
+is well known as a specialist in nervous and mental disorders and as a
+contributor to the psychological aspects of his specialty. The volume
+here presented was issued in 1897; the translation is from the second
+and enlarged edition of 1905. The volume may be accepted as an
+authoritative exposition of a leader in his “Fach,” and is the more
+acceptable for purposes of translation, in that the wide interests of
+the writer and his sympathetic handling of his material impart an
+unusually readable quality to his pages.</p>
+
+<p class="r">
+<span class="smcap">Joseph Jastrow.</span><br />
+</p>
+
+<p class="hang"><span class="smcap">Madison, Wisconsin,</span><br />
+<span class="smcap">December,</span> 1910.<br />
+</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xiii" id="page_xiii"></a>{xiii}</span></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xiv" id="page_xiv"></a>{xiv}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="AUTHORS_PREFACE_TO_THE_AMERICAN_EDITION" id="AUTHORS_PREFACE_TO_THE_AMERICAN_EDITION"></a>AUTHOR’S PREFACE TO THE AMERICAN EDITION.</h2>
+
+<p>T<small>HE</small> present work was the first really objective Criminal Psychology
+which dealt with the mental states of judges, experts, jury, witnesses,
+etc., as well as with the mental states of criminals. And a study of the
+former is just as needful as a study of the latter. The need has
+fortunately since been recognized and several studies of special topics
+treated in this book&mdash;e.g. depositions of witnesses, perception, the
+pathoformic lie, superstition, probability, sensory illusions,
+inference, sexual differences, etc.&mdash;have become the subjects of a
+considerable literature, referred to in our second edition.</p>
+
+<p>I agreed with much pleasure to the proposition of the American Institute
+of Criminal Law and Criminology to have the book translated. I am proud
+of the opportunity to address Americans and Englishmen in their
+language. We of the German countries recognize the intellectual
+achievements of America and are well aware how much Americans can teach
+us.</p>
+
+<p>I can only hope that the translation will justify itself by its
+usefulness to the legal profession.</p>
+
+<p class="r">
+<span class="smcap">Hans Gross.</span><br />
+</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xv" id="page_xv"></a>{xv}</span></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xvi" id="page_xvi"></a>{xvi}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="TRANSLATORS_NOTE" id="TRANSLATORS_NOTE"></a>TRANSLATOR’S NOTE.</h2>
+
+<p>T<small>HE</small> present version of Gross’s Kriminal Psychologie differs from the
+original in the fact that many references not of general psychological
+or criminological interest or not readily accessible to English readers
+have been eliminated, and in some instances more accessible ones have
+been inserted. Prof. Gross’s erudition is so stupendous that it reaches
+far out into texts where no ordinary reader would be able or willing to
+follow him, and the book suffers no loss from the excision. In other
+places it was necessary to omit or to condense passages. Wherever this
+is done attention is called to it in the notes. The chief omission is a
+portion of the section on dialects. Otherwise the translation is
+practically literal. Additional bibliography of psychological and
+criminological works likely to be generally helpful has been appended.</p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xvii" id="page_xvii"></a>{xvii}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="CONTENTS" id="CONTENTS"></a>CONTENTS.</h2>
+
+<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="">
+
+<tr><td>&nbsp;</td><td align="right"><small>PAGE</small></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="smcap">General Introduction to the Modern Criminal Science Series</span> </td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_v">v</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="smcap">Introduction to the English Version</span> </td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_ix">ix</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="smcap">Author’s Preface to the American Edition</span> </td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_xiii">xiii</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="smcap">Translator’s Note</span> </td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_xiv">xiv</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="smcap">Introduction</span> </td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_001">1</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td>PART I. THE SUBJECTIVE CONDITIONS OF EVIDENCE (THE MENTAL ACTIVITIES OF THE JUDGE)</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_007">7</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s1"><span class="smcap">Title</span> A.</span> <span class="smcap">Conditions of Taking Evidence</span></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_007">7</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 1. METHOD</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_007">7</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 1 (<i>a</i>) General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_007">7</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 2 (<i>b</i>) The Method of Natural Science</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_009">9</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 2. PSYCHOLOGIC LESSONS</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_014">14</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 3 (<i>a</i>) General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_014">14</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 4 (<i>b</i>) Integrity of Witnesses</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_016">16</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 5 (<i>c</i>) Correctness of Testimony</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_018">18</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 6 (<i>d</i>) Presuppositions of Evidence-Taking</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_020">20</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 7 (<i>e</i>) Egoism</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_025">25</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 8 (<i>f</i>) Secrets</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_028">28</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 9 (<i>g</i>) Interest</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_037">37</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 3. PHENOMENOLOGY: The Outward Expression of Mental States</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_041">41</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 10</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_041">41</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 11 (<i>a</i>) General External Conditions</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_042">42</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 12 (<i>b</i>) General Signs of Character</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_053">53</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 13 (<i>c</i>) Particular Character-signs</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_061">61</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">(<i>d</i>)</span> Somatic Character-Units</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_069">69</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 14 (1) General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_069">69</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 15 (2) Causes of Irritation</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_071">71</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 16 (3) Cruelty</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_076">76</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 17 (4) Nostalgia</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_077">77</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 18 (5) Reflex Movements</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_078">78</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 19 (6) Dress</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_082">82</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 20 (7) Physiognomy and Related Subjects<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xviii" id="page_xviii"></a>{xviii}</span></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_083">83</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 21 (8) The Hand</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_100">100</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s1"><span class="smcap">Title</span> B.</span> <span class="smcap">The Conditions for Defining Theories</span></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_105">105</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 1. THE MAKING OF INFERENCES</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_105">105</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 22</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_105">105</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 23 (<i>a</i>) Proof</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_106">106</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 24 (<i>b</i>) Causation</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_117">117</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 25 (<i>c</i>) Scepticism</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_129">129</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 26 (<i>d</i>) The Empirical Method in the Study of Cases</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_136">136</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 27 (<i>e</i>) Analogy</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_144">144</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 28 (<i>f</i>) Probability</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_147">147</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 29 (<i>g</i>) Chance</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_159">159</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 30 (<i>h</i>) Persuasion and Explanation</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_161">161</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 31 (<i>i</i>) Inference and Judgment</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_165">165</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 32 (<i>j</i>) Mistaken Inferences</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_176">176</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 33 (<i>k</i>) Statistics of the Moral Situation</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_179">179</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 2. KNOWLEDGE</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_183">183</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 34</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_183">183</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td>PART II. OBJECTIVE CONDITIONS OF CRIMINAL INVESTIGATION
+(THE MENTAL ACTIVITY OF THE EXAMINEE)</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_187">187</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s1"><span class="smcap">Title</span> A.</span> <span class="smcap">General Conditions</span></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_187">187</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 1. OF SENSE PERCEPTION</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_187">187</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 35</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_187">187</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 36 (<i>a</i>) General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_187">187</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">(<i>b</i>)</span> The Sense of Sight </td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_196">196</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 37 (1) General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_196">196</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 38 (2) Color-vision</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_204">204</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 39 (3) The Blind Spot</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_207">207</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 40 (<i>c</i>) The Sense of Hearing</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_208">208</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 41 (<i>d</i>) The Sense of Taste</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_212">212</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 42 (<i>e</i>) The Sense of Smell</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_213">213</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 43 (<i>f</i>) The Sense of Touch</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_215">215</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 2. PERCEPTION AND CONCEPTION</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_221">221</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 44</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_221">221</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 3. IMAGINATION</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_232">232</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 45</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_232">232</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 4. INTELLECTUAL PROCESSES</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_238">238</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 46 (<i>a</i>) General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_238">238</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 47 (<i>b</i>) The Mechanism of Thinking</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_243">243</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 48 (<i>c</i>) The Subconscious</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_245">245</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 49 (<i>d</i>) Subjective Conditions<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xix" id="page_xix"></a>{xix}</span></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_248">248</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 5. THE ASSOCIATION OF IDEAS</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_254">254</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 50</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_254">254</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 6. RECOLLECTION AND MEMORY</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_258">258</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 51</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_258">258</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 52 (<i>a</i>) The Essence of Memory</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_259">259</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 53 (<i>b</i>) The Forms of Reproduction</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_263">263</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 54 (<i>c</i>) The Peculiarities of Reproduction</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_268">268</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 55 (<i>d</i>) Illusions of Memory</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_275">275</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 56 (<i>e</i>) Mnemotechnique</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_279">279</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 7. THE WILL</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_281">281</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 57</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_281">281</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 8. EMOTION</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_283">283</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 58</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_283">283</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 9. THE FORMS OF GIVING TESTIMONY</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_287">287</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 59</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_287">287</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 60 (<i>a</i>) General Study of Variety in Forms of Expression</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_288">288</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 61 (<i>b</i>) Dialect Forms</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_293">293</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 62 (<i>c</i>) Incorrect Forms</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_296">296</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s1"><span class="smcap">Title</span> B.</span> <span class="smcap">Differentiating Conditions of Giving Testimony</span></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_300">300</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 1. GENERAL DIFFERENCES</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_300">300</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">(<i>a</i>)</span> Woman</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_300">300</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s6">§</span> 63 1. General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_300">300</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s6">§</span> 64 2. Difference between Man and Women</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_307">307</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">3.</span> Sexual Peculiarities</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_311">311</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 65 (<i>a</i>) General</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_311">311</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 66 (<i>b</i>) Menstruation</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_311">311</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 67 (<i>c</i>) Pregnancy</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_317">317</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 68 (<i>d</i>) Erotic</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_319">319</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 69 (<i>e</i>) Submerged Sexual Factors</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_322">322</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">4.</span> Particular Feminine Qualities</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_332">332</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 70 (<i>a</i>) Intelligence</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_332">332</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s10">§</span> 71 1. Conception</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_333">333</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s10">§</span> 72 2. Judgment</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_335">335</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s10">§</span> 73 3. Quarrels with Women</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_337">337</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 74 (<i>b</i>) Honesty</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_340">340</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 75 (<i>c</i>) Love, Hate and Friendship</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_350">350</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 76 (<i>d</i>) Emotional Disposition and Related Subjects</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_359">359</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 77 (<i>e</i>) Weakness</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_361">361</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">§</span> 78 (<i>b</i>) Children</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_364">364</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 79 1. General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_364">364</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 80 2. Children as Witnesses</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_365">365</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 81 3. Juvenile Delinquency<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_xx" id="page_xx"></a>{xx}</span></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_369">369</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 82 (<i>c</i>) Senility</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_372">372</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 83 (<i>d</i>) Differences in Conception</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_375">375</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 84 (<i>e</i>) Nature and Nurture</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_384">384</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 85 1. The Influence of Nurture</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_385">385</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 86 2. The Views of the Uneducated</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_388">388</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 87 3. Onesided Education</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_391">391</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 88 4. Inclination</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_393">393</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 89 5. Other Differences</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_395">395</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 90 6. Intelligence and Stupidity</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_398">398</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 2. ISOLATED INFLUENCES</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_406">406</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 91 (<i>a</i>) Habit</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_406">406</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 92 (<i>b</i>) Heredity</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_410">410</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 93 (<i>c</i>) Prepossession</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_412">412</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 94 (<i>d</i>) Imitation and the Crowd</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_415">415</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 95 (<i>e</i>) Passion and Emotion</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_416">416</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 96 (<i>f</i>) Honor</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_421">421</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 97 (<i>g</i>) Superstition</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_422">422</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 3. MISTAKES</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_422">422</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">(<i>a</i>)</span> Mistakes of the Senses</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_422">422</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">§</span> 98 (1) General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_422">422</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">§</span> 99 (2) Optical Illusions</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_427">427</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">§</span> 100 (3) Auditory Illusions</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_443">443</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">§</span> 101 (4) Illusions of Touch</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_449">449</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">§</span> 102 (5) Illusions of the Sense of Taste</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_452">452</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s7">§</span> 103 (6) The Illusions of the Olfactory Sense</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_453">453</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">§</span> 104 (<i>b</i>) Hallucinations and Illusions</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_454">454</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">§</span> 105 (<i>c</i>) Imaginative Ideas</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_459">459</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td><span class="s6">(<i>d</i>)</span> Misunderstandings</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_467">467</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 106 1. Verbal Misunderstandings</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_467">467</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 107 2. Other Misunderstandings</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_470">470</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s6">(<i>e</i>)</span> The Lie</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_474">474</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 108 1. General Considerations</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_474">474</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s8">§</span> 109 2. The Pathoformic Lie</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_479">479</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s3">Topic</span> 4. ISOLATED SPECIAL CONDITIONS</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_480">480</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 110 (<i>a</i>) Sleep and Dream</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_480">480</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 111 (<i>b</i>) Intoxication</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_484">484</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="s5">§</span> 112 (<i>c</i>) Suggestion</td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_491">491</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="smcap"><a href="#APPENDIX_A">Appendix A</a>.</span> <span class="smcap">Bibliography, including texts more easily within reach of English readers</span></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_493">493</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="smcap"><a href="#APPENDIX_B">Appendix B</a>.</span> <span class="smcap">Works on Psychology of General Interest</span></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_500">500</a></td></tr>
+
+<tr><td><span class="smcap"><a href="#INDEX">Index</a></span>:
+<a href="#A">A</a>,
+<a href="#B">B</a>,
+<a href="#C">C</a>,
+<a href="#D">D</a>,
+<a href="#E">E</a>,
+<a href="#F">F</a>,
+<a href="#G">G</a>,
+<a href="#H">H</a>,
+<a href="#I-i">I</a>,
+<a href="#J">J</a>,
+<a href="#K">K</a>,
+<a href="#L">L</a>,
+<a href="#M">M</a>,
+<a href="#N">N</a>,
+<a href="#O">O</a>,
+<a href="#P">P</a>,
+<a href="#Q">Q</a>,
+<a href="#R">R</a>,
+<a href="#S">S</a>,
+<a href="#T">T</a>,
+<a href="#U">U</a>,
+<a href="#V-i">V</a>,
+<a href="#W">W</a>,
+<a href="#Z">Z</a></td><td align="right" valign="bottom"><a href="#page_503">503</a></td></tr>
+
+</table>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_001" id="page_001"></a>{1}</span></p>
+
+<h1><a name="CRIMINAL_PSYCHOLOGY" id="CRIMINAL_PSYCHOLOGY"></a>CRIMINAL PSYCHOLOGY.</h1>
+
+<h2><a name="INTRODUCTION" id="INTRODUCTION"></a>INTRODUCTION.</h2>
+
+<p>O<small>F</small> all disciplines necessary to the criminal justice in addition to the
+knowledge of law, the most important are those derived from psychology.
+For such sciences teach him to know the type of man it is his business
+to deal with. Now psychological sciences appear in various forms. There
+is a native psychology, a keenness of vision given in the march of
+experience, to a few fortunate persons, who see rightly without having
+learned the laws which determine the course of events, or without being
+even conscious of them. Of this native psychological power many men show
+traces, but very few indeed are possessed of as much as criminalists
+intrinsically require.</p>
+
+<p>In the colleges and pre-professional schools we jurists may acquire a
+little scientific psychology as a “philosophical propaedeutic,” but we
+all know how insufficient it is and how little of it endures in the
+business of life. And we had rather not reckon up the number of
+criminalists who, seeing this insufficiency, pursue serious
+psychological investigations.</p>
+
+<p>One especial psychological discipline which was apparently created for
+our sake is the psychology of law, the development of which, in Germany,
+Volkmar<a name="FNanchor_1_1" id="FNanchor_1_1"></a><a href="#Footnote_1_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</a> recounts. This science afterward developed, through the
+instrumentality of Metzger<a name="FNanchor_2_2" id="FNanchor_2_2"></a><a href="#Footnote_2_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</a> and Plainer,<a name="FNanchor_3_3" id="FNanchor_3_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> as criminal psychology.
+From the medical point of view especially, Choulant’s collection of the
+latter’s, “Quaestiones,” is still valuable. Criminal psychology was
+developed further by Hoffbauer,<a name="FNanchor_4_4" id="FNanchor_4_4"></a><a href="#Footnote_4_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</a> Grohmann,<a name="FNanchor_5_5" id="FNanchor_5_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_002" id="page_002"></a>{2}</span> Heinroth,<a name="FNanchor_6_6" id="FNanchor_6_6"></a><a href="#Footnote_6_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</a>
+Schaumann,<a name="FNanchor_7_7" id="FNanchor_7_7"></a><a href="#Footnote_7_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</a> Münch,<a name="FNanchor_8_8" id="FNanchor_8_8"></a><a href="#Footnote_8_8" class="fnanchor">[8]</a> Eckartshausen,<a name="FNanchor_9_9" id="FNanchor_9_9"></a><a href="#Footnote_9_9" class="fnanchor">[9]</a> and others. In Kant’s time the
+subject was a bone of contention between faculties, Kant representing in
+the quarrel the philosophic, Metzger, Hoffbauer, and Fries,<a name="FNanchor_10_10" id="FNanchor_10_10"></a><a href="#Footnote_10_10" class="fnanchor">[10]</a> the
+medical faculties. Later legal psychology was simply absorbed by
+psychiatry, and thereby completely subsumed among the medical
+disciplines, in spite of the fact that Regnault,<a name="FNanchor_11_11" id="FNanchor_11_11"></a><a href="#Footnote_11_11" class="fnanchor">[11]</a> still later,
+attempted to recover it for philosophy, as is pointed out in
+Friedreich’s<a name="FNanchor_12_12" id="FNanchor_12_12"></a><a href="#Footnote_12_12" class="fnanchor">[12]</a> well-known text-book (cf. moreover V. Wilbrand’s<a name="FNanchor_13_13" id="FNanchor_13_13"></a><a href="#Footnote_13_13" class="fnanchor">[13]</a>
+text-book). Nowadays, criminal psychology, as represented by Kraus,<a name="FNanchor_14_14" id="FNanchor_14_14"></a><a href="#Footnote_14_14" class="fnanchor">[14]</a>
+Krafft-Ebing,<a name="FNanchor_15_15" id="FNanchor_15_15"></a><a href="#Footnote_15_15" class="fnanchor">[15]</a> Maudsley,<a name="FNanchor_16_16" id="FNanchor_16_16"></a><a href="#Footnote_16_16" class="fnanchor">[16]</a> Holtzendorff,<a name="FNanchor_17_17" id="FNanchor_17_17"></a><a href="#Footnote_17_17" class="fnanchor">[17]</a> Lombroso,<a name="FNanchor_18_18" id="FNanchor_18_18"></a><a href="#Footnote_18_18" class="fnanchor">[18]</a> and
+others has become a branch of criminal anthropology. It is valued as the
+doctrine of motives in crime, or, according to Liszt, as the
+investigation of the psychophysical condition of the criminal. It is
+thus only a part of the subject indicated by its name.<a name="FNanchor_19_19" id="FNanchor_19_19"></a><a href="#Footnote_19_19" class="fnanchor">[19]</a> How utterly
+criminal psychology has become incorporated in criminal anthropology is
+demonstrated by the works of Näcke,<a name="FNanchor_20_20" id="FNanchor_20_20"></a><a href="#Footnote_20_20" class="fnanchor">[20]</a> Kurella,<a name="FNanchor_21_21" id="FNanchor_21_21"></a><a href="#Footnote_21_21" class="fnanchor">[21]</a> Bleuler,<a name="FNanchor_22_22" id="FNanchor_22_22"></a><a href="#Footnote_22_22" class="fnanchor">[22]</a>
+Dallemagne,<a name="FNanchor_23_23" id="FNanchor_23_23"></a><a href="#Footnote_23_23" class="fnanchor">[23]</a> Marro,<a name="FNanchor_24_24" id="FNanchor_24_24"></a><a href="#Footnote_24_24" class="fnanchor">[24]</a> Ellis,<a name="FNanchor_25_25" id="FNanchor_25_25"></a><a href="#Footnote_25_25" class="fnanchor">[25]</a> Baer,<a name="FNanchor_26_26" id="FNanchor_26_26"></a><a href="#Footnote_26_26" class="fnanchor">[26]</a> Koch,<a name="FNanchor_27_27" id="FNanchor_27_27"></a><a href="#Footnote_27_27" class="fnanchor">[27]</a> Maschka,<a name="FNanchor_28_28" id="FNanchor_28_28"></a><a href="#Footnote_28_28" class="fnanchor">[28]</a>
+Thomson,<a name="FNanchor_29_29" id="FNanchor_29_29"></a><a href="#Footnote_29_29" class="fnanchor">[29]</a> Ferri,<a name="FNanchor_30_30" id="FNanchor_30_30"></a><a href="#Footnote_30_30" class="fnanchor">[30]</a> Bonfigli,<a name="FNanchor_31_31" id="FNanchor_31_31"></a><a href="#Footnote_31_31" class="fnanchor">[31]</a> Corre,<a name="FNanchor_32_32" id="FNanchor_32_32"></a><a href="#Footnote_32_32" class="fnanchor">[32]</a> etc.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_003" id="page_003"></a>{3}</span></p>
+
+<p>Literally, criminal psychology should be <i>that form of psychology used
+in dealing with crime</i>; not merely, the psychopathology of criminals,
+the natural history of the criminal mind. But taken even literally, this
+is not all the psychology required by the criminalist. No doubt crime is
+an objective thing. Cain would actually have slaughtered Abel even if at
+the time Adam and Eve were already dead. But for us each crime exists
+only as we perceive it,&mdash;as we learn to know it through all those media
+established for us in criminal procedure. But these media are based upon
+sense-perception, upon the perception of the judge and his assistants,
+i.e.: upon witnesses, accused, and experts. Such perceptions must be
+psychologically validated. The knowledge of the principles of this
+validation demands again a special department of general
+psychology&mdash;even such a <i>pragmatic applied psychology as will deal with
+all states of mind that might possibly be involved in the determination
+and judgment of crime</i>. It is the aim of this book to present such a
+psychology. “If we were gods,” writes Plato in the Symposium, “there
+would be no philosophy”&mdash;and if our senses were truer and our sense
+keener, we should need no psychology. As it is we must strive hard to
+determine certainly how we see and think; we must understand these
+processes according to valid laws organized into a system&mdash;otherwise we
+remain the shuttlecocks of sense, misunderstanding and accident. We must
+know how all of us,&mdash;we ourselves, witnesses, experts, and accused,
+observe and perceive; we must know how they think,&mdash;and how they
+demonstrate; we must take into account how variously mankind infer and
+perceive, what mistakes and illusions may ensue; how people recall and
+bear in mind; how everything varies with age, sex, nature, and
+cultivation. We must also see clearly what series of influences can
+prevail to change all those things which would have been different under
+normal conditions. Indeed, the largest place in this book will be given
+to the witness and the judge himself, since we want in fact, from the
+first to keep in mind the creation of material for our instruction; but
+the psychology of the criminal must also receive consideration
+where-ever the issue is not concerned with his so-called psychoses, but
+with the validation of evidence.</p>
+
+<p>Our method will be that fundamental to all psychological investigation,
+and may be divided into three parts:<a name="FNanchor_33_33" id="FNanchor_33_33"></a><a href="#Footnote_33_33" class="fnanchor">[33]</a></p>
+
+<p>1. The preparation of a review of psychological phenomena.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_004" id="page_004"></a>{4}</span></p>
+
+<p>2. Study of causal relationships.</p>
+
+<p>3. Establishment of the principles of psychic activity.</p>
+
+<p>The subject-matter will be drawn on the one hand, from that already
+presented by psychological science, but will be treated throughout from
+the point of view of the criminal judge, and prepared for his purposes.
+On the other hand, the material will be drawn from these observations
+that alone the criminologist at work can make, and on this the
+principles of psychology will be brought to bear.</p>
+
+<p>We shall not espouse either pietism, scepticism, or criticism. We have
+merely to consider the individual phenomena, as they may concern the
+criminalist; to examine them and to establish whatever value the
+material may have for him; what portions may be of use to him in the
+interest of discovering the truth; and where the dangers may lurk that
+menace him. And just as we are aware that the comprehension of the
+fundamental concepts of the exact sciences is not to be derived from
+their methodology, so we must keep clearly in mind that the truth which
+we criminalists have to attain can not be constructed out of the
+<i>formal</i> correctness of the content presented us. We are in duty bound
+to render it <i>materially</i> correct. But that is to be achieved only if we
+are acquainted with principles of psychology, and know how to make them
+serve our purposes. For our problem, the oft-quoted epigram of Bailey’s,
+“The study of physiology is as repugnant to the psychologist as that of
+acoustics to the composer,” no longer holds. We are not poets, we are
+investigators. If we are to do our work properly, we must base it
+completely upon modern psycho physical fundamentals. Whoever expects
+unaided to find the right thing at the right moment is in the position
+of the individual who didn’t know whether he could play the violin
+because he had not yet tried. We must gather wisdom while we are not
+required to use it; when the time for use arrives, the time for harvest
+is over.</p>
+
+<p>Let this be our fundamental principle: <i>That we criminalists receive
+from our main source, the witnesses, many more inferences than
+observations</i>, and that this fact is the basis of so many mistakes in
+our work. Again and again we are taught, in the deposition of evidence,
+that only facts as plain sense-perceptions should be presented; that
+inference is the judge’s affair. But we only appear to obey this
+principle; actually, most of what we note as fact and sense-perception,
+is nothing but a more or less justified judgment, which though presented
+in the honestest belief, still<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_005" id="page_005"></a>{5}</span> offers no positive truth. “Amicus Plato,
+sed magis amica Veritas.”</p>
+
+<p>There is no doubt that there is an increasing, and for us jurists, a not
+unimportant demand for the study of psychology in its bearing on our
+profession. But it must be served. The spirited Abbé de Baëts, said at a
+meeting of criminalists in Brussels, that the <i>present tendency of the
+science of criminal law demands the observation of the facts of the
+daily life</i>. In this observation consists the alpha and omega of our
+work; we can perform it only with the flux of sensory appearances, and
+the law which determines this flux, and according to which the
+appearances come, is the law of causation. But we are nowhere so
+neglectful of causation as in the deeds of mankind. A knowledge of that
+region only psychology can give us. Hence, to become conversant with
+psychological principles, is the obvious duty of that conscientiousness
+which must hold first place among the forces that conserve the state. It
+is a fact that there has been in this matter much delinquency and much
+neglect. If, then, we were compelled to endure some bitterness on
+account of it, let it be remembered that it was always directed upon the
+fact that we insisted on studying our statutes and their commentaries,
+fearfully excluding every other discipline that might have assisted us,
+and have imported vitality into our profession. It was Gneist<a name="FNanchor_34_34" id="FNanchor_34_34"></a><a href="#Footnote_34_34" class="fnanchor">[34]</a> who
+complained: “The contemporary low stage of legal education is to be
+explained like much else by that historical continuity which plays the
+foremost rôle in the administration of justice.” Menger<a name="FNanchor_35_35" id="FNanchor_35_35"></a><a href="#Footnote_35_35" class="fnanchor">[35]</a> does not
+mention “historical continuity” so plainly, but he points sternly enough
+to the legal sciences as the most backward of all disciplines that were
+in contact with contemporary tendencies. That these accusations are
+justified we must admit, when we consider what Stölzel<a name="FNanchor_36_36" id="FNanchor_36_36"></a><a href="#Footnote_36_36" class="fnanchor">[36]</a> and the
+genial creator of modern civil teaching demands: “It must be recognized
+that jurisprudence in reality is nothing but the thesis of the healthy
+human understanding in matters of law.” But what the “healthy human
+mind” requires we can no longer discover from our statutory paragraphs
+only. How shameful it is for us, when Goldschmidt<a name="FNanchor_37_37" id="FNanchor_37_37"></a><a href="#Footnote_37_37" class="fnanchor">[37]</a> openly narrates
+how a famous scientist exclaimed to a student in his laboratory: “What
+do you want here? You know nothing, you understand nothing, you do
+nothing,&mdash;you had better become a lawyer.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_006" id="page_006"></a>{6}</span>”</p>
+
+<p>Now let us for once frankly confess why we are dealt these disgraceful
+reproaches. Let us agree that we have not studied or dealt with
+jurisprudence as a science, have never envisaged it as an empirical
+discipline; that the aprioristic and classical tradition had kept this
+insight at a distance, and that where investigation and effort toward
+the recognition of the true is lacking, there lacks everything of the
+least scientific importance. To be scientifically legitimate, we need
+first of all the installation of the disciplines of research which shall
+have direct relationships with our proper task. In this way only can we
+attain that spiritual independence by means of spiritual freedom, which
+Goldschmidt defines as the affair of the higher institutions of
+learning, and which is also the ideal of our own business in life. And
+this task is not too great. “Life is movement,” cried Alois von
+Brinz,<a name="FNanchor_38_38" id="FNanchor_38_38"></a><a href="#Footnote_38_38" class="fnanchor">[38]</a> in his magnificent inaugural address. “Life is not the
+thought, but the thinking which comes in the fullness of action.”</p>
+
+<p>It may be announced with joy and satisfaction, that since the
+publication of the first edition of this book, and bearing upon it,
+there came to life a rich collection of fortuitous works which have
+brought together valuable material. Concerning the testimony of
+witnesses, its nature and value, concerning memory, and the types of
+reproduction, there is now a considerable literature. Everywhere
+industrious hands are raised,&mdash;hands of psychologists, physicians, and
+lawyers, to share in the work. Should they go on unhurt we may perhaps
+repair the unhappy faults committed by our ancestors through stupid
+ignorance and destructive use of uncritically collected material.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_007" id="page_007"></a>{7}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="Part_I" id="Part_I"></a><span class="smcap">Part I.</span><br /><br />
+THE SUBJECTIVE CONDITIONS OF EVIDENCE: THE MENTAL ACTIVITIES OF THE JUDGE.</h2>
+
+<h3><a name="Title_A_The_Conditions_of_Taking_Evidence" id="Title_A_The_Conditions_of_Taking_Evidence"></a><span class="smcap">Title A. The Conditions of Taking Evidence.</span></h3>
+
+<h4>Topic I. METHOD.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 1. (a) General Considerations.</h5>
+
+<p>S<small>OCRATES</small>, dealing in the Meno with the teachability of virtue, sends for
+one of Meno’s slaves, to prove by him the possibility of absolutely
+certain a priori knowledge. The slave is to determine the length of a
+rectangle, the contents of which is twice that of one measuring two
+feet; but he is to have no previous knowledge of the matter, and is not
+to be directly coached by Socrates. He is to discover the answer for
+himself. Actually the slave first gives out an incorrect answer. He
+answers that the length of a rectangle having twice the area of the one
+mentioned is four feet, thinking that the length doubles with the area.
+Thereupon Socrates triumphantly points out to Meno that the slave does
+as a matter of fact not yet quite know the truth under consideration,
+but that he really thinks he knows it; and then Socrates, in his own
+Socratic way, leads the slave to the correct solution. This very
+significant procedure of the philosopher is cited by Guggenheim<a name="FNanchor_39_39" id="FNanchor_39_39"></a><a href="#Footnote_39_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a> as
+an illustration of the essence of a priori knowledge, and when we
+properly consider what we have to do with a witness who has to relate
+any fact, we may see in the Socratic method the simplest example of our
+task. We must never forget <i>that the majority of mankind dealing with
+any subject whatever always believe that they know and repeat the
+truth</i>, and even when they say doubtfully: “I believe.&mdash;It seems to me,”
+there is, in this tentativeness, more meant than meets the ear. When
+anybody says: “I believe that&mdash;” it merely means that he intends to
+insure himself against the event of being contradicted by better
+informed persons; but he certainly has not<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_008" id="page_008"></a>{8}</span> the doubt his expression
+indicates. When, however, the report of some bare fact is in question
+(“It rained,” “It was 9 o’clock,” “His beard was brown,” or “It was 8
+o’clock,”) it does not matter to the narrator, and if he imparts <i>such</i>
+facts with the introduction, “I believe,” then he was really uncertain.
+The matter becomes important only where the issue involves
+partly-concealed observations, conclusions and judgments. In such cases
+another factor enters&mdash;conceit; what the witness asserts he is fairly
+certain of just because he asserts it, and all the “I believes,”
+“Perhapses,” and “It seemeds,” are merely insurance against all
+accidents.</p>
+
+<p>Generally statements are made without such reservations and, even if the
+matter is not long certain, with full assurance. What thus holds of the
+daily life, holds also, and more intensely, of court-witnesses,
+particularly in crucial matters. Anybody experienced in their conduct
+comes to be absolutely convinced that witnesses do not know what they
+know. A series of assertions are made with utter certainty. Yet when
+these are successively subjected to closer examinations, tested for
+their ground and source, only a very small portion can be retained
+unaltered. Of course, one may here overshoot the mark. It often happens,
+even in the routine of daily life, that a man may be made to feel shaky
+in his most absolute convictions, by means of an energetic attack and
+searching questions. Conscientious and sanguine people are particularly
+easy subjects of such doubts. Somebody narrates an event; questioning
+begins as to the indubitability of the fact, as to the exclusion of
+possible deception; the narrator becomes uncertain, he recalls that,
+because of a lively imagination, he has already believed himself to have
+seen things otherwise than they actually were, and finally he admits
+that the matter might probably have been different. During trials this
+is still more frequent. The circumstance of being in court of itself
+excites most people; the consciousness that one’s statement is, or may
+be, of great significance increases the excitement; and the
+authoritative character of the official subdues very many people to
+conform their opinions to his. What wonder then, that however much a man
+may be convinced of the correctness of his evidence, he may yet fail in
+the face of the doubting judge to know anything certainly?</p>
+
+<p>Now one of the most difficult tasks of the criminalist is to hit, in
+just such cases, upon the truth; neither to accept the testimony blindly
+and uncritically; nor to render the witness, who otherwise<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_009" id="page_009"></a>{9}</span> is telling
+the truth, vacillating and doubtful. But it is still more difficult to
+lead the witness, who is not intentionally falsifying, but has merely
+observed incorrectly or has made false conclusions, to a statement of
+the truth as Socrates leads the slave in the Meno. It is as modern as it
+is comfortable to assert that this is not the judge’s business&mdash;that the
+witness is to depose, his evidence is to be accepted, and the judge is
+to judge. Yet it is supposed before everything else that the duty of the
+court is to establish the material truth&mdash;that the formal truth is
+insufficient. Moreover, if we notice false observations and let them by,
+then, under certain circumstance, we are minus one important piece of
+evidence <i>pro</i> and <i>con</i>, and the whole case may be turned topsy turvy.
+At the very least a basis of development in the presentation of evidence
+is so excluded. We shall, then, proceed in the Socratic fashion. But,
+inasmuch as we are not concerned with mathematics, and are hence more
+badly placed in the matter of proof, we shall have to proceed more
+cautiously and with less certainty, than when the question is merely one
+of the area of a square. On the one hand we know only in the rarest
+cases that we are not ourselves mistaken, so that we must not, without
+anything further, lead another to agree with us; on the other hand we
+must beware of perverting the witness from his possibly sound opinions.
+It is not desirable to speak of suggestion in this matter, since, if I
+believe that the other fellow knows a matter better than I and conform
+to his opinion, there is as yet no suggestion. And this pure form of
+change of opinion and of openness to conviction is commonest among us.
+Whoever is able to correct the witness’s apparently false conceptions
+and to lead him to discover his error of his own accord and then to
+speak the truth&mdash;whoever can do this and yet does not go too far,
+deducing from the facts nothing that does not actually follow from&mdash;that
+man is a master among us.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 2. (b) The Method of Natural Science.<a name="FNanchor_40_40" id="FNanchor_40_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a></h5>
+
+<p>If now we ask how we are to plan our work, what method we are to follow,
+we must agree that to establish scientifically the principles of our
+discipline alone is not sufficient. If we are to make progress, the
+daily routine also must be scientifically administered. Every sentence,
+every investigation, every official act must satisfy the same demand as
+that made of the entire juristic science. In this way only<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_010" id="page_010"></a>{10}</span> can we rise
+above the mere workaday world of manual labor, with its sense-dulling
+disgust, its vexatious monotony, and its frightful menace against law
+and justice. While jurists merely studied the language of dead laws,
+expounding them with effort unceasing, and, one may complain,
+propounding more, we must have despaired of ever being scientific. And
+this because law as a science painfully sought justification in
+deduction from long obsolete norms and in the explanation of texts. To
+jurisprudence was left only the empty shell, and a man like Ihering<a name="FNanchor_41_41" id="FNanchor_41_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a>
+spoke of a “circus for dialectico-acrobatic tricks.”</p>
+
+<p>Yet the scientific quality is right to hand. We need only to take hold
+of the method, that for nearly a century has shown itself to us the most
+helpful. Since Warnkönig (1819)<a name="FNanchor_42_42" id="FNanchor_42_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a> told us, “Jurisprudence must become
+a natural science,” men have rung changes upon this battle cry (cf.
+Spitzer<a name="FNanchor_43_43" id="FNanchor_43_43"></a><a href="#Footnote_43_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a>). And even if, because misunderstood, it led in some
+directions wrongly, it does seem as if a genuinely scientific direction
+might be given to our doctrines and their application. We know very well
+that we may not hurry. Wherever people delayed in establishing the right
+thing and then suddenly tried for it, they went in their haste too far.
+This is apparent not only in the situations of life; it is visible, in
+the very recent hasty conclusions of the Lombrosists, in their very
+good, but inadequate observations, and unjustified and strained
+inferences. We are not to figure the scientific method from these.<a name="FNanchor_44_44" id="FNanchor_44_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a>
+It is for us to gather facts and to study them. The drawing of
+inferences we may leave to our more fortunate successors. But in the
+daily routine we may vary this procedure a little. We draw there
+<i>particular</i> inferences from correct and simple observations. “From
+facts to ideas,” says Öttingen.<a name="FNanchor_45_45" id="FNanchor_45_45"></a><a href="#Footnote_45_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a> “The world has for several
+millenniums tried to subdue matter to preconceptions and the world has
+failed. Now the procedure is reversed.” “From facts to ideas”&mdash;there
+lies our road, let us for once observe the facts of life without
+prejudice, without maxims built on preconceptions; let us establish
+them, strip them of all alien character. Then finally, when we find
+nothing more in the least doubtful, we may theorize about them, and draw
+inferences, modestly and with caution.</p>
+
+<p>Every fundamental investigation must first of all establish the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_011" id="page_011"></a>{11}</span> nature
+of its subject matter. This is the maxim of a book, “Über die
+Dummheit”<a name="FNanchor_46_46" id="FNanchor_46_46"></a><a href="#Footnote_46_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a> (1886), one of the wisest ever written. The same axiomatic
+proposition must dominate every legal task, but especially every task of
+criminal law. It is possible to read thousands upon thousands of
+testimonies and to make again this identical, fatiguing, contrary
+observation: The two, witness and judge, have not defined the nature of
+this subject; they have not determined what they wanted of each other.
+The one spoke of one matter, the other of another; but just what the
+thing really was that was to have been established, the one did not know
+and the other did not tell him. But the blame for this defective
+formulation does not rest with the witness&mdash;formulation was the other
+man’s business.</p>
+
+<p>When the real issue is defined the essentially modern and scientific
+investigation begins. Ebbinghaus,<a name="FNanchor_47_47" id="FNanchor_47_47"></a><a href="#Footnote_47_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a> I believe, has for our purpose
+defined it best. It consists in trying to keep constant the complex of
+conditions demonstrated to be necessary for the realization of a given
+effect. It consists in varying these conditions, in isolating one from
+the other in a numerically determinable order, and finally, in
+establishing the accompanying changes with regard to the effect, in a
+quantified or countable order.</p>
+
+<p>I can not here say anything further to show that this is the sole
+correct method of establishing the necessary principles of our science.
+The aim is only to test the practicality of this method in the routine
+of a criminal case, and to see if it is not, indeed, the only one by
+which to attain complete and indubitable results. If it is, it must <i>be
+of use</i> not only during the whole trial&mdash;not only in the testing of
+collected evidence, but also in the testing of every individual portion
+thereof, analyzed into its component elements.</p>
+
+<p>Let us first consider the whole trial.</p>
+
+<p>The <i>effect</i> is here the evidence of A’s guilt. The complex conditions
+for its establishment are the collective instruments in getting
+evidence; the individual conditions are to be established by means of
+the individual sources of evidence&mdash;testimony of witnesses, examination
+of the premises, obduction, protocol, etc.</p>
+
+<p><i>The constantification of conditions</i> now consists in standardizing the
+present instance, thus: Whenever similar circumstances are given, i.e.:
+the same instruments of evidence are present, the evidence of guilt is
+established. Now the accompanying changes with regard to the effect,
+i.e.: proof of guilt through evidence, have to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_012" id="page_012"></a>{12}</span> be tested&mdash;therefore the
+individual conditions&mdash;i.e.: the individual sources of evidence have to
+be established and their values to be determined and <i>varied</i>. Finally,
+the accompanying change in effect (conviction by evidence) is to be
+tested. The last procedure requires discussion; the rest is self
+evident. In our business isolation is comparatively easy, inasmuch as
+any individual statement, any visual impression, any effect, etc., may
+be abstracted without difficulty. Much harder is the determination of
+its value. If, however, we clearly recognize that it is necessary to
+express the exact value of each particular source of evidence, and that
+the task is only to determine comparative valuation, the possibility of
+such a thing, in at least a sufficiently close degree of certainty, must
+be granted. The valuation must be made in respect of two things&mdash;(1) its
+<i>reliability</i> (subjective and relative); (2) its <i>significance</i>
+(objective and absolute). On the one hand, the value of the evidence
+itself must be tested according to the appraisement of the person who
+presents it and of the conditions under which he is important; on the
+other, what influence evidence accepted as reliable can exercise upon
+the <i>effect</i>, considered in and for itself. So then, when a testimony is
+being considered, it must first be determined whether the witness was
+able and willing to speak the truth, and further, what the importance of
+the testimony may be in terms of the changes it may cause in the
+<i>organization</i> of the case.</p>
+
+<p>Of greatest importance and most difficult is the variation of conditions
+and the establishment of the changes thereby generated, with regard to
+the <i>effect</i>,&mdash;i.e.: the critical interpretation of the material in
+hand. Applied to a case, the problem presents itself in this wise: I
+consider each detail of evidence by itself and cleared of all others,
+and I vary it as often as it is objectively possible to do so. Thus I
+suppose that each statement of the witness might be a lie, entirely or
+in part; it might be incorrect observation, false inference, etc.&mdash;and
+then I ask myself: Does the evidence of guilt, the establishment of an
+especial trial, now remain just? If not, is it just under other and
+related possible circumstances? Am I in possession of these
+circumstances? If now the degree of apparent truth is so far tested that
+these variations may enter and the accusation still remain just, the
+defendant is convicted: but only under these circumstances.</p>
+
+<p>The same procedure here required for the conduct of a complete trial, is
+to be followed also, in miniature, in the production of particulars of
+evidence. Let us again construe an instance.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_013" id="page_013"></a>{13}</span> The <i>effect</i> now is the
+establishment of the objective correctness of some particular point
+(made by statements of witnesses, looks, etc.). The <i>complex of
+conditions</i> consists in the collection of these influences which might
+render doubtful the correctness&mdash;i.e., dishonesty of witnesses,
+defective examination of locality, unreliability of the object,
+ignorance of experts, etc. It is necessary to know clearly which of
+these influences might be potent in the case in hand, and to what
+degree. The <i>standardization</i> consists, also this time, in the
+comparison of the conditions of the present case with those of other
+cases. The <i>variation</i>, again, consists in the abstraction from the
+evidence of those details which might possibly be incorrect, thus
+correcting it, from various points of view, and finally, in observing
+the <i>effect</i> as it defines itself under this variety of formulation.</p>
+
+<p>This procedure, adopted in the preparation and judgment of each new
+piece of evidence, excludes error as far as our means conceivably
+permit. Only one thing more is needful&mdash;a narrow and minute research
+into that order of succession which is of indispensable importance in
+every natural science. “Of all truths concerning natural phenomena,
+those which deal with the order of succession are for us the most
+important. Upon a knowledge of them is grounded every intelligent
+anticipation of the future” (J. S. Mill).<a name="FNanchor_48_48" id="FNanchor_48_48"></a><a href="#Footnote_48_48" class="fnanchor">[48]</a> The oversight of this
+doctrine is the largest cause of our failures. We must, in the
+determination of evidence, cleave to it. Whenever the question of
+influence upon the “<i>effect</i>” is raised, the problem of order is found
+invariably the most important. Mistakes and impossibilities are in the
+main discovered only when the examination of the order of succession has
+been undertaken.</p>
+
+<p>In short: We have confined ourselves long enough to the mere study of
+our legal canons. We now set out upon an exact consideration of their
+material. To do this, obviously demands a retreat to the starting-point
+and a beginning we ought to have made long ago; but natural sciences, on
+which we model ourselves, have had to do the identical thing and are now
+at it openly and honestly. Ancient medicine looked first of all for the
+universal panacea and boiled theriac; contemporary medicine dissects,
+uses the microscope, and experiments, recognizes no panacea, accepts
+barely a few specifics. Modern medicine has seen the mistake. But we
+lawyers boil our theriac even nowadays and regard the most important
+study, the study of reality, with arrogance.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_014" id="page_014"></a>{14}</span></p>
+
+<h4>Topic II. PSYCHOLOGIC LESSONS.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 3. (a) General Considerations.</h5>
+
+<p>Of the criminalist’s tasks, the most important are those involving his
+dealings with the other men who determine his work, with witnesses,
+accused, jurymen, colleagues, etc. These are the most pregnant of
+consequences. In every case his success depends on his skill, his tact,
+his knowledge of human nature, his patience, and his propriety of
+manner. Anybody who takes the trouble, may note speedily the great
+differences in efficiency between those who do and those who do not
+possess such qualities. That they are important to witnesses and accused
+is undoubted. But this importance is manifest to still others. The
+intercourse between various examining judges and experts is a matter of
+daily observation. One judge puts the question according to law and
+expects to be respected. He does not make explicit how perfectly
+indifferent the whole affair is to him, but experts have sufficient
+opportunity to take note of that fact. The other narrates the case,
+explains to the experts its various particular possibilities, finds out
+whether and what further elucidation they demand, perhaps inquires into
+the intended manner and method of the expert solution of the problem,
+informs himself of the case by their means, and manifests especial
+interest in the difficult and far too much neglected work of the
+experts. It may be said that the latter will do their work in the one
+case as in the other, with the same result. This would be true if,
+unfortunately, experts were not also endowed with the same imperfections
+as other mortals, and are thus far also infected by interest or
+indifference. Just imagine that besides the examining magistrate of a
+great superior court, every justice and, in addition, all the chiefs and
+officials manifested equal indifference! Then even the most devoted
+experts would grow cool and do only what they absolutely had to. But if
+all the members of the same court are actuated by the same keen interest
+and comport themselves as described, how different the affair becomes!
+It would be impossible that even the indifferent, and perhaps least
+industrious experts, should not be carried out of themselves by the
+general interest, should not finally realize the importance of their
+position, and do their utmost.</p>
+
+<p>The same thing is true of the president, the jurymen and their
+fellow-judges. It is observable that here and there a presiding justice
+succeeds in boring all concerned during even criminal cases interesting<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_015" id="page_015"></a>{15}</span>
+in themselves; the incident drags on, and people are interested only in
+finally seeing the end of the matter. Other presiding justices again,
+fortunately the majority, understand how to impart apparent importance
+to even the simplest case. Whatever office anybody may hold,&mdash;he and his
+mates are commissioned in the common task, and should the thing come up
+for judgment, everybody does his best. The difference here is not due to
+temperamental freshness or tediousness; the result depends only upon a
+correct or incorrect psychological handling of the participants. The
+latter must in every single case be led and trained anew to interest,
+conscientiousness and co-operation. In this need lies the educational
+opportunity of the criminal judge. Whether it arises with regard to the
+accused, the witness, the associate justice, or the expert, is all one;
+it is invariably the same.</p>
+
+<p>That knowledge of human nature is for this purpose most important to the
+criminalist will be as little challenged as the circumstance that such
+knowledge can not be acquired from books. Curiously enough, there are
+not a few on the subject, but I suspect that whoever studies or
+memorizes them, (such books as Pockel’s, Herz’s, Meister’s, Engel’s,
+Jassoix’s, and others, enumerated by Volkmar) will have gained little
+that is of use. A knowledge of human nature is acquired only (barring of
+course a certain talent thereto) by persevering observation, comparison,
+summarization, and further comparison. So acquired, it sets its
+possessor to the fore, and makes him independent of a mass of
+information with which the others have to repair their ignorance of
+mankind. This is to be observed in countless cases in our profession.
+Whoever has had to deal with certain sorts of swindlers, lying
+horsetraders, antiquarians, prestidigitators, soon comes to the
+remarkable conclusion, that of this class, exactly those who flourish
+most in their profession and really get rich understand their trade the
+least. The horse-dealer is no connoisseur whatever in horses, the
+antiquarian can not judge the value nor the age and excellence of
+antiquities, the card-sharp knows a few stupid tricks with which, one
+might think, he ought to be able to deceive only the most innocent
+persons. Nevertheless they all have comfortable incomes, and merely
+because they know their fellows and have practised this knowledge with
+repeatedly fresh applications.</p>
+
+<p>I do not of course assert that we criminalists need little scholarly
+knowledge of law, and ought to depend entirely upon knowledge of men. We
+need exactly as much more knowledge as our task exceeds<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_016" id="page_016"></a>{16}</span> that of the
+horse-dealer, but we can not do without knowledge of humanity. The
+immense onerousness of the judge’s office lies in just the fact that he
+needs so very much more than his bare legal knowledge. He must, before
+all things, be a jurist and not merely a criminalist; he must be in full
+possession not only of the knowledge he has acquired in his academy, but
+of the very latest up-to-date status of his entire science. If he
+neglects the purely theoretical, he degenerates into a mere laborer. He
+is in duty bound not only to make himself familiar with hundreds of
+things, to be able to consort with all sorts of crafts and trades, but
+also, finally, to form so much out of the material supplied him by the
+law as is possible to human power.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 4. (b) Integrity of Witnesses.</h5>
+
+<p>One of the criminal judge’s grossest derelictions from duty consists in
+his simply throwing the witness the question and in permitting him to
+say what he chooses. If he contents himself in that, he leaves to the
+witness’s conscience the telling of the truth, and the whole truth; the
+witness is, in such a case, certainly responsible for one part of the
+untruthful and suppressed, but the responsibility for the other, and
+larger part, lies with the judge who has failed to do his best to bring
+out the uttermost value of the evidence, indifferently for or against
+the prisoner. The work of education is intended for this purpose,&mdash;not,
+as might be supposed, for training the populace as a whole into good
+witnesses, but to make that individual into a good, trustworthy witness
+who is called upon to testify for the first, and, perhaps, for the last
+time in his life. This training must in each case take two
+directions&mdash;it must make him <i>want</i> to tell the truth; it must make him
+<i>able</i> to tell the truth. The first requirement deals not only with the
+lie alone, it deals with the development of complete conscientiousness.
+How to face the lie itself can not be determined by means of training,
+but conscientious answers under examination can certainly be so
+acquired. We are not here considering people to whom truth is an utter
+stranger, who are fundamentally liars and whose very existence is a
+libel on mankind. We consider here only those people who have been
+unaccustomed to speaking the full and unadulterated truth, who have
+contented themselves throughout their lives with “approximately,” and
+have never had the opportunity of learning the value of veracity. It may
+be said that a disturbingly large number of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_017" id="page_017"></a>{17}</span> people are given to
+wandering, in conversation, and in the reproduction of the past. They do
+not go straight, quickly, and openly to the point, they loiter toward
+it&mdash;“If I do not reach it in a bee line, I can get along on by-paths, if
+not to-day, then to-morrow; and if I really do not get to it at all, I
+do get somewhere else.” Such people have not homes but inns&mdash;if they are
+not in one place, another will do.</p>
+
+<p>These persons are characterized by the event that whenever one has seen
+their loitering and puts the matter to them with just anger, they either
+get frightened or say carelessly, “Oh, I thought this was not so
+accurate.” This famine of conscience, this indifference to truth, does
+far-reaching damage in our profession. I assert that it does immensely
+greater harm than obvious falsehood, because, indeed, the unvarnished
+lie is much more easily discoverable than the probable truth which is
+still untruth. Moreover, lies come generally from people with regard to
+whom one is, for one reason or another, already cautious, while these
+insinuating approximations are made by people who are not mistrusted at
+all.<a name="FNanchor_49_49" id="FNanchor_49_49"></a><a href="#Footnote_49_49" class="fnanchor">[49]</a></p>
+
+<p>The lack of conscientiousness is common to all ages, both sexes, and to
+all sorts and conditions of men. But it is most characteristically
+frequent and sharply defined among people who have no real business in
+life. Whoever romances in the daily life, romances when he ought to be
+absolutely truthful. The most dangerous of this class are those who make
+a living by means of show and exhibition. They are not conscienceless
+because they do nothing worth while; they do nothing worth while because
+they are conscienceless. To this class belong peddlers, street
+merchants, inn-keepers, certain shop-keepers, hack-drivers, artists,
+etc., and especially prostitutes (cf. Lombroso, etc., etc.). All these
+people follow a calling perhaps much troubled, but they do no actual
+work and have chosen their profession to avoid regular, actual work.
+They have much unoccupied time, and when they are working, part of the
+work consists of gossip, part of loafing about, or of a use of the hands
+that is little more. In brief,&mdash;since they loiter about and make a
+profit out of it, it is no wonder that in giving evidence they also loaf
+and bring to light only approximate truth. Nor is it difficult to
+indicate analogous persons in the higher walks of life.</p>
+
+<p>The most hateful and most dangerous of these people are the congenital
+tramps&mdash;people who did not have to work and faithfully pursued the
+opportunity of doing nothing. Whoever does not<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_018" id="page_018"></a>{18}</span> recognize that the world
+has no place for idlers and that life on God’s earth must be earned by
+labor, is without conscience. No conscientious testimony need be
+expected from such. Among the few rules without exception which in the
+course of long experience the criminalist may make, this is one&mdash;that
+<i>the real tramps of both sexes and all walks of life will never testify
+conscientiously;&mdash;hic niger est, hunc Tu, Romane, caveto</i>.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 5. (c) The Correctness of Testimony.</h5>
+
+<p>The training of the witness into a <i>capacity</i> for truth-telling must be
+based, (1) on the judge’s knowledge of all the conditions that affect,
+negatively, correct observations and reproductions; (2) on his making
+clear to himself whether and which conditions are operative in the case
+in question; and (3) on his aiming to eliminate this negative influence
+from the witness. The last is in many cases difficult, but not
+impossible. That mistakes have been made is generally soon noted, but
+then, “being called and being chosen” are two things; and similarly, the
+discovery of <i>what</i> is correct and the substitution of the essential
+observations for the opinionative ones, is always the most difficult of
+the judge’s tasks.</p>
+
+<p>When the witness is both unwilling to tell the truth and unable to do
+so, the business of training may be approached from a few common
+view-points. Patience with the witness is perhaps the most important key
+to success. No doubt it is difficult to be patient where there is no
+time; and what with our contemporary over-tasking, there is no time. But
+that must be altered. Justice must have strength to keep everybody’s
+labor proportional to his task. A nation whose representatives do not
+grant money enough for this purpose must not expect satisfactory law
+courts&mdash;“no checkee no washee;” no money no justice. People who have
+time will acquire patience.</p>
+
+<p>Patience is necessary above all while taking evidence. A great many
+witnesses are accustomed to say much and redundantly, and again, most
+criminal justices are accustomed to try to shut them off and to require
+brief statements. That is silly. If the witness is wandering on purpose,
+as many a prisoner does for definite reasons of his own, he will spread
+himself still more as he recognizes that his examiner does not like it.
+To be disagreeable is his purpose. He is never led by impatience beyond
+his introduction, and some piece of evidence is lost because almost
+every accused who speaks<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_019" id="page_019"></a>{19}</span> unintelligibly on purpose, says too much in
+the course of his speech and brings things to light that no effort might
+otherwise have attained to. Besides, whoever is making a purposely
+long-winded testimony does not want to say anything superfluous, and if
+he actually does so, is unaware of it. And even when he knows that he is
+talking too much (most of the time he knows it from the impatient looks
+of his auditors), he never can tell just what exceeded the measure. If,
+then, he is asked to cut it short, he remains unmoved, or at most begins
+again at the beginning, or, if he actually condescends, he omits things
+of importance, perhaps even of the utmost importance. Nor must it be
+forgotten that at least a large proportion of such people who are
+brought to court have prepared their story or probably blocked it out in
+the rough. If they are not permitted to follow their plans, they get
+confused, and nothing coherent or half-coherent is discovered. And
+generally those who say most have thought their testimony over before.
+Those who merely have to say no more than <i>yes</i> and <i>no</i> at the trial do
+not reduce the little they are going to say to any great order; that is
+done only by such as have a story to tell. Once the stream of talk
+breaks loose it is best allowed to flow on, and only then interrupted
+with appropriate questions when it threatens to become exhausting. Help
+against too much talk can be found in one direction. But it must be made
+use of before the evil begins, and is in any event of use only in the
+description of a long chain of events,&mdash;e.g., a great brawl. There, if
+one has been put in complete possession of the whole truth, through one
+or more witnesses, the next witness may be told: “Begin where X entered
+the room.” If that is not done, one may be compelled to hear all the
+witness did the day before the brawl and how these introductions, in
+themselves indifferent, have led to the event. But if you set the
+subject, the witness simply abandons the first part of possibly studied
+testimony without thereby losing his coherence. The procedure may be
+accurately observed: The witness is told, “Begin at this or that point.”
+This deliverance is generally followed by a pause during which he
+obviously reviews and sets aside the part of his prepared speech dealing
+with the events preliminary to the required points. If, however, the
+setting of a starting point does not work and the witness says he must
+begin at the earlier stage, let him do so. Otherwise he tries so hard to
+begin according to request that, unable to go his own way, he confuses
+everything.</p>
+
+<p>The patience required for taking testimony is needful also in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_020" id="page_020"></a>{20}</span>
+cross-examination. Not only children and slow-witted folk, but also
+bright persons often answer only “yes” and “no,”<a name="FNanchor_50_50" id="FNanchor_50_50"></a><a href="#Footnote_50_50" class="fnanchor">[50]</a> and these bare
+answers demand a patience most necessary with just this bareness, if the
+answers are to be pursued for some time and consecutively. The danger of
+impatience is the more obvious inasmuch as everyone recognizes more or
+less clearly that he is likely to set the reserved witness suggestive
+questions and so to learn things that the witness never would have said.
+Not everybody, indeed, who makes monosyllabic replies in court has this
+nature, but in the long run, this common characteristic is manifest, and
+these laconic people are really not able to deliver themselves
+connectedly in long speeches. If, then, the witness has made only the
+shortest replies and a coherent well-composed story be made of them, the
+witness will, when his testimony is read to him, often not notice the
+untruths it might contain. He is so little accustomed to his own
+prolonged discourse that at most he wonders at his excellent speech
+without noticing even coarse falsehoods. If, contrary to expectation, he
+does notice them, he is too chary of words to call attention to them,
+assents, and is glad to see the torture coming to an end. Hence, nothing
+but endless patience will do to bring the laconic witness to say at
+least enough to make his information coherent, even though brief. It may
+be presented in this form for protocol.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 6. (d) Presuppositions of Evidence-Taking.</h5>
+
+<p>One of the most important rules of evidence-taking is not to suppose
+that practically any witness is skilled in statement of what he
+remembers. Even of child training, Fröbel<a name="FNanchor_51_51" id="FNanchor_51_51"></a><a href="#Footnote_51_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a> says, “Men must be drawn
+out, not probed.” And this is the more valid in jurisprudence, and the
+more difficult, since the lawyers have at most only as many hours with
+the individual as the teacher has years. However, we must aim to draw
+the witness out, and if it does not work at first, we must nevertheless
+not despair of succeeding.</p>
+
+<p>The chief thing is to determine the witness’s level and then meet him on
+it. We certainly can not succeed, in the short time allowed us, to raise
+him to ours. “The object of instruction” (says Lange<a name="FNanchor_52_52" id="FNanchor_52_52"></a><a href="#Footnote_52_52" class="fnanchor">[52]</a>) “is to endow
+the pupil with more apperceptive capacity, i.e., to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_021" id="page_021"></a>{21}</span> make him
+intellectually free. It is therefore necessary to discover his ‘funded
+thoughts,’ and to beware of expounding too much.” This is not a little
+true. The development of apperceptive capacity is not so difficult for
+us, inasmuch as our problem is not to prepare our subject for life, but
+for one present purpose. If we desire, to this end, to make one more
+intellectually free, we have only to get him to consider with
+independence the matter with which we are concerned, to keep him free of
+all alien suggestions and inferences, and to compel him to see the case
+as if no influences, personal or circumstantial, had been at work on
+him. This result does not require merely the setting aside of special
+influences, nor the setting aside of all that others have said to him on
+the matter under discussion, nor the elucidation of the effect of
+fear,<a name="FNanchor_53_53" id="FNanchor_53_53"></a><a href="#Footnote_53_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a> of anger, of all such states of mind as might here have been
+operative,&mdash;it requires the establishment of his unbiased vision of the
+subject from a period antecedent to these above-mentioned influences.
+Opinions, valuations, prejudices, superstitions, etc., may here be to a
+high degree factors of disturbance and confusion. Only when the whole
+Augean stable is swept out may the man be supposed capable of
+apperception, may the thing he is to tell us be brought to bear upon him
+and he be permitted to reproduce it.</p>
+
+<p>This necessary preliminary is not so difficult if the second of the
+above-mentioned rules is observed and the “funded thought” of the
+witness is studied out. It may be said, indeed, that so long as two
+people converse, unaware of each other’s “funded thought,” they speak
+different languages. Some of the most striking misunderstandings come
+from just this reason. It is not alone a matter of varying verbal
+values, leading to incompatible inferences; actually the whole of a
+man’s mind is involved. It is generally supposed to be enough to know
+the meaning of the words necessary for telling a story. But such
+knowledge leads only to external and very superficial comprehension;
+real clearness can be attained only by knowing the witness’s habits of
+thought in regard to all the circumstances of the case. I remember
+vividly a case of jealous murder in which the most important witness was
+the victim’s brother, an honest, simple, woodsman, brought up in the
+wilderness, and in every sense far-removed from idiocy. His testimony
+was brief, decided and intelligent. When the motive for the murder, in
+this case most important, came under discussion, he shrugged his
+shoulders and answered my question&mdash;whether it was not committed on
+account of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_022" id="page_022"></a>{22}</span> a girl&mdash;with, “Yes, so they say.” On further examination I
+reached the astonishing discovery that not only the word “jealousy,” but
+the very notion and comprehension of it were totally foreign to the man.
+The single girl he at one time thought of was won away from him without
+making him quarrelsome, nobody had ever told him of the pangs and
+passions of other people, he had had no occasion to consider the
+theoretic possibility of such a thing, and so “jealousy” remained
+utterly foreign to him. It is clear that his hearing now took quite
+another turn. All I thought I heard from him was essentially wrong; his
+“funded thought” concerning a very important, in this case a regulative
+concept, had been too poor.</p>
+
+<p>The discovery of the “funded thought” is indubitably not easy. But its
+objective possibility with witness and accused is at least a fact. It is
+excluded only where it is most obviously necessary&mdash;in the case of the
+jury, and the impossibility in this case turns the institution of trial
+by jury into a Utopian dream. The presiding officer of a jury court is
+in the best instances acquainted with a few of the jurymen, but never so
+far as to have been entrusted with their “funded thought.” Now and then,
+when a juryman asks a question, one gets a glimpse of it, and when the
+public prosecutor and the attorney for the defence make their speeches
+one catches something from the jury’s expressions; and then it is
+generally too late. Even if it be discovered earlier nothing can be done
+with it. Some success is likely in the case of single individuals, but
+it is simply impossible to define the mental habits of twelve men with
+whom one has no particular relations.</p>
+
+<p>The third part of the Fröbelian rule, “To presuppose as little as
+possible,” must be rigidly adhered to. I do not say this
+pessimistically, but simply because we lawyers, through endless
+practice, arrange the issue so much more easily, conceive its history
+better and know what to exclude and what, with some degree of certainty,
+to retain. In consequence we often forget our powers and present the
+unskilled laity, even when persons of education, too much of the
+material. Then it must be considered that most witnesses are uneducated,
+that we can not actually descend to their level, and their unhappiness
+under a flood of strange material we can grasp only with difficulty.
+Because we do not know the witness’s point of view we ask too much of
+him, and therefore fail in our purpose. And if, in some exceptional
+case, an educated man is on the stand, we fail again, since, having the
+habit of dealing with the uneducated,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_023" id="page_023"></a>{23}</span> we suppose this man to know our
+own specialties because he has a little education. Experience does not
+dispel this illusion. Whether actual training in another direction dulls
+the natural and free outlook we desire in the witness, or whether, in
+our profession, education presupposes tendencies too ideal, whatever be
+the reasons, it is a fact that our hardest work is generally with the
+most highly educated witnesses. I once had to write a protocol based on
+the testimony of a famous scholar who was witness in a small affair. It
+was a slow job. Either he did not like the terms as I dictated them, or
+he was doubtful of the complete certainty of this or that assertion. Let
+alone that I wasted an hour or two, that protocol, though rewritten, was
+full of corrections and erasures. And the thing turned out to be
+nonsense at the end. The beginning contradicted the conclusion; it was
+unintelligible, and still worse, untrue. As became manifest later,
+through the indubitable testimony of many witnesses, the scholar had
+been so conscientious, careful and accurate that he simply did not know
+what he had seen. His testimony was worthless. I have had such
+experiences repeatedly and others have confessed them. To the question:
+Where not presuppose too much? the answer is: everywhere. First of all,
+little must be presupposed concerning people’s powers of observation.
+They claim to have heard, seen or felt so and so, and they have not
+seen, heard, or felt it at all, or quite differently. They assent
+vigorously that they have grasped, touched, counted or examined
+something, and on closer examination it is demonstrated that it was only
+a passing glance they threw on it. And it is still worse where something
+more than ordinary perception is being considered, when exceptionally
+keen senses or information are necessary. People trust the conventional
+and when close observation is required often lack the knowledge proper
+to their particular status. In this way, by presupposing especial
+professional knowledge in a given witness, great mistakes are made.
+Generally he hasn’t such knowledge, or has not made any particular use
+of it.</p>
+
+<p>In the same way too much attention and interest are often presupposed,
+only to lead later to the astonishing discovery of how little attention
+men really pay to their own affairs. Still less, therefore, ought
+knowledge in less personal things be presupposed, for in the matter of
+real understanding, the ignorance of men far exceeds all
+presuppositions. Most people know the looks of all sorts of things, and
+think they know their essences, and when questioned, invariably assert
+it, quite in good faith. But if you depend<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_024" id="page_024"></a>{24}</span> on such knowledge bad
+results arise that are all the more dangerous because there is rarely
+later opportunity to recognize their badness.</p>
+
+<p>As often as any new matter is discussed with a witness, it is necessary,
+before all, to find out his general knowledge of it, what he considers
+it to be, and what ideas he connects with it. If you judge that he knows
+nothing about it and appraise his questions and conclusions accordingly,
+you will at least not go wrong in the matter, and all in all attain your
+end most swiftly.</p>
+
+<p>At the same time it is necessary to proceed as slowly as possible. It is
+Carus<a name="FNanchor_54_54" id="FNanchor_54_54"></a><a href="#Footnote_54_54" class="fnanchor">[54]</a> who points out that a scholar ought not to be shown any object
+unless he can not discover it or its like for himself. Each power must
+have developed before it can be used. Difficult as this procedure
+generally is, it is necessary in the teaching of children, and is there
+successful. It is a form of education by examples. The child is taught
+to assimilate to its past experience the new fact, e.g.: in a comparison
+of some keen suffering of the child with that it made an animal suffer.
+Such parallels rarely fail, whether in the education of children or of
+witnesses. The lengthy description of an event in which, e.g., somebody
+is manhandled, may become quite different if the witness is brought to
+recall his own experience. At first he speaks of the event as perhaps a
+“splendid joke,” but as soon as he is brought to speak of a similar
+situation of his own, and the two stories are set side by side, his
+description alters. This exemplification may be varied in many
+directions and is always useful. It is applicable even to accused,
+inasmuch as the performer himself begins to understand his deed, when it
+can be attached to his fully familiar inner life.</p>
+
+<p>The greatest skill in this matter may be exercised in the case of the
+jury. Connect the present new facts with similar ones they already know
+and so make the matter intelligible to them. The difficulty here, is
+again the fact that the jury is composed of strangers and twelve in
+number. Finding instances familiar to them all and familiar in such wise
+that they may easily link them with the case under consideration, is a
+rare event. If it does happen the success is both significant and happy.</p>
+
+<p>It is not, however, sufficient to seek out a familiar case analogous to
+that under consideration. The analogy should be discovered for each
+event, each motive, each opinion, each reaction, each appearance, if
+people are to understand and follow the case. Ideas, like<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_025" id="page_025"></a>{25}</span> men, have an
+ancestry, and a knowledge of the ancestors leads to a discovery of the
+cousins.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 7. (e) Egoism.</h5>
+
+<p>It is possible that the inner character of egoism shall be as profoundly
+potent in legal matters as in the daily life. Goethe has experienced its
+effect with unparalleled keenness. “Let me tell you something,” he
+writes (Conversations with Eckermann. Vol. 1). “All periods considered
+regressive or transitional are subjective. Conversely all progressive
+periods look outward. The whole of contemporary civilization is
+reactionary, because subjective.... The thing of importance is
+everywhere the individual who is trying to show off his lordliness.
+Nowhere is any mentionable effort to be found that subordinates itself
+through love of the whole.”</p>
+
+<p>These unmistakable terms contain a “discovery” that is applicable to our
+days even better than to Goethe’s. <i>It is characteristic of our time
+that each man has an exaggerated interest in himself.</i> Consequently, he
+is concerned only with himself or with his immediate environment, he
+understands only what he already knows and feels, and he works only
+where he can attain some personal advantage. It is hence to be concluded
+that we may proceed with certainty only when we count on this
+exaggerated egoism and use it as a prime factor. The most insignificant
+little things attest this. A man who gets a printed directory will look
+his own name up, though he knows it is there, and contemplate it with
+pleasure; he does the same with the photograph of a group of which his
+worthy self is one of the immortalized. If personal qualities are under
+discussion, he is happy, when he can say,&mdash;“Now I am by nature so.”&mdash;If
+foreign cities are under discussion, he tells stories of his native
+city, or of cities that he has visited, and concerning things that can
+interest only him who has been there. Everyone makes an effort to bring
+something of his personal status to bear,&mdash;either the conditions of his
+life, or matters concerning only him. If anybody announces that he has
+had a good time, he means without exception, absolutely without
+exception, that he has had an opportunity to push his “I” very
+forcefully into the foreground.</p>
+
+<p>Lazarus<a name="FNanchor_55_55" id="FNanchor_55_55"></a><a href="#Footnote_55_55" class="fnanchor">[55]</a> has rightly given this human quality historical
+significance: “Pericles owed a considerable part of his political
+dictatorate to the circumstance of knowing practically all Athenian
+citizens by name. Hannibal, Wallenstein, Napoleon I, infected<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_026" id="page_026"></a>{26}</span> their
+armies, thanks to ambition, with more courage than could the deepest
+love of arms, country and freedom, just through knowing and calling by
+name the individual soldiers.”</p>
+
+<p>Daily we get small examples of this egoism. The most disgusting and
+boresome witness, who is perhaps angry at having been dragged so far
+from his work, can be rendered valuable and useful through the initial
+show of a little <i>personal</i> interest, of some comprehension of his
+affairs, and of some consideration, wherever possible, of his views and
+efficiency. Moreover, men judge their fellows according to their
+comprehension of their own particular professions. The story of the
+peasant’s sneer at a physician, “But what can he know when he does not
+even know how to sow oats?” is more than a story, and is true of others
+besides illiterate boors. Such an attitude recurs very frequently,
+particularly among people of engrossing trades that require much
+time,&mdash;e.g., among soldiers, horsemen, sailors, hunters, etc. If it is
+not possible to understand these human vanities and to deal with these
+people as one of the trade, it is wise at least to suggest such
+understanding, to show interest in their affairs and to let them believe
+that really you think it needful for everybody to know how to saddle a
+horse correctly, or to distinguish the German bird-dog from the English
+setter at a thousand paces. What is aimed at is not personal respect for
+the judge, but for the judge’s function, which the witness identifies
+with the judge’s person. If he has such respect, he will find it worth
+the trouble to help us out, to think carefully and to assist in the
+difficult conclusion of the case. There is an astonishing difference
+between the contribution of a sulking and contrary witness and of one
+who has become interested and pleased by the affair. Not only quantity,
+but truth and reliability of testimony, are immensely greater in the
+latter case.</p>
+
+<p>Besides, the antecedent self-love goes so far that it may become very
+important in the examination of the accused. Not that a trap is to be
+set for him; merely that since it is our business to get at the truth,
+we ought to proceed in such proper wise with a denying accused as might
+bring to light facts that otherwise careful manipulation would not have
+brought out. How often have anonymous or pseudonymous criminals betrayed
+themselves under examination just because they spoke of circumstances
+involving their capital <i>I</i>, and spoke so clearly that now the clue was
+found, it was no longer difficult to follow it up. In the examination of
+well-known criminals, dozens of such instances occur&mdash;the fact is not
+new, but it needs to be made use of.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_027" id="page_027"></a>{27}</span></p>
+
+<p>A similar motive belongs to subordinate forms of egoism&mdash;the obstinacy
+of a man who may be so vexed by contradiction as to drive one into
+despair, and who under proper treatment becomes valuable. This I learned
+mainly from my old butler, a magnificent honest soldier, a figure out of
+a comedy, but endowed with inexorable obstinacy against which my skill
+for a long time availed nothing. As often as I proposed something with
+regard to some intended piece of work or alteration, I got the identical
+reply&mdash;“It won’t do, sir.” Finally I got hold of a list and worked my
+plan&mdash;“Simon, this will now be done as Simon recently said it should be
+done,&mdash;namely.” At this he looked at me, tried to think when he had said
+this thing, and went and did it. And in spite of frequent application
+this list has not failed once for some years. What is best about it is
+that it will serve, mutatis mutandis, with criminals. As soon as ever
+real balkiness is noted, it becomes necessary to avoid the least
+appearance of contradictoriness, since that increases difficulties. It
+is not necessary to lie or to make use of trickery. Only, avoid direct
+contradiction, drop the subject in question, and return to it indirectly
+when you perceive that the obstinate individual recognizes his error.
+Then you may succeed in building him a golden bridge, or at least a
+barely visible sidedoor where he can make his retreat unnoticed. In that
+case even the most difficult of obstinates will no longer repeat the old
+story. He will repeat only if he is pressed, and this although he is
+repeatedly brought back to the point. If, however, the matter is once
+decided, beware of returning to it without any other reason, save to
+confirm the settled matter quite completely,&mdash;that would be only to wake
+the sleeper to give him a sleeping powder.</p>
+
+<p>Speaking generally, the significant rule is this: <i>Egoism, laziness and
+conceit are the only human motives on which one may unconditionally
+depend</i>. Love, loyalty, honesty, religion and patriotism, though firm as
+a rock, may lapse and fall. A man might have been counted on for one of
+these qualities ten times with safety, and on the eleventh, he might
+collapse like a house of cards. Count on egoism and laziness a hundred
+or a thousand times and they are as firm as ever. More simply, count on
+egoism&mdash;for laziness and conceit are only modifications of egoism. The
+latter alone then should be the one human motive to keep in mind when
+dealing with men. There are cases enough when all the wheels are set in
+motion after a clue to the truth, i.e., when there is danger that the
+person under suspicion is innocent; appeals to honor, conscience,
+humanity and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_028" id="page_028"></a>{28}</span> religion fail;&mdash;but run the complete gamut of self-love
+and the whole truth rings clear. Egoism is the best criterion of the
+presence of veracity. Suppose a coherent explanation has been painfully
+constructed. It is obvious that the correctness of the construction is
+studied with reference to the given motive. Now, if the links in the
+chain reach easily back to the motive, there is at least the possibility
+that the chain is free of error. What then of the motive? If it is
+noble&mdash;friendship, love, humaneness, loyalty, mercy&mdash;the constructed
+chain may be correct, and happily is so oftener than is thought; but it
+<i>need not</i> be correct. If, however, the structure rests on egoism, in
+any of its innumerable forms, and if it is logically sound, then the
+whole case is explained utterly and reliably. The construction is
+indubitably correct.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 8. (f) Secrets.</h5>
+
+<p>The determination of the truth at law would succeed much less frequently
+than it does if it were not for the fact that men find it very difficult
+to keep secrets. This essentially notable and not clearly understood
+circumstance is popularly familiar. Proverbs of all people deal with it
+and point mainly to the fact that keeping secrets is especially
+difficult for women. The Italians say a woman who may not speak is in
+danger of bursting; the Germans, that the burden of secrecy affects her
+health and ages her prematurely; the English say similar things still
+more coarsely. Classical proverbs have dealt with the issue; numberless
+fairy tales, narratives, novels and poems have portrayed the difficulty
+of silence, and one very fine modern novel (Die Last des Schweigens, by
+Ferdinand Kürnberger) has chosen this fact for its principal motive. The
+universal difficulty of keeping silence is expressed by Lotze<a name="FNanchor_56_56" id="FNanchor_56_56"></a><a href="#Footnote_56_56" class="fnanchor">[56]</a> in the
+dictum that we learn expression very young and silence very late. The
+fact is of use to the criminalist not only in regard to criminals, but
+also with regard to witnesses, who, for one reason or another, want to
+keep something back. The latter is the source of a good deal of danger,
+inasmuch as the witness is compelled to speak and circles around the
+secret in question without touching it, until he points it out and half
+reveals it. If he stops there, the matter requires consideration, for “a
+half truth is worse than a whole lie.” The latter reveals its subject
+and intent and permits of defence, while the half truth may, by
+association and circumscriptive limitations, cause vexatious errors both
+as regards the identity of the semi-accused<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_029" id="page_029"></a>{29}</span> and as regards the
+circumstances with which he is thus involved. For this reason the
+criminalist must consider the question of secrets carefully.</p>
+
+<p>As for his own silence, this must be considered in both directions. That
+he is not to blab official secrets is so obvious that it need not be
+spoken of. Such blabbing is so negligent and dishonorable that we must
+consider it intrinsically impossible. But it not infrequently happens
+that some indications are dropped or persuaded out of a criminal judge,
+generally out of one of the younger and more eager men. They mention
+only the event itself, and not a name, nor a place, nor a particular
+time, nor some even more intimate matter&mdash;there seems no harm done. And
+yet the most important points have often been blabbed of in just such a
+way. And what is worst of all, just because the speaker has not known
+the name nor anything else concrete, the issue may be diverted and
+enmesh some guiltless person. It is worth considering that the effort
+above mentioned is made only in the most interesting cases, that crimes
+especially move people to disgusting interest, due to the fact that
+there is a more varied approach to synthesis of a case when the same
+story is repeated several times or by various witnesses. For by such
+means extrapolations and combinations of the material are made possible.
+By way of warning, let me remind you of an ancient and much quoted
+anecdote, first brought to light by Boccaccio: A young and much loved
+abbé was teased by a bevy of ladies to narrate what had happened in the
+first confession he had experienced. After long hesitation the young
+fellow decided that it was no sin to relate the confessed sin if he
+suppressed the name of the confessor, and so he told the ladies that his
+first confession was of infidelity. A few minutes later a couple of
+tardy guests appeared,&mdash;a marquis and his charming wife. Both reproached
+the young priest for his infrequent visits at their home. The marquise
+exclaimed so that everybody heard, “It is not nice of you to neglect me,
+your first confessée.” This squib is very significant for our
+profession, for it is well known how, in the same way, “bare facts,” as
+“completely safe,” are carried further. The listener does not have to
+combine them; the facts combine themselves by means of others otherwise
+acquired, and finally the most important official matters, on the
+concealment of which much may perhaps have depended, become universally
+known. Official secrets have a general significance, and must therefore
+be guarded at all points and not merely in detail.</p>
+
+<p>The second direction in which the criminal justice must maintain<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_030" id="page_030"></a>{30}</span>
+silence looks toward witnesses and accused. If, in the first instance,
+the cause of too much communicativeness was an over-proneness to talk;
+its cause in this case is a certain conceit that teases one into
+talking. Whether the justice wants to show the accused how much he
+already knows or how correctly he has drawn his conclusions; whether he
+wishes to impress the witness by his confidences, he may do equally as
+much harm in one case as in the other. Any success is made especially
+impossible if the judge has been in too much of a hurry and tried to
+show himself fully informed at the very beginning, but has brought out
+instead some error. The accused naturally leaves him with his false
+suppositions, they suggest things to the witness&mdash;and what follows may
+be easily considered. Correct procedure in such circumstances is
+difficult. Never to reveal what is already known, is to deprive oneself
+of one of the most important means of examination; use of it therefore
+ought not to be belated. But it is much worse to be premature or
+garrulous. In my own experience, I have never been sorry for keeping
+silence, especially if I had already said something. The only rule in
+the matter is comparatively self-evident. Never move toward any
+incorrectness and never present the appearance of knowing more than you
+actually do. Setting aside the dishonesty of such a procedure, the
+danger of a painful exposure in such matters is great.</p>
+
+<p>There is still another great danger which one may beware of, optima
+fide,&mdash;the danger of knowing something untrue. This danger also is
+greatest for the greatest talent and the greatest courage among us,
+because they are the readiest hands at synthesis, inference, and
+definition of possibilities, and see as indubitable and shut to
+contradiction things that at best are mere possibilities. It is
+indifferent to the outcome whether a lie has been told purposely or
+whether it has been the mere honest explosion of an over-sanguine
+temperament. It is therefore unnecessary to point out the occasion for
+caution. One need only suggest that something may be learned from people
+who talk too much. The over-communicativeness of a neighbor is quickly
+noticeable, and if the why and how much of it are carefully studied out,
+it is not difficult to draw a significant analogy for one’s own case. In
+the matter of secrets of other people, obviously the thing to be
+established first is what is actually a secret; what is to be
+suppressed, if one is to avoid damage to self or another. When an actual
+secret is recognized it is necessary to consider whether the damage is
+greater through keeping or through revealing the secret. If it is still
+possible, it is well to let the secret<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_031" id="page_031"></a>{31}</span> be&mdash;there is always damage, and
+generally, not insignificant damage, when it is tortured out of a
+witness. If, however, one is honestly convinced that the secret must be
+revealed&mdash;as when a guiltless person is endangered&mdash;every effort and all
+skill is to be applied in the revelation. Inasmuch as the least echo of
+bad faith is here impossible, the job is never easy.</p>
+
+<p>The chief rule is not to be overeager in getting at the desired secret.
+The more important it is, the less ought to be made of it. It is best
+not directly to lead for it. It will appear of itself, especially if it
+is important. Many a fact which the possessor had set no great store by,
+has been turned into a carefully guarded secret by means of the
+eagerness with which it was sought. In cases of need, when every other
+means has failed, it may not be too much to tell the witness, cautiously
+of course, rather more of the crime than might otherwise have seemed
+good. Then those episodes must be carefully hit on, which cluster about
+the desired secret and from which its importance arises. If the witness
+understands that he presents something really important by giving up his
+secret, surprising consequences ensue.</p>
+
+<p>The relatively most important secret is that of one’s own guilt, and the
+associated most suggestive establishment of it, the confession, is a
+very extraordinary psychological problem.<a name="FNanchor_57_57" id="FNanchor_57_57"></a><a href="#Footnote_57_57" class="fnanchor">[57]</a> In many cases the reasons
+for confession are very obvious. The criminal sees that the evidence is
+so complete that he is soon to be convicted and seeks a mitigation of
+the sentence by confession, or he hopes through a more honest narration
+of the crime to throw a great degree of the guilt on another. In
+addition there is a thread of vanity in confession&mdash;as among young
+peasants who confess to a greater share in a burglary than they actually
+had (easily discoverable by the magniloquent manner of describing their
+actual crime). Then there are confessions made for the sake of care and
+winter lodgings: the confession arising from “firm conviction” (as among
+political criminals and others). There are even confessions arising from
+nobility, from the wish to save an intimate, and confessions intended to
+deceive, and such as occur especially in conspiracy and are made to gain
+time (either for the flight of the real criminal or for the destruction
+of compromising objects). Generally, in the latter case, guilt is
+admitted only until the plan for which it was made has succeeded; then
+the judge is surprised with well-founded,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_032" id="page_032"></a>{32}</span> regular and successful
+establishment of an alibi. Not infrequently confession of small crimes
+is made to establish an alibi for a greater one. And finally there are
+the confessions Catholics<a name="FNanchor_58_58" id="FNanchor_58_58"></a><a href="#Footnote_58_58" class="fnanchor">[58]</a> are required to make in confessional, and
+the death bed confessions. The first are distinguished by the fact that
+they are made freely and that the confessee does not try to mitigate his
+crime, but is aiming to make amends, even when he finds it hard; and
+desires even a definite penance. Death bed confessions may indeed have
+religious grounds, or the desire to prevent the punishment or the
+further punishment of an innocent person.</p>
+
+<p>Although this list of explicable confession-types is long, it is in no
+way exhaustive. It is only a small portion of all the confessions that
+we receive; of these the greater part remain more or less unexplained.
+Mittermaier<a name="FNanchor_59_59" id="FNanchor_59_59"></a><a href="#Footnote_59_59" class="fnanchor">[59]</a> has already dealt with these acutely and cites examples
+as well as the relatively well-studied older literature of the subject.
+A number of cases may perhaps be explained through pressure of
+conscience, especially where there are involved hysterical or nervous
+persons who are plagued with vengeful images in which the ghost of their
+victim would appear, or in whose ear the unendurable clang of the stolen
+money never ceases, etc. If the confessor only intends to free himself
+from these disturbing images and the consequent punishment by means of
+confession, we are not dealing with what is properly called conscience,
+but more or less with disease, with an abnormally excited
+imagination.<a name="FNanchor_60_60" id="FNanchor_60_60"></a><a href="#Footnote_60_60" class="fnanchor">[60]</a> But where such hallucinations are lacking, and
+religious influences are absent, and the confession is made freely in
+response to mere pressure, we have a case of conscience,<a name="FNanchor_61_61" id="FNanchor_61_61"></a><a href="#Footnote_61_61" class="fnanchor">[61]</a>&mdash;another of
+those terms which need explanation. I know of no analogy in the inner
+nature of man, in which anybody with open eyes does himself exclusive
+harm without any contingent use being apparent, as is the case in this
+class of confession. There is always considerable difficulty in
+explaining these cases. One way of explaining them is to say that their
+source is mere stupidity<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_033" id="page_033"></a>{33}</span> and impulsiveness, or simply to deny their
+occurrence. But the theory of stupidity does not appeal to the
+practitioner, for even if we agree that a man foolishly makes a
+confession and later, when he perceives his mistake, bitterly regrets
+telling it, we still find many confessions that are not regretted and
+the makers of which can in no wise be accused of defective intelligence.
+To deny that there are such is comfortable but wrong, because we each
+know collections of cases in which no effort could bring to light a
+motive for the confession. The confession was made because the confessor
+wanted to make it, and that’s the whole story.</p>
+
+<p>The making of a confession, according to laymen, ends the matter, but
+really, the judge’s work begins with it. As a matter of caution all
+statutes approve confessions as evidence only when they agree completely
+with the other evidence. Confession is a means of proof, and not proof.
+Some objective, evidentially concurrent support and confirmation of the
+confession is required. But the same legal requirement necessitates that
+the value of the concurrent evidence shall depend on its having been
+arrived at and established independently. The existence of a confession
+contains powerful suggestive influences for judge, witness, expert, for
+all concerned in the case. If a confession is made, all that is
+perceived in the case may be seen in the light of it, and experience
+teaches well enough how that alters the situation. There is so strong an
+inclination to pigeon-hole and adapt everything perceived in some given
+explanation, that the explanation is strained after, and facts are
+squeezed and trimmed until they fit easily. It is a remarkable
+phenomenon, confirmable by all observers, that all our perceptions are
+at first soft and plastic and easily take form according to the shape of
+their predecessors. They become stiff and inflexible only when we have
+had them for some time, and have permitted them to reach an equilibrium.
+If, then, observations are made in accord with certain notions, the
+plastic material is easily molded, excrescences and unevenness are
+squeezed away, lacunæ are filled up, and if it is at all possible, the
+adaptation is completed easily. Then, if a new and quite different
+notion arises in us, the alteration of the observed material occurs as
+easily again, and only long afterwards, when the observation has
+hardened, do fresh alterations fail. This is a matter of daily
+experience, in our professional as well as in our ordinary affairs. We
+hear of a certain crime and consider the earliest data. For one reason
+or another we begin to suspect A as the criminal. The result of an
+examination of the premises is applied in each detail<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_034" id="page_034"></a>{34}</span> to this
+proposition. It fits. So does the autopsy, so do the depositions of the
+witnesses. Everything fits. There have indeed been difficulties, but
+they have been set aside, they are attributed to inaccurate observation
+and the like,&mdash;the point is,&mdash;that the evidence is against A. Now,
+suppose that soon after B confesses the crime; this event is so
+significant that it sets aside at once all the earlier reasons for
+suspecting A, and the theory of the crime involves B. Naturally the
+whole material must now be applied to B, and in spite of the fact that
+it at first fitted A, it does now fit B. Here again difficulties arise,
+but they are to be set aside just as before.</p>
+
+<p>Now if this is possible with evidence, written and thereby unalterable,
+how much more easily can it be done with testimony about to be taken,
+which may readily be colored by the already presented confession. The
+educational conditions involve now the judge and his assistants on the
+one hand, and the witnesses on the other.</p>
+
+<p>Concerning himself, the judge must continually remember that his
+business is not to fit all testimony to the already furnished
+confession, allowing the evidence to serve as mere decoration to the
+latter, but that it is his business to establish his proof by means of
+the confession, and by means of the other evidence, <i>independently</i>. The
+legislators of contemporary civilization have started with the proper
+presupposition&mdash;that also false confessions are made,&mdash;and who of us has
+not heard such? Confessions, for whatever reason,&mdash;because the confessor
+wants to die, because he is diseased,<a name="FNanchor_62_62" id="FNanchor_62_62"></a><a href="#Footnote_62_62" class="fnanchor">[62]</a> because he wants to free the
+real criminal,&mdash;can be discovered as false only by showing their
+contradiction with the other evidence. If, however, the judge only fits
+the evidence, he abandons this means of getting the truth. Nor must
+false confessions be supposed to occur only in case of homicide. They
+occur most numerously in cases of importance, where more than one person
+is involved. It happens, perhaps, that only one or two are captured, and
+they assume all the guilt, e.g., in cases of larceny, brawls, rioting,
+etc. I repeat: the suggestive power of a confession is great and it is
+hence really not easy to exclude its influence and to consider the
+balance of the evidence on its merits,&mdash;but this must be done if one is
+not to deceive oneself.</p>
+
+<p>Dealing with the witness is still more ticklish, inasmuch as to the
+difficulties with them, is added the difficulties with oneself. The
+simplest thing would be to deny the existence of a confession, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_035" id="page_035"></a>{35}</span> thus
+to get the witness to speak without prejudice. But aside from the fact
+of its impossibility as a lie, each examination of a witness would have
+to be a comedy and that would in many cases be impossible as the witness
+might already know that the accused had confessed. The only thing to be
+done, especially when it is permissible for other reasons, is to tell
+the witness that a confession exists and to call to his attention that
+it is not yet evidence, and finally and above all to keep one’s head and
+to prevent the witness from presenting his evidence from the point of
+view of the already-established. In this regard it can not be
+sufficiently demonstrated that the coloring of a true bill comes much
+less from the witness than from the judge. The most excited witness can
+be brought by the judge to a sober and useful point of view, and
+conversely, the most calm witness may utter the most misleading
+testimony if the judge abandons in any way the safe bottom of the
+indubitably established fact.</p>
+
+<p>Very intelligent witnesses (they are not confined to the educated
+classes) may be dealt with constructively and be told after their
+depositions that the case is to be considered as if there were no
+confession whatever. There is an astonishing number of
+people&mdash;especially among the peasants&mdash;who are amenable to such
+considerations and willingly follow if they are led on with confidence.
+In such a case it is necessary to analyze the testimony into its
+elements. This analysis is most difficult and important since it must be
+determined what, taken in itself, is an element, materially, not
+formally, and what merely appears to be a unit. Suppose that during a
+great brawl a man was stabbed and that A confesses to the stabbing. Now
+a witness testified that A had first uttered a threat, then had jumped
+into the brawl, felt in his bag, and left the crowd, and that in the
+interval between A’s entering and leaving, the stabbing occurred. In
+this simple case the various incidents must be evaluated, and each must
+be considered by itself. So we consider&mdash;Suppose A had not confessed,
+what would the threat have counted for? Might it not have been meant for
+the assailants of the injured man? May his feeling in the bag not be
+interpreted in another fashion? Must he have felt for a knife only? Was
+there time enough to open it and to stab? Might the man not have been
+already wounded by that time? We might then conclude that all the
+evidence about A contained nothing against him&mdash;but if we relate it to
+the confession, then this evidence is almost equal to direct evidence of
+A’s crime.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_036" id="page_036"></a>{36}</span></p>
+
+<p>But if individual sense-perceptions are mingled with conclusions, and if
+other equivalent perceptions have to be considered, which occurred
+perhaps to other people, then the analysis is hardly so simple, yet it
+must be made.</p>
+
+<p>In dealing with less intelligent people, with whom this construction
+cannot be performed, one must be satisfied with general rules. By
+demanding complete accuracy and insisting, in any event, on the ratio
+sciendi, one may generally succeed in turning a perception, uncertain
+with regard to any individual, into a trustworthy one with regard to the
+confessor. It happens comparatively seldom that untrue confessions are
+discovered, but once this does occur, and the trouble is taken to
+subject the given evidence to a critical comparison, the manner of
+adaptation of the evidence to the confession may easily be discovered.
+The witnesses were altogether unwilling to tell any falsehood and the
+judge was equally eager to establish the truth, nevertheless the issue
+must have received considerable perversion in order to fix the guilt on
+the confessor. Such examinations are so instructive that the opportunity
+to make them should never be missed. All the testimony presents a
+typical picture. The evidence is consistent with the theory that the
+real confessor was guilty, but it is also consistent with the theory
+that the real criminal was guilty, but some details must be altered,
+often very many. If there is an opportunity to hear the same witnesses
+again, the procedure becomes still more instructive. The witnesses
+(supposing they want honestly to tell the truth) naturally confirm the
+evidence as it points to the second, more real criminal, and if an
+explanation is asked for the statements that pointed to the “confessor,”
+the answers make it indubitably evident, that their incorrectness came
+as without intention; the circumstance that a confession had been made
+acted as a suggestion.<a name="FNanchor_63_63" id="FNanchor_63_63"></a><a href="#Footnote_63_63" class="fnanchor">[63]</a></p>
+
+<p>Conditions similar to confessional circumstances arise when other types
+of persuasive evidence are gathered, which have the same impressive
+influence as confessions. In such cases the judge’s task is easier than
+the witness’s, since he need not tell them of evidence already at hand.
+How very much people allow themselves to be influenced by antecedent
+grounds of suspicion is a matter of daily observation. One example will
+suffice. An intelligent man was attacked at night and wounded. On the
+basis of his description<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_037" id="page_037"></a>{37}</span> an individual was arrested. On the next day
+the suspect was brought before the man for identification. He identified
+the man with certainty, but inasmuch as his description did not quite
+hit off the suspect he was asked the reason for his certainty. “Oh, you
+certainly would not have brought him here if he were not the right man,”
+was the astonishing reply. Simply because the suspect was arrested on
+the story of the wounded man and brought before him in prison garb, the
+latter thought he saw such corroboration for his data as to make the
+identification certain&mdash;a pure ὑστερον πρωτερον, which did not at all
+occur to him in connection with the vivid impression of what he saw. I
+believe that to keep going with merely what the criminalist knows about
+the matter, belongs to his most difficult tasks.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 9. (g) Interest.</h5>
+
+<p>Anybody who means to work honestly must strive to awaken and to sustain
+the interest of his collaborators. A judge’s duty is to present his
+associates material, well-arranged, systematic, and exhaustive, but not
+redundant; and to be himself well and minutely informed concerning the
+case. Whoever so proceeds may be certain in even the most ordinary and
+simplest cases, of the interest of his colleagues,&mdash;hence of their
+attention; and, in consequence, of the best in their power. These are
+essentially self-evident propositions. In certain situations, however,
+more is asked with regard to the experts. The expert, whether a very
+modest workman or very renowned scholar, must in the first instance
+become convinced of the judge’s complete interest in his work; of the
+judge’s power to value the effort and knowledge it requires; of the fact
+that he does not question and listen merely because the law requires it,
+and finally of the fact that the judge is endowed, so far as may be,
+with a definite comprehension of the expert’s task.</p>
+
+<p>However conscientiously and intensely the expert may apply himself to
+his problem, it will be impossible to work at it with real interest if
+he finds no co-operation, no interest, and no understanding among those
+for whom he, at least formally, is at work. We may be certain that the
+paucity of respect we get from the scientific representatives of other
+disciplines (let us be honest,&mdash;such is the case) comes particularly
+from those relations we have with them as experts, relations in which
+they find us so unintelligent and so indifferent with regard to matters
+of importance. If the experts<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_038" id="page_038"></a>{38}</span> speak of us with small respect and the
+attitude spreads and becomes general, we get only our full due. Nobody
+can require of a criminal judge profound knowledge of all other
+disciplines besides his own&mdash;the experts supply that&mdash;but the judge
+certainly must have some insight into them in so far as they affect his
+own work, if he is not to meet the expert unintelligent and
+unintelligible, and if he is to co-operate with and succeed in
+appraising the expert’s work. In a like fashion the judge may be
+required to take interest in the experts’ result. If the judge receives
+their report and sticks to the statutes, if he never shows that he was
+anxious about their verdict, and merely views it as a number, it is no
+wonder that in the end the expert also regards his work as a mere
+number, and loses interest. No man is interested in a thing unless it is
+made interesting, and the expert is no exception. Naturally no one would
+say that the judge should pretend interest,&mdash;that would be worst of
+all;&mdash;he must be possessed of it, or he will not do for a judge. But
+interest may be intensified and vitalized. If the judge perceives that
+the finding of the experts is very important for his case he must at
+least meet them with interest in it. If that is present he will read
+their reports attentively, will note that he does not understand some
+things and ask the experts for elucidation. One question gives rise to
+another, one answer after another causes understanding, and
+understanding implies an ever-increasing interest. It never happens that
+there should be difficulties because of a request to judicial experts to
+explain things to the judge. I have never met any in my own practice and
+have never heard any complaints. On the contrary, pleasure and
+efficiency are generally noticeable in such connections, and the state,
+above all, is the gainer. The simple explanation lies here in the fact
+that the expert is interested in his profession, interested in just that
+concrete way in which the incomparably greater number of jurists are
+not. And this again is based upon a sad fact, for us. The chemist, the
+physician, etc., studies his subject because he wants to become a
+chemist, physician, etc., but the lawyer studies law not because he
+wants to become a lawyer, but because he wants to become an official,
+and as he has no especial interest he chooses his state position in that
+branch in which he thinks he has the best prospects. It is a bitter
+truth and a general rule&mdash;that those who want to study law and the
+science of law are the exceptions, and that hence we have to acquire a
+real interest in our subject from laymen, from our experts. But the
+interest can be acquired, and with the growth of interest, there is
+growth of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_039" id="page_039"></a>{39}</span> knowledge, and therewith increase of pleasure in the work
+itself and hence success.</p>
+
+<p>The most difficult problem in interest, is arousing the interest of
+witnesses&mdash;because this is purely a matter of training. Receiving the
+attention is what should be aimed at in rousing interest, inasmuch as
+full attention leads to correct testimony&mdash;i.e., to the thing most
+important to our tasks. “No interest, no attention,” says Volkmar.<a name="FNanchor_64_64" id="FNanchor_64_64"></a><a href="#Footnote_64_64" class="fnanchor">[64]</a>
+“The absolutely new does not stimulate; what narrows appreciation,
+narrows attention also.” The significant thing for us is that “the
+absolutely new does not stimulate”&mdash;a matter often overlooked. If I tell
+an uneducated man, with all signs of astonishment, that the missing
+books of Tacitus’ “Annals” have been discovered in Verona, or that a
+completely preserved Dinotherium has been cut out of the ice, or that
+the final explanation of the Martian canals has been made at Manora
+observatory,&mdash;all this very interesting news will leave him quite cold;
+it is absolutely new to him, he does not know what it means or how to
+get hold of it, it offers him no matter of interest.<a name="FNanchor_65_65" id="FNanchor_65_65"></a><a href="#Footnote_65_65" class="fnanchor">[65]</a> I should have a
+similar experience if, in the course of a big case, I told a man,
+educated, but uninterested in the case, with joy, that I had finally
+discovered the important note on which the explanation of the events
+depended. I could not possibly expect interest, attention, and
+comprehension of a matter if my interlocutor knows nothing about the
+issue or the reason of the note’s importance. And in spite of the fact
+that everything is natural and can be explained we have the same story
+every day. We put the witness a definite question that is of immense
+importance to us, who are fully acquainted with the problem, but is for
+the witness detached, incoherent, and therefore barren of interest. Then
+who can require of an uninterested witness, attention, and effective and
+well-considered replies?<a name="FNanchor_66_66" id="FNanchor_66_66"></a><a href="#Footnote_66_66" class="fnanchor">[66]</a> I myself heard a witness answer a judge who
+asked him about the weather on a certain day, “Look here, to drag me so
+many miles to this place in order to discuss the weather with
+me,&mdash;that’s&mdash;.” The old man was quite right because the detached
+question had no particular purpose. But when it was circumstantially
+explained to him that the weather was of uttermost significance in this
+case, how it was related thereto, and how important his answer would be,
+he went at the question eagerly,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_040" id="page_040"></a>{40}</span> and did everything thinkable in trying
+to recall the weather in question by bringing to bear various associated
+events, and did finally make a decidedly valuable addition to the
+evidence. And this is the only way to capture the attention of a
+witness. If he is merely ordered to pay attention, the result is the
+same as if he were ordered to speak louder,&mdash;he does it, in lucky cases,
+for a moment, and then goes on as before. Attention may be generated but
+not commanded, and may be generated successfully with everybody, and at
+all times, if only the proper method is hit upon. The first and absolute
+requirement is to have and to show the same interest oneself. For it is
+impossible to infect a man with interest when you have no interest to
+infect with. There is nothing more deadly or boresome than to see how
+witnesses are examined sleepily and with tedium, and how the witnesses,
+similarly infected, similarly answer. On the other hand, it is
+delightful to observe the surprising effect of questions asked and heard
+with interest. Then the sleepiest witnesses, even dull ones, wake up:
+the growth of their interest, and hence of their attention, may be
+followed step by step; they actually increase in knowledge and their
+statements gain in reliability. And this simply because they have seen
+the earnestness of the judge, the importance of the issue, the case, the
+weighty consequences of making a mistake, the gain in truth through
+watchfulness and effort, the avoidance of error through attention. In
+this way the most useful testimony can be obtained from witnesses who,
+in the beginning, showed only despairing prospects.</p>
+
+<p>Now, if one is already himself endowed with keen interest and resolved
+to awaken the same in the witnesses, it is necessary carefully to
+consider the method of so doing and how much the witness is to be told
+of what has already been established, or merely been said and received
+as possibly valuable. On the one hand it is true that the witness can be
+roused to attention and to more certain and vigorous responses according
+to the quantity of detail told him.<a name="FNanchor_67_67" id="FNanchor_67_67"></a><a href="#Footnote_67_67" class="fnanchor">[67]</a> On the other, caution and other
+considerations warn against telling an unknown witness, whose
+trustworthiness is not ascertained, delicate and important matters. It
+is especially difficult if the witness is to be told of presuppositions
+and combinations, or if he is to be shown how the case would alter with
+his own answer. The last especially has the effect of suggestion and
+must occur in particular and in general at those times alone when his
+statement,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_041" id="page_041"></a>{41}</span> or some part of it, is apparently of small importance but
+actually of much. Often this importance can be made clear to the witness
+only by showing him that the difference in the effect of his testimony
+is pointed out to him because when he sees it he will find it worth
+while to exert himself and to consider carefully his answer. Any one of
+us may remember that a witness who was ready with a prompt, and to him
+an indifferent reply, started thinking and gave an essentially different
+answer, even contradictory to his first, when the meaning and the effect
+of what he might say was made clear to him.</p>
+
+<p>How and when the witness is to be told things there is no rule for. The
+wise adjustment between saying enough to awaken interest and not too
+much to cause danger is a very important question of tact. Only one
+certain device may be recommended&mdash;it is better to be careful with a
+witness during his preliminary examination and to keep back what is
+known or suspected; thus the attention and interest of the witness may
+perhaps be stimulated. If, however, it is believed that fuller
+information may increase and intensify the important factors under
+examination, the witness is to be recalled later, when it is safe, and
+his testimony is, under the new conditions of interest, to be corrected
+and rendered more useful. In this case, too, the key to success lies in
+increase of effort&mdash;but that is true in all departments of law, and the
+interest of a witness is so important that it is worth the effort.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic III. PHENOMENOLOGY: STUDY OF THE OUTWARD EXPRESSION OF MENTAL
+STATES.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 10.</h5>
+
+<p>Phenomenology is in general the science of appearances. In our usage it
+is the systematic co-ordination of those outer symptoms occasioned by
+inner processes, and conversely, the inference from the symptoms to
+them. Broadly construed, this may be taken as the study of the habits
+and whole bearing of any individual. But essentially only those external
+manifestations can be considered that refer back to definite psychical
+conditions, so that our phenomenology may be defined as the semiotic of
+normal psychology. This science is legally of immense importance, but
+has not yet assumed the task of showing how unquestionable inferences
+may be drawn from an uncounted collection of outward appearances to
+inner processes. In addition, observations are not numerous<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_042" id="page_042"></a>{42}</span> enough, far
+from accurate enough, and psychological research not advanced enough.
+What dangerous mistakes premature use of such things may lead to is
+evident in the teaching of the Italian positivistic school, which
+defines itself also as psychopathic semiotic. But if our phenomenology
+can only attempt to approximate the establishment of a science of
+symptoms, it may at least study critically the customary popular
+inferences from such symptoms and reduce exaggerated theories concerning
+the value of individual symptoms to a point of explanation and proof. It
+might seem that our present task is destructive, but it will be an
+achievement if we can show the way to later development of this science,
+and to have examined and set aside the useless material already to hand.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 11. (a) General External Conditions.</h5>
+
+<p>“Every state of consciousness has its physical correlate,” says
+Helmholtz,<a name="FNanchor_68_68" id="FNanchor_68_68"></a><a href="#Footnote_68_68" class="fnanchor">[68]</a> and this proposition contains the all in all of our
+problem. Every mental event must have its corresponding physical
+event<a name="FNanchor_69_69" id="FNanchor_69_69"></a><a href="#Footnote_69_69" class="fnanchor">[69]</a> in some form, and is therefore capable of being sensed, or
+known to be indicated by some trace. Identical inner states do not, of
+course, invariably have identical bodily concomitants, neither in all
+individuals alike, nor in the same individual at different times. Modern
+methods of generalization so invariably involve danger and incorrectness
+that one can not be too cautious in this matter. If generalization were
+permissible, psychical events would have to be at least as clear as
+physical processes, but that is not admissible for many reasons. First
+of all, physical concomitants are rarely direct and unmeditated
+expressions of a psychical instant (e.g., clenching a fist in
+threatening). Generally they stand in no causal relation, so that
+explanations drawn from physiological, anatomical, or even atavistic
+conditions are only approximate and hypothetical. In addition,
+accidental habits and inheritances exercise an influence which, although
+it does not alter the expression, has a moulding effect that in the
+course of time does finally so recast a very natural expression as to
+make it altogether unintelligible. The phenomena, moreover, are in most
+cases personal, so that each individual means a new study. Again the
+phenomena rarely remain constant; e.g.: we call a thing habit,&mdash;<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_043" id="page_043"></a>{43}</span>we say,
+“He has the habit of clutching his chin when he is embarrassed,”&mdash;but
+that such habits change is well known. Furthermore, purely physiological
+conditions operate in many directions, (such as blushing, trembling,
+laughter,<a name="FNanchor_70_70" id="FNanchor_70_70"></a><a href="#Footnote_70_70" class="fnanchor">[70]</a> weeping, stuttering, etc.), and finally, very few men want
+to show their minds openly to their friends, so that they see no reason
+for co-ordinating their symbolic bodily expressions. Nevertheless, they
+do so, and not since yesterday, but for thousands of years. Hence
+definite expressions have been transmitted for generations and have at
+the same time been constantly modified, until to-day they are altogether
+unrecognizable. Characteristically, the desire to fool others has also
+its predetermined limitations, so that it often happens that simple and
+significant gestures contradict words when the latter are false. E. g.,
+you hear somebody say, “She went down,” but see him point at the same
+time, not clearly, but visibly, <i>up</i>. Here the speech was false and the
+gesture true. The speaker had to turn all his attention on what he
+wanted to say so that the unwatched co-consciousness moved his hand in
+some degree.</p>
+
+<p>A remarkable case of this kind was that of a suspect of child murder.
+The girl told that she had given birth to the child all alone, had
+washed it, and then laid it on the bed beside herself. She had also
+observed how a corner of the coverlet had fallen on the child’s face,
+and thought it might interfere with the child’s breathing. But at this
+point she swooned, was unable to help the child, and it was choked.
+While sobbing and weeping as she was telling this story, she spread the
+fingers of her left hand and pressed it on her thigh, as perhaps she
+might have done, if she had first put something soft, the corner of a
+coverlet possibly, over the child’s nose and mouth, and then pressed on
+it. This action was so clearly significant that it inevitably led to the
+question whether she hadn’t choked the child in that way. She assented,
+sobbing.</p>
+
+<p>Similar is another case in which a man assured us that he lived very
+peaceably with his neighbor and at the same time clenched his fist. The
+latter meant illwill toward the neighbor while the words did not.</p>
+
+<p>It need not, of course, be urged that the certainty of a belief will be
+much endangered if too much value is sanguinely set on such and similar
+gestures, when their observation is not easy. There is enough to do in
+taking testimony, and enough to observe, to make it difficult to watch
+gestures too. Then there is danger (because of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_044" id="page_044"></a>{44}</span> slight practice) of
+easily mistaking indifferent or habitual gestures for significant ones;
+of supposing oneself to have seen more than should have been seen, and
+of making such observations too noticeable, in which case the witness
+immediately controls his gestures. In short, there are difficulties, but
+once they are surmounted, the effort to do so is not regretted.</p>
+
+<p>It is to be recommended here, also, not to begin one’s studies with
+murder and robbery, but with the simple cases of the daily life, where
+there is no danger of making far-reaching mistakes, and where
+observations may be made much more calmly. Gestures are especially
+powerful habits and almost everybody makes them, mainly <i>not</i>
+indifferent ones. It is amusing to observe a man at the telephone, his
+free hand making the gestures for both. He clenches his fist
+threateningly, stretches one finger after another into the air if he is
+counting something, stamps his foot if he is angry, and puts his finger
+to his head if he does not understand&mdash;in that he behaves as he would if
+his interlocutor were before him. Such deep-rooted tendencies to gesture
+hardly ever leave us. The movements also occur when we lie; and inasmuch
+as a man who is lying at the same time has the idea of the truth either
+directly or subconsciously before him, it is conceivable that this idea
+exercises much greater influence on gesture than the probably transitory
+lie. The question, therefore, is one of intensity, for each gesture
+requires a powerful impulse and the more energetic is the one that
+succeeds in causing the gesture. According to Herbert Spencer<a name="FNanchor_71_71" id="FNanchor_71_71"></a><a href="#Footnote_71_71" class="fnanchor">[71]</a> it is
+a general and important rule that any sensation which exceeds a definite
+intensity expresses itself ordinarily in activity of the body. This fact
+is the more important for us inasmuch as we rarely have to deal with
+light and with not deep-reaching and superficial sensations. In most
+cases the sensations in question “exceed a certain intensity,” so that
+we are able to perceive a bodily expression at least in the form of a
+gesture.</p>
+
+<p>The old English physician, Charles Bell,<a name="FNanchor_72_72" id="FNanchor_72_72"></a><a href="#Footnote_72_72" class="fnanchor">[72]</a> is of the opinion, in his
+cautious way, that what is called the external sign of passion is only
+the accompanying phenomenon of that spontaneous movement required by the
+structure, or better, by the situation of the body. Later this was
+demonstrated by Darwin and his friends to be the indubitable starting
+point of all gesticulation:&mdash;so, for example,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_045" id="page_045"></a>{45}</span> the defensive action upon
+hearing something disgusting, the clenching of the fists in anger; or
+among wild animals, the baring of the teeth, or the bull’s dropping of
+the head, etc. In the course of time the various forms of action became
+largely unintelligible and significatory only after long experience. It
+became, moreover, differently differentiated with each individual, and
+hence still more difficult to understand. How far this differentiation
+may go when it has endured generation after generation and is at last
+crystallized into a set type, is well known; just as by training the
+muscles of porters, tumblers or fencers develop in each individual, so
+the muscles develop in those portions of our body most animated by the
+mind&mdash;in our face and hands, especially, have there occurred through the
+centuries fixed expressions or types of movement. This has led to the
+observations of common-sense which speak of raw, animal, passionate or
+modest faces, and of ordinary, nervous, or spiritual hands; but it has
+also led to the scientific interpretation of these phenomena which
+afterwards went shipwreck in the form of Lombroso’s “criminal stigmata,”
+inasmuch as an overhasty theory has been built on barren, unexperienced,
+and unstudied material. The notion of criminal stigmata is, however, in
+no sense new, and Lombroso has not invented it; according to an
+incidental remark of Kant in his “Menschenkunde,” the first who tried
+scientifically to interpret these otherwise ancient observations was the
+German J. B. Friedreich,<a name="FNanchor_73_73" id="FNanchor_73_73"></a><a href="#Footnote_73_73" class="fnanchor">[73]</a> who says expressly that determinate somatic
+pathological phenomena may be shown to occur with certain moral
+perversions. It has been observed with approximate clearness in several
+types of cases. So, for example, incendiarism occurs in the case of
+abnormal sexual conditions; poisoning also springs from abnormal sexual
+impulses; drowning is the consequence of oversatiated drink mania, etc.
+Modern psychopathology knows nothing additional concerning these
+marvels; and similar matters which are spoken of nowadays again, have
+shown themselves incapable of demonstration. But that there are
+phenomena so related, and that their number is continually increasing
+under exact observations, is not open to doubt.<a name="FNanchor_74_74" id="FNanchor_74_74"></a><a href="#Footnote_74_74" class="fnanchor">[74]</a> If we stop with the
+phenomena of daily life and keep in mind the ever-cited fact that
+everybody recognizes at a glance the old hunter, the retired officer,
+the actor, the aristocratic lady, etc., we may go still further: the
+more trained observers can recognize the merchant, the official, the
+butcher, the shoe-maker, the real<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_046" id="page_046"></a>{46}</span> tramp, the Greek, the sexual pervert,
+etc. Hence follows an important law&mdash;<i>that if a fact is once recognized
+correctly in its coarser form, then the possibility must be granted that
+it is correct in its subtler manifestations</i>. The boundary between what
+is coarse and what is not may not be drawn at any particular point. It
+varies with the skill of the observer, with the character of the
+material before him, and with the excellence of his instruments, so that
+nobody can say where the possibility of progress in the matter ceases.
+Something must be granted in all questions appertaining to this subject
+of recognizable unit-characters and every layman pursues daily certain
+activities based on their existence. When he speaks of stupid and
+intelligent faces he is a physiognomist; he sees that there are
+intellectual foreheads and microcephalic ones, and is thus a
+craniologist; he observes the expression of fear and of joy, and so
+observes the principles of imitation; he contemplates a fine and elegant
+hand in contrast with a fat and mean hand, and therefore assents to the
+effectiveness of chirognomy; he finds one hand-writing scholarly and
+fluid, another heavy, ornate and unpleasant; so he is dealing with the
+first principles of graphology;&mdash;all these observations and inferences
+are nowhere denied, and nobody can say where their attainable boundaries
+lie.</p>
+
+<p>Hence, the only proper point of view to take is that from which we set
+aside as too bold, all daring and undemonstrated assertions on these
+matters. But we will equally beware of asserting without further
+consideration that far-reaching statements are unjustified, for we shall
+get very far by the use of keener and more careful observation, richer
+material, and better instruments.</p>
+
+<p>How fine, for example, are the observations made by Herbert Spencer
+concerning the importance of the “timbre” of speech in the light of the
+emotional state&mdash;no one had ever thought of that before, or considered
+the possibilities of gaining anything of importance from this single
+datum which has since yielded such a rich collection of completely
+proved and correctly founded results. Darwin knew well enough to make
+use of it for his own purposes.<a name="FNanchor_75_75" id="FNanchor_75_75"></a><a href="#Footnote_75_75" class="fnanchor">[75]</a> He points out that the person who is
+quietly complaining of bad treatment or is suffering a little, almost
+always speaks in a high tone of voice; and that deep groans or high and
+piercing shrieks indicate extreme pain. Now we lawyers can make just
+such observations in great number. Any one of us who has had a few
+experiences, can immediately recognize from the tone of voice with which
+a new<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_047" id="page_047"></a>{47}</span> comer makes his requests just about what he wants. The accused,
+for example, who by chance does not know why he has been called to
+court, makes use of a questioning tone without really pronouncing his
+question. Anybody who is seriously wounded, speaks hoarsely and
+abruptly. The secret tone of voice of the querulous, and of such people
+who speak evil of another when they are only half or not at all
+convinced of it, gives them away. The voice of a denying criminal has in
+hundreds of cases been proved through a large number of physiological
+phenomena to do the same thing for him; the stimulation of the nerves
+influences before all the characteristic snapping movement of the mouth
+which alternates with the reflex tendency to swallow. In addition it
+causes lapses in blood pressure and palpitation of the heart by means of
+disturbances of the heart action, and this shows clearly visible
+palpitation of the right carotid (well within the breadth of hand under
+the ear in the middle of the right side of the neck). That the left
+carotid does not show the palpitation may be based on the fact that the
+right stands in much more direct connection with the aorta. All this,
+taken together, causes that so significant, lightly vibrating, cold and
+toneless voice, which is so often to be perceived in criminals who deny
+their guilt. It rarely deceives the expert.</p>
+
+<p>But these various timbres of the voice especially contain a not
+insignificant danger for the criminalist. Whoever once has devoted
+himself to the study of them trusts them altogether too easily, for even
+if he has identified them correctly hundreds of times, it still may
+happen that he is completely deceived by a voice he holds as
+“characteristically demonstrative.” That timbres may deceive, or
+simulations worthy of the name occur, I hardly believe. Such deceptions
+are often attempted and begun, but they demand the entire attention of
+the person who tries them, and that can be given for only a short time.
+In the very instant that the matter he is speaking of requires the
+attention of the speaker, his voice involuntarily falls into that tone
+demanded by its physical determinants: and the speaker significantly
+betrays himself through just this alteration. We may conclude that an
+effective simulation is hardly thinkable.</p>
+
+<p>It must, however, be noticed that earlier mistaken observations and
+incorrect inference at the present moment&mdash;substitutions and similar
+mistakes&mdash;may easily mislead. As a corroborative fact, then, the
+judgment of a voice would have great value; but as a means in itself it
+is a thing too little studied and far from confirmed.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_048" id="page_048"></a>{48}</span></p>
+
+<p>There is, however, another aspect of the matter which manifests itself
+in an opposite way from voice and gesture. Lazarus calls attention to
+the fact that the spectators at a fencing match can not prevent
+themselves from imitative accompaniment of the actions of the fencers,
+and that anybody who happens to have any swinging object in his hand
+moves his hand here and there as they do. Stricker<a name="FNanchor_76_76" id="FNanchor_76_76"></a><a href="#Footnote_76_76" class="fnanchor">[76]</a> makes similar
+observations concerning involuntary movements performed while looking at
+drilling or marching soldiers. Many other phenomena of the daily
+life&mdash;as, for example, keeping step with some pedestrian near us, with
+the movement of a pitcher who with all sorts of twistings of his body
+wants to guide the ball correctly when it has already long ago left his
+hand; keeping time to music and accompanying the rhythm of a wagon
+knocking on cobblestones; even the enforcement of what is said through
+appropriate gestures when people speak vivaciously&mdash;naturally belong to
+the same class. So do nodding the head in agreement and shaking it in
+denial; shrugging the shoulders with a declaration of ignorance. The
+expression by word of mouth should have been enough and have needed no
+reinforcement through conventional gestures, but the last are
+spontaneously involuntary accompaniments.</p>
+
+<p>On the other hand there is the converse fact that the voice may be
+influenced through expression and gesture. If we fix an expression on
+our features or bring our body into an attitude which involves passional
+excitement we may be sure that we will be affected more or less by the
+appropriate emotion. This statement, formulated by Maudsley, is
+perfectly true and may be proved by anybody at any moment. It presents
+itself to us as an effective corroboration of the so well-known
+phenomenon of “talking-yourself-into-it.” Suppose you correctly imagine
+how a very angry man looks: frowning brow, clenched fists, gritting
+teeth, hoarse, gasping voice, and suppose you imitate. Then, even if you
+feel most harmless and order-loving, you become quite angry though you
+keep up the imitation only a little while. By means of the imitation of
+lively bodily changes you may in the same way bring yourself into any
+conceivable emotional condition, the outer expressions of which appear
+energetically. It must have occurred to every one of us how often
+prisoners present so well the excitement of passion that their
+earnestness is actually believed; as for example, the anger of a
+guiltless suspect or of an obviously needy person, of a man financially
+ruined by his trusted servant, etc. Such scenes of passion happen<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_049" id="page_049"></a>{49}</span> daily
+in every court-house and they are so excellently presented that even an
+experienced judge believes in their reality and tells himself that such
+a thing can not be imitated because the imitation is altogether too hard
+to do and still harder to maintain. But in reality the presentation is
+not so wonderful, and taken altogether, is not at all skilful; whoever
+wants to manifest <i>anger</i> must make the proper gestures (and that
+requires no art) and when he makes the gestures the necessary conditions
+occur and these stimulate and cause the correct manifestation of the
+later gestures, while these again influence the voice. Thus without any
+essential mummery the comedy plays itself out, self-sufficient, correct,
+convincing. Alarming oneself is not performed by words, but by the
+reciprocal influence of word and gesture, and the power of that
+influence is observable in the large number of cases where, in the end,
+people themselves believe what they have invented. If they are of
+delicate spiritual equilibrium they even become hypochondriacs. Writing,
+and the reading of writing, is to be considered in the same way as
+gesticulation; it has the same alarming influence on voice and general
+appearance as the other, so that it is relatively indifferent whether a
+man speaks and acts or writes and thinks. This fact is well known to
+everybody who has ever in his life written a really coarse letter.</p>
+
+<p>Now this exciting gesticulation can be very easily observed, but the
+observation must not come too late. If the witness is once quite lost in
+it and sufficiently excited by the concomitant speeches he will make his
+gestures well and naturally and the artificial and untrue will not be
+discoverable. But this is not the case in the beginning; then his
+gestures are actually not skilful, and at that point a definite force of
+will and rather notable exaggerations are observable; the gestures go
+further than the words, and that is a matter not difficult to recognize.
+As soon as the recognition is made it becomes necessary to examine
+whether a certain congruity invariably manifests itself between word and
+gesture, inasmuch as with many people the above-mentioned lack of
+congruity is habitual and honest. This is particularly the case with
+people who are somewhat theatrical and hence gesticulate too much. But
+if word and gesture soon conform one to another, especially after a
+rather lively presentation, you may be certain that the subject has
+skilfully worked himself into his alarm or whatever it is he wanted to
+manifest. Quite apart from the importance of seeing such a matter
+clearly the interest of the work is a rich reward for the labor
+involved.</p>
+
+<p>In close relation to these phenomena is the change of color to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_050" id="page_050"></a>{50}</span> which
+unfortunately great importance is often assigned.<a name="FNanchor_77_77" id="FNanchor_77_77"></a><a href="#Footnote_77_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a> In this regard
+paling has received less general attention because it is more rare and
+less suspicious. That it can not be simulated, as is frequently asserted
+in discussions of simulation (especially of epilepsy), is not true,
+inasmuch as there exists an especial physiological process which
+succeeds in causing pallor artificially. In that experiment the chest is
+very forcibly contracted, the glottis is closed and the muscles used in
+inspiration are contracted. This matter has no practical value for us,
+on the one hand, because the trick is always involved with lively and
+obvious efforts, and on the other, because cases are hardly thinkable in
+which a man will produce artificial pallor in the court where it can not
+be of any use to him. The one possibility of use is in the simulation of
+epilepsy, and in such a case the trick can not be played because of the
+necessary falling to the ground.</p>
+
+<p>Paling depends, as is well known, on the cramp of the muscles of the
+veins, which contract and so cause a narrowing of their bore which
+hinders the flow of blood. But such cramps happen only in cases of
+considerable anger, fear, pain, trepidation, rage; in short, in cases of
+excitement that nobody ever has reason to simulate. Paling has no value
+in differentiation inasmuch as a man might grow pale in the face through
+fear of being unmasked or in rage at unjust suspicion.</p>
+
+<p>The same thing is true about blushing.<a name="FNanchor_78_78" id="FNanchor_78_78"></a><a href="#Footnote_78_78" class="fnanchor">[78]</a> It consists in a sort of
+transitory crippling of those nerves that end in the walls of small
+arteries. This causes the relaxation of the muscle-fibers of the blood
+vessels which are consequently filled in a greater degree with blood.
+Blushing also may be voluntarily created by some individuals. In that
+case the chest is fully expanded, the glottis is closed and the muscles
+of expiration are contracted. But this matter again has no particular
+value for us since the simulation of a blush is at most of use only when
+a woman wants to appear quite modest and moral. But for that effect
+artificial blushing does not help, since it requires such intense effort
+as to be immediately noticeable. Blushing by means of external
+assistance, e.g., inhaling certain chemicals, is a thing hardly anybody
+will want to perform before the court.</p>
+
+<p>With regard to guilt or innocence, blushing offers no evidence whatever.
+There is a great troop of people who blush without any<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_051" id="page_051"></a>{51}</span> reason for
+feeling guilty. The most instructive thing in this matter is
+self-observation, and whoever recalls the cause of his own blushing will
+value the phenomenon lightly enough. I myself belonged, not only as a
+child, but also long after my student days, to those unfortunates who
+grow fire-red quite without reason; I needed only to hear of some
+shameful deed, of theft, robbery, murder, and I would get so red that a
+spectator might believe that I was one of the criminals. In my native
+city there was an old maid who had, I knew even as a boy, remained
+single because of unrequited love of my grandfather. She seemed to me a
+very poetical figure and once when her really magnificent ugliness was
+discussed, I took up her cause and declared her to be not so bad. My
+taste was laughed at, and since then, whenever this lady or the street
+she lives in or even her furs (she used to have pleasure in wearing
+costly furs) were spoken of, I would blush. And her age may be estimated
+from her calf-love. Now what has occurred to me, often painfully,
+happens to numbers of people, and it is hence inconceivable why forensic
+value is still frequently assigned to blushing. At the same time there
+are a few cases in which blushing may be important.</p>
+
+<p>The matter is interesting even though we know nothing about the
+intrinsic inner process which leads to the influence on the nervous
+filaments. Blushing occurs all the world over, and its occasion and
+process is the same among savages as among us.<a name="FNanchor_79_79" id="FNanchor_79_79"></a><a href="#Footnote_79_79" class="fnanchor">[79]</a> The same events may
+be observed whether we compare the flush of educated or uneducated.
+There is the notion, which I believed for a long time, that blushing
+occurs among educated people and is especially rare among peasants, but
+that does not seem to be true. Working people, especially those who are
+out in the open a good deal, have a tougher pigmentation and a browner
+skin, so that their flush is less obvious. But it occurs as often and
+under the same conditions as among others. It might be said for the same
+reason that Gypsies never blush; and of course, that the blush may be
+rarer among people lacking in shame and a sense of honor is conceivable.
+Yet everybody who has much to do with Gypsies asserts that the blush may
+be observed among them.</p>
+
+<p>Concerning the relation of the blush to age, Darwin says that early
+childhood knows nothing about blushing. It happens in youth more
+frequently than in old age, and oftener among women than among men.
+Idiots blush seldom, blind people and hereditary albinos, a great deal.
+The somatic process of blushing is, as Darwin<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_052" id="page_052"></a>{52}</span> shows, quite remarkable.
+Almost always the blush is preceded by a quick contraction of the
+eyelids as if to prevent the rise of the blood in the eyes. After that,
+in most cases, the eyes are dropped, even when the cause of blushing is
+anger or vexation; finally the blush rises, in most cases irregularly
+and in spots, at last to cover the skin uniformly. If you want to save
+the witness his blush you can do it only at the beginning&mdash;during the
+movement of the eyes&mdash;and only by taking no notice of it, by not looking
+at him, and going right on with your remarks. This incidentally is
+valuable inasmuch as many people are much confused by blushing and
+really do not know what they are talking about while doing it. There is
+no third thing which is the cause of the blush and of the confusion; the
+blush itself is the cause of the confusion. This may be indubitably
+confirmed by anybody who has the agreeable property of blushing and
+therefore is of some experience in the matter. I should never dare to
+make capital of any statement made during the blush. Friedreich calls
+attention to the fact that people who are for the first time subject to
+the procedure of the law courts blush and lose color more easily than
+such as are accustomed to it, so that the unaccustomed scene also
+contributes to the confusion. Meynert<a name="FNanchor_80_80" id="FNanchor_80_80"></a><a href="#Footnote_80_80" class="fnanchor">[80]</a> states the matter explicitly:
+“The blush always depends upon a far-reaching association-process in
+which the complete saturation of the contemporaneously-excited nervous
+elements constricts the orderly movement of the mental process, inasmuch
+as here also the simplicity of contemporaneously-occurring activities of
+the brain determines the scope of the function of association.” How
+convincing this definition is becomes clear on considering the processes
+in question. Let us think of some person accused of a crime to whom the
+ground of accusation is presented for the first time, and to whom the
+judge after that presents the skilfully constructed proof of his guilt
+by means of individual bits of evidence. Now think of the mass of
+thoughts here excited, even if the accused is innocent. The deed itself
+is foreign to him, he must imagine that; should any relation to it (e.g.
+presence at the place where the deed was done, interest in it, ownership
+of the object, etc.) be present to his mind, he must become clear
+concerning this relationship, while at the same time the possibilities
+of excuse&mdash;alibi, ownership of the thing, etc.&mdash;storm upon him. Then
+only does he consider the particular reasons of suspicion which he must,
+in some degree, incarnate and represent in their dangerous character,
+and for each of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_053" id="page_053"></a>{53}</span> which he must find a separate excuse. We have here some
+several dozens of thought-series, which start their movement at the same
+time and through each other. If at that time an especially dangerous
+apparent proof is brought, and if the accused, recognizing this danger,
+blushes with fear, the examiner thinks: “Now I have caught the rascal,
+for he’s blushing! Now let’s go ahead quickly, speed the examination and
+enter the confused answer in the protocol!” And who believes the accused
+when, later on, he withdraws the “confession” and asserts that he had
+said the thing because they had mixed him up?</p>
+
+<p>In this notion, “you blush, therefore you have lied; you did it!” lie
+many sins the commission of which is begun at the time of admonishing
+little children and ended with obtaining the “confessions” of the
+murderous thief.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, it is not to be forgotten that there are cases of blushing
+which have nothing to do with psychical processes. Ludwig Meyer<a name="FNanchor_81_81" id="FNanchor_81_81"></a><a href="#Footnote_81_81" class="fnanchor">[81]</a>
+calls it “artificial blushing” (better, “mechanically developed
+blushing”), and narrates the case of “easily-irritated women who could
+develop a blush with the least touch of friction, e.g., of the face on a
+pillow, rubbing with the hand, etc.; and this blush could not be
+distinguished from the ordinary blush.” We may easily consider that such
+lightly irritable women may be accused, come before the court without
+being recognized as such, and, for example, cover their faces with their
+hands and blush. Then the thing might be called “evidential.”</p>
+
+<h5>Section 12. (b) General Signs of Character.</h5>
+
+<p>Friedrich Gerstäcker, in one of his most delightful moods, says
+somewhere that the best characteristicon of a man is how he wears his
+hat. If he wears it perpendicular, he is honest, pedantic, and boresome.
+If he wears it tipped slightly, he belongs to the best and most
+interesting people, is nimble-witted and pleasant. A deeply tipped hat
+indicates frivolity and obstinate imperious nature. A hat worn on the
+back of the head signifies improvidence, easiness, conceit, sensuality
+and extravagance; the farther back the more dangerous is the position of
+the wearer. The man who presses his hat against his temples complains,
+is melancholy, and in a bad way. It is now many years since I have read
+this exposition by the much-traveled and experienced author, and I have
+thought countless times how right he was, but also, how there may be
+numberless similar<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_054" id="page_054"></a>{54}</span> marks of recognition which show as much as the
+manner of wearing a hat. There are plenty of similar expositions to be
+known; one man seeks to recognize the nature of others by their manner
+of wearing and using shoes; the other by the manipulation of an
+umbrella; and the prudent mother advises her son how the candidate for
+bride behaves toward a groom lying on the floor, or how she eats
+cheese&mdash;the extravagant one cuts the rind away thick, the miserly one
+eats the rind, the right one cuts the rind away thin and carefully. Many
+people judge families, hotel guests, and inhabitants of a city, and not
+without reason, according to the comfort and cleanliness of their
+privies.</p>
+
+<p>Lazarus has rightly called to mind what is told by the pious Chr. von
+Schmidt, concerning the clever boy who lies under a tree and recognizes
+the condition of every passer-by according to what he says. “What fine
+lumber,”&mdash;“Good-morning, carpenter,”&mdash;“What magnificent
+bark,”&mdash;“Good-morning, tanner,”&mdash;“What beautiful
+branches,”&mdash;“Good-morning, painter.” This significant story shows us how
+easy it is with a little observation to perceive things that might
+otherwise have been hidden. With what subtle clearness it shows how
+effective is the egoism which makes each man first of all, and in most
+cases exclusively, perceive what most concerns him as most prominent!
+And in addition men so eagerly and often present us the chance for the
+deepest insight into their souls that we need only to open our
+eyes&mdash;seeing and interpreting is so childishly easy! Each one of us
+experiences almost daily the most instructive things; e.g. through the
+window of my study I could look into a great garden in which a house was
+being built; when the carpenters left in the evening they put two blocks
+at the entrance and put a board on them crosswise. Later there came each
+evening a gang of youngsters who found in this place a welcome
+playground. That obstruction which they had to pass gave me an
+opportunity to notice the expression of their characters. One ran
+quickly and jumped easily over,&mdash;that one will progress easily and
+quickly in his life. Another approached carefully, climbed slowly up the
+board and as cautiously descended on the other side&mdash;careful,
+thoughtful, and certain. The third climbed up and jumped down&mdash;a deed
+purposeless, incidental, uninforming. The fourth ran energetically to
+the obstruction, then stopped and crawled boldly underneath&mdash;disgusting
+boy who nevertheless will have carried his job ahead. Then, again, there
+came a fifth who jumped,&mdash;but too low, remained hanging and tumbled; he
+got up, rubbed his<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_055" id="page_055"></a>{55}</span> knee, went back, ran again and came over
+magnificently&mdash;and how magnificently will he achieve all things in life,
+for he has will, fearlessness, and courageous endurance!&mdash;he can’t sink.
+Finally a sixth came storming along&mdash;one step, and board and blocks fell
+together crashing, but he proudly ran over the obstruction, and those
+who came behind him made use of the open way. He is of the people who go
+through life as path-finders; we get our great men from among such.</p>
+
+<p>Well, all this is just a game, and no one would dare to draw conclusions
+concerning our so serious work from such observations merely. But they
+can have a corroborative value if they are well done, when large
+numbers, and not an isolated few, are brought together, and when
+appropriate analogies are brought from appropriate cases. Such studies,
+which have to be sought in the daily life itself, permit easy
+development; if observations have been clearly made, correctly
+apprehended, and if, especially, the proper notions have been drawn from
+them, they are easily to be observed, stick in the memory, and come
+willingly at the right moment. But they must then serve only as indices,
+they must only suggest: “perhaps the case is the same to-day.” And that
+means a good deal; a point of view for the taking of evidence is
+established, not, of course, proof as such, or a bit of evidence, but a
+way of receiving it,&mdash;perhaps a false one. But if one proceeds carefully
+along this way, it shows its falseness immediately, and another
+presented by memory shows us another way that is perhaps correct.</p>
+
+<p>The most important thing in this matter is to get a general view of the
+human specimen&mdash;and incidentally, nobody needs more to do this than the
+criminalist. For most of us the person before us is only “A, suspected
+of <i>x</i>.” But our man is rather more than that, and especially he was
+rather more before he became “A suspected of <i>x</i>.” Hence, the greatest
+mistake, and, unfortunately, the commonest, committed by the judge, is
+his failure to discuss with the prisoner his more or less necessary
+earlier life. Is it not known that every deed is an outcome of the total
+character of the doer? Is it not considered that deed and character are
+correlative concepts, and that the character by means of which the deed
+is to be established cannot be inferred from the deed alone? “Crime is
+the product of the physiologically grounded psyche of the criminal and
+his environing external conditions.” (Liszt). Each particular deed is
+thinkable only when a determinate character of the doer is brought in
+relation with it&mdash;a certain character predisposes to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_056" id="page_056"></a>{56}</span> determinate deeds,
+another character makes them unthinkable and unrelatable with this or
+that person. But who thinks to know the character of a man without
+knowing his view of the world, and who talks of their world-views with
+his criminals? “Whoever wants to learn to know men,” says Hippel,<a name="FNanchor_82_82" id="FNanchor_82_82"></a><a href="#Footnote_82_82" class="fnanchor">[82]</a>
+“must judge them according to their wishes,” and it is the opinion of
+Struve:<a name="FNanchor_83_83" id="FNanchor_83_83"></a><a href="#Footnote_83_83" class="fnanchor">[83]</a> “A man’s belief indicates his purpose.” But who of us asks
+his criminals about their wishes and beliefs?</p>
+
+<p>If we grant the correctness of what we have said we gain the conviction
+that we can proceed with approximate certainty and conscientiousness
+only if we speak with the criminal, not alone concerning the deed
+immediately in question, but also searchingly concerning the important
+conditions of his inner life. So we may as far as possible see clearly
+what he is according to general notions and his particular
+relationships.</p>
+
+<p>The same thing must also be done with regard to an important witness,
+especially when much depends upon his way of judging, of experiencing,
+of feeling, and of thinking, and when it is impossible to discover these
+things otherwise. Of course such analyses are often tiring and without
+result, but that, on the other hand, they lay open with few words whole
+broadsides of physical conditions, so that we need no longer doubt, is
+also a matter of course. Who wants to leave unused a formula of
+Schopenhauer’s: “We discover what we are through what we do?” Nothing is
+easier than to discover from some person important to us what he does,
+even though the discovery develops merely as a simple conversation about
+what he has done until now and what he did lately. And up to date we
+have gotten at such courses of life only in the great cases; in cases of
+murder or important political criminals, and then only at externals; we
+have cared little about the essential deeds, the smaller forms of
+activity which are always the significant ones. Suppose we allow some
+man to speak about others, no matter whom, on condition that he must
+know them well. He judges their deeds, praises and condemns them, and
+thinks that he is talking about them but is really talking about himself
+alone, for in each judgment of the others he aims to justify and enhance
+himself; the things he praises he does, what he finds fault with, he
+does not; or at least he wishes people to believe that he does the
+former and avoids the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_057" id="page_057"></a>{57}</span> latter. And when he speaks unpleasantly about his
+friends he has simply abandoned what he formerly had in common with
+them. Then again he scolds at those who have gotten on and blames their
+evil nature for it; but whoever looks more closely may perceive that he
+had no gain in the same evil and therefore dislikes it. At the same
+time, he cannot possibly suppress what he wishes and what he needs. Now,
+whoever knows this fact, knows his motives, and to decide in view of
+these with regard to a crime is seldom difficult. “Nos besoins sont nos
+forces”&mdash;but superficial needs do not really excite us while what is an
+actual need does. Once we are compelled, our power to achieve what we
+want grows astoundingly. How we wonder at the great amount of power used
+up, in the case of many criminals! If we know that a real need was
+behind the crime, we need no longer wonder at the magnitude of the
+power. The relation between the crime and the criminal is defined
+because we have discovered his needs. To these needs a man’s pleasures
+belong also; every man, until the practically complete loss of vigor,
+has as a rule a very obvious need for some kind of pleasure. It is human
+nature not to be continuously a machine, to require relief and pleasure.</p>
+
+<p>The word pleasure must of course be used in the loosest way, for one man
+finds his pleasure in sitting beside the stove or in the shadow, while
+another speaks of pleasure only when he can bring some change in his
+work. I consider it impossible not to understand a man whose pleasures
+are known; his will, his power, his striving and knowing, feeling and
+perceiving cannot be made clearer by any other thing. Moreover, it
+happens that it is a man’s pleasures which bring him into court, and as
+he resists or falls into them he reveals his character. The famous
+author of the “Imitation of Christ,” Thomas à Kempis, whose book is,
+saving the Bible, the most wide-spread on earth, says: “Occasiones
+hominem fragilem non faciunt, sed, qualis sit, ostendunt.” That is a
+golden maxim for the criminalist. Opportunity, the chance to taste, is
+close to every man, countless times; is his greatest danger; for that
+reason it was great wisdom in the Bible that called the devil, the
+Tempter. A man’s behavior with regard to the discovered or sought-out
+opportunity exhibits his character wholly and completely. But the chance
+to observe men face to face with opportunity is a rare one, and that
+falling-off with which we are concerned is often the outcome of such an
+opportunity. But at this point we ought not longer to learn, but to
+know; and hence our duty to study the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_058" id="page_058"></a>{58}</span> pleasures of men, to know how
+they behave in the presence of their opportunities.</p>
+
+<p>There is another group of conditions through which you may observe and
+judge men in general. The most important one is to know yourself as well
+as possible, for accurate self-knowledge leads to deep mistrust with
+regard to others, and only the man suspicious with regard to others is
+insured, at least a little, against mistakes. To pass from mistrust to
+the reception of something good is not difficult, even in cases where
+the mistrust is well-founded and the presupposition of excellent motives
+among our fellows is strongly fought. Nevertheless, when something
+actually good is perceivable, one is convinced by it and even made
+happy. But the converse is not true, for anybody who is too trusting
+easily presupposes the best at every opportunity, though he may have
+been deceived a thousand times and is now deceived again. How it happens
+that self-knowledge leads to suspicion of others we had better not
+investigate too closely&mdash;it is a fact.</p>
+
+<p>Every man is characterized by the way he behaves in regard to his
+promises. I do not mean keeping or breaking a promise, because nobody
+doubts that the honest man keeps it and the scoundrel does not. I mean
+the <i>manner</i> in which a promise is kept and the <i>degree</i> in which it is
+kept. La Roche-Foucauld<a name="FNanchor_84_84" id="FNanchor_84_84"></a><a href="#Footnote_84_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a> says significantly: “We promise according to
+our hopes, and perform according to our fears.” When in any given case
+promising and hopes and performance and fears are compared, important
+considerations arise,&mdash;especially in cases of complicity in crime.</p>
+
+<p>When it is at all possible, and in most cases it is, one ought to
+concern oneself with a man’s style,&mdash;the handwriting of his soul. What
+this consists of cannot be expressed in a definite way. The style must
+simply be studied and tested with regard to its capacity for being
+united with certain presupposed qualities. Everybody knows that
+education, bringing-up, and intelligence are indubitably expressed in
+style, but it may also be observed that style clearly expresses softness
+or hardness of a character, kindness or cruelty, determination or
+weakness, integrity or carelessness, and hundreds of other qualities.
+Generally the purpose of studying style may be achieved by keeping in
+mind some definite quality presupposed and by asking oneself, while
+reading the manuscript of the person in question, whether this quality
+fuses with the manuscript’s form and with the individual tendencies and
+relationships that occur in the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_059" id="page_059"></a>{59}</span> construction of the thought. One
+reading will of course not bring you far, but if the reading is repeated
+and taken up anew, especially as often as the writer is met with or as
+often as some new fact about him is established, then it is almost
+impossible not to attain a fixed and valuable result. One gets then
+significantly the sudden impression that the thing to be proved, having
+the expression of which the properties are to be established, rises out
+of the manuscript; and when that happens the time has come not to dawdle
+with the work. Repeated reading causes the picture above-mentioned to
+come out more clearly and sharply; it is soon seen in what places or
+directions of the manuscript that expression comes to light&mdash;these
+places are grouped together, others are sought that more or less imply
+it, and soon a standpoint for further consideration is reached which
+naturally is not evidential by itself, but has, when combined with
+numberless others, corroborative value.</p>
+
+<p>Certain small apparently indifferent qualities and habits are important.
+There are altogether too many of them to talk about; but there are
+examples enough of the significance of what is said of a man in this
+fashion: “this man is never late,” “this man never forgets,” “this man
+invariably carries a pencil or a pocket knife,” “this one is always
+perfumed,” “this one always wears clean, carefully brushed
+clothes,”&mdash;whoever has the least training may construct out of such
+qualities the whole inner life of the individual. Such observations may
+often be learned from simple people, especially from old peasants. A
+great many years ago I had a case which concerned a disappearance. It
+was supposed that the lost man was murdered. Various examinations were
+made without result, until, finally, I questioned an old and very
+intelligent peasant who had known well the lost man. I asked the witness
+to describe the nature of his friend very accurately, in order that I
+might draw from his qualities, habits, etc., my inferences concerning
+his tendencies, and hence concerning his possible location. The old
+peasant supposed that everything had been said about the man in question
+when he explained that he was a person who never owned a decent tool.
+This was an excellent description, the value of which I completely
+understood only when the murdered man came to life and I learned to know
+him. He was a petty lumberman who used to buy small wooded tracts in the
+high mountains for cutting, and having cut them down would either bring
+the wood down to the valley, or have it turned to charcoal. In the fact
+that he never owned a decent tool, nor had one for his men, was
+established his<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_060" id="page_060"></a>{60}</span> whole narrow point of view, his cramped miserliness,
+his disgusting prudence, his constricted kindliness, qualities which
+permitted his men to plague themselves uselessly with bad tools and
+which justified altogether his lack of skill in the purchase of tools.
+So I thought how the few words of the old, much-experienced peasant were
+confirmed utterly&mdash;they told the whole story. Such men, indeed, who say
+little but say it effectively, must be carefully attended to, and
+everything must be done to develop and to understand what they mean.</p>
+
+<p>But the judge requires attention and appropriate conservation of his own
+observations. Whoever observes the people he deals with soon notices
+that there is probably not one among them that does not possess some
+similar, apparently unessential quality like that mentioned above. Among
+close acquaintances there is little difficulty in establishing which of
+their characteristics belong to that quality, and when series of such
+observations are brought together it is not difficult to generalize and
+to abstract from them specific rules. Then, in case of need, when the
+work is important, one makes use of the appropriate rule with pleasure,
+and I might say, with thanks for one’s own efforts.</p>
+
+<p>One essential and often useful symbol to show what a man makes of
+himself, what he counts himself for, is his use of the word <i>we</i>.
+Hartenstein<a name="FNanchor_85_85" id="FNanchor_85_85"></a><a href="#Footnote_85_85" class="fnanchor">[85]</a> has already called attention to the importance of this
+circumstance, and Volkmar says: “The <i>we</i> has a very various scope, from
+the point of an accidental simultaneity of images in the same sensation,
+representation or thought, to the almost complete circle of the family
+<i>we</i> which breaks through the <i>I</i> and even does not exclude the most
+powerful antagonisms; hatred, just like love, asserts its <i>we</i>.” What is
+characteristic in the word <i>we</i> is the opposition of a larger or smaller
+group of which the <i>I</i> is a member, to the rest of the universe. I say
+<i>we</i> when I mean merely my wife and myself, the inhabitants of my house,
+my family, those who live in my street, in my ward, or in my city; I say
+<i>we</i> assessors, we central-Austrians, we Austrians, we Germans, we
+Europeans, we inhabitants of the earth. I say we lawyers, we blonds, we
+Christians, we mammals, we collaborators on a monthly, we old students’
+society, we married men, we opponents of jury trial. But I also say <i>we</i>
+when speaking of accidental relations, such as being on the same train,
+meeting on the same mountain peak, in the same hotel, at the same
+concert, etc. In a word <i>we</i> defines all relationships from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_061" id="page_061"></a>{61}</span>
+narrowest and most important, most essential, to the most individual and
+accidental. Conceivably the we unites also people who have something
+evil in common, who use it a great deal among themselves, and because of
+habit, in places where they would rather not have done so. Therefore, if
+you pay attention you may hear some suspect who denies his guilt, come
+out with a we which confesses his alliance with people who do the things
+he claims not to: <i>we</i> pickpockets, <i>we</i> house-breakers, <i>we</i> gamblers,
+inverts, etc.</p>
+
+<p>It is so conceivable that man as a social animal seeks companionship in
+so many directions that he feels better protected when he has a comrade,
+when he can present in the place of his weak and unprotected <i>I</i> the
+stronger and bolder <i>we</i>; and hence the considerable and varied use of
+the word. No one means that people are to be caught with the word; it is
+merely to be used to bring clearness into our work. Like every other
+honest instrument, it is an index to the place of the man before us.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 13. (c) Particular Character-signs.</h5>
+
+<p>It is a mistake to suppose that it is enough in most cases to study that
+side of a man which is at the moment important&mdash;his dishonesty only, his
+laziness, etc. That will naturally lead to merely one-sided judgment and
+anyway be much harder than keeping the whole man in eye and studying him
+as an entirety. Every individual quality is merely a symptom of a whole
+nature, can be explained only by the whole complex, and the good
+properties depend as much on the bad ones as the bad on the good ones.
+At the very least the quality and quantity of a good or bad
+characteristic shows the influence of all the other good and bad
+characteristics. Kindliness is influenced and partly created through
+weakness, indetermination, too great susceptibility, a minimum
+acuteness, false constructiveness, untrained capacity for inference; in
+the same way, again, the most cruel hardness depends on properties
+which, taken in themselves, are good: determination, energy, purposeful
+action, clear conception of one’s fellows, healthy egotism, etc. Every
+man is the result of his nature and nurture, i.e. of countless
+individual conditions, and every one of his expressions, again, is the
+result of all of these conditions. If, therefore, he is to be judged, he
+must be judged in the light of them all.</p>
+
+<p>For this reason, all those indications that show us the man as a whole
+are for us the most important, but also those others are valuable which
+show him up on one side only. In the latter<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_062" id="page_062"></a>{62}</span> case, however, they are to
+be considered only as an index which never relieves us from the need
+further to study the nature of our subject. The number of such
+individual indications is legion and no one is able to count them up and
+ground them, but examples of them may be indicated.</p>
+
+<p>We ask, for example, what kind of man will give us the best and most
+reliable information about the conduct and activity, the nature and
+character, of an individual? We are told: that sort of person who is
+usually asked for the information&mdash;his nearest friends and
+acquaintances, and the authorities. Before all of these nobody shows
+himself as he is, because the most honest man will show himself before
+people in whose judgment he has an interest at least as good as, if not
+better than he is&mdash;that is fundamental to the general egoistic essence
+of humanity, which seeks at least to avoid reducing its present welfare.
+Authorities who are asked to make a statement concerning any person, can
+say reliably only how often the man was punished or came otherwise in
+contact with the law or themselves. But concerning his social
+characteristics the authorities have nothing to say; they have got to
+investigate them and the detectives have to bring an answer. Then the
+detectives are, at most, simply people who have had the opportunity to
+watch and interrogate the individuals in question,&mdash;the servants,
+house-furnishers, porters, corner-loafers, etc. Why we do not question
+the latter ourselves I cannot say; if we did we might know these people
+on whom we depend for important information and might put our questions
+according to the answers that we need. It is a purely negative thing
+that an official declaration is nowadays not unfrequently presented to
+us in the disgusting form of the gossip of an old hag. But in itself the
+form of getting information about people through servants and others of
+the same class is correct. One has, however, to beware that it is not
+done simply because the gossips are most easily found, but because
+<i>people show their weaknesses most readily before those whom they hold
+of no account</i>. The latter fact is well known, but not sufficiently
+studied. It is of considerable importance. Let us then examine it more
+closely: Nobody is ashamed to show himself before an animal as he is, to
+do an evil thing, to commit a crime; the shame will increase very little
+if instead of the animal a complete idiot is present, and if now we
+suppose the intelligence and significance of this witness steadily to
+increase, the shame of appearing before him as one is increases in a
+like degree. So we will control ourselves most before people<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_063" id="page_063"></a>{63}</span> whose
+judgment is of most importance to us. The Styrian, Peter Rosegger, one
+of the best students of mankind, once told a first-rate story of how the
+most ultimate secrets of certain people became common talk although all
+concerned assured him that nobody had succeeded in getting knowledge of
+them. The news-agent was finally discovered in the person of an old,
+humpy, quiet, woman, who worked by the day in various homes and had
+found a place, unobserved and apparently indifferent, in the corner of
+the sitting-room. Nobody had told her any secrets, but things were
+allowed to occur before her from which she might guess and put them
+together. Nobody had watched this disinterested, ancient lady; she
+worked like a machine; her thoughts, when she noted a quarrel or anxiety
+or disagreement or joy, were indifferent to all concerned, and so she
+discovered a great deal that was kept secret from more important
+persons. This simple story is very significant&mdash;we are not to pay
+attention to gossips but to keep in mind that the information of persons
+is in the rule more important and more reliable when the question under
+consideration is indifferent to them than when it is important. We need
+only glance at our own situation in this matter&mdash;what do we know about
+our servants? What their Christian names are, because we have to call
+them; where they come from, because we hear their pronunciation; how old
+they are, because we see them; and those of their qualities that we make
+use of. But what do we know of their family relationships, their past,
+their plans, their joys or sorrows? The lady of the house knows perhaps
+a little more because of her daily intercourse with them, but her
+husband learns of it only in exceptional cases when he bothers about
+things that are none of his business. Nor does madam know much, as
+examination shows us daily. But what on the other hand do the servants
+know about us? The relation between husband and wife, the bringing-up of
+the children, the financial situation, the relation with cousins, the
+house-friends, the especial pleasures, each joy, each trouble that
+occurs, each hope, everything from the least bodily pain to the very
+simplest secret of the toilette&mdash;they know it all. What can be kept from
+them? The most restricted of them are aware of it, and if they do not
+see more, it is not because of our skill at hiding, but because of their
+stupidity. We observe that in these cases there is not much that can be
+kept secret and hence do not trouble to do so.</p>
+
+<p>There is besides another reason for allowing subordinate or indifferent
+people to see one’s weaknesses. The reason is that we<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_064" id="page_064"></a>{64}</span> hate those who
+are witnesses of a great weakness. Partly it is shame, partly vexation
+at oneself, partly pure egoism, but it is a fact that one’s anger turns
+instinctively upon those who have observed one’s degradation through
+one’s own weakness. This is so frequently the case that the witness is
+to be the more relied on the more the accused would seem to have
+preferred that the witness had not seen him. Insignificant people are
+not taken as real witnesses; they were there but they haven’t perceived
+anything; and by the time it comes to light that they see at least as
+well as anybody else, it is too late. One will not go far wrong in
+explaining the situation with the much varied epigram of Tacitus:
+“Figulus odit figulum.” It is, at least, through business-jealousy that
+one porter hates another, and the reason for it lies in the fact that
+two of a trade know each other’s weaknesses, that one always knows how
+the other tries to hide his lack of knowledge, how deceitful
+fundamentally every human activity is, and how much trouble everybody
+takes to make his own trade appear to the other as fine as possible. If
+you know, however, that your neighbor is as wise as you are, the latter
+becomes a troublesome witness in any disagreeable matter, and if he is
+often thought of in this way, he comes to be hated. Hence you must never
+be more cautious than when one “figulus” gives evidence about another.
+Esprit de corps and jealousy pull the truth with frightful force, this
+way and that, and the picture becomes the more distorted because
+so-called esprit de corps is nothing more than generalized selfishness.
+Kant<a name="FNanchor_86_86" id="FNanchor_86_86"></a><a href="#Footnote_86_86" class="fnanchor">[86]</a> is not saying enough when he says that the egoist is a person
+who always tries to push his own <i>I</i> forward and to make it the chief
+object of his own and of everybody else’s attention. For the person who
+merely seeks attention is only conceited; the egoist, however, seeks his
+own advantage alone, even at the cost of other people, and when he shows
+esprit de corps he desires the advantage of his corps because he also
+has a share in that. In this sense one of a trade has much to say about
+his fellow craftsmen, but because of jealousy, says too little&mdash;in what
+direction, however, he is most likely to turn depends on the nature of
+the case and the character of the witness.</p>
+
+<p>In most instances it will be possible to make certain distinctions as to
+when objectively too much and subjectively too little is said. That is
+to say, the craftsman will exaggerate with regard to all<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_065" id="page_065"></a>{65}</span> general
+questions, but with regard to his special fellow jealousy will establish
+her rights. An absolute distinction may never be drawn, not even
+subjectively. Suppose that A has something to say about his fellow
+craftsman B, and suppose that certain achievements of B are to be
+valued. If now A has been working in the same field as B he must not
+depreciate too much the value of B’s work, since otherwise his own work
+is in danger of the same low valuation. Objectively the converse is
+true: for if A bulls the general efficiency of his trade, it doesn’t
+serve his conceit, since we find simply that the competitor is in this
+way given too high a value. It would be inadvisable to give particular
+examples from special trades, but everybody who has before him one
+“figulus” after another, from the lowest to the highest professions, and
+who considers the statements they make about each other, will grant the
+correctness of our contention. I do not, at this point, either, assert
+that the matter is the same in each and every case, but that it is
+generally so is indubitable.</p>
+
+<p>There is still another thing to be observed. A good many people who are
+especially efficient in their trades desire to be known as especially
+efficient in some other and remote circle. It is historic that a certain
+regent was happy when his very modest flute-playing was praised; a poet
+was pleased when his miserable drawings were admired; a marshal wanted
+to hear no praise of his victories but much of his very doubtful
+declamation. The case is the same among lesser men. A craftsman wants to
+shine with some foolishness in another craft, and “the philistine is
+happiest when he is considered a devil of a fellow.” The importance of
+this fact lies in the possibility of error in conclusions drawn from
+what the subject himself tries to present about his knowledge and power.
+With regard to the past it leads even fundamentally honest persons to
+deception and lying.</p>
+
+<p>So for example a student who might have been the most solid and harmless
+in his class later makes suggestions that he was the wildest sport; the
+artist who tried to make his way during his cubhood most bravely with
+the hard-earned money of his mother is glad to have it known that he was
+guilty as a young man of unmitigated nonsense; and the ancient dame who
+was once the most modest of girls is tickled with the flattery of a
+story concerning her magnificent flirtations. When such a matter is
+important for us it must be received with great caution.</p>
+
+<p>To this class of people who want to appear rather more interesting than
+they are, either in their past or present, belong also those who<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_066" id="page_066"></a>{66}</span>
+declare that everything is possible and who have led many a judge into
+vexatious mistakes. This happens especially when an accused person tries
+to explain away the suspicions against him by daring statements
+concerning his great achievements (e.g.: in going back to a certain
+place, or his feats of strength, etc.), and when witnesses are asked if
+these are conceivable. One gets the impression in these cases that the
+witnesses under consideration suppose that they belittle themselves and
+their point of view if they think anything to be impossible. They are
+easily recognized. They belong to the worst class of promoters and
+inventors or their relations. If a man is studying how to pay the
+national debt or to solve the social question or to irrigate Sahara, or
+is inclined to discover a dirigible air-ship, a perpetual-motion
+machine, or a panacea, or if he shows sympathy for people so inclined,
+he is likely to consider everything possible&mdash;and men of this sort are
+surprisingly numerous. They do not, as a rule, carry their plans about
+in public, and hence have the status of prudent persons, but they betray
+themselves by their propensity for the impossible in all conceivable
+directions. If a man is suspected to be one of them, and the matter is
+important enough, he may be brought during the conversation to talk
+about some project or invention. He will then show how his class begins
+to deal with it, with what I might call a suspicious warmth. By that
+token you know the class. They belong to that large group of people who,
+without being abnormal, still have passed the line which divides the
+perfectly trustworthy from those unreliable persons who, with the best
+inclination to tell the truth, can render it only as it is distorted by
+their clouded minds.</p>
+
+<p>These people are not to be confused with those specific men of power
+who, in the attempt to show what they can do, go further than in truth
+they should. There are indeed persons of talent who are efficient, and
+know it, whether for good or evil, and they happen to belong both to the
+class of the accused and of the witness. The former show this quality in
+confessing to more than they are guilty of, or tell their story in such
+a way as to more clearly demonstrate both their power and their conceit.
+So that it may happen that a man takes upon himself a crime that he
+shares with three accomplices or that he describes a simple larceny as
+one in which force had to be used with regard to its object and even
+with regard to the object’s owner; or perhaps he describes his flight or
+his opponents’ as much more troublesome than these actually were or need
+have been. The witness behaves in a similar fashion and shows his
+defense<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_067" id="page_067"></a>{67}</span> against an attack for example, or his skill in discovery of his
+goods, or his detection of the criminal in a much brighter light than
+really belongs to it; he even may describe situations that were
+superfluous in order to show what he can do. In this way the simplest
+fact is often distorted. As suspects such people are particularly
+difficult to deal with. Aside from the fact that they do more and
+actually have done more than was necessary, they become unmanageable and
+hard-mouthed through unjust accusations. Concerning these people the
+statement made a hundred years ago by Ben David<a name="FNanchor_87_87" id="FNanchor_87_87"></a><a href="#Footnote_87_87" class="fnanchor">[87]</a> still holds:
+“Persecution turns wise people raw and foolish, and kindly and well
+disposed ones cruel and evil-intentioned.” There are often well disposed
+natures who, after troubles, express themselves in the manner described.
+It very frequently happens that suspects, especially those under arrest,
+alter completely in the course of time, become sullen, coarse,
+passionate, ill-natured, show themselves defiant and resentful to even
+the best-willed approach, and exhibit even a kind of courage in not
+offering any defense and in keeping silent. Such phenomena require the
+most obvious caution, for one is now dealing apparently with powerful
+fellows who have received injustice. Whether they are quite guiltless,
+whether they are being improperly dealt with, or for whatever reason the
+proper approach has not been made, we must go back, to proceed in
+another fashion, and absolutely keep in mind the possibility of their
+being innocent in spite of serious evidence against them.</p>
+
+<p>These people are mainly recognizable by their mode of life, their
+habitual appearance, and its expression. Once that is known their
+conduct in court is known. In the matter of individual features of
+character, the form of life, the way of doing things is especially to be
+observed. Many an effort, many a quality can be explained in no other
+way. The simple declaration of Volkmar, “There are some things that we
+want only because we had them once,” explains to the criminalist long
+series of phenomena that might otherwise have remained unintelligible.
+Many a larceny, robbery, possibly murder, many a crime springing from
+jealousy, many sexual offenses become intelligible when one learns that
+the criminal had at one time possessed the object for the sake of which
+he committed the crime, and having lost it had tried with irresistible
+vigor to regain it. What is extraordinary in the matter is the fact that
+considerable time passes between the loss and the desire for recovery.
+It seems as if the isolated moments of desire sum themselves up in the
+course<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_068" id="page_068"></a>{68}</span> of time and then break out as the crime. In such cases the
+explaining motive of the deed is never to be found except in the
+criminal’s past.</p>
+
+<p>The same relationship exists in the cases of countless criminals whose
+crimes seem at bottom due to apparently inconceivable brutality. In all
+such cases, especially when the facts do not otherwise make apparent the
+possible guilt of the suspect, the story of the crime’s development has
+to be studied. Gustav Struve asserts that it is demonstrable that young
+men become surgeons out of pure cruelty, out of desire to see people
+suffer pain and to cause pain. A student of pharmacy became a hangman
+for the same reason and a rich Dutchman paid the butchers for allowing
+him to kill oxen. If, then, one is dealing with a crime which points to
+<i>extraordinary</i> cruelty, how can one be certain about its motive and
+history without knowing the history of the criminal?</p>
+
+<p>This is the more necessary inasmuch as we may be easily deceived through
+apparent motives. “Inasmuch as in most capital crimes two or more
+motives work together, an ostensible and a concealed one,” says
+Kraus,<a name="FNanchor_88_88" id="FNanchor_88_88"></a><a href="#Footnote_88_88" class="fnanchor">[88]</a> “each criminal has at his command apparent motives which
+encourage the crime.” We know well enough how frequently the thief
+excuses himself on the ground of his need, how the criminal wants to
+appear as merely acting in self-defense during robberies, and how often
+the sensualist, even when he has misbehaved with a little child, still
+asserts that the child had seduced him. In murder cases even, when the
+murderer has confessed, we frequently find that he tries to excuse
+himself. The woman who poisons her husband, really because she wants to
+marry another, tells her story in such a way as to make it appear that
+she killed him because he was extraordinarily bad and that her deed
+simply freed the world of a disgusting object. As a rule the
+psychological aspect of such cases is made more difficult, by the reason
+that the subject has in a greater or lesser degree convinced himself of
+the truth of his statements and finally believes his reasons for excuse
+altogether or in part. And if a man believes what he says, the proof
+that the story is false is much harder to make, because psychological
+arguments that might be used to prove falsehood are then of no use. This
+is an important fact which compels us to draw a sharp line between a
+person who is obviously lying and one who does believe what he says. We
+have to discover the difference, inasmuch as the self-developed
+conviction of the truth of a story is never so<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_069" id="page_069"></a>{69}</span> deep rooted as the real
+conviction of truth. For that reason, the person who has convinced
+himself of his truth artificially, watches all doubts and objections
+with much greater care than a man who has no doubt whatever in what he
+says. The former, moreover, does not have a good conscience, and the
+proverb says truly, “a bad conscience has a fine ear.” The man knows
+that he is not dealing correctly with the thing and hence he observes
+all objections, and the fact that he does so observe, can not be easily
+overlooked by the examining officer.</p>
+
+<p>Once this fine hearing distinguishes the individual who really believes
+in the motive he plausibly offers the court, there is another indication
+(obviously quite apart from the general signs of deceit) that marks him
+further, and this comes to light when one has him speak about similar
+crimes of others in which the ostensible motive actually was present. It
+is said rightly, that not he is old who no longer commits youthful
+follies but he that no longer forgives them, and so not merely he is bad
+who himself commits evil but also he who excuses them in others. Of
+course, that an accused person should defend the naked deed as it is
+described in the criminal law is not likely for conceivable
+reasons&mdash;since certainly no robbery-suspect will sing a paean about
+robbers, but certainly almost anybody who has a better or a
+better-appearing motive for his crime, will protect those who have been
+guided by a similar motive in other cases. Every experiment shows this
+to be the case and then apparent motives are easily enough recognized as
+such.</p>
+
+<h5>(d) Somatic Character-Units.</h5>
+
+<h5>Section 14. (1) <i>General Considerations.</i></h5>
+
+<p>When we say that the inner condition of men implies some outer
+expression, it must follow that there are series of phenomena which
+especially mold the body in terms of the influence of a state of mind on
+external appearance, or conversely, which are significant of the
+influence of some physical uniqueness on the psychical state, or of some
+other psycho physical condition. As an example of the first kind one may
+cite the well known phenomenon that devotees always make an impression
+rather specifically feminine. As an example of the second kind is the
+fact demonstrated by Gyurkovechky<a name="FNanchor_89_89" id="FNanchor_89_89"></a><a href="#Footnote_89_89" class="fnanchor">[89]</a> that impotents exhibit
+disagreeable characteristics. Such conditions find their universalizing
+expression in the cruel but true maxim<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_070" id="page_070"></a>{70}</span> “Beware of the marked one.” The
+Bible was the first of all to make mention of these evil stigmata. No
+one of course asserts that the bearer of any bodily malformation is for
+that reason invested with one or more evil qualities&mdash;“Non cum hoc, sed
+propter hoc.” It is a general quality of the untrained, and hence the
+majority of men, that they shall greet the unfortunate who suffers from
+some bodily malformation not with care and protection, but with scorn
+and maltreatment. Such propensities belong, alas, not only to adults,
+but also to children, who annoy their deformed playfellows (whether
+expressly or whether because they are inconsiderate), and continually
+call the unhappy child’s attention to his deformity. Hence, there
+follows in most cases from earliest youth, at first a certain
+bitterness, then envy, unkindness, stifled rage against the fortunate,
+joy in destruction, and all the other hateful similar qualities however
+they may be named. In the course of time all of these retained bitter
+impressions summate, and the qualities arising from them become more
+acute, become habitual, and at last you have a ready-made person “marked
+for evil.” Add to this the indubitable fact that the marked persons are
+considerably wiser and better-instructed than the others. Whether this
+is so by accident or is causally established is difficult to say; but
+inasmuch as most of them are compelled just by their deformities to
+deprive themselves of all common pleasures and to concern themselves
+with their own affairs, once they have been fed to satiety with abuse,
+scorn and heckling, the latter is the more likely. Under such
+circumstances they have to think more, they learn more than the others
+to train their wits, largely as means of defense against physical
+attack. They often succeed by wit, but then, they can never be brought
+into a state of good temper and lovableness when they are required to
+defend themselves by means of sharp, biting and destructive wit.
+Moreover, if the deformed is naturally not well-disposed, other dormant
+evil tendencies develop in him, which might never have realized
+themselves if he had had no need of them for purposes of
+self-defense&mdash;lying, slander, intrigue, persecution by means of
+unpermitted instruments, etc. All this finally forms a determinate
+complex of phenomena which is undivorceably bound in the eyes of the
+expert with every species of deformity: the mistrusting of the deaf man,
+the menacing expression of the blind, the indescribable and therefore
+extremely characteristic smiling of the hump-back are not the only
+typical phenomena of this kind.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_071" id="page_071"></a>{71}</span></p>
+
+<p>All this is popularly known and is abnormally believed in, so that we
+often discover that the deformed are more frequently suspected of crime
+than normal people. Suspicion turns to them especially when an unknown
+criminal has committed a crime the accomplishment of which required a
+particularly evil nature and where the deed of itself called forth
+general indignation. In that case, once a deformed person is suspected,
+grounds of suspicion are not difficult to find; a few collect more as a
+rolling ball does snow. After that the sweet proverb: “Vox populi, vox
+dei,” drives the unfortunate fellow into a chaos of evidential grounds
+of suspicion which may all be reduced to the fact that he has red hair
+or a hump. Such events are frightfully frequent.<a name="FNanchor_90_90" id="FNanchor_90_90"></a><a href="#Footnote_90_90" class="fnanchor">[90]</a></p>
+
+<h5>Section 15. (2) <i>Causes of Irritation.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Just as important as these phenomena are the somatic results of psychic
+irritation. These latter clear up processes not to be explained by words
+alone and often over-valued and falsely interpreted. Irritations are
+important for two reasons: (1) as causes of crime, and (2) as signs of
+identification in examination.</p>
+
+<p>In regard to the first it is not necessary to show what crimes are
+committed because of anger, jealousy, or rage, and how frequently terror
+and fear lead to extremes otherwise inexplicable&mdash;these facts are partly
+so well known, partly so very numerous and various, that an exposition
+would be either superfluous or impossible. Only those phenomena will be
+indicated which lie to some degree on the borderland of the observed and
+hence may be overlooked. To this class belong, for example, anger
+against the object, which serves as explanation of a group of so-called
+malicious damages, such as arson, etc. Everybody, even though not
+particularly lively, remembers instances in which he fell into great and
+inexplicable rage against an object when the latter set in his way some
+special difficulties or caused him pain; and he remembers how he created
+considerable ease for himself by flinging it aside, tearing it or
+smashing it to pieces. When I was a student I owned a very old, thick
+Latin lexicon, “Kirschii cornu copia,” bound in wood covered with
+pig-skin. This respectable book flew to the ground whenever its master
+was vexed, and never failed profoundly to reduce the inner stress. This
+“Kirschius” was inherited from my great-grandfather and it did not
+suffer much damage. When, however, some poor apprentice tears the fence,
+on a nail of which his only coat got a bad tear, or<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_072" id="page_072"></a>{72}</span> when a young
+peasant kills the dog that barks at him menacingly and tries to get at
+his calf, then we come along with our “damages according to so and so
+much,” and the fellow hasn’t done any more than I have with my
+“Kirschius.”<a name="FNanchor_91_91" id="FNanchor_91_91"></a><a href="#Footnote_91_91" class="fnanchor">[91]</a> In the magnificent novel, “Auch Einer,” by F. T.
+Vischer, there is an excellent portrait of the perversity of things; the
+author asserts that things rather frequently hold ecumenical councils
+with the devil for the molestation of mankind.</p>
+
+<p>How far the perversity of the inanimate can lead I saw in a criminal
+case in which a big isolated hay-stack was set on fire. A traveler was
+going across the country and sought shelter against oncoming bad
+weather. The very last minute before a heavy shower he reached a
+hay-stack with a solid straw cover, crept into it, made himself
+comfortable in the hay and enjoyed his good fortune. Then he fell
+asleep, but soon woke again inasmuch as he, his clothes, and all the hay
+around him was thoroughly soaked, for the roof just above him was
+leaking. In frightful rage over this “evil perversity,” he set the stack
+on fire and it burned to the ground.</p>
+
+<p>It may be said that the fact of the man’s anger is as much a motive as
+any other and should have no influence on the legal side of the
+incident. Though this is quite true, we are bound to consider the crime
+and the criminal as a unit and to judge them so. If under such
+circumstances we can say that this unit is an outcome natural to the
+character of mankind, and even if we say, perhaps, that we might have
+behaved similarly under like circumstances, if we really cannot find
+something absolutely evil in the deed, the criminal quality of it is
+throughout reduced. Also, in such smaller cases the fundamental concept
+of modern criminology comes clearly into the foreground: “not the crime
+but the criminal is the object of punishment, not the concept but the
+man is punished.” (Liszt).</p>
+
+<p>The fact of the presence of a significant irritation is important for
+passing judgment, and renders it necessary to observe with the most
+thorough certainty how this irritation comes about. This is the more
+important inasmuch as it becomes possible to decide whether the
+irritation is real or artificial and imitated. Otherwise, however, the
+meaning of the irritation can be properly valued only when its
+development can be held together step by step with its causes. Suppose I
+let the suspect know the reason of suspicion brought by his enemies,
+then if his anger sensibly increases with the presentation of each new
+ground, it appears much more natural<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_073" id="page_073"></a>{73}</span> and real than if the anger
+increased in inexplicable fashion with regard to less important reasons
+for suspicion and developed more slowly with regard to the more
+important ones.</p>
+
+<p>The collective nature of somatic phenomena in the case of great
+excitement has been much studied, especially among animals, these being
+simpler and less artificial and therefore easier to understand, and in
+the long run comparatively like men in the expression of their emotions.
+Very many animals, according to Darwin, erect their hair or feathers or
+quills in cases of anxiety, fear, or horror, and nowadays, indeed,
+involuntarily, in order to exhibit themselves as larger and more
+terrible. The same rising of the hair even to-day plays a greater role
+among men than is generally supposed. Everybody has either seen in
+others or discovered in himself that fear and terror visibly raise the
+hair. I saw it with especial clearness during an examination when the
+person under arrest suddenly perceived with clearness, though he was
+otherwise altogether innocent, in what great danger he stood of being
+taken for the real criminal. That our hair rises in cases of fear and
+horror without being visible is shown, I believe, in the well known
+movement of the hand from forehead to crown. It may be supposed that the
+hair rises at the roots invisibly but sensibly and thus causes a mild
+tickling and pricking of the scalp which is reduced by smoothing the
+head with the hand. This movement, then, is a form of involuntary
+scratching to remove irritation. That such a characteristic movement is
+made during examination may therefore be very significant under certain
+circumstances. Inasmuch as the process is indubitably an influence of
+the nerves upon the finer and thinner muscle-fibers, it must have a
+certain resemblance to the process by which, as a consequence of fear,
+horror, anxiety, or care, the hair more or less suddenly turns white.
+Such occurrences are in comparatively large numbers historical; G.
+Pouchet<a name="FNanchor_92_92" id="FNanchor_92_92"></a><a href="#Footnote_92_92" class="fnanchor">[92]</a> counts up cases in which hair turned white suddenly, (among
+them one where it happened while the poor sinner was being led to
+execution). Such cases do not interest us because, even if the accused
+himself turned grey over night, no evidence is afforded of guilt or
+innocence. Such an occurrence can be evidential only when the hair
+changes color demonstrably in the case of a witness. It may then be
+certainly believed that he had experienced something terrible and aging.
+But whether he had really experienced this, or merely believed that he
+had experienced it, can as yet not be discovered, since the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_074" id="page_074"></a>{74}</span> belief and
+the actual event have the same mental and physical result.</p>
+
+<p>Properly to understand the other phenomena that are the result of
+significant irritation, their matrix, their aboriginal source must be
+studied. Spencer says that fear expresses itself in cries, in hiding,
+sobbing and trembling, all of which accompany the discovery of the
+really terrible; while the destructive passions manifest themselves in
+tension of the muscles, gritting of the teeth, extending the claws: all
+weaker forms of the activity of killing. All this, aboriginally
+inherited from the animals, occurs in rather less intense degrees in
+man, inclusive of baring the claws, for exactly this movement may often
+be noticed when somebody is speaking with anger and vexation about
+another person and at the same time extends and contracts his fingers.
+Anybody who does this even mildly and unnoticeably means harm to the
+person he is talking about. Darwin indeed, in his acutely observing
+fashion, has also called attention to this. He suggests that a man may
+hate another intensely, but that so long as his anatomy is not affected
+he may not be said to be enraged. This means clearly that the somatic
+manifestations of inner excitement are so closely bound up with the
+latter that we require the former whenever we want to say anything about
+the latter. And it is true that we never say that a man was enraged or
+only angry, if he remained physically calm, no matter how noisy and
+explicit he might have been with words. This is evidence enough of the
+importance of noticing bodily expression. “How characteristic,” says
+Volkmar<a name="FNanchor_93_93" id="FNanchor_93_93"></a><a href="#Footnote_93_93" class="fnanchor">[93]</a> “is the trembling and heavy breathing of fear, the glowering
+glance of anger, the choking down of suppressed vexation, the stifling
+of helpless rage, the leering glance and jumping heart of envy.” Darwin
+completes the description of fear: The heart beats fast, the features
+pale, he feels cold but sweats, the hair rises, the secretion of saliva
+stops, hence follows frequent swallowing, the voice becomes hoarse,
+yawning begins, the nostrils tremble, the pupils widen, the constrictor
+muscles relax. Wild and very primitive people show this much more
+clearly and tremble quite uncontrolled. The last may often be seen and
+may indeed be established as a standard of culture and even of character
+and may help to determine how far a man may prevent the inner irritation
+from becoming externally noticeable. Especially he who has much to do
+with Gypsies is aware how little these people can control themselves.
+From this fact also spring the numerous<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_075" id="page_075"></a>{75}</span> anecdotes concerning the wild
+rulers of uncultivated people, who simply read the guilt of the suspect
+from his external behavior, or even more frequently were able to select
+the criminal with undeceivable acuteness from a number brought before
+them. Bain<a name="FNanchor_94_94" id="FNanchor_94_94"></a><a href="#Footnote_94_94" class="fnanchor">[94]</a> narrates that in India criminals are required to take
+rice in the mouth and after awhile to spit it out. If it is dry the
+accused is held to be guilty&mdash;fear has stopped the secretion of
+saliva&mdash;obstupui, stetetuntque comae, et vox faucibus haesit.</p>
+
+<p>Concerning the characteristic influence of timidity see Paul
+Hartenberg.<a name="FNanchor_95_95" id="FNanchor_95_95"></a><a href="#Footnote_95_95" class="fnanchor">[95]</a></p>
+
+<p>Especially self-revealing are the outbreaks of anger against oneself,
+the more so because I believe them always to be evidence of
+consciousness of guilt. At least, I have never yet seen an innocent man
+fall into a paroxysm of rage against himself, nor have I ever heard that
+others have observed it, and I would not be able psychologically to
+explain such a thing should it happen. Inasmuch as scenes of this kind
+can occur perceivably only in the most externalized forms of anger, so
+such an explosion is elementary and cannot possibly be confused with
+another. If a man wrings his hands until they bleed, or digs his
+finger-nails into his forehead, nobody will say that this is anger
+against himself; it is only an attempt to do something to release
+stored-up energy, to bring it to bear against somebody. People are
+visibly angry against themselves only when they do such things to
+themselves as they might do to other people; for example, beating,
+smashing, pulling the hair, etc. This is particularly frequent among
+Orientals who are more emotional than Europeans. So I saw a Gypsy run
+his head against a wall, and a Jew throw himself on his knees, extend
+his arms and box his ears with both hands so forcibly that the next day
+his cheeks were swollen. But other races, if only they are passionate
+enough, behave in a similar manner. I saw a woman, for example, tear
+whole handfuls of hair from her head, a murdering thief, guilty of more
+or fewer crimes, smash his head on the corner of a window, and a
+seventeen year old murderer throw himself into a ditch in the street,
+beat his head fiercely on the earth, and yell, “Hang me! Pull my head
+off!”</p>
+
+<p>The events in all these cases were significantly similar: the crime was
+so skilfully committed as conceivably to prevent the discovery of the
+criminal; the criminal denied the deed with the most glaring<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_076" id="page_076"></a>{76}</span> impudence
+and fought with all his power against conviction&mdash;in the moment,
+however, he realized that all was lost, he exerted his boundless rage
+against himself who had been unable to oppose any obstacle to conviction
+and who had not been cautious and sly enough in the commission of the
+crime. Hence the development of the fearful self-punishment, which could
+have no meaning if the victim had felt innocent.</p>
+
+<p>Such expressions of anger against oneself often finish with fainting.
+The reason of the latter is much less exhaustion through paroxysms of
+rage than the recognition and consciousness of one’s own helplessness.
+Reichenbach<a name="FNanchor_96_96" id="FNanchor_96_96"></a><a href="#Footnote_96_96" class="fnanchor">[96]</a> once examined the reason for the fainting of people in
+difficult situations. It is nowadays explained as the effect of the
+excretion of carbonic acid gas and of the generated anthropotoxin;
+another explanation makes it a nervous phenomenon in which the mere
+recognition that release is impossible causes fainting, the loss of
+consciousness. For our needs either account of this phenomenon will do
+equally. It is indifferent whether a man notices that he cannot
+voluntarily change his condition in a physical sense, or whether he
+notices that the evidence is so convincing that he can not dodge it. The
+point is that if for one reason or another he finds himself physically
+or legally in a bad hole, he faints, just as people in novels or on the
+stage faint when there is no other solution of the dramatic situation.</p>
+
+<p>When anger does not lead to rage against oneself, the next lower stage
+is laughter.<a name="FNanchor_97_97" id="FNanchor_97_97"></a><a href="#Footnote_97_97" class="fnanchor">[97]</a> With regard to this point, Darwin calls attention to
+the fact that laughter often conceals other mental conditions than those
+it essentially stands for&mdash;anger, rage, pain, perplexity, modesty and
+shame; when it conceals anger it is anger against oneself, a form of
+scorn. This same wooden, dry laughter is significant, and when it arises
+from the perception that the accused no longer sees his way out, it is
+not easily to be confused with another form of laughter. One gets the
+impression that the laughter is trying to tell himself, “That is what
+you get for being bad and foolish!”</p>
+
+<h5>Section 16. (3) <i>Cruelty.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Under this caption must be placed certain conditions that may under
+given circumstances be important. Although apparently without any
+relations to each other they have the common property of being external
+manifestations of mental processes.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_077" id="page_077"></a>{77}</span></p>
+
+<p>In many cases they are explanations which may arise from the observation
+of the mutative relations between cruelty, bloodthirstiness, and
+sensuality. With regard to this older authors like Mitchell,<a name="FNanchor_98_98" id="FNanchor_98_98"></a><a href="#Footnote_98_98" class="fnanchor">[98]</a>
+Blumröder,<a name="FNanchor_99_99" id="FNanchor_99_99"></a><a href="#Footnote_99_99" class="fnanchor">[99]</a> Friedreich,<a name="FNanchor_100_100" id="FNanchor_100_100"></a><a href="#Footnote_100_100" class="fnanchor">[100]</a> have brought examples which are still of
+no little worth. They speak of cases in which many people, not alone
+men, use the irritation developed by greater or lesser cruelty for
+sexual purposes: the torturing of animals, biting, pinching, choking the
+partner, etc. Nowadays this is called sadism.<a name="FNanchor_101_101" id="FNanchor_101_101"></a><a href="#Footnote_101_101" class="fnanchor">[101]</a> Certain girls narrate
+their fear of some of their visitors who make them suffer unendurably,
+especially at the point of extreme passion, by biting, pressing, and
+choking. This fact may have some value in criminology. On the one hand,
+certain crimes can be explained only by means of sexual cruelty, and on
+the other, knowledge of his habits with this regard may, again, help
+toward the conviction of a criminal. I recall only the case of
+Ballogh-Steiner in Vienna, a case in which a prostitute was stifled. The
+police were at that time hunting a man who was known in the quarter as
+“chicken-man,” because he would always bring with him two fowls which he
+would choke during the orgasm. It was rightly inferred that a man who
+did that sort of thing was capable under similar circumstances of
+killing a human being. Therefore it will be well, in the examination of
+a person accused of a cruel crime, not to neglect the question of his
+sexual habits; or better still, to be sure to inquire particularly
+whether the whole situation of the crime was not sexual in nature.<a name="FNanchor_102_102" id="FNanchor_102_102"></a><a href="#Footnote_102_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a></p>
+
+<p>In this connection, deeds that lead to cruelty and murder often involve
+forms of epilepsy. It ought therefore always to be a practice to consult
+a physician concerning the accused, for cruelty, lust, and psychic
+disorders are often enough closely related. About this matter Lombroso
+is famous for the wealth of material he presents.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 17. (4) <i>Nostalgia.</i></h5>
+
+<p>The question of home-sickness is of essential significance and must not
+be undervalued. It has been much studied and the notion has been reached
+that children mainly (in particular during the period of puberty), and
+idiotic and weak persons, suffer much from home-sickness, and try to
+combat the oppressive feeling of dejection<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_078" id="page_078"></a>{78}</span> with powerful sense stimuli.
+Hence they are easily led to crime, especially to arson. It is asserted
+that uneducated people in lonesome, very isolated regions, such as
+mountain tops, great moors, coast country, are particularly subject to
+nostalgia. This seems to be true and is explained by the fact that
+educated people easily find diversion from their sad thoughts and in
+some degree take a piece of home with them in their more or less
+international culture. In the same way it is conceivable that
+inhabitants of a region not particularly individualized do not so easily
+notice differences. Especially he who passes from one city to another
+readily finds himself, but mountain and plain contain so much that is
+contrary that the feeling of strangeness is overmastering. So then, if
+the home-sick person is able, he tries to destroy his nostalgia through
+the noisiest and most exciting pleasures; if he is not, he sets fire to
+a house or in case of need, kills somebody&mdash;in short what he needs is
+explosive relief. Such events are so numerous that they ought to have
+considerable attention. Nostalgia should be kept in mind where no proper
+motive for violence is to be found and where the suspect is a person
+with the above-mentioned qualities. Then again, if one discovers that
+the suspect is really suffering from home-sickness, from great
+home-sickness for his local relations, one has a point from which the
+criminal may be reached. As a rule such very pitiful individuals are so
+less likely to deny their crime in the degree in which they feel unhappy
+that their sorrow is not perceivably increased through arrest. Besides
+that, the legal procedure to which they are subjected is a not
+undesired, new and powerful stimulus to them.</p>
+
+<p>When such nostalgiacs confess their deed they never, so far as I know,
+confess its motive. Apparently they do not know the motive and hence
+cannot explain the deed. As a rule one hears, “I don’t know why, I had
+to do it.” Just where this begins to be abnormal, must be decided by the
+physician, who must always be consulted when nostalgia is the ground for
+a crime. Of course it is not impossible that a criminal in order to
+excite pity should explain his crime as the result of unconquerable
+home-sickness&mdash;but that must always be untrue because, as we have shown,
+anybody who acts out of home-sickness, does not know it and can not tell
+it.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 18. (5) <i>Reflex Movements.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Reflex actions are also of greater significance than as a rule they are
+supposed to be. According to Lotze,<a name="FNanchor_103_103" id="FNanchor_103_103"></a><a href="#Footnote_103_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a> “reflex actions are not<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_079" id="page_079"></a>{79}</span>
+limited to habitual and insignificant affairs of the daily life. Even
+compounded series of actions which enclose the content even of a crime
+may come to actuality in this way ... in a single moment in which the
+sufficient opposition of some other emotional condition, the enduring
+intensity of emotion directed against an obstacle, or the clearness of a
+moving series of ideas is lacking. The deed may emerge from the image of
+itself without being caused or accompanied by any resolve of the doer.
+Hearings of criminals are full of statements which point to such a
+realization of their crimes, and these are often considered
+self-exculpating inventions, inasmuch as people fear from their truth a
+disturbance or upsetting of the notions concerning adjudication and
+actionability. The mere recognition of that psychological fact alters
+the conventional judgment but little; the failure in these cases
+consists in not having prevented that automatic transition of images
+into actions, a transition essentially natural to our organism which
+ought, however, like so many other things, to be subjected to power of
+the will.” Reflex movements require closer study.<a name="FNanchor_104_104" id="FNanchor_104_104"></a><a href="#Footnote_104_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a> The most numerous
+and generally known are: dropping the eyelids, coughing, sneezing,
+swallowing, all involuntary actions against approaching or falling
+bodies; then again the patellar reflex and the kremaster reflex, etc.
+Other movements of the same kind were once known and so often practised
+that they became involuntary.<a name="FNanchor_105_105" id="FNanchor_105_105"></a><a href="#Footnote_105_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a> Hence, for example, the foolish
+question how a person believed to be disguised can be recognized as man
+or woman. The well known answer is: let some small object fall on his
+lap; the woman will spread her limbs apart because she is accustomed to
+wear a dress in which she catches the object; the man will bring his
+limbs together because he wears trousers and is able to catch the object
+only in this way. There are so many such habitual actions that it is
+difficult to say where actual reflexes end and habits begin. They will
+be properly distinguished when the first are understood as single
+detached movements and the last as a continuous, perhaps even
+unconscious and long-enduring action. When I, for example, while
+working, take a cigar, cut off the end, light it, smoke, and later am
+absolutely unaware that I have done this, what has occurred is certainly
+not a reflex but a habitual action. The latter does not belong to this
+class in which are to be grouped only such as practically bear a
+defensive character. As examples of how such movements may have
+criminological significance only one’s own<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_080" id="page_080"></a>{80}</span> experience may be cited
+because it is so difficult to put oneself at the point of view of
+another. I want to consider two such examples. One evening I passed
+through an unfrequented street and came upon an inn just at the moment
+that an intoxicated fellow was thrown out, and directly upon me. At the
+very instant I hit the poor fellow a hard blow on the ear. I regretted
+the deed immediately, the more so as the assaulted man bemoaned his
+misfortune, “inside they throw him out, outside they box his ears.”
+Suppose that I had at that time burst the man’s ear-drum or otherwise
+damaged him heavily. It would have been a criminal matter and I doubt
+whether anybody would have believed that it was a “reflex action,”
+though I was then, as to-day, convinced that the action was reflex. I
+didn’t in the least know what was going to happen to me and what I
+should do. I simply noticed that something unfriendly was approaching
+and I met it with a defensive action in the form of an upper-cut on the
+ear. What properly occurred I knew only when I heard the blow and felt
+the concussion of my hand. Something similar happened to me when I was a
+student. I had gone into the country hunting before dawn, when some one
+hundred paces from the house, right opposite me a great ball rolled down
+a narrow way. Without knowing what it was or why I did it I hit at the
+ball heavily with an alpenstock I carried in my hand, and the thing
+emerged as two fighting tomcats with teeth fixed in each other. One of
+them was my beloved possession, so that I keenly regretted the deed, but
+even here I had not acted consciously; I had simply smashed away because
+something unknown was approaching me. If I had then done the greatest
+damage I could not have been held responsible&mdash;<i>if</i> my explanation were
+allowed; but <i>that</i> it would have been allowed I do not believe in this
+case, either.</p>
+
+<p>A closer examination of reflex action requires consideration of certain
+properties, which in themselves cannot easily have criminal
+significance, but which tend to make that significance clearer. One is
+the circumstance that there are reflexes which work while you sleep.
+That we do not excrete during sleep depends on the fact that the faeces
+pressing in the large intestine generates a reflexive action of the
+constrictors of the rectum. They can be brought to relax only through
+especially powerful pressure or through the voluntary relaxation of
+one’s own constrictors.</p>
+
+<p>The second suggestive circumstance is the fact that even habitual
+reflexes may under certain conditions, especially when a particularly
+weighty different impression comes at the same time, not<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_081" id="page_081"></a>{81}</span> take place. It
+is a reflex, for example, to withdraw the hand when it feels pain, in
+spite of the fact that one is so absorbed with another matter as to be
+unaware of the whole process; but if interest in this other matter is so
+sufficiently fixed as to make one forget, as the saying goes, the whole
+outer world, the outer impression of pain must have been very intense in
+order to awaken its proper reflex. The attention may, however, not be
+disturbed at all and yet the reflex may fail. If we suppose that a
+reflex action is one brought about through the excitement of an afferent
+sensory nerve which receives the stimulation and brings it to the center
+from which the excitement is transferred to the motor series
+(Landois<a name="FNanchor_106_106" id="FNanchor_106_106"></a><a href="#Footnote_106_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a>), we exclude the activity of the brain. But this exclusion
+deals only with conscious activity and the direct transition through the
+reflex center can happen successfully only because the brain has been
+consciously at work innumerable times, so that it is coöperating in the
+later cases also without our knowing it. When, however, the brain is
+brought into play through some other particularly intense stimuli, it is
+unable to contribute that unconscious cöoperation and hence the reflex
+action is not performed. On this point I have, I believe, an instructive
+and evidential example. One of my maids opened a match-box pasted with
+paper at the corner by tearing the paper along the length of the box
+with her thumb-nail. Apparently the box was over-filled or the action
+was too rapidly made, for the matches flamed up explosively and the
+whole box was set on fire. What was notable was the fact that the girl
+threw the box away neither consciously nor instinctively; she shrieked
+with fright and kept the box in her hand. At her cry my son rushed in
+from another room, and only after he had shouted as loudly as possible,
+“Throw it away, drop it,” did she do so. She had kept the burning thing
+in her hand long enough to permit my son to pass from one room into
+another, and her wound was so serious that it needed medical treatment
+for weeks. When asked why she kept the burning box in her hand in spite
+of really very terrible pain she simply declared that “she didn’t think
+of it,” though she added that when she was told to throw the thing away
+it just occurred to her that that would be the wisest of all things to
+do. What happened then was obviously this: fear and pain so completely
+absorbed the activity of the brain that it was not only impossible for
+it consciously to do the right thing, it was even unable to assist in
+the unconscious execution of the reflex.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_082" id="page_082"></a>{82}</span></p>
+
+<p>This fact suggests that the sole activity of the spinal cord does not
+suffice for reflexes, since if it did, those would occur even when the
+brain is otherwise profoundly engaged. As they do not so occur the brain
+also must be in play. Now this distinction is not indifferent for us;
+for if we hold that the brain acts during reflexes we have to grant the
+possibility of degrees in its action. Thus where brain activity is in
+question, the problem of responsibility also arises, and we must hold
+that wherever a reflex may be accepted as the cause of a crime the
+subject of the degree of punishment must be taken exceptionally into
+account. It is further to be noted that as a matter of official
+consideration the problem of the presence of reflexes ought to be
+studied, since it rarely occurs that a man says, “It was purely a reflex
+action.” He says, perhaps, “I don’t know how it happened,” or, “I
+couldn’t do otherwise,” or he denies the whole event because he really
+was not aware how it happened. That the questions are here difficult,
+both with regard to the taking of evidence, and with regard to the
+judgment of guilt, is obvious,&mdash;and it is therefore indifferent whether
+we speak of deficiency in inhibition-centers or of ill-will<a name="FNanchor_107_107" id="FNanchor_107_107"></a><a href="#Footnote_107_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a> and
+malice.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 19. (6) <i>Dress.</i></h5>
+
+<p>It is easy to write a book on the significance of a man’s clothes as the
+expression of his inner state. It is said that the character of a woman
+is to be known from her shoe, but actually the matter reaches far beyond
+the shoe, to every bit of clothing, whether of one sex or the other. The
+penologist has more opportunity than any one else to observe how people
+dress, to take notes concerning the wearer, and finally to correct his
+impressions by means of the examination. In this matter one may lay down
+certain axioms. If we see a man whose coat is so patched that the
+original material is no longer visible but the coat nowhere shows a
+hole; if his shirt is made of the very coarsest and equally patched
+material but is clean; and if his shoes are very bad but are whole and
+well polished, we should consider him and his wife as honest people,
+without ever making an error. We certainly see very little wisdom in our
+modern painfully attired “sports,” we suspect the suggestively dressed
+woman of some little disloyalty to her husband, and we certainly expect
+no low inclinations from the lady dressed with intelligent, simple
+respectability. If a man’s general appearance is correct it<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_083" id="page_083"></a>{83}</span> indicates
+refinement and attention to particular things. Anybody who considers
+this question finds daily new information and new and reliable
+inferences. Anyway, everybody has a different viewpoint in this matter,
+a single specific detail being convincing to one, to another only when
+taken in connection with something else, and to a third when connected
+with still a third phenomenon. It may be objected that at least detailed
+and prolonged observations are necessary before inferences should be
+drawn from the way of dressing, inasmuch as a passing inclination,
+economic conditions, etc., may exert no little influence by compelling
+an individual to a specific choice in dress. Such influence is not
+particularly deep. A person subject to a particular inclination may be
+sufficiently self-exhibiting under given circumstances, and that he was
+compelled by his situation to dress in one way rather than another is
+equally self-evident. Has anybody seen an honest farm hand wearing a
+worn-out evening coat? He may wear a most threadbare, out-worn
+sheep-skin, but a dress-coat he certainly would not buy, even if he
+could get it cheap, nor would he take it as a gift. He leaves such
+clothes to others whose shabby elegance shows at a glance what they are.
+Consider how characteristic are the clothes of discharged soldiers, of
+hunters, of officials, etc. Who fails to recognize the dress of a real
+clerical, of democrats, of conservative-aristocrats? Their dress is
+everywhere as well defined as the clothing of Englishmen, Frenchmen,
+Germans, and Americans, formed not by climatic conditions but by
+national character in a specific and quite unalterable way. Conceit,
+carelessness, cleanliness, greasiness, anxiety, indifference,
+respectability, the desire to attract attention and to be original, all
+these and innumerable similar and related qualities express themselves
+nowhere so powerfully and indubitably as in the way people wear their
+clothes. And not all the clothes together; many a time a single item of
+dress betrays a character.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 20. (7) <i>Physiognomy and Related Subjects.</i></h5>
+
+<p>The science of physiognomy belongs to those disciplines which show a
+decided variability in their value. In classical times it was set much
+store by, and Socrates, Plato, Aristotle, and Pythagoras were keenly
+interested in its doctrines. Later on it was forgotten, was studied in
+passing when Baptista Porta wrote a book about human physiognomy, and
+finally, when the works of Lavater<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_084" id="page_084"></a>{84}</span> and the closely related ones of Gall
+appeared, the science came for a short time into the foreground.
+Lavater’s well known monograph<a name="FNanchor_108_108" id="FNanchor_108_108"></a><a href="#Footnote_108_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a> excited great attention in his day
+and brought its author enthusiastic admiration. How much Goethe was
+interested in it is indicated in the popular book by Von der Hellen and
+the exchange of letters between Goethe and Lavater. If Lavater had not
+brought the matter into relation with his mystical and apodictic manner,
+if he had made more observations and fewer assertions, his fame would
+have endured longer and he would have been of some use to the science;
+as it was it soon slipped from people’s minds and they turned to the
+notorious phrenology of Gall. Gall, who to some degree had worked with
+his friend Spurzheim, committed the same error in his works<a name="FNanchor_109_109" id="FNanchor_109_109"></a><a href="#Footnote_109_109" class="fnanchor">[109]</a> as
+Lavater, inasmuch as he lost himself in theories without scientific
+basis, so that much that was indubitably correct and indicative in his
+teaching was simply overlooked. His meaning was twice validated, once
+when B. v. Cotta<a name="FNanchor_110_110" id="FNanchor_110_110"></a><a href="#Footnote_110_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a> and R. R. Noel<a name="FNanchor_111_111" id="FNanchor_111_111"></a><a href="#Footnote_111_111" class="fnanchor">[111]</a> studied it intensively and
+justly assigned him a considerable worth; the second tune when Lombroso
+and his school invented the doctrine of criminal stigmata, the best of
+which rests on the postulates of the much-scorned and only now studied
+Dr. Gall. The great physiologist J. Müller declared: “Concerning the
+general possibility of the principles of Gall’s system no a priori
+objections can be made.” Only recently were the important problems of
+physiognomy, if we except the remarkable work by Schack,<a name="FNanchor_112_112" id="FNanchor_112_112"></a><a href="#Footnote_112_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a>
+scientifically dealt with. The most important and significant book is
+Darwin’s,<a name="FNanchor_113_113" id="FNanchor_113_113"></a><a href="#Footnote_113_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a> then the system of Piderit<a name="FNanchor_114_114" id="FNanchor_114_114"></a><a href="#Footnote_114_114" class="fnanchor">[114]</a> and Carus’s
+“Symbolik,”<a name="FNanchor_115_115" id="FNanchor_115_115"></a><a href="#Footnote_115_115" class="fnanchor">[115]</a> all of them being based upon the earlier fundamental
+work of the excellent English anatomist and surgeon, Bell.<a name="FNanchor_116_116" id="FNanchor_116_116"></a><a href="#Footnote_116_116" class="fnanchor">[116]</a> Other
+works of importance are those of LeBrun, Reich, Mantegazza, Dr.
+Duchenne, Skraup, Magnus, Gessmann, Schebest, Engel, Schneider, K.
+Michel, Wundt, C. Lange, Giraudet, A. Mosso, A. Baer, Wiener, Lotze,
+Waitz, Lelut, Monro, Heusinger, Herbart, Comte, Meynert, Goltz, Hughes,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_085" id="page_085"></a>{85}</span>
+Borée,<a name="FNanchor_117_117" id="FNanchor_117_117"></a><a href="#Footnote_117_117" class="fnanchor">[117]</a> etc. The present status of physiognomics is, we must say, a
+very subordinate one. Phrenology is related to physiognomics as the bony
+support of the skull to its softer ones, and as a man’s physiognomy
+depends especially upon the conformation of his skull, so physiognomics
+must deal with the forms of the skull. The doctrine of the movement of
+physiognomy is mimicry. But physiognomics concerns itself with the
+features of the face taken in themselves and with the changes which
+accompany the alterations of consciousness, whereas mimicry deals with
+the voluntary alterations of expression and gesture which are supposed
+to externalize internal conditions. Hence, mimicry interests primarily
+actors, orators, and the ordinary comedians of life. Phrenology remains
+the research of physicians, anthropologists and psychologists, so that
+the science of physiognomy as important in itself is left to us lawyers.
+Its value as a discipline is variously set. Generally it is asserted
+that much, indeed, fails to be expressed by the face; that what does
+show, shows according to no fixed rules; that hence, whatever may be
+read in a face is derivable either instinctively by oneself or not at
+all. Or, it may be urged, the matter can not be learned.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_086" id="page_086"></a>{86}</span> Such
+statements, as ways of disposing of things, occur regularly wherever
+there is a good deal of work to do; people do not like to bother with
+troublesome problems and therefore call them worthless. But whoever is
+in earnest and is not averse to a little study will get much benefit
+from intensive application to this discipline in relation to his
+profession.</p>
+
+<p>The right of physiognomies to the status of an independent science is to
+some degree established in the oft-repeated dictum that whatever is
+valid in its simplest outline must be capable of extension and
+development. No man doubts that there are intelligent faces and foolish
+ones, kind ones and cruel ones, and if this assertion is admitted as it
+stands it must follow that still other faces may be distinguished so
+that it is possible to read a certain number of spiritual qualities from
+the face. And inasmuch as nobody can indicate the point at which this
+reading of features must cease, the door is opened to examination,
+observation and the collection of material. Then, if one bewares of
+voluntary mistakes, of exaggeration and unfounded assertion, if one
+builds only upon actual and carefully observed facts, an important and
+well-grounded discipline must ensue.</p>
+
+<p>The exceptionally acute psychiatrist Meynert shows<a name="FNanchor_118_118" id="FNanchor_118_118"></a><a href="#Footnote_118_118" class="fnanchor">[118]</a> how
+physiognomics depends on irradiation and parallel images. He shows what
+a large amount of material having physiognomical contents we keep in
+mind. Completely valueless as are the fixed forms by which mankind
+judges the voluntary acts of its individual members, they point to the
+universal conclusion that it is proper to infer from the voluntary acts
+of a person whose features correspond to those of another the voluntary
+acts of the other. One of Hans Virchow’s very detailed physiognomical
+observations concerning the expression of interest in the eyes by means
+of the pupil, has very considerable physiognomical value. The pupil, he
+believes, is the gate through which our glance passes into the inner
+life of our neighbor; the psychical is already close at hand with the
+word “inner.” How this occurs, why rather this and not another muscle is
+innervated in the development of a certain process, we do not know, but
+our ignorance does not matter, since ultimately a man might split his
+head thinking why we do not hear with our eyes and see with our ears.
+But to some extent we have made observable progress in this matter. As
+far back as 1840 J. Müller<a name="FNanchor_119_119" id="FNanchor_119_119"></a><a href="#Footnote_119_119" class="fnanchor">[119]</a> wrote: “The reasons are unknown why
+various psychoses make use of different groups of nerves or why<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_087" id="page_087"></a>{87}</span> certain
+facial muscles are related to certain passions.” Gratiolet<a name="FNanchor_120_120" id="FNanchor_120_120"></a><a href="#Footnote_120_120" class="fnanchor">[120]</a> thought
+it necessary forty years ago to deny that muscles were developed merely
+for the purpose of expression. Almost contemporaneously Piderit knew
+that expressive muscular movements refer partly to imaginary objects and
+partly to imaginary sense impressions. In this fact lies the key to the
+meaning of all expressive muscular movements. Darwin’s epoch-making book
+on the expressions of the emotions finally established the matter so
+completely and firmly, that we may declare ourselves in possession of
+enough material for our purpose to make it possible to carry our studies
+further. The study of this book of Darwin’s I believe absolutely
+necessary to each criminalist&mdash;for he meets in every direction,
+expositions and explanations that are related to cases he has already
+experienced in practice or is sure to experience. I present here only a
+few of Darwin’s most important notes and observations in order to
+demonstrate their utility for our purpose.</p>
+
+<p>As subjects for study he recommends children because they permit forms
+of expression to appear vigorously and without constraint; lunatics,
+because they are subject to strong passions without control; galvanized
+persons, in order to facilitate the muscles involved, and finally, to
+establish the identity of expression among all races of men and beasts.
+Of these objects only children are important for our purpose. The others
+either are far removed from our sphere of activity, or have only
+theoretic value. I should, however, like to add to the subjects of
+observation another, viz., the simple unstudied persons, peasants and
+such otherwise unspoiled individuals whom we may believe innocent of all
+intention to play a comedy with us. We can learn much from such people
+and from children. And it is to be believed that in studying them we are
+studying not a special class but are establishing a generally valid
+paradigm of the whole of mankind. Children have the same features as
+adults, only clearer and simpler. For, suppose we consider any one of
+Darwin’s dicta,&mdash;e.g., that in the expression of anger and indignation
+the eyes shine, respiration becomes more rapid and intense, the nostrils
+are somewhat raised, the look misses the opponent,&mdash;these so intensely
+characteristic indices occur equally in the child and the adult. Neither
+shows more or fewer, and once we have defined them in the child we have
+done it for the adult also. Once the physiognomy of children and simple
+people has been studied,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_088" id="page_088"></a>{88}</span> the further study of different kinds of people
+is no longer difficult; there is only the intentional and customary
+masking of expression to look out for; for the rest, the already
+acquired principles, mutandis mutatis, are to be used.</p>
+
+<p>Darwin posits three general principles on which most expressions and
+gestures are to be explained. They are briefly:</p>
+
+<p>I. The principle of purposeful associated habits.</p>
+
+<p>II. The principle of contradication.</p>
+
+<p>III. The principle of the direct activity of the nervous system.</p>
+
+<p>With regard to the first. When, in the course of a long series of
+generations, any desire, experience, or disinclination, etc., has led to
+some voluntary action, then, as often as the same or any analogous
+associated experience is undergone, there will arise a tendency to the
+realization of a similar action. This action may no longer have any use
+but is inherited and generally becomes a mere reflex.</p>
+
+<p>This becomes clearer when one notices how often habit facilitates very
+complex action:&mdash;the habits of animals; the high steps of horses; the
+pointing of pointers; the sucking of calves, etc. It is difficult for us
+in falling to make opposite movements to stretching out the arms, even
+in bed; we draw on our gloves unconsciously. Gratiolet says: “Whoever
+energetically denies some point, etc., shuts his eyes; if he assents he
+nods and opens his eyes wide. Whoever describes a terrible thing shuts
+his eyes and shakes his head; whoever looks closely raises his
+eye-brows. In the attempt to think the same thing is done or the
+eye-brows are contracted&mdash;both make the glance keener. Thence follows
+the reflex activity.”</p>
+
+<p>With regard to the second. Dogs who are quarrelling with cats assume the
+appearance of battle&mdash;if they are kindly-minded they do the opposite,
+although this serves no purpose. M. Taylor<a name="FNanchor_121_121" id="FNanchor_121_121"></a><a href="#Footnote_121_121" class="fnanchor">[121]</a> says, that the gesture
+language of the Cistercians depends considerably on antithesis; e.g.,
+shrugging the shoulders is the opposite of firmness, immovability.</p>
+
+<p>With regard to the direct activity of the nervous system, examples are
+paling, trembling (fear, terror, pain, cold, fever, horror, joy),
+palpitation of the heart, blushing, perspiring, exertion of strength,
+tears, pulling the hair, urinating, etc. With these subdivisions it will
+be possible to find some thoroughfare and to classify every phenomenon.</p>
+
+<p>We want to discuss a few more particulars in the light of Darwin’s<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_089" id="page_089"></a>{89}</span>
+examples. He warns us, first of all, against seeing<a name="FNanchor_122_122" id="FNanchor_122_122"></a><a href="#Footnote_122_122" class="fnanchor">[122]</a> certain muscle
+movements as the result of emotional excitement, because they were
+looked for. There are countless habits, especially among the movements
+of the features, which happen accidentally or as the result of some
+passing pain and which have no significance. Such movements are often of
+the greatest clearness, and do not permit the unexperienced observer to
+doubt that they have important meanings, although they have no relation
+whatever to any emotional condition. Even if it is agreed only to depend
+on changes of the whole face, already established as having a definite
+meaning, there is still danger of making mistakes, because well
+accredited facial conditions may occur in another way (as matters of
+habit, nervous disturbances, wounds, etc.). Hence in this matter, too,
+care and attention are required; for if we make use of any one of the
+Darwinian norms, as, for example, that the eyes are closed when we do
+not want to see a thing or when we dislike it, we still must grant that
+there are people to whom it has become habitual to close their eyes
+under other and even opposed conditions.</p>
+
+<p>We must grant that, with the exception of such cases, the phenomena are
+significant during examinations, as when we show the accused a very
+effective piece of evidence, (e.g.: a comparison of hand-writings which
+is evidential,) and he closes his eyes. The act is then characteristic
+and of importance, particularly when his words are intended to contest
+the meaning of the object in question. The contradiction between the
+movement of his eyes and his words is then suggestive enough. The same
+occurs when the accused is shown the various possibilities that lie
+before him&mdash;the movement of the examination, the correlations and
+consequences. If he finds them dangerous, he closes his eyes. So with
+witnesses also; when one of them, e.g., deposes to more, and more
+harmfully, than according to our own notion he can explain, he will
+close his eyes, though perhaps for an instant only, if the inevitable
+consequences of his deposition are expounded to him. If he closes his
+eyes he has probably said too much, and the proper moment must not be
+missed to appeal to his conscience and to prevent more exaggerated and
+irresponsible assertions.</p>
+
+<p>This form of closing the eyes is not to be confused with the
+performances of persons who want to understand the importance of their
+depositions and to collect their senses, or who desire to review<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_090" id="page_090"></a>{90}</span> the
+story mentally and consider its certainty. These two forms of closing
+the eyes are different: the first, which wants to shut out the
+consequences of testimony, is much shorter; the latter longer, because
+it requires a good deal of time to collect one’s senses and to consider
+a problem. The first, moreover, is accompanied by a perceivable
+expression of fear, while the latter is manifest only by its duration;
+what is most important is a characteristic contemporary and perceivable
+defensive movement of the hand, and this occurs only in the cases where
+the desire is to exclude. This movement occurs even among very
+phlegmatic persons, and hence is comparatively reliable; it is not made
+by people who want undisturbedly to study a question and to that end
+shut their eyes.</p>
+
+<p>In a similar way there is significance in the sudden closing of the
+mouth by either the accused or the witness. Resolution and the shutting
+of the mouth are inseparable; it is as impossible to imagine a
+vacillating, doubting person with lips closely pressed together, as a
+firm and resolute person with open mouth. The reason implies Darwin’s
+first law: that of purposeful associated habits. When a man firmly
+resolves upon some deed the resolution begins immediately to express
+itself in movements which are closely dependent upon bodily actions.
+Even when I suddenly resolve to face some correctly-supposed
+disagreeable matter, or to think about some joyless thing, a bodily
+movement, and indeed quite an energetic one, will ensue upon the
+resolution&mdash;I may push my chair back, raise my elbows, perhaps put my
+head quickly between my hands, push the chair back again, and then begin
+to look or to think. Such actions, however, require comparatively little
+bodily exertion; much more follows on different types of resolutions&mdash;in
+short, a firm resolution requires a series of movements immediately to
+follow its being made. And if we are to move the muscles must be
+contracted. And it is, of course, obvious that only those muscles can be
+set in action which are, according to the immediate situation of the
+body, free to move. If we are sitting down, for example, we can not
+easily make our feet conform to the movement of a march forward; nor can
+we do much with the thighs, hence the only muscles we can use are those
+of the face and of the upper limbs. So then, the mouth is closed because
+its muscles are contracted, and with equal significance the arms are
+thrust outward sharply, the fist clenched, and the forearm bent. Anybody
+may try the experiment for himself by going through the actions
+enumerated and seeing whether he does not become filled<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_091" id="page_091"></a>{91}</span> with a sense of
+resolution. It is to be especially observed, as has already been
+indicated, that not only are mental states succeeded by external
+movements, but imitated external movements of any kind awaken, or at
+least plainly suggest, their correlated mental states.</p>
+
+<p>If, then, we observe in any person before us the signs of resolution we
+may certainly suppose that they indicate a turn in what he has said and
+what he is going to say. If they be observed in the accused, then he has
+certainly resolved to pass from denial to confession, or to stick to his
+denial, or to confess or keep back the names of his accomplices, the
+rendezvous, etc. Inasmuch as in action there is no other alternative
+than saying or not saying so, it might be supposed that there is nothing
+important in the foregoing statement; the point of importance lies,
+however, in the fact that a <i>definite</i> resolution has been reached of
+which the court is aware and from which a departure will hardly be made.
+Therefore, what follows upon the resolution so betrayed, we cannot
+properly perceive; we know only that it in all likelihood consists of
+what succeeds it, i.e. the accused either confesses to something, or has
+resolved to say nothing. And that observation saves us additional labor,
+for he will not easily depart from his resolution.</p>
+
+<p>The case is analogous with regard to the witness who tells no truth or
+only a part of the truth. He reveals the marks of resolution upon
+deciding finally to tell the truth or to persist in his lying, and so,
+whatever he does after the marks of resolution are noted, we are saved
+unnecessary effort to make the man speak one way or another.</p>
+
+<p>It is particularly interesting to watch for such expressions of
+resolution in jurymen, especially when the decision of guilt or
+innocence is as difficult as it is full of serious consequences. This
+happens not rarely and means that the juryman observed is clear in his
+own mind as to how he is going to vote. Whatever testimony may succeed
+this resolution is then indifferent. The resolved juryman is so much the
+less to be converted, as he usually either pays no more attention to the
+subsequent testimony, or hears it in such prejudiced fashion that he
+sees everything in his own way. In this case, however, it is not
+difficult to tell what the person in question has decided upon. If the
+action we now know follows a very damaging piece of testimony, the
+defendant is condemned thereby; if it follows excusive testimony he is
+declared innocent. Anybody who studies the matter may observe that these
+manifestations are<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_092" id="page_092"></a>{92}</span> made by a very large number of jurymen with
+sufficient clearness to make it possible to count the votes and predict
+the verdict. I remember vividly in this regard a case that occurred many
+years ago. Three men, a peasant and his two sons, were accused of having
+killed an imbecile who was supposed to have boarded in their house. The
+jury unanimously declared them guiltless, really because of failure, in
+spite of much effort, to find the body of the victim. Later a new
+witness appeared, the case was taken up again, and about a year after
+the first trial, a second took place. The trial consumed a good many
+days, in which the three defendants received a flood of anonymous
+letters which called attention mostly to the fact that there was in such
+and such a place an unknown imbecile woman who might be identical with
+the ostensible murdered person. For that reason the defendant appealed
+for a postponement of the trial or immediate liberation. The prosecutor
+of the time fought the appeal but held that so far as the case went (and
+it was pretty bad for the prosecution), the action taken with regard to
+the appeal was indifferent. “The mills of the gods grind slowly,” he
+concluded in his oration; “a year from now I shall appear before the
+jury.” The expression of this rock-bound conviction that the defendants
+were guilty, on the part of a man who, because of his great talent, had
+tremendous influence on juries, caused an astounding impression. The
+instant he said it one could see in most of the jurymen clearest signs
+of absolute resolution and the defendants were condemned from that
+moment.</p>
+
+<p>Correlated with the signs of resolution are those of astonishment. “The
+hands are raised in the air,” says Darwin, “and the palm is laid on the
+mouth.” In addition the eyebrows are regularly raised, and people of not
+too great refinement beat their foreheads and in many cases there occurs
+a slight, winding movement of the trunk, generally toward the left. The
+reason is not difficult to find. We are astonished when we learn
+something which causes an inevitable change in the familiar course of
+events. When this occurs the hearer finds it necessary, if events are
+simple, properly to get hold of it. When I hear that a new Niebelungen
+manuscript has been discovered, or a cure for leprosy, or that the South
+Pole has been reached, I am astonished, but immediate conception on my
+part is altogether superfluous. But that ancient time in which our
+habitual movements came into being, and which has endured longer,
+incomparably longer than our present civilization, knew nothing whatever
+of these interests of the modern civilized human being.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_093" id="page_093"></a>{93}</span> What astonished
+people in those days were simple, external, and absolutely direct
+novelties: that a flood was coming, that game was near the camp, that
+inimical tribes had been observed, etc.&mdash;in short, events that required
+immediate action. From this fact spring our significant movements which
+must hence be perceivably related to the beginning of some necessary
+action. We raise our hands when we want to jump up; we elevate our
+eyebrows when we look up, to see further into the distance; we slap our
+foreheads in order to stimulate the muscles of our legs, dormant because
+of long sitting; we lay the palms of our hands on our mouths and turn
+the trunk because we discover in the course of life rather more
+disagreeable than pleasant things and hence we try to keep them out and
+to turn away from them. And astonishment is expressed by any and all of
+these contradictory movements.</p>
+
+<p>In law these stigmata are significant when the person under examination
+ought to be astonished at what is told him but for one reason or another
+does not want to show his astonishment. This he may hide in words, but
+at least one significant gesture will betray him and therefore be of
+considerable importance in the case. So, suppose that we present some
+piece of evidence from which we expect great results; if they do not
+come we may perhaps have to take quite another view of the whole case.
+It is hence important not to be fooled about the effect, and that can be
+accomplished only through the observation of the witnesses’ gestures,
+these being much more rarely deceptive than words.</p>
+
+<p>Scorn manifests itself in certain nasal and oral movements. The nose is
+contracted and shows creases. In addition you may count the so-called
+sniffing, spitting, blowing as if to drive something away; folding the
+arms, and raising the shoulders. The action seems to be related to the
+fact that among savage people, at least, the representation of a
+worthless, low and despicable person is brought into relation with the
+spread of a nasty odor: the Hindoo still says of a man he scorns, “He is
+malodorous.” That our ancestors thought similarly, the movement of the
+nose, especially raising it and blowing and sniffing, makes evident. In
+addition there is the raising of the shoulders as if one wanted to carry
+the whole body out of a disgusting atmosphere&mdash;the conduct, here, is
+briefly the conduct of the proud. If something of the sort is observable
+in the behavior of a witness it will, as a rule, imply something good
+about him: the accused denies thereby his identity with the criminal, or
+he has no other way of indicating the testimony of some damaging<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_094" id="page_094"></a>{94}</span>
+witness as slander, or he marks the whole body of testimony, with this
+gesture, as a web of lies.</p>
+
+<p>The case is similar when a witness so conducts himself and expresses
+scorn. He will do the latter when the defendant or a false witness for
+the defense accuses him of slander, when indelicate motives are ascribed
+to him, or earlier complicity with the criminal, etc. The situations
+which give a man opportunity to show that he despises anybody are
+generally such as are to the advantage of the scorner. They are
+important legally because they not only show the scorner in a good light
+but also indicate that the scorn must be studied more closely. It is, of
+course, naturally true that scorn is to a great degree simulated, and
+for that reason the gestures in question must be attentively observed.
+Real scorn is to be distinguished from artificial scorn almost always by
+the fact that the latter is attended by unnecessary smiling. It is
+popularly and correctly held that the smile is the weapon of the silent.
+That kind of smile appears, however, only as defense against the less
+serious accusations, or perhaps even more serious ones, but obviously
+never when evil consequences attendant on serious accusations are
+involved. If indubitable evil is in question, no really innocent person
+smiles, for he scorns the person he knows to be lying and manifests
+other gestures than the smile. Even the most confused individual who is
+trying to conceal his stupidity behind a flat sort of laughter gives
+this up when he is so slandered that he is compelled to scorn the liar;
+only the simulator continues to smile. If, however, anybody has
+practised the manifestation of scorn he knows that he is not to smile,
+but then his pose becomes theatrical and betrays itself through its
+exaggeration.</p>
+
+<p>Not far from scorn are defiance and spite. They are characterized by
+baring the canine teeth and drawing together the face in a frown when
+turning toward the person upon whom the defiance or spite is directed. I
+believe that this image has got to be variously filled out by the
+additional fact that the mouth is closed and the breath several times
+forced sharply through the nostrils. This arises from the combination of
+resolution and scorn, these being the probable sources of defiance and
+spite. As was explained in the discussion of resolution, the mouth is
+bound to close; spite and defiance are not thinkable with open mouth.
+Scorn, moreover, demands, as we have shown, this blowing, and if the
+blowing is to be done while the mouth is closed it must be done through
+the nose.</p>
+
+<p>Derision and depreciation show the same expressions as defiance<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_095" id="page_095"></a>{95}</span> and
+spite, but in a lesser degree. They all give the penologist a good deal
+to do, and those defendants who show defiance and spite are not unjustly
+counted as the most difficult we have to deal with. They require, above
+all, conscientious care and patience, just indeed because not rarely
+there are innocents among them. This is especially so when a person many
+times punished is accused another time, perhaps principally because of
+his record. Then the bitterest defiance and almost childish spite takes
+possession of him against “persecuting” mankind, particularly if, for
+the nonce, he is innocent. Such persons turn their spite upon the judge
+as the representative of this injustice and believe they are doing their
+best by conducting themselves in an insulting manner and speaking only a
+few defiant words with the grimmest spite. Under such circumstances it
+is not surprising that the inexperienced judge considers these
+expressions as the consequences of a guilty conscience, and that the
+spiteful person may blame himself for the results of his defiant
+conduct. He therefore pays no more attention to the unfortunate. How
+this situation may lead to an unjust sentence is obvious. But whether
+the person in question is guilty or not guilty, it is the undeniable
+duty of the judge to make especial efforts with such persons, for
+defiance and spite are in most cases the result of embitterment, and
+this again comes from the disgusting treatment received at the hands of
+one’s fellows. And it is the judge’s duty at least not to increase this
+guilt if he can not wipe it away. The only, and apparently the simplest,
+way of dealing with such people is the patient and earnest discussion of
+the case, the demonstration that the judge is ready carefully to study
+all damaging facts, and even a tendency to refer to evidence of
+innocence in hand, and a not over-energetic discussion of the man’s
+possible guilt. In most cases this will not be useful at the beginning.
+The man must have time to think the thing over, to conceive in the
+lonely night that it is not altogether the world’s plan to ruin him.
+Then when he begins to recognize that he will only hurt himself by his
+spiteful silence if he is again and again examined he will finally be
+amenable. Once the ice is broken, even those accused who at the
+beginning showed only spite and defiance, show themselves the most
+tractable and honest. The thing needful above all is patience.</p>
+
+<p>Real rage, unfortunately, is frequent. The body is carried erect or
+thrown forward, the limbs become stiff, mouth and teeth closely press
+together, the voice becomes very loud or dies away or grows hoarse, the
+forehead is wrinkled and the pupil of the eye contracted;<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_096" id="page_096"></a>{96}</span> in addition
+one should count the change of color, the flush or deep pallor. An
+opportunity to simulate real rage is rare, and anyway the
+characteristics are so significant that a mistake in recognition can
+hardly be made. Darwin says that the conviction of one’s own guilt is
+from time to time expressed through a sparkling of the eyes, and through
+an undefinable affectation. The last is well known to every penologist
+and explicable in general psychological terms. Whoever knows himself to
+be guiltless behaves according to his condition, naturally and without
+constraint: hence the notion that naïve people are such as represent
+matters as they are. They do not find anything suspicious in them
+because they do not know about suspicious matters. But persons who know
+themselves guilty and try not to show it, must attain their end through
+artifice and imitation, and when this is not well done the affectation
+is obvious.</p>
+
+<p>There is also something in the guilty sparkle of the eye. The sparkle in
+the eyes of beauty, the glance of joy, of enthusiasm, of rapture, is not
+so poetical as it seems, inasmuch as it is no more than intensified
+secretion of tears. The latter gets its increase through nervous
+excitation, so that the guilty sparkle should also be of the same
+nature. This may be considered as in some degree a flow of tears in its
+first stages.</p>
+
+<p>An important gesture is that of resignation, which expresses itself
+especially as folding the hands in one’s lap. This is one of the most
+obvious gestures, for “folding the hands in the lap” is proverbial and
+means there is no more to be done. The gesture signifies, therefore,
+“I’m not going to do any more, I can’t, I won’t.” Hence it must be
+granted that the condition of resignation and its gesture can have no
+significance for our own important problem, the problem of guilt,
+inasmuch as the innocent as well as the guilty may become resigned, or
+may reach the limit at which he permits everything to pass without his
+interference. In the essence and expression of resignation there is the
+abandonment of everything or of some particular thing, and in court,
+what is abandoned is the hope to show innocence, and as the latter may
+be real as well as merely pleaded, this gesture is a definite sign in
+certain cases. It is to be noted among the relations and friends of a
+defendant who, having done everything to save him, recognize that the
+evidence of guilt is irrefutable. It is again to be noticed among
+courageous lawyers who, having exerted all their art to save their
+clients, perceive the failure of their efforts. And finally, the
+defendants show it, who<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_097" id="page_097"></a>{97}</span> have clearly recognized the danger of their
+case. I believe that it is not an empirical accident that the gesture of
+resignation is made regularly by innocent persons. The guilty man who
+finds himself caught catches at his head perhaps, looks toward heaven
+gritting his teeth, rages against himself, or sinks into a dull apathy,
+but the essential in resignation and all its accompanying movements is
+foreign to him. Only that conforms to the idea of resignation which
+indicates a surrender, the cession of some value that one has a claim
+on&mdash;if a man has no claim to any given thing he can not resign it. In
+the same way, a person without right to guiltlessness and recognition,
+will instinctively not surrender it with the emotion of resignation, but
+at most with despair or anger or rage. And it is for this reason that
+the guilty do not exhibit gestures of resignation.</p>
+
+<p>The contraction of the brow occurs in other cases besides those
+mentioned. Before all it occurs when anything is dealt with intensively,
+increasing with the increase of the difficulty of the subject. The
+aboriginal source of this gesture lies in the fact that intensive
+activities involve the need of acuter vision, and this is in some degree
+acquired by the contraction of the skin of the forehead above the
+eyebrows; for vision is clarified in this way. Intensive consideration
+on the part of a defendant or a witness, and the establishment of its
+reality or simulation, are significant in determining whether he himself
+believes the truth of what is about to be explained. Let us suppose that
+the issue involves proving an alibi on a certain definite, rather remote
+day, and the defendant is required to think over his whereabouts on that
+day. If he is in earnest with regard to the establishment of his alibi,
+i.e. if he really was not there and did not do the thing, it will be
+important for him to remember the day in question and to be able to name
+the witnesses of his whereabouts then. Hence he will think intensively.
+But if he has claimed an alibi dishonestly, as is frequent with
+criminals, in order to make people conclude that nobody has the right to
+demand where and for how long a time he was on such and such a day, then
+there is no need of thinking closely about something that has not
+happened. He exhibits in such cases a kind of thoughtfulness, which is
+not, however, earnest and profound: and these two adjectives describe
+<i>real</i> consideration. The same observations are to be made in regard to
+dishonest witnesses who, when pressed to think hard, only simulate doing
+so. One is compelled at the very least to look closely after the witness
+who simply imitates intensive<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_098" id="page_098"></a>{98}</span> thinking without showing the signs proper
+to it. The suspicion of false testimony is then justifiable.</p>
+
+<p>A rather different matter is that blank expression of the eyes which
+only shows that its possessor is completely lost in his thoughts&mdash;this
+has nothing to do with sharp recollection and demands above all things
+being let alone or the belief of being so. In this case no
+distinguishing gestures are made, though the forehead, mouth or chin may
+be handled, only, however, when embarrassment occurs&mdash;i.e. when the man
+observes that he is being watched, or when he discovers that he has
+forgotten the presence of other people. It is supposed that this does
+not occur in court, but it does happen not infrequently when, for
+example, the judge, after some long discussion with the accused, is
+about to dictate what has been said. If this takes rather a long time,
+it may chance that the witness is no longer listening but is staring
+vacantly into the distance. He is then reviewing his whole life or the
+development and consequences of his deed. He is absorbed in a so-called
+intuitive thought, in the reproduction of events. Intensive
+consideration requires the combination of particulars and the making of
+inferences; hence the form of thinking we have just been speaking of is
+merely spiritual sight-seeing. It is when this takes place that
+confessions are most easy to get, if only the judge keeps his eyes
+properly open.</p>
+
+<p>That contraction of the brow signifies a condition of disgust is well
+known, but there is yet, as I believe, a still other use of this
+contraction&mdash;i.e. its combination with a smile, indicating disbelief.
+How this union occurred seems comparatively undiscoverable&mdash;perhaps it
+results from the combination of the smile of denial with the frown of
+sharp observation. But the gesture is, in any event, reliable, and may
+not easily stand for anything but disbelief and doubt. Hence it is
+always a mistake to believe that anybody who makes that expression
+believes what he has heard. If you test it experimentally you will find
+that when you make it you say involuntarily to yourself: “Well now, that
+can’t be true,” or “Look here, that’s a whopper!” or something like
+that. The expression occurs most frequently in confronting witnesses
+with defendants and especially witnesses with each other.</p>
+
+<p>The close relation of the contraction of the brow with its early stage,
+a slight elevation of the eyebrows, is manifest in the fact that it
+occurs under embarrassment&mdash;not very regularly but almost always upon
+the perception of something foreign and inexplicable, or upon getting
+twisted in one’s talk; in fact, upon all such conditions<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_099" id="page_099"></a>{99}</span> which require
+greater physical and psychical clearness of vision, and hence the
+shutting out of superfluous light. The expression may be important on
+the face of a defendant who asserts,&mdash;e.g.&mdash;that he does not understand
+an argument intended to prove his guilt. If he is guilty he obviously
+knows what happened in the commission of the crime and thereby the
+argument which reproduces it, and even if he assures the court a hundred
+times that he does not understand it, he is either trying to show
+himself innocent or wants to gain time for his answer. If he is innocent
+it may be that he really does not understand the argument because he is
+unaware of the actual situation. Hence he will frown and listen
+attentively at the very beginning of the argument. The guilty person
+perhaps also aims to appear enormously attentive, but he does not
+contract his brow, because he does not need to sharpen his glance; he
+knows the facts accurately enough without it. It is important for the
+penologist to know whether a man has in the course of his life undergone
+much anxiety and trouble, or whether he has lived through it carelessly.
+Concerning these matters Darwin points out that when the inner ends of
+the eyebrows are raised certain muscles have to be contracted (i.e. the
+circular ones which contract the eyebrows and the pyramidal muscle of
+the nose, which serve both to pull down and contract the eyelids). The
+contraction is accomplished through the vigorous drawing together of the
+central bundle of muscles at the brow. These muscles, by contracting,
+raise the inner ends of the brow, and since the muscles which contract
+the eyebrows bring them together at the same time, their inner ends are
+folded in great lumpy creases. In this way short oblique, and short
+perpendicular furrows are made. Now this, few people can do without
+practice; many can never perform it voluntarily, and it is more frequent
+among women and children than among men. It is important to note that it
+is always a sign of spiritual pain, not physical. And curiously enough
+it is as a rule related with drawing down the corners of the mouth.</p>
+
+<p>Further to study the movements of the features will require an
+examination into the reasons for the action of these, and not other
+muscles, as accompaniments of the psychical states. Piderit holds it is
+due to the fact that the motor nerves which supply these muscles rise
+right next to the purely psychical centers and hence these muscles are
+the supports of the organs of sense. The latter is no doubt correct, but
+the first statement is rather doubtful. In any event it is evident that
+the features contain an exceptionally large number<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_100" id="page_100"></a>{100}</span> of fine muscles with
+especially rich motor capacity, and hence move together and in
+accordance with the psychical conditions. It may be that the other
+muscles of the body have also a share in this but that we fail to
+perceive the fact. Such movements, however, have not been essential.</p>
+
+<p>We may take it as a general rule that all joyous and uplifting emotions
+(even astonishment) are succeeded by the raising of the skin of the
+forehead, the nostrils, the eyes, the eyelids, while sad and oppressing
+emotions have the contrary effect. This simple and easy rule renders
+immediately intelligible many an otherwise obscure expression which we
+find important but concerning the meaning of which we are in doubt. The
+development of a movement in any face goes, according to Harless,<a name="FNanchor_123_123" id="FNanchor_123_123"></a><a href="#Footnote_123_123" class="fnanchor">[123]</a>
+in this fashion: “The superior motor nerve is the oculomotorius. The
+stimulation reaches this one first&mdash;the mildest alteration of emotion
+betrays itself most rapidly in the look, the movement and condition of
+the pupil of the eye. If the impulse is stronger it strikes the roots of
+the motor end of the trigeminus and the movement of the muscles of
+mastication occur; then the intensified affection spreads through the
+other features.” Nobody will, of course, assert that even a completely
+developed physiognomical science will help us over all our difficulties,
+but with a little attention it can help us to a considerable degree.
+This help we do need, as La Rochefoucauld points out, with even
+contemporary correctness, “It is easier to know men than to know a
+particular man.”</p>
+
+<h5>Section 21. (8) <i>The Hand.</i></h5>
+
+<p>The physiognomy of the hand stands close to that of the face in
+significance and is in some relations of even greater importance,
+because the expression of the hand permits of no, or very slight,
+simulation. A hand may be rendered finer or coarser, may be rendered
+light or dark, the nails may be cared for or allowed to develop into
+claws. The appearance of the hand may be altered, but not its
+physiognomy or character. Whoever creases his face in the same way for a
+thousand times finally retains the creases and receives from them a
+determinate expression even if this does not reveal his inner state; but
+whoever does the same thing a thousand times with his hand does not
+thereby impress on it a means of identification. The frequent Tartuffian
+rolling of the eyes finally gives the face a pious or at least pietistic
+expression, but fold your hands in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_101" id="page_101"></a>{101}</span> daily prayer for years and nobody
+would discover it from them. It seems, however, of little use to know
+that human hands can not be disguised, if they are little or not at all
+differentiated; but as it happens they are, next to the face, the most
+extremely and profoundly differentiated of human organs; and a general
+law teaches us that different effects are produced by different causes,
+and that from the former the latter may be inferred. If then we observe
+the infinite variety of the human hand we have to infer an equally
+infinite variety of influences, and inasmuch as we cannot trace these
+influences any further we must conclude that they are to be explained
+causally by the infinite variety of psychical states.</p>
+
+<p>Whoever studies the hand psychologically gains in the course of time a
+great deal of faith in what the hand tells him. And finally he doubts it
+only when chirognomy conflicts with physiognomy. If in such cases it is
+observed that the hand is more likely to be correct than the face, and
+that inferences from the hand more rarely show themselves to be false,
+one is reminded of the dictum of Aristotle, “The hand is the organ of
+organs, the instrument of instruments in the human body.” If this is
+correct, the favored instrument must be in the closest kind of relation
+with the psyche of the owner, but if this relation exists there must be
+an interaction also. If the hand contained merely its physical
+structure, Newton would never have said, “Other evidence lacking, the
+thumb would convince me of God’s existence.”</p>
+
+<p>How far one ought to establish fundamental propositions in this matter,
+I can not easily say. Perhaps it would be scientifically most correct to
+be satisfied for the time with collecting the carefully and keenly
+observed material and getting the anatomists, who are already in need of
+material for professional investigations, to take the matter up; in
+collecting photographs of hands belonging to persons whose characters
+are well known and in getting a sufficient number of properly equipped
+persons to make the collection. If we had enough material to draw
+fundamental principles from, much that has been asserted by Bell, Carus,
+D’Arpentigny, Allen, Gessmann, Liersch, Landsberg,<a name="FNanchor_124_124" id="FNanchor_124_124"></a><a href="#Footnote_124_124" class="fnanchor">[124]</a> etc., might be
+proved and tested. But their statements<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_102" id="page_102"></a>{102}</span> are still subject to
+contradiction because their fundamental principles are not sufficient
+for the development of a system. Probably nobody will doubt some of the
+more common statements; all will grant with Winkelmann that a beautiful
+hand is in keeping with a beautiful soul; or with Balzac that people of
+considerable intellect have handsome hands, or in calling the hand man’s
+second face. But when specific co-ordinations of the hand are made these
+meet with much doubt. So for example, Esser<a name="FNanchor_125_125" id="FNanchor_125_125"></a><a href="#Footnote_125_125" class="fnanchor">[125]</a> calls the <i>elementary</i>
+hand essentially a work hand, the <i>motor</i> essentially a masculine hand,
+having less soul and refinement of character than will and
+purposefulness. So again the <i>sensitive</i> hand implies generally a
+sanguine character, and the <i>psychic</i> hand presents itself as the
+possession of beautiful souls and noble spirits.</p>
+
+<p>However true this classification may be, the establishment and
+description of the various significatory signs is very difficult,
+especially because the forms named rarely appear in clear and sharply
+defined subdivisions. The boundaries are fluid, like the characters
+themselves, and where the properties of one group pass almost directly
+into the other, both description and recognition are difficult. If,
+then, we can not depend upon a systematic, and at present remote
+treatment, we still may depend on well-founded observations which appear
+as reliable presuppositions in the light of their frequent repetition.</p>
+
+<p>Not essentially psychological but of importance for the criminalist are
+the inferences we may draw from Herbert Spencer’s assertion that people
+whose ancestors have worked with their hands possess heavy hands.
+Conversely, people whose ancestors have not worked hard with their hands
+possess small and fine hands. Hence the small delicate hands of Jews,
+the frequent perfection of form and invariable smallness of the hands of
+Gypsies, who have inherited their hands from high-cast Hindoos, and the
+so-called racial hands of real aristocrats. That hard work, even
+tumbling, piano playing, etc., should alter the form of a hand is
+self-evident, since muscles grow stronger with practice and the skin
+becomes coarser and drawn through friction, sharp wind and insufficient
+care. As is well known, physical properties are hereditary and
+observable in any study of races; is it any wonder that a skilled glance
+at a man’s hand may uncover a number of facts concerning the
+circumstances of his life? Nobody doubts that there are raw, low,
+sensual, fat hands. And who does not know the suffering, spiritual,
+refined, and delicate<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_103" id="page_103"></a>{103}</span> hand? Hands cannot of course be described and
+distinguished according to fixed classification, and no doubt Hellenbach
+was right when he said, “Who can discover the cause of the magic charm
+which lies in one out of a hundred thousand equally beautiful hands?”</p>
+
+<p>And this is remarkable because we are not fooled through a well cared
+for, fine and elegant hand. Everybody, I might say, knows the convincing
+quality that may lie in the enormous leathery fist of a peasant. For
+that, too, is often harmoniously constructed, nicely articulated,
+appears peaceful and trustworthy. We feel that we have here to do with a
+man who is honest, who presents himself and his business as they are,
+who holds fast to whatever he once gets hold of, and who understands and
+is accustomed to make his words impressive. And we gain this conviction,
+not only through the evidence of honest labor, performed through years,
+but also through the stability and determination of the form of his
+hands. On the other hand, how often are we filled with distrust at the
+sight of a carefully tended, pink and white hand of an elegant
+gentleman&mdash;whether because we dislike its condition or its shape, or
+because the form of the nails recalls an unpleasant memory, or because
+there is something wrong about the arrangement of the fingers, or
+because of some unknown reason. We are warned, and without being
+hypnotised, regularly discover that the warning is justified. Certain
+properties are sure to express themselves: coldness, prudence, hardness,
+calm consideration, greed, are just as indubitable in the hand as
+kindness, frankness, gentleness, and honesty.</p>
+
+<p>The enchantment of many a feminine hand is easily felt. The surrender,
+the softness, the concession, the refinement and honesty of many a woman
+is so clear and open that it streams out, so to speak, and is
+perceivable by the senses.</p>
+
+<p>To explain all this, to classify it scientifically and to arrange it
+serially, would be, nowadays at least, an unscientific enterprise. These
+phenomena pass from body to body and are as reliable as inexplicable.
+Who has never observed them, and although his attention has been called
+to them, still has failed to notice them, need not consider them, but
+persons believing in them must be warned against exaggeration and haste.
+The one advice that can be given is to study the language of the hand
+before officially ignoring it; not to decide immediately upon the value
+of the observations one is supposed to have made, but to handle them
+cautiously and to test them with later experiences. It is of especial
+interest to trace<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_104" id="page_104"></a>{104}</span> the movement of the hand, especially the fingers. I
+do not mean those movements which are external, and co-ordinate with the
+movements of the arm; those belong to mimicry. I mean those that begin
+at the wrist and therefore occur in the hand only. For the study of
+those movements the hand of childhood is of little use, being altogether
+too untrained, unskilled, and neutral. It shows most clearly the
+movement of the desire to possess, of catching hold and drawing toward
+oneself, generally toward the mouth, as does the suckling child its
+mother’s breast. This movement, Darwin has observed even among kittens.</p>
+
+<p>The masculine hand is generally too heavy and slow, clearly to exhibit
+the more refined movements; these are fully developed only in the
+feminine, particularly in the hands of vivacious, nervous, and
+spiritually excitable women. The justice who observes them may read more
+than he can in their owner’s words. The hand lies in the lap apparently
+inert, but the otherwise well concealed anger slowly makes a fist of it,
+or the fingers bend characteristically forward as if they wished to
+scratch somebody’s eyes out. Or they cramp together in deep pain, or the
+balls of the four other fingers pass with pleasure over the ball of the
+thumb, or they move spasmodically, nervously, impatiently and fearfully,
+or they open and close with characteristic enjoyment like the paws of
+cats when the latter feel quite spry.</p>
+
+<p>Closer observation will show that toes reveal a great deal, particularly
+among women who wear rather fine shoes and hence can move their feet
+with greater ease. In anger, when they cannot, because it would be
+suggestive, stamp their feet, the women press their toes closely to the
+ground. If they are embarrassed they turn the sole of their shoe
+slightly inwards and make small curves with the point on the ground.
+Impatience shows itself through alternating and swinging pressure of
+heel and toe, repeated with increasing rapidity; defiance and demand
+through raising the toes in such a way that the sole is directly forward
+and the foot rests only on the heel. Sensuality is always indicated when
+the foot is put forward and the shin bone lightly stretched out, when
+all the toes are drawn in toward the sole just as the cat does when she
+feels good. What women do not say in words and do not express in their
+features and do not indicate in the movement of their hands, they say
+with their feet; the inner experience <i>must</i> express itself externally
+and the foot most betrays it.</p>
+
+<p>In conclusion it ought to be kept in mind that the hands of all<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_105" id="page_105"></a>{105}</span> those
+people who claim to be hard workers but who really try to live without
+work, i.e. thieves, gamblers, etc., ought to be carefully examined.
+Concerning the value of graphology see my “Manual for Examining Judges.”</p>
+
+<h3>Title B. The Conditions for Defining Theories.</h3>
+
+<h4>Topic I. THE MAKING OF INFERENCES.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 22.</h5>
+
+<p>The study of the human soul as psychology, has for its subject the whole
+stream of conscious life and for its aim the discovery of the occurrence
+and relation of the laws of human thought. Now whether these relations
+imply the coherence of the objects thought about or not, so long as
+logic is dealing with the laws according to which thoughts must be
+correlated in order to attain to objectively valid knowledge, all
+questions that deal with the formal aspect of thinking do not enter the
+field of psychological investigation. The general psychological problem
+is to describe the actual psychic events as they occur, to analyze them
+into their simplest elements, and inasmuch as it is this purely
+pragmatic application of psychology to the problem of inference that
+concerns us, we need to deal only with that law which defines the
+combination of images and with the question,&mdash;how the spirit achieves
+this combination. The material aspect of this question is therefore
+psychological. The legal importance of the problem lies in the very
+potent fact that inferences and theories are often constructed which are
+formally or logically absolutely free of error, yet psychologically full
+of errors that no logic whatever could correct. We have, therefore, to
+consider at least the most important conditions which determine the
+manner of our inferences.</p>
+
+<p>The right which lawyers possess of studying these questions, so far as
+they lie in our field, is of modern establishment. According to
+Hillebrand<a name="FNanchor_126_126" id="FNanchor_126_126"></a><a href="#Footnote_126_126" class="fnanchor">[126]</a> the theory of knowledge has to-day broken up into
+individual theories, involving the certain needs of special fields of
+knowledge. The place of the epistomologists, who are professionals and
+beyond the pale of individual disciplines, is now taken by the
+representatives of those disciplines and each works expressly on his own
+epistomological problem. Our especial problem is the drawing of
+inferences from the material presented to us or brought together by our
+efforts, just as in other disciplines. If we set ourselves the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_106" id="page_106"></a>{106}</span> task of
+determining the procedure when subjecting the fundamental principles of
+our work to revision and examining their utility, we merely ask whether
+the process is voluntary or according to fixed laws; and having cleared
+up that point we ask what influence psychological conditions exercise on
+the situation. It is, indeed, said that thinking is a congenital
+endowment, not to be learned from rules. But the problem is not teaching
+the inferrer to think; the problem is the examination of how inferences
+have been made by another and what value his inferences may have for our
+own conclusions. And our own time, which has been bold enough to lay
+this final conclusion in even the most important criminal cases, in the
+hands of laymen, this time is doubly bound at least to prepare all
+possible control for this work, to measure what is finally taken as
+evidence with the finest instruments possible, and to present to the
+jury only what has been proved and repeatedly examined.</p>
+
+<p>It might almost seem as if the task the jury trial sets the judge has
+not been clearly perceived. A judge who thinks he has performed it when
+he has cast before the jury the largest possible mass of testimony, more
+or less reviewed, and who sees how people, who perhaps for the first
+time in their lives, are involved in a court of law, who perhaps see a
+criminal for the first time, and are under these circumstances the
+arbiters of a man’s fate,&mdash;a judge who sees all this and is satisfied,
+is not effective in his work. Nowadays more than ever, it is for the
+judge to test all evidence psychologically, to review what is only
+apparently clear, to fill out lacunae, and to surmount difficulties,
+before he permits the material brought together in a very few hours to
+pass into the jury’s hands. According to Hillebrand, much that seems
+“self-evident” shows itself dependent on definite experience attained in
+the process of hundreds of repetitions in the daily life; the very
+impression of self-evidence is frequently produced by a mere chance
+instinct about what should be held for true. Hume has already shown how
+the most complex and abstract concepts are derived from sensation. Their
+relation must be studied, and only when we can account for every psychic
+process with which we have to concern ourselves, is our duty properly
+fulfilled.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 23. (2) Proof.</h5>
+
+<p>Mittermaier<a name="FNanchor_127_127" id="FNanchor_127_127"></a><a href="#Footnote_127_127" class="fnanchor">[127]</a> holds that “as a means of testimony in the legal sense
+of that term every possible source must be examined which<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_107" id="page_107"></a>{107}</span> may suffice
+the judge according to law. And from such examination only may the
+requisite certainties be attained from which the judge is to assume as
+determined, facts relevant to his judgment.” Only the phrase “according
+to law” needs explanation, inasmuch as the “source” of reasons and
+certainties must satisfy the legal demands not only formally but must
+sustain materially every possible test, whether circumstantial or
+logico-psychologic. If, for example, the fundamental sources should be a
+combination of (1) a judicial examination of premises
+(lokalaugenschein), (2) testimony of witnesses, and (3) a partial
+confession, the requirements of the law would be satisfied if the
+protocol, (1), were written or made according to prescribed forms, if a
+sufficient number of properly summoned witnesses unanimously confirmed
+the point in question, and if finally the confession were made and
+protocoled according to law. Yet, though the law be satisfied, not only
+may the conclusion be wholly false but every particular part of the
+evidence may be perfectly useless, without the presence anywhere of
+intentional untruth. The personal examination may have been made by a
+judge who half the time, for some sufficiently cogent reason, had a
+different conception of the case than the one which later appeared to be
+true. It need not have been necessary that there should be mixed
+therewith false information of witnesses, incorrect observation, or such
+other mistakes. There need only have been a presupposition, accepted at
+the beginning of the examination, when the examination of the premises
+took place, as to the visible condition of things; and this might have
+given apparent justification to doubtful material and have rendered it
+intelligible, only to be shown later as false. The so-called “local
+examination” however, is generally supposed to be “objective.” It is
+supposed to deal only with circumstantial events, and it does not occur
+to anybody to modify and alter it when it is certainly known that at
+another point the situation has taken an altogether different form. The
+objectivity of the local examination is simply non-existent, and if it
+were really objective, i.e., contained merely dry description with so
+and so many notations of distances and other figures, it would be of no
+use. Every local examination, to be of use, must give an accurate
+picture of the mental process of him who made it. On the one hand it
+must bring vividly to the mind of the reader, even of the sentencing
+judge, what the situation was; on the other, it must demonstrate what
+the examiner thought and represented to himself in order that the
+reader, who may have different opinions,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_108" id="page_108"></a>{108}</span> may have a chance to make
+corrections. If I, for example, get the impression that a fire was made
+through carelessness, and that somebody lost his life on account of it,
+and if I made my local examination with this presupposition in mind, the
+description will certainly seem different from that made under the
+knowledge that the fire was intentional and made to kill. At trial the
+description of local conditions will be read and entered as important
+testimony. It satisfies the law if it is taken according to form, has
+the correct content, and is read as prescribed. But for our conscience
+and in truth this manuscript can be correct only when it is logically
+and psychologically presented revised according to the viewpoint its
+writer would have had if he had been in possession of all the facts in
+possession of the reader. This work of reconstruction belongs to the
+most difficult of our psychological tasks&mdash;but it must be performed
+unless we want to go on superficially and without conscience.</p>
+
+<p>The judgment and interpretation of the testimony of witnesses, (2),
+demand similar treatment. I am legally right if I base my judgment on
+the testimony of witnesses (provided there are enough of them and they
+are properly subpoenaed) if nothing suggestive is offered against their
+testimony, if they do not contradict each other, and especially if there
+are no contradictions in the testimony of any single individual. This
+inner contradiction is rather frequent, and the inattention with which
+the protocols, as a rule, are read, and the scanty degree in which the
+testimony is tested logically and psychologically, are shown clearly by
+the fact that the inner contradictions are not observed and worked over
+more frequently. As evidence of this, let us consider a few cases that
+are generally told as extravagant jokes. Suppose that a man dreamed that
+his head was cut off and that that dream so affected him that he died of
+apoplexy&mdash;yet not everybody asks how the dream was discovered. In a like
+manner people hear with disgust that somebody who has lost his arm, in
+despair cut off his other arm with an axe in order more easily to get
+assistance, and yet they do not ask “how.” Or again when somebody is
+asked if he knows the romance “The Emperor Joseph and The Beautiful
+Railway-signal-man’s Daughter,” the anachronism of the title does not
+occur to him, and nobody thinks of the impossibilities of the vivid
+description of a man walking back and forth, with his hands behind his
+back, reading a newspaper.</p>
+
+<p>Much testimony contains similar, if not so thorough-going
+contradictions. If they are credited in spite of this fact the silly
+believer<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_109" id="page_109"></a>{109}</span> may be blamed, but he is justified in the eyes of the law if
+the above-mentioned legal conditions were satisfied. Hence, the
+frightfully frequent result: “Whether the witness’s deposition is true,
+is a matter for his own conscience; eventually he may be arrested for
+perjury, but he has made his statements and I judge accordingly.” What
+is intended with such a statement is this: “I hide behind the law, I am
+permitted to judge in such a case in such a way, and nobody can blame
+me.” But it is correct to assert that in such cases there is really no
+evidence, there is only a form of evidence. It can be actually
+evidential only when the testimony is tested logically and
+psychologically, and the ability and willingness of the witness to tell
+the truth is made clear. Of course it is true, as Mittermaier says, that
+the utterance of witnesses is tested by its consistency with other
+evidence, but that is neither the only test nor the most valid, for
+there is always the more important internal test, in the first place;
+and in the second place, it is not conclusive because the comparison may
+reveal only inconsistency, but can not establish which of the
+conflicting statements is correct. Correctness can be determined only
+through testing the single statements, the willingness and ability of
+each witness, both in themselves and in relation to all the presented
+material.</p>
+
+<p>Let us take now the third condition of our suppositions case, i.e.
+partial confession. It is generally self-evident that the value of the
+latter is to be judged according to its own nature. The confession must
+be accepted as a means of proof, not as proof, and this demands that it
+shall be consistent with the rest of the evidence, for in that way only
+can it become proof. But it is most essential that the confession shall
+be internally tested, i.e. examined for logical and psychological
+consistency. This procedure is especially necessary with regard to
+certain definite confessions.</p>
+
+<p>(a) Confessions given without motive.</p>
+
+<p>(b) Partial confessions.</p>
+
+<p>(c) Confessions implying the guilt of another.</p>
+
+<p>(a) Logic is, according to Schiel<a name="FNanchor_128_128" id="FNanchor_128_128"></a><a href="#Footnote_128_128" class="fnanchor">[128]</a> the science of evidence&mdash;not of
+finding evidence but of rendering evidence evidential. This is
+particularly true with regard to confessions, if we substitute
+psychology for logic. It is generally true that many propositions hold
+so long only as they are not doubted, and such is the case with many
+confessions. The crime is confessed; he who confesses to it is always a
+criminal, and no man doubts it, and so the confession<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_110" id="page_110"></a>{110}</span> stands. But as
+soon as doubt, justified or unjustified, occurs, the question takes
+quite a different form. The confession has first served as proof, but
+now psychological examination alone will show whether it can continue to
+serve as proof.</p>
+
+<p>The most certain foundation for the truth of confession in any case is
+the establishment of a clear motive for it&mdash;and that is rarely present.
+Of course the motive is not always absent because we do not immediately
+recognize it, but it is not enough to suppose that the confession does
+not occur without a reason. That supposition would be approximately
+true, but it need not be true. If a confession is to serve evidentially
+the motive must be clear and indubitable. Proof of its mere existence is
+insufficient; we must understand the confession in terms of all the
+factors that caused it. The process of discovering these factors is
+purely logical and generally established indirectly by means of an
+apagogue. This is essentially the proof by negation, but it may serve in
+connection with a disjunctive judgment which combines possible
+alternatives as a means of confirmation. We are, then, to bring together
+all conceivable motives and study the confession with regard to them. If
+all, or most of them, are shown to be impossible or insufficient, we
+have left only the judgment of one or more conclusions, and with this we
+have an essentially psychological problem. Such a problem is seldom
+simple and easy, and as there is no possibility of contradiction, the
+danger is nowhere so great of making light of the matter. “What is
+reasserted is half proved.” That is a comfortable assertion, and leads
+to considerable incorrectness. A confession is only established in truth
+when it is construed psychologically, when the whole inner life of the
+confessor and his external conditions are brought into relation with it,
+and the remaining motives established as at least possible. And this
+must be done to avoid the reproach of having condemned some confessor
+without evidence, for a confession having no motive may be untrue, and
+therefore not evidential.</p>
+
+<p>(b) <i>Partial confessions</i> are difficult, not only because they make it
+harder to prove the evidence for what is not confessed, but also because
+what is confessed appears doubtful in the light of what is not. Even in
+the simplest cases where the reason for confession and silence seems to
+be clear, mistakes are possible. If, for example, a thief confesses to
+having stolen only what has been found in his possession but denies the
+rest, it is fairly probable that he hopes some gain from the evidence in
+which there appears to be no proof<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_111" id="page_111"></a>{111}</span> of his having stolen what has not
+been found upon him. But though this is generally the case, it might
+occur that the thief wants to assume the guilt of another person, and
+hence naturally can confess only to what he is accused of, inasmuch as
+he either has insufficient or no evidence whatever of his guilt for the
+rest of the crime.</p>
+
+<p>Another fairly clear reason for partial confession, is shown in the
+confession to a certain degree of malicious intent, as the denial of the
+intent to kill. If this is made by a person who may be supposed to know
+the legal situation, either because of earlier experience or for other
+reasons, there is sufficient justification for doubting the honesty of
+his confession. Most of such cases belong to the numerous class in which
+the defendant confesses to a series of facts or a number of things, and
+denies a few of them without any apparent reason; he may confess to a
+dozen objects used in an assault and simply refuse to discuss two
+probably quite insignificant ones. If such a case comes up for judgment
+to the full bench, half the judges say that since he has stolen twelve
+he must have taken the other two, and the other half say that since he
+has confessed to twelve he would have confessed to the other two if he
+had taken them. Generally speaking, both sides are right; one inference
+is as justified as the other. As a rule, such cases do not repay a great
+deal of troublesome examination, inasmuch as the question of A’s having
+stolen twelve or fourteen objects can little affect either his guilt or
+his sentence. But it is to be remembered that it is never indifferent
+whether a man pleads guilty or not guilty, and later on, especially in
+another case, it may be quite the reverse of indifferent whether a man
+is condemned because of a matter indifferent to-day. Suppose that the
+denied theft was of a worthless but characteristic thing, e.g. an old
+prayer-book. If now the thief is again suspected of a robbery which he
+denies and the theft is again that of an old prayer-book, then it is not
+indifferent as a matter of proof whether the man was condemned for
+stealing a prayer-book or not. If he was so condemned, there will
+already be remarks about, “a certain passion for old prayer-books,” and
+the man will be suspected of the second theft.</p>
+
+<p>In regard to the possession of stolen goods, such a sentence may have
+similar significance. I recall a case in which several people were
+sentenced for the theft of a so-called fokos (a Hungarian cane with a
+head like an ax). Later a fokos was used in murder in the same region
+and the first suspicion of the crime was attached to the thief, who
+might, because of his early crime, have been in possession<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_112" id="page_112"></a>{112}</span> of a fokos.
+Now suppose that the man had confessed to theft of everything but the
+fokos, and that he had been condemned on the basis of the confession,
+the fact would be of far-reaching significance in the present case. Of
+course it is not intended that the old case is to be tried again before
+the new. That would be a difficult job after the lapse of some time, and
+in addition, would be of little use, for everybody recalls the old
+judgment anyway and supposes that the circumstances must have been such
+as to show the man guilty. If a man is once sentenced for something he
+has not confessed to, the stigma remains no matter how the facts may be
+against it.</p>
+
+<p>Experience has shown that the victims of theft count everything stolen
+that they do not discover at the first glance. And it might have been
+lost long before the theft, or have been stolen at an earlier or a later
+time. For this reason it often happens that servants, and even the
+children of the house or other frequenters, take the robbery as an
+opportunity for explaining the disappearance of things they are
+responsible for or steal afresh and blame it upon “the thief.” The
+quantity stolen is generally exaggerated, moreover, in order to excite
+universal sympathy and perhaps to invoke help. In general, we must hold
+that there is no psychological reason that a confessor should deny
+anything the confession of which can bring him no additional harm. The
+last point must be carefully treated, for it requires taking the
+attitude of the accused and not of the examiner. It is the former’s
+information and view-point that must be studied, and it often contains
+the most perverted view-points; e.g., one man denies out of mere
+obstinacy because he believes that his guilt is increased by this or
+that fact. The proposition: who has stolen one thing, has also stolen
+the rest, has slight justification.</p>
+
+<p>(c) If a denying fellow-criminal is accused by a confession, the
+interpretation of the latter becomes difficult. First of all, the pure
+kernel of the confession must be brought to light, and everything set
+aside that might serve to free the confessor and involve the other in
+guilt. This portion of the work is comparatively the easiest, inasmuch
+as it depends upon the circumstances of the crime. It is more difficult
+to determine what degree of crime the confessor attached to himself by
+accusing also the other man, because clearness can be reached in such a
+case only by working out the situation from beginning to end in two
+directions; first, by studying it without reference to the
+fellow-criminal, second, with such reference. The complete elimination
+of the additional circumstance is exceedingly troublesome because it
+requires the complete control of the material<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_113" id="page_113"></a>{113}</span> and because it is always
+psychologically difficult so to exclude an event already known in its
+development and inference as to be able to formulate a theory quite
+without reference to it.</p>
+
+<p>If this is really accomplished and some positive fact is established in
+the self-accusation, the question becomes one of finding the value seen
+by the confessor in blaming himself together with his fellow. Revenge,
+hatred, jealousy, envy, anger, suspicion, and other passions will be the
+forces in which this value will be found. One man brings his ancient
+comrade into jeopardy in revenge for the latter’s injustice in the
+division of the booty, or in deliberate anger at the commission of some
+dangerous stupidity in a burglary. Again, it often happens that he or
+she, through jealousy, accuses her or him in order that the other may be
+also imprisoned, and so not become disloyal. Business jealousy, again,
+is as influential as the attempt to prevent another from disposing of
+some hidden booty, or from carrying out by himself some robbery planned
+in partnership. These motives are not always easy to discover but are
+conceivable. There are also cases, not at all rare, in which the
+ordinary man is fully lacking in comprehension of “the substitute
+value,” which makes him confess the complicity of his fellow. I am going
+to offer just one example, and inasmuch as the persons concerned are
+long since dead, will, by way of exception, mention their names and the
+improbability of their stories. In 1879 an old man, Blasius Kern, was
+found one morning completely snowed over and with a serious wound in the
+head. There was no possible suspicion of robbery as motive of the
+murder, inasmuch as the man was on his way home drunk, as usual, and it
+was supposed that he had fallen down and had smashed his skull. In 1881
+a young fellow, Peter Seyfried, came to court and announced that he had
+been hired by Blasius Kern’s daughter, Julia Hauck, and her husband
+August Hauck, to kill the old fellow, who had become unendurable through
+his love of drink and his endless quarrelsomeness; and accordingly he
+had done the deed. He had been promised an old pair of trousers and
+three gulden, but they had given him the trousers, not the money, and as
+all his attempts to collect payment had failed he divulged the secret of
+the Hauck people. When I asked him if he were unaware that he himself
+was subject to the law he said, “I don’t care; the others at least will
+also be punished;&mdash;why haven’t they kept their word.” And this lad was
+very stupid and microcephalic, but according to medico-legal opinion,
+capable of distinguishing between right and wrong. His statements proved
+themselves true to the very last point.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_114" id="page_114"></a>{114}</span></p>
+
+<p>So significantly weak as this in fundamental reliability, very few
+confessions will appear to be, but the reasons for confessions,
+difficult both to find and to judge, are many indeed. The only way to
+attain certainty is through complete and thorough-going knowledge of all
+the external conditions, but primarily through sound psychological
+insight into the nature of both the confessor and those he accuses.
+Evidently the first is by far the more important: what he is beneath the
+surface, his capacities, passions, intentions, and purposes, must all be
+settled if any decision is to be arrived at as to the advantage accruing
+to a man by the accusation of others. For example, the passionate
+character of some persons may indicate beyond a doubt that they might
+find pleasure in suffering provided they could cause suffering to others
+at that price. Passion is almost always what impels men, and what
+passion in particular lies behind a confession will be revealed partly
+by the crime, partly by the relation of the criminals one to the other,
+partly by the personality of the new victim. If this passion was strong
+enough to deal, if I may use the term, anti-egoistically, it can be
+discovered only through the study of its possessor. It may be
+presupposed that everybody acts according to his own advantage&mdash;the
+question asks merely what this advantage is in the concrete, and whether
+he who seeks it, seeks it prudently. Even the satisfaction of revenge
+may be felt as an advantage if it is more pleasurable than the pain
+which follows confession&mdash;the matter is one of relative weight and is
+prudently sought as the substitution of an immediate and petty advantage
+for a later and greater one.</p>
+
+<p>Another series of procedures is of importance in determining proof,
+where circumstances are denied which have no essential relation to the
+crime. They bring the presentation of proof into a bypath so that the
+essential problem of evidence is left behind. Then if the denied
+circumstance is established as a fact it is falsely supposed that the
+guilt is so established. And in this direction many mistakes are
+frequently made. There are two suggestive examples. Some years ago there
+lived in Vienna a very pretty bachelor girl, a sales-person in a very
+respectable shop. One day she was found dead in her room. Inasmuch as
+the judicial investigation showed acute arsenic poisoning, and as a
+tumbler half full of sweetened water and a considerable quantity of
+finely powdered arsenic was found on her table, these two conditions
+were naturally correlated. From the neighbors it was learned that the
+dead girl had for some time been intimate with an unknown gentleman who
+visited her<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_115" id="page_115"></a>{115}</span> frequently, but whose presence was kept as secret as
+possible by both. This gentleman, it was said, had called on the girl on
+the evening before her death. The police inferred that the man was a
+very rich merchant, residing in a rather distant region, who lived
+peaceably with his much older wife and therefore kept his illicit
+relations with the girl secret. It was further established at the
+autopsy that the girl was pregnant, and so the theory was formed that
+the merchant had poisoned his mistress and in the examination this deed
+was set down against him. Now, if the man had immediately confessed that
+he knew the dead girl, and stood in intimate relation with her and that
+he had called on her the last evening; if he had asserted perhaps that
+she was in despair about her condition, had quarreled with him and had
+spoken of suicide, etc., then suicide would unconditionally have had to
+be the verdict. In any event, he never could have been accused, inasmuch
+as there was no additional evidence of poisoning. But the man conceived
+the unfortunate notion of denying that he knew the dead girl or had any
+relations with her, or that he had ever, even on that last evening,
+called on her. He did this clearly because he did not want to confess a
+culpable relation to public opinion, especially to his wife. And the
+whole question turned upon this denied circumstance. The problem of
+evidence was no longer, “Has he killed her,” but “Did he carry on an
+intimacy with her.” Then it was proved beyond reasonable doubt through a
+long series of witnesses that his visits to the girl were frequent, that
+he had been there on the evening before her death, and that there could
+be no possible doubt as to his identity. That settled his fate and he
+was sentenced to death. If we consider the case psychologically we have
+to grant that his denial of having been present might have for motive as
+much the fact that he had poisoned the girl, as that he did not want to
+admit the relation at the beginning. Later on, when he completely
+understood the seriousness of his situation, he thought a change of
+front too daring and hoped to get on better by sticking to his story.
+Now, as we have seen, what was proved was the fact that he knew and
+visited the girl; what he was sentenced for was the murder of the girl.</p>
+
+<p>A similar case, particularly instructive in its development, and
+especially interesting because of the significant study (of the
+suggestibility of witnesses) of Dr. Von Schrenck-Notzing and Prof.
+Grashey, kept the whole of Munich in excitement some years ago. A widow,
+her grown-up daughter, and an old servant were stifled<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_116" id="page_116"></a>{116}</span> and robbed in
+their home. The suspicion of the crime fell upon a brick-layer who had
+once before made a confession concerning another murder and of whom it
+was known that some time before the deed was done he had been building a
+closet into the house of the three murdered women. Through various
+combinations of the facts the supposition was reached that the mason got
+entry into the house on the pretense of examining whether or not the
+work he had done on the closet had caused any damage, and had then
+committed the thieving murder. Now here again, if the mason had said:
+“Yes, I was without a job, wanted to get work, entered the house under
+the assigned pretense, and appeared to see about the closet and had
+myself paid for the apparently repaired improvement, left the three
+women unharmed, and they must only after that have been killed,”&mdash;if he
+had said this, his condemnation would have been impossible, for all the
+other testimony was of subordinate importance. Now suppose the man was
+innocent, what could he have thought: “I have already been examined once
+in a murder case, I found myself in financial difficulties, I still am
+in such difficulties&mdash;if I admit that I was at the place of the crime at
+the time the crime was committed, I will get into serious trouble, which
+I won’t, if I deny my presence.” So he really denied having been in the
+house or in the street for some time, and inasmuch as this was shown by
+many witnesses to be untrue, his presence at the place where the crime
+was committed was identified with the unproved fact that he had
+committed it, and he was condemned.</p>
+
+<p>I do not assert that either one or the other of these persons was
+condemned guiltlessly, or that such “side issues” have no value and
+ought not to be proved. I merely point out that caution is necessary in
+two directions. First of all, these side issues must not be identified
+with the central issue. Their demonstration is only preparatory work,
+the value of which must be established cautiously and without prejudice.
+It may be said that the feeling of satisfaction with what has been done
+causes jurists frequently to forget what must yet be done, or to
+undervalue it. Further, a psychological examination must seek out the
+motives which led or might have led the accused to deny some point not
+particularly dangerous to him. In most cases an intelligible ground for
+such action can be discovered, and if the psychologically prior
+conditions are conceived with sufficient narrowness to keep us from
+assuming unconditional guilt, we are at least called upon to be
+careful.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_117" id="page_117"></a>{117}</span></p>
+
+<p>This curious danger of identification of different issues as the aim of
+presentation of evidence, occurs much more frequently and with
+comparatively greater degree in the cases of individual witnesses who
+are convinced of the principal issue when a side issue is proved.
+Suppose a witness is called on to identify a man as somebody who had
+stabbed him in a serious assault, and that he has also to explain
+whether the quarrel he had had with this man a short time ago was of
+importance. If the suspect is desirous of having the quarrel appear as
+harmless, and the wounded person asserts that the quarrel was serious,
+the latter will be convinced, the moment his contention may be viewed as
+true, that his opponent was really the person who had stabbed him. There
+is, of course, a certain logical justification for this supposition, but
+the psychological difficulty with it is the fact that this case, like
+many others, involves the identification of what is inferred with what
+is perceived. It is for this reason that the mere fact of arrest is to
+most people a conviction of guilt. The witness who had first identified
+A as only the probable criminal becomes absolutely convinced of it when
+A is presented to him in stripes, even though he knows that A has been
+arrested on his own testimony alone. The appearance and the surroundings
+of the prisoner influence many, and not merely uneducated people,
+against the prisoner, and they think, involuntarily, “If he were not the
+one, they would not have him here.”</p>
+
+<h5>Section 24. (b) Causation.<a name="FNanchor_129_129" id="FNanchor_129_129"></a><a href="#Footnote_129_129" class="fnanchor">[129]</a></h5>
+
+<p>If we understand by the term cause the axiom that every change has an
+occasion, hence that every event is bound up with a number of conditions
+which when lacking in whole or in part would prevent the appearance of
+the event, while their presence would compel its appearance, then the
+whole business of the criminalist is the study of causes. He must indeed
+study not only whether and how crime and criminal are causally related,
+but also how their individual elements are bound to each other and to
+the criminal; and finally, what causation in the criminal, considered
+with regard to his individual characteristics, inevitably led to the
+commission of the crime. The fact that we deal with the problem of cause
+brings us close to other sciences which have the same task in their own
+researches;<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_118" id="page_118"></a>{118}</span> and this is one of the reasons for the criminalist’s
+necessary concern with other disciplines. Of course no earnest
+criminalist can pursue other studies for their own sake, he has no time;
+but he must look about him and study the methods used in other sciences.
+In the other sciences we learn method, but not as method, and that is
+all that we need. And we observe that the whole problem of method is
+grounded on causation. Whether empirically or aprioristically does not
+matter. We are concerned solely with causation.</p>
+
+<p>In certain directions our task is next to the historians’ who aim to
+bring men and events into definite causal sequence. The causal law is
+indubitably the ideal and only instructive instrument in the task of
+writing convincing history, and it is likewise without question that the
+same method is specifically required in the presentation of evidence.
+Thus: “This is the causal chain of which the last link is the crime
+committed by A. Now I present the fact of the crime and include only
+those events which may be exclusively bound up with A’s criminality&mdash;and
+the crime appears as committed. Now again, I present the fact of the
+crime and exclude all those events which can without exception be
+included only if A is not a criminal&mdash;and there is no crime.”<a name="FNanchor_130_130" id="FNanchor_130_130"></a><a href="#Footnote_130_130" class="fnanchor">[130]</a></p>
+
+<p>Evidently the finding of causes involves, according to the complexities
+of the case, a varying number of subordinate tasks which have to be
+accomplished for each particular incident, inasmuch as each suspicion,
+each statement <i>pro</i> or <i>con</i> has to be tested. The job is a big one but
+it is the only way to absolute and certain success, provided there is no
+mistake in the work of correlating events. As Schell says: “Of all the
+observed identities of effect in natural phenomena only one has the
+complete strength of mathematical law&mdash;the general law of causation. The
+fact that everything that has a beginning has a cause is as old as human
+experience.” The application of this proposition to our own problem
+shows that we are not to turn the issue in any unnecessary direction,
+once we are convinced that every phenomenon has its occasion. We are, on
+the contrary, to demonstrate this occasion and to bring it into
+connection with every problem set by the testimony at any moment. In
+most cases the task, though not rigidly divided, is double and its
+quality depends upon the question whether the criminal was known from
+the beginning or not. The duality is foremost, and lasts<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_119" id="page_119"></a>{119}</span> longest if
+only the deed itself is known, and if the judge must limit himself
+entirely to its sole study in order to derive from it its objective
+situation.</p>
+
+<p>The greatest mistakes in a trial occur when this derivation of the
+objective situation of the crime is made unintelligently, hastily or
+carelessly, and conversely the greatest successes are due to its correct
+rendering. But such a correct rendering is no more than the
+thorough-going use of the principle of causality. Suppose a great crime
+has been committed and the personality of the criminal is not revealed
+by the character of the crime. The mistake regularly made in such a case
+is the immediate and superficial search for the personality of the
+criminal instead of what should properly proceed&mdash;the study of the
+causal conditions of the crime. For the causal law does not say that
+everything which occurs, taken as a whole and in its elements, has one
+ground&mdash;that would be simply categorical emptiness. What is really
+required is an efficient and satisfying cause. And this is required not
+merely for the deed as a whole but for every single detail. When causes
+are found for all of these they must be brought together and correlated
+with the crime as described, and then integrated with the whole series
+of events.</p>
+
+<p>The second part of the work turns upon the suspicion of a definite
+person when his own activity is interpolated as a cause of the crime.
+Under some conditions again, the effect of the crime on the criminal has
+to be examined, i.e., enrichment, deformation, emotional state, etc. But
+the evidence of guilt is established only when the crime is accurately
+and explicitly described as the inevitable result of the activity of the
+criminal and his activity only. This systematic work of observing and
+correlating every instant of the supposed activities of the accused
+(once the situation of the crime is defined as certainly as possible),
+is as instructive as it is promising of success. It is the one activity
+which brings us into touch with bare perception and its reproduction.
+“All inference with regard to facts appears to depend upon the relation
+of cause to effect; by virtue of this relation alone may we rely upon
+the evidence of our memories and our senses.”<a name="FNanchor_131_131" id="FNanchor_131_131"></a><a href="#Footnote_131_131" class="fnanchor">[131]</a> Hume illustrates this
+remark with the following example: If a clock or some other machine is
+found on a desert island, the conclusion is drawn that men are or were
+on the island. The application is easy enough. The presence of a clock,
+the presence of a three-cornered wound is perceived by the senses&mdash;that
+men were there, that the wound was made with a specific kind of
+instrument,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_120" id="page_120"></a>{120}</span> is a causal inference. Simple as this proposition of Hume’s
+is, it is of utmost importance in the law because of the permanent and
+continually renewed problems: What is the effect in <i>this</i> case? What is
+the cause? Do they belong together? Remembering that these questions
+make our greatest tasks and putting them, even beyond the limit of
+disgust, will save us from grave errors.</p>
+
+<p>There is another important condition to which Hume calls attention and
+which is interpreted by his clever disciple Meinong. It is a fact that
+without the help of previous experience no causal nexus can be referred
+to an observation, nor can the presence of such be discovered in
+individual instances. It may be postulated only. A cause is essentially
+a complex in which every element is of identical value. And this
+circumstance is more complicated than it appears to be, inasmuch as it
+requires reflection to distinguish whether only one or more observations
+have been made. Strict self-control alone and accurate enumeration and
+supervision will lead to a correct decision as to whether one or ten
+observations have been made, or whether the notion of additional
+observations is not altogether illusory.</p>
+
+<p>This task involves a number of important circumstances. First of all
+must be considered the manner in which the man on the street conceives
+the causal relation between different objects. The notion of causality,
+as Schwarz<a name="FNanchor_132_132" id="FNanchor_132_132"></a><a href="#Footnote_132_132" class="fnanchor">[132]</a> shows, is essentially foreign to the man on the street.
+He is led mainly by the analogy of natural causality with that of human
+activity and passivity, e.g., the fire is active with regard to water,
+which simply must sizzle passively. This observation is indubitably
+correct and significant, but I think Schwarz wrong to have limited his
+description to ordinary people; it is true also of very complex natures.
+It is conceivable that external phenomena shall be judged in analogy
+with the self, and inasmuch as the latter often appears to be purely
+active, it is also supposed that those natural phenomena which appear to
+be especially active are really so.</p>
+
+<p>In addition, many objects in the external world with which we have a
+good deal to do, and are hence important, do as a matter of fact really
+appear to be active&mdash;the sun, light, warmth, cold, the weather, etc., so
+that we assign activity and passivity only according to the values the
+objects have for us. The ensuing mistake is the fact that we overlook
+the alternations between activity and passivity,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_121" id="page_121"></a>{121}</span> or simply do not make
+the study such alternations require; yet the correct apportionment of
+action and reaction is, for us, of greatest importance. In this regard,
+moreover, there is always the empty problem as to whether two things may
+stand in causal relation,&mdash;empty, because the answer is always yes. The
+scientific and practical problem is as to whether there exists an actual
+causal nexus. The same relation occurs in the problem of reciprocal
+influences. No one will say, for example, that any event exercises a
+reciprocal influence on the sun, but apart from such relatively few
+cases it would not only be supposed that A is the cause of the effect B,
+but also that B might have reciprocally influenced A. Regard for this
+possibility may save one from many mistakes.</p>
+
+<p>One important source of error with regard to cause and effect lies in
+the general and profound supposition that the cause must have a certain
+similarity to the effect. So Ovid, according to J. S. Mill, has Medea
+brew a broth of long-lived animals; and popular superstitions are full
+of such doctrine. The lung of a long-winded fox is used as a cure for
+asthma, the yarrow is used to cure jaundice, agaricos is used for
+blisters, aristolochia (the fruit of which has the form of a uterus) is
+used for the pains of child-birth, and nettle-tea for nettle-rash. This
+series may be voluntarily increased when related to the holy patron
+saints of the Catholic Church, who are chosen as protectors against some
+especial condition or some specific difficulty because they at one time
+had some connection with that particular matter. So the holy Odilia is
+the patron saint for diseases of the eye, not because she knew how to
+cure the eyes, but because her eyes were put out with needles. The thief
+Dismas is the patron of the dying because we know nothing about him save
+that he died with Christ. St. Barbara, who is pictured together with a
+tower in which she was imprisoned, and which was supposed to be a powder
+house, has become the patron saint of artillery. In the same manner St.
+Nicholas is, according to Simrock, the patron of sailors because his
+name resembles Nichus, Nicor, Nicker, which is the name of the
+unforgotten old German sea-deity.</p>
+
+<p>Against such combinations, external and unjustified, not even the most
+educated and skilful is safe. Nobody will doubt that he is required to
+make considerable effort in his causal interpretation because of the
+sub-conscious influence of such similarities. The matter would not be so
+dangerous, all in all, because such mistakes may be easily corrected and
+the attention of people may be called<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_122" id="page_122"></a>{122}</span> to the inadequacy of such
+causation&mdash;but the reason for this kind of correlations is rarely
+discovered. Either people do not want to tell it because they
+instinctively perceive that their causal interpretation cannot be
+justified, or they cannot even express it because the causal relation
+had been assumed only subconsciously, and they are hence unaware of the
+reasons for it and all the more convinced that they are right. So for
+example, an intelligent man told me that he suspected another of a
+murder because the latter’s mother died a violent death. The witness
+stuck to his statement: “the man who had once had something to do with
+killing must have had something to do with this killing.” In a similar
+manner, a whole village accused a man of arson because he was born on
+the night on which a neighboring village burned down. Here, however,
+there was no additional argument in the belief that his mother had
+absorbed the influence of the fire inasmuch as the latter was told that
+there had been a fire only after the child was born. “He once had
+something to do with fire,” was the basis of the judgment, also in this
+case.</p>
+
+<p>There are innumerable similar examples which, with a large number of
+habitual superstitious presuppositions, make only false causality.
+Pearls mean tears because they have similar form; inasmuch as the cuckoo
+may not without a purpose have only two calls at one time and ten or
+twenty at another, the calls must mean the number of years before death,
+before marriage, or of a certain amount of money, or any other countable
+thing. Such notions are so firmly rooted in the peasantry and in all of
+us, that they come to the surface, whether consciously or unconsciously,
+and influence us more than we are accustomed to suppose they do.
+Whenever anybody assures us that he is able to assert absolutely, though
+not altogether prove a thing, this assurance may be variously grounded,
+but not rarely it is no more than one of these false correlations.
+Schopenhauer has said, that “motivation is causality seen from
+within,”&mdash;and one may add conversely that causality is motivation seen
+from without. What is asserted must be motivated, and that is done by
+means of causality&mdash;if no real ultimate cause is found a false,
+superficial and insufficient one is adopted, inasmuch as we ever strive
+to relate things causally, in the knowledge that, otherwise, the world
+would be topsy-turvy. “Everywhere,” says Stricker, “we learn that men
+who do not associate their experiences according to right cause are
+badly adapted to their environment; the pictures of artists are
+disliked, the laborer’s<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_123" id="page_123"></a>{123}</span> work does not succeed; the tradesman loses his
+money, and the general his battle.” And we may add, “The criminalist his
+case.” For whoever seeks the reason for a lost case certainly will find
+it in the ignorance of the real fact and in the incorrect coördination
+of cause and effect. The most difficult thing in such coördination is
+not that it has to be tested according to the notion one has for himself
+of the chain of events; the difficulty lies in the fact that the point
+of view and mental habits of the man who is suspected of the effects
+must be adopted. Without this the causal relations as they are arrived
+at by the other can never be reached, or different results most likely
+ensue.</p>
+
+<p>The frequency of mistakes like those just mentioned is well known. They
+affect history. Even La Rochefoucauld was of the opinion that the great
+and splendid deeds which are presented by statesmen as the outcome of
+far-reaching plans are, as a rule, merely the result of inclination and
+passion. This opinion concerns the lawyer’s task also, for the lawyer is
+almost always trying to discover the moving, great, and unified plan of
+each crime, and in order to sustain such a notion, prefers to perfect a
+large and difficult theoretic construction, rather than to suppose that
+there never was a plan, but that the whole crime sprang from accident,
+inclination, and sudden impulse. The easiest victims in this respect are
+the most logical and systematic lawyers; they merely presuppose, “I
+would not have done this” and forget that the criminal was not at all so
+logical and systematic, that he did not even work according to plan, but
+simply followed straying impulses.</p>
+
+<p>Moreover, a man may have determined his causal connections correctly,
+yet have omitted many things, or finally have made a voluntary stop at
+some point in his work, or may have carried the causal chain
+unnecessarily far. This possibility has been made especially clear by J.
+S. Mill, who showed that the immediately preceding condition is never
+taken as cause. When we throw a stone into the water we call the cause
+of its sinking its gravity, and not the fact that it has been thrown
+into the water. So again, when a man falls down stairs and breaks his
+foot, in the story of the fall the law of gravity is not mentioned; it
+is taken for granted. When the matter is not so clear as in the
+preceding examples, such facts are often the cause of important
+misunderstandings. In the first case, where the immediately preceding
+condition is <i>not</i> mentioned, it is the inaccuracy of the expression
+that is at fault, for we see that at least in scientific form, the
+efficient cause is always the immediately<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_124" id="page_124"></a>{124}</span> preceding condition. So the
+physician says, “The cause of death was congestion of the brain in
+consequence of pressure resulting from extravasation of the blood.” And
+he indicates only in the second line that the latter event resulted from
+a blow on the head. In a similar manner the physicist says that the
+board was sprung as a consequence of the uneven tension of the fibers;
+he adds only later that this resulted from the warmth, which again is
+the consequence of the direct sunlight that fell on the board. Now the
+layman had in both cases omitted the proximate causes and would have
+said in case 1, “The man died because he was beaten on the head,” and in
+case 2, “The board was sprung because it lay in the sun.” We have,
+therefore, to agree to the surprising fact that the layman skips more
+intermediaries than the professional, but only because either he is
+ignorant of or ignores the intervening conditions. Hence, he is also in
+greater danger of making a mistake through omission.</p>
+
+<p>Inasmuch as the question deals only with the scarcity of correct
+knowledge of proximate causes, we shall set aside the fact that lawyers
+themselves make such mistakes, which may be avoided only by careful
+self-training and cautious attention to one’s own thoughts. But we have
+at the same time to recognize how important the matter is when we
+receive long series of inferences from witnesses who give expression
+only to the first and the last deduction. If we do not then examine and
+investigate the intermediary links and their justification, we deserve
+to hear extravagant things, and what is worse, to make them, as we do,
+the foundation of further inference. And once this is done no man can
+discover where the mistake lies.</p>
+
+<p>If again an inference is omitted as self-evident (cf. the case of
+gravity, in falling down stairs) the source of error and the difficulty
+lies in the fact that, on the one hand, not everything is as
+self-evident as it seems; on the other, that two people rarely
+understand the same thing by “self-evident,” so that what is
+self-evident to one is far from so to the other. This difference becomes
+especially clear when a lawyer examines professional people who can
+imagine offhand what is in no sense self-evident to persons in other
+walks of life. I might cite out of my own experience, that the physicist
+Boltzmann, one of the foremost of living mathematicians, was told once
+upon a time that his demonstrations were not sufficiently detailed to be
+intelligible to his class of non-professionals, so that his hearers
+could not follow him. As a result, he carefully counted the simplest
+additions or interpolations on the blackboard, but at<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_125" id="page_125"></a>{125}</span> the same time
+integrated them, etc., in his head, a thing which very few people on
+earth can do. It was simply an off-hand matter for this genius to do
+that which ungenial mortals can not.</p>
+
+<p>This appears in a small way in every second criminal case. We have only
+to substitute the professionals who appear as witnesses. Suppose, e.g.,
+that a hunter is giving testimony. He will omit to state a group of
+correlations; with regard to things which are involved in his trade, he
+will reach his conclusion with a single jump. Then we reach the fatal
+circle that the witness supposes that we can follow him and his
+deductions, and are able to call his attention to any significant error,
+while we, on the other hand, depend on his professional knowledge, and
+agree to his leaping inferences and allow his conclusions to pass as
+valid without knowing or being able to test them.</p>
+
+<p>The notion of “specialist” or “professional” must be applied in such
+instances not only to especial proficients in some particular trade, but
+also to such people as have by accident merely, any form of specialized
+knowledge, e.g., knowledge of the place in which some case had occurred.
+People with such knowledge present many a thing as self-evident that can
+not be so to people who do not possess the knowledge. Hence, peasants
+who are asked about some road in their own well known country reply that
+it is “straight ahead and impossible to miss” even when the road may
+turn ten times, right and left.</p>
+
+<p>Human estimates are reliable only when tested and reviewed at each
+instant; complicated deductions are so only when deduction after
+deduction has been tested, each in itself. Lawyers must, therefore,
+inevitably follow the rule of requiring explication of each step in an
+inference&mdash;such a requirement will at least narrow the limits of error.</p>
+
+<p>The task would be much easier if we were fortunate enough to be able to
+help ourselves with experiments. As Bernard<a name="FNanchor_133_133" id="FNanchor_133_133"></a><a href="#Footnote_133_133" class="fnanchor">[133]</a> says, “There is an
+absolute determinism in the existential conditions of natural phenomena,
+as much in living as in non-living bodies. If the condition of any
+phenomenon is recognized and fulfilled the phenomenon must occur
+whenever the experimenter desires it.” But such determination can be
+made by lawyers in rare cases only, and to-day the criminalist who can
+test experimentally the generally asserted circumstance attested by
+witnesses, accused, or experts,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_126" id="page_126"></a>{126}</span> is a rarissima avis. In most cases we
+have to depend on our experience, which frequently leaves us in
+difficulties if we fail thoroughly to test it. Even the general law of
+causation, that every effect has its cause, is formulated, as Hume
+points out, only as a matter of habit. Hume’s important discovery that
+we do not observe causality in the external world, demonstrates only the
+difficulty of the interpretation of causality. The weakness of his
+doctrine lies in his assertion that the knowledge of causality may be
+obtained through habit because we perceive the connection of similars,
+and the understanding, through habit, deduces the appearance of the one
+from that of the other. These assertions of the great thinker are
+certainly correct, but he did not know how to ground them. Hume teaches
+the following doctrine:</p>
+
+<p>The proposition that causes and effects are recognized, not by the
+understanding but because of experience, will be readily granted if we
+think of such things as we may recollect we were once altogether
+unacquainted with. Suppose we give a man who has no knowledge of physics
+two smooth marble plates. He will never discover that when laid one upon
+the other they are hard to separate. Here it is easily observed that
+such properties can be discovered only through experience. Nobody,
+again, has the desire to deceive himself into believing that the force
+of burning powder or the attraction of a magnet could have been
+discovered a priori. But this truth does not seem to have the same
+validity with regard to such processes as we observed almost since
+breath began. With regard to them, it is supposed that the
+understanding, by its own activity, without the help of experience can
+discover causal connections. It is supposed that anybody who is suddenly
+sent into the world will be able at once to deduce that a billiard ball
+will pass its motion on to another by a push.</p>
+
+<p>But that this is impossible to derive a priori is shown through the fact
+that elasticity is not an externally recognizable quality, so that we
+may indeed say that perhaps no effect can be recognized unless it is
+experienced at least once. It can not be deduced a priori that contact
+with water makes one wet, or that an object responds to gravity when
+held in the hand, or that it is painful to keep a finger in the fire.
+These facts have first to be experienced either by ourselves or some
+other person. Every cause, Hume argues therefore, is different from its
+effect and hence can not be found in the latter, and every discovery or
+representation of it a priori must remain voluntary. All that the
+understanding can do is to simplify<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_127" id="page_127"></a>{127}</span> the fundamental causes of natural
+phenomena and to deduce the individual effects from a few general
+sources, and that, indeed, only with the aid of analogy, experience, and
+observation.</p>
+
+<p>But then, what is meant by trusting the inference of another person, and
+what in the other person’s narrative is free from inference? Such trust
+means, to be convinced that the other has made the correct analogy, has
+made the right use of experience, and has observed events without
+prejudice. That is a great deal to presuppose, and whoever takes the
+trouble of examining however simple and short a statement of a witness
+with regard to analogy, experience, and observation, must finally
+perceive with fear how blindly the witness has been trusted. Whoever
+believes in knowledge a priori will have an easy job: “The man has
+perceived it with his mind and reproduced it therewith; no objection may
+be raised to the soundness of his understanding; ergo, everything may be
+relied upon just as he has testified to it.” But he who believes in the
+more uncomfortable, but at least more conscientious, skeptical doctrine,
+has, at the minimum, some fair reason for believing himself able to
+trust the intelligence of a witness. Yet he neither is spared the task
+of testing the correctness of the witness’s analogy, experience and
+observation.</p>
+
+<p>Apriorism and skepticism define the great difference in the attitude
+toward the witness. Both skeptic and apriorist have to test the desire
+of the witness to lie, but only the skeptic needs to test the witness’s
+ability to tell the truth and his possession of sufficient understanding
+to reproduce correctly; to examine closely his innumerable inferences
+from analogy, experience and observation. That only the skeptic can be
+right everybody knows who has at all noticed how various people differ
+in regard to analogies, how very different the experiences of a single
+man are, both in their observation and interpretation. To distinguish
+these differences clearly is the main task of our investigation.</p>
+
+<p>There are two conditions to consider. One is the strict difference
+between what is causally related and its accidental concomitants,&mdash;a
+difference with regard to which experience is so often misleading, for
+two phenomena may occur together at the same time without being causally
+connected. When a man is ninety years old and has observed, every week
+in his life, that in his part of the country there is invariably a
+rainfall every Tuesday, this observation is richly and often tested, yet
+nobody will get the notion of causally connecting Tuesday and rain&mdash;but
+only because such connection would<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_128" id="page_128"></a>{128}</span> be regarded as generally foolish. If
+the thing, however, may be attributed to coincidence with a little more
+difficulty, then it becomes easier to suppose a causal connection; e.g.,
+as when it rains on All-souls day, or at the new moon. If the accidental
+nature of the connection is still less obvious, the observation becomes
+a much-trusted and energetically defended meteorological law. This
+happens in all possible fields, and not only our witnesses but we
+ourselves often find it very difficult to distinguish between causation
+and accident. The only useful rule to follow is to presuppose accident
+wherever it is not indubitably and from the first excluded, and
+carefully to examine the problem for whatever causal connection it may
+possibly reveal. “Whatever is united in any perception must be united
+according to a general rule, but a great deal more may be present
+without having any causal relation.”</p>
+
+<p>The second important condition was mentioned by Schopenhauer:<a name="FNanchor_134_134" id="FNanchor_134_134"></a><a href="#Footnote_134_134" class="fnanchor">[134]</a> “As
+soon as we have assigned causal force to any great influence and thereby
+recognized that it is efficacious, then its intensification in the face
+of any resistance according to the intensity of the resistance will
+produce finally the appropriate effect. Whoever cannot be bribed by ten
+dollars, but vacillates, will be bribed by twenty-five or fifty.”</p>
+
+<p>This simple example may be generalized into a golden rule for lawyers
+and requires them to test the effect of any force on the accused at an
+earlier time in the latter’s life or in other cases,&mdash;i.e., the early
+life of the latter can never be studied with sufficient care. This study
+is of especial importance when the question is one of determining the
+culpability of the accused with regard to a certain crime. We have then
+to ask whether he had the motive in question, or whether the crime could
+have been of interest to him. In this investigation the problem of the
+necessary intensity of the influence in question need not, for the time,
+be considered; only its presence needs to be determined. That it may
+have disappeared without any demonstrable special reason is not
+supposable, for inclinations, qualities, and passions are rarely lost;
+they need not become obvious so long as opportunity and stimulus are
+absent, and they may be in some degree suppressed, but they manifest
+themselves as soon as&mdash;Schopenhauer’s twenty-five or fifty dollars
+appear. The problem is most difficult when it requires the conversion of
+certain related properties, e.g., when the problem is one of suspecting
+a person of murderous inclination, and all that<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_129" id="page_129"></a>{129}</span> can be shown in his
+past life is the maltreatment of animals. Or again, when cruelty has to
+be shown and all that is established is great sensuality. Or when there
+is no doubt about cruelty and the problem is one of supposing intense
+avarice. These questions of conversion are not especially difficult, but
+when it must be explained to what such qualities as very exquisite
+egoism, declared envy, abnormal desire for honor, exaggerated conceit,
+and great idleness may lead to, the problem requires great caution and
+intensive study.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 25. (c) Skepticism.</h5>
+
+<p>Hume’s skepticism is directly connected with the subject of the
+preceding chapter, but wants still a few words for itself. Though it is
+not the lawyer’s problem to take an attitude with regard to
+philosophical skepticism, his work becomes essentially easier through
+the study of Hume’s doctrines.</p>
+
+<p>According to these, all we know and infer, in so far as it is
+unmathematical, results from experience, and our conviction of it and
+our reasoning about it, means by which we pass the bounds of
+sense-perception, depend on sensation, memory and inference from
+causation. Our knowledge of the relation of cause and effect results
+also from experience, and the doctrine, applied to the work of the
+criminalist, may be formulated as follows: “Whatever we take as true is
+not an intellectual deduction, but an empirical proposition.” In other
+words, our presuppositions and inferential knowledge depend only upon
+those innumerable repetitions of events from which we postulate that the
+event recurred in the place in question. This sets us the problem of
+determining whether the similar cases with which we compare the present
+one really are similar and if they are known in sufficiently large
+numbers to exclude everything else.</p>
+
+<p>Consider a simple example. Suppose somebody who had traveled all through
+Europe, but had never seen or heard of a negro, thought about the
+pigmentation of human beings: neither all his thinking nor the
+assistance of all possible scientific means can lead him to the
+conclusion that there are also black people&mdash;that fact he can only
+discover, not think out. If he depends only on experience, he must
+conclude from the millions of examples he has observed that all human
+beings are white. His mistake consists in the fact that the immense
+number of people he has seen belong to the inhabitants of a single zone,
+and that he has <i>failed to observe</i> the inhabitants of other regions.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_130" id="page_130"></a>{130}</span></p>
+
+<p>In our own cases we need no examples, for I know of no inference which
+was not made in the following fashion: “The situation was so in a
+hundred cases, it must be so in this case.” We rarely ask whether we
+know enough examples, whether they were the correct ones, and whether
+they were exhaustive. It will be no mistake to assert that we lawyers do
+this more or less consciously on the supposition that we have an immense
+collection of suggestive a priori inferences which the human
+understanding has brought together for thousands of years, and hence
+believe them to be indubitably certain. If we recognize that all these
+presuppositions are compounds of experience, and that every experience
+may finally show itself to be deceptive and false; if we recognize how
+the actual progress of human knowledge consists in the addition of one
+hundred new experiences to a thousand old ones, and if we recognize that
+many of the new ones contradict the old ones: if we recognize the
+consequence that there is no reason for the mathematical deduction from
+the first to the hundred-and-first case, we shall make fewer mistakes
+and do less harm. In this regard, Hume<a name="FNanchor_135_135" id="FNanchor_135_135"></a><a href="#Footnote_135_135" class="fnanchor">[135]</a> is very illuminative.</p>
+
+<p>According to Masaryk,<a name="FNanchor_136_136" id="FNanchor_136_136"></a><a href="#Footnote_136_136" class="fnanchor">[136]</a> the fundamental doctrine of Humian skepticism
+is as follows: “If I have had one and the same experience ever so often,
+i.e., if I have seen the sun go up 100 times, I expect to see it go up
+the 101st time the next day, but I have no guarantee, no certainty, no
+evidence for this belief. Experience looks only to the past, not to the
+future. How can I then discover the 101st sunrise in the first 100
+sunrises? Experience reveals in me the habit to expect similar effects
+from similar circumstances, but the intellect has no share in this
+expectation.”</p>
+
+<p>All the sciences based on experience are uncertain and without logical
+foundation, even though their results, as a whole and in the mass, are
+predictable. Only mathematics offers certainty and evidence. Therefore,
+according to Hume, sciences based on experience are unsafe because the
+recognition of causal connection depends on the facts of experience and
+we can attain to certain knowledge of the facts of experience only on
+the ground of the evident relation of cause and effect.</p>
+
+<p>This view was first opposed by Reid, who tried to demonstrate that we
+have a clear notion of necessary connection. He grants that this notion
+is not directly attained either from external or internal experience,
+but asserts its clearness and certainty in spite<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_131" id="page_131"></a>{131}</span> of that fact. Our mind
+has the power to make its own concepts and one such concept is that of
+necessary connection. Kant goes further and says that Hume failed to
+recognize the full consequences of his own analysis, for the notion of
+causality is not the only one which the understanding uses to represent
+a priori the connection of objects. And hence, Kant defines
+psychologically and logically a whole system of similar concepts. His
+“Critique of Pure Reason” is intended historically and logically as the
+refutation of Hume’s skepticism. It aims to show that not only
+metaphysics and natural science have for their basis “synthetic
+judgments a priori,” but that mathematics also rests on the same
+foundation.</p>
+
+<p>Be that as it may, our task is to discover the application of Hume’s
+skepticism to our own problems in some clear example. Let us suppose
+that there are a dozen instances of people who grew to be from 120 to
+140 years old. These instances occur among countless millions of cases
+in which such an age was not reached. If this small proportion is
+recognized, it justifies the postulate that nobody on earth may attain
+to 150 years. But now it is known that the Englishman Thomas Parr got to
+be 152 years old, and his countryman Jenkins was shown, according to the
+indubitable proofs of the Royal Society, to be 157 years old at least
+(according to his portrait in a copper etching he was 169 years old).
+Yet as this is the most that has been scientifically proved I am
+justified in saying that nobody can grow to be 200 years old.
+Nevertheless because there are people who have attained the age of 180
+to 190 years, nobody would care to assert that it is absolutely
+impossible to grow so old. The names and histories of these people are
+recorded and their existence removes the great reason against this
+possibility.</p>
+
+<p>We have to deal, then, only with greater or lesser possibilities and
+agree with the Humian idea that under similar conditions frequency of
+occurrence implies repetition in the next instance. Contrary evidence
+may be derived from several so-called phenomena of alternation. E. g.,
+it is a well known fact that a number in the so-called Little Lottery,
+which has not been drawn for a long time, is sure finally to be drawn.
+If among 90 numbers the number 27 has not turned up for a long time its
+appearance becomes more probable with every successive drawing. All the
+so-called mathematical combinations of players depend on this
+experience, which, generalized, might be held to read: the oftener any
+event occurs (as the failure of the number 27 to be drawn) the less is
+the probability<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_132" id="page_132"></a>{132}</span> of its recurrence (i.e., it becomes more probable that
+27 will be drawn)&mdash;and this seems the contrary of Hume’s proposition.</p>
+
+<p>It may at first be said that the example ought to be put in a different
+form, i.e., as follows: If I know that a bag contains marbles, the color
+of which I do not know, and if I draw them one by one and always find
+the marble I have drawn to be white, the probability that the bag
+contains only white ones grows with every new drawing that brings a
+white marble to light. If the bag contains 100 marbles and 99 have been
+drawn out, nobody would suppose that the last one would be red&mdash;for the
+repetition of any event increases the probability of its occurrence.</p>
+
+<p>This formulation proves nothing, inasmuch as a different example does
+not contradict the one it is intended to substitute. The explanation is
+rather as follows: In the first case there is involved the norm of equal
+possibilities, and if we apply the Humian principle of increase of
+probability through repetition, we find it effective in explaining the
+example. We have known until now always that the numbers in the Little
+Lottery are drawn equally, and with approximate regularity,&mdash;i.e., none
+of the single numbers is drawn for a disproportionately long time. And
+as this fact is invariable, we may suppose that every individual number
+would appear with comparative regularity. But this explanation is in
+accord with Hume’s doctrine.</p>
+
+<p>The doctrine clarifies even astonishing statistical miracles. We know,
+e.g., that every year there come together in a certain region a large
+number of suicides, fractures of arms and legs, assaults, unaddressed
+letters, etc. When, now, we discover that the number of suicides in a
+certain semester is significantly less than the number in the same
+semester of another year, we will postulate that in the next half-year a
+comparatively larger number of suicides will take place so that the
+number for the whole year will become approximately equal. Suppose we
+say: “There were in the months of January, February, March, April, May
+and June an average of x cases. Because we have observed the average to
+happen six times, we conclude that it will not happen in the other
+months but that instead, x+y cases will occur in those months, since
+otherwise the average annual count will not be attained.” This would be
+a mistaken abstraction of the principle of equal distribution from the
+general Humian law, for the Humian law applied to this case indicates:
+“For a long series of years we have observed that in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_133" id="page_133"></a>{133}</span> this region there
+occur annually so and so many suicides; we conclude therefore that in
+this year also there will occur a similar number of suicides.”</p>
+
+<p>The principle of equal distribution presents itself therefore as a
+subordinate rule which must not be separated from the principal law. It
+is, indeed, valid for the simplest events. When I resolve to walk in x
+street, which I know well, and when I recall whether to-day is Sunday or
+a week day, what time it is and what the weather is like, I know quite
+accurately how the street will look with regard to the people that may
+be met there, although a large number of these people have chosen the
+time accidentally and might as well have passed through another street.
+If, for once, there were more people in the street, I should immediately
+ask myself what unusual event had taken place.</p>
+
+<p>One of my cousins who had a good deal of free time to dispose of, spent
+it for several months, with the assistance of his comrade, in counting
+the number of horses that passed daily, in the course of two hours, by a
+café they frequented. The conscientious and controlled count indicated
+that every day there came one bay horse to every four. If then, on any
+given day, an incommensurably large number of brown, black, and tawny
+horses came in the course of the first hour, the counters were forced to
+infer that in the next 60 minutes horses of a different color must come
+and that a greater number of bays must appear in order to restore the
+disturbed equilibrium. Such an inference is not contradictory to the
+Humian proposition. At the end of a series of examinations the counters
+were compelled to say, “Through so many days we have counted one bay to
+every four horses; we must therefore suppose that a similar relationship
+will be maintained the next day.”</p>
+
+<p>So, the lawyer, too, must suppose, although we lawyers have nothing to
+do with figures, that he knows nothing a priori, and must construct his
+inferences entirely from experience. And hence we must agree that our
+premises for such inferences are uncertain, and often subject to
+revision, and often likely, in their application to new facts, to lead
+to serious mistakes, particularly if the number of experiences from
+which the next moment is deduced, are too few; or if an unknown, but
+very important condition is omitted.</p>
+
+<p>These facts must carefully be kept in mind with reference to the
+testimony of experts. Without showing ourselves suspicious, or desirous
+of confusing the professional in his own work, we must consider that the
+progress of knowledge consists in the collection<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_134" id="page_134"></a>{134}</span> of instances, and
+anything that might have been normal in 100 cases, need not in any sense
+be so when 1000 cases are in question. Yesterday the norm may have been
+subject to no exception; to-day exceptions are noted; and to-morrow the
+exception has become the rule.</p>
+
+<p>Hence, rules which have no exceptions grow progressively rarer, and
+wherever a single exception is discovered the rule can no longer be held
+as normative. Thus, before New Holland was discovered, all swans were
+supposed to be white, all mammals incapable of laying eggs; now we know
+that there are black swans and that the duck-bill lays eggs. Who would
+have dared to assert before the discovery of the X-ray that light can
+penetrate wood, and who, especially, has dared to make generalizations
+with regard to the great inventions of our time which were not
+afterwards contradicted by the facts? It may be that the time is not too
+far away in which great, tenable and unexceptionable principles may be
+posited, but the present tendency is to beware of generalizations, even
+so far as to regard it a sign of scientific insight when the composition
+of generally valid propositions is made with great caution. In this
+regard the great physicians of our time are excellent examples. They
+hold: “whether the phenomenon A is caused by B we do not know, but
+nobody has ever yet seen a case of A in which the precedence of B could
+not be demonstrated.” Our experts should take the same attitude in most
+cases. It might be more uncomfortable for us, but certainly will be
+safer; for if they do not take that attitude we are in duty bound to
+presuppose in our conclusions that they have taken it. Only in this
+wise, by protecting ourselves against apparently exceptionless general
+rules, can our work be safely carried on.</p>
+
+<p>This becomes especially our duty where, believing ourselves to have
+discovered some generally valid rule, we are compelled to draw
+conclusions without the assistance of experts. How often have we
+depended upon our understanding and our “correct” a priori method of
+inference, where that was only experience,&mdash;and such poor experience! We
+lawyers have not yet brought our science so far as to be able to make
+use of the experience of our comrades with material they have reviewed
+and defined in writing. We have bothered a great deal about the
+exposition of some legal difficulty, the definition of some judicial
+concept, but we have received little instruction or tradition concerning
+mankind and its passions. Hence, each one has to depend on his own
+experience, and that is supposed<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_135" id="page_135"></a>{135}</span> to be considerable if it has a score
+of years to its back, and is somewhat supplemented by the experience, of
+others. In this regard there are no indubitable rules; everybody must
+tell himself, “I have perhaps never experienced this fact, but it may be
+that a thousand other people have seen it, and seen it in a thousand
+different ways. How then, and whence, my right to exclude every
+exception?”</p>
+
+<p>We must never forget that every rule is shattered whenever any single
+element of the situation is unknown, and that happens very easily and
+frequently. Suppose that I did not have full knowledge of the nature of
+water, and walked on terra firma to the edge of some quiet, calm pool.
+When now I presume: water has a body, it has a definite density, it has
+consistency, weight, etc., I will also presume that I may go on walking
+over its surface just as over the surface of the earth,&mdash;and that,
+simply because I am ignorant of its fluidity and its specific gravity.
+Liebman<a name="FNanchor_137_137" id="FNanchor_137_137"></a><a href="#Footnote_137_137" class="fnanchor">[137]</a> summarizes the situation as follows. The causal nexus, the
+existential and objective relation between lightning and thunder, the
+firing of powder and the explosion, are altogether different from the
+logical nexus, i.e. the mere conceptual connection between antecedent
+and consequent in deduction. This constitutes the well known kernel of
+Humian skepticism. We must keep in mind clearly that we never can know
+with certainty whether we are in possession of all the determining
+factors of a phenomenon, and hence we must adhere to the only
+unexceptionable rule: <i>Be careful about making rules that admit of no
+exceptions</i>. There is still another objection to discuss, i.e. the
+mathematical exception to Humian skepticism. It might be held that
+inasmuch as the science of justice is closely related in many ways to
+mathematics, it may permit of propositions a priori. Leibnitz already
+had said, “The mathematicians count with numbers, the lawyers with
+ideas,&mdash;fundamentally both do the same thing.” If the relationship were
+really so close, general skepticism about phenomenal sciences could not
+be applied to the legal disciplines. But we nowadays deal not with
+concepts merely, and in spite of all obstruction, Leibnitz’s time has
+passed and the realities of our profession, indeed its most important
+object, the human being itself, constitute an integrating part of our
+studies. And the question may be still further raised whether
+mathematics is really so exempt from skepticism. The work of Gauss,
+Lobatschewski, Bolyai, Lambert, would make the answer negative.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_136" id="page_136"></a>{136}</span></p>
+
+<p>Let us, for once, consider what significance mathematical postulates
+have. When Pythagoras discovered his proposition in such a way that he
+first drew a right-angled triangle and then built a square on each of
+the sides, and finally measured the area of each and compared them, he
+must at first have got the notion that that also might be merely
+accidental. If he had made the construction 10 or 100 times with various
+triangles and these had resulted always identically, only then might he
+have been justified in saying that he had apparently discovered a
+theorem. But then his process was just as thoroughly experiential as
+that of a scientist who says that a bird has never yet been observed to
+give birth to living young, and that hence all birds lay eggs.</p>
+
+<p>But Pythagoras did not proceed in this experiential manner in the
+discovery of his theorem. He constructed and he counted, and when he did
+that he acted on postulates: “If this is a right-angled triangle and if
+that be a square, so,”&mdash;and this is just what is done in every science.
+The general propositions are, “If the relations remain the same as
+formerly the moon must rise to-morrow at such and such a time.” “If this
+step in a deduction is not false, if it is well grounded at this point,
+if it really refers to x, it follows....” In his procedures the
+criminalist does exactly the same thing. What he must be skeptical about
+is the postulates from which he starts.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 26. (d) The Empirical Method in the Study of Cases.</h5>
+
+<p>Properly to bound our discussion of Humian skepticism, a few words have
+to be said concerning the empirical method of the sciences. We will call
+those laws purely empirical which, in the study of nature, yield
+regularities that are demonstrated by observation and experiment, but
+upon which little or no reliance is placed with regard to cases which
+differ considerably from the observed. The latter is done because no
+reason is seen for the existence of such laws. The empirical rule is,
+therefore, no final law, but is capable of explaining, especially when
+true, e.g., the succession of a certain condition of weather from
+certain meteorological signs, the improvement of species through
+crossing, the fact that some alloys are harder than their components,
+and so on. Or, to choose examples from our own field, jurisprudence may
+assert as empirical law that a murderer is a criminal who has gone
+unpunished for his earlier crimes; that all gamblers show such
+significant resemblances; that the criminal who has soiled his hands
+with blood in some violent<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_137" id="page_137"></a>{137}</span> crime was accustomed to wipe them on the
+underside of a table; that the slyest person generally perpetrates some
+gross stupidity after committing a serious crime, and so renders
+discovery simpler; that lust and cruelty have a certain relation; that
+superstition plays a great rôle in crime, etc.</p>
+
+<p>It is of exceeding importance to establish such purely empiric laws in
+our science, which has done little with such matters because, owing to
+scanty research into most of them, we need these laws. We know
+approximately that this and that have come to light so and so often, but
+we have not reduced to order and studied systematically the cases before
+us, and we dare not call this knowledge natural law because we have
+subjected it to no inductive procedure. “The reference of any fact
+discovered by experience to general laws or rules we call induction. It
+embraces both observation and deduction.” Again, it may be defined as
+“the generalization or universalization of our experiences; and
+inference that a phenomenon occurring x times will invariably occur when
+the essential circumstances remain identical. The earliest investigators
+started with the simplest inductions,&mdash;that fire burns, that water flows
+downward,&mdash;so that new, simple truths were continually discovered. This
+is the type of scientific induction and it requires further, the
+addition of certainty and accuracy.”<a name="FNanchor_138_138" id="FNanchor_138_138"></a><a href="#Footnote_138_138" class="fnanchor">[138]</a></p>
+
+<p>The foregoing might have been written expressly for us lawyers, but we
+have to bear in mind that we have not proceeded in our own
+generalizations beyond “fire burns, water flows downward.” And such
+propositions we have only derived from other disciplines. Those derived
+from our own are very few indeed, and to get more we have very far to
+go. Moreover, the laws of experience are in no way so certain as they
+are supposed to be, even when mathematically conceived. The empirical
+law is established that the sum of the three angles of a triangle is
+equal to two right angles. And yet nobody, ever since the science of
+surveying has been invented, has succeeded in discovering 180 degrees in
+any triangle. Now then, when even such things, supposed ever since our
+youth to be valid, are not at all true, or true theoretically only, how
+much more careful must we be in making inferences from much less certain
+rules, even though we have succeeded in using them before in many
+analogous cases? The activity of a criminalist is of far too short
+duration to permit him to experience any more than a very small portion
+of the possibilities of life, and suggestions from foreign sources are
+very<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_138" id="page_138"></a>{138}</span> rare. The situation is different in other disciplines. “Our
+experience,” says James Sully,<a name="FNanchor_139_139" id="FNanchor_139_139"></a><a href="#Footnote_139_139" class="fnanchor">[139]</a> “enables us to express a number of
+additional convictions. We can predict political changes and scientific
+developments, and can conceive of the geographical conditions at the
+north pole.” Other disciplines are justified to assert such additional
+propositions, but is ours? A man may have dealt for years with thieves
+and swindlers, but is he justified in deducing from the inductions made
+in his experience, the situation of the first murderer he deals with? Is
+he right in translating things learned by dealing with educated people
+to cases where only peasants appear? In all these cases what is needed
+in making deductions is great caution and continual reminder to be very
+careful, for our work here still lacks the proper material. In addition
+we have to bear in mind that induction is intimately related to analogy.
+According to Lipps<a name="FNanchor_140_140" id="FNanchor_140_140"></a><a href="#Footnote_140_140" class="fnanchor">[140]</a> the ground of one is the ground of the other;
+they both rest on the same foundation. “If I am still in doubt whether
+the fact on which a moment ago I depended as the sufficient condition
+for a judgment may still be so regarded, the induction is uncertain. It
+is unjustified when I take for sufficiently valid something that as a
+matter of fact ought not to be so taken.” If we bear in mind how much we
+are warned against the use of analogy, how it is expressly excluded in
+the application of certain criminal laws, and how dangerous the use of
+every analogy is, we must be convinced that the use for our cases of
+both induction and analogy, is always menace. We have at the same time
+to bear in mind how much use we actually make of both; even our general
+rules&mdash;e.g., concerning false testimony,&mdash;bias, revertibility, special
+inclinations, etc.&mdash;and our doctrines concerning the composition and
+indirection of testimony, even our rules concerning the value of
+witnesses and confessions, all these depend upon induction and analogy.
+We pass by their use in every trial from case to case. A means so
+frequently and universally used must, however, be altogether reliable,
+or be handled with the greatest care. As it is not the first it must be
+handled in the second way.</p>
+
+<p>We have yet to indicate the various ways in which induction may be used.
+Fick has already called attention to the astounding question concluding
+Mill’s system of logic: Why, in many cases, is a single example
+sufficient to complete induction, while in other<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_139" id="page_139"></a>{139}</span> cases myriads of
+unanimous instances admitting of no single known or suspected exception,
+make only a small step toward the establishment of a generally valid
+judgment?</p>
+
+<p>This question is of enormous significance in criminal cases because it
+is not easy to determine in any particular trial whether we have to deal
+with a situation of the first sort where a single example is evidential,
+or a situation of the second sort where a great many examples fail to be
+evidential. On this difficulty great mistakes depend, particularly
+mistakes of substitution of the first for the second. We are satisfied
+in such cases with a few examples and suppose ourselves to have proved
+the case although nothing whatever has been established.</p>
+
+<p>We must see first of all if it is of any use to refer the difficulty of
+the matter to the form in which the question is put, and to say: The
+difficulty results from the question itself. If it be asked, “Are any of
+the thousand marbles in the bag white marbles?” the question is
+determined by the first handful, if the latter brings to light a single
+white marble. If, however, the problem is phrased so: Does the bag
+contain white marbles <i>only</i>? then, although 999 marbles might already
+have been drawn from the receptacle, it can not be determined that the
+last marble of the 1000 is white. In the same way, if people assert that
+the form of the question determines the answer, it does not follow that
+the form of the question is itself determined or distinguished inasmuch
+as the object belongs to the first or the second of the above named
+categories.</p>
+
+<p>A safe method of distinction consists in calling the first form of the
+question positive and the second negative. The positive refers to a
+single unit; the negative to a boundless unit. If then I ask: Are there
+any white marbles whatever in the bag? the answer is rendered
+affirmative by the discovery of a single white marble. But if the
+question is phrased: Are there <i>only</i> white marbles in the bag? merely
+its form is positive but its intent is negative. To conform the manner
+of the question to its intent, it would be necessary to ask: Are there
+no other colors than white among the marbles in the bag? And inasmuch as
+the negative under given circumstances is in many ways boundless, the
+question admits of no answer until the last marble has been brought to
+light. If the total number of marbles is unlimited the question can
+receive no complete inductive answer in mathematical form; it can be
+solved only approximately. So again, if one asks: Are there any purely
+blue birds? the answer is affirmative as soon as a single completely
+blue bird is brought to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_140" id="page_140"></a>{140}</span> light. But if the question is: Do not also
+striped birds exist? no answer is possible until the very last bird on
+earth is exhibited. In that way only could the possibility be excluded
+that not one of the terrestrial fowls is striped. As a matter of fact we
+are satisfied with a much less complete induction. So we say: Almost the
+whole earth has been covered by naturalists and not one of them reports
+having observed a striped bird; hence there would be none such even in
+the unexplored parts of the earth. This is an inductive inference and
+its justification is quite another question.</p>
+
+<p>The above mentioned distinction may be made still clearer if instead of
+looking back to the form of the question, we study only the answer. We
+have then to say that positive statements are justified by the existence
+of a single instance, negative assertions only by the complete
+enumeration of all possible instances and never at all if the instances
+be boundless. That the negative proof always requires a series of
+demonstrations is well known; the one thing which may be firmly believed
+is the fact that the problem, whether a single example is sufficient, or
+a million are insufficient, is only a form of the problem of affirmative
+and negative assertions.</p>
+
+<p>So then, if I ask: Has A ever stolen anything? it is enough to record
+one judgment against him, or to bring one witness on the matter in order
+to establish that A committed theft at least once in his life. If,
+however, it is to be proved that the man has never committed a theft,
+his whole life must be reviewed point by point, and it must be shown
+that at no instant of it did he commit larceny. In such cases we are
+content with much less. We say first of all: We will not inquire whether
+the man has never stolen. We will see merely whether he was never
+punished for theft. But here, too, we must beware and not commit
+ourselves to inquiring of all the authorities in the world, but only of
+a single authority, who, we assume, ought to know whether A was punished
+or not. If we go still further, we say that inasmuch as we have not
+heard from any authorities that the man was ever punished for stealing,
+we suppose that the man was never punished on that ground; and inasmuch
+as we have not examined anybody who had seen A steal, we preferably
+suppose that he has never stolen. This is what we call satisfactory
+evidence, and with the poor means at our disposal it must suffice.</p>
+
+<p>In most cases we have to deal with mixed evidence, and frequently it has
+become habitual to change the problem to be solved according to our
+convenience, or at least to set aside some one thing. Suppose<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_141" id="page_141"></a>{141}</span> that the
+issue deals with a discovered, well-retained footprint of a man. We then
+suspect somebody and compare the sole of his shoe with the impression.
+They fit in length and width, in the number of nails and in all the
+other possible indices, and we therefore assert: It is the footprint of
+the suspect, for “whose footprint?” is the problem we are troubling
+ourselves to solve. In truth we have only shown that the particular
+relations, in the matter of length, breadth, number of nails, etc.,
+agree, and hence we regard the positive part of the evidence as
+sufficient and neglect the whole troublesome negative part, which might
+establish the fact that at the time and in the region in question,
+nobody was or could be whose foot could accurately fit that particular
+footprint. Therefore we have not proved but have only calculated the
+probability that at the time there might possibly not have been another
+person with a shoe of similar length, breadth and number of nails. The
+probability becomes naturally less as fewer details come to hand. The
+difficulty lies in finding where such probability, which stands for at
+least an assumption, must no longer be considered. Suppose, now, that
+neither shoe-nails nor patches, nor other clear clews can be proved and
+only length and width agree. If the agreement of the clews were really a
+substantiation of the proof by evidence, it would have to suffice as
+positive evidence; but as has been explained, the thing proved is not
+the point at issue, but another point.</p>
+
+<p>The negative portion of the evidence will naturally be developed with
+less accuracy. The proof is limited to the assertion that such shoes as
+were indicated in the evidence were very rarely or never worn in that
+region, also that no native could have been present, that the form of
+the nails allowed inference of somebody from foreign regions, one of
+which might be the home of the suspect, etc. Such an examination shows
+that what we call evidence is only probability or possibility.</p>
+
+<p>Another form which seems to contradict the assertion that negative
+propositions are infinite is positive evidence in the shape of negation.
+If we give an expert a stain to examine and ask him whether it is a
+blood stain, and he tells us: “It is not a blood stain,” then this
+single scientifically established assertion proves that we do not have
+to deal with blood, and hence “negative” proof seems brought in a single
+instance. But as a matter of fact we deal here with an actually positive
+proof, for the expert has given us the deduced proposition, not the
+essential assertion. He has found the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_142" id="page_142"></a>{142}</span> stain to be a rust stain or a
+tobacco stain, and hence he may assert and deduce that it is not blood.
+Even were he a skeptic, he would say, “We have not yet seen the blood of
+a mammal in which the characteristic signs for recognition were not
+present, and we have never yet recognized a body without the blood
+pertaining to it, and hence we may say, we are not dealing with blood
+because all of us found the characteristics of the stain to be what we
+have been until now accustomed to call the characteristics of rust
+stain.”</p>
+
+<p>We have still to touch upon the difference between logical connection
+and experience. If I say, “This mineral tastes salty, therefore it is
+soluble in water,” the inference depends upon logical relationships, for
+my intent is: “If I perceive a salty taste, it has to be brought to the
+nerves of taste, which can be done only by the combination of the
+mineral with the saliva, hence by its solution in the saliva. But if it
+is soluble in saliva it must also be soluble in water.” If I say on the
+other hand, “This mineral tastes salty, has a hardness of 2, a specific
+gravity of 2.2, and consequently it crystallizes hexagonally,”&mdash;this
+statement depends on experience, for what I really say is: “I know first
+of all, that a mineral which has the qualities mentioned must be rock
+salt; for at the least, we know of no mineral which has these qualities
+and is not rock salt, and which in the second place crystallizes
+hexagonally as rock salt does,&mdash;a way which, at least, we find rock salt
+never to have missed.” If we examine the matter still more closely we
+become convinced that in the first case only the formal and logical
+side, in the second the experiential aspect predominates. The premises
+of both cases are purely matters of experience and the formal question
+of inference is a matter of logic. Only,&mdash;at one time the first
+question, at another the second comes more obviously into the
+foreground. Although this matter appears self-evident it is not
+indifferent. It is well known that whenever we are powerfully influenced
+by one thing, things of little intensity are either not experienced at
+all or only to a very small degree, and are therefore neglected. This is
+a fact which may indeed be shown mathematically, for infinity plus one
+equals infinity. When, therefore, we undergo great pain or great joy,
+any accompanying insignificant pain or any pleasure will be barely felt,
+just as the horses who drag a very heavy wagon will not notice whether
+the driver walking beside them adds his coat to the load (cf. Weber’s
+law). Hence, when we criminalists study a difficult case with regard to
+the question of proof, there are two things to do in order to test the
+premises for correctness according<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_143" id="page_143"></a>{143}</span> to the standards of our other
+experiences, and to draw logically correct inferences from these
+premises. If it happens that there are especial difficulties in one
+direction while by some chance those in the other are easily removed, it
+becomes surprising how often the latter are entirely ignored. And hence,
+the adjustment of inferences is naturally false even when the great
+difficulties of the first type are removed correctly. Therefore, if the
+establishment of a fact costs a good deal of pains and means the
+expenditure of much time, the business of logical connection appears so
+comparatively easy that it is made swiftly and&mdash;wrongly.</p>
+
+<p>Mistakes become, at least according to my experience, still more
+frequent when the difficulty is logical and not empirical. As a matter
+of honesty, let me say that we criminalists are not trained logicians,
+however necessary it is that we shall be such, and most of us are
+satisfied with the barren remainder of what we learned long ago in the
+Gymnasium and have since forgotten. The difficulties which occur in the
+more important logical tasks are intelligible when compared with the
+lesser difficulties; and when one of these larger problems is by good
+fortune rightly solved, the effort and the work required by the solution
+make it easy to forget asking whether the premises are correct; they are
+assumed as self-evident. Hence, in the review of the basis for judgment,
+it is often discovered that the logical task has been performed with
+care, with the expenditure of much time, etc., only to be based upon
+some apparently unessential presupposition which contradicts all
+experience and is hence materially incorrect. Consequence,&mdash;the
+inference is wrong since the premise was wrong, and the whole work has
+gone for nothing. Such occurrences convince one that no judge would have
+been guilty of them if the few difficulties concerning the fact in
+question were not, because treated in the light of the effort required
+by the logical work, quite neglected. Nor does this occur unconsciously,
+or as a consequence of a sort of lapse of memory concerning the meaning
+or the importance of an empirical problem, it also happens at least half
+consciously by way of a characteristic psychic process which everybody
+may identify in his own experience: i.e., the idea occurs, in some
+degree subconsciously, that the overgreatness of the work done in one
+direction ought to be corrected by the inadequacy of the work done in
+the other direction. And this happens in lawyer’s work often, and being
+frequently justifiable, becomes habitual. If I, for example, have
+examined ten unanimous witnesses concerning the same event and have
+completely demonstrated<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_144" id="page_144"></a>{144}</span> the status of the case, I ought, in examining
+the last two witnesses, who are perhaps no longer needed but have been
+summoned and appear, certainly to proceed in a rapid manner. This
+justifiable neglect is then half unconsciously transferred to other
+procedures where there is possible no equalization of the hypertrophy of
+work in one direction with the dwarfing of it in another, and where the
+mistake causes the result to be wrong. However I may have been bothered
+by the multiplication of ten groups of factors and whatever accuracy I
+may have applied to a task can not permit me to relax my attention in
+the addition of the individual results. If I do I am likely to commit an
+error and the error renders all the previous labor worthless.</p>
+
+<p>Indeed, it may be asserted that all logic is futile where the premises
+or a single premise may be wrong. I expect, in truth, that the
+procedures here described will be doubted to be even possible, but
+doubters are recommended to examine a few cases for the presence of this
+sort of thing.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 27. (e) Analogy.</h5>
+
+<p>Analogy is the least negligible of all methods of induction because it
+rests at bottom on the postulate that one thing which has a number of
+qualities in common with another will agree with that other in one or
+more <i>additional</i> qualities. In cases of analogy, identity is never
+asserted; indeed, it is excluded, while a certain parallelism and
+agreement in specific points are assumed, i.e., introduced tacitly as a
+mutatis mutandis. Consider Lipps’s examples. He calls analogy the
+transfer of judgment or the transition from similar to similar, and he
+adds that the value of such a process is very variable. If I have
+perceived x times that flowers of a certain color have perfume, I am
+inclined to expect perfume from flowers of the same color in x+1 cases.
+If I have observed x times that clouds of a certain structure are
+followed by rain I shall expect rain in the x+1st case. The first
+analogy is worthless because there is no relation between color and
+perfume; the second is of great value because such a relation does exist
+between rain and clouds.</p>
+
+<p>Simply stated, the difference between these two examples does not
+consist in the existence of a relationship in the one case and the
+absence of a relationship in the other; it consists in the fact that in
+the case of the flowers the relationship occurs now and then but is not
+permanently knowable. It is possible that there is a natural law
+controlling the relation between color and odor, and if<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_145" id="page_145"></a>{145}</span> that law were
+known there would be no question of accident or of analogy, but of law.
+Our ignorance of such a law, in spite of the multiplicity of instances,
+lies in the fact that we are concerned only with the converse
+relationships and not with the common cause of perfume and color.
+Suppose I see on the street a large number of people with winter
+over-coats and a large number of people with skates in their hands, I
+would hardly ask whether the coats are conditioned or brought out by the
+skates or the skates by the coats. If I do not conclude that the cold
+weather is the condition both of the need of over-coats and the utility
+of skates, I will suppose that there is some unintelligible reflexive
+relation between over-coats and skates. If I observe that on a certain
+day every week there regularly appear many well-dressed people and no
+workingmen on the street, if I am ignorant of the fact that Sunday is
+the cause of the appearance of the one and the disappearance of the
+other, I shall try in vain to find out how it happens that the working
+people are crowded out by the well-dressed ones or conversely.</p>
+
+<p>The danger of analogy lies in the fact that we prefer naturally to
+depend on something already known, and that the preference is the
+greater in proportion to our feeling of the strangeness and ominousness
+of the particular intellectual or natural regions in which we find
+ourselves. I have already once demonstrated<a name="FNanchor_141_141" id="FNanchor_141_141"></a><a href="#Footnote_141_141" class="fnanchor">[141]</a> how disquieting it is
+to notice, during the examination of the jury, that the jurymen who ask
+questions try to find some relation to their own trades even though this
+requires great effort, and seek to bring the case they are asking about
+under the light of their particular profession. So, however irrelevant
+the statement of a witness may be, the merchant juryman will use it to
+explain Saldo-Conti, the carpenter juryman to explain carpentry, the
+agriculturist to notice the farming of cattle, and then having set the
+problem in his own field construct the most daring analogies, for use in
+determining the guilt of the accused. And we lawyers are no better. The
+more difficult and newer a case is the more are we inclined to seek
+analogies. We want supports, for we do not find firm natural laws, and
+in our fear we reach out after analogies, not of course in law, because
+that is not permitted, but certainly in matters of fact. Witness X has
+given difficult testimony in a certain case. We seek an analogy in
+witness Y of an older case, and we observe the present issue thus
+analogically, without the least justification. We have never yet seen
+drops of blood on colored carpets, yet we believe in applying<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_146" id="page_146"></a>{146}</span> our
+experience of blood stains on clothes and boots analogically. We have
+before us a perfectly novel deed rising from perverted sexual
+impulse&mdash;and we presuppose that the accused is to be treated altogether
+analogously to another in a different case, although indeed the whole
+event was different.</p>
+
+<p>Moreover the procedure, where the analogy is justified, is complex.
+“With insight,” says Trendelenburg, “did the ancients regard analogy as
+important. The power of analogy lies in the construction and induction
+of a general term which binds the subconcept with regard to which a
+conclusion is desired, together with the individual object which is
+compared with the first, and which is to appear as a mediating concept
+but can not. This new general term is not, however, the highest concept
+among the three termini of the conclusion; it is the middle one and is
+nothing else than the terminus medius of the first figure.” This clear
+statement shows not only how circumstantial every conclusion from
+analogy is, but also how little it achieves. There is hardly any doubt
+of the well-known fact that science has much to thank analogy for, since
+analogy is the simplest and easiest means for progress in thought. If
+anything is established in any one direction but progress is desired in
+another, then the attempt is made to adapt what is known to the
+proximate unknown and to draw the possible inference by analogy.
+Thousands upon thousands of analogies have been attempted and have
+failed,&mdash;but no matter; one successful one became a hypothesis and
+finally an important natural law. In our work, however, the case is
+altogether different, for we are not concerned with the construction of
+hypotheses, we are concerned with the discovering of truth, or with the
+recognition that it cannot be discovered.</p>
+
+<p>The only place where our problems permit of the use of analogy is in the
+making of so-called constructions, i.e., when we aim to clarify or to
+begin the explanation of a case which is at present unintelligible, by
+making some assumption. The construction then proceeds in analogy to
+some already well known earlier case. We say: “Suppose the case to have
+been so and so,” and then we begin to test the assumption by applying it
+to the material before us, eliminating and constructing progressively
+until we get a consistent result. There is no doubt that success is
+frequently attained in this way and that it is often the only way in
+which a work may be begun. At the same time, it must be recognized how
+dangerous this is, for in the eagerness of the work it is easy to forget
+that so far, one is working only according to analogy by means of an
+assumption<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_147" id="page_147"></a>{147}</span> still to be proved. This assumption is in such cases
+suddenly considered as something already proved and is counted as such
+with the consequence that the result must be false. If you add the
+variability in value of analogy, a variability not often immediately
+recognized, the case becomes still worse. We have never been on the
+moon, have therefore apparently no right to judge the conditions
+there&mdash;and still we know&mdash;only by way of analogy&mdash;that if we jumped into
+the air there we should fall back to the ground. But still further: we
+conclude again, by analogy, that there are intelligent beings on Mars;
+if, however, we were to say how these people might look, whether like us
+or like cubes or like threads, whether they are as large as bees or ten
+elephants, we should have to give up because we have not the slightest
+basis for analogy.</p>
+
+<p>In the last analysis, analogy depends upon the recurrence of similar
+conditions. Therefore we tacitly assume when we judge by analogy that
+the similarity of conditions contains an equivalence of ultimately valid
+circumstance. The certainty of analogy is as great as the certainty of
+this postulate, and its right as great as the right of this postulate.</p>
+
+<p>If, then, the postulate is little certain, we have gained nothing and
+reach out into the dark; if its certainty is great we no longer have an
+analogy, we have a natural law. Hence, Whately uses the term analogy as
+an expression for the similarity of relation, and in this regard the use
+of analogy for our real work has no special significance. Concerning
+so-called false analogies and their importance cf. J. Schiel’s Die
+Methode der induktiven Forschung (Braunschweig 1865).</p>
+
+<h5>Section 28. (f) Probability.</h5>
+
+<p>Inasmuch as the work of the criminal judge depends upon the proof of
+evidence, it is conceivable that the thing for him most important is
+that which has evidential character or force.<a name="FNanchor_142_142" id="FNanchor_142_142"></a><a href="#Footnote_142_142" class="fnanchor">[142]</a> A sufficient
+definition of evidence or proof does not exist because no bounds have
+been set to the meaning of “Proved.” All disciplines furnish examples of
+the fact that things for a long time had probable validity, later
+indubitable validity; that again some things were considered proved and
+were later shown to be incorrect, and that many things at one time
+wobbly are in various places, and even among particular persons,
+supposed to be at the limits of probability and proof. Especially<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_148" id="page_148"></a>{148}</span>
+remarkable is the fact that the concept of <i>the proved</i> is very various
+in various sciences, and it would be absorbing to establish the
+difference between what is called proved and what only probable in a
+number of given examples by the mathematician, the physicist, the
+chemist, the physician, the naturalist, the philologist, the historian,
+the philosopher, the lawyer, the theologian, etc. But this is no task
+for us and nobody is called upon to determine who knows what “Proved”
+means. It is enough to observe that the differences are great and to
+understand why we criminalists have such various answers to the
+question: Is this proved or only probable? The varieties may be easily
+divided into groups according to the mathematical, philosophic,
+historical or naturalistic inclinations of the answerer. Indeed, if the
+individual is known, what he means by “proved” can be determined
+beforehand. Only those minds that have no especial information remain
+confused in this regard, both to others, and to themselves.</p>
+
+<p>Sharply to define the notion of “proved” would require at least to
+establish its relation to usage and to say: What we desire leads us to
+an <i>assumption</i>, what is possible gives us <i>probability</i>, what appears
+certain, we call <i>proved</i>. In this regard the second is always, in some
+degree, the standard for the first (desires, e.g., cause us to act; one
+becomes predominant and is fixed as an assumption which later on becomes
+clothed with a certain amount of reliability by means of this fixation).</p>
+
+<p>The first two fixations, the assumption and the probability, have in
+contrast to their position among other sciences only a heuristic
+interest to us criminalists. Even assumptions, when they become
+hypotheses, have in various disciplines a various value, and the
+greatest lucidity and the best work occur mainly in the quarrel about an
+acutely constructed hypothesis.</p>
+
+<p><i>Probability</i> has a similar position in the sciences. The scholar who
+has discovered a new thought, a new order, explanation or solution,
+etc., will find it indifferent whether he has made it only highly
+probable or certain. He is concerned only with the idea, and a scholar
+who is dealing with the idea for its own sake will perhaps prefer to
+bring it to a great probability rather than to indubitable certainty,
+for where conclusive proof is presented there is no longer much interest
+in further research, while probability permits and requires further
+study. But our aim is certainty and proof only, and even a high degree
+of probability is no better than untruth and can not count. In passing
+judgment and for the purpose of judgment<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_149" id="page_149"></a>{149}</span> a high degree of probability
+can have only corroborative weight, and then it is probability only when
+taken in itself, and proof when taken with regard to the thing it
+corroborates. If, for example, it is most probable that X was recognized
+at the place of a crime, and if at the same time his evidence of alibi
+has failed, his footmarks are corroborative; so are the stolen goods
+which have been seen in his possession, and something he had lost at the
+place of the crime which is recognized as his property, etc. In short,
+when all these indices are in themselves established only as highly
+probable, they give under certain circumstances, when taken together,
+complete certainty, because the coincidence of so many high
+probabilities must be declared impossible if X were not the criminal.</p>
+
+<p>In all other cases, as we have already pointed out, <i>assumption</i> and
+probability have only a heuristic value for us lawyers. With the
+assumption, we must of course count; many cases can not be begun without
+the assistance of assumption. Every only half-confused case, the process
+of which is unknown, requires first of all and as early as possible the
+application of some assumption to its material. As soon as the account
+is inconsistent the assumption must be abandoned and a fresh one and yet
+again a fresh one assumed, until finally one holds its own and may be
+established as probable. It then remains the center of operation, until
+it becomes of itself a proof or, as we have explained, until so many
+high probabilities in various directions have been gathered, that, taken
+in their order, they serve evidentially. A very high degree of
+probability is sufficient in making complaints; but sentencing requires
+“certainty,” and in most cases the struggle between the prosecution and
+the defense, and the doubt of the judge, turns upon the question of
+probability as against proof.<a name="FNanchor_143_143" id="FNanchor_143_143"></a><a href="#Footnote_143_143" class="fnanchor">[143]</a></p>
+
+<p>That probability is in this way and in a number of relations, of great
+value to the criminalist can not appear doubtful. Mittermaier defines
+its significance briefly: “Probability naturally can never lead to
+sentence. It is, however, important as a guide for the conduct of the
+examiner, as authorizing him to take certain measures; it shows how to
+attach certain legal processes in various directions.”</p>
+
+<p>Suppose that we review the history of the development of the theory of
+probability. The first to have attempted a sharp distinction between
+demonstrable and probable knowledge was Locke. Leibnitz was the first to
+recognize the importance of the theory<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_150" id="page_150"></a>{150}</span> of probability for inductive
+logic. He was succeeded by the mathematician Bernoulli and the
+revolutionist Condorcet. The theory in its modern form was studied by
+Laplace, Quetelet, Herschel, von Kirchmann, J. von Kries, Venn, Cournot,
+Fick, von Bortkiewicz, etc. The concept that is called probability
+varies with different authorities. Locke<a name="FNanchor_144_144" id="FNanchor_144_144"></a><a href="#Footnote_144_144" class="fnanchor">[144]</a> divides all fundamentals
+into demonstrative and probable. According to this classification it is
+probable that “all men are mortal,” and that “the sun will rise
+to-morrow.” But to be consistent with ordinary speech the fundamentals
+must be classified as evidence, certainties, and probabilities. By
+certainties I understand such fundamentals as are supported by
+experience and leave no room for doubt or consideration&mdash;everything
+else, especially as it permits of further proof, is more or less
+probable.</p>
+
+<p>Laplace<a name="FNanchor_145_145" id="FNanchor_145_145"></a><a href="#Footnote_145_145" class="fnanchor">[145]</a> spoke move definitely&mdash;“Probability depends in part on our
+ignorance, in part on our knowledge....</p>
+
+<p>“The theory of probability consists in the reduction of doubts of the
+same class of a definite number of equally possible cases in such a way
+that we are equally undetermined with regard to their existence, and it
+further consists in the determination of the number of those cases which
+are favorable to the result the probability of which is sought. The
+relation of this number to the number of all possible cases is the
+measure of the probability. It is therefore a fraction the numerator of
+which is derived from the number of cases favorable to the result and
+the denominator from the number of all possible cases.” Laplace,
+therefore, with J. S. Mill, takes probability to be a low degree of
+certainty, while Venn<a name="FNanchor_146_146" id="FNanchor_146_146"></a><a href="#Footnote_146_146" class="fnanchor">[146]</a> gives it an objective support like truth. The
+last view has a great deal of plausibility inasmuch as there is
+considerable doubt whether an appearance is to be taken as certain or as
+only probable. If this question is explained, the assertor of certainty
+has assumed some objective foundation which is indubitable at least
+subjectively. Fick represents the establishment of probability as a
+fraction as follows: “The probability of an incompletely expressed
+hypothetical judgment is a real fraction proved as a part of the whole
+universe of conditions upon which the realization of the required result
+necessarily depends.</p>
+
+<p>“According to this it is hardly proper to speak of the probability of
+any result. Every individual event is either absolutely necessary<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_151" id="page_151"></a>{151}</span> or
+impossible. The probability is a quality which can pertain only to a
+hypothetical judgment.”<a name="FNanchor_147_147" id="FNanchor_147_147"></a><a href="#Footnote_147_147" class="fnanchor">[147]</a></p>
+
+<p>That it is improper to speak of the probability of a result admits of no
+doubt, nor will anybody assert that the circumstance of to-morrow’s rain
+is in itself probable or improbable&mdash;the form of expression is only a
+matter of usage. It is, however, necessary to distinguish between
+conditioned and unconditioned probability. If I to-day consider the
+conditions which are attached to the ensuing change of weather, if I
+study the temperature, the barometer, the cloud formation, the amount of
+sunlight, etc., as conditions which are related to to-morrow’s weather
+as its forerunners, then I must say that to-morrow’s rain is probable to
+such or such a degree. And the correctness of my statement depends upon
+whether I know the conditions under which rain must appear, more or less
+accurately and completely, and whether I relate those conditions
+properly. With regard to unconditioned probabilities which have nothing
+to do with the conditions of to-day’s weather as affecting to-morrow’s,
+but are simply observations statistically made concerning the number of
+rainy days, the case is quite different. The distinction between these
+two cases is of importance to the criminalist because the substitution
+of one for the other, or the confusion of one with the other, will cause
+him to confuse and falsely to interpret the probability before him.
+Suppose, e.g., that a murder has happened in Vienna, and suppose that I
+declare immediately after the crime and in full knowledge of the facts,
+that according to the facts, i.e., according to the conditions which
+lead to the discovery of the criminal, there is such and such a degree
+of probability for this discovery. Such a declaration means that I have
+calculated a conditioned probability. Suppose that on the other hand, I
+declare that of the murders occurring in Vienna in the course of ten
+years, so and so many are unexplained with regard to the personality of
+the criminal, so and so many were explained within such and such a
+time,&mdash;and consequently the probability of a discovery in the case
+before us is so and so great. In the latter case I have spoken of
+unconditioned probability. Unconditioned probability may be studied by
+itself and the event compared with it, but it must never be counted on,
+for the positive cases have already been reckoned with in the
+unconditioned percentage, and therefore should not be counted another
+time. Naturally, in practice, neither form of probability is frequently
+calculated in figures; only an approximate<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_152" id="page_152"></a>{152}</span> interpretation of both is
+made. Suppose that I hear of a certain crime and the fact that a
+footprint has been found. If without knowing further details, I cry out:
+“Oh! Footprints bring little to light!” I have thereby asserted that the
+statistical verdict in such cases shows an unfavorable percentage of
+unconditional probability with regard to positive results. But suppose
+that I have examined the footprint and have tested it with regard to the
+other circumstances, and then declared: “Under the conditions before us
+it is to be expected that the footprint will lead to results”&mdash;then I
+have declared, “According to the conditions the conditioned probability
+of a positive result is great.” Both assertions may be correct, but it
+would be false to unite them and to say, “The conditions for results are
+very favorable in the case before us, but generally hardly anything is
+gained by means of footprints, and hence the probability in this case is
+small.” This would be false because the few favorable results as against
+the many unfavorable ones have already been considered, and have already
+determined the percentage, so that they should not again be used.</p>
+
+<p>Such mistakes are made particularly when determining the complicity of
+the accused. Suppose we say that the manner of the crime makes it highly
+probable that the criminal should be a skilful, frequently-punished
+thief, i.e., our probability is conditioned. Now we proceed to
+unconditioned probability by saying: “It is a well-known fact that
+frequently-punished thieves often steal again, and we have therefore two
+reasons for the assumption that X, of whom both circumstances are true,
+was the criminal.” But as a matter of fact we are dealing with only one
+identical probability which has merely been counted in two ways. Such
+inferences are not altogether dangerous because their incorrectness is
+open to view; but where they are more concealed great harm may be done
+in this way.</p>
+
+<p>A further subdivision of probability is made by Kirchmann.<a name="FNanchor_148_148" id="FNanchor_148_148"></a><a href="#Footnote_148_148" class="fnanchor">[148]</a> He
+distinguished:</p>
+
+<p>(1) General probability, which depends upon the causes or consequences
+of some single uncertain result, and derives its character from them. An
+example of the dependence on causes is the collective weather prophecy,
+and of dependence on consequences is Aristotle’s dictum, that because we
+see the stars turn the earth must stand still. Two sciences especially
+depend upon such probabilities: history and law, more properly the
+practice and use of criminal<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_153" id="page_153"></a>{153}</span> law. Information imparted by men is used
+in both sciences; this information is made up of effects and hence the
+occurrence is inferred from as cause.</p>
+
+<p>(2) Inductive probability. Single events which must be true, form the
+foundation, and the result passes to a valid universal. (Especially made
+use of in the natural sciences, e.g., in diseases caused by bacilli; in
+case X we find the appearance A and in diseases of like cause Y and Z,
+we also find the appearance A. It is therefore probable that all
+diseases caused by bacilli will manifest the symptom A.)</p>
+
+<p>(3) Mathematical Probability. This infers that A is connected either
+with B or C or D, and asks the degree of probability. I. e.: A woman is
+brought to bed either with a boy or a girl: therefore the probability
+that a boy will be born is one-half.</p>
+
+<p>Of these forms of probability the first two are of equal importance to
+us, the third rarely of value, because we lack arithmetical cases and
+because probability of that kind is only of transitory worth and has
+always to be so studied as to lead to an actual counting of cases. It is
+of this form of probability that Mill advises to know, before applying a
+calculation of probability, the necessary facts, i.e., the relative
+frequency with which the various events occur, and to understand clearly
+the causes of these events. If statistical tables show that five of
+every hundred men reach, on an average, seventy years, the inference is
+valid because it expresses the existent relation between the causes
+which prolong or shorten life.</p>
+
+<p>A further comparatively self-evident division is made by Cournot, who
+separates subjective probability from the possible probability
+pertaining to the events as such. The latter is objectively defined by
+Kries<a name="FNanchor_149_149" id="FNanchor_149_149"></a><a href="#Footnote_149_149" class="fnanchor">[149]</a> in the following example:</p>
+
+<p>“The throw of a regular die will reveal, in the great majority of cases,
+the same relation, and that will lead the mind to suppose it objectively
+valid. It hence follows, that the relation is changed if the shape of
+the die is changed.” But how “this objectively valid relation,” i.e.,
+substantiation of probability, is to be thought of, remains as unclear
+as the regular results of statistics do anyway. It is hence a question
+whether anything is gained when the form of calculation is known.</p>
+
+<p>Kries says, “Mathematicians, in determining the laws of probability,
+have subordinated every series of similar cases which take<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_154" id="page_154"></a>{154}</span> one course
+or another as if the constancy of general conditions, the independence
+and chance equivalence of single events, were identical throughout.
+Hence, we find there are certain simple rules according to which the
+probability of a case may be calculated from the number of successes in
+cases observed until this one and from which, therefore, the probability
+for the appearance of all similar cases may be derived. These rules are
+established without any exception whatever.” This statement is not
+inaccurate because the general applicability of the rules is brought
+forward and its use defended in cases where the presuppositions do not
+agree. Hence, there are delusory results, e.g., in the calculation of
+mortality, of the statements of witnesses and judicial deliverances.
+These do not proceed according to the schema of the ordinary play of
+accident. The application, therefore, can be valid only if the constancy
+of general conditions may be reliably assumed.</p>
+
+<p>But this evidently is valid only with regard to unconditioned
+probability which only at great intervals and transiently may influence
+our practical work. For, however well I may know that according to
+statistics every xth witness is punished for perjury, I will not be
+frightened at the approach of my xth witness though he is likely,
+according to statistics, to lie. In such cases we are not fooled, but
+where events are confused we still are likely to forget that
+probabilities may be counted only from great series of figures in which
+the experiences of individuals are quite lost.</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless figures and the conditions of figures with regard to
+probability exercise great influence upon everybody; so great indeed,
+that we really must beware of going too far in the use of figures. Mill
+cites a case of a wounded Frenchman. Suppose a regiment made up of 999
+Englishmen and one Frenchman is attacked and one man is wounded. No one
+would believe the account that this one Frenchman was the one wounded.
+Kant says significantly: “If anybody sends his doctor 9 ducats by his
+servant, the doctor certainly supposes that the servant has either lost
+or otherwise disposed of one ducat.” These are merely probabilities
+which depend upon habits. So, it may be supposed that a handkerchief has
+been lost if only eleven are found, or people may wonder at the doctor’s
+ordering a tablespoonful every five quarters of an hour, or if a job is
+announced with $2487 a year as salary.</p>
+
+<p>But just as we presuppose that wherever the human will played any part,
+regular forms will come to light, so we begin to doubt that such forms
+will occur where we find that accident, natural<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_155" id="page_155"></a>{155}</span> law, or the unplanned
+coöperation of men were determining factors. If I permit anybody to
+count up accidentally concurrent things and he announces that their
+number is one hundred, I shall probably have him count over again. I
+shall be surprised to hear that somebody’s collection contains exactly
+1000 pieces, and when any one cites a distance of 300 steps I will
+suppose that he had made an approximate estimation but had not counted
+the steps. This fact is well known to people who do not care about
+accuracy, or who want to give their statements the greatest possible
+appearance of correctness; hence, in citing figures, they make use of
+especially irregular numbers, e.g. 1739, 7/8, 3.25%, etc. I know a case
+of a vote of jurymen in which even the proportion of votes had to be
+rendered probable. The same jury had to pass that day on three small
+cases. In the first case the proportion was 8 for, 4 against, the second
+case showed the same proportion and the third case the same. But when
+the foreman observed the proportion he announced that one juryman must
+change his vote because the same proportion three times running would
+appear too improbable! If we want to know the reason for our superior
+trust in irregularity in such cases, it is to be found in the fact that
+experience shows nature, in spite of all her marvelous orderliness in
+the large, to be completely free, and hence irregular in little things.
+Hence, as Mill shows in more detail, we expect no identity of form in
+nature. We do not expect next year to have the same order of days as
+this year, and we never wonder when some suggestive regularity is broken
+by a new event. Once it was supposed that all men were either black or
+white, and then red men were discovered in America. Now just exactly
+such suppositions cause the greatest difficulties, because we do not
+know the limits of natural law. For example, we do not doubt that all
+bodies on earth have weight. And we expect to find no exception to this
+rule on reaching some undiscovered island on our planet; all bodies will
+have weight there as well as everywhere else. But the possibility of the
+existence of red men had to be granted even before the discovery of
+America. Now where is the difference between the propositions: All
+bodies have weight, and, All men are either white or black? It may be
+said circularly the first is a natural law and the second is not. But
+why not? Might not the human body be so organized that according to the
+natural law it would be impossible for red men to exist? And what
+accurate knowledge have we of pigmentation? Has anybody ever seen a
+green horse? And is the accident that nobody has ever seen one to
+prevent the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_156" id="page_156"></a>{156}</span> discovery of green horses in the heart of Africa? May,
+perhaps, somebody not breed green horses by crossings or other
+experiments? Or is the existence of green horses contrary to some
+unknown but invincible natural law? Perhaps somebody may have a green
+horse to-morrow; perhaps it is as impossible as water running up hill.</p>
+
+<p>To know whether anything is natural law or not always depends upon the
+grade and standing of our immediate experience&mdash;and hence we shall never
+be able honestly to make any universal proposition. The only thing
+possible is the greatest possible accurate observation of probability in
+all known possible cases, and of the probability of the discovery of
+exceptions. Bacon called the establishment of reliable assumptions,
+counting up without meeting any contradictory case. But what gives us
+the law is the manner of counting. The untrained mind accepts facts as
+they occur without taking the trouble to seek others; the trained mind
+seeks the facts he needs for the premises of his inference. As Mill
+says, whatever has shown itself to be true without exception may be held
+universal so long as no doubtful exception is presented, and when the
+case is of such a nature that a real exception could not escape our
+observation.</p>
+
+<p>This indicates how we are to interpret information given by others. We
+hear, “Inasmuch as this is always so it may be assumed to be so in the
+present case.” Immediate acceptance of this proposition would be as
+foolhardy as doubt in the face of all the facts. The proper procedure is
+to examine and establish the determining conditions, i.e., who has
+counted up this “always,” and what caution was used to avoid the
+overlooking of any exception. The real work of interpretation lies in
+such testing. We do not want to reach the truth with one blow, we aim
+only to approach it. But the step must be taken and we must know how
+large it is to be, and know how much closer it has brought us to the
+truth. And this is learned only through knowing who made the step and
+how it was made. Goethe’s immortal statement, “Man was not born to solve
+the riddle of the universe, but to seek out what the problem leads to in
+order to keep himself within the limits of the conceivable,” is valid
+for us too.</p>
+
+<p>Our great mistake in examining and judging often lies in our setting too
+much value upon individual circumstances, and trying to solve the
+problem with those alone, or in not daring to use any given circumstance
+sufficiently. The latter represents that stupidity which is of use to
+scientific spirits when they lack complete proof<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_157" id="page_157"></a>{157}</span> of their points, but
+is dangerous in practical affairs. As a rule, it is also the consequence
+of the failure to evaluate what is given, simply because one forgets or
+is too lazy to do so. Proper action in this regard is especially
+necessary where certain legal proceedings have to occur which are
+entitled to a definite degree of probability without requiring
+certainty, i.e., preliminary examinations, arrests, investigations of
+the premises, etc. No law says how much probability is in such cases
+required. To say how much is impossible, but it is not unwise to stick
+to the notion that the event must appear true, if not be proved true,
+i.e., nothing must be present to destroy the appearance of truth. As
+Hume says, “Whenever we have reason to trust earlier experiences and to
+take them as standards of judgment of future experiences, these reasons
+may have probability.”</p>
+
+<p>The place of probability in the positive determination of the order of
+modern criminal procedure is not insignificant. When the law determines
+upon a definite number of jurymen or judges, it is probable that this
+number is sufficient for the discovery of the truth. The system of
+prosecution establishes as a probability that the accused is the
+criminal. The idea of time-lapse assumes the probability that after the
+passage of a certain time punishment becomes illusory, and prosecution
+uncertain and difficult. The institution of experts depends on the
+probability that the latter make no mistakes. The warrant for arrest
+depends on the probability that the accused behaved suspiciously or
+spoke of his crime, etc. The oath of the witness depends on the
+probability that the witness will be more likely to tell the truth under
+oath, etc.</p>
+
+<p>Modern criminal procedure involves not only probabilities but also
+various types of possibility. Every appeal has for its foundation the
+possibility of an incorrect judgment; the exclusion of certain court
+officials is based on the possibility of prejudice, or at least on the
+suspicion of prejudice; the publicity of the trial is meant to prevent
+the possibility of incorrectness; the revision of a trial depends on the
+possibility that even legal sentences may be false, and the institution
+of the defendant lawyer depends upon the possibility that a person
+without defense may receive injustice. All the formalities of the action
+of the court assume the possibility that without them improprieties may
+occur, and the institution of seizing letters and messages for evidence,
+asserts only the possibility that the latter contain things of
+importance, etc.</p>
+
+<p>When the positive dicta of the law deal with possibility and
+probability<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_158" id="page_158"></a>{158}</span> in questions of great importance the latter become
+especially significant.</p>
+
+<p>We have yet to ask what is meant by “rule” and what its relation is to
+probability. Scientifically “rule” means law subjectively taken and is
+of equal significance with the guiding line for one’s own conduct,
+whence it follows that there are only rules of art and morality, but no
+rules of nature. Usage does not imply this interpretation. We say that
+as a rule it hails only in the daytime; by way of exception, in the
+night also; the rule for the appearance of whales indicates that they
+live in the Arctic Ocean; a general rule indicates that bodies that are
+especially soluble in water should dissolve more easily in warm than in
+cold water, but salt dissolves equally well in both. Again we say: As a
+rule the murderer is an unpunished criminal; it is a rule that the
+brawler is no thief and vice versa; the gambler is as a rule a man of
+parts, etc. We may say therefore, that regularity is equivalent to
+customary recurrence and that whatever serves as rule may be expected as
+probable. If, i.e., it be said, that this or that happens as a rule, we
+may suppose that it will repeat itself this time. It is not permissible
+to expect more, but it frequently happens that we mistake rules
+permitting exceptions for natural laws permitting none. This occurs
+frequently when we have lost ourselves in the regular occurrences for
+which we are ourselves responsible and suppose that because things have
+been seen a dozen times they must always appear in the same way. It
+happens especially often when we have heard some phenomenon described in
+other sciences as frequent and regular and then consider it to be a law
+of nature. In the latter case we have probably not heard the whole
+story, nor heard general validity assigned to it. Or again, the whole
+matter has long since altered. Lotze wrote almost half a century ago,
+that he had some time before made the statistical observation that the
+great positive discoveries of exact physiology have an average life of
+about four years. This noteworthy statement indicates that great
+positive discoveries are set up as natural laws only to show themselves
+as at most regular phenomena which have no right to general validity.
+And what is true of physiology is true of many other sciences, even of
+the great discoveries of medicine, even legal medicine. This, therefore,
+should warn against too much confidence in things that are called
+“rules.” False usage and comfortable dependence upon a rule have very
+frequently led us too far. Its unreliability is shown by such maxims as
+“Three misses make a rule” or “Many stupidities<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_159" id="page_159"></a>{159}</span> taken together give a
+golden rule of life,” or “To-day’s exception is to-morrow’s rule,” or
+the classical perversion: “The rule that there are no rules without
+exception is a rule without exception, hence, there is one rule without
+exception.”</p>
+
+<p>The unreliability of rules is further explained by their rise from
+generalization. We must not generalize, as Schiel says, until we have
+shown that if there are cases which contradict our generalizations we
+know those contradictions. In practice approximate generalizations are
+often our only guides. Natural law is too much conditioned, cases of it
+too much involved, distinctions between them too hard to make, to allow
+us to determine the existence of a natural phenomenon in terms of its
+natural characteristics as a part of the business of our daily life. Our
+own age generalizes altogether too much, observes too little, and
+abstracts too rapidly. Events come quickly, examples appear in masses,
+and if they are similar they tend to be generalized, to develop into a
+rule, while the exceptions which are infinitely more important are
+unobserved, and the rule, once made, leads to innumerable mistakes.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 29. (g) Chance.</h5>
+
+<p>The psychological significance of what we call chance depends upon the
+concept of chance and the degree of influence that we allow it to
+possess in our thinking. What is generally called chance, and what is
+called chance in particular cases, will depend to a significant degree
+upon the nature of the case. In progressive sciences the laws increase
+and the chance-happenings decrease; the latter indeed are valid only in
+particular cases of the daily life and in the general business of it. We
+speak of chance or accident when events cross which are determined in
+themselves by necessary law, but the law of the crossing of which is
+unknown. If, e.g., it is observed that where there is much snow the
+animals are white, the event must not be attributed to accident, for the
+formation of snow in high mountains or in the north, and its long stay
+on the surface of the earth develop according to special natural laws,
+and the colors of animals do so no less&mdash;but that these two orderly
+series of facts should meet requires a third law, or still better, a
+third group of laws, which though unknown some time ago, are now known
+to every educated person.</p>
+
+<p>For us lawyers chance and the interpretation of it are of immense
+importance not only in bringing together evidence, but in every case of
+suspicion, for the problem always arises whether a causal<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_160" id="page_160"></a>{160}</span> relation may
+be established between the crime and the suspect, or whether the
+relation is only accidental. “Unfortunate coincidence”&mdash;“closely related
+connection of facts”&mdash;“extraordinary accumulation of reason for
+suspicion,”&mdash;all these terms are really chance mistaken for causation.
+On the knowledge of the difference between the one and the other depends
+the fate of most evidence and trials. Whoever is fortunate enough in
+rightly perceiving what chance is, is fortunate in the conduct of his
+trial.</p>
+
+<p>Is there really a theory of chance? I believe that a direct treatment of
+the subject is impossible. The problem of chance can be only
+approximately explained when all conceivable chance-happenings of a
+given discipline are brought together and their number reduced by
+careful search for definite laws. Besides, the problem demands the
+knowledge of an extremely rich casuistry, by means of which, on the one
+hand, to bring together the manifoldness of chance events, and on the
+other to discover order. Enough has been written about chance, but a
+systematic treatment of it must be entirely theoretical. So
+Windelband’s<a name="FNanchor_150_150" id="FNanchor_150_150"></a><a href="#Footnote_150_150" class="fnanchor">[150]</a> excellent and well-ordered book deals with relations
+(chance and cause, chance and law, chance and purpose, chance and
+concept) the greatest value of which is to indicate critically the
+various definitions of the concept of chance. Even though there is no
+definition which presents the concept of chance in a completely
+satisfactory manner, the making of such definitions is still of value
+because one side of chance is explained and the other is thereby seen
+more closely. Let us consider a few of these and other definitions.
+Aristotle says that the accidental occurs, παρἁ φὑσν, according to
+nature. Epicurus, who sees the creation of the world as a pure accident,
+holds it to occur τἁ μἑν ἁπὁ τὑχης, τἁ δἑ παρ’ἡμὡν. Spinoza believes
+nothing to be contingent save only according to the limitations of
+knowledge; Kant says that conditioned existence as such, is called
+accidental; the unconditioned, necessary. Humboldt: “Man sees those
+things as accident which he can not explain genetically.” Schiel:
+“Whatever may not be reduced back to law is called accidental.”
+Quetelet: “The word chance serves officiously to hide our ignorance.”
+Buckle derives the idea of chance from the life of nomadic tribes, which
+contains nothing firm and regulated. According to Trendelenburg chance
+is that which could not be otherwise. Rosenkranz says: Chance is a
+reality which has only the value of possibility, while Fischer calls
+chance the individualized fact, and Lotze identifies it<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_161" id="page_161"></a>{161}</span> with everything
+that is not valid as a natural purpose. For Windelband “chance consists,
+according to usage, in the merely factual but not necessary transition
+from a possibility to an actuality. Chance is the negation of necessity.
+It is a contradiction to say: ‘This happened by accident,’ for the word
+‘by’ expressed a cause.”</p>
+
+<p>A. Höfler<a name="FNanchor_151_151" id="FNanchor_151_151"></a><a href="#Footnote_151_151" class="fnanchor">[151]</a> says most intelligently, that the contradiction of the
+idea of chance by the causal law may be easily solved by indicating the
+especial relativity of the concept. (Accidental with regard to one, but
+otherwise appearing as a possible causal series).</p>
+
+<p>The lesson of these definitions is obvious. What we call chance plays a
+great role in our legal work. On our recognizing a combination of
+circumstances as accidental the result of the trial in most cases
+depends, and the distinction between accident and law depends upon the
+amount of knowledge concerning the events of the daily life especially.
+Now the use of this knowledge in particular cases consists in seeking
+out the causal relation in a series of events which are adduced as
+proof, and in turning accident into order. Or, in cases where the law
+which unites or separates the events can not be discovered, it may
+consist in the very cautious interpretation of the combination of events
+on the principle <i>simul cum hoc non est propter hoc</i>.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 30.(h) Persuasion and Explanation.</h5>
+
+<p>How in the course of trial are people convinced? The criminalist has as
+presiding officer not only to provide the truth which convinces; it is
+his business as state official to convince the defendant of the
+correctness of the arguments adduced, the witness of his duty to tell
+the truth. But he again is often himself convinced by a witness or an
+accused person&mdash;correctly or incorrectly. Mittermaier<a name="FNanchor_152_152" id="FNanchor_152_152"></a><a href="#Footnote_152_152" class="fnanchor">[152]</a> calls
+conviction a condition in which our belief-it-is-true depends on full
+satisfactory grounds of which we are aware. But this state of conviction
+is a goal to be reached and our work is not done until the convincing
+material has been provided. Seeking the truth is not enough. Karl Gerock
+assures us that no philosophical system offers us the full and finished
+truth, but there is a truth for the idealist, and to ask Pilate’s blasé
+question is, as Lessing suggests, rendering the answer impossible. But
+this shows the difference between scientific and practical work; science
+may be satisfied with seeking truth, but we must possess truth. If it
+were true that truth alone<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_162" id="page_162"></a>{162}</span> is convincing, there would not be much
+difficulty, and one might be content that one is convinced only by what
+is correct. But this is not the case. Statistically numbers are supposed
+to prove, but actually numbers prove according to their uses. So in the
+daily life we say facts are proofs when it would be more cautious to
+say: facts are proofs according to their uses. It is for this reason
+that sophistical dialectic is possible. Arrange the facts in one way and
+you reach one result, arrange the facts another way and you may reach
+the opposite. Or again, if you study the facts in doubtful cases
+honestly and without prejudice you find how many possible conclusions
+may be drawn, according to their arrangement. We must, of course, not
+have in mind that conviction and persuasion which is brought about by
+the use of many words. We have to consider only that adduction of facts
+and explanation, simple or complex, in a more or less skilful,
+intentional or unintentional manner, by means of which we are convinced
+at least for a moment. The variety of such conviction is well known to
+experience.</p>
+
+<p>“The naïveté of the first glance often takes the prize from scholarship.
+All hasty, decisive judgment betrays, when it becomes habitual,
+superficiality of observation and impiety against the essential
+character of particular facts. Children know as completely determined
+and certain a great deal which is doubtful to the mature man” (V.
+Volkmar).</p>
+
+<p>So, frequently, the simplest thing we are told gets its value from the
+manner of telling, or from the person of the narrator. And inasmuch as
+we ourselves are much more experienced and skilful in arranging and
+grouping facts than are our witnesses and the accused, it often happens
+that we persuade these people and that is the matter which wants
+consideration.</p>
+
+<p>Nobody will assert that it will occur to any judge to persuade a witness
+to anything which he does not thoroughly believe, but we know how often
+we persuade ourselves to some matter, and nothing is more conceivable
+than that we might like to see other people agree with us about it. I
+believe that the criminalist, because, let us say, of his power, as a
+rule takes his point of view too lightly. Every one of us, no doubt, has
+often begun his work in a small and inefficient manner, has brought it
+along with mistakes and scantiness and when finally he has reached a
+somewhat firm ground, he has been convinced by his failures and mistakes
+of his ignorance and inadequacy. Then he expected that this conviction
+would be obvious also to other people whom he was examining. But this
+obviousness<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_163" id="page_163"></a>{163}</span> is remarkably absent, and all the mistakes, cruelties, and
+miscarriages of justice, have not succeeded in robbing it of the dignity
+it possesses in the eyes of the nation. Perhaps the goodwill which may
+be presupposed ought to be substituted for the result, but it is a fact
+that the layman presupposes much more knowledge, acuteness, and power in
+the criminalist than he really possesses. Then again, it is conceivable
+that a single word spoken by the judge has more weight than it should
+have, and then when a real persuasion&mdash;evidently in the best sense of
+the word&mdash;is made use of, it <i>must</i> be influential. I am certain that
+every one of us has made the frightful observation that by the end of
+the examination the witness has simply taken the point of view of the
+examiner, and the worst thing about this is that the witness still
+thinks that he is thinking in his own way.</p>
+
+<p>The examiner knows the matter in its relation much better, knows how to
+express it more beautifully, and sets pretty theories going. The
+witness, to whom the questions are suggestive, becomes conceited, likes
+to think that he himself has brought the matter out so excellently, and
+therefore is pleased to adopt the point of view and the theories of the
+examiner who has, in reality, gone too far in his eagerness. There is
+less danger of this when educated people are examined for these are
+better able to express themselves; or again when women are examined for
+these are too obstinate to be persuaded, but with the great majority the
+danger is great, and therefore the criminalist can not be told too often
+how necessary it is that he shall meet his witness with the least
+conceivable use of eloquence.</p>
+
+<p>Forensic persuasion is of especial importance and has been considered so
+since classical days, whether rightly, is another question. The orations
+of state prosecutors and lawyers for the defense, when made before
+scholarly judges, need not be held important. If individuals are ever
+asked whether they were persuaded or made doubtful by the prosecutor or
+his opponent they indicate very few instances. A scholarly and
+experienced judge who has not drawn any conclusions about the case until
+the evidence was all in need hardly pay much attention to the pleaders.
+It may indeed be that the prosecution or defense may belittle or
+intensify one or another bit of evidence which the bench might not have
+thought of; or they may call attention to some reason for severity or
+mercy. But on the one hand if this is important it will already have
+been touched in the adduction of evidence, and on the other hand such
+points are<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_164" id="page_164"></a>{164}</span> generally banal and indifferent to the real issue in the
+case. If this be not so it would only indicate that either we need a
+larger number of judges, or even when there are many judges that one
+thing or another may be overlooked.</p>
+
+<p>But with regard to the jury the case is quite different; it is easily
+influenced and more than makes up for the indifference of the bench.
+Whoever takes the trouble to study the faces of the jury during trial,
+comes to the conclusion that the speeches of the prosecution and defense
+are the most important things in the trial, that they absorb most of the
+attention of the jury, and that the question of guilt or innocence does
+not depend upon the number and weight of the testimony but upon the more
+or less skilful interpretation of it. This is a reproach not to the jury
+but to those who demand from it a service it can not render. It is first
+necessary to understand how difficult the conduct of a trial is. In
+itself the conduct of a jury trial is no art, and when compared with
+other tasks demanded of the criminalist may be third or fourth in
+difficulty. What is difficult is the determination of the chronological
+order in which to present evidence, i.e., the drawing of the brief. If
+the brief is well drawn, everything develops logically and
+psychologically in a good way and the case goes on well; but it is a
+great and really artistic task to draw this brief properly. There are
+only two possibilities. If the thing is not done, or the brief is of no
+use, the case goes on irrelevantly, illogically and unintelligibly and
+the jury can not understand what is happening. If the trick is turned,
+however, then like every art it requires preparation and intelligence.
+And the jury do not possess these, so that the most beautiful work of
+art passes by them without effect. They therefore must turn their
+attention, to save what can be saved, upon the orations of the
+prosecution and defense. These reproduce the evidence for them in some
+intelligible fashion and the verdict will be innocence or guilt
+according to the greater intelligence of one or the other of the
+contending parties. Persuasiveness at its height, Hume tells us, leaves
+little room for intelligence and consideration. It addresses itself
+entirely to the imagination and the affections, captures the
+well-inclined auditors, and dominates their understanding. Fortunately
+this height is rarely reached. In any event, this height, which also
+dominates those who know the subject, will always be rare, yet the jury
+are not people of knowledge and hence dominations ensue, even through
+attempts at persuasiveness which have attained no height whatever. Hence
+the great danger.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_165" id="page_165"></a>{165}</span></p>
+
+<p>The only help against this is in the study by the presiding justice, not
+as lawyer but as psychologist, of the faces of the jury while the
+contending lawyers make their addresses. He must observe very narrowly
+and carefully every influence exercised by the speeches, which is
+irrelevant to the real problem, and then in summing up call it to the
+attention of the jury and bring them back to the proper point of view.
+The ability to do this is very marvelous, but it again is an exceedingly
+difficult performance.</p>
+
+<p>Nowadays persuadability is hardly more studied but anybody who has
+empirically attained some proficiency in it has acquired the same tricks
+that are taught by theory. But these must be known if they are to be met
+effectively. Hence the study of the proper authors can not be too much
+recommended. Without considering the great authors of the classical
+period, especially Aristotle and Cicero, there are many modern ones who
+might be named.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 31. (i) Inference and Judgment.</h5>
+
+<p>The judgment to be discussed in the following section is not the
+judgment of the court but the more general judgment which occurs in any
+perception. If we pursue our tasks earnestly we draw from the simplest
+cases innumerable inferences and we receive as many inferences from
+those we examine. The correctness of our work depends upon the truth of
+both. I have already indicated how very much of the daily life passes as
+simple and invincible sense-perception even into the determination of a
+sentence, although it is often no more than a very complicated series of
+inferences each of which may involve a mistake even if the perception
+itself has been correct. The frequency with which an inference is made
+from sense-perception is the more astonishing inasmuch as it exceeds all
+that the general and otherwise valid law of laziness permits. In fact,
+it contradicts that law, though perhaps it may not do so, for a hasty
+inference from insufficient premises may be much more comfortable than
+more careful observation and study. Such hasty inference is made even
+with regard to the most insignificant things. In the course of an
+investigation we discover that we have been dealing only with inferences
+and that our work therefore has been for nothing. Then again, we miss
+that fact, and our results are false and their falsehood is rarely
+sought in these petty mistakes. So the witness may have “seen” a watch
+in such and such a place when in reality he has only heard a noise that
+he took for the ticking of a watch and hence <i>inferred</i> that there had
+really been a watch, that he had<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_166" id="page_166"></a>{166}</span> seen it, and finally <i>believed</i> that
+he had seen it. Another witness asserts that X has many chickens; as a
+matter of fact he has heard two chickens cluck and infers a large
+number. Still another has seen footprints of cattle and speaks of a
+herd, or he knows the exact time of a murder because at a given time he
+heard somebody sigh, etc. There would be little difficulty if people
+told us how they had inferred, for then a test by means of careful
+questions would be easy enough&mdash;but they do not tell, and when we
+examine ourselves we discover that we do exactly the same thing and
+often believe and assert that we have seen or heard or smelt or felt
+although we have only inferred these things.<a name="FNanchor_153_153" id="FNanchor_153_153"></a><a href="#Footnote_153_153" class="fnanchor">[153]</a> Here belong all cases
+of correct or partly correct inference and of false inference from false
+sense-perception. I recall the oft-cited story in which a whole judicial
+commission smelt a disgusting odor while a coffin was being exhumed only
+to discover that it was empty. If the coffin, for one reason or another,
+had not been opened all those present would have taken oath that they
+had an indubitable perception although the latter was only inferred from
+its precedent condition.</p>
+
+<p>Exner<a name="FNanchor_154_154" id="FNanchor_154_154"></a><a href="#Footnote_154_154" class="fnanchor">[154]</a> cites the excellent example in which a mother becomes
+frightened while her child cries, not because the cry as such sounds so
+terrible as because of its combination with the consciousness that it
+comes from her own child and that something might have happened to it.
+It is asserted, and I think rightly, that verbal associations have a
+considerable share in such cases. As Stricker<a name="FNanchor_155_155" id="FNanchor_155_155"></a><a href="#Footnote_155_155" class="fnanchor">[155]</a> expresses it, the
+form of any conceptual complex whatever, brings out its appropriate
+word. If we see the <i>thing</i> watch, we get the <i>word</i> watch. If we see a
+man with a definite symptom of consumption the word tuberculosis occurs
+at once. The last example is rather more significant because when the
+whole complex appears mistakes are more remote than when merely one or
+another “safe” symptom permits the appearance of the word in question.
+What is safe to one mind need not be so to another, and the notion as to
+the certainty of any symptom changes with time and place and person.
+Mistakes are especially possible when people are so certain of their
+“safe” symptoms that they do not examine how they inferred from them.
+This inference, however, is directly related to the appearance of the
+word. Return to the example mentioned above, and suppose that A has
+discovered a “safe” symptom of consumption in B and the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_167" id="page_167"></a>{167}</span> word
+tuberculosis occurs to him. But the occurrence does not leave him with
+the word merely, there is a direct inference “B has tuberculosis.” We
+never begin anything with the word alone, we attach it immediately to
+some fact and in the present case it has become, as usual, a judgment.
+The thought-movement of him who has heard this judgment, however, turns
+backward and he supposes that the judge has had a long series of
+sense-perceptions from which he has derived his inference. And in fact
+he has had only one perception, the reliability of which is often
+questionable.</p>
+
+<p>Then there is the additional difficulty that in every inference there
+are leaps made by each inferer according to his character and training.
+And the maker does not consider whether the other fellow can make
+similar leaps or whether his route is different. E. g., when an English
+philosopher says, “We really ought not to expect that the manufacture of
+woolens shall be perfected by a nation which knows no astronomy,”&mdash;we
+are likely to say that the sentence is silly; another might say that it
+is paradoxical and a third that it is quite correct, for what is missing
+is merely the proposition that the grade of culture made possible by
+astronomy is such as to require textile proficiency also. “In
+conversation the simplest case of skipping is where the conclusion is
+drawn directly from the minor premise. But many other inferences are
+omitted, as in the case of real thinking. In giving information there is
+review of the thinking of other people; women and untrained people do
+not do this, and hence the disconnectedness of their conversation.”<a name="FNanchor_156_156" id="FNanchor_156_156"></a><a href="#Footnote_156_156" class="fnanchor">[156]</a>
+In this fact is the danger in examining witnesses, inasmuch as we
+involuntarily interpolate the missing details in the skipping
+inferences, but do it according to our own knowledge of the facts.
+Hence, a test of the correctness of the other man’s inference becomes
+either quite impossible or is developed coarsely. In the careful
+observation of leaping inferences made by witnesses&mdash;and not merely by
+women and the uneducated&mdash;it will be seen that the inference one might
+oneself make might either have been different or have proceeded in a
+different way. If, then, all the premises are tested a different result
+from that of the witness is obtained. It is well known how identical
+premises permit of different conclusions by different people.</p>
+
+<p>In such inferences certain remarkable things occur which, as a rule,
+have a given relation to the occupation of the witness. So, e.g., people
+inclined to mathematics make the greatest leaps, and though these may be
+comparatively and frequently correct, the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_168" id="page_168"></a>{168}</span> danger of mistake is not
+insignificant when the mathematician deals in his mathematical fashion
+with unmathematical things.</p>
+
+<p>Another danger lies in the testimony of witnesses who have a certain
+sense of form in representation and whose inferential leaps consists in
+their omitting the detailed expression and in inserting the notion of
+form instead. I learned of this notable psychosis from a bookkeeper of a
+large factory, who had to provide for the test of numberless additions.
+It was his notion that if we were to add two and three are five, and six
+are eleven, and seven are eighteen we should never finish adding, and
+since the avoidance of mistakes requires such adding we must so contrive
+that the image of two and three shall immediately call forth the image
+of five. Now this mental image of five is added with the actual six and
+gives eleven, etc. According to this we do not add, we see only a series
+of images, and so rapidly that we can follow with a pencil but slowly.
+And the images are so certain that mistake is impossible. “You know how
+9 looks? Well, just as certainly we know what the image of 27 and 4 is
+like; the image of 31 occurs without change.”</p>
+
+<p>This, as it happens, is a procedure possible only to a limited type, but
+this type occurs not only among bookkeepers. When any one of such
+persons unites two events he does not consider what may result from such
+a union; he sees, if I may say so, only a resulting image. This image,
+however, is not so indubitably certain as in the case of numbers; and it
+may take all kinds of forms, the correctness of which is not altogether
+probable. E. g., the witness sees two forms in the dark and the flash of
+a knife and hears a cry. If he belongs to the type under discussion he
+does not consider that he might have been so frightened by the flashing
+knife as to have cried out, or that he had himself proceeded to attack
+with a stick and that the other fellow did the yelling, or that a stab
+or cut had preceded the cry&mdash;no, he saw the image of the two forms and
+the knife and he heard the cry and these leap together into an image,
+i.e., one of the forms has a cut above his brow. And these leaps occur
+so swiftly and with such assurance that the witness in question often
+believes himself to have seen what he infers and swears to it.</p>
+
+<p>There are a great many similar processes at the bottom of impressions
+that depend only upon swift and unconscious inference. Suppose, e.g.,
+that I am shown the photograph of a small section of a garden, through
+which a team is passing. Although I observe the image of only a small
+portion of the garden and therefore have no notion of its extent, still,
+in speaking of it, I shall probably<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_169" id="page_169"></a>{169}</span> speak of a very big garden. I have
+inferred swiftly and unconsciously that in the fact that a wagon and
+horses were present in the pictured portion of the garden, is implied
+great width of road, for even gardens of average size do not have such
+wide roads as to admit wagons; the latter occurring only in parks and
+great gardens. Hence my conclusion: the garden must be very big. Such
+inferences<a name="FNanchor_157_157" id="FNanchor_157_157"></a><a href="#Footnote_157_157" class="fnanchor">[157]</a> are frequent, whence the question as to the source and
+the probability of the witness’s information, whether it is positive or
+only an impression. Evidently such an impression may be correct. It will
+be correct often, inasmuch as impressions occur only when inferences
+have been made and tested repeatedly. But it is necessary in any case to
+review the sequence of inferences which led to this impression and to
+examine their correctness. Unfortunately the witness is rarely aware
+whether he has perceived or merely inferred.</p>
+
+<p>Examination is especially important when the impression has been made
+after the observation of a few marks or only a single one and not very
+essential one at that. In the example of the team the impression may
+have been attained by inference, but frequently it will have been
+attained through some unessential, purely personal, determinative
+characteristic. “Just as the ancient guest recognizes his friend by
+fitting halves of the ring, so we recognize the object and its
+constitution from one single characteristic, and hence the whole vision
+of it is vivified by that characteristic.”<a name="FNanchor_158_158" id="FNanchor_158_158"></a><a href="#Footnote_158_158" class="fnanchor">[158]</a></p>
+
+<p>All this is very well if no mistakes are made. When Tertullian said,
+“Credo quia impossibile est,” we will allow honesty of statement to this
+great scholar, especially as he was speaking about matters of religion,
+but when Socrates said of the works of Heraclitus the Obscure: “What I
+understand of it is good; I think that what I do not understand is also
+good”&mdash;he was not in earnest. Now the case of many people who are not as
+wise as Tertullian and Socrates is identical with theirs. Numerous
+examinations of witnesses made me think of Tertullian’s maxim, for the
+testimonies presented the most improbable things as facts. And when they
+even explained the most unintelligible things I thought: “And what you
+do not understand is also good.”</p>
+
+<p>This belief of uncultured people in their own intelligence has been most
+excellently portrayed by Wieland in his immortal “Abderites.” The fourth
+philosopher says: “What you call the world<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_170" id="page_170"></a>{170}</span> is essentially an infinite
+series of worlds which envelop one another like the skin of an onion.”
+“Very clear,” said the Abderites, and thought they understood the
+philosopher because they knew perfectly well what an onion looked like.
+The inference which is drawn from the comprehension of one term in a
+comparison to the comprehension of the other is one of the most
+important reasons for the occurrence of so many misunderstandings. The
+example, as such, is understood, but its application to the assertion
+and the question whether the latter is also made clear by the example
+are forgotten. This explains the well known and supreme power of
+examples and comparisons, and hence the wise of all times have used
+comparisons in speaking to the poor in spirit. Hence, too, the great
+effect of comparisons, and also the numerous and coarse
+misunderstandings and the effort of the untrained and unintelligent to
+clarify those things they do not understand by means of comparisons.
+Fortunately they have, in trying to explain the thing to other people,
+the habit of making use of these difficultly discovered comparisons so
+that the others, if they are only sufficiently observant, may succeed in
+testing the correctness of the inference from one term in a comparison
+to the other. We do this frequently in examining witnesses, and we
+discover that the witness has made use of a figure to clarify some
+unintelligible point and that he necessarily understands it since it
+lies within the field of his instruments of thought. But what is
+compared remains as confused to him as before. The test of it,
+therefore, is very tiring and mainly without results, because one rarely
+succeeds in liberating a man from some figure discovered with
+difficulty. He always returns to it because he understands it, though
+really not what he compares. But what is gained in such a case is not
+little, for the certainty that, so revealed, the witness does not
+understand the matter in hand, easily determines the value of his
+testimony.</p>
+
+<p>The fullness of the possibilities under which anything may be asserted
+is also of importance in this matter. The inference that a thing is
+impossible is generally made by most people in such wise that they first
+consider the details of the eventualities they already know, or
+immediately present. Then, when these are before them, they infer that
+the matter is quite impossible&mdash;and whether one or more different
+eventualities have missed of consideration, is not studied at all. Our
+kindly professor of physics once told us: “To-day I intended to show you
+the beautiful experiments in the interference of light&mdash;but it can not
+be observed in daylight and when<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_171" id="page_171"></a>{171}</span> I draw the curtains you raise
+rough-house. The demonstration is therefore impossible and I take the
+instruments away.” The good man did not consider the other eventuality,
+that we might be depended upon to behave decently even if the curtains
+were drawn.</p>
+
+<p>Hence the rule that a witness’s assertion that a thing is impossible
+must never be trusted. Take the simplest example. The witness assures us
+that it is impossible for a theft to have been committed by some
+stranger from outside. If you ask him why, he will probably tell you:
+“Because the door was bolted and the windows barred.” The eventuality
+that the thief might have entered by way of the chimney, or have sent a
+child between the bars of the window, or have made use of some peculiar
+instrument, etc., are not considered, and would not be if the question
+concerning the ground of the inference had not been put.</p>
+
+<p>We must especially remember that we criminalists “must not dally with
+mathematical truth but must seek historical truth. We start with a mass
+of details, unite them, and succeed by means of this union and test in
+attaining a result which permits us to judge the existence and the
+characteristics of past events.” The material of our work lies in the
+mass of details, and the manner and reliability of its presentation
+determines the certainty of our inferences.</p>
+
+<p>Seen more closely the winning of this material may be described as Hume
+describes it:<a name="FNanchor_159_159" id="FNanchor_159_159"></a><a href="#Footnote_159_159" class="fnanchor">[159]</a> “If we would satisfy ourselves, therefore, concerning
+the nature of that evidence which assures us of matters of fact, we must
+inquire how we arrive at the knowledge of cause and effect. I shall
+venture to affirm as a general proposition which admits of no exception,
+that the knowledge of this relation is not, in any instance, attained by
+reasonings a priori; but arises entirely from experience, when we find
+that any particular objects are constantly conjoined with each other;
+... nor can our reason, unassisted by experience, ever draw any
+inference concerning real existence and matter of fact.”</p>
+
+<p>In the course of his explanation Hume presents two propositions,</p>
+
+<p>(1) I have found that such an object has always been attended with such
+an effect.</p>
+
+<p>(2) I foresee that other objects which are in appearance similar, will
+be attended with similar effects.</p>
+
+<p>He goes on: “I shall allow, if you please, that the one proposition may
+justly be inferred from the other; I know in fact that it always<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_172" id="page_172"></a>{172}</span> is
+inferred. But if you insist that the inference is made by a chain of
+reasoning, I desire you to produce that chain of reasoning. The
+connection between these propositions is not intuitive. There is
+required a medium which may enable the mind to draw such an inference,
+if, indeed, it be drawn by reasoning and argument. What the medium is, I
+must confess, passes my comprehension; and it is incumbent on those to
+produce it who assert that it exists, and is the origin of all our
+conclusions concerning matters of fact.”</p>
+
+<p>If we regard the matter more closely we may say with certainty: This
+medium exists not as a substance but as a transition. When I speak in
+the proposition of “such an object,” I already have “similar” in mind,
+inasmuch as there is nothing absolutely like anything else, and when I
+say in the first proposition, “such an object,” I have already passed
+into the assertion made in the second proposition.</p>
+
+<p>Suppose that we take these propositions concretely:</p>
+
+<p>(1) I have discovered that bread made of corn has a nourishing effect.</p>
+
+<p>(2) I foresee that other apparently similar objects, e.g., wheat, will
+have a like effect.</p>
+
+<p>I could not make various experiments with the same corn in case (1). I
+could handle corn taken as such from one point of view, or considered as
+such from another, i.e., I could only experiment with very similar
+objects. I can therefore make these experiments with corn from
+progressively remoter starting points, or soils, and finally with corn
+from Barbary and East Africa, so that there can no longer be any
+question of identity but only of similarity. And finally I can compare
+two harvests of corn which have less similarity than certain species of
+corn and certain species of wheat. I am therefore entitled to speak of
+identical or similar in the first proposition as much as in the second.
+One proposition has led into another and the connection between them has
+been discovered.</p>
+
+<p>The criminological importance of this “connection” lies in the fact that
+the correctness of our inferences depends upon its discovery. We work
+continuously with these two Humian propositions, and we always make our
+assertion, first, that some things are related as cause and effect, and
+we join the present case to that because we consider it similar. If it
+is really similar, and the connection of the first and the second
+proposition are actually correct, the truth of the inference is
+attained. We need not count the unexplained wonders of numerical
+relations in the result. D’Alembert<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_173" id="page_173"></a>{173}</span> asserts: “It seems as if there were
+some law of nature which more frequently prevents the occurrence of
+regular than irregular combinations; those of the first kind are
+mathematically, but not physically, more probable. When we see that high
+numbers are thrown with some one die, we are immediately inclined to
+call that die false.” And John Stuart Mill adds, that d’Alembert should
+have set the problem in the form of asking whether he would believe in
+the die if, after having examined it and found it right, somebody
+announced that ten sixes had been cast with it.</p>
+
+<p>We may go still further and assert that we are generally inclined to
+consider an inference wrong which indicates that accidental matters have
+occurred in regular numerical relation. Who believes the hunter’s story
+that he has shot 100 hares in the past week, or the gambler’s that he
+has won 1000 dollars; or the sick man’s, that he was sick ten times? It
+will be supposed at the very least that each is merely indicating an
+approximately round sum. Ninety-six hares, 987 dollars, and eleven
+illnesses will sound more probable. And this goes so far that during
+examinations, witnesses are shy of naming such “improbable ratios,” if
+they at all care to have their testimony believed. Then again, many
+judges are in no wise slow to jump at such a number and to demand an
+“accurate statement,” or even immediately to decide that the witness is
+talking only “about.” How deep-rooted such views are is indicated by the
+circumstance that bankers and other merchants of lottery tickets find
+that tickets with “pretty numbers” are difficult to sell. A ticket of
+series 1000, number 100 is altogether unsalable, for such a number “can
+not possibly be sold.” Then again, if one has to count up a column of
+accidental figures and the sum is 1000, the correctness of the sum is
+always doubted.</p>
+
+<p>Here are facts which are indubitable and unexplained. We must therefore
+agree neither to distrust so-called round numbers, nor to place
+particular reliance on quite irregular figures. Both should be examined.</p>
+
+<p>It may be that the judgment of the correctness of an inference is made
+analogously to that of numbers and that the latter exercise an influence
+on the judgment which is as much conceded popularly as it is actually
+combated. Since Kant, it has been quite discovered that the judgment
+that fools are in the majority must lead through many more such truths
+in judging&mdash;and it is indifferent whether the judgment dealt with is
+that of the law court or of a voting legislature or mere judgments as
+such.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_174" id="page_174"></a>{174}</span></p>
+
+<p>Schiel says, “It has been frequently asserted that a judgment is more
+probably correct according to the number of judges and jury.” Quite
+apart from the fact that the judge is less careful, makes less effort,
+and feels less responsibility when he has associates, this is a false
+inference from an enormous average of cases which are necessarily remote
+from any average whatever. And when certain prejudices or weaknesses of
+mind are added, the mistake multiplies. Whoever accurately follows, if
+he can avoid getting bored, the voting of bodies, and considers by
+themselves individual opinions about the subject, they having remained
+individual against large majorities and hence worthy of being subjected
+to a cold and unprejudiced examination, will learn some rare facts. It
+is especially interesting to study the judgment of the full bench with
+regard to a case which has been falsely judged; surprisingly often only
+a single individual voice has spoken correctly. This fact is a warning
+to the judge in such cases carefully to listen to the individual opinion
+and to consider that it is very likely to deserve study just because it
+is so significantly in the minority.</p>
+
+<p>The same thing is to be kept in mind when a thing is asserted by a large
+number of witnesses. Apart from the fact that they depend upon one
+another, that they suggest to one another, it is also easily possible,
+especially if any source of error is present, that the latter shall have
+influenced all the witnesses.</p>
+
+<p>Whether a judgment has been made by a single judge or is the verdict of
+any number of jurymen is quite indifferent since the correctness of a
+judgment does not lie in numbers. Exner says, “The degree of probability
+of a judgment’s correctness depends upon the richness of the field of
+the associations brought to bear in establishing it. The value of
+knowledge is judicially constituted in this fact, for it is in essence
+the expansion of the scope of association. And the value is proportional
+to the richness of the associations between the present fact and the
+knowledge required.” This is one of the most important of the doctrines
+we have to keep in mind, and it controverts altogether those who suppose
+that we ought to be satisfied with the knowledge of some dozens of
+statutes, a few commentaries, and so and so many precedents.</p>
+
+<p>If we add that “every judgment is an identification and that in every
+judgment we assert that the content represented is identical in spite of
+two different associative relationships,”<a name="FNanchor_160_160" id="FNanchor_160_160"></a><a href="#Footnote_160_160" class="fnanchor">[160]</a> it must become clear what
+dangers we undergo if the associative relationships of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_175" id="page_175"></a>{175}</span> a judge are too
+poor and narrow. As Mittermaier said seventy years ago: “There are
+enough cases in which the weight of the evidence is so great that all
+judges are convinced of the truth in the same way. But in itself what
+determines the judgment is the essential character of him who makes it.”
+What he means by essential character has already been indicated.</p>
+
+<p>We have yet to consider the question of the value of inferences made by
+a witness from his own combinations of facts, or his descriptions. The
+necessity, in such cases, of redoubled and numerous examinations is
+often overlooked. Suppose, for example, that the witness does not know a
+certain important date, but by combining what he does know, infers it to
+have been the second of June, on which day the event under discussion
+took place. He makes the inference because at the time he had a call
+from A, who was in the habit of coming on Wednesdays, but there could be
+no Wednesday after June seventh because the witness had gone on a long
+journey on that day, and it could not have been May 26 because this day
+preceded a holiday and the shop was open late, a thing not done on the
+day A called. Nor, moreover, could the date have been May 20, because it
+was very warm on the day in question, and the temperature began to rise
+only after May 20. In view of these facts the event under discussion
+must have occurred upon June 2nd and only on that day.</p>
+
+<p>As a rule, such combinations are very influential because they appear
+cautious, wise and convincing. They impose upon people without
+inclination toward such processes. More so than they have a right to,
+inasmuch as they present little difficulty to anybody who is accustomed
+to them and to whom they occur almost spontaneously. As usually a thing
+that makes a great impression upon us is not especially examined, but is
+accepted as astounding and indubitable, so here. But how very necessary
+it is carefully to examine such things and to consider whether the
+single premises are sound, the example in question or any other example
+will show. The individual dates, the facts and assumptions may easily be
+mistaken, and the smallest oversight may render the result false, or at
+least not convincing.</p>
+
+<p>The examination of manuscripts is still more difficult. What is written
+has a certain convincing power, not only on others but on the writer,
+and much as we may be willing to doubt and to improve what has been
+written immediately or at most a short time ago, a manuscript of some
+age has always a kind of authority and we<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_176" id="page_176"></a>{176}</span> give it correctness cheaply
+when that is in question. In any event there regularly arises in such a
+case the problem whether the written description is quite correct, and
+as regularly the answer is a convinced affirmative. It is impossible to
+give any general rule for testing such affirmation. Ordinarily some
+clearness may be attained by paying attention to the purpose of the
+manuscript, especially in order to ascertain its sources and the
+personality of the writer. There is much in the external form of the
+manuscript. Not that especial care and order in the notes are
+particularly significant; I once published the accounts of an old
+peasant who could neither read nor write, and his accounts with a
+neighbor were done in untrained but very clear fashion, and were
+accepted as indubitable in a civil case. The purposiveness, order, and
+continuity of a manuscript indicate that it was not written after the
+event; and are therefore, together with the reason for having written it
+and obviously with the personality of the writer, determinative of its
+value.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 32.(j) Mistaken Inferences.</h5>
+
+<p>It is true, as Huxley says, that human beings would have made fewer
+mistakes if they had kept in mind their tendency to false judgments
+which depend upon extraordinary combinations of real experiences. When
+people say: I felt, I heard, I saw this or that, in 99 cases put of 100
+they mean only that they have been aware of some kind of sensation the
+nature of which they determine in a judgment. Most erroneous inferences
+ensue in this fashion. They are rarely formal and rarely arise by virtue
+of a failure to use logical principles; their ground is the inner
+paucity of a premise, which itself is erroneous because of an erroneous
+perception or conception.<a name="FNanchor_161_161" id="FNanchor_161_161"></a><a href="#Footnote_161_161" class="fnanchor">[161]</a> As Mill rightly points out, a large
+portion of mankind make mistakes because of tacit assumptions that the
+order of nature and the order of knowledge are identical and that things
+must exist as they are thought, so that when two things can not be
+thought together they are supposed not to exist together, and the
+inconceivable is supposed to be identical with the non-existent. But
+what they do not succeed in conceiving must not be confused with the
+absolutely inconceivable. The difficulty or impossibility of conceiving
+may be subjective and conditional, and may prevent us from understanding
+the relation of a series of events only because some otherwise
+proximate<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_177" id="page_177"></a>{177}</span> condition is unknown or overlooked. Very often in criminal
+cases when I can make no progress in some otherwise simple matter, I
+recall the well known story of an old peasant woman who saw the tail of
+a horse through an open stable door and the head of another through
+another door several yards away, and because the colors of both head and
+tail were similar, was moved to cry out: “Dear Lord, what a long horse!”
+The old lady started with the presupposition that the rump and the head
+of the two horses belonged to one, and could make no use of the obvious
+solution of the problem of the inconceivably long horse by breaking it
+in two.</p>
+
+<p>Such mistakes may be classified under five heads.<a name="FNanchor_162_162" id="FNanchor_162_162"></a><a href="#Footnote_162_162" class="fnanchor">[162]</a></p>
+
+<p>(1) Aprioristic mistakes. (Natural prejudices).</p>
+
+<p>(2) Mistakes in observation.</p>
+
+<p>(3) Mistakes in generalization. (When the facts are right and the
+inferences wrong).</p>
+
+<p>(4) Mistakes of confusion. (Ambiguity of terms or mistakes by
+association).</p>
+
+<p>(5) Logical fallacies.</p>
+
+<p>All five fallacies play important rôles in the lawyer’s work.</p>
+
+<p>We have very frequently to fight natural prejudices. We take certain
+classes of people to be better and others to be worse than the average,
+and without clearly expressing it we expect that the first class will
+not easily do evil nor the other good. We have prejudices about some one
+or another view of life; some definition of justice, or point of view,
+although we have sufficient opportunity to be convinced of their
+incorrectness. We have a similar prejudice in trusting our human
+knowledge, judgment of impressions, facts, etc., far too much, so far
+indeed, that certain relations and accidents occurring to any person we
+like or dislike will determine his advantage or disadvantage at our
+hands.</p>
+
+<p>Of importance under this heading, too, are those inferences which are
+made in spite of the knowledge that the case is different; the power of
+sense is more vigorous than that of reflection. As Hartmann expresses
+it: “The prejudices arising from sensation, are not conscious judgments
+of the understanding but instinctively practical postulates, and are,
+therefore, very difficult to destroy, or even set aside by means of
+conscious consideration. You may tell yourself a thousand times that the
+moon at the horizon is as big as at the zenith&mdash;nevertheless you see it
+smaller at the zenith.” Such fixed<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_178" id="page_178"></a>{178}</span> impressions we meet in every
+criminal trial, and if once we have considered how the criminal had
+committed a crime we no longer get free of the impression, even when we
+have discovered quite certainly that he had no share in the deed. The
+second type of fallacy&mdash;mistakes in observation&mdash;will be discussed later
+under sense perception and similar matters.</p>
+
+<p>Under mistakes of generalization the most important processes are those
+of arrangement, where the environment or accompanying circumstances
+exercise so determinative an influence that the inference is often made
+from them alone and without examination of the object in question. The
+Tanagra in the house of an art-connoisseur I take to be genuine without
+further examination; the golden watch in the pocket of a tramp to be
+stolen; a giant meteor, the skeleton of an iguana, a twisted-looking
+Nerva in the Royal Museum of Berlin, I take to be indubitably original,
+and indubitably imitations in the college museum of a small town. The
+same is true of events: I hear a child screeching in the house of the
+surly wife of the shoemaker so I do not doubt that she is spanking it;
+in the mountains I infer from certain whistles the presence of chamois,
+and a single long drawn tone that might be due to anything I declare to
+have come from an organ, if a church is near by.</p>
+
+<p>All such processes are founded upon experience, synthesis, and, if you
+like, prejudices. They will often lead to proper conclusions, but in
+many cases they will have the opposite effect. It is a frequently
+recurring fact that in such cases careful examination is most of all
+necessary, because people are so much inclined to depend upon “the
+first, always indubitably true impression.” The understanding has
+generalized simply and hastily, without seeking for justification.</p>
+
+<p>The only way of avoiding great damage is to extract the fact in itself
+from its environment and accompanying circumstance, and to study it
+without them. The environment is only a means of proof, but no proof,
+and only when the object or event has been validated in itself may we
+adduce one means of proof after another and modify our point of view
+accordingly. Not to do so, means always to land upon false inferences,
+and what is worse, to find it impossible upon the recognition of an
+error later on, to discover at what point it has occurred. By that time
+it has been buried too deep in the heap of our inferential system to be
+discoverable.</p>
+
+<p>The error of confusion Mill reduces especially to the unclear<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_179" id="page_179"></a>{179}</span>
+representation of <i>what</i> proof is, i.e., to the ambiguity of words. We
+rarely meet such cases, but when we do, they occur after we have
+compounded concepts and have united rather carelessly some symbol with
+an object or an event which ought not to have been united, simply
+because we were mistaken about its importance. A warning example may be
+found in the inference which is made from the sentence given a criminal
+because of “identical motive.” The Petitio, the Ignorantia, etc., belong
+to this class. The purely logical mistakes or mistakes of syllogism do
+not enter into these considerations.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 33. (k) Statistics of the Moral Situation.</h5>
+
+<p>Upon the first glance it might be asserted that statistics and
+psychology have nothing to do with each other. If, however, it is
+observed that the extraordinary and inexplicable results presented by
+statistics of morals and general statistics influence our thought and
+reflection unconditionally, its importance for criminal psychology can
+not be denied. Responsibility, abundance of criminals, their
+distribution according to time, place, personality, and circumstances,
+the regularity of their appearance, all these have so profound an
+influence upon us both essentially and circumstantially that even our
+judgments and resolutions, no less than the conduct and thought of other
+people whom we judge, are certainly altered by them.<a name="FNanchor_163_163" id="FNanchor_163_163"></a><a href="#Footnote_163_163" class="fnanchor">[163]</a> Moreover,
+probability and statistics are in such close and inseparable connection
+that we may not make use of or interpret the one without the other.
+Eminent psychological contributions by Münsterberg show the importance
+the statistical problems have for psychology. This writer warns us
+against the over-valuation of the results of the statistics of morality,
+and believes that its proper tendencies will be discovered only much
+later. In any event the real value of statistical synthesis and
+deduction can be discovered only when it is closely studied. This is
+particularly true with regard to criminal conditions. The works of many
+authors<a name="FNanchor_164_164" id="FNanchor_164_164"></a><a href="#Footnote_164_164" class="fnanchor">[164]</a> teach us things that would not otherwise be learned, and
+they would not be dealt with here if only a systematic study of the
+works themselves could be of use. We speak here only of their importance
+for our own discipline. Nobody doubts that there are mysteries in the
+figures and figuring of statistics. We admit honestly that we know no<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_180" id="page_180"></a>{180}</span>
+more to-day than when Paul de Decker discussed Quetelet’s labors in
+statistics of morality in the Brussels Academy of Science, and confessed
+what a puzzle it was that human conduct, even in its smallest
+manifestations, obeyed in their totality constant and immutable laws.
+Concerning this curious fact Adolf Wagner says: “If a traveler had told
+us something about some people where a statute determines exactly how
+many persons per year shall marry, die, commit suicide, and crimes
+within certain classes,&mdash;and if he had announced furthermore that these
+laws were altogether obeyed, what should we have said? And as a matter
+of fact the laws are obeyed all the world over.”<a name="FNanchor_165_165" id="FNanchor_165_165"></a><a href="#Footnote_165_165" class="fnanchor">[165]</a></p>
+
+<p>Of course the statistics of morality deal with quantities not qualities,
+but in the course of statistical examination the latter are met with.
+So, e.g., examinations into the relation of crime to school-attendance
+and education, into the classes that show most suicides, etc., connect
+human qualities with statistical data. The time is certainly not far off
+when we shall seek for the proper view of the probability of a certain
+assumption with regard to some rare crime, doubtful suicide,
+extraordinary psychic phenomena, etc., with the help of a statistical
+table. This possibility is made clearer when the inconceivable constancy
+of some figures is considered. Suppose we study the number of suicides
+since 1819 in Austria, in periods of eight years. We find the following
+figures, 3000, 5000, 6000, 7000, 9000, 12000, 15000&mdash;i.e., a regular
+increase which is comparable to law.<a name="FNanchor_166_166" id="FNanchor_166_166"></a><a href="#Footnote_166_166" class="fnanchor">[166]</a> Or suppose we consider the
+number of women, who, in the course of ten continuous years in France,
+shot themselves; we find 6, 6, 7, 7, 6, 6, 7; there is merely an
+alternation between 6 and 7. Should not we look up if in some one year
+eight or nine appeared? Should not we give some consideration to the
+possibility that the suicide is only a pretended one? Or suppose we
+consider the number of men who have drowned themselves within the same
+time: 280, 285, 292, 276, 257, 269, 258, 276, 278, 287,&mdash;Wagner says
+rightly of such figures “that they contain the arithmetical relation of
+the mechanism belonging to a moral order which ought to call out even
+greater astonishment than the mechanism of stellar systems.”</p>
+
+<p>Still more remarkable are the figures when they are so brought together
+that they may be seen as a curve. It is in this way that Drobisch brings
+together a table which distributes crime according<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_181" id="page_181"></a>{181}</span> to age. Out of a
+thousand crimes committed by persons between the ages of:</p>
+
+<table border="1" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="">
+<tr><td align="right">&nbsp;</td>
+<td align="center"> <small>AGAINST</small><br />
+<small>PROPERTY</small></td><td>
+<small>AGAINST</small><br /><small>PERSONS</small></td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">Less than &nbsp; &nbsp; 16 years</td><td align="right"> 2</td><td align="right"> 0.53</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">16-21</td><td align="right"> 105</td><td align="right"> 28</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">21-25</td><td align="right"> 114</td><td align="right"> 50</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">25-30</td><td align="right"> 101</td><td align="right"> 48</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">30-35</td><td align="right"> 93</td><td align="right"> 41</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">35-40</td><td align="right"> 78</td><td align="right"> 31</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">40-45</td><td align="right"> 63</td><td align="right"> 25</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">45-50</td><td align="right"> 48</td><td align="right"> 19</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">50-55</td><td align="right"> 34</td><td align="right"> 15</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">55-60</td><td align="right"> 24</td><td align="right"> 12</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">60-65</td><td align="right"> 19</td><td align="right"> 11</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">65-70</td><td align="right"> 14</td><td align="right"> 8</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">70-80</td><td align="right"> 8</td><td align="right"> 5</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="right">More than 80</td><td align="right"> 2</td><td align="right"> 2</td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<p>Through both columns a definite curve may be drawn which grows steadily
+and drops steadily. Greater mathematical certainty is almost
+unthinkable. Of similar great importance is the parallelization of the
+most important conditions. When, e.g., suicides in France, from 1826 to
+1870 are taken in series of five years we find the figures 1739, 2263,
+2574, 2951, 3446, 3639, 4002, 4661, 5147; if now during that period the
+population has increased from 30 to only 36 millions other determining
+factors have to be sought.<a name="FNanchor_167_167" id="FNanchor_167_167"></a><a href="#Footnote_167_167" class="fnanchor">[167]</a></p>
+
+<p>Again, most authorities as quoted by Gutberlet,<a name="FNanchor_168_168" id="FNanchor_168_168"></a><a href="#Footnote_168_168" class="fnanchor">[168]</a> indicate that most
+suicides are committed in June, fewest in December; most at night,
+especially at dawn, fewest at noon, especially between twelve and two
+o’clock. The greatest frequency is among the half-educated, the age
+between sixty and seventy, and the nationality Saxon (Oettingen).</p>
+
+<p>The combination of such observations leads to the indubitable conclusion
+that the results are sufficiently constant to permit making at least an
+assumption with regard to the cases in hand. At present, statistics say
+little of benefit with regard to the individual; J. S. Mill is right in
+holding that the death-rate will help insurance companies but will tell
+any individual little concerning the duration of his life. According to
+Adolf Wagner, the principal statistical rule is: The law has validity
+when dealing with great numbers; the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_182" id="page_182"></a>{182}</span> constant regularity is perceivable
+only when cases are very numerous; single cases show many a variation
+and exception. Quetelet has shown the truth of this in his example of
+the circle. “If you draw a circle on the blackboard with thick chalk,
+and study its outline closely in small sections, you will find the
+coarsest irregularities; but if you step far back and study the circle
+as a whole, its regular, perfect form becomes quite distinct.” But the
+circle must be drawn carefully and correctly, and one must not give way
+to sentimentality and tears when running over a fly’s legs in drawing.
+Emil du Bois-Reymond<a name="FNanchor_169_169" id="FNanchor_169_169"></a><a href="#Footnote_169_169" class="fnanchor">[169]</a> says against this: “When the postmaster
+announces that out of 100,000 letters a year, exactly so and so many
+come unaddressed, we think nothing of the matter&mdash;but when Quetelet
+counts so and so many criminals to every 100,000 people our moral sense
+is aroused since it is painful to think that we are not criminals simply
+because somebody else has drawn the black spot.” But really there is as
+little regrettable in this fact as in the observation that every year so
+and so many men break their legs, and so and so many die&mdash;in those cases
+also, a large number of people have the good fortune not to have broken
+their legs nor to have died. We have here the irrefutable logic of facts
+which reveals nothing vexatious.</p>
+
+<p>On the other hand, there is no doubt that our criminal statistics, to be
+useful, must be handled in a rather different fashion. We saw, in
+studying the statistics of suicide, that inferences with regard to
+individual cases could be drawn only when the material had been studied
+carefully and examined on all sides. But our criminological statistic is
+rarely examined with such thoroughness; the tenor of such examination is
+far too bureaucratic and determined by the statutes and the process of
+law. The criminalist gives the statistician the figures but the latter
+can derive no significant principles from them. Consider for once any
+official report on the annual results in the criminal courts in any
+country. Under and over the thousands and thousands of figures and rows
+of figures there is a great mass of very difficult work which has been
+profitable only in a very small degree. I have before me the four
+reports of a single year which deal with the activities of the Austrian
+courts and criminal institutions, and which are excellent in their
+completeness, correctness, and thorough revision. Open the most
+important,&mdash;the results of the administration of criminal law in the
+various departments of the country,&mdash;and you find everything
+recorded:&mdash;how many<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_183" id="page_183"></a>{183}</span> were punished here and how many there, what their
+crimes were, the percentage of condemned according to age, social
+standing, religion, occupation, wealth, etc.; then again you see endless
+tables of arrests, sentences, etc., etc. Now the value of all this is to
+indicate merely whether a certain regularity is discoverable in the
+procedure of the officials. Material psychologically valuable is rare.
+There is some energetic approximation to it in the consideration of
+culture, wealth, and previous sentences, but even these are dealt with
+most generally, while the basis and motive of the death-sentence is
+barely indicated. We can perceive little consideration of motives with
+regard to education, earlier life, etc., in their relation to
+sentencing. Only when statistics will be made to deal actually and in
+every direction with qualities and not merely with quantities will they
+begin to have a really scientific value.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic II. KNOWLEDGE.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 34.</h5>
+
+<p>Criminal law, like all other disciplines, must ask under what conditions
+and when we are entitled to say “we know.” The answer is far from being
+perennially identical, though it might have been expected that the
+conviction of knowledge would be ever united with identical conditions.
+The strange and significant difference is determined by the question
+whether the verdict, “we know,” will or will not have practical
+consequences. When we discuss some question like the place of a certain
+battle, the temperature of the moon, or the appearance of a certain
+animal in the Pliocene, we first assume that there is a true answer;
+reasons for and against will appear, the former increase in number, and
+suddenly we discover in some book the assurance that, “We know the
+fact.” That assurance passes into so and so many other books; and if it
+is untrue, no essential harm can be done.</p>
+
+<p>But when science is trying to determine the quality of some substance,
+the therapeutic efficiency of some poison, the possibilities of some
+medium of communication, the applicability of some great national
+economic principle like free trade, then it takes much more time to
+announce, “We know that this is so and not otherwise.” In this case one
+sees clearly that tremendous consequences follow on the practical
+interpretation of “we know,” and therefore there is in these cases quite
+a different taxation of knowledge from that in cases where the practical
+consequences are comparatively negligible.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_184" id="page_184"></a>{184}</span></p>
+
+<p>Our work is obviously one of concrete practical consequences. It
+contains, moreover, conditions that make imperfect knowledge equivalent
+to complete ignorance, for in delivering sentence every “no” may each
+time mean, “We know that he has not done it” or again, “We know that it
+is not altogether certain that he has done it.” Our knowledge in such
+cases is limited to the recognition of the confusion of the subject, and
+knowledge in its widest sense is the consciousness of some definite
+content; in this case, confusion. Here, as everywhere, knowledge is not
+identical with truth; knowledge is only subjective truth. Whoever knows,
+has reasons for considering things true and none against so considering
+them. Here, he is entitled to assume that all who recognize his
+knowledge will justify it. But, when even everybody justifies his
+knowledge, it can be justified only in its immediacy; to-morrow the
+whole affair may look different. For this reason we criminalists assert
+much less than other investigators that we seek the truth; if we presume
+to such an assertion, we should not have the institutions of equity,
+revision, and, in criminal procedure, retrial. Our knowledge, when named
+modestly, is only the innermost conviction that some matter is so and so
+according to human capacity, and “such and such a condition of things.”
+Parenthetically, we agree that “such and such a condition of things” may
+alter with every instant and we declare ourselves ready to study the
+matter anew if the conditions change. We demand material, but relative
+truth.</p>
+
+<p>One of the acutest thinkers, J. R. von Mayer, the discoverer of the
+working principle of “conservation of energy,” says, “the most
+important, if not the only rule for real natural science is this: Always
+to believe that it is our task to know the phenomena before we seek
+explanation of higher causes. If a fact is once known in all its
+aspects, it is thereby explained and the duty of science fulfilled.” The
+author did not have us dry-souled lawyers in mind when he made this
+assertion, but we who modestly seek to subordinate our discipline to
+that of the correct one of natural science, must take this doctrine
+absolutely to heart. Every crime we study is a fact, and once we know it
+in all its aspects and have accounted for every little detail, we have
+explained it and have done our duty.</p>
+
+<p>But the word explain does not lead us very far. It is mainly a matter of
+reducing the mass of the inexplicable to a minimum and the whole to its
+simplest terms. If only we succeed in this reduction! In most cases we
+substitute for one well-known term, not<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_185" id="page_185"></a>{185}</span> another still better one, but a
+strange one which may mean different things to different people. So
+again, we explain one event by means of another more difficult one. It
+is unfortunate that we lawyers are more than all others inclined to make
+unnecessary explanations, because our criminal law has accustomed us to
+silly definitions which rarely bring us closer to the issue and which
+supply us only with a lot of words difficult to understand instead of
+easily comprehensible ones. Hence we reach explanations both impossible
+and hard to make, explanations which we ourselves are often unwilling to
+believe. And again we try to explain and to define events which
+otherwise would have been understood by everybody and which become
+doubtful and uncertain because of the attempt. The matter becomes
+especially difficult when we feel ourselves unsure, or when we have
+discovered or expect contradiction. Then we try to convince ourselves
+that we know something, although at the beginning we were clearly enough
+aware that we knew nothing. We must not forget that our knowledge can
+attain only to ideas of things. It consists alone in the perception of
+the relation and agreement, or in the incompatibility and contradiction
+of some of our ideas. Our task lies exactly in the explication of these
+impressions, and the more thoroughly that is done the greater and more
+certain is the result. But we must never trust our own impressions
+merely. “When the theologian, who deals with the supersensible, has said
+all that, from his point of view, he can say, when the jurist, who
+represents those fundamental laws which are the result of social
+experience, has considered all reasons from his own point of view, the
+final authority in certain cases must be the physician who is engaged in
+studying the life of the body.”</p>
+
+<p>I get this from Maudsley,<a name="FNanchor_170_170" id="FNanchor_170_170"></a><a href="#Footnote_170_170" class="fnanchor">[170]</a> and it leads us to keep in mind that
+<i>our</i> knowledge is very one-sided and limited, and that an event is
+known only when all have spoken who possess especial knowledge of its
+type. Hence, every criminalist is required to found his knowledge upon
+that of the largest possible number of experts and not to judge or
+discuss any matter which requires especial information without having
+first consulted an expert with regard to it. Only the sham knows
+everything; the trained man understands how little the mind of any
+individual may grasp, and how many must coöperate in order to explain
+the very simplest things.</p>
+
+<p>The complexity of the matter lies in the essence of the concept<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_186" id="page_186"></a>{186}</span> “to
+be.” We use the word “to be” to indicate the intent of all perceived and
+perceivable. “&nbsp;‘To be’ and ‘to know’ are identical in so far as they have
+identical content, and the content may be known?”<a name="FNanchor_171_171" id="FNanchor_171_171"></a><a href="#Footnote_171_171" class="fnanchor">[171]</a></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_187" id="page_187"></a>{187}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="Part_II" id="Part_II"></a><span class="smcap">Part II.</span><br /><br />
+OBJECTIVE CONDITIONS OF CRIMINAL INVESTIGATION: THE MENTAL ACTIVITY OF THE EXAMINEE.</h2>
+
+<h3><a name="Title_A_General_Conditions" id="Title_A_General_Conditions"></a><span class="smcap">Title A. General Conditions.</span></h3>
+
+<h4>Topic I. OF SENSE-PERCEPTION.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 35.</h5>
+
+<p>Our conclusions depend upon perceptions made by ourselves and others.
+And if the perceptions are good our judgments <i>may</i> be good, if they are
+bad our judgments <i>must</i> be bad. Hence, to study the forms of
+sense-perception is to study the fundamental conditions of the
+administration of law, and the greater the attention thereto, the more
+certain is the administration.</p>
+
+<p>It is not our intention to develop a theory of perception. We have only
+to extract those conditions which concern important circumstances,
+criminologically considered, and from which we may see how we and those
+we examine, perceive matters. A thorough and comprehensive study of this
+question can not be too much recommended. Recent science has made much
+progress in this direction, and has discovered much of great importance
+for us. To ignore this is to confine oneself merely to the superficial
+and external, and hence to the inconceivable and incomprehensible, to
+ignoring valuable material for superficial reasons, and what is worse,
+to identifying material as important which properly understood has no
+value whatever.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 36. (a) General Considerations.</h5>
+
+<p>The criminalist studies the physiological psychology<a name="FNanchor_172_172" id="FNanchor_172_172"></a><a href="#Footnote_172_172" class="fnanchor">[172]</a> of the senses
+and their functions, in order to ascertain their nature, their influence
+upon images and concepts, their trustworthiness, their reliability and
+its conditions, and the relation of perception to the object. The
+question applies equally to the judge, the jury, the witness, and the
+accused. Once the essence of the function and relation of
+sense-perception is understood, its application in individual cases
+becomes easy.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_188" id="page_188"></a>{188}</span></p>
+
+<p>The importance of sense-perception need not be demonstrated. “If we
+ask,” says Mittermaier, “for the reason of our conviction of the truth
+of facts even in very important matters, and the basis of every judgment
+concerning existence of facts, we find that the evidence of the senses
+is final and seems, therefore, the only true source of certainty.”</p>
+
+<p>There has always, of course, been a quarrel as to the objectivity and
+reliability of sense-perception. That the senses do not lie, “not
+because they are always correct, but because they do not judge,” is a
+frequently quoted sentence of Kant’s; the Cyrenaics have already
+suggested this in asserting that pleasure and pain alone are
+indubitable. Aristotle narrows the veracity of sensation to its
+essential content, as does Epicurus. Descartes, Locke and Leibnitz have
+suggested that no image may be called, as mere change of feeling, true
+or false. Sensationalism in the work of Gassendi, Condillac, and
+Helvetius undertook for this reason the defense of the senses against
+the reproach of deceit, and as a rule did it by invoking the
+infallibility of the sense of touch against the reproach of the
+contradictions in the other senses. Reid went back to Aristotle in
+distinguishing specific objects for each sense and in assuming the truth
+of each sense within its own field.</p>
+
+<p>That these various theories can be adjusted is doubtful, even if, from a
+more conservative point of view, the subject may be treated
+quantitatively. The modern quantification of psychology was begun by
+Herbart, who developed a mathematical system of psychology by
+introducing certain completely unempirical postulates concerning the
+nature of representation and by applying certain simple premises in all
+deductions concerning numerical extent. Then came Fechner, who assumed
+the summation of stimuli. And finally these views were determined and
+fixed by the much-discussed Weber’s Law, according to which the
+intensity of the stimulus must increase in the proportion that the
+intensity of the sensation is to increase; i.e., if a stimulus of 20
+units requires the addition of 3 before it can be perceived, a stimulus
+of 60 units would require the addition of 9. This law, which is of
+immense importance to criminalists who are discussing the
+sense-perceptions of witnesses, has been thoroughly and conclusively
+dealt with by A. Meinong.<a name="FNanchor_173_173" id="FNanchor_173_173"></a><a href="#Footnote_173_173" class="fnanchor">[173]</a></p>
+
+<p>“Modern psychology takes qualities perceived externally to be in
+themselves subjective but capable of receiving objectivity through<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_189" id="page_189"></a>{189}</span> our
+relation to the outer world.... The qualitative character of our sensory
+content produced by external stimuli depends primarily on the
+organization of our senses. This is the fundamental law of perception,
+of modern psychology, variously expressed, but axiomatic in all
+physiological psychology.”<a name="FNanchor_174_174" id="FNanchor_174_174"></a><a href="#Footnote_174_174" class="fnanchor">[174]</a> In this direction Helmholtz<a name="FNanchor_175_175" id="FNanchor_175_175"></a><a href="#Footnote_175_175" class="fnanchor">[175]</a> has
+done pioneer work. He treats particularly the problem of optics, and
+physiological optics is the study of perception by means of the sense of
+sight. We see things in the external world through the medium of light
+which they direct upon our eyes. The light strikes the retina, and
+causes a sensation. The sensation brought to the brain by means of the
+optic nerve becomes the condition of the representation in consciousness
+of certain objects distributed in space.... We make use of the sensation
+which the light stimulates in the mechanism of the optic nerve to
+construct representations concerning the existence, form, and condition
+of external objects. Hence we call images perceptions of sight. (Our
+sense-perception, according to this theory, consists, therefore,
+entirely of sensations; the latter constitute the stuff or the content
+from which the other is constructed). Our sensations are effects caused
+in our organs, externally, and the manifestation of such an effect
+depends essentially upon the nature of the apparatus which has been
+stimulated.</p>
+
+<p>There are certain really known inferences, e.g., those made by the
+astronomer from the perspective pictures of the stars to their positions
+in space. These inferences are founded upon well-studied knowledge of
+the principles of optics. Such knowledge of optics is lacking in the
+ordinary function of seeing; nevertheless it is permissible to conceive
+the psychical function of ordinary perception as unconscious inferences,
+inasmuch as this name will completely distinguish them from the commonly
+so-called conscious inferences.</p>
+
+<p>The last-named condition is of especial importance to us. We need
+investigation to determine the laws of the influence of optical and
+acoustical knowledge upon perception. That these laws are influential
+may be verified easily. Whoever is ignorant, e.g., that a noise is
+reflected back considerably, will say that a wagon is turning from the
+side from which the noise comes, though if he knows the law, if he knows
+that fact, his answer would be reversed. So, as every child knows that
+the reflection of sound is frequently deceptive, everybody who is asked
+in court will say that he believes the wagon<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_190" id="page_190"></a>{190}</span> to be on the right side
+though it might as well have been on the left. Again, if we were unaware
+that light is otherwise refracted in water than in air we could say that
+a stick in the water has been bent obtusely, but inasmuch as everybody
+knows this fact of the relation of light to water, he will declare that
+the stick appears bent but really is straight.</p>
+
+<p>From these simplest of sense-perceptions to the most complicated, known
+only to half a dozen foremost physicists, there is an infinite series of
+laws controlling each stage of perception, and for each stage there is a
+group of men who know just so much and no more. We have, therefore, to
+assume that their perceptions will vary with the number and manner of
+their accomplishments, and we may almost convince ourselves that each
+examinee who has to give evidence concerning his sense-perception should
+literally undergo examination to make clear his scholarly status and
+thereby the value of his testimony. Of course, in practice this is not
+required. First of all we judge approximately a man’s nature and nurture
+and according to the impression he makes upon us, thence, his
+intellectual status. This causes great mistakes. But, on the other hand,
+the testimony is concerned almost always with one or several physical
+events, so that a simple relational interrogation will establish
+certainly whether the witness knows and attends to the physical law in
+question or not. But anyway, too little is done to determine the means a
+man uses to reach a certain perception. If instantaneous contradictions
+appear, there is little damage, for in the absence of anything certain,
+further inferences are fortunately made in rare cases only. But when the
+observation is that of one person alone, or even when more testify but
+have accidentally the same amount of knowledge and hence have made the
+same mistake, and no contradiction appears, we suppose ourselves to
+possess the precise truth, confirmed by several witnesses, and we argue
+merrily on the basis of it. In the meantime we quite forget that
+contradictions are our salvation from the trusting acceptance of
+untruth&mdash;and that the absence of contradiction means, as a rule, the
+absence of a starting point for further examination.</p>
+
+<p>For this reason and others modern psychology requires us to be cautious.
+Among the others is the circumstance that perceptions are rarely pure.
+Their purity consists in containing nothing else than perception; they
+are mixed when they are connected with imaginations, judgments, efforts,
+and volitions. How rarely a perception is pure I have already tried to
+show; judgments almost<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_191" id="page_191"></a>{191}</span> always accompany it. I repeat too, that owing to
+this circumstance and our ignorance of it, countless testimonies are
+interpreted altogether falsely. This is true in many other fields. When,
+for example, A. Fick says: “The condition we call sensation occurs in
+the consciousness of the subject when his sensory nerves are
+stimulated,” he does not mean that the nervous stimulus in itself is
+capable of causing the condition in question. This one stimulus is only
+a single tone in the murmur of countless stimuli, which earlier and at
+the same time have influenced us and are different in their effect on
+each man. Therefore, that single additional tone will also be different
+in each man. Or, when Bernstein says that “Sensation, i.e., the
+stimulation of the sensorium and the passage of this stimulation to the
+brain, does not in itself imply the perception of an object or an event
+in the external world,” we gather that the objectivity of the perception
+works correctively not more than one time out of many. So here again
+everything depends upon the nature and nurture of the subject.</p>
+
+<p>Sensations are, according to Aubert, still more subjective. “They are
+the specific activity of the sense organs, (not, therefore, passive as
+according to Helmholtz, but active functions of the sense organs).
+Perception arises when we combine our particular sensations with the
+pure images of the spirit or the schemata of the understanding,
+especially with the pure image of space. The so-called ejection or
+externalization of sensations occurs only as their scheme and relation
+to the unity of their object.”</p>
+
+<p>So long as anything is conceived as passive it may always recur more
+identically than when it is conceived as active. In the latter case the
+individuality of the particular person makes the perception in a still
+greater degree individual, and makes it almost the creature of him who
+perceives. Whether Aubert is right or not is not our task to discover,
+but if he is right then sense-perception is as various as is humanity.
+The variety is still further increased by means of the comprehensive
+activity which Fischer<a name="FNanchor_176_176" id="FNanchor_176_176"></a><a href="#Footnote_176_176" class="fnanchor">[176]</a> presupposes. “Visual perception has a
+comprehensive or compounding activity. We never see any absolute simple
+and hence do not perceive the elements of things. We see merely a
+spatial continuum, and that is possible only through comprehensive
+activity&mdash;especially in the case of movement in which the object of
+movement and the environment must both be perceived.” But each
+individual method of “comprehension” is different. And it is uncertain
+whether this<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_192" id="page_192"></a>{192}</span> is purely physical, whether only the memory assists (so
+that the attention is biased by what has been last perceived), whether
+imagination is at work or an especial psychical activity must be
+presupposed in compounding the larger elements. The fact is that men may
+perceive an enormous variety of things with a single glance. And
+generally the perceptive power will vary with the skill of the
+individual. The narrowest, smallest, most particularizing glance is that
+of the most foolish; and the broadest, most comprehensive, and comparing
+glance, that of the most wise. This is particularly noticeable when the
+time of observation is short. The one has perceived little and generally
+the least important; the other has in the same time seen everything from
+top to bottom and has distinguished between the important and the
+unimportant, has observed the former rather longer than the latter, and
+is able to give a better description of what he has seen. And then, when
+two so different descriptions come before us, we wonder at them and say
+that one of them is untrue.<a name="FNanchor_177_177" id="FNanchor_177_177"></a><a href="#Footnote_177_177" class="fnanchor">[177]</a></p>
+
+<p>The speed of apperception has been subjected to measurement by Auerbach,
+Kries, Baxt, von Tigerstedt and Bergqvist, Stern, Vaschide, Vurpass,
+etc. The results show 0.015 to 0.035 seconds for compounded images.
+Unfortunately, most of these experiments have brought little unanimity
+in the results and have not compared, e.g., the apperception-times of
+very clever people with those of very slow and stupid ones. In the
+variety of perception lies the power of presentation (in our sense of
+the term). In the main other forces assist in this, but when we consider
+how the senses work in combination we must conclude that they determine
+their own forms. “If we are to say that sense experience instructs us
+concerning the manifoldness of objects we may do so correctly if we add
+the scholium that many things could not be mentioned without synthesis.”
+So Dörner writes. But if we approach the matter from another side, we
+see how remarkable it is that human perceptions can be compared at all.
+Hermann Schwarz says “According to the opinion of the physicists we know
+external events directly by means of the organs, the nerves of which
+serve passively to support consciousness in the perception of such
+events. On the contrary, according to the opinion of most physiologists,
+the nerve fibers are active in the apprehension of external events, they
+modify it, alter it until it is well nigh unrecognizable, and turn it
+over to consciousness only after the original process has undergone
+still another transformation<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_193" id="page_193"></a>{193}</span> into new forms of mechanical energy in the
+ganglion cells of the outer brain. This is the difference between the
+physical theory of perception and the physiological.”</p>
+
+<p>In this connection there are several more conditions pertaining to
+general sense-perception. First of all there is that so-called
+vicariousness of the senses which substitutes one sense for another, in
+representation. The <i>actual</i> substitution of one sense by another as
+that of touch and sight, does not belong to the present discussion. The
+substitution of sound and sight is only apparent. E. g., when I have
+several times heard the half-noticed voice of some person without seeing
+him, I will imagine a definite face and appearance which <i>are</i> pure
+imagination. So again, if I hear cries for help near some stream, I see
+more or less clearly the form of a drowning person, etc. It is quite
+different in touching and seeing; if I touch a ball, a die, a cat, a
+cloth, etc., with my eyes closed, then I may so clearly see the color of
+the object before me that I might be really seeing it. But in this case
+there is a real substitution of greater or lesser degree.</p>
+
+<p>The same vicariousness occurs when perception is attributed to one sense
+while it properly belongs to another. This happens particularly at such
+times when one has not been present during the event or when the
+perception was made while only half awake, or a long time ago, and
+finally, when a group of other impressions have accompanied the event,
+so that there was not time enough, if I may say so, properly to register
+the sense impression. So, e.g., some person, especially a close friend,
+may have been merely heard and later quite convincingly supposed to have
+been seen. Sensitive people, who generally have an acuter olfactory
+sense than others, attach to any perceived odor all the other
+appropriate phenomena. The vicariousnesses of visual sensations are the
+most numerous and the most important. Anybody who has been pushed or
+beaten, and has felt the blows, will, if other circumstances permit and
+the impulse is strong enough, be convinced that he has seen his
+assaulter and the manner of the assault. Sometimes people who are shot
+at will claim to have seen the flight of the ball. And so again they
+will have seen in a dark night a comparatively distant wagon, although
+they have only heard the noise it made and felt the vibration. It is
+fortunate that, as a rule, such people try to be just in answering to
+questions which concern this substitution of one sense-perception for
+another. And such questions ought to be urgently put. That a false
+testimony can cause significant errors is as obvious as the fact<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_194" id="page_194"></a>{194}</span> that
+such substitutions are most frequent with nervous and imaginative
+persons.</p>
+
+<p>Still more significant is that characteristic phenomenon, to us of
+considerable importance, which might be called retrospective
+illumination of perception. It consists in the appearance of a
+sense-perception under conditions of some noticeable interruption, when
+the stimulus does not, as a rule, give rise to that perception. I cite a
+simple example in which I first observed this fact. Since I was a child
+there had been in my bed-room a clock, the loud ticking of which habit
+of many years prevented my hearing. Once, as I lay awake in bed, I heard
+it tick suddenly three times, then fall silent and stop. The occurrence
+interested me, I quickly got a light and examined the clock closely. The
+pendulum still swung, but without a sound; the time was right. I
+inferred that the clock must have stopped going just a few minutes
+before. And I soon found out why: the clock is not encased and the
+weight of the pendulum hangs free. Now under the clock there always
+stood a chair which this time had been so placed as to be inclined
+further backward. The weight followed that inclination and so the
+silence came about.</p>
+
+<p>I immediately made an experiment. I set the clock going again, and again
+held the weight back. The last beats of the pendulum were neither
+quicker nor slower, nor louder or softer than any others, before the
+sudden stoppage of the clock. I believe the explanation to be as
+follows: As customary noises especially are unheard, I did not hear the
+pendulum of the clock. But its sudden stopping disturbed the balance of
+sound which had been dominating the room. This called attention to the
+cause of the disturbance, i.e., the ticking which had ceased, and hence
+perception was intensified <i>backwards</i> and I heard the last ticks, which
+I had not perceived before, one after another. The latent stimulus
+caused by the ticking worked backward. My attention was naturally
+awakened only <i>after</i> the last tick, but my perception was consecutive.</p>
+
+<p>I soon heard of another case, this time, in court. There was a shooting
+in some house and an old peasant woman, who was busy sewing in the room,
+asserted that she had just before the shooting heard a <i>few</i> steps in
+the direction from which the shot must have come. Nobody would agree
+that there was any reason for supposing that the person in question
+should have made his final steps more noisily than his preceding ones.
+But I am convinced that the witness told the truth. The steps of the new
+arrival were perceived subconsciously; the further disturbance of the
+perception hindered<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_195" id="page_195"></a>{195}</span> her occupation and finally, when she was frightened
+by the shot, the upper levels of consciousness were illuminated and the
+noises which had already reached the subconsciousness passed over the
+threshold and were consciously perceived.</p>
+
+<p>I learned from an especially significant case, how the same thing could
+happen with regard to vision. A child was run over and killed by a
+careless coachman. A pensioned officer saw this through the window. His
+description was quite characteristic. It was the anniversary of a
+certain battle. The old gentleman, who stood by the window thinking
+about it and about his long dead comrades, was looking blankly out into
+the street. The horrible cry of the unhappy child woke him up and he
+really began to see. Then he observed that he had in truth seen
+everything that had happened <i>before</i> the child was knocked over&mdash;i.e.,
+for some reason the coachman had turned around, turning the horses in
+such a way at the same time that the latter jumped sidewise upon the
+frightened child, and hence the accident. The general expressed himself
+correctly in this fashion: “I saw it all, but I did not perceive and
+know that I saw it until <i>after</i> the scream of the child.” He offered
+also in proof of the correctness of his testimony, that he, an old
+cavalry officer, would have had to see the approaching misfortune if he
+had consciously seen the moving of the coachman, and then he would have
+had to be frightened. But he knew definitely that he was frightened only
+when the child cried out&mdash;he could not, therefore, have consciously
+perceived the preceding event. His story was confirmed by other
+witnesses.</p>
+
+<p>This psychological process is of significance in criminal trials,
+inasmuch as many actionable cases depend upon sudden and unexpected
+events, where retrospective illumination may frequently come in. In such
+cases it is most important to determine what actually has been
+perceived, and it is never indifferent whether we take the testimony in
+question as true or not.</p>
+
+<p>With regard to the senses of criminals, Lombroso and Ottolenghi have
+asserted that they are duller than those of ordinary people. The
+assertion is based on a collection made by Lombroso of instances of the
+great indifference of criminals to pain. But he has overlooked the fact
+that the reason is quite another thing. Barbarous living and barbarous
+morals are especially dulling, so that indifference to pain is a
+characteristic of all barbarous nations and characters. Inasmuch as
+there are many criminals among barbarous people, barbarity, criminality
+and indifference to pain come together in a<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_196" id="page_196"></a>{196}</span> large number of cases. But
+there is nothing remarkable in this, and a direct relation between crime
+and dullness of the senses can not be demonstrated.</p>
+
+<h5>(b) The Sense of Sight.</h5>
+
+<h5>Section 37. (1) <i>General Considerations.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Just as the sense of sight is the most dignified of all our senses, it
+is also the most important in the criminal court, for most witnesses
+testify as to what they have seen. If we compare sight with the hearing,
+which is next in the order of importance, we discover the well-known
+fact that what is seen is much more certain and trustworthy than what is
+heard. “It is better to see once than to hear ten times,” says the
+universally-valid old maxim. No exposition, no description, no
+complication which the data of other senses offer, can present half as
+much as even a fleeting glance. Hence too, no sense can offer us such
+surprises as the sense of sight. If I imagine the thunder of Niagara,
+the voice of Lucca, the explosion of a thousand cartridges, etc., or
+anything else that I have not heard, my imagination is certainly
+incorrect, but it will differ from reality only in degree. It is quite
+different with visual imagination. We need not adduce examples of
+magnificence like the appearance of the pyramids, a tropical light; of a
+famous work of art, a storm at sea, etc. The most insignificant thing
+ever seen but variously pictured in imagination will be greeted at first
+sight with the words: “But I imagined it quite different!” Hence the
+tremendous importance of every local and material characteristic which
+the criminal court deals with. Every one of us knows how differently he
+has, as a rule, imagined the place of the crime to be; how difficult it
+is to arrive at an understanding with the witness concerning some
+unseen, local characteristic, and how many mistakes false images of the
+unseen have caused. Whenever I ciceroned anybody through the Graz
+Criminal Museum, I was continually assailed with “Does this or that look
+so? But I thought it looked quite different!” And the things which evoke
+these exclamations are such as the astonished visitors have spoken and
+written about hundreds of times and often passed judgments upon. The
+same situation occurs when witnesses narrate some observation. When the
+question involves the sense of hearing some misunderstanding may be
+popularly assumed. But the people know little of optical illusions and
+false visual perceptions, though they are aware that incorrect auditions
+are frequent matters of fact. Moreover, to the heard object<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_197" id="page_197"></a>{197}</span> a large
+number of more or less certain precautionary judgments are attached. If
+anybody, e.g., has <i>heard</i> a shot, stealthy footsteps, crackling flames,
+we take his experience always to be <i>approximate</i>. We do not do so when
+he assures us he has <i>seen</i> these things or their causes. Then we take
+them&mdash;barring certain mistakes in observation,&mdash;to be indubitable
+perceptions in which misunderstanding is impossible.</p>
+
+<p>In this, again, is the basis for the distrust with which we meet
+testimony concerning hearsay. For we feel uncertain in the mere absence
+of the person whose conversation is reported, since his value can not be
+determined. But a part of the mistrust lies in the fact that it is not
+vision but the perennially half-doubted hearing that is in issue. Lies
+are assigned mainly to words; but there are lies which are visual
+(deceptions, maskings, illusions, etc.). Visual lies are, however, a
+diminishing minority in comparison with the lies that are heard.</p>
+
+<p>The certainty of the correctness of vision lies in its being tested with
+the sense of touch,&mdash;i.e. in the adaptation of our bodily sense to
+otherwise existing things. As Helmholtz says, “The agreement between our
+visual perceptions and the external world, rests, at least in the most
+important matters, on the same ground that all our knowledge of the
+actual world rests on, upon the experience and the lasting test of their
+correctness by means of experiments, i.e., of the movements of our
+bodies.” This would almost make it seem that the supreme judge among the
+senses is the touch. But that is not intended; we know well enough to
+what illusions we are subject if we trust the sense of touch alone. At
+the same time we must suppose that the question here is one of the
+nature of the body, and this can be measured only by something similar,
+i.e., by our own physical characteristics, but always under the control
+of some other sense, especially the sense of sight.</p>
+
+<p>The visual process itself consists, according to Fischer, “of a
+compounded series of results which succeed each other with extraordinary
+rapidity and are causally related. In this series the following elements
+may principally be distinguished.</p>
+
+<p>(1) The physico-chemical process.</p>
+
+<p>(2) The physiologico-sensory.</p>
+
+<p>(3) The psychological.</p>
+
+<p>(4) The physiologico-motor.</p>
+
+<p>(5) The process of perception.”</p>
+
+<p>It is not our task to examine the first four elements. In order<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_198" id="page_198"></a>{198}</span> clearly
+to understand the variety of perception, we have to deal with the last
+only. I once tried to explain this by means of the phenomenon of
+instantaneous photographs (cinematographs). If we examine one such
+representing an instant in some quick movement, we will assert that we
+never could have perceived it in the movement itself. This indicates
+that our vision is slower than that of the photographic apparatus, and
+hence, that we do not apprehend the smallest particular conditions, but
+that we each time unconsciously compound a group of the smallest
+conditions and construct in that way the so-called instantaneous
+impressions. If we are to compound a great series of instantaneous
+impressions in one galloping step, we must have condensed and compounded
+a number of them in order to get the image that we see with our eyes as
+instantaneous. We may therefore say that the least instantaneous image
+we ever see with our eyes contains many parts which only the
+photographic apparatus can grasp. Suppose we call these particular
+instances a, b, c, d, e, f, g, h, i, j, k, l, m; it is self-evident that
+the manner of their composition must vary with each individual. One man
+may compound his elements in groups of three: a, b, c,&mdash;d, e, f,&mdash;g, h,
+i, etc.; another may proceed in dyads: a, b,&mdash;c, d,&mdash;e, f,&mdash;g, h,&mdash;etc.;
+a third may have seen an unobservable instant later, but constructs his
+image like the first man: b, c, d,&mdash;l, m, n, etc.; a fourth works slowly
+and rather inaccurately, getting: a, c, d,&mdash;f, h, i,&mdash;etc. Such
+variations multiply, and when various observers of the same event
+describe it they do it according to their different characteristics. And
+the differences may be tremendous. Substitute numerals for letters and
+the thing becomes clear. The relative slowness of our apprehension of
+visual elements has the other consequence that we interpolate objects in
+the lacunæ of vision <i>according to our expectations</i>. The best example
+of this sort of thing would be the perception of assault and battery.
+When ten people in an inn see how A raises a beer glass against B’s
+head, five expect: “Now he’ll pound him,” and five others: “Now he’ll
+throw it.” If the glass has reached B’s head none of the ten observers
+have seen how it reached there, but the first five take their oath that
+A pounded B with the glass, and the other five that he threw it at B’s
+head. And all ten have really seen it, so firmly are they convinced of
+the correctness of their swift judgment of expectation. Now, before we
+treat the witness to some reproach like untruth, inattention, silliness,
+or something equally nice, <i>we</i> had better consider whether his story is
+not true,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_199" id="page_199"></a>{199}</span> and whether the difficulty might not really lie in the
+imperfection of our own sensory processes. This involves partly what
+Liebmann has called “anthropocentric vision,” i.e., seeing with man as
+the center of things. Liebmann further asserts, “that we see things only
+in perspective sizes, i.e., only from an angle of vision varying with
+their approach, withdrawal and change of position, but in no sense as
+definite cubical, linear, or surface sizes. The apparent size of an
+object we call an angle of vision at a certain distance. But, what
+indeed is the different, true size? We know only relations of
+magnitude.” This description is important when we are dealing with
+testimony concerning size. It seems obvious that each witness who speaks
+of size is to be asked whence he had observed it, but at the same time a
+great many unexpected errors occur, especially when what is involved is
+the determination of the size of an object in the same plane. One need
+only to recall the meeting of railway tracks, streets, alleys, etc., and
+to remember how different in size, according to the point of view of the
+witness, various objects in such places must appear. Everybody knows
+that distant things seem smaller than near ones, but almost nobody knows
+what the difference amounts to. For examples see Lotze, “Medical
+Psychology,” Leipzig, 1852.</p>
+
+<p>In addition we often think that the clearness of an object represents
+its distance and suppose that the first alone determines the latter. But
+the distinctness of objects, i.e., the perceptibility of a
+light-impression, depends also upon the absolute brightness and the
+differences in brightness. The latter is more important than is
+supposed. Try to determine how far away you can see a key-hole when the
+wall containing the door is in the shadow, and when there is a window
+opposite the key-hole. A dark object of the size of a key-hole will not
+be visible at one hundredth of the distance at which the key-hole is
+perceived. Moreover, the difference in intensity is not alone in
+consideration; the intensity of the object <i>with regard to its
+background</i> has yet to be considered. Aubert has shown that the accuracy
+of the distinction is the same when a square of white paper is looked at
+from an angle of 18´´, and when conversely a square of black paper on
+white background is looked at from an angle of 35´´. “When we put a gray
+paper in the sunshine, it may become objectively brighter than white
+paper in shadow. But this does not prevent us from knowing one as gray
+and the other as pure white. We separate the color of the object from
+the intensity of the incident light.” But this is not always so simple,
+inasmuch as<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_200" id="page_200"></a>{200}</span> we know in the case in hand which paper is gray and which
+white, which is in the sunlight and which in the shadow. But if these
+facts are not known mistakes often occur so that a man dressed in dark
+clothes but in full light will be described as wearing lighter clothes
+than one who wears light clothes in the shadow.</p>
+
+<p>Differences of illumination reveal a number of phenomena difficult to
+explain. Fechner calls attention to the appearance of stars: “At night
+everybody sees the stars, in daylight not even Sirius or Jupiter is
+seen. Yet the absolute difference between those places in the heavens
+where the stars are and the environing places is just as great as in the
+night&mdash;there is only an increase in illumination.” Of still greater
+importance to us is the circumstance noted but not explained by
+Bernstein. If, in daylight, we look into a basement room from outside,
+we can perceive nothing, almost; everything is dark, even the windows
+appear black. But in the evening, if the room is ever so slightly
+illuminated, and we look into it from outside, we can see even small
+articles distinctly. Yet there was much intenser light in the room in
+question during the day than the single illumination of the night could
+have provided. Hence, it is asserted, the difference in this case is a
+standard one. In open day the eye is accustomed to the dominating
+brightness of daylight, beside which the subdued illumination of the
+room seems relatively dark. But in the evening one is in the dark, and
+hence even the little light of a single candle is enough to enable one
+to see. That this explanation is untrue is shown by the fact that the
+phenomenon is not regulated even when the circumstances in question are
+made identical. If, for example, you approach the window in daylight
+with your eyes shut, lean your forehead against the pane and shut out
+the light on the sides with your hands, and then open your eyes, you see
+as little in the room as when you looked into it without performing this
+ceremony. So again, if during the night you gazed at some near-by gas
+lamp and then glanced into the room, there is only a few moments’
+indistinctness at most, after that the single candle is enough. The
+reason, then, must be different from the assigned one&mdash;but whatever it
+is, we need only to maintain that immediate judgment concerning numerous
+cases involving situations of this kind would be overhasty. It is often
+said that a witness was able to see this or that under such and such
+illumination, or that he was unable to see it, although he denies his
+ability or inability. The only solution of such contradictions is an
+experiment. The attempt must be made either by the judge or some
+reliable<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_201" id="page_201"></a>{201}</span> third person, to discover whether, under the same conditions
+of illumination, anything could be seen at the place in question or not.</p>
+
+<p>As to <i>what</i> may be seen in the distance, experiment again, is the best
+judge. The human eye is so very different in each man that even the
+acute examination into what is known of the visual image of the Pleiades
+shows that the <i>average</i> visual capacity of classic periods is no
+different from our own, but still that there was great variety in visual
+capacity. What enormous visual power is attributed to half-civilized and
+barbarous peoples, especially Indians, Esquimos, etc.! Likewise among
+our own people there are hunters, mountain guides, etc., who can see so
+clearly in the distance that mere stories about it might be fables. In
+the Bosnian campaign of 1878 we had a soldier who in numerous cases of
+our great need to know the enemy’s position in the distance could
+distinguish it with greater accuracy than we with our good
+field-glasses. He was the son of a coal-miner in the Styrian mountains,
+and rather a fool. Incidentally it may be added that he had an
+incredible, almost animal power of orientation.</p>
+
+<p>As we know little concerning far-sightedness, so also we are unable to
+define what near-sighted people can see. Inasmuch as their vision does
+not carry, they are compelled to make intellectual supplementations.
+They observe the form, action, and clothes of people more accurately
+than sharp-eyed persons, and hence recognize acquaintances at a greater
+distance than the latter. Therefore, before an assertion of a
+short-sighted man is doubted an experiment should be made, or at least
+another trustworthy short-sighted person should be asked for his
+opinion.</p>
+
+<p>The background of objects, their movement and form have decided effects
+on the difference in visual perception. It is an ancient observation
+that lengthy objects like poles, wires, etc., are visible at
+incomparably greater distances than, e.g., squares of the same length.
+In examination it has been shown that the boundary of accurate
+perception can hardly be determined. I know a place where under
+favorable illumination taut, white and very thin telephone wires may be
+seen at a distance of more than a kilometer. And this demands a very
+small angle of vision.</p>
+
+<p>Humboldt calls attention to the large number of “optical fables.” He
+assures us that it is certainly untrue that the stars may be seen in
+daylight from a deep well, from mines, or high mountains, although this
+has been repeatedly affirmed since Aristotle.</p>
+
+<p>The explanation of our power to see very thin, long objects at<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_202" id="page_202"></a>{202}</span> a very
+great distance, is not our affair, but is of importance because it
+serves to explain a number of similar phenomena spoken of by witnesses.
+We have either incorrectly to deny things we do not understand, or we
+have to accept a good deal that is deniable. We will start, therefore,
+with the well-known fact that a point seen for a considerable time may
+easily disappear from perception. This has been studied by Helmholtz and
+others, and he has shown how difficult it is to keep a point within the
+field of vision for only ten or twenty minutes. Aubert examines older
+studies of the matter and concludes that this disappearance or confusion
+of an object is peripheral, but that fixation of a small object is
+always difficult. If we fix a distant point it is disappearing at every
+instant so that an accurate perception is not possible; if however we
+fix upon a long, thin body, e.g., a wire, it is unnecessary to fix a
+single point and we may see the object with a wandering eye, hence more
+clearly.</p>
+
+<p>Helmholtz adds that weakly objective images disappear like a wet spot on
+warm tin, at the moment a single point is fixed, as does e.g., a
+landscape seen at night. This last acute observation is the basis of
+many a testimony concerning the sudden disappearance of an object at
+night. It has helped me in many an examination, and always to advantage.</p>
+
+<p>In this connection the over-estimation of the moon’s illuminating power
+is not to be forgotten. According to Helmholtz the power of the full
+moon is not more than that of a candle twelve feet away. And how much
+people claim to have seen by moonlight! Dr. Vincent<a name="FNanchor_178_178" id="FNanchor_178_178"></a><a href="#Footnote_178_178" class="fnanchor">[178]</a> says that a man
+may be recognized during the first quarter at from two to six meters, at
+full moon at from seven to ten meters, and at the brightest full moon,
+an intimate may be recognized at from fifteen to sixteen meters. This is
+approximately correct and indicates how much moonlight is
+over-estimated.</p>
+
+<p>In addition to the natural differences of sight there are also those
+artificially created. How much we may help ourselves by skilful
+distinctions, we can recognize in the well-known and
+frequently-mentioned business of reading a confused handwriting. We aim
+to weaken our sense-perception in favor of our imagination, i.e. so to
+reduce the clearness of the former as to be able to test upon it in some
+degree a larger number of images. We hold the MS. away from us, look at
+it askant, with contracted eyebrows, in different lights, and finally we
+read it. Again, the converse occurs. If we have seen something with a
+magnifying glass we later recognize<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_203" id="page_203"></a>{203}</span> details without its help. Definite
+conditions may bring to light very great distinctions. A body close to
+the face or in the middle distance looks different according as one eye
+or both be used in examining it. This is an old story and explains the
+queer descriptions we receive of such objects as weapons and the like,
+which were suddenly held before the face of the deponent. In cases of
+murderous assault it is certain that most uncanny stories are told,
+later explained by fear or total confusion or intentional dishonesty,
+but really to be explained by nothing more than actual optical
+processes.</p>
+
+<p>I do not believe that binocular vision is of much importance in the law;
+I know of no case in ordinary vision where it matters whether one or
+both eyes have been used. It is correct to assert that one side or the
+other of a vertically held hand will be clearer if, before looking at it
+with both eyes, you look at it with one or the other, but this makes
+little difference to our purpose. It must be maintained that a part of
+what we see is seen with one eye only,&mdash;if, e.g., I look at the sky and
+cover one eye with my hand, a certain portion of the heaven disappears,
+but I observe no alteration in the remaining portion. When I cover the
+other eye, other stars disappear. Therefore, in binocular vision certain
+things are seen with one eye only. This may be of importance when an
+effect has been observed first with both eyes, then with one; raising
+the question of the difference in observation&mdash;but such a question is
+rare.</p>
+
+<p>There are two additional things to consider. The first is the problem of
+the influence of custom on increasing visual power in darkness. This
+power is as a rule undervalued. No animal, naturally, can see anything
+in complete darkness. But it is almost unbelievable how much can be seen
+with a very little light. Here again, prisoners tell numerous stories
+concerning their vision in subterranean prisons. One saw so well as to
+be able to throw seven needles about the cell and then to find them
+again. Another, the naturalist Quatremére-Disjonval, was able so
+accurately to observe the spiders in his cell as to make the observation
+the basis for his famous “Aranéologie.” Aubert tells of his having had
+to stay in a room so dark as to make it necessary for others to feel
+their way, but nevertheless being able to read books without detection
+because the others could not see the books.</p>
+
+<p>How quickly we get used to darkness and how much more we see after a
+while, is well known. It is also certain that the longer you are in
+darkness the more you see. You see more at the end of a day than after a
+few hours, and at the end of a year, still more. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_204" id="page_204"></a>{204}</span> eye, perhaps,
+changes in some degree for just this purpose. But a prolonged use of the
+visual mechanism tends to hypertrophy&mdash;or atrophy, as the eyes of
+deep-sea fishes show. It is well, in any event, to be careful about
+contradicting the testimonies of patients who have long lived in the
+dark, concerning what they have seen. The power to see in the dark is so
+various that without examination, much injustice may be done. Some
+people see almost nothing at twilight, others see at night as well as
+cats. And in court these differences must be established and
+experimentally verified.</p>
+
+<p>The second important element is the innervation of the muscles in
+consequence of movement merely seen. So Stricker points out, that the
+sight of a man carrying a heavy load made him feel tension in the
+muscles involved, and again, when he saw soldiers exercising, he almost
+was compelled openly to act as they. In every case the muscular
+innervation followed the visual stimulus.</p>
+
+<p>This may sound improbable but, nevertheless, everybody to some degree
+does the identical things. And at law the fact may be of importance in
+cases of assault and battery. Since I learned it, I have repeatedly
+observed in such cases, from harmless assault to murder, that people,
+although they had not been seen to deal any blows, were often accused of
+complicity simply because they were making suspicious movements that led
+to the following inference: “They stuck their hands into their trousers
+pocket looking for a knife, clenched their fists, looked as if they were
+about to jump, swung their hands.” In many such cases it appeared that
+the suspects were harmless spectators who were simply more obvious in
+their innervation of the muscles involved in the assault they were
+eagerly witnessing. This fact should be well kept in mind; it may
+relieve many an innocent.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 38. (2) <i>Color Vision.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Concerning color vision only a few facts will be mentioned: 1. It will
+be worth while, first of all, to consider whether color exists. Liebmann
+holds that if all the people were blind to red, red would not exist;
+red, i.e., is some cervical phantasy. So are light, sound, warmth,
+taste, etc. With other senses we have another world. According to
+Helmholtz, it is senseless to ask whether cinnabar is red as we see it
+or is only so as an optical illusion. “The sensation of red is the
+normal reaction of normally constructed eyes to light reflected from
+cinnabar. A person blind to red, will see cinnabar as black, or a dark
+grayish yellow, and this is the correct reaction<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_205" id="page_205"></a>{205}</span> for these abnormal
+eyes. But he needs to know that his eyes are different from those of
+other people. In itself the sensation is neither more correct nor less
+correct than any other even though those who can see red are in the
+great majority. The red color of cinnabar exists as such only in so far
+as there are eyes which are similar to those of the majority of mankind.
+As such light reflected from cinnabar may not properly be called red; it
+is red only for especial kinds of eyes.” This is so unconditionally
+incorrect that an impartial judge of photography says<a name="FNanchor_179_179" id="FNanchor_179_179"></a><a href="#Footnote_179_179" class="fnanchor">[179]</a> that
+everything that normal eyes call violet and blue, is very bright, and
+everything they call green and red is very dark. The red-blind person
+will see as equal certain natural reds, greens and gray-yellows, both in
+intensity and shadow. But on the photograph he will be able to
+distinguish the differences in brightness caused by these three
+otherwise identical colors. We may, therefore, assume that colors
+possess <i>objective</i> differences, and that these objective differences
+are perceived even by persons of normal vision. But whether I am able to
+sense the same effect in red that another senses, and whether I should
+not call red blue, if I had the color-vision of another, is as
+impossible to discover as it is useless. When the question of color is
+raised, therefore, we will try to discover only whether the person in
+question has normal color-vision, or what the nature and degree of his
+abnormality may be.</p>
+
+<p>2. It is not unimportant to know whether single tints are recognizable
+in the distance. There have been several examinations of this fact.
+Aubert<a name="FNanchor_180_180" id="FNanchor_180_180"></a><a href="#Footnote_180_180" class="fnanchor">[180]</a> constructed double squares of ten millimeters and determined
+the angle of vision at which the color as such could be seen. His
+results were:</p>
+
+<table border="1" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="">
+<tr><td align="center"><small>COLOR OF THE<br />
+SQUARE</small></td>
+<td align="center"><small>WHITE<br />
+BACKGROUND</small></td>
+<td align="center"><small>BLACK</small></td></tr>
+<tr><td>White</td><td align="right"> &nbsp;</td><td align="right"> 39´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Red</td><td align="right"> 1´ 43´´</td><td align="right"> 59´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Light Green</td><td align="right"> 1´ 54´´</td><td align="right"> 1´ 49´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Dirty Red</td><td align="right"> 3´ 27´´</td><td align="right"> 1´ 23´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Blue</td><td align="right"> 5´ 43´´</td><td align="right"> 4´ 17´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Brown</td><td align="right"> 4´ 55´´</td><td align="right"> 1´ 23´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Light Blue</td><td align="right"> 2´ 17´´</td><td align="right"> 1´ 23´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Orange</td><td align="right"> 1´&nbsp;&nbsp; 8´´</td><td align="right"> 0´ 39´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Gray</td><td align="right"> 4´ 17´´</td><td align="right"> 1´ 23´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Rose</td><td align="right"> 2´ 18´´</td><td align="right"> 3´ 49´´</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Yellow</td><td align="right"> 3´ 27´´</td><td align="right"> 0´ 39´´</td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_206" id="page_206"></a>{206}</span></p>
+
+<p>It is interesting to notice that the angle for blue on a white
+background is almost nine times that for white, orange, or yellow on a
+black background. In cases where colors are of importance, therefore, it
+will be necessary to discover the color and the nature of its background
+before the accuracy of the witness can be established.</p>
+
+<p>3. It is well known that in the diminution of brightnesses red
+disappears before blue, and that at night, when all colors have
+disappeared, the blue of heaven is still visible. So if anybody asserts
+that he has been able to see the blue of a man’s coat but not his
+red-brown trousers, his statement is possibly true, while the converse
+would be untrue. But there are no reliable or consonant accounts of the
+order in which colors disappear in increasing darkness. The knowledge of
+this order would help a great deal in the administration of criminal
+justice.</p>
+
+<p>4. The retina will not see red at the periphery, because there are no
+red rods there. A stick of red sealing wax drawn across the eye from
+right to left, appears at the periphery of the visual field to be black.
+If, then, a witness has not looked right at a definitely red object, and
+has seen it askance, he has certainly not observed its color. The
+experiment may be made by anybody.</p>
+
+<p>5. According to Quantz<a name="FNanchor_181_181" id="FNanchor_181_181"></a><a href="#Footnote_181_181" class="fnanchor">[181]</a> objects in less refractable colors (red,
+orange, yellow, and purple) look 0.2 to 3.6% bigger against white, while
+blue, blue-green, and violet objects appear from 0.2 to 2.2% smaller.
+Dark and long-lined objects seem longer; bright and horizontal seem
+wider. And these facts are significant when witnesses judge of size.</p>
+
+<p>6. If colors are observed through small openings, especially through
+very small holes, the nuances become essentially different and green may
+even seem colorless.</p>
+
+<p>7. According to Aubert, sparkle consists of the fact that one point in a
+body is very bright while the brightness diminishes almost absolutely
+from that point; e.g., a glancing wire has a very narrow bright line
+with deep shadows on each side; a ball of mercury in a thermometer, a
+shining point and then deep shadow. When we see this we say it sparkles
+because we unite it with a number of similar observations. It is
+therefore conceivable that at a great distance, under conditions of
+sharp or accidental illuminations, etc., we are likely to see things as
+sparkling which do not do so in the least. With the concept “sparkling,”
+moreover, we tend to unite,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_207" id="page_207"></a>{207}</span> at least under certain circumstances,
+definite images, and hence “glancing weapons” are often seen in places
+where there were only quite harmless dull objects. So also coins are
+seen to sparkle where really there are none.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 39. (3) <i>The Blind Spot.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Everybody knows what the blind spot is, and every psychology and
+physiology text-book talks about it. But as a rule it is identified only
+with the little point and the tiny cross pictured in the text-books, and
+it is supposed that it does not much matter if the little cross, under
+certain circumstances, can not be seen. But it must not be forgotten
+that the size of the blind spot increases with the distance so that at a
+fairly great distance, possibly half the length of a room, the blind
+spot becomes so great that a man’s head may disappear from the field of
+vision. According to Helmholtz: “The effect of the blind spot is very
+significant. If we make a little cross on a piece of paper and then a
+spot the size of a pea two inches to the right, and if we look at the
+cross with the left eye closed, the spot disappears. The size of the
+blind spot is large enough to cover in the heavens a plate which has
+twelve times the diameter of the moon. It may cover a human face at a
+distance of 6´, but we do not observe this because we generally fill out
+the void. If we see a line in the place in question, we see it unbroken,
+because we know it to be so, and therefore supply the missing part.”</p>
+
+<p>A number of experiments have been made with more or less success to
+explain the blind spot. It is enough for us to agree that we see
+habitually with both eyes and that the “spot as big as a pea” disappears
+only when we look at the cross. But when we fix our eyes on anything we
+pay attention to that only and to nothing else. And it is indifferent to
+us if an uninteresting object disappears, so that the moment we begin to
+care about the “spot as large as a pea,” it is immediately to hand and
+needs no imaginative completion. If it be objected that fixing with the
+eyes and being interested are not identical, we reply that a distinction
+is made only in experiment. You fix one point and are interested in the
+other because you expect it to disappear. And this experiment, as
+anybody will immediately recognize, has its peculiar difficulty, because
+it requires much concentration not to look at the point which interests
+us. This never happens in the daily life, and it will not be easy to fix
+a point which is not interesting.</p>
+
+<p>At the same time there are conceivable cases in which objects<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_208" id="page_208"></a>{208}</span> seen
+askance may be of importance, and where the visual fixation of a single
+point will not reveal every reflection that fell on the blind spot. I
+have not met with a practical case in which some fact or testimony could
+be explained only by the blind spot, but such cases are conceivable.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 40. (c) The Sense of Hearing.</h5>
+
+<p>We have two problems with regard to sound&mdash;whether the witnesses have
+heard correctly, and whether we hear them correctly. Between both
+witnesses and ourselves there are again other factors. Correct
+comprehension, faithful memory, the activity of the imagination, the
+variety of influences, the degree of personal integrity; but most
+important is the consideration, whether the witness has heard correctly.
+As a general thing we must deny in most cases completely accurate
+reproduction of what witnesses have heard. In this connection dealing
+with questions of honor is instructive. If the question is the recall of
+slander the terms of it will be as various as the number of witnesses.
+We discover that the sense, the tendency of slander is not easily
+mistaken. At least if it is, I have not observed it. The witness, e.g.,
+will confuse the words “scamp,” “cheat,” “swindler,” etc., and again the
+words: “ox,” “donkey,” “numbskull,” etc. But he will not say that he has
+heard “scamp” where what was said was “donkey.” He simply has observed
+that A has insulted B with an epithet of moral turpitude or of stupidity
+and under examination he inserts an appropriate term. Often people hear
+only according to meanings and hence the difficulty of getting them to
+reproduce verbally and directly something said by a third person. They
+always engage upon indirect narration because they have heard only the
+meaning, not the words. Memory has nothing to do with this matter, for
+when in examination, a witness is requested to reproduce directly what
+he has just heard, he will reproduce no more than the sense, not the
+words. Not to do so requires an unusual degree of intelligence and
+training.</p>
+
+<p>Now if the witnesses only reproduced the actual meaning of what they
+heard, no harm would be done, but they tell us only what they <i>suppose</i>
+to be the meaning, and hence we get a good many mistakes. It does seem
+as if uneducated and half-educated people are able to shut their ears to
+all things they do not understand. Even purely sensory perception is
+organized according to intelligent capacity.</p>
+
+<p>If this is kept in mind it will be possible correctly to interpret
+testimonies in those difficult instances in which one man narrates<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_209" id="page_209"></a>{209}</span> what
+he has heard from another concerning his own statement, and where it
+might be quite impossible to judge the nature and culture of this third
+person. There are a few other conditions to consider besides.</p>
+
+<p>If we have to discover a person’s hearing power or his hearing power
+under definite conditions, it is best never to depend, in even slightly
+important cases, on vocal tests merely. The examination must be made by
+experts, and if the case is really subtle it must be made under the same
+circumstances of place and condition, and with the same people as in the
+original situation. Otherwise nothing certain can be learned.</p>
+
+<p>The determination of auditory power is, however, insufficient, for this
+power varies with the degree any individual can distinguish a single
+definite tone among many, hear it alone, and retain it. And this varies
+not only with the individual but also with the time, the place, the
+voice, etc. In my bed-room, e.g., and in three neighboring rooms I have
+wall-clocks each of which is running. The doors of the room are open
+right and left. At night when everything is quiet, I can sometimes hear
+the ticking of each one of these clocks; immediately isolate one
+completely and listen to that so that the ticking of the other three
+completely disappears. Then again I may kindly command myself not to
+hear this ticking, but to hear one of the other three, and I do so,
+though I fail to hear two clocks together at just the same instant. On
+another day under similar circumstances I completely fail in this
+attempt. Either I hear none of the clocks in particular, or only for a
+short time, which results in the ticking’s being again lost in the
+general noise; or I do hear the ticking of one clock, but never of that
+which I have chosen to hear.</p>
+
+<p>This incident is variously explicable and the experiment may be repeated
+with various persons. It indicates that auditory capacity is exceedingly
+differentiated and that there is no justification for aprioristic doubt
+of especial powers. It is, however, admittedly difficult to say how
+experiments can be made under control.</p>
+
+<p>There are still a few more marvels. It is repeatedly asserted, e.g., by
+Tyndall, that a comparatively large number of people do not hear high
+tones like the chirping of crickets, although the normal hearing of such
+people is acute. Others again easily sense deep tones but distinguish
+them with difficulty because they retain only a roll or roar, but do not
+hear the individual tones.<a name="FNanchor_182_182" id="FNanchor_182_182"></a><a href="#Footnote_182_182" class="fnanchor">[182]</a> And generally,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_210" id="page_210"></a>{210}</span> almost all people have
+difficulty in making a correct valuation of the direction of sound.
+Wundt says that we locate powerful sounds in front of us and are
+generally better able to judge right and left than before and
+behind.<a name="FNanchor_183_183" id="FNanchor_183_183"></a><a href="#Footnote_183_183" class="fnanchor">[183]</a> These data, which are for us quite important, have been
+subjected to many tests. Wundt’s statement has been confirmed by various
+experiments which have shown that sound to the right and the left are
+best distinguished, and sounds in front and below, in front to the right
+and to the left, and below, to the right and to the left, are least
+easily distinguished. Among the experimenters were Preyer, Arnheim,
+Kries, Münsterberg.</p>
+
+<p>All these experiments indicate certain constant tendencies to definite
+mistakes. Sounds in front are often mistaken for sounds behind and felt
+to be higher than their natural head-level. Again, it is generally
+asserted that binaural hearing is of great importance for the
+recognition of the direction of sound. With one ear this recognition is
+much more difficult. This may be verified by the fact that we turn our
+heads here and there as though to compare directions whenever we want to
+make sure of the direction of sound. In this regard, too, a number of
+effective experiments have been made.</p>
+
+<p>When it is necessary to determine whether the witness deposes correctly
+concerning the direction of sound, it is best to get the official
+physician to find out whether he hears with both ears, and whether he
+hears equally well with both. It is observed that persons who hear
+excellently with both ears are unfortunate in judging the direction of
+sound. Others again are very skilful in this matter, and may possibly
+get their skill from practice, sense of locality, etc. But in any case,
+certainty can be obtained only by experimentation.</p>
+
+<p>With regard to the conduction of sound&mdash;it is to be noted that sound is
+carried astonishingly far by means of compact bodies. The distance at
+which the trotting of horses, the thunder of cannons, etc., may be heard
+by laying the ear close to the ground is a common-place in fiction.
+Therefore, if a witness testifies to have heard something at a great
+distance in this way, or by having laid his ear to the wall, it is well
+not to set the evidence aside. Although it will be difficult in such
+cases to make determinative experiments, it is useful to do so because
+the limits of his capacity are then approximated.</p>
+
+<p>Under certain circumstances it may be of importance to know what can be
+heard when the head, or at least the ear, is under water. The experiment
+may be made in the bath-room, by setting the back of the head under
+water so that the ears are completely covered<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_211" id="page_211"></a>{211}</span> but the mouth and the
+eyes are free. The mouth must be kept closed so that there shall be no
+intrusion of sound through the Eustachian tube. In this condition
+practically no sound can be heard which must <i>first pass through the
+air</i>. If, therefore, anybody even immediately next to you, speaks ever
+so loud, you can hear only a minimum of what he says. On the other hand,
+noises that are conducted by compact bodies, i.e. the walls, the bath,
+and the water, can be heard with astonishing distinctness, especially if
+the bath is not detachable but is built into the wall. Then if some
+remote part of the building, e.g. some wall, is knocked, the noise is
+heard perfectly well, although somebody standing near the bath hears
+nothing whatever. This may be of importance in cases of accident, in
+certain attempts at drowning people, and in accidental eaves-dropping.</p>
+
+<p>There are several things to note with regard to deaf persons, or such as
+have difficulty with their hearing. According to Fechner, deafness
+begins with the inability to hear high tones and ends with the inability
+to hear deep ones, so that it often happens that complainants are not
+believed because they still hear deep tones. Again, there are mistakes
+which rise from the fact that the deaf often learn a great deal from the
+movements of the lips, and the reading of these movements has become the
+basis of the so-called “audition” of deaf mutes. There are stories of
+deaf mutes who have perceived more in this way, and by means of their
+necessary and well-practised synthesis of impressions, than persons with
+good hearing power.</p>
+
+<p>The differences that age makes in hearing are of importance. Bezold has
+examined a large number of human ears of different ages and indicates
+that after the fiftieth year there is not only a successive decrease in
+the number of the approximately normal-hearing, but there is a
+successively growing increase in the degree of auditory limitation which
+the ear experiences with increasing age. The results are more surprising
+than is supposed.</p>
+
+<p>Not one of 100 people over fifty years of age could understand
+conversational speech at a distance of sixteen meters; 10.5% understood
+it at a distance of eight to sixteen meters. Of school children 46.5%
+(1918 of them) from seven to eighteen understood it at a distance of 20
+meters plus, and 32.7% at a distance of from 16 to 8 meters. The
+percentage then is 10.5 for people over fifty as against 79.2 of people
+over seven and under 18. Old women can hear better than old men. At a
+distance of 4 to 16 meters the proportion of women to men who could hear
+was 34 to 17. The converse is<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_212" id="page_212"></a>{212}</span> true of children, for at a distance of 20
+meters and more the percentage of boys was 49.9 and girls 48.2. The
+reason for this inversion of the relation lies in the harmful influences
+of manual labor and other noisy occupations of men. These comparisons
+may be of importance when the question is raised as to how much more a
+witness may have heard than one of a different age.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 41. (d) The Sense of Taste.</h5>
+
+<p>The sense of taste is rarely of legal importance, but when it does come
+into importance it is regularly very significant because it involves, in
+the main, problems of poisoning. The explanation of such cases is rarely
+easy and certain&mdash;first of all, because we can not, without difficulty,
+get into a position of testing the delicacy and acuteness of any
+individual sense of taste, where such testing is quite simple with
+regard to seeing and hearing. At the same time, it is necessary when
+tests are made, to depend upon general, and rarely constant impressions,
+since very few people mean the same thing by, stinging, prickly,
+metallic, and burning tastes, even though the ordinary terms sweet,
+sour, bitter, and salty, may be accepted as approximately constant. The
+least that can be done when a taste is defined as good, bad, excellent,
+or disgusting, is to test it in every possible direction with regard to
+the age, habits, health, and intelligence of the taster, for all of
+these exercise great influence on his values. Similarly necessary are
+valuations like flat, sweetish, contractile, limey, pappy, sandy, which
+are all dictated by almost momentary variations in well-being.</p>
+
+<p>But if any denotation is to be depended upon, and in the end some one
+has to be, it is necessary to determine whether the perception has been
+made with the end or the root of the tongue.<a name="FNanchor_184_184" id="FNanchor_184_184"></a><a href="#Footnote_184_184" class="fnanchor">[184]</a> Longet, following the
+experiments of certain others, has brought together definite results in
+the following table:</p>
+
+<table border="1" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="">
+<tr><td align="center"><small>TASTE</small></td>
+<td align="center"> <small>TONGUE-TIP</small></td>
+<td align="center"> <small>TONGUE ROOT</small></td></tr>
+<tr><td>Glauber’s salts</td><td align="center"> salty</td><td align="center"> bitter</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Iodkalium</td><td align="center"> “</td><td align="center"> “</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Alum</td><td align="center"> sour</td><td align="center"> sweet</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Glycerine</td><td align="center"> none</td><td align="center"> “</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Rock candy</td><td align="center"> “</td><td align="center"> “</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Chlorate of strychnine</td><td align="center"> “</td><td align="center"> “</td></tr>
+<tr><td>Natrium carbonate</td><td align="center"> “</td><td align="center"> alkaloid</td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_213" id="page_213"></a>{213}</span></p>
+
+<p>In such cases too, particularly as diseased conditions and personal
+idiosyncrasies exercise considerable influences, it will be important to
+call in the physician. Dehn is led by his experiments to the conclusion
+that woman’s sense of taste is finer than man’s, and again that that of
+the educated man finer than that of the uneducated. In women education
+makes no difference in this regard.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 42. (e) The Sense of Smell.</h5>
+
+<p>The sense of smell would be of great importance for legal consideration
+if it could get the study it deserves. It may be said that many men have
+more acute olfactory powers than they know, and that they may learn more
+by means of them than by means of the other senses. The sense of smell
+has little especial practical importance. It only serves to supply a
+great many people with occasional disagreeable impressions, and what men
+fail to find especially necessary they do not easily make use of. The
+utility of smell would be great because it is accurate, and hence
+powerful in its associative quality. But it is rarely attended to; even
+when the associations are awakened they are not ascribed to the sense of
+smell but are said to be accidental. I offer one example only, of this
+common fact. When I was a child of less than eight years, I once visited
+with my parents a priest who was a school-mate of my father’s. The day
+spent in the parsonage contained nothing remarkable, so that all these
+years I have not even thought of it. A short time ago all the details I
+encountered on that day occurred to me very vividly, and inasmuch as
+this sudden memory seemed baseless, I studied carefully the cause of its
+occurrence, without success. A short time later I had the same
+experience and at the same place. This was a clew, and I then recalled
+that I had undertaken a voyage of discovery with the small niece of the
+parson and had been led into a fruit cellar. There I found great heaps
+of apples laid on straw, and on the wall a considerable number of the
+hunting boots of the parson. The mixed odors of apple, straw and boots
+constituted a unique and long unsmelled perfume which had sunk deep into
+my memory. And as I passed a room which contained the same elements of
+odor, all those things that were associated with that odor at the time I
+first smelt it, immediately recurred.</p>
+
+<p>Everybody experiences such associations in great number, and in
+examinations a little trouble will bring them up, especially when the
+question deals with remote events, and a witness tells about some
+“accidental” idea of his. If the accident is considered to be<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_214" id="page_214"></a>{214}</span> an
+association and studied in the light of a memory of odor, one may often
+succeed in finding the right clew and making progress.</p>
+
+<p>But accurate as the sense of smell is, it receives as a rule little
+consideration, and when some question concerning smell is put the answer
+is generally negative. Yet in no case may a matter be so easily
+determined as in this one; one may without making even the slightest
+suggestion, succeed in getting the witness to confess that he had
+smelled something. Incidentally, one may succeed in awakening such
+impressions as have not quite crossed the threshold of consciousness, or
+have been subdued and diverted. Suppose, e.g., that a witness has
+smelled fire, but inasmuch as he was otherwise engaged was not fully
+conscious of it or did not quite notice it, or explained it to himself
+as some kitchen odor or the odor of a bad cigar. Such perceptions are
+later forgotten, but with proper questioning are faithfully and
+completely brought to memory.</p>
+
+<p>Obviously much depends on whether anybody likes certain delicate odors
+or not. As a rule it may be held that a delicate sense of smell is
+frequently associated with nervousness. Again, people with broad
+nostrils and well developed foreheads, who keep their mouths closed most
+of the time, have certainly a delicate sense of smell. People of
+lymphatic nature, with veiled unclear voices, do not have a keen sense
+of smell, and still duller is that of snufflers and habitual smokers. Up
+to a certain degree, practice may do much, but too much of it dulls the
+sense of smell. Butchers, tobacconists, perfumers, not only fail to
+perceive the odors which dominate their shops; their sense of smell has
+been dulled, anyway. On the other hand, those who have to make delicate
+distinctions by means of their sense, like apothecaries, tea dealers,
+brewers, wine tasters, etc. achieve great skill. I remember that one
+time when I had in court to deal almost exclusively with gypsies, I
+could immediately smell whether any gypsies had been brought there
+during the night.</p>
+
+<p>Very nervous persons develop a delicateness and acuteness of smell which
+other persons do not even imagine. Now we have no real knowledge of how
+odors arise. That they are not the results of the radiation of very tiny
+parts is shown by the fact that certain bodies smell though they are
+known not to give off particles. Zinc, for example, and such things as
+copper, sulphur, and iron, have individual odors; the latter,
+particularly when it is kept polished by a great deal of
+friction,&mdash;e.g., in the cases of chains, key-rings kept in the pocket.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_215" id="page_215"></a>{215}</span></p>
+
+<p>In defining the impressions of smell great difficulties occur. Even
+normal individuals often have a passionate love for odors that are
+either indifferent or disgusting to others (rotten apples, wet sponges,
+cow-dung, and the odor of a horse-stable, garlic, assafoetida, very ripe
+game, etc.). The same individual finds the odor of food beautiful when
+hungry, pleasant when full-fed, and unendurable when he has migraine. It
+would be necessary to make an accurate description of these differences
+and all their accompanying circumstances. With regard to sex, the sense
+of smell, according to Lombroso,<a name="FNanchor_185_185" id="FNanchor_185_185"></a><a href="#Footnote_185_185" class="fnanchor">[185]</a> is twice as fine in men as in
+women. This is verified by Lombroso’s pupils Ottolenghi and Sicard,
+Roncoroni and Francis Galton. Experience of daily life does not confirm
+this, though many smokers among men rarely possess acute sense of smell,
+and this raises the percentage considerably in favor of women.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 43. (f) The Sense of Touch.</h5>
+
+<p>I combine, for the sake of simplicity, the senses of location, pressure,
+temperature, etc., under the general expression: sense of touch. The
+problem this sense raises is no light one because many witnesses tell of
+perceptions made in the dark or when they were otherwise unable to see,
+and because much is perceived by means of this sense in assaults,
+wounds, and other contacts. In most cases such witnesses have been
+unable to regard the touched parts of their bodies, so that we have to
+depend upon this touch-sense alone. Full certainty is possible only when
+sight and touch have worked together and rectified one another. It has
+been shown that the conception of the third dimension can not be
+obtained through the sense of sight. At the beginning we owe the
+perception of this dimension only to touch and later on to experience
+and habit. The truth of this statement is confirmed by the reports of
+persons who, born blind, have gained sight. Some were unable to
+distinguish by means of mere sight a silver pencil-holder from a large
+key. They could only tell them to be different things, and recognized
+their nature only after they had felt them. On the other hand, the
+deceptive possibilities in touch are seen in the well-known mistakes to
+which one is subjected in blind touching. At the same time practice
+leads to considerable accuracy in touch and on many occasions the sense
+is trusted more than sight&mdash;e.g., whenever we test the delicacy of an
+object with our finger-tips. The fineness of paper, leather, the
+smoothness of a surface, the presence of points,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_216" id="page_216"></a>{216}</span> are always tested with
+the fingers. So that if a witness assures us that this or that was very
+smooth, or that this surface was very raw, we must regularly ask him
+whether he had tested the quality by touching it with his fingers, and
+we are certain only if he says yes. Whoever has to depend much on the
+sense of touch increases its field of perception, as we know from the
+delicacy of the sense in blind people. The statements of the blind
+concerning their contact sensations may be believed even when they seem
+improbable; there are blind persons who may feel the very color of
+fabrics, because the various pigments and their medium give a different
+surface-quality to the cloth they color.</p>
+
+<p>In another direction, again, it is the deaf who have especial power. So,
+we are assured by Abercrombie that in his medical practice he had
+frequently observed how deaf people will perceive the roll of an
+approaching wagon, or the approach of a person, long before people with
+good hearing do so. For a long time I owned an Angora which, like all
+Angoras, was completely deaf, and her deafness had been tested by
+physicians. Nevertheless, if the animal was dozing somewhere and anybody
+came near it, she would immediately notice his steps, and would
+distinguish them, for she would jump up frightened, if the newcomer was
+unknown, and would stretch herself with pleasure in the expectation of
+petting if she felt a friend coming. She would sense the lightest touch
+on the object she occupied, bench, window-seat, sofa, etc., and she was
+especially sensitive to very light scratching of the object. Such
+sensitivity is duplicated frequently in persons who are hard of hearing,
+and whom, therefore, we are likely to doubt.</p>
+
+<p>The sense of touch is, moreover, improved not only by practice, but also
+by the training of the muscles. Stricker asserts that he has frequently
+noticed that the observational capacity of individuals who make much use
+of their muscles is greater than among persons whose habits are
+sedentary. This does not contradict the truth established by many
+experiments that the educated man is more sensitive in all directions
+than the uneducated. Again, women have a better developed sense of touch
+than men, the space-sense and the pressure-sense being equivalent in
+both sexes. On these special forms of the touch-sense injections of
+various kinds have decided influence. The injection of morphine, e.g.,
+reduces the space-sense in the skin. <i>Cannabinum tannicum</i> reduces
+sensibility and alcohol is swift and considerable in its effects.
+According to Reichenbach some sensitives are extreme in their feeling.
+The<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_217" id="page_217"></a>{217}</span> best of them notice immediately the approach and relative position
+of people, or the presence of another in a dark room. That very nervous
+people frequently feel air pressure, fine vibrations, etc., is perfectly
+true. And this and other facts show the great variety of touch
+impressions that may be distinguished. The sense of temperature has a
+comparatively high development, and more so in women than in men. At the
+lips and with the tips of the fingers, differences of two-tenths of a
+degree are perceived. But where an absolute valuation and not a
+difference is to be perceived, the mean variation, generally, is not
+much less than 4 degrees. E.g., a temperature of 19 degrees R. will be
+estimated at from 17 to 21 degrees. I believe, however, that the
+estimation of very common temperatures must be accepted as correct.
+E.g., anybody accustomed to have his room in winter 14 degrees R. will
+immediately notice, and correctly estimate, the rise or fall of one
+degree. Again, anybody who takes cold baths in summer will observe a
+change of one degree in temperature. It will, therefore, be possible to
+believe the pronouncements of witnesses concerning a narrow range of
+temperatures, but all the conditions of perception must be noted for the
+differences are extreme. It has been shown, e.g., that the whole hand
+finds water of 29 degrees R. warmer than water of 32 degrees R. which is
+merely tested with the finger. Further, Weber points out,<a name="FNanchor_186_186" id="FNanchor_186_186"></a><a href="#Footnote_186_186" class="fnanchor">[186]</a> “If we
+put two adjacent fingers into two different warm fluids the sensations
+flow together in such a way that it is difficult to distinguish
+differences. But if we use two hands in this test, it is especially
+successful when we change the hands from one fluid to another. The
+closer the points on the skin which receive contemporary impressions,
+and perhaps, the closer the portions of the brain to which these
+impressions are sent, the more easily these sensations flow together;
+while again, the further they are from one another the less frequently
+does this occur.” In the practice of criminal law such matters will
+rarely arise, but estimations of temperature are frequently required and
+their reliability must be established.</p>
+
+<p>It is important to know what a wounded man and his enemy feel in the
+first instant of the crime and in what degree their testimonies are
+reliable. First of all, we have to thank the excellent observations of
+Weber, for the knowledge that we find it very difficult to discover with
+closed eyes the angle made by a dagger thrust against the body. It is
+equally difficult to determine the direction from<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_218" id="page_218"></a>{218}</span> which a push or blow
+has come. On the other hand we can tell very accurately in what
+direction a handful of hair is pulled.</p>
+
+<p>With regard to the time it takes to feel contact and pain, it is
+asserted that a short powerful blow on a corn is felt immediately, but
+the pain of it one to two seconds later. It may be that corns have an
+especial constitution, but otherwise the time assigned before feeling
+pain is far too long. Helmholtz made 1850 measurements which proved that
+the nervous current moves 90 feet a second. If, then, you prick your
+finger, you feel it a thirtieth of a second later. The easiest
+experiments which may be made in that regard are insufficient to
+establish anything definite. We can only say that the perception of a
+peripheral pain occurs an observable period after the shock, i.e., about
+a third of a second later than its cause.</p>
+
+<p>The sensation of a stab is often identified as contact with a hot
+object, and it is further asserted that the wounded person feels close
+to the pain which accompanies the push or the cut, the cold of the blade
+and its presence in the depths of his body. So far as I have been able
+to learn from wounded people, these assertions are not confirmed.
+Setting aside individuals who exaggerate intentionally and want to make
+themselves interesting or to indicate considerable damage, all answers
+point to the fact that stabs, shots, and blows are sensed as pushes. In
+addition, the rising of the blood is felt almost immediately, but
+nothing else; pain comes much later. It is asserted by
+couleur-students<a name="FNanchor_187_187" id="FNanchor_187_187"></a><a href="#Footnote_187_187" class="fnanchor">[187]</a> who have occasion to have a considerable number of
+duels behind them, that “sitting thrusts,” even when they are made with
+the sharpest swords, are sensed only as painless, or almost painless,
+blows or pushes. Curiously enough all say that the sensation is felt as
+if caused by some very broad dull tool: a falling shingle, perhaps. But
+not one has felt the cold of the entering blade.</p>
+
+<p>Soldiers whose shot wounds were inquired into, often just a few minutes
+after their being wounded, have said unanimously that they had felt only
+a hard push.</p>
+
+<p>It is quite different with the man who causes the wound. Lotze has
+rightly called attention to the fact that in mounting a ladder with
+elastic rungs one perceives clearly the points at which the rungs are
+fastened to the sides. The points at which an elastic trellis is
+fastened is felt when it is shaken, and the resistance of the wood when
+an axe is used on it. In the same way the soldier senses clearly<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_219" id="page_219"></a>{219}</span> the
+entrance of his sword-point or blade into the body of his enemy. The
+last fact is confirmed by the students. One can clearly distinguish
+whether the sword has merely beaten through the skin or has sunk deeply
+and reached the bone. And this sensation of touch is concentrated in the
+<i>right</i> thumb, which is barely under the hilt of the sword at the point
+where the grip rests.</p>
+
+<p>The importance of the fact that the wounder feels his success lies in
+the possibility it gives him, when he wants to tell the truth, to
+indicate reliably whether and how far he has wounded his opponent. The
+importance of the testimony of the wounded man lies in its influence on
+determining, in cases where there were more than one concerned in the
+assault, which wound is to be assigned to which man. We often hear from
+the victim who really desires to tell the truth, “I was quite convinced
+that X dealt me the deep stab in the shoulder, but he has only pushed
+and not stabbed me&mdash;I did not perceive a stab.” Just the same, it was X
+who stabbed him, and if the examining judge explains the matter to the
+victim, his testimony will be yet more honest.</p>
+
+<p>There are still a few other significant facts.</p>
+
+<p>1. It is well known that the portion of the skin which covers a bone and
+which is then so pulled away that it covers a fleshy part, can not
+easily identify the point of stimulation. Such transpositions may be
+made intentionally in this experiment, but they occur frequently through
+vigorous twists of the body. When the upper part of the body is drawn
+backwards, while one is sitting down, a collection of such
+transpositions occur and it is very hard then to localize a blow or
+stab. So, too, when an arm is held backward in such a way as to turn the
+flat of the hand uppermost. It is still more difficult to locate a wound
+when one part of the body is held by another person and the skin pulled
+aside.</p>
+
+<p>2. The sensation of wetness is composed of that of cold and easy
+movement over surface. Hence, when we touch without warning a cold
+smooth piece of metal, we think that we are touching something wet. But
+the converse is true for we believe that we are touching something cold
+and smooth when it is only wet. Hence the numerous mistakes about
+bleeding after wounds. The wounded man or his companions believe that
+they have felt blood when they have only felt some smooth metal, or they
+have really felt blood and have taken it for something smooth and cold.
+Mistakes about whether there was blood or not have led to frequent
+confusion.</p>
+
+<p>3. Repetition, and hence summation, intensifies and clarifies the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_220" id="page_220"></a>{220}</span>
+sensation of touch. As a consequence, whenever we want to test anything
+by touching it we do so repeatedly, drawing the finger up and down and
+holding the object between the fingers; for the same reason we
+repeatedly feel objects with pleasant exteriors. We like to move our
+hands up and down smooth or soft furry surfaces, in order to sense them
+more clearly, or to make the sensation different because of its duration
+and continuance. Hence it is important, every time something has to be
+determined through touch, to ask whether the touch occurred once only or
+was repeated. The relation is not the same in this case as between a
+hasty glance and accurate survey, for in touching, essential differences
+may appear.</p>
+
+<p>4. It is very difficult to determine merely by touch whether a thing is
+straight or crooked, flat, convex or concave. Weber has shown that a
+glass plate drawn before the finger in such wise as to be held weakly at
+first, then more powerfully, then again more powerfully seems to be
+convex and when the reverse is done, concave. Flatness is given when the
+distance is kept constant.</p>
+
+<p>5. According to Vierordt,<a name="FNanchor_188_188" id="FNanchor_188_188"></a><a href="#Footnote_188_188" class="fnanchor">[188]</a> the motion of a point at a constant rate
+over a sizable piece of skin, e.g., the back of the hand from the wrist
+to the finger tips, gives, if not looked at, the definite impression of
+increasing rapidity. In the opposite direction, the definiteness is less
+but increases with the extent of skin covered. This indicates that
+mistakes may be made in such wounds as cuts, scratches, etc.</p>
+
+<p>6. The problem may arise of the reliability of impressions of habitual
+pressure. Weber made the earliest experiments, later verified by
+Fechner, showing that the sensation of weight differs a great deal on
+different portions of the skin. The most sensitive are the forehead, the
+temples, the eyelids, the inside of the forearm. The most insensitive
+are the lips, the trunk and the finger-nails. If piles of six silver
+dollars are laid on various parts of the body, and then removed, one at
+a time, the differences are variously felt. In order to notice a removal
+the following number must be taken away:</p>
+
+<p>
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">One dollar from the top of the finger,</span><br />
+<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">One dollar from the sole of the foot,</span><br />
+<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Two dollars from the flat of the hand,</span><br />
+<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Two dollars from the shoulder blade,</span><br />
+<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Three dollars from the heel,</span><br />
+<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Four dollars from the back of the head,</span><br />
+<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Four dollars from the breast,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_221" id="page_221"></a>{221}</span></span><br />
+<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Five dollars from the middle of the back,</span><br />
+<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Five dollars from the abdomen.</span><br />
+</p>
+
+<p>Further examinations have revealed nothing new. Successful experiments
+to determine differences between men and women, educated and uneducated,
+in the acuteness of the sense of pressure, have not been made. The facts
+they involve may be of use in cases of assault, choking, etc.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic 2. PERCEPTION AND CONCEPTION.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 44.</h5>
+
+<p>What lawyers have to consider in the transition from purely sensory
+impressions to intellectual conceptions of these impressions, is the
+possibility of later reproducing any observed object or event. Many
+so-called scientific distinctions have, under the impulse of scientific
+psychology, lost their status. Modern psychology does not see
+sharply-drawn boundaries between perception and memory, and suggests
+that the proper solution of the problem of perception is the solution of
+the problem of knowledge.<a name="FNanchor_189_189" id="FNanchor_189_189"></a><a href="#Footnote_189_189" class="fnanchor">[189]</a></p>
+
+<p>With regard to the relation of consciousness to perception we will make
+the distinctions made by Fischer.<a name="FNanchor_190_190" id="FNanchor_190_190"></a><a href="#Footnote_190_190" class="fnanchor">[190]</a> There are two spheres or regions
+of consciousness: the region of sensation, and of external perception.
+The former involves the inner structure of the organism, the latter
+passes from the organism into the objective world. Consciousness has a
+sphere of action in which it deals with the external world by means of
+the motor nerves and muscles, and a sphere of perception which is the
+business of the senses.</p>
+
+<p>External perception involves three principal functions: apprehension,
+differentiation, and combination. Perception in the narrower sense of
+the term is the simple sensory conscious apprehension of some present
+object stimulating our eyes. We discover by means of it what the object
+is, its relation to ourselves and other things, its distance from us,
+its name, etc.</p>
+
+<p>What succeeds this apprehension is the most important thing for us
+lawyers, i.e. <i>recognition</i>. Recognition indicates only that an object
+has sufficiently impressed a mind to keep it known and identifiable. It
+is indifferent what the nature of the recognized object is. According to
+Hume the object may be an enduring thing (“non-interrupted<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_222" id="page_222"></a>{222}</span> and
+non-dependent on mind”), or it may be identical with perception itself.
+In the latter case the perception is considered as a logical judgment
+like the judgment: “It is raining,” or the feeling that “it is raining,”
+and there recognition is only the recognition of a perception. Now
+judgments of this sort are what we get from witnesses, and what we have
+to examine and evaluate. This must be done from two points of view.
+First, from the point of view of the observer and collector of instances
+who is seeking to discover the principle which governs them. If this is
+not done the deductions that we make are at least unreliable, and in
+most cases, false. As Mach says, “If once observation has determined all
+the facts of any natural science, a new period begins for that science,
+the period of deduction.” But how often do we lawyers distinguish these
+two periods in our own work.<a name="FNanchor_191_191" id="FNanchor_191_191"></a><a href="#Footnote_191_191" class="fnanchor">[191]</a></p>
+
+<p>The second point of importance is the presence of mistakes in the
+observations. The essential mistakes are classified by Schiel under two
+headings. Mistakes in observation are positive or negative, wrong
+observation or oversight. The latter occurs largely through preconceived
+opinions. The opponents of Copernicus concluded that the earth did not
+move because otherwise a stone dropped from the top of a tower would
+reach the ground a little to the west. If the adherents of Copernicus
+had made the experiment they would have discovered that the stone does
+fall as the theory requires. Similar oversights occur in the lawyer’s
+work hundreds of times. We are impressed with exceptions that are made
+by others or by ourselves, and give up some already tried approach
+without actually testing the truth of the exception which challenges it.
+I have frequently, while at work, thought of the story of some one of
+the Georges, who did not like scholars and set the following problem to
+a number of philosophers and physicists: “When I put a ten pound stone
+into a hundred pound barrel of water the whole weighs a hundred and ten
+pounds, but when I put a live fish of ten pounds into the barrel the
+whole still weighs only a hundred pounds?” Each one of the scholars had
+his own convincing explanation, until finally the king asked one of the
+foot-men, who said that he would like to see the experiment tried before
+he made up his mind. I remember a case in which a peasant was accused of
+having committed arson for the sake of the insurance. He asserted that
+he had gone into a room with a candle and that a long spider’s web which
+was hanging down<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_223" id="page_223"></a>{223}</span> had caught fire from it accidentally and had inflamed
+the straw which hung from the roof. So the catastrophe had occurred.
+Only in the second examination did it occur to anybody to ask whether
+spider’s web can burn at all, and the first experiment showed that that
+was impossible.</p>
+
+<p>Most experiences of this kind indicate that in recognizing events we
+must proceed slowly, without leaping, and that we may construct our
+notions only on the basis of knowledge we already possess. Saint Thomas
+says, “Omnes cognitio fit secundum similitudinem cogniti in
+cognoscente.” If this bit of wisdom were kept in mind in the examination
+of witnesses it would be an easier and simpler task than usual. Only
+when the unknown is connected with the known is it possible to
+understand the former. If it is not done the witness will hardly be able
+to answer. He nowhere finds support, or he seeks one of his own, and
+naturally finds the wrong one. So the information that an ordinary
+traveler brings home is mainly identical with what he carries away, for
+he has ears and eyes only for what he expects to see. For how long a
+time did the negro believe that disease pales the coral that he wears?
+Yet if he had only watched it he would have seen how foolish the notion
+was. How long, since Adam Smith, did people believe that extravagance
+helps industry, and how much longer have people called Copernicus a fool
+because they actually saw the sun rise and set. So J. S. Mill puts his
+opinions on this matter. Benneke<a name="FNanchor_192_192" id="FNanchor_192_192"></a><a href="#Footnote_192_192" class="fnanchor">[192]</a> adds, “If anybody describes to me
+an animal, a region, a work of art, or narrates an event, etc., I get no
+notion through the words I hear of the appearance of the subject. I
+merely have a problem set me by means of the words and signs, in the
+conception of the subject, and hence it depends for truth mainly upon
+the completeness of earlier conceptions of similar things or events, and
+upon the material I have imaginatively at hand. These are my perceptual
+capital and my power of representation.”</p>
+
+<p>It naturally is not necessary to ask whether a narrator has ever seen
+the things he speaks of, nor to convince oneself in examination that the
+person in question knows accurately what he is talking about. At the
+same time, the examiner ought to be clear on the matter and know what
+attitude to take if he is going to deal intelligibly with the other. I
+might say that all of us, educated and uneducated, have apprehended and
+remember definite and distinct images of all things we have seen, heard,
+or learned from descriptions.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_224" id="page_224"></a>{224}</span> When we get new information we simply
+attach the new image to the old, or extinguish a part of the old and put
+the new in its place, or we retain only a more or less vigorous breath
+of the old with the new. Such images go far back; even animals possess
+them. One day my small son came with his exciting information that his
+guinea pig, well known as a stupid beast, could count. He tried to prove
+this by removing the six young from their mother and hiding them so that
+she could not see what happened to them. Then he took one of the six,
+hid it, and brought the remaining five back to the old lady. She smelled
+them one after the other and then showed a good deal of excitement, as
+if she missed something. Then she was again removed and the sixth pig
+brought back; when she was restored to her brood, she sniffed all six
+and showed a great deal of satisfaction. “She could count at least six.”
+Naturally the beast had only a fixed collective image of her brood, and
+as one was missing the image was disturbed and incorrect. At the same
+time, the image was such as is created by the combination of events or
+circumstances. It is not far from the images of low-browed humanity and
+differs only in degree from those of civilized people.</p>
+
+<p>The fact that a good deal of what is said is incorrect and yet not
+consciously untrue, depends upon the existence of these images and their
+association with the new material. The speaker and the auditor have
+different sets of images; the first relates the new material differently
+from a second, and so of course they can not agree.<a name="FNanchor_193_193" id="FNanchor_193_193"></a><a href="#Footnote_193_193" class="fnanchor">[193]</a> It is the
+difficult task of the examiner so to adapt what is said as to make it
+appropriate to the right images without making it possible for incorrect
+interpretations to enter. When we have a well-known money-lender as
+witness concerning some unspeakable deal, a street-walker concerning
+some brawling in a peasant saloon, a clubman concerning a duel, a
+game-warden concerning poaching, the set of images of each one of these
+persons will be a bad foundation for new perceptions. On the other hand,
+it will not be difficult to abstract from them correctly. But cases of
+this sort are not of constant occurrence and the great trouble consists
+in once for all discovering what memory-images were present before the
+witness perceived the event in question. The former have a great
+influence upon the perception of the latter.</p>
+
+<p>In this connection it should not be forgotten that the retention of
+these images is somewhat pedantic and depends upon unimportant things.
+In the city hall of Graz there is a secretary with thirty-six<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_225" id="page_225"></a>{225}</span> sections
+for the thirty-six different papers. The name of the appropriate journal
+was written clearly over each section and in spite of the clearness of
+the script the depositing and removing of the papers required certain
+effort, inasmuch as the script had to be read and could not be
+apprehended. Later the name of the paper was cut out of each and pasted
+on the secretary instead of the script, and then, in spite of the
+various curly and twisted letters, the habitual images of the titles
+were easily apprehended and their removal and return became mechanical.
+The customary and identical things are so habitual that they are
+apprehended with greater ease than more distinct objects.</p>
+
+<p>Inasmuch as we can conceive only on the basis of the constancy and
+similarity of forms, we make these forms the essence of experience. On
+the other hand, what is constant and similar for one individual is not
+so for another, and essences of experience vary with the experiencer.</p>
+
+<p>“When we behold a die of which we can see three sides at a time, seven
+corners, and nine edges, we immediately induce the image or schema of a
+die, and we make our further sense-perception accord with this schema.
+In this way we get a series of schemas which we may substitute for one
+another” (Aubert). For the same reason we associate in description
+things unknown to the auditor, which we presuppose in him, and hence we
+can make him rightly understand only if we have named some appropriate
+object in comparison. Conversely, we have to remember that everybody
+takes his comparison from his own experience, so that we must have had a
+like experience if we are to know what is compared. It is disastrous to
+neglect the private nature of this experience. Whoever has much to do
+with peasants, who like to make use of powerful comparisons, must first
+comprehend their essential life, if he is to understand how to reduce
+their comparisons to correct meanings. And if he has done so he will
+find such comparisons and images the most distinct and the most
+intelligible.</p>
+
+<p>Sense-perception has a great deal to do in apprehension and no one can
+determine the boundary where the sense activity ends and the
+intellectual begins. I do not recall who has made note of the
+interesting fact that not one of twenty students in an Egyptian museum
+knew why the hands of the figures of Egyptian wall pictures gave the
+impression of being incorrect&mdash;nobody had observed the fact that all the
+figures had two right hands.</p>
+
+<p>I once paid a great deal of attention to card-sharping tricks and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_226" id="page_226"></a>{226}</span> as I
+acquired them, either of myself or from practised gamblers, I
+demonstrated them to the young criminalists. For a long time I refused
+to believe what an old Greek told me: “The more foolish and obvious a
+trick is, the more certain it is; people never see anything.” The man
+was right. When I told my pupils expressly, “Now I am cheating,” I was
+able to make with safety a false coup, a false deal, etc. Nobody saw it.
+If only one has half a notion of directing the eyes to some other thing,
+a card may be laid on the lap, thrust into the sleeve, taken from the
+pocket, and God knows what else. Now who can say in such a case whether
+the sensory glance or the intellectual apprehension was unskilful or
+unpractised? According to some authorities the chief source of error is
+the senses, but whether something must not be attributed to that
+mysterious, inexplicable moment in which sensory perception becomes
+intellectual perception, nobody can say.</p>
+
+<p>My favorite demonstration of how surprisingly little people perceive is
+quite simple. I set a tray with a bottle of water and several glasses on
+the table, call express attention to what is about to occur, and pour a
+little water from the bottle into the glass. Then the stuff is taken
+away and the astonishing question asked what have I done? All the
+spectators reply immediately: you have poured water into a glass. Then I
+ask further with what hand did I do it? How many glasses were there?
+Where was the glass into which I poured the water? How much did I pour?
+How much water was there in the glass? Did I really pour or just pretend
+to? How full was the bottle? Was it certainly water and not, perhaps,
+wine? Was it not red wine? What did I do with my hand after pouring the
+water? How did I look when I did it? Did you not really see that I shut
+my eyes? Did you not really see that I stuck my tongue out? Was I
+pouring the water while I did it? Or before, or after? Did I wear a ring
+on my hand? Was my cuff visible? What was the position of my fingers
+while I held the glass? These questions may be multiplied. And it is as
+astonishing as amusing to see how little correctness there is in the
+answers, and how people quarrel about the answers, and what
+extraordinary things they say. Yet what do we require of witnesses who
+have to describe much more complicated matters to which their attention
+had not been previously called, and who have to make their answers, not
+immediately, but much later; and who, moreover, may, in the presence of
+the fact, have been overcome by fear, astonishment, terror, etc.! I find
+that probing even comparatively trained witnesses<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_227" id="page_227"></a>{227}</span> is rather too funny,
+and the conclusions drawn from what is so learned are rather too
+conscienceless.<a name="FNanchor_194_194" id="FNanchor_194_194"></a><a href="#Footnote_194_194" class="fnanchor">[194]</a> Such introductions as: “But you will know,”&mdash;“Just
+recall this one,”&mdash;“You wouldn’t be so stupid as not to have observed
+whether,”&mdash;“But my dear woman, you have eyes,”&mdash;and whatever else may be
+offered in this kindly fashion, may bring out an answer, but what real
+worth can such an answer have?</p>
+
+<p>One bright day I came home from court and saw a man step out of a
+cornfield, remain a few instants in my field of vision, and then
+disappear. I felt at once that the man had done something suspicious,
+and immediately asked myself how he looked. I found I knew nothing of
+his clothes, his dress, his beard, his size, in a word, nothing at all
+about him. But how I would have punished a witness who should have known
+just as little. We shall have, in the course of this examination,
+frequently to mention the fact that we do not see an event in spite of
+its being in the field of perception. I want at this point merely to
+call attention to a single well-known case, recorded by Hofmann.<a name="FNanchor_195_195" id="FNanchor_195_195"></a><a href="#Footnote_195_195" class="fnanchor">[195]</a> At
+a trial a circumstantial and accurate attempt was made to discover
+whether it was a significant alteration to bite a man’s ear off. The
+court, the physician, the witnesses, etc., dealt with the question of
+altering, until finally the wounded man himself showed what was meant,
+because his other ear had been bitten off many years before,&mdash;but then
+nobody had noticed that mutilated ear.</p>
+
+<p>In order to know what another person has seen and apprehended we must
+first of all know how he thinks, and that is impossible. We frequently
+say of another that he must have thought this or that, or have hit upon
+such and such ideas, but what the events in another brain may be we can
+never observe. As Bois-Reymond says somewhere: “If Laplace’s ghost could
+build a homunculus according to the Leibnitzian theory, atom by atom and
+molecule by molecule, he might succeed in making it think, but not in
+knowing how it thinks.” But if we know, at least approximately, the kind
+of mental process of a person who is as close as possible to us in sex,
+age, culture, position, experience, etc., we lose this knowledge with
+every step that leads to differences. We know well what great influence
+is exercised by the multiplicity of talents, superpositions, knowledge,
+and apprehensions. When we consider the qualities<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_228" id="page_228"></a>{228}</span> of things, we
+discover that we never apprehend them abstractly, but always concretely.
+We do not see color but the colored object; we do not see warmth, but
+something warm; not hardness, but something hard. The concept warm, as
+such, can not be thought of by anybody, and at the mention of the word
+each will think of some particular warm object; one, of his oven at
+home; another, of a warm day in Italy; another of a piece of hot iron
+which burnt him once. Then the individual does not pay constant court to
+the same object. To-day he has in mind this concrete thing, to-morrow,
+he uses different names and makes different associations. But every
+concrete object I think of has considerable effect on the new
+apprehension; and my auditor does not know, perhaps even I myself do
+not, what concrete object I have already in mind. And although Berkeley
+has already shown that color can not be thought of without space or
+space without color, the task of determining the concrete object to
+which the witness attaches the qualities he speaks of, will still be
+overlooked hundreds of times.</p>
+
+<p>It is further of importance that everybody has learned to know the
+object he speaks about through repetition, that different relations have
+shown him the matter in different ways. If an object has impressed
+itself upon us, once pleasurably and once unpleasantly, we can not
+derive the history and character of the present impression from the
+object alone, nor can we find it merely in the synthetic memory
+sensations which are due to the traces of the former coalescing
+impressions. We are frequently unable, because of this coalescing of
+earlier impressions, to keep them apart and to study their effect on
+present impressions. Frequently we do not even at all know why this or
+that impression is so vivid. But if we are ignorant with regard to what
+occurs in ourselves, how much can we know about others?</p>
+
+<p>Exner calls attention to the fact that it is in this direction
+especially, that the “dark perceptions” play a great rôle. “A great part
+of our intelligence depends on the ability of these ‘dark perceptions’
+to rise without requiring further attention, into the field of
+consciousness. There are people, e.g., who recognize birds in their
+flight without knowing clearly what the characteristic flight for any
+definite bird may be. Others, still more intelligent, know at what
+intervals the flyers beat their wings, for they can imitate them with
+their hands. And when the intelligence is still greater, it makes
+possible a correct description in words.”</p>
+
+<p>Suppose that in some important criminal case several people,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_229" id="page_229"></a>{229}</span> of
+different degrees of education and intelligence, have made observations.
+We suppose that they all want to tell the truth, and we also suppose
+that they have observed and apprehended their objects correctly. Their
+testimonies, nevertheless, will be very different. With the degree of
+intelligence rises the degree of effect of the “dark subconscious
+perceptions.” They give more definite presentation and explanation of
+the testimony; they turn bare assertions into well-ordered perceptions
+and real representations. But we generally make the mistake of ascribing
+the variety of evidence to varying views, or to dishonesty.</p>
+
+<p>To establish the unanimity of such various data, or to find out whether
+they have such unanimity, is not easy. The most comfortable procedure is
+to compare the lesser testimonies with those of the most intelligent of
+the witnesses. As a rule, anybody who has a subconscious perception of
+the object will be glad to bring it out if he is helped by some form of
+expression, but the danger of suggestion is here so great that this
+assistance must be given only in the rarest of cases. The best thing is
+to help the witness to his full evidence gradually, at the same time
+taking care not to suggest oneself and thus to cause agreement of
+several testimonies which were really different but only appeared to
+look contradictory on account of the effect of subconscious perceptions.
+The very best thing is to take the testimony as it comes, without
+alteration, and later on, when there is a great deal of material and the
+matter has grown clearer, to test the stuff carefully and to see whether
+the less intelligent persons gave different testimonies through lack of
+capacity in expression, or because they really had perceived different
+things and had different things to say.</p>
+
+<p>This is important when the witnesses examined are experts in the matter
+in which they are examined. I am convinced that the belief that such
+people must be the best witnesses, is false, at least as a
+generalization. Benneke (loco cit.), has also made similar observations.
+“The chemist who perceives a chemical process, the connoisseur a
+picture, the musician a symphony, perceive them with more vigorous
+attention than the layman, but the actual attention may be greater with
+the latter.” For our own affair, it is enough to know that the judgment
+of the expert will naturally be better than that of the layman; his
+apprehension, however, is as a rule one-sided, not so far-reaching and
+less uncolored. It is natural that every expert, especially when he
+takes his work seriously, should find most interest in that side of an
+event with which his<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_230" id="page_230"></a>{230}</span> profession deals. Oversight of legally important
+matters is, therefore, almost inevitable. I remember how an eager young
+doctor was once witness of an assault with intent to kill. He had seen
+how in an inn the criminal had for some time threatened his victim with
+a heavy porcelain match-tray. “The os parietale may here be broken,” the
+doctor thought, and while he was thinking of the surgical consequences
+of such a blow, the thing was done and the doctor had not seen how the
+blow was delivered, whether a knife had been drawn by the victim, etc.
+Similarly, during an examination concerning breaking open the drawer of
+a table, the worst witness was the cabinet-maker. The latter was so much
+interested in the foreign manner in which the portions of the drawer had
+been cemented and in the curious wood, that he had nothing to say about
+the legally important question of how the break was made, what the
+impression of the damaging tool was, etc. Most of us have had such
+experiences with expert witnesses, and most of us have also observed
+that they often give false evidence because they treat the event in
+terms of their own interest and are convinced that things must happen
+according to the principles of their trades. However the event shapes
+itself, they model it and alter it so much that it finally implies their
+own apprehension.</p>
+
+<p>“Subconscious perceptions,” somewhat altered, play another rôle,
+according to Exner, in so-called orientation. If anybody is able to
+orient himself, i.e., know where he is at any time and keep in mind the
+general direction, it is important to be aware of the fact when he
+serves as witness, for his information will, in consequence, take a
+different form and assume a different value. Exner says of himself, that
+he knows at each moment of his climb of the Marcus’ tower in what
+direction he goes. As for me, once I have turned around, I am lost. Our
+perceptions of location and their value would be very different if we
+had to testify concerning relations of places, in court. But hardly
+anybody will assure the court that in general he orients himself well or
+ill.</p>
+
+<p>As Exner says, “If, when walking, I suddenly stop in front of a house to
+look at it, I am definitely in possession, also, of the feeling of its
+distance from where I left the road&mdash;the unconscious perception of the
+road beyond is here at work.” It might, indeed, be compared with pure
+subconsciousness in which series of processes occur without our knowing
+it.</p>
+
+<p>But local orientation does not end with the feeling for place. It is at
+work even in the cases of small memories of location, e.g.,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_231" id="page_231"></a>{231}</span> in learning
+things by heart, in knowing on what page and on what line anything is
+printed, in finding unobserved things, etc. These questions of
+perception-orientation are important, for there are people all of whose
+perceptions are closely related to their sense of location. Much may be
+learned from such people by use of this specialty of theirs, while
+oversight thereof may render them hopeless as witnesses. How far this
+goes with some people&mdash;as a rule people with a sense of location are the
+more intelligent&mdash;I saw some time ago when the Germanist Bernhardt
+Seuffert told me that when he did not know how anything is spelled he
+imagined its appearance, and when that did not help he wrote both the
+forms between which he was vacillating and then knew which one was the
+correct one. When I asked him whether the chirographic image appeared
+printed or written and in what type, he replied significantly enough,
+“As my writing-teacher wrote it.” He definitely localized the image on
+his writing book of many years ago and read it off in his mind. Such
+specialties must be remembered in examining witnesses.</p>
+
+<p>In conclusion, there is a word to say concerning Cattell’s<a name="FNanchor_196_196" id="FNanchor_196_196"></a><a href="#Footnote_196_196" class="fnanchor">[196]</a>
+investigations of the time required for apprehension. The better a man
+knows the language the more rapidly can he repeat and read its words. It
+is for this reason that we believe that foreigners speak more rapidly
+than we. Cattell finds this so indubitable, that he wants to use speed
+as a test in the examinations in foreign languages.</p>
+
+<p>The time used in order to identify a single letter is a quarter of a
+second, the time to pronounce it one-tenth of a second. Colors and
+pictures require noticeably more, not because they are not recognized,
+but because it is necessary to think what the right name is. We are much
+more accustomed to reading words.</p>
+
+<p>These observations might be carried a step further. The more definitely
+an event to be described is conceived, the clearer the deduction and the
+more certain the memory of it, the more rapidly may it be reproduced. It
+follows that, setting aside individual idiosyncrasies, the rapidity of
+speech of a witness will be of importance when we want to know how much
+he has thought on a question and is certain what he is going to say. It
+is conceivable that a person who is trying to remember the event
+accurately will speak slowly and stutteringly, or at least with
+hesitation at the moment. The same will occur if he tries to conceive of
+various<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_232" id="page_232"></a>{232}</span> possibilities, to eliminate some, and to avoid contradiction
+and improbability. If, however, the witness is convinced and believes
+truly what he is telling, so that he may go over it in his mind easily
+and without interruption, he will tell his story as quickly as he can.
+This may indeed be observed in public speakers, even judges,
+prosecutors, and defense; if anyone of them is not clear with regard to
+the case he represents, or not convinced of its correctness, he will
+speak slowly; if the situation is reversed he will speak rapidly. Court
+and other public stenographers confirm this observation.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic 3. IMAGINATION.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 45.</h5>
+
+<p>The things witnesses tell us have formerly existed in their
+imaginations, and the <i>how</i> of this existence determines in a large
+degree the <i>quale</i> of what they offer us. Hence, the nature of
+imagination must be of interest to us, and the more so, as we need not
+concern ourselves with the relation between being and imagination. It
+may be that things may exist in forms quite different from those in
+which we know them, perhaps even in unknowable forms. The idealist,
+according to some authorities, has set this possibility aside and given
+a scientific reply to those who raised it.</p>
+
+<p>So far as we lawyers are concerned, the “scientific reply” does not
+matter. We are interested in the reliability of the imagination and in
+its identification with what we assume to exist and to occur. Some
+writers hold that sensory objects are in sense-perception both external
+and internal, external with regard to each other, and internal with
+regard to consciousness. Attention is called to the fact that the
+distinction between image and object constitutes no part of the act of
+perception. But those who remark this fact assume that the act does
+contain an image. According to St. Augustine the image serves as the
+knowledge of the object; according to Erdmann the object is the image
+objectified.</p>
+
+<p>Of great importance is the substitutional adequacy of images. E. g., I
+imagine my absent dog, Bismarck’s dog, whom I know only pictorially, and
+finally, the dog of Alcibiades, whose appearance is known only by the
+fact that he was pretty and that his master had cut off his tail. In
+this case, the representative value of these images will be definite,
+for everybody knows that I can imagine my own dog very correctly, that
+the image of Bismarck’s beast will also be comparatively good inasmuch
+as this animal has been frequently<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_233" id="page_233"></a>{233}</span> pictured and described, while the
+image of Alcibiades’ dog will want much in the way of
+reliability&mdash;although I have imagined this historic animal quite vividly
+since boyhood. When, therefore, I speak of any one of these three
+animals everybody will be able properly to value the correctness of my
+images because he knows their conditions. When we speak with a witness,
+however, we rarely know the conditions under which he has obtained his
+images, and we learn them only from him. Now it happens that the
+description offered by the witness adds another image, i.e., our own
+image of the matter, and this, and that of the witness, have to be
+placed in specific relation to each other. Out of the individual images
+of all concerned an image should be provided which implies the image of
+the represented event. Images can be compared only with images, or
+images are only pictures of images.<a name="FNanchor_197_197" id="FNanchor_197_197"></a><a href="#Footnote_197_197" class="fnanchor">[197]</a></p>
+
+<p>The difficulty of this transmutation lies fundamentally in the nature of
+representation. Representation can never be identical with its object.
+Helmholtz has made this most clear: “Our visions and representations are
+effects; objects seen and represented have worked on our nervous system
+and on our consciousness. The nature of each effect depends necessarily
+upon the nature of its cause, and the nature of the individual upon whom
+the cause was at work. To demand an image which should absolutely
+reproduce its object and therefore be absolutely true, would be to
+demand an effect which should be absolutely independent of the nature of
+that object on which the effect is caused. And this is an obvious
+contradiction.”</p>
+
+<p>What the difference between image and object consists of, whether it is
+merely formal or material, how much it matters, has not yet been
+scientifically proved and may never be so. We have to assume only that
+the validity of this distinction is universally known, and that
+everybody possesses an innate corrective with which he assigns proper
+place to image and object, i.e., he knows approximately the distinction
+between them. The difficulty lies in the fact that not all people
+possess an identical standard, and that upon the creation of the latter
+practically all human qualities exert an influence. This variety in
+standards, again, is double-edged. On the one side it depends on the
+essence of image and of object, on the other it depends on the
+alteration which the image undergoes even during perception as well as
+during all the ensuing time. Everybody knows this distinction. Whoever
+has seen anything under certain circumstances, or during a certain
+period of his life, may frequently<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_234" id="page_234"></a>{234}</span> produce an image of it varying in
+individual characteristics, but in its general character constant. If he
+sees it later under different conditions, at a different age, when
+memory and imaginative disposition have exercised their alterative
+influence, image and object fail to correspond in various directions.
+The matter is still worse with regard to images of things and events
+that have never been seen. I can imagine the siege of Troy, a dragon,
+the polar night and Alexander the Great, but how different will the
+image be from the object!</p>
+
+<p>This is especially obvious when we have perceived something which did
+not appear to us altogether correct. We improve the thing, i.e., we
+study how it might have been better, and we remember it as improved;
+then the more frequently this object as imagined recurs, the more fixed
+its form becomes, but not its actual form, only its altered form. We see
+this with especial clearness in the case of drawings that in some way
+displease us. Suppose I do not like the red dress of a woman in some
+picture and I prefer brown. If later I recall the picture the image will
+become progressively browner and browner, and finally I see the picture
+as brown, and when I meet the real object I wonder about the red
+dress.<a name="FNanchor_198_198" id="FNanchor_198_198"></a><a href="#Footnote_198_198" class="fnanchor">[198]</a></p>
+
+<p>We get this situation in miniature each time we hear of a crime, however
+barren the news may be,&mdash;no more than a telegraphic word. The event must
+naturally have some degree of importance, because, if I hear merely that
+a silver watch has been stolen, I do not try to imagine that situation.
+If, however, I hear that near a hostelry in X, a peasant was robbed by
+two traveling apprentices I immediately get an image which contains not
+only the unknown region, but also the event of the robbery, and even
+perhaps the faces of those concerned. It does not much matter that this
+image is completely false in practically every detail, because in the
+greater number of cases it is corrected. The real danger lies in the
+fact that this correction is frequently so bad and often fails
+altogether and that, in consequence, the first image again breaks
+through and remains the most vigorous.<a name="FNanchor_199_199" id="FNanchor_199_199"></a><a href="#Footnote_199_199" class="fnanchor">[199]</a> The vigor is the greater
+because we always attach such imagination to something actual or
+approximately real, and inasmuch as the latter thing is either really
+seen, or at least energetically imagined, the first image acquires
+renewed power of coming up. According to Lipps, “Reproductive images<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_235" id="page_235"></a>{235}</span>
+presuppose dispositions. Dispositions ensue upon perceptions that they
+imply; still there are reproductive images and imagined wholes which
+imply no preceding perceptions. This contradiction is solved when
+dispositions are contained in other things at the same time. A finite
+number of dispositions may in this way be also infinite.... Dispositions
+are transformed power itself, power transformed in such a way as to be
+able to respond actively to inner stimulations.”</p>
+
+<p>The process is similar in the reproduction of images during speech. The
+fact that this reproduction is not direct but depends on the sequence of
+images, leads to the garrulity of children, old men, and uneducated
+people, who try to present the whole complex of relations belonging to
+any given image. But such total recall drives the judge to despair, not
+only because he loses time, but because of the danger of having the
+attention turned from important to unimportant things. The same thing is
+perceived in judicial documents which often reveal the fact that the
+dictator permitted himself to be led astray by unskilful witnesses, or
+that he had himself been responsible for abstruse, indirect memories.
+The real thinker will almost always be chary of words, because he
+retains, from among the numberless images which are attached to his
+idea, only those most closely related to his immediate purpose. Hence
+good protocols are almost always comparatively short. It is even as
+instructive as amusing to examine certain protocols, with regard to what
+ought to be omitted, and then with regard to the direct representations,
+i.e., to everything that appertains to the real illumination of the
+question. It is astounding how little of the latter thing is indicated,
+and how often it enters blindly because what was important has been
+forgotten and lost.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, we must grant that the essence of representation involves
+very great difficulties. By way of example consider so ordinary a case
+as the third dimension. We are convinced that according to its nature it
+is much more complex than it seems to be. We are compelled to believe
+that distance is not a matter of sensation and that it requires to be
+explained.<a name="FNanchor_200_200" id="FNanchor_200_200"></a><a href="#Footnote_200_200" class="fnanchor">[200]</a></p>
+
+<p>Psychologists indicate that the representation of the third dimension
+would be tremendously difficult without the help of experience. But
+experience is something relative, we do not know how much experience any
+man possesses, or its nature. Hence, we never can know clearly to what
+degree a man’s physical vision is correct if<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_236" id="page_236"></a>{236}</span> we do not see other means
+of verification. Consider now what is required in the assumption of the
+idea of the fourth dimension. Since its introduction by Henry More, this
+idea should quite have altered our conception of space. But we do not
+know how many cling to it unconsciously, and we should make no mistake
+if we said that nobody has any knowledge of how his neighbor perceives
+space.<a name="FNanchor_201_201" id="FNanchor_201_201"></a><a href="#Footnote_201_201" class="fnanchor">[201]</a></p>
+
+<p>Movement is another thing difficult to represent or imagine. You can
+determine for yourself immediately whether you can imagine even a
+slightly complicated movement. I can imagine one individual condition of
+a movement after another, sequentially, but I can not imagine the
+sequence. As Herbart says somewhere, a successive series of images is
+not a represented succession. But if we can not imagine this latter,
+what do we imagine is not what it ought to be. According to
+Stricker,<a name="FNanchor_202_202" id="FNanchor_202_202"></a><a href="#Footnote_202_202" class="fnanchor">[202]</a> the representation of movement is a <i>quale</i> which can not
+be given in terms of any other sensory quality, and no movement can be
+remembered without the brain’s awakening a muscle-movement. Experience
+verifies this theory. The awakening of the muscular sense is frequently
+obvious whenever movement is thought of, and we may then perceive how,
+in the explanation or description of a movement, the innervation which
+follows the image in question, occurs. This innervation is always true.
+It agrees at least with what the witness has himself perceived and now
+tries to renew in his story. When we have him explain, for example, how
+some man had been choked, we may see movements of his hands which,
+however slight and obscure, still definitely indicate that he is trying
+to remember what he has seen, and this irrelevantly of what he is
+saying. This makes it possible to observe the alterations of images in
+the individual in question, an alteration which always occurs when the
+images are related to movements.</p>
+
+<p>It follows further from the fact that movements are difficult to
+represent that the witness ought not to be expected accurately to recall
+them. Stricker says that for a long time he could not image a snow-fall,
+and succeeded only in representing one single instant of it. Now what is
+not capable of representation, can not well be recalled, and so we
+discover that it merely causes trouble to ask the witness to describe
+point by point even a simple sequence. The witness has only successive
+images, and even if the particular images are correct,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_237" id="page_237"></a>{237}</span> he has nothing
+objective for the succession itself, nothing rooted in the sequence. He
+is helped, merely, by the logic of events and his memory&mdash;if these are
+scanty, the succession of images is scanty, and therefore the
+reproduction of the event is inadequate. Hence this scantiness is as
+little remarkable as the variety of description in various witnesses, a
+variety due to the fact that the sequentialization is subjective.</p>
+
+<p>Drawing is a confirmation of the fact that we represent only a single
+instant of motion, for a picture can never give us a movement, but only
+a single state within that movement. At the same time we are content
+with what the picture renders, even when our image contains only this
+simple moment of movement. “What is seen or heard, is immediately, in
+all its definiteness, content of consciousness” (Schuppe)&mdash;but its
+movement is not.</p>
+
+<p>The influence of time upon images is hardly indifferent. We have to
+distinguish the time necessary for the construction of an image, and the
+time during which an image lasts with uniform vividness. Maudsley
+believes the first question difficult to answer. He leans on Darwin, who
+points out that musicians play as quickly as they can apprehend the
+notes. The question will affect the lawyer in so far as it is necessary
+to determine whether, after some time, an image of an event may ensue
+from which it is possible to infer back to the individuality of the
+witness. No other example can be used here, because on the rocky problem
+of the occurrence of images are shattered even the regulative arts of
+most modern psychophysics.</p>
+
+<p>The second problem is of greater significance. Whether any practical use
+of its solution can be made, I can not say, but it urges consideration.
+Exner has observed that the uniform vividness of an image lasts hardly a
+second. The image as a whole does not disappear in this time, but its
+content endures unchanged for so long at most. Then it fades in waves.
+The correctness of this description may be tested by anybody. But I
+should like to add that my observations of my own images indicate that
+in the course of a progressive repetition of the recall of an image its
+content is not equally capable of reproduction. I believe, further, that
+no essential leaps occur in this alteration of the content of an idea,
+but that the alteration moves in some definite direction. If, then, I
+recall the idea of some object successively, I will imagine it not at
+one time bigger, then smaller, then again bigger, etc.; on the contrary,
+the series of images will be such that each new image will be either
+progressively bigger or progressively smaller.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_238" id="page_238"></a>{238}</span></p>
+
+<p>If this observation of mine is correct and the phenomenon is not purely
+personal, Exner’s description becomes of great value in examination,
+which because of its length, requires the repeated recall of
+standardizing images, and this in its turn causes an alteration in the
+ideational content. We frequently observe that a witness persuades
+himself into the belief of some definite idea in the course of his
+examination, inasmuch as with regard to some matter he says more and
+more definite things at the end than at the beginning. This may possibly
+be contingent on the alteration of frequently recalled ideas. One could
+make use of the process which is involved in the reproduction of the
+idea, by implying it, and so not being compelled to return endlessly to
+something already explained.</p>
+
+<p>How other people construct their ideas, we do not, as we have seen,
+know, and the difficulty of apprehending the ideas or images of other
+people, many authorities clearly indicate.<a name="FNanchor_203_203" id="FNanchor_203_203"></a><a href="#Footnote_203_203" class="fnanchor">[203]</a></p>
+
+<h4>Topic 4. INTELLECTUAL PROCESSES.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 46. (a) General Considerations.</h5>
+
+<p>Lichtenberg said somewhere, “I used to know people of great scholarship,
+in whose head the most important propositions were folded up in
+excellent order. But I don’t know what occurred there, whether the ideas
+were all mannikins or all little women&mdash;there were no results. In one
+corner of the head, these gentlemen put away saltpeter, in another
+sulphur, in a third charcoal, but these did not combine into gunpowder.
+Then again, there are people in whose heads everything seeks out and
+finds everything else, everything pairs off with everything else, and
+arranges itself variously.” What Lichtenberg is trying to do is to
+indicate that the cause of the happy condition of the last-named friends
+is imagination. That imagination is influential, is certain, but it is
+equally certain that the human understanding is so different with
+different people as to permit such phenomena as Lichtenberg describes. I
+do not want to discuss the quantity of understanding. I shall deal, this
+time, with its quality, by means of which the variety of its uses may be
+explained. It would be a mistake to think of the understanding as
+capable of assuming different forms. If it were it would be possible to
+construct from the concept understanding a group of different powers
+whose common quality would come to us off-hand.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_239" id="page_239"></a>{239}</span> But with regard to
+understanding we may speak only of more or less and we must think of the
+difference in effect in terms only of the difference of the forms of its
+application. We see the effects of the understanding alone, not the
+understanding itself, and however various a burning city, cast iron, a
+burn, and steaming water may be, we recognize that in spite of the
+difference of effect, the same fire has brought about all these results.
+The difference in the uses of the understanding, therefore, lies in the
+manner of its application. Hence these applications will help us, when
+we know them, to judge the value of what they offer us. The first
+question that arises when we are dealing with an important witness who
+has made observations and inferences, is this: “How intelligent is he?
+and what use does he make of his intelligence? That is, What are his
+processes of reasoning?”</p>
+
+<p>I heard, from an old diplomat, whose historic name is as significant as
+his experience, that he made use of a specific means to discover what
+kind of mind a person had. He used to tell his subjects the following
+story: “A gentleman, carrying a small peculiarly-formed casket, entered
+a steam car, where an obtrusive commercial traveler asked him at once
+what was contained in the casket. ‘My Mungo is inside!’ ‘Mungo? What is
+that?’ ‘Well, you know that I suffer from delirium tremens, and when I
+see the frightful images and figures, I let my Mungo out and he eats
+them up.’ ‘But, sir, these images and figures do not really exist.’ ‘Of
+course they don’t really exist, but my Mungo doesn’t really exist,
+either, so it’s all right!’&nbsp;”</p>
+
+<p>The old gentleman asserted that he could judge of the intelligence of
+his interlocutor by the manner in which the latter received this story.</p>
+
+<p>Of course it is impossible to tell every important witness the story of
+Mungo, but something similar may be made use of which could be sought
+out of the material in the case. Whoever has anything worthy the name of
+practice will then be able to judge the manner of the witness’s
+approach, and especially the degree of intelligence he possesses. The
+mistake must not be made, however, that this requires splendid
+deductions; it is best to stick to simple facts. Goethe’s golden word is
+still true: “The greatest thing is to understand that all fact is theory
+... do not look behind phenomena; they are themselves the doctrine.” We
+start, therefore, with some simple fact which has arisen in the case and
+try to discover what the witness will do with it. It is not difficult;
+you may know a thing badly in a hundred ways, but you know it well in
+only one way. If<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_240" id="page_240"></a>{240}</span> the witness handles the fact properly, we may trust
+him. We learn, moreover, from this handling how far the man may be
+objective. His perception as witness means to him only an experience,
+and the human mind may not collect experiences without, at the same
+time, weaving its speculations into them. But though everyone does this,
+he does it according to his nature and nurture. There is little that is
+as significant as the manner, the intensity, and the direction in and
+with which a witness introduces his speculation into the story of his
+experience. Whole sweeps of human character may show themselves up with
+one such little explanation. It is for this reason that Kant called the
+human understanding architectonic; it aims to bring together all its
+knowledge under one single system, and this according to fixed rules and
+systems defined by the needs of ordinary mortals. Only the genius has,
+like nature, his own unknown system. And we do not need to count on this
+rarest of exceptions.</p>
+
+<p>The people who constitute our most complicated problems are the average,
+and insignificant members of the human race. Hume cited the prophet
+Alexander quite justly. Alexander was a wise prophet, who selected
+Paphlagonis as the first scene of his deception because the people there
+were extraordinarily foolish and swallowed with pleasure the coarsest of
+swindles. They had heard earlier of the genuineness and power of the
+prophet, and the smart ones laughed at him, the fools believed and
+spread his faith, his cause got adherents even among educated people,
+and finally Marcus Aurelius himself paid the matter so much attention as
+to rest the success of a military enterprise on a prophecy of
+Alexander’s. Tacitus narrates how Vespasian cured a blind man by
+spitting on him, and the story is repeated by Suetonius.</p>
+
+<p>We must never forget that, however great a foolishness may be, there is
+always somebody to commit it. It is Hume, again, I think, who so
+excellently describes what happens when some inconceivable story is told
+to uncritical auditors. Their credulity increases the narrator’s
+shamelessness; his shamelessness convinces their credulity. Thinking for
+yourself is a rare thing, and the more one is involved with other people
+in matters of importance, the more one is convinced of the rarity. And
+yet, so little is demanded in thinking. “To abstract the red of blood
+from the collective impression, to discover the same concept in
+different things, to bring together under the same notion blood and
+beer, milk and snow,&mdash;animals <span class="pagenum"><a name="page_241" id="page_241"></a>{241}</span>do not do this; it is thinking.”<a name="FNanchor_204_204" id="FNanchor_204_204"></a><a href="#Footnote_204_204" class="fnanchor">[204]</a> I
+might suggest that in the first place, various animals are capable of
+something of the sort, and in the second place, that many men are
+incapable of the same thing. The lawyer’s greatest of all mistakes is
+always the presupposition that whoever has done anything has also
+thought about doing it and while he was doing it. This is especially the
+case when we observe that many people repeatedly speak of the same event
+and drive us to the opinion that there must be some intelligent idea
+behind it,&mdash;but however narrow a road may be, behind it there may be any
+number of others in series.</p>
+
+<p>We also are bound to be mistaken if we presuppose the lack of reason as
+a peculiarity of the uneducated only, and accept as well thought-out the
+statements of people who possess academic training. But not everybody
+who damns God is a philosopher, and neither do academic persons concern
+themselves unexceptionally with thinking. Concerning the failure of our
+studies in the high-schools and in the gymnasia, more than enough has
+been written, but Helmholtz, in his famous dissertation, “Concerning the
+Relation of the Natural Sciences to the Whole of Knowledge,” has
+revealed the reason for the inadequacy of the material served up by
+gymnasia and high-schools. Helmholtz has not said that the university
+improves the situation only in a very small degree, but it may be
+understood from his words. “The pupils who pass from our grammar-schools
+to exact studies have two defects: 1. A certain laxity in the
+application of universally valid laws. The grammatical rules with which
+they have been trained, are as a matter of fact, buried under series of
+exceptions; the pupils hence are unaccustomed to trust unconditionally
+to the certainty of a legitimate consequence of some fixed universal
+law. 2. They are altogether too much inclined to depend upon authority
+even where they can judge for themselves.”</p>
+
+<p>Even if Helmholtz is right, it is important for the lawyer to recognize
+the distinction between the witness who has the gymnasium behind him and
+the educated man who has helped himself without that institution. Our
+time, which has invented the Ph. D., which wants to do everything for
+the public school and is eager to cripple the classical training in the
+gymnasium, has wholly forgotten that the incomparable value of the
+latter does not lie in the minimum of Latin and Greek which the student
+has acquired, but in the disciplinary intellectual drill contained in
+the grammar of the ancient tongues. It is superfluous to make fun of the
+fact that the technician writes on his visiting cards: Stud. Eng. or
+Stud. Mech. and can not<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_242" id="page_242"></a>{242}</span> pronounce the words the abbreviations stand
+for, that he becomes Ph. D. and can not translate his title,&mdash;these are
+side issues. But it is forgotten that the total examination in which the
+public school pupil presents his hastily crammed Latin and Greek, never
+implies a careful training in his most impressionable period of life.
+Hence the criminalist repeatedly discovers that the capacity for trained
+thinking belongs mainly to the person who has been drilled for eight
+years in Greek and Latin grammar. We criminalists have much experience
+in this matter.</p>
+
+<p>Helmholtz’s first point would, for legal purposes, require very broad
+interpretation of the term, “universally valid laws,” extending it also
+to laws in the judicial sense of the word. The assertion is frequently
+made that laws are passed in the United States in order that they might
+not be obeyed, and political regulations are obeyed by the public for,
+at most, seven weeks. Of course, the United States is no exception; it
+seems as if the respect for law is declining everywhere, and if this
+decline occurs in one field no other is likely to be free from it. A
+certain subjective or egoistic attitude is potent in this regard, for
+people in the main conceive the law to be made only for others; they
+themselves are exceptions. Narrow, unconditional adherence to general
+norms is not modern, and this fact is to be seen not only in the excuses
+offered, but also in the statements of witnesses, who expect others to
+follow prescriptions approximately, and themselves hardly at all. This
+fact has tremendous influence on the conceptions and constructions of
+people, and a failure to take it into consideration means considerable
+error.</p>
+
+<p>Not less unimportant is the second point raised in the notion of
+“authority.” To judge for himself is everybody’s business, and should be
+required of everybody. Even if nobody should have the happy thought of
+making use of the better insight, the dependent person who always wants
+to go further will lead himself into doubtful situations. The three
+important factors, school, newspaper, and theater, have reached an
+extraordinary degree of power. People apperceive, think, and feel as
+these three teach them, and finally it becomes second nature to follow
+this line of least resistance, and to seek intellectual conformity. We
+know well enough what consequences this has in law, and each one of us
+can tell how witnesses present us stories which we believe to rest on
+their own insight but which show themselves finally to depend upon the
+opinion of some other element. We frequently base our constructions upon
+the remarkable and convincing unanimity of such witnesses when upon<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_243" id="page_243"></a>{243}</span>
+closer examination we might discover that this unanimity has a single
+source. If we make this discovery it is fortunate, for only time and
+labor have then been lost and no mistake has been committed. But if the
+discovery is not made, the unanimity remains an important, but really an
+unreliable means of proof.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 47. (b) The Mechanism of Thinking.</h5>
+
+<p>Since the remarkable dissertation of W. Ostwald,<a name="FNanchor_205_205" id="FNanchor_205_205"></a><a href="#Footnote_205_205" class="fnanchor">[205]</a> on Sept. 20, 1905,
+we have been standing at a turning point which looks toward a new view
+of the world. We do not know whether the “ignorabimus” of some of the
+scientists will hold, or whether we shall be able to think everything in
+terms of energy. We merely observe that the supposedly invincible
+principles of scientific materialism are shaken.</p>
+
+<p>Frederick the Great, in a letter to Voltaire, says something which
+suggests he was the first to have thought of the purely mechanical
+nature of thought. Cabanis had said briefly, that the brain secretes
+thought as the liver bile. Tyndall expressed this conception more
+cautiously, and demanded merely the confession that every act of
+consciousness implies a definite molecular condition of the brain, while
+Bois-Reymond declared that we could not explain certain psychical
+processes and events by knowledge of the material processes in the
+brain. “You shall make no picture or comparison, but see as directly as
+the nature of our spirit will permit,” Ostwald tells us, and it is well
+to stick to this advice. We need neither to cast aside the mechanical
+view of the world nor to accept energism; neither of them is required.
+But according to the teachings of the latter, we shall be enabled to
+recognize the meaning of natural law in the determination of how actual
+events are conditioned by possible ones. And thus we shall see that the
+form that all natural laws turn to expresses the mediation of an
+invariable, a quantity that remains unchangeable even when all the other
+elements in the formula of a possible event alter within the limits
+defined by the law.<a name="FNanchor_206_206" id="FNanchor_206_206"></a><a href="#Footnote_206_206" class="fnanchor">[206]</a></p>
+
+<p>Every science must provide its own philosophy, and it is our duty to
+know properly and to understand clearly how far we may perceive
+connections between the physical qualities of any one of our witnesses
+and his psychic nature. We will draw no inferences ourselves, but we
+will take note of what does not explain itself and apply<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_244" id="page_244"></a>{244}</span> to experts to
+explain what we can not. This is especially necessary where the relation
+of the normal to the abnormal becomes a question. The normal effects to
+be spoken of are very numerous, but we shall consider only a few. The
+first is the connection of symbol and symbolized. “The circumstance that
+the symbol, on its side of the union of the two, becomes perfectly clear
+while the symbolized object is rather confused, is explained by the fact
+that the symbol recalls its object more quickly than the object the
+symbol; e.g., the tool recalls its use more quickly than the purpose its
+instrument. Name and word recall more quickly, reliably, and
+energetically the objects they stand for than do the objects their
+symbols.”<a name="FNanchor_207_207" id="FNanchor_207_207"></a><a href="#Footnote_207_207" class="fnanchor">[207]</a> This matter is more important than it looks at first
+glance, inasmuch as the particles of time with which we are dealing are
+greater than those with which modern psychologists have to deal,&mdash;so
+large indeed, that they may be perceived in practice. We lay stress
+during the examination, when we are in doubt about the correctness of
+the expected answer, upon the promptness and rapidity with which it is
+given. Drawn out, tentative, and uncertain answers, we take for a sign
+that the witness either is unable or unwilling to give his replies
+honestly. If, however, psychologically there are real reasons for
+variation in the time in which an answer is given, reasons which do not
+depend on its correctness, we must seek out this correctness. Suppose
+that we have before us a case in which the name awakens more quickly and
+reliably the idea of the person to whom it belongs than conversely. This
+occurs to any one of us, and often we can not remember the name of even
+a close friend for a greater or shorter period. But we very rarely find
+that we do not think of the appearance of the individual whose name we
+hear mentioned. But it would be wrong to relate this phenomenon to
+certain qualities which contradict it only apparently. E. g., when I
+examine old statutes which I myself have worked with and review the
+names of the series, I recall that I had something to do with this
+Jones, Smith, Black, or White, and I recall what the business was, but I
+do not recall their appearance. The reason is, first of all, the fact
+that during the trial I did not care about the names which served as a
+means of distinguishing one from the other, and they might, for that
+purpose, have been <i>a</i>, <i>b</i>, <i>c</i>, etc. Hence, the faces and names were
+not as definitely associated as they ordinarily are. Moreover, <i>this</i>
+failure to recall is a substitution for each other of the many tanti
+quanti that we take up in our daily routine. When we have<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_245" id="page_245"></a>{245}</span> had especial
+business with any particular individual we do remember his face when his
+name is mentioned.</p>
+
+<p>If, then, a witness does not quickly recall the name of something he is
+thinking of, but identifies it immediately when the name is given him,
+you have a natural psychological event which itself has no bearing on
+the truth or falsity of his testimony.</p>
+
+<p>The same relation is naturally to be found in all cases of parallel
+phenomena, i.e., names, symbols, definitions, etc. It applies, also, to
+the problem of the alteration in the rapidity of psychical processes
+with the time of the day. According to Bechterew and Higier there is an
+increase in psychical capacity from morning to noon, then a dropping
+until five o’clock in the afternoon, then an increase until nine o’clock
+in the evening, and finally a sinking until twelve o’clock midnight.
+There is, of course, no doubt that these investigators have correctly
+collected their material; that their results shall possess general
+validity is, however, not so certain. The facts are such that much
+depends, not only on the individual character, but also on the instant
+of examination. One hears various assertions of individuals at times
+when they are most quick to apprehend and at their best, and hence it is
+hardly possible to draw a general rule from such phenomena. One may be
+wide awake in the morning, another in the forenoon, a third at night,
+and at each time other people may be at their worst. In a similar
+fashion, the psychic disposition varies not only during the day, but
+from day to day. So far as my observations go the only thing
+uncontradicted is the fact that the period between noon and five o’clock
+in the afternoon is not a favorable one. I do not believe, however, that
+it would be correct to say that the few hours after the noon dinner are
+the worst in the day, for people who eat their dinners at about four or
+five o’clock assure me that from one to five in the afternoon, they
+cannot work so well. These facts may have a value for us in so far as we
+can succeed in avoiding the trial of important cases which require
+especial consideration during the time mentioned.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 48. (c) The Subconscious.</h5>
+
+<p>It is my opinion that the importance of unconscious operations<a name="FNanchor_208_208" id="FNanchor_208_208"></a><a href="#Footnote_208_208" class="fnanchor">[208]</a> in
+legal procedure is undervalued. We could establish much that is
+significant concerning an individual whose unconscious doings we knew.
+For, as a rule, we perform unconsciously things that<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_246" id="page_246"></a>{246}</span> are deeply
+habitual, therefore, first of all what everybody does&mdash;walk, greet your
+neighbor, dodge, eat, etc.; secondly, we perform unconsciously things to
+which we have become accustomed in accordance with our especial
+characters.<a name="FNanchor_209_209" id="FNanchor_209_209"></a><a href="#Footnote_209_209" class="fnanchor">[209]</a> When, during my work, I rise, get a glass of water,
+drink it, and set the glass aside again, without having the slightest
+suspicion of having done so, I must agree that this was possible only in
+my well-known residence and environment, and that it was possible to
+nobody else, not so familiar. The coachman, perhaps, puts the horses
+into the stable, rubs them down, etc., and thinks of something else
+while doing so. He has performed unconsciously what another could not.
+It might happen that I roll a cigarette while I am working, and put it
+aside; after awhile I roll a second and a third, and sometimes I have
+four cigarettes side by side. I needed to smoke, had prepared a
+cigarette, and simply because I had to use my hands in writing, etc., I
+laid the cigarette aside. In consequence, the need to smoke was not
+satisfied and the process was repeated. This indicates what complicated
+things may be unconsciously performed if only the conditions are
+well-known; but it also indicates what the limits of unconscious action
+are: e.g., I had not forgotten what would satisfy my need to smoke, nor
+where my cigarette paper was, nor how to make a cigarette, but I had
+forgotten that I had made a cigarette without having smoked it. The
+activities first named have been repeated thousands of times, while the
+last had only just been performed and therefore had not become
+mechanical.<a name="FNanchor_210_210" id="FNanchor_210_210"></a><a href="#Footnote_210_210" class="fnanchor">[210]</a></p>
+
+<p>Lipps calls attention to another instance: “It may be that I am capable
+of retaining every word of a speech and of observing at the same time
+the expression which accompanies the speech. I might be equally able to
+trace a noise which occurs on the street and still to pay sufficient
+attention to the speech. On the other hand, I should lose the thread of
+the speech if I were required at the same time to think of the play of
+feature and the noise. Expressed in general terms, idea A may possibly
+get on with idea B and even idea C; but B and C together make A
+impossible. This clearly indicates that B and C in themselves have
+opposed A and inhibited it in some degree, but that only the summation
+of their inhibition could serve really to exclude A.” This is certainly
+correct and may perhaps be more frequently made use of when it is
+necessary to judge how much an individual would have done at one and
+the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_247" id="page_247"></a>{247}</span> same time, and how much he would have done unconsciously. An
+approximation of the possibilities can always be made.</p>
+
+<p>Such complicated processes go down to the simplest operations. Aubert
+indicates, for example, that in riding a horse at gallop you jump and
+only later observe whether you have jumped to the right or the left. And
+the physician Förster told Aubert that his patients often did not know
+how to look toward right or left. At the same time, everybody remembers
+how when he is doing it unconsciously, and it may often be observed that
+people have to make the sign of the cross, or the gesture of eating in
+order to discover what is right and what left, although they are
+unconsciously quite certain of these directions. Still broader
+activities are bound up with this unconscious psychosis, activities for
+us of importance when the accused later give us different and better
+explanations than at the beginning, and when they have not had the
+opportunity to study the case out and make additional discoveries, or to
+think it over in the mean time. They then say honestly that the new,
+really probable exposition has suddenly occurred to them. As a rule we
+do not believe such statements, and we are wrong, for even when this
+sudden vision appears improbable and not easily realizable, the
+witnesses have explained it in this way only because they do not know
+the psychological process, which, as a matter of fact, consisted of
+subconscious thinking.</p>
+
+<p>The brain does not merely receive impressions unconsciously, it
+registers them without the co-operation of consciousness, works them
+over unconsciously, awakens the latent residua without the help of
+consciousness, and reacts like an organ endowed with organic life toward
+the inner stimuli which it receives from other parts of the body. That
+this also influences the activity of the imagination, Goethe has
+indicated in his statement to Schiller: “Impressions must work silently
+in me for a very long time before they show themselves willing to be
+used poetically.”</p>
+
+<p>In other respects everybody knows something about this unconscious
+intellectual activity. Frequently we plague ourselves with the attempt
+to bring order into the flow of ideas&mdash;and we fail. Then the next time,
+without our having thought of the matter in the interval, we find
+everything smooth and clear. It is on this fact that the various popular
+maxims rest, e.g., to think a thing over, or to sleep on it, etc. The
+unconscious activity of thought has a great share in what has been
+thought out.</p>
+
+<p>A very distinctive rôle belongs to the coincidence of conscious<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_248" id="page_248"></a>{248}</span>
+attention with unconscious. An explanation of this process will help us,
+perhaps, to explain many incomprehensible and improbable things. “Even
+the unconscious psychic activities,&mdash;going up and down, smoking, playing
+with the hands, etc., conversation,&mdash;compete with the conscious or with
+other unconscious activities for psychic energy. Hence, a
+suddenly-appearing important idea may lead us to stop walking, to remain
+without a rule of action, may make the smoker drop his smoking, etc.”
+The explanation is as follows: I possess, let us say, 100 units of
+psychic energy which I might use in attention. Now we find it difficult
+to attend for twenty seconds to one point, and more so to direct our
+thought-energy to one thing. Hence I apply only, let us say, 90 units to
+the object in question, and apply 10 units to the unconscious play of
+ideas, etc. Now, if the first object suddenly demands even more
+attention, it draws off the other ten units, and I must stop playing,
+for absolutely without attention, even unconscious attention, nothing
+can be done.</p>
+
+<p>This very frequent and well-known phenomenon, shows us, first of all,
+the unconscious activities in their agreement with the conscious,
+inasmuch as we behave in the same way when both are interrupted by the
+demand of another thing on our attention. If a row suddenly breaks out
+before my window I will interrupt an unconscious drumming with the
+fingers as well as a conscious reading, so that it would be impossible
+to draw any conclusion concerning the nature of these activities from
+the mere interruption or the manner of that interruption. This
+similarity is an additional ground for the fact that what is done
+unconsciously may be very complex. No absolute boundary may be drawn,
+and hence we can derive no proof of the incorrectness of an assertion
+from the performance itself, i.e., from <i>what</i> has been done
+unconsciously. Only human nature, its habits, idiosyncrasies, and its
+contemporary environment can give us any norm.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 49. (d) Subjective Conditions.</h5>
+
+<p>We have already seen that our ideation has the self for center and point
+of reference. And we shall later see that the kind of thinking which
+exclusively relates all events to itself, or the closest relations of
+the self, is, according to Erdmann, the essence of stupidity. There is,
+however, a series of intellectual processes in which the thinker pushes
+his self into the foreground with more or less<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_249" id="page_249"></a>{249}</span> justification, judging
+everything else and studying everything else in the light of it,
+presupposing in others what he finds in himself, and exhibiting a
+greater interest in himself than may be his proper share. Such ideations
+are frequently to be found in high-minded natures. I know a genial
+high-school teacher, the first in his profession, who is so deeply
+absorbed in his thinking, that he never carries money, watch, or keys
+because he forgets and loses them. When in the examination of some
+critical case he needs a coin he turns to his auditors with the
+question: “Perhaps one of you gentlemen may <i>by some chance</i> have a
+quarter with you?” He judges from his habit of not carrying money with
+him, that to carry it is to be presupposed as a “perhaps,” and the
+appearance of a quarter in this crowded auditorium must be “by chance.”</p>
+
+<p>The same thing is true with some of the most habitual processes of some
+of the most ordinary people. If a man sees a directory in which his name
+must be mentioned, he looks it up and studies it. If he sees a group
+photograph in which he also occurs he looks up his own picture, and when
+the most miserable cheater who is traveling under a false name picks
+that out, he will seek it out of his <i>own</i> relationships, will either
+alter his real name or slightly vary the maiden name of his mother, or
+deduce it from his place of birth, or simply make use of his christian
+name. But he will not be likely to move far from his precious self.</p>
+
+<p>That similar things are true for readers, Goethe told us when he showed
+us that everything that anybody reads interests him only when he finds
+himself or his activities therein. So Goethe explains that business men
+and men of the world apprehend a scientific dissertation better than the
+really learned, “who habitually hear no more of it than what they have
+learned or taught and with which they meet their equals.”</p>
+
+<p>It is properly indicated that every language has the largest number of
+terms for those things which are most important to those who speak it.
+Thus we are told that the Arabians have as many as 6000 words for camel,
+2000 for horse, and 50 for lion. Richness of form and use always belong
+together, as is shown in the fact that the auxiliaries and those verbs
+most often used are everywhere the most irregular. This fact may be very
+important in examinations, for definite inferences concerning the nature
+and affairs of the witness may be drawn from the manner and frequency
+with which he uses words, and whether he possesses an especially large
+number of forms in any particular direction.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_250" id="page_250"></a>{250}</span></p>
+
+<p>The fact is that we make our conceptions in accordance with the things
+as we have seen them, and so completely persuade ourselves of the truth
+of one definite, partial definition, that sometimes we wonder at a
+phenomenon without judging that it might have been expected to be
+otherwise. When I first became a student at Strassbourg, I wondered,
+subconsciously, when I heard the ragged gamins talk French fluently. I
+knew, indeed, that it was their mother-tongue, but I was so accustomed
+to viewing all French as a sign of higher education that this knowledge
+in the gamins made me marvel. When I was a child I once had to bid my
+grandfather adieu very early, while he was still in bed. I still recall
+the vivid astonishment of my perception that grandfather awoke without
+his habitual spectacles upon his nose. I must have known that spectacles
+are as superfluous as uncomfortable and dangerous when one is sleeping,
+and I should not even with most cursory thinking have supposed that he
+would have worn his spectacles during the night. But as I was accustomed
+always to see my grandfather with spectacles, when he did not have them
+I wondered at it.</p>
+
+<p>Such instances are of especial importance when the judge is himself
+making observations, i.e., examining the premises of the crime, studying
+corpora delicti, etc., because we often suppose ourselves to see
+extraordinary and illegal things simply because we have been habituated
+to seeing things otherwise. We even construct and name according to this
+habit. Taine narrates the instructive story of a little girl who wore a
+medal around her throat, of which she was told, “C’est le bon Dieu.”
+When the child once saw her uncle with a lorgnon around his neck she
+said, “C’est le bon Dieu de mon oncle.” And since I heard the story, I
+have repeatedly had the opportunity to think, “C’est aussi le bon Dieu
+de cet homme.” A single word which indicates how a man denotes a thing
+defines for us his nature, his character, and his circumstances.</p>
+
+<p>For the same reason that everything interests us more according to the
+degree it involves us personally, we do not examine facts and completely
+overlook them though they are later shown to be unshakable, without our
+being able to explain their causal nexus. If, however, we know causes
+and relationships, these facts become portions of our habitual mental
+equipment. Any practitioner knows how true this is, and how especially
+visible during the examination of witnesses, who ignore facts which to
+us seem, in the nature of the case, important and definitive. In such
+cases we must first of all not assume that these facts have not
+occurred<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_251" id="page_251"></a>{251}</span> because the witness has not explained them or has overlooked
+them; we must proceed as suggested in order to validate the relevant
+circumstances by means of the witness&mdash;i.e., we must teach him the
+conditions and relationships until they become portions of his habitual
+mental machinery. I do not assert that this is easy&mdash;on the contrary, I
+say that whoever is able to do this is the most effective of examiners,
+and shows again that the witness is no more than an instrument which is
+valueless in the hands of the bounder, but which can accomplish all
+sorts of things in the hands of the master.</p>
+
+<p>One must beware, however, of too free use of the most comfortable
+means,&mdash;that of examples. When Newton said, “In addiscendis scientiis
+exempla plus prosunt, quam praecepta,” he was not addressing
+criminalists, but he might have been. As might, also, Kant, when he
+proved that thinking in examples is dangerous because it allows the use
+of real thinking, for which it is not a substitute, to lapse. That this
+fact is one reason for the danger of examples is certain, but the chief
+reason, at least for the lawyer, is the fact that an example requires
+not equality, but mere similarity. The degree of similarity is not
+expressed and the auditor has no standard for the degree of similarity
+in the mind of the speaker. “Omnis analogia claudicat” is correct, and
+it may happen that the example might be falsely conceived, that
+similarity may be mistaken for equality, or at least, that there should
+be ignorance of the inequality. Examples, therefore, are to be used only
+in the most extreme cases, and only in such wise, that the nature of the
+example is made very clearly obvious and its incorrectness warned
+against.</p>
+
+<p>There are several special conditions, not to be overlooked. One of these
+is the influence of expectation. Whoever expects anything, sees, hears,
+and constructs, only in the suspense of this expectation, and neglects
+all competing events most astoundingly. Whoever keenly expects any
+person is sensible only of the creaking of the garden door, he is
+interested in all sounds which resemble it, and which he can immediately
+distinguish with quite abnormal acuteness; everything else so disappears
+that even powerful sounds, at any event more powerful than that of the
+creaking gate, are overlooked. This may afford some explanation for the
+very different statements we often receive from numerous observers of
+the same event; each one had expected a different thing, and hence, had
+perceived and had ignored different things.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_252" id="page_252"></a>{252}</span></p>
+
+<p>Again, the opposition of the I and You in the person himself is a
+noteworthy thing. According to Noel, this is done particularly when one
+perceives one’s own foolish management: “How could you have behaved so
+foolishly!” Generalized it might be restated as the fact that people say
+You to themselves whenever the dual nature of the ego becomes visible,
+i.e., whenever one no longer entertains a former opinion, or when one is
+undecided and carries about contradictory intentions, or whenever one
+wants to compel himself to some achievement. Hence “How could you have
+done this?”&mdash;“Should you do this or should you not?”&mdash;“You simply shall
+tell the truth.”&mdash;More naïve people often report such inner dialogues
+faithfully and without considering that they give themselves away
+thereby, inasmuch as the judge learns at least that when this occurred
+the practical ego was a stranger to the considering ego, through whom
+the subjective conditions of the circumstances involved may be
+explained.</p>
+
+<p>What people call excellent characterizes them. Excellences are for each
+man those qualities from which others get the most advantage. Charity,
+self-sacrifice, mercy, honesty, integrity, courage, prudence, assiduity,
+and however else anything that is good and brave may be called, are
+always of use to the other fellow but barely and only indirectly the
+possessor of the virtues. Hence we praise the latter and spur others on
+to identical qualities (to our advantage). This is very barren and
+prosaic, but true. Naturally, not everybody has advantage in the
+identical virtues of other people, only in those which are of use to
+their individual situation&mdash;charity is of no use to the rich, and
+courage of no use to the protected. Hence, people give themselves away
+more frequently than they seem to, and even when no revelation of their
+inner lives can be attained from witnesses and accused, they always
+express enough to show what they consider to be virtue and what not.</p>
+
+<p>Hartenstein characterizes Hegel as a person who made his opponents out
+of straw and rags in order to be able to beat them down the more easily.
+This characterizes not only Hegel but a large group of individuals whose
+daily life consists of it. Just as there is nowhere any particularly
+definite boundary between sanity and foolishness, and everything flows
+into everything else, so it is with men and their testimonies, normal
+and abnormal. From the sober, clear, and true testimony of the former,
+to the fanciful and impossible assertions of the latter, there is a
+straight, slowly rising road on which testimony appears progressively
+less true, and more impossible.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_253" id="page_253"></a>{253}</span> No man can say where the quality of
+foolishness begins&mdash;nervousness, excitement, hysteria, over-strain,
+illusion, fantasy, and pathoformic lies, are the shadings which may be
+distinguished, and the quantity of untruth in such testimonies may be
+demonstrated, from one to one hundred per cent., without needing to skip
+a single degree. We must not, however, ignore and simply set aside even
+the testimony of the outlaws and doubtful persons, because also they may
+contain some truth, and we must pay still more attention to such as
+contain a larger percentage of truth. But with this regard we have our
+so-called smart lawyers who are over-strained, and it is they who build
+the real men of straw which cost us so much effort and labor. The form
+is indeed correct, but the content is straw, and the figure appears
+subjectively dangerous only to its creator. And he has created it
+because he likes to fight but desires also to conquer easily. The desire
+to construct such figures and to present them to the authorities is
+widespread and dangerous through our habit of seeking some particular
+motive, hatred, jealousy, a long-drawn quarrel, revenge, etc. If we do
+not find it we assume that such a motive is absent and take the
+accusation, at least for the time, to be true. We must not forget that
+frequently there can be no other defining motive than the desire to
+construct a man of straw and to conquer him. If this explanation does
+not serve we may make use finally of a curious phenomenon, called by
+Lazarus <i>heroification</i>, which repeats itself at various levels of life
+in rather younger people. If we take this concept in its widest
+application we will classify under it all forms that contain the almost
+invincible demand for attention, for talking about oneself, for growing
+famous, on the part of people who have neither the capacity nor the
+perseverance to accomplish any extraordinary thing, and who, hence, make
+use of forbidden and even criminal means to shove their personalities
+into the foreground and so to attain their end. To this class belong all
+those half-grown girls who accuse men of seduction and rape. They aim by
+this means to make themselves interesting. So do the women who announce
+all kinds of persecutions which make them talked about and condoled
+with; and the numerous people who want to do something remarkable and
+commit arson; then again certain political criminals of all times who
+became “immortal” with one single stab, and hence devoted their
+otherwise worthless lives thereto; and finally, even all those who, when
+having suffered from some theft, arson, or bodily harm, defined their
+damage as considerably greater than it actually was, not for the
+purpose<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_254" id="page_254"></a>{254}</span> of recovering their losses, but for the purpose of being
+discussed and condoled with.</p>
+
+<p>As a rule it is not difficult to recognize this “heroification,”
+inasmuch as it betrays itself through the lack of other motives, and
+appears definitely when the intent is examined and exaggerations are
+discovered which otherwise would not appear.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic 5. ASSOCIATION OF IDEAS.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 50.</h5>
+
+<p>The question of association is essentially significant for lawyers
+because, in many cases, it is only by use of it that we can discover the
+conditions of the existence of certain conceptions, by means of which
+witnesses may be brought to remember and tell the truth, etc., without
+hypnotizing them, or overtesting the correctness of their statements. We
+will cursorily make a few general observations only:</p>
+
+<p>Concerning the law of association, very little has been learned since
+the time of Aristotle. It is determined by:</p>
+
+<p>1. Similarity (the common quality of the symbol).</p>
+
+<p>2. Contrast (because every image involves opposition between its
+extremes).</p>
+
+<p>3. Co-existence, simultaneity (the being together of outer or inner
+objects in space).</p>
+
+<p>4. Succession (images call each other out in the same order in which
+they occur).</p>
+
+<p>Hume recognized only three grounds of association of
+objects&mdash;similarity, contact in time and space, and causality. Theo.
+Lipps recognizes as the really different grounds of association only
+similarity and simultaneity (the simultaneity of their presence in the
+mind, especially).</p>
+
+<p>If, however, simultaneity is to be taken in this sense it may be
+considered the sole ground of association, for if the images are not
+simultaneous there can be no question of association. Simultaneity in
+the mind is only the second process, for images are simultaneous in the
+mind only because they have occurred simultaneously, existed in the same
+space, were similar, etc. Münsterberg,<a name="FNanchor_211_211" id="FNanchor_211_211"></a><a href="#Footnote_211_211" class="fnanchor">[211]</a> who dealt with the matter
+and got important results, points out that all so-called inner
+associations, like similarity, contrast, etc., may be reduced to
+external association, and all the external associations, even that of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_255" id="page_255"></a>{255}</span>
+temporal sequence, may be reduced to co-existence, and all
+co-existence-associations are psychophysically intelligible. Further:
+“The fundamental error of all association processes leading to incorrect
+connection of ideas, must be contained in their incompleteness. One idea
+was associated with another, the latter with a third, and then we
+connect the first with the third ... a thing we should not have done,
+since the first, while it co-existed with the second, was also connected
+with many others.”</p>
+
+<p>But even this account does not account for certain difficulties, because
+some associations are simply set aside, although they should have
+occurred. Man is inclined, according to Stricker, to inhibit
+associations which are not implied in his “funded” complexes.</p>
+
+<p>If we find direct contradiction with regard to associations, the way out
+is not easy. We have then, first, to consider how, by comparatively
+remote indirection, to introduce those conditions into the “funded”
+complex, which will give rise to the association. But such a
+consideration is often a big problem in pedagogy, and we are rarely in
+the position of teaching the witness.</p>
+
+<p>There is still the additional difficulty that we frequently do not know
+the circumstance with the help of which the witness has made his
+association. Thomas Hobbes tells the story of an association which
+involved a leap from the British Civil War to the value of a denarius
+under the Emperor Tiberius. The process was as follows: King Charles I
+was given up by the Scotch for $200,000, Christ was sold for 30 denarii,
+what then was a denarius worth? In order to pursue the thread of such an
+association, one needs, anyway, only a definite quantity of historical
+knowledge, but this quantity must be possessed. But such knowledge is a
+knowledge of universal things that anybody may have, while the personal
+relations and purely subjective experiences which are at the command of
+an individual are quite unknown to any other person, and it is often
+exceedingly difficult to discover them.<a name="FNanchor_212_212" id="FNanchor_212_212"></a><a href="#Footnote_212_212" class="fnanchor">[212]</a> The case is simplest when
+one tries to aid the memory of a witness in order to make him place
+single dates, e.g., when the attempt is made to determine some time and
+the witness is reminded of certain events that occurred during the time
+in question in order to assist him in fixing the calendar time. Or
+again, when the witness is brought to the place of the crime and the
+individual conditions are associated with the local situation. But when
+not merely single dates are to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_256" id="page_256"></a>{256}</span> be associated, when complete events are
+to be associated, a profound knowledge of the situation must precede,
+otherwise no association is successful, or merely topsy-turvy results
+are attained. The difficulties which here ensue depend actually upon the
+really enormous quantity of knowledge every human being must possess in
+making use of his senses. Anything that a man has learned at school, in
+the newspapers, etc., we know approximately, but we have no knowledge of
+what a man has thought out for himself and what he has felt in his
+localized conditions, e.g., his home, his town, his travels, his
+relations and their experiences, etc.&mdash;However important this may be, we
+have no means of getting hold of it.</p>
+
+<p>Those associations which have physical expression are of importance only
+in particular cases. For example, the feeling of ants all over the body
+when you think that you have been near an anthill, or the feeling of
+physical pain on hearing the description of wounds. It is exceedingly
+funny to see how, during the lectures of dermatologists, the whole
+audience scratches that part of the body which is troubling the patient
+who is being described.</p>
+
+<p>Such associations may be legally valuable in so far as the accused who
+plead innocence make unconscious movements which imply the denied
+wounds. In any event, it is necessary to be cautious because frequently
+the merely accurate description of a wound may bring about the same
+effect in nervous persons as the sight of that wound. If, however, the
+wound is not described and even its place not mentioned, and only the
+general harm is spoken of, then if the accused reaches for that part of
+his body in which the wound of his victim is located, you have a clew,
+and your attention should be directed upon it. Such an index is worth no
+more, but even as a clew it has some value.</p>
+
+<p>All in all, we may say that the legally significant direction of
+association falls in the same class with “getting an idea.” We need
+association for the purpose of constructing an image and an explanation
+of the event in question; something must “occur to us.” We must “get an
+idea,” if we are to know how something happened. We need association,
+moreover, in order to discover that something has occurred to the
+witness.</p>
+
+<p>“Getting an idea” or “occurrence” is essentially one and the same in all
+its forms. We have only to study its several manifestations:</p>
+
+<p>1. “Constructive occurrence,” by means of which the correct thing may
+possibly be discovered in the way of combining, inferring,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_257" id="page_257"></a>{257}</span> comparing
+and testing. Here the association must be intentional and such ideas
+must be brought to a fixed image, which may be in such wise associated
+with them as to make a result possible. Suppose, e.g., that the case is
+one of arson, and the criminal is unknown. Then we will require the
+plaintiff to make local, temporal, identifying, and contrasting
+associations with the idea of all and each of his enemies, or of
+discharged servants, beggars, etc. In this wise we can attain to other
+ideas, which may help us to approach some definite theory.</p>
+
+<p>2. “Spontaneous occurrence” in which a thought appears with apparent
+suddenness for no particular reason. As a matter of fact, such
+suddenness is always caused by some conscious, and in most cases, some
+unconscious association, the thread of which can not be later sought out
+and exhibited because of its being subconscious, or of its being
+overleaped so quickly and readily that it can not be traced. Very often
+some particular sense-perception exercises an influence which unites
+simultaneous ideas, now here again united. Suppose once during some
+extraordinary sound, e.g., the ringing of a bell, which I do not often
+hear, I had seen somebody. Now when I hear that bell ringing I will
+think of the person without perhaps knowing the definite
+association&mdash;i.e., the connection of the man with the tone of the bell
+occurs unconsciously. This may go still further. That man, when I first
+saw him, might have worn, perhaps, a red necktie, let us say
+poppy-red&mdash;it may now happen that every time I hear that bell-note I
+think of a field of poppy-flowers. Now who can pursue this road of
+association?</p>
+
+<p>3. “Accluding occurrence,” in which, in the process of the longest
+possible calm retention of an idea, another appears of itself and
+associates with the first. E. g., I meet a man who greets me although I
+do not recognize him. I may perhaps know who he is, but I do not
+spontaneously think of it and can not get at his identity
+constructively, because of lack of material. I therefore expect
+something from this “accluding occurrence” and with my eyes shut I try
+as long as possible to keep in mind the idea of this man. Suddenly, I
+see him before me with serious face and folded hands, on his right a
+similar individual and a similar one on his left, above them a high
+window with a curtain&mdash;the man was a juryman who sat opposite me. But
+the memory is not exhausted with this. I aim to banish his image as
+seated and keep him again before my eyes. I see an apparent gate beyond
+him with shelves behind; it is the image of a shop-keeper in a small
+town who is standing before<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_258" id="page_258"></a>{258}</span> the door of his shop. I hold this image
+straining before my eyes&mdash;suddenly a wagon appears with just that kind
+of trapping which I have only once seen to deck the equipage of a
+land-owner. I know well who this is, what the little town near his
+estate is called, and now I suddenly know that the man whose name I want
+to remember is the merchant X of Y who once was a juryman in my court.
+This means of the longest possible retention of an idea, I have made
+frequent use of with the more intelligent witnesses (it rarely succeeds
+with women because they are restless), and all in all, with surprising
+effects.</p>
+
+<p>4. “Retrospective occurrence,” which consists of the development of
+associations backward. E. g.&mdash;do what I will, I can not remember the
+name of a certain man, but I know that he has a title to nobility, which
+is identical with the name of a small town in Obertfalz. Finally, the
+name of the town Hirschau occurs to me, and now I easily associate
+backwards, “Schaller von Hirschau.” It is, of course, natural that words
+should unroll themselves forwards with habitual ease, but backwards only
+when we think of the word we are trying to remember, as written, and
+then associate the whole as a MS. image. This is unhappily difficult to
+use in helping another.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic 6. RECOLLECTION AND MEMORY.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 51.</h5>
+
+<p>In direct connection with the association of ideas is our recollection
+and memory, which are only next to perception in legal importance in the
+knowledge of the witness. Whether the witness wants to tell the truth
+is, of course, a question which depends upon other matters; but whether
+he can tell the truth depends upon perception and memory. Now the latter
+is a highly complicated and variously organized function which is
+difficult to understand, even in the daily life, and much more so when
+everything depends upon whether the witness has noticed anything, how,
+how long, what part of the impression has sunk more deeply into his
+mind, and in what direction his defects of memory are to be sought. It
+would be inexcusable in the lawyer not to think about this and to make
+equivalent use of all the phenomena that are presented to him. To
+overlook the rich literature and enormous work that has been devoted to
+this subject is to raise involuntarily the question, for whom was it all
+done? Nobody needs a thorough-going knowledge of the essence of memory
+more than the lawyer.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_259" id="page_259"></a>{259}</span></p>
+
+<p>I advise every criminalist to study the literature of memory and
+recommend the works of Münsterberg, Ribot, Ebbinghaus, Cattell,
+Kräpelin, Lasson, Nicolai Lange, Arreat, Richet, Forel, Galton,
+Biervliet, Paneth, Fauth, Sander, Koch, Lehmann, Féré, Jodl,<a name="FNanchor_213_213" id="FNanchor_213_213"></a><a href="#Footnote_213_213" class="fnanchor">[213]</a> etc.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 52.(a) The Essence of Memory.</h5>
+
+<p>Our ignorance concerning memory is as great as its universal importance,
+and as our indebtedness to it for what we are and possess. At best we
+have, when explaining it, to make use of images.</p>
+
+<p>Plato accounts for memory in the “Theaetetus” by the image of the seal
+ring which impresses wax; the character and duration of the impression
+depends upon the size, purity, and hardness of the wax. Fichte says,
+“The spirit does not conserve its products,&mdash;the single ideas,
+volitions, and feelings are conserved by the mind and constitute the
+ground of its inexhaustibly retentive memory.... The possibility of
+recalling what has once been independently done, this remains in the
+spirit.” James Sully compares the receptivity of memory with the
+infusion of dampness into an old MS. Draper also brings a physical
+example: If you put a flat object upon the surface of a cold, smooth
+metal and then breathe on the metal and, after the moisture has
+disappeared, remove the object, you may recall its image months after,
+whenever you breathe on the place in question. Another has called memory
+the safe of the mind. It is the opinion of E. Hering<a name="FNanchor_214_214" id="FNanchor_214_214"></a><a href="#Footnote_214_214" class="fnanchor">[214]</a> that what we
+once were conscious of and are conscious of again, does not endure as
+image but as echo such as may be heard in a tuning fork when it is
+properly struck. Reid asserts that memory does not have present ideas,
+but past things for its object. Natorp explains recollection as an
+identification of the unidentical, of not-now with now. According to
+Herbart and his school,<a name="FNanchor_215_215" id="FNanchor_215_215"></a><a href="#Footnote_215_215" class="fnanchor">[215]</a> memory consists in the possibility of
+recognizing the molecular arrangements which had been left by past
+impressions in the ganglion<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_260" id="page_260"></a>{260}</span> cells, and in reading them in identical
+fashion. According to Wundt and his pupils, the problem is one of the
+disposition of the central organs. And it is the opinion of James Mill
+that the content of recollection is not only the idea of the remembered
+object, but also the idea that the object had been experienced before.
+Both ideas together constitute the whole of that state of mind which we
+denote as memory. Spinoza<a name="FNanchor_216_216" id="FNanchor_216_216"></a><a href="#Footnote_216_216" class="fnanchor">[216]</a> deals freely with memory, and asserts
+that mankind does not control it inasmuch as all thoughts, ideas,
+resolutions of spirits, are bare results of memories, so that human
+freedom is excluded. Uphues<a name="FNanchor_217_217" id="FNanchor_217_217"></a><a href="#Footnote_217_217" class="fnanchor">[217]</a> distinguishes between memory and the
+conception which is presupposed in the recognition of an object
+different from that conception. This is the theory developed by
+Aristotle.</p>
+
+<p>According to Berkeley and Hume recognition is not directed upon a
+different object, nor does it presuppose one; the activity of
+recognition consists either in the exhibition or the creation of the
+object. Recognition lends the idea an independence which does not belong
+to it and in that way turns it into a thing, objectifies it, and posits
+it as substantial. Maudsley makes use of the notion that it is possible
+to represent any former content of consciousness as attended to so that
+it may again come into the center of the field of consciousness.
+Dorner<a name="FNanchor_218_218" id="FNanchor_218_218"></a><a href="#Footnote_218_218" class="fnanchor">[218]</a> explains recognition as follows: “The possible is not only
+the merely possible in opposition to the actual; it is much more proper
+to conceive being as possible, i.e., as amenable to logical thinking;
+without this there could be no recognition.” Külpe<a name="FNanchor_219_219" id="FNanchor_219_219"></a><a href="#Footnote_219_219" class="fnanchor">[219]</a> concerns himself
+with the problem of the difference between perceptive images and memory
+images and whether the latter are only weaker than the former as English
+philosophers and psychologists assert. He concludes that they are not
+so.</p>
+
+<p>When we take all these opinions concerning memory together we conclude
+that neither any unity nor any clear description of the matter has been
+attained. Ebbinghaus’s sober statement may certainly be correct: “Our
+knowledge of memory rises almost exclusively from the observation of
+extreme, especially striking cases. Whenever we ask about more special
+solutions concerning the detail of what has been counted up, and their
+other relations of dependence, their structure, etc., there are no
+answers.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_261" id="page_261"></a>{261}</span>”</p>
+
+<p>Nobody has as yet paid attention to the simple daily events which
+constitute the routine of the criminalists. We find little instruction
+concerning them, and our difficulties as well as our mistakes are
+thereby increased. Even the modern repeatedly cited experimental
+investigations have no direct bearing upon our work.</p>
+
+<p>We will content ourselves with viewing the individual conceptions of
+memory and recollection as occurring in particular cases and with
+considering them, now one, now the other, according to the requirements
+of the case. We shall consider the general relation of “reproduction” to
+memory. “Reproduction” we shall consider in a general sense and shall
+subsume under it also the so-called involuntary reproductions which rise
+in the forms and qualities of past events without being evoked, i.e.,
+which rise with the help of unconscious activity through the more or
+less independent association of ideas. Exactly this unconscious
+reproduction, this apparently involuntary activity, is perhaps the most
+fruitful, and we therefore unjustly meet with unexceptionable distrust
+the later sudden “occurrence,” especially when these occurrences happen
+to defendant and his witnesses. It is true that they frequently deceive
+us because behind the sudden occurrence there often may be nothing more
+than a better training and instruction from experienced cell-mates;
+though very often the circumstances are such that the suspect has
+succeeded through some released prisoner, or by a blackened letter, in
+sending a message from his prison, by means of which false witnesses of
+alibi, etc., are provided. Distrust is in any event justified, when his
+most important witnesses suddenly “occur” to the accused. But this does
+not always happen, and we find in our own experience evidence of the
+fact that memory and the capacity to recall something often depend upon
+health, feeling, location, and chance associations which can not be
+commanded, and happen as accidentally as anything in life can. That we
+should remember anything at all depends upon the point of time.
+Everybody knows how important twilight may be for memory. Indeed,
+twilight has been called the visiting-hour of recollection, and it is
+always worth while to observe the situation when anybody asserts that
+some matter of importance occurred to him in the twilight. Such an
+assertion merits, at least, further examination. Now, if we only know
+how these occurrences constitute themselves, it would not be difficult
+to study them out and to estimate their probability. But we do not know,
+and we have to depend, primarily, on observation<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_262" id="page_262"></a>{262}</span> and test. Not one of
+the theories applied is supported by experience altogether.</p>
+
+<p>They may be divided into three essential groups.</p>
+
+<p>1. What is received, fades away, becomes a “trace,” and is more or less
+overlaid by new perceptions. When these latter are ever set aside, the
+old trace comes into the foreground.</p>
+
+<p>2. The ideas sink, darken, and disintegrate. If they receive support and
+intensification they regain complete clearness.</p>
+
+<p>3. The ideas crumble up, lose their parts. When anything occurs that
+reunites them and restores what is lost, they become whole again.</p>
+
+<p>Ebbinghaus maintains, correctly enough, that not one of these
+explanations is universally satisfactory, but it must be granted that
+now one, now another is useful in controlling this or that particular
+case. The processes of the destruction of an idea, may be as various as
+those of the destruction and restoration of a building. If a building is
+destroyed by fire, I certainly can not explain the image given by merely
+assuming that it was the victim of the hunger of time. A building which
+has suffered because of the sinking of the earth I shall have to image
+by quite other means than those I would use if it had been destroyed by
+water.</p>
+
+<p>For the same reason when, in court, somebody asserts a sudden
+“occurrence,” or when we want to help him and something occurs to him,
+we shall have to proceed in different fashion and determine our action
+empirically by the conditions of the moment. We shall have to go back,
+with the help of the witness, to the beginning of the appearance of the
+idea in question and study its development as far as the material
+permits us. In a similar manner we must make use of every possibility of
+explanation when we are studying the disappearance of ideas. At one
+point or another we shall find certain connections. One chief mistake in
+such reconstructive work lies in overlooking the fact that no individual
+is merely passive when he receives sensations; he is bound to make use
+of a certain degree of activity. Locke and Bonnet have already mentioned
+this fact, and anybody may verify it by comparing his experiments of
+trying to avoid seeing or hearing, and trying actively to see or to
+hear. For this reason it is foolish to ask anybody how it happened that
+he perceived less than another, because both have equally good senses
+and were able to perceive as much. On the other hand, the grade of
+activity each has made use of in perception is rarely inquired into, and
+this is the more unfortunate because memory is often proportionate<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_263" id="page_263"></a>{263}</span> to
+activity. If, then, we are to explain how various statements concerning
+contemporaneous matters, observed a long time ago, are to be combined,
+it will not be enough to compare the memory, sensory acuteness, and
+intelligence of the witnesses. The chief point of attention should be
+the activity which has been put in motion during the sense-perception in
+question.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 53. (b) The Forms of Reproduction.</h5>
+
+<p>Kant analyzes memory:</p>
+
+<p>1. As apprehending something in memory.</p>
+
+<p>2. As retaining it for a long time.</p>
+
+<p>3. As immediately recalling it.</p>
+
+<p>One might, perhaps add, as 4: that the memory-image is most conformable
+to the actual one. This is not identical with the fact that we recollect
+at all. It is to be assumed that the forms of memory-images vary very
+much with different persons, because each individual verifies his images
+of various objects variously. I know two men equally well for an equal
+time, and yet have two memory-images of them. When I recall one, a
+life-sized, moving, and moved figure appears before me, even the very
+man himself; when I think of the other, I see only a small, bare
+silhouette, foggy and colorless, and the difference does not require
+that the first shall be an interesting and the second a boresome
+individual. This is still clearer in memory of travels. One city appears
+in recollection with size, color and movement, real; the other, in which
+I sojourned for the same length of time and only a few days later, under
+similar conditions of weather, etc., appears like a small, flat
+photograph. Inquiry reveals that this is as true of other people as of
+me, and that the problem of memory is much differentiated by the method
+of recollection. In fact, this is so little in doubt that at some
+periods of time there are more images of one sort than of another and
+what is a rule for one kind of individual is an exception for another.</p>
+
+<p>Now there is a series of phenomena for which we possess particular types
+of images which often have little to do with the things themselves. So
+Exner says: “We might know the physiognomy of an individual very
+accurately, be able to pick him out among a thousand, without being
+clear about the differences between him and another; indeed, we often do
+not know the color of his eyes and hair, yet marvel when it suddenly
+becomes different.”</p>
+
+<p>Kries<a name="FNanchor_220_220" id="FNanchor_220_220"></a><a href="#Footnote_220_220" class="fnanchor">[220]</a> calls attention to another fact: “When we try to mark in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_264" id="page_264"></a>{264}</span>
+memory the contour of a very well-known coin, we deceive ourselves,
+unbelievably&mdash;when we see the coin the size we imagine it to be, we
+wonder still more.”</p>
+
+<p>Lotze shows correctly that memory never brings back a blinding flash of
+light, or the over-powering blow of an explosion with the intensity of
+the image in proper relation to the impression. I believe that it is not
+necessary to go so far, for example, and hold that not even the
+sparkling of a star, the crack of a pistol, etc., are kept in memory
+with more than partial implication of the event. Maudsley points out
+correctly that we can have no memory of pain&mdash;“because the disturbance
+of nervous elements disappears just as soon as their integrity is again
+established.” Perhaps, also, because when the pain has disappeared, the
+tertium comparationis is lacking. But one need not limit oneself to
+pain, but may assert that we lack memory of all unpleasant sensations.
+The first time one jumps into the water from a very high spring-board,
+the first time one’s horse rises over a hurdle, or the first time the
+bullets whistle past one’s ear in battle, are all most unpleasant
+experiences, and whoever denies it is deceiving himself or his friends.
+But when we think of them we feel that they were not so bad, that one
+merely was very much afraid, etc. But this is not the case; there is
+simply no memory for these sensations.</p>
+
+<p>This fact is of immense importance in examination and I believe that no
+witness has been able effectively to describe the pain caused by a body
+wound, the fear roused by arson, the fright at a threat, not, indeed,
+because he lacked the words to do so, but because he had not sufficient
+memory for these impressions, and because he has nothing to-day with
+which to compare them. Time, naturally, in such cases makes a great
+difference, and if a man were to describe his experiences shortly after
+their uncomfortable occurrence he would possibly remember them better
+than he would later on. Here, if the examiner has experienced something
+similar, years ago, he is likely to accuse the witness of exaggeration
+under the belief that his own experience has shown the thing to be not
+so bad. Such an accusation will be unjust in most instances. The
+differences in conception depend to a large degree on differences in
+time, and consequent fading in memory. Several other particular
+conditions may be added.</p>
+
+<p>Kant, e.g., calls attention to the power we have over our fancy: “In
+memory, our will must control our imagination and our imagination<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_265" id="page_265"></a>{265}</span> must
+be able to determine voluntarily the reproduction of ideas of past
+time.”</p>
+
+<p>But these ideas may be brought up not only voluntarily; we have also a
+certain degree of power in making these images clearer and more
+accurate. It is rather foolish to have the examiner invite the witness
+to “exert his memory, to give himself the trouble, etc.” This effects
+nothing, or something wrong. But if the examiner is willing to take the
+trouble, he may excite the imagination of the witness and give him the
+opportunity to exercise his power over the imagination. How this is done
+depends naturally upon the nature and education of the witness, but the
+judge may aid him just as the skilful teacher may aid the puzzled pupil
+to remember. When the pianist has completely forgotten a piece of music
+that he knew very well, two or three chords may lead him to explicate
+these chords forward or backward, and then&mdash;one step after another&mdash;he
+reproduces the whole piece. Of course the chords which are brought to
+the mind of the player must be properly chosen or the procedure is
+useless.</p>
+
+<p>There are rules for the selection of these clews. According to
+Ebbinghaus: “The difference in the content of the recollected is due to
+discoverable causes. Melodies may become painful because of their
+undesirable obstinacy in return. Forms and colors do not usually recur,
+and if they do, they do so with noticeable claims on distinctness and
+certainty. Past emotional conditions are reproduced only with effort, in
+comparatively pallid schemes, and often only by means of the
+accompanying movements.” We may follow these clews, in some directions
+at least, to our advantage. Of course, nobody will say that one should
+play tunes to witnesses in order to make them remember, because the
+tunes have sunk into the memory with such undesirable obstinacy as to be
+spurs to recollection. It is just as futile to operate with forms and
+colors, or to excite emotional conditions. But what has been said leads
+us back to the ancient rule of working so far as is possible with the
+constantly well-developed sense of location. Cicero already was aware of
+this: “Tanta vis admonitionis inest in locis, id quidem infinitum in hac
+urbe, quocumque enim ingredimur, in aliquam historiam vestigium
+possumus.” Indeed he deduces his whole doctrine of memory from the sense
+of location, or he at least justifies those who do so.</p>
+
+<p>If, then, we bring a witness, who in our court house recollects nothing,
+in locum rei sitae, all the mentioned conditions act favorably.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_266" id="page_266"></a>{266}</span><a name="FNanchor_221_221" id="FNanchor_221_221"></a><a href="#Footnote_221_221" class="fnanchor">[221]</a>
+The most influential is the sense of location itself, inasmuch as every
+point at which something significant occurred not only is the content of
+an association, but is also the occasion of one. It is, moreover, to be
+remembered that reproduction is a difficult task, and that all
+unnecessary additional difficulties which are permitted to accrue,
+definitely hinder it. Here, too, there is only a definite number of
+units of psychical energy for use, and the number which must be used for
+other matters is lost to the principal task. If, e.g., I recall an event
+which had occurred near the window of a definite house, I should have
+considerable difficulty to recall the form of the house, the location of
+the window, its appearance, etc., and by the time this attempt has
+barely begun to succeed, I have made so much effort that there is not
+sufficient power left for the recollection of the event we are really
+concerned with. Moreover, a mistake in the recollection of extraneous
+objects and the false associations thereby caused, may be very
+disturbing to the correctness of the memory of the chief thing. If,
+however, I am on the spot, if I can see everything that I had seen at
+the time in question, all these difficulties are disposed of.</p>
+
+<p>We have still to count in the other conditions mentioned above. If
+acoustic effects can appear anywhere, they can appear in the locality
+where they first occurred. The same bell ringing, or a similar noise,
+may occur accidentally, the murmur of the brook is the same, the rustle
+of the wind, determined by local topography, vegetation, especially by
+trees, again by buildings, varies with the place. And even if only a
+fine ear can indicate what the difference consists of, every normal
+individual senses that difference unconsciously. Even the “universal
+noise,” which is to be found everywhere, will be differentiated and
+characteristic according to locality, and that, together with all these
+other things, is extraordinarily favorable to the association of ideas
+and the reproduction of the past. Colors and forms are the same, similar
+orders may occur, and possibly the same attitudes are awakened, since
+these depend in so great degree upon external conditions. Now, once
+these with their retrospective tendencies are given, the recollection of
+any contemporary event increases, as one might say, spontaneously.
+Whatever may especially occur to aid the memory of an event, occurs best
+at the place where the event itself happened, and hence, one can not too
+insistently advise the examination of witnesses, in important cases,
+only in loco rei sitae. Incidentally, the judge himself learns the real<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_267" id="page_267"></a>{267}</span>
+situation and saves himself, thereby, much time and effort, for he is
+enabled in a few words to render the circumstantial descriptions which
+have to be composed with so much difficulty when the things are not seen
+and must be derived from the testimonies of the witnesses themselves.</p>
+
+<p>Whoever does not believe in the importance of conducting the examination
+at the place of an event, needs only to repeat his examination twice,
+once at the court, and again at the place&mdash;then he certainly will doubt
+no more. Of course the thing should not be so done that the event should
+be discussed with the witness at the place of its occurrence and then
+the protocol written in the house of the mayor, or in an inn half an
+hour away&mdash;the protocol must to the very last stroke of the pen be
+written then and there, in order that every impression may be renewed
+and every smallest doubt studied and corrected. Then the differences
+between what has passed, what has been later added, and what is found
+to-day can be easily determined by sticking to the rule of Uphues, that
+the recognition of the present as present is always necessary for the
+eventual recognition of the past. Kant has already suggested what
+surprising results such an examination will give: “There are many ideas
+which we shall never again in our lives be conscious of, unless some
+occasion cause them to spring up in the memory.” But such a particularly
+powerful occasion is locality, inasmuch as it brings into play all the
+influences which our senses are capable of responding to.<a name="FNanchor_222_222" id="FNanchor_222_222"></a><a href="#Footnote_222_222" class="fnanchor">[222]</a></p>
+
+<p>Of course the possibility of artificially-stimulated memory disappears
+like all memory, with the lapse of time. As a matter of fact, we know
+that those of our experiences which concern particular persons and
+things, and which are recalled at the sight of those persons and things,
+become, later on, when the connections of images have been broken,
+capable only of awakening general notions, even though the persons or
+things are as absolutely present as before. But very unfavorable
+circumstances must have been at work before such a situation can
+develop.</p>
+
+<p>It is characteristic, as is popularly known, that memory can be
+intensified by means of special occasions. It is Höfler’s opinion that
+the Spartan boys were whipped at the boundary stones of their country in
+order that they might recall their position, and even now-a-days our
+peasants have the custom, when setting up new boundary stones, of
+grasping small boys by the ears and hair in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_268" id="page_268"></a>{268}</span> order that they shall the
+better remember the position of the new boundary mark when, as grown
+men, they will be questioned about it. This being the case, it is safer
+to believe a witness when he can demonstrate some intensely influential
+event which was contemporaneous with the situation under discussion, and
+which reminds him of that situation.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 54. (c) The Peculiarities of Reproduction.</h5>
+
+<p>The differences in memory which men exhibit are not, among their other
+human qualities, the least. As is well known, this difference is
+expressed not only in the vigor, reliability, and promptness of their
+memory, but also in the field of memory, in the accompaniment of rapid
+prehensivity by rapid forgetfulness, or slow prehensivity and slow
+forgetfulness, or in the contrast between narrow, but intense memory,
+and broad but approximate memory.</p>
+
+<p>Certain special considerations arise with regard to the field of
+greatest memory. As a rule, it may be presupposed that a memory which
+has developed with especial vigor in one direction has generally done
+this at the cost of memory in another direction. Thus, as a rule, memory
+for numbers and memory for names exclude each other. My father had so
+bad a memory for names that very frequently he could not quickly recall
+my Christian name, and I was his own son. Frequently he had to repeat
+the names of his four brothers until he hit upon mine, and that was not
+always a successful way.<a name="FNanchor_223_223" id="FNanchor_223_223"></a><a href="#Footnote_223_223" class="fnanchor">[223]</a> When he undertook an introduction it was
+always: “My honored m&mdash;m&mdash;m,”&mdash;“The dear friend of my youth m&mdash;m&mdash;m.” On
+the other hand, his memory for figures was astounding. He noted and
+remembered not only figures that interested him for one reason or
+another, but also those that had not the slightest connection with him,
+and that he had read merely by accident. He could recall instantaneously
+the population of countries and cities, and I remember that once, in the
+course of an accidental conversation, he mentioned the production of
+beetroot in a certain country for the last ten years, or the factory
+number of my watch that he had given me fifteen years before and had
+never since held in his hand. He often said that the figures he carried
+in his head troubled him. In this regard the symptom may be mentioned
+that he was not a good mathematician, but so exceptional a card player
+that nobody wanted to play with him. He noticed<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_269" id="page_269"></a>{269}</span> every single card dealt
+and could immediately calculate what cards each player had, and was able
+to say at the beginning of the game how many points each must have.</p>
+
+<p>Such various developments are numerous and of importance for us because
+we frequently are unwilling to believe the witness testifying in a
+certain field for the reason that his memory in another field had shown
+itself to be unreliable. Schubert and Drobisch cite examples of this
+sort of thing, but the observations of moderns, like Charcot and Binet,
+concerning certain lightning calculators (Inaudi, Diamandi, etc.),
+confirm the fact that the memory for figures is developed at the expense
+of other matters. Linné tells that Lapps, who otherwise note nothing
+whatever, are able to recognize individually each one of their
+numberless reindeer. Again, the Dutch friend of flowers, Voorhelm, had a
+memory only for tulips, but this was so great that he could recognize
+twelve hundred species of tulips merely from the dry bulbs.</p>
+
+<p>These fields seem to be of a remarkably narrow extent. Besides
+specialists (numismatists, zoologists, botanists, heralds, etc.) who,
+apart from their stupendous memory for their particular matters, appear
+to have no memory for other things, there are people who can remember
+only rhymes, melodies, shapes, forms, titles, modes, service,
+relationships, etc. V. Volkmar has devoted some space to showing this.
+He has also called attention to the fact that the semi-idiotic have an
+astounding memory for certain things. This has been confirmed by other
+students. One of them, Du Potet,<a name="FNanchor_224_224" id="FNanchor_224_224"></a><a href="#Footnote_224_224" class="fnanchor">[224]</a> who is perhaps the expert in the
+popular mind of the Austrian Alps, has made it especially clear. As in
+all mountainous regions there are a great number of those unfortunate
+idiots who, when fully developed, are called cretins, and in their
+milder form are semi-human, but do not possess intelligence enough to
+earn their own living. Nevertheless, many of them possess astounding
+memories for certain things. One of them is thoroughly conversant with
+the weather prophecy in the calendar for the past and the present year,
+and can cite it for each day. Another knows the day and the history of
+every saint of the Catholic church. Another knows the boundaries of
+every estate, and the name, etc., of its owner. Another knows each
+particular animal in a collective herd of cattle, knows to whom it
+belongs, etc. Of course not one of these unfortunates can read. Drobisch
+mentions an idiotic boy, not altogether able to speak, who, through the
+untiring efforts of a lady, succeeded finally in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_270" id="page_270"></a>{270}</span> learning to read. Then
+after hasty reading of any piece of printed matter, he could reproduce
+what he had read word for word, even when the book had been one in a
+foreign and unknown tongue. Another author mentions a cretin who could
+tell exactly the birthdays and death-days of the inhabitants of his town
+for a decade.</p>
+
+<p>It is a matter of experience that the semi-idiotic have an excellent
+memory and can accurately reproduce events which are really impressive
+or alarming, and which have left effects upon them. Many a thing which
+normal people have barely noticed, or which they have set aside in their
+memory and have forgotten, is remembered by the semi-idiotic and
+reproduced. On the contrary, the latter do not remember things which
+normal people do, and which in the latter frequently have a disturbing
+influence on the important point they may be considering. Thus the
+semi-idiotic may be able to describe important things better than normal
+people. As a rule, however, they disintegrate what is to be remembered
+too much, and offer too little to make any effective interpretation
+possible. If such a person, e.g., is witness of a shooting, he notices
+the shot only, and gives very brief attention to what precedes, what
+follows, or what is otherwise contemporary. Until his examination he not
+only knows nothing about it, but even doubts its occurrence. This is the
+dangerous element in his testimony. Generally it is right to believe his
+kind willingly. “Children and fools tell the truth,” what they say bears
+the test, and so when they deny an event there is a tendency to overlook
+the fact that they have forgotten a great deal and hence to believe that
+the event had really not occurred.</p>
+
+<p>Similar experiences are yielded in the case of the memory of children.
+Children and animals live only in the present, because they have no
+historically organic ideas in mind. They react directly upon stimuli,
+without any disturbance of their idea of the past. This is valid,
+however, only for very small children. At a later age children make good
+witnesses, and a well-brought-up boy is the best witness in the world.
+We have only to keep in mind that later events tend in the child’s mind
+to wipe out earlier ones of the same kind.<a name="FNanchor_225_225" id="FNanchor_225_225"></a><a href="#Footnote_225_225" class="fnanchor">[225]</a> It used to be said that
+children and nations think only of the latest events. And that is
+universally true. Just as children abandon even their most precious toys
+for the sake of a new one, so they tell only the latest events in their
+experience. And this is especially the case when there are a great many
+facts&mdash;<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_271" id="page_271"></a>{271}</span>e.g., repeated mal-treatment or thefts, etc. Children will tell
+only of the very last, the earlier one may absolutely have disappeared
+from the memory.</p>
+
+<p>Bolton,<a name="FNanchor_226_226" id="FNanchor_226_226"></a><a href="#Footnote_226_226" class="fnanchor">[226]</a> who has made a systematic study of the memory of children,
+comes to the familiar conclusion that the scope of memory is measured by
+the child’s capacity of concentrating its attention. Memory and acute
+intelligence are not always cognate (the latter proposition, true not
+for children alone, was known to Aristotle). As a rule girls have better
+memory than boys (it might also be said that their intelligence is
+generally greater, so long as no continuous intellectual work, and
+especially the creation of one’s own ideas, is required). Of figures
+read only once, children will retain a maximum of six. (Adults, as a
+rule, also retain no more.) The time of forgetting in general has been
+excellently schematized by Ebbinghaus. He studied the forgetting of a
+series of thirteen nonsense syllables, previously learned, in such a way
+as to be able to measure the time necessary to re-learn what was
+forgotten. At the end of an hour he needed half the original time, at
+the end of eight hours two-thirds of that time. Then the process of loss
+became slower. At the end of twenty-four hours he required a third, at
+the end of six days a fourth, at the end of a month a clear fifth, of
+the time required at first.</p>
+
+<p>I have tested this in a rough way on various and numerous persons, and
+invariably found the results to tally. Of course, the measure of time
+alters with the memory in question, but the relations remain identical,
+so that one may say approximately how much may be known of any subject
+at the end of a fixed time, if only one ratio is tested. To criminalists
+this investigation of Ebbinghaus’ is especially recommended.</p>
+
+<p>The conditions of prehensivity of particular instances are too uncertain
+and individual to permit any general identifications or
+differentiations. There are certain approximating propositions&mdash;e.g.,
+that it is easier to keep in mind rhymed verse than prose, and definite
+rows and forms than block masses. But, on the one hand, what is here
+involved is only the ease of memory, not the content of memory, and on
+the other hand there are too many exceptions&mdash;e.g., there are many
+people who retain prose better than verse. Hence, it is not worth while
+to go further in the creation of such rules. Forty or fifty years ago,
+investigations looking toward them<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_272" id="page_272"></a>{272}</span> had been pursued with pleasure, and
+they are recorded in the journals of the time.</p>
+
+<p>That aged persons have, as is well known, a good memory for what is long
+past, and a poor one for recent occurrences is not remarkable. It is to
+be explained by the fact that age seems to be accompanied with a
+decrease of energy in the brain, so that it no longer assimilates
+influences, and the imagination becomes dark and the judgment of facts
+incorrect. Hence, the mistakes are those of apperception of new
+things,&mdash;what has already been perceived is not influenced by this loss
+of energy.</p>
+
+<p>Again, it should not rouse astonishment that so remarkable and
+delicately organized a function as memory should be subject to anomalies
+and abnormalities of all kinds. We must take it as a rule not to assume
+the impossibility of the extraordinary phenomena that appear and to
+consult the expert about them.<a name="FNanchor_227_227" id="FNanchor_227_227"></a><a href="#Footnote_227_227" class="fnanchor">[227]</a> The physician will explain the
+pathological and pathoformic, but there is a series of memory-forms
+which do not appear to be diseased, yet which are significantly rare and
+hence appear improbable. Such forms will require the examination of an
+experienced expert psychologist who, even when unable to explain the
+particular case, will still be able to throw some light on it from the
+literature of the subject. This literature is rich in examples of the
+same thing; they have been eagerly collected and scientifically studied
+in the earlier psychological investigations. Modern psychology,
+unfortunately, does not study these problems, and in any event, its task
+is so enormous that the practical problems of memory in the daily life
+must be set aside for a later time. We have to cite only a few cases
+handled in literature.</p>
+
+<p>The best known is the story of an Irish servant girl, who, during fever,
+recited Hebrew sentences which she had heard from a preacher when a
+child. Another case tells of a very great fool who, during fever,
+repeated prolonged conversations with his master, so that the latter
+decided to make him his secretary. But when the servant got well he
+became as foolish as ever. The criminalist who has the opportunity of
+examining deeply wounded, feverish persons, makes similar, though not
+such remarkable observations. These people give him the impression of
+being quite intelligent persons who tell their stories accurately and
+correctly. Later on, after they are cured, one gets a different opinion
+of their intelligence. Still more frequently one observes that these
+feverish, wounded victims know<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_273" id="page_273"></a>{273}</span> more, and know more correctly about the
+crime than they are able to tell after they have recovered. What they
+tell, moreover, is quite reliable, provided, of course, they are not
+delirious or crazy.</p>
+
+<p>The cases are innumerable in which people have lost their memory for a
+short time, or for ever. I have already elsewhere mentioned an event
+which happened to a friend of mine who received a sudden blow on the
+head while in the mountains and completely lost all memory of what had
+occurred a few minutes before the blow. After this citation I got a
+number of letters from my colleagues who had dealt with similar cases. I
+infer, therefore, that the instances in which people lose their memory
+of what has occurred before the event by way of a blow on the head, are
+numerous.<a name="FNanchor_228_228" id="FNanchor_228_228"></a><a href="#Footnote_228_228" class="fnanchor">[228]</a></p>
+
+<p>Legally such cases are important because we would not believe statements
+in that regard made by accused, inasmuch as there seems to be no reason
+why the events <i>before</i> the wound should disappear, just as if each
+impression needed a fixative, like a charcoal drawing. But as this
+phenomenon is described by the most reliable persons, who have no axe to
+grind in the matter, we must believe it, other things being equal, even
+when the defendant asserts it. That such cases are not isolated is shown
+in the fact that people who have been stunned by lightning have later
+forgotten everything that occurred shortly before the flash. The case is
+similar in poisoning with carbonic-acid gas, with mushrooms, and in
+strangulation. The latter cases are especially important, inasmuch as
+the wounded person, frequently the only witness, has nothing to say
+about the event.</p>
+
+<p>I cannot omit recalling in this place a case I have already mentioned
+elsewhere, that of Brunner. In 1893 in the town of Dietkirchen, in
+Bavaria, the teacher Brunner’s two children were murdered, and his wife
+and servant girl badly wounded. After some time the woman regained
+consciousness, seemed to know what she was about, but could not tell the
+investigating justice who had been sent on to take charge of the case,
+anything whatever concerning the event, the criminal, etc. When he had
+concluded his negative protocol she signed it, Martha Guttenberger,
+instead of Martha Brunner. Fortunately the official noted this and
+wanted to know what relation she had to the name Guttenberger. He was
+told that a former lover of the servant girl, an evil-mouthed fellow,
+was called by that name. He was traced to Munich and there arrested. He
+immediately confessed to the crime. And when Mrs. Brunner<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_274" id="page_274"></a>{274}</span> became quite
+well she recalled accurately that she had definitely recognized
+Guttenberger as the murderer.<a name="FNanchor_229_229" id="FNanchor_229_229"></a><a href="#Footnote_229_229" class="fnanchor">[229]</a></p>
+
+<p>The psychological process was clearly one in which the idea,
+“Guttenberger is the criminal,” had sunk into the secondary sphere of
+consciousness, the subconsciousness,&mdash;so that it was only clear to the
+real consciousness that the name Guttenberger had something to do with
+the crime. The woman in her weakened mental condition thought she had
+already sufficiently indicated this fact, so that she overlooked the
+name, and hence wrote it unconsciously. Only when the pressure on her
+brain was reduced did the idea that Guttenberger was the murderer pass
+from the subconscious to the conscious. Psychiatrists explain the case
+as follows:</p>
+
+<p>The thing here involved is retrograde amnesia. It is nowadays believed
+that this phenomenon in the great majority of cases occurs according to
+the rule which defines traumatic hysteria, i.e., as ideogen. The
+ideational complexes in question are forced into the subconsciousness,
+whence, on occasion, by aid of associative processes, hypnotic
+concentration, and such other similar elements, they can be raised into
+consciousness. In this case, the suppressed ideational complex
+manifested itself in signing the name.</p>
+
+<p>All legal medicine discusses the fact that wounds in the head make
+people forget single words. Taine, Guerin, Abercrombie, etc., cite many
+examples, and Winslow tells of a woman who, after considerable bleeding,
+forgot all her French. The story is also told that Henry Holland had so
+tired himself that he forgot German. When he grew stronger and recovered
+he regained all he had forgotten.</p>
+
+<p><i>Now would we believe a prisoner who told us any one of these things?</i></p>
+
+<p>The phenomena of memories which occur in dying persons who have long
+forgotten and never even thought of these memories, are very
+significant. English psychologists cite the case of Dr. Rush, who had in
+his Lutheran congregation Germans and Swedes, who prayed in their own
+language shortly before death, although they had not used it for fifty
+or sixty years. I can not prevent myself from thinking that many a
+death-bed confession has something to do with this phenomenon.<a name="FNanchor_230_230" id="FNanchor_230_230"></a><a href="#Footnote_230_230" class="fnanchor">[230]</a></p>
+
+<p>At the boundary between incorrect perception and forgetting are those
+cases in which, under great excitement, important events<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_275" id="page_275"></a>{275}</span> do not reach
+consciousness. I believe that the responsibility is here to be borne by
+the memory rather than by sense-perception. There seems to be no reason
+for failing to perceive with the senses under the greatest excitement,
+but there is some clearness in the notion that great excitement causes
+what has just been perceived to be almost immediately forgotten. In my
+“Manual” I have discussed a series of cases of this sort, and show how
+the memory might come into play. None of the witnesses, e.g., had seen
+that Mary Stuart received, when being executed, two blows. In the case
+of an execution of many years ago, not one of those present could tell
+me the color of the gloves of the executioner, although everyone had
+noticed the gloves. In a train wreck, a soldier asserted that he had
+seen dozens of smashed corpses, although only one person was harmed. A
+prison warden who was attacked by an escaping murderer, saw in the
+latter’s hand a long knife, which turned out to be a herring. When
+Carnot was murdered, neither one of the three who were in the carriage
+with him, nor the two foot-men, saw the murderer’s knife or the delivery
+of the blow, etc.</p>
+
+<p>How often may we make mistakes because the witnesses&mdash;in their
+excitement&mdash;have forgotten the most important things!</p>
+
+<h5>Section 55. (d) Illusions of Memory.</h5>
+
+<p>Memory illusion, or paramnesia, consists in the illusory opinion of
+having experienced, seen, or heard something, although there has been no
+such experience, vision, or sound. It is the more important in criminal
+law because it enters unobtrusively and unnoticed into the circle of
+observation, and not directly by means of a demonstrated mistake. Hence,
+it is the more difficult to discover and has a disturbing influence
+which makes it very hard to perceive the mistakes that have occurred in
+consequence of it.</p>
+
+<p>It may be that Leibnitz meant paramnesia with his “perceptiones
+insensibiles.” Later, Lichtenberg must have had it in mind when he
+repeatedly asserted that he must have been in the world once before,
+inasmuch as many things seemed to him so familiar, although, at the
+time, he had not yet experienced them. Later on, Jessen concerned
+himself with the question, and Sander<a name="FNanchor_231_231" id="FNanchor_231_231"></a><a href="#Footnote_231_231" class="fnanchor">[231]</a> asserts him to have been the
+first. According to Jessen, everybody is familiar with the phenomenon in
+which the sudden impression occurs, that<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_276" id="page_276"></a>{276}</span> what is experienced has
+already been met with before so that the future might be predicted.
+Langwieser asserts that one always has the sensation that the event
+occurred a long time ago, and Dr. Karl Neuhoff finds that his sensation
+is accompanied with unrest and contraction. The same thing is discussed
+by many other authors.<a name="FNanchor_232_232" id="FNanchor_232_232"></a><a href="#Footnote_232_232" class="fnanchor">[232]</a></p>
+
+<p>Various explanations have been offered. Wigand and Maudsley think they
+see in paramnesia a simultaneous functioning of both relations. Anje
+believes that illusory memory depends on the differentiation which
+sometimes occurs between perception and coming-into-consciousness.
+According to Külpe, these are the things that Plato interpreted in his
+doctrine of pre-existence.</p>
+
+<p>Sully,<a name="FNanchor_233_233" id="FNanchor_233_233"></a><a href="#Footnote_233_233" class="fnanchor">[233]</a> in his book on illusions, has examined the problem most
+thoroughly and he draws simple conclusions. He finds that vivacious
+children often think they have experienced what is told them. This,
+however, is retained in the memory of the adult, who continues to think
+that he has actually experienced it. The same thing is true when
+children have intensely desired anything. Thus the child-stories given
+us by Rousseau, Goethe, and De Quincey, must come from the airy regions
+of the dream life or from waking revery, and Dickens has dealt with this
+dream life in “David Copperfield.” Sully adds, that we also generate
+illusions of memory when we assign to experiences false dates, and
+believe ourselves to have felt, as children, something we experienced
+later and merely set back into our childhood.</p>
+
+<p>So again, he reduces much supposed to have been heard, to things that
+have been read. Novels may make such an impression that what has been
+read or described there appears to have been really experienced. A name
+or region then seems to be familiar because we have read of something
+similar.</p>
+
+<p>It will perhaps be proper not to reduce all the phenomena of paramnesia
+to the same conditions. Only a limited number of them seem to be so
+reducible. Impressions often occur which one is inclined to attribute to
+illusory memory, merely to discover later that they were real but
+unconscious memory; the things had been actually experienced and the
+events had been forgotten. So, for example, I visit some region for the
+first time and get the impression that I have seen it before, and since
+this, as a matter of fact, is not the case, I believe myself to have
+suffered from an illusion of memory.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_277" id="page_277"></a>{277}</span> Later, I perceive that perhaps in
+early childhood I had really been in a country that resembled this one.
+Thus my memory was really correct; I had merely forgotten the experience
+to which it referred.</p>
+
+<p>Aside from these unreal illusions of memory, many, if not all others,
+are explicable, as Sully indicates, by the fact that something similar
+to what has been experienced, has been read or heard, while the fact
+that it has been read or heard is half forgotten or has sunk into the
+subconsciousness. Only the sensation has remained, not the recollection
+that it was read, etc. Another part of this phenomenon may possibly be
+explained by vivid dreams, which also leave strong impressions without
+leaving the memory of their having been dreams. Whoever is in the habit
+of dreaming vividly will know how it is possible to have for days a
+clear or cloudy feeling of the discovery of something excellent or
+disturbing, only to find out later that there has been no real
+experience, only a dream. Such a feeling, especially the memory of
+things seen or heard in dreams, may remain in consciousness. If, later,
+some similar matter is really met with, the sensation may appear as a
+past event.<a name="FNanchor_234_234" id="FNanchor_234_234"></a><a href="#Footnote_234_234" class="fnanchor">[234]</a> This is all the easier since dreams are never
+completely rigid, but easily modeled and adaptable, so that if there is
+the slightest approximation to similarity, memory of a dream lightly
+attaches itself to real experience.</p>
+
+<p>All this may happen to anybody, well or ill, nervous or stolid. Indeed,
+Kräpelin asserts that paramnesia occurs only under normal circumstances.
+It may also be generally assumed that a certain fatigued condition of
+the mind or of the body renders this occurrence more likely, if it does
+not altogether determine it. So far as self-observation throws any light
+on the matter, this statement appears to be correct. I had such
+illusions of memory most numerously during the Bosnian war of occupation
+of 1878, when we made our terrible forced marches from Esseg to
+Sarajevo. The illusions appeared regularly after dinner, when we were
+quite tired. Then the region which all my preceding life I had not seen,
+appeared to be pleasantly familiar, and when once, at the very
+beginning, I received the order to storm a village occupied by Turks, I
+thought it would not be much trouble, I had done it so frequently and
+nothing had ever happened. At that time we were quite exhausted. Even
+when we had entered the otherwise empty village this extraordinary
+circumstance did not impress me, and I thought that the inside of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_278" id="page_278"></a>{278}</span> a
+village always looked like that&mdash;although I had never before seen such a
+Turkish street-hotel “in natura” or pictured.</p>
+
+<p>Another mode of explanation may be mentioned, i.e., explanation by
+heredity. Hering<a name="FNanchor_235_235" id="FNanchor_235_235"></a><a href="#Footnote_235_235" class="fnanchor">[235]</a> and Sully have dealt with it. According to the
+latter, especially, we may think that we have undergone some experience
+that really belongs to some ancestor. Sully believes that this
+contention can not be genetically contradicted because a group of
+skilled activities (nest-building, food-seeking, hiding from the enemy,
+migration, etc.) have been indubitably inherited from the animals, but
+on the other hand, that paramnesia is inherited memory can be proved
+only with, e.g., a child which had been brought up far from the sea but
+whose parents and grandparents had been coast-dwellers. If that child
+should at first sight have the feeling that he is familiar with the sea,
+the inheritance of memory would be proved. So long as we have not a
+larger number of such instances the assumption of hereditary influence
+is very suggestive but only probable.</p>
+
+<p>With regard to the bearing of memory-illusions on criminal cases I shall
+cite only one possible instance. Somebody just waking from sleep has
+perceived that his servant is handling his purse which is lying on the
+night-table, and in consequence of the memory-illusion he believes that
+he has already observed this many times before. The action of the
+servant was perhaps harmless and in no way directed toward theft. Now
+the evidence of the master is supposed to demonstrate that this has
+repeatedly occurred, then perhaps no doubt arises that the servant has
+committed theft frequently and has had the intention of doing so this
+time.</p>
+
+<p>To generalize this situation would be to indicate that illusions of
+memory are always likely to have doubtful results when they have
+occurred only once and when the witness in consequence of paramnesia
+believes the event to have been repeatedly observed. It is not difficult
+to think of numbers of such cases but it will hardly be possible to say
+how the presence of illusions of memory is to be discovered without the
+knowledge <i>that</i> they exist.</p>
+
+<hr style="width: 45%;" />
+
+<p>When we consider all the qualities and idiosyncrasies of memory, this so
+varied function of the mind, we must wonder that its estimation in
+special cases is frequently different, although proceeding from a second
+person or from the very owner of the questionable memory. Sully finds
+rightly, that one of the keenest tricks in fighting deep-rooted<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_279" id="page_279"></a>{279}</span>
+convictions is to attack the memory of another with regard to its
+reliability. Memory is the private domain of the individual. From the
+secret council-chamber of his own consciousness, into which no other may
+enter, it draws all its values.</p>
+
+<p>The case is altered, however, when a man speaks of his personal memory.
+It must then assume all the deficiencies which belong to other mental
+powers. We lawyers, especially, hear frequently from witnesses: “My
+memory is too weak to answer this question,” “Since receiving the wound
+in question my memory has failed,” “I am already too old, my memory is
+leaving me,” etc. In each of these cases, however, it is not the memory
+that is at fault. As a matter of fact the witness ought to have said “I
+am too stupid to answer this question,” “Since the wound in question, my
+intellectual powers have failed,” “I am already old, I am growing
+silly,” etc. But of course no one will, save very rarely, underestimate
+his good sense, and it is more comfortable to assign its deficiencies to
+the memory. This occurs not only in words but also in construction. If a
+man has incorrectly reproduced any matter, whether a false observation,
+or a deficient combination, or an unskilled interpretation of facts, he
+will not blame these things but will assign the fault to memory. If he
+is believed, absolutely incorrect conclusions may result.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 56. (e) Mnemotechnique.</h5>
+
+<p>Just a few words concerning mnemotechnique, mnemonic, and anamnestic.
+The discovery of some means of helping the memory has long been a human
+purpose. From Simonides of Chios, to the Sophist Hippias of Elis,
+experiments have been made in artificial development of the memory, and
+some have been remarkably successful. Since the middle ages a large
+group of people have done this. We still have the figures of the valid
+syllogisms in logic, like Barbara, etc. The rules for remembering in the
+Latin grammar, etc., may still be learned with advantage. The books of
+Kothe and others, have, in their day, created not a little discussion.</p>
+
+<p>As a rule, modern psychology pays a little attention to memory devices.
+In a certain sense, nobody can avoid mnemonic, for whenever you tie a
+knot in your handkerchief, or stick your watch into your pocket upside
+down, you use a memory device. Again, whenever you want to bear anything
+in mind you reduce difficulties and bring some kind of order into what
+you are trying to retain.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_280" id="page_280"></a>{280}</span></p>
+
+<p>Thus, some artificial grip on the object is applied by everybody, and
+the utility and reliability of this grip determines the trustworthiness
+of a man’s memory. This fact may be important for the criminal lawyer in
+two ways. On the one hand, it may help to clear up misunderstandings
+when false mnemonic has been applied. Thus, once somebody called an
+aniline dye, which is soluble in water and is called “nigrosin,” by the
+name “moorosin,” and asked for it under that name in the store. In order
+to aid his memory he had associated it with the word for black man =
+niger = negro = moor, and thus had substituted moor for nigro in the
+construction of the word he wanted. Again, somebody asked for the “Duke
+Salm” or the “Duke Schmier.” The request was due to the fact that in the
+Austrian dialect <i>salve</i> is pronounced like salm and the colloquial for
+“salm” is “schmier” (to wipe). Dr. Ernst Lohsing tells me that he was
+once informed that a Mr. Schnepfe had called on him, while, as a matter
+of fact the gentleman’s name was Wachtel. Such misunderstandings,
+produced by false mnemonic, may easily occur during the examination of
+witnesses. They are of profound significance. If once you suspect that
+false memory has been in play, you may arrive at the correct idea by
+using the proper synonyms and by considering similarly-pronounced words.
+If attention is paid to the determining conditions of the special case,
+success is almost inevitable.</p>
+
+<p>The second way in which false mnemotechnique is important is that in
+which the technique was correct, but in which the key to the system has
+been lost, i.e., the witness has forgotten how he proceeded. Suppose,
+for example, that I need to recall the relation of the ages of three
+people to each other. Now, if I observe that M is the oldest, N the
+middle one, and O the youngest, I may suppose, in order to help my
+memory, that their births followed in the same order as their initials,
+M, N, O. Now suppose that at another time, in another case I observe the
+same relation but find the order of the initials reversed O, N, M. If
+now, in the face of the facts, I stop simply with this technique, I may
+later on substitute the two cases for each other. Hence, when a witness
+says anything which appears to have been difficult to remember, it is
+necessary to ask him <i>how</i> he was able to remember it. If he assigns
+some aid to memory as the reason, he must be required to explain it, and
+he must not be believed unless it is found reliable. If the witness in
+the instance above, for example, says, “I never make use of converse
+relations,” then his testimony will seem comparatively trustworthy. And
+it is not<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_281" id="page_281"></a>{281}</span> difficult to judge the degree of reliability of any aid to
+memory whatever.</p>
+
+<p>Great liars are frequently characterized by their easy use of the most
+complicated mnemotechnique. They know how much they need it.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic 7. THE WILL.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 57.</h5>
+
+<p>Of course, we do not intend to discuss here either the “will” of the
+philosopher, or the “malice” or “ill-will” of criminal law, nor yet the
+“freedom of the will” of the moralist. We aim only to consider a few
+facts that may be of significance to the criminal lawyer. Hence, we
+intend by “will” only what is currently and popularly meant. I take will
+to be the inner effect of the more powerful impulses, while action is
+the <i>external</i> effect of those impulses. When Hartmann says that will is
+the transposition of the ideal into the real, he sounds foolish, but in
+one sense the definition is excellent. You need only understand by ideal
+that which does not yet exist, and by real that which is a fact and
+actual. For when I voluntarily compel myself to think about some
+subject, something has actually happened, but this event is not “real”
+in the ordinary sense of that word. We are to bear in mind, however,
+that Locke warned us against the contrast between intelligence and will,
+as real, spiritual essences, one of which gives orders and the other of
+which obeys. From this conception many fruitless controversies and
+confusions have arisen. In this regard, we criminalists must always
+remember how often the common work of will and intelligence opposes us
+in witnesses and still more so in defendants, causing us great
+difficulties. When the latter deny their crime with iron fortitude and
+conceal their guilt by rage, or when for months they act out most
+difficult parts with wonderful energy, we must grant that they exhibit
+aspects of the will which have not yet been studied. Indeed, we can make
+surprising observations of how effectively prisoners control the muscles
+of their faces, which are least controllable by the will. The influence
+the will may have on a witness’s power even to flush and grow pale is
+also more extensive than may be established scientifically. This can be
+learned from quite remote events. My son happens to have told me that at
+one time he found himself growing pale with cold, and as under the
+circumstance he was afraid of being accused of lacking courage to pursue
+his task, he tried with all his power to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_282" id="page_282"></a>{282}</span> suppress his pallor, and
+succeeded perfectly. Since then, at court, I have seen a rising blush or
+beginning pallor suppressed completely; yet this is theoretically
+impossible.</p>
+
+<p>But the will is also significant in judging the man as a whole.
+According to Drobisch,<a name="FNanchor_236_236" id="FNanchor_236_236"></a><a href="#Footnote_236_236" class="fnanchor">[236]</a> the abiding qualities and ruling “set” of a
+man’s volition constitute his character. Not only inclination, and
+habits, and guiding principles determine the character, but also
+meanings, prejudices, convictions, etc. of all kinds. Since, then, we
+can not avoid studying the character of the individual, we must trace
+his volitions and desires. This in itself is not difficult; the idea of
+his character develops spontaneously when so traced. But the will
+contains also the characteristic signs of difference which are important
+for our purposes. We are enabled to work intelligently and clearly only
+by our capacity for distinguishing indifferent, from criminal and
+logically interpretable deeds. Nothing makes our work so difficult as
+the inconceivably superfluous mass of details. Not every deed or
+activity is an action; only those are such which are determined by will
+and knowledge. So Abegg<a name="FNanchor_237_237" id="FNanchor_237_237"></a><a href="#Footnote_237_237" class="fnanchor">[237]</a> teaches us, what is determined by means of
+the will may be discovered by analysis.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, we must find the proper approach to this subject and not get
+lost in the libertarian-deterministic quarrel, which is the
+turning-point in contemporary criminal law. Forty years ago Renan said
+that the error of the eighteenth century lay generally in assigning to
+the free and self-conscious will what could be explained by means of the
+natural effects of human powers and capacities. That century understood
+too little the theory of instinctive activity. Nobody will claim that in
+the transposition of willing into the expression of human capacity, the
+question of determinism is solved. The solution of this question is not
+our task. We do get an opening however through which we can approach the
+criminal,&mdash;not by having to examine the elusive character of his will,
+but by apprehending the intelligible expression of his capacity. The
+weight of our work is set on the application of the concept of
+causality, and the problem of free-will stands or falls with that.</p>
+
+<p>Bois-Reymond in his “Limits of the Knowledge of Nature” has brought some
+clearness into this problem: “Freedom may be denied, pain and desire may
+not; the appetite which is the stimulus to action necessarily precedes
+sense-perception. The problem, therefore, is that of sense-perception,
+and not as I had said a minute<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_283" id="page_283"></a>{283}</span> ago, that of the freedom of the will. It
+is to the former that analytic mechanics may be applied.” And the study
+of sense-perception is just what we lawyers may be required to
+undertake.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, it is insufficient merely to study the individual
+manifestations of human capacities, for these may be accidental results
+or phenomena, determined by unknown factors. Our task consists in
+attaining abstractions in accord with careful and conscientious
+perceptions, and in finding each determining occasion in its particular
+activities.</p>
+
+<p>According to Drobisch, “maxims and the subjective principles of
+evolution are, as Kant calls them, laws of general content required to
+determine our own volitions and actions. Then again, they are rules of
+our own volition and action which we ourselves construct, and which
+hence are subjectively valid. When these maxims determine our future
+volitions and actions they are postulates.” We may, therefore, say that
+we know a man when we know his will, and that we know his will when we
+know his maxims. By means of his maxims we are able to judge his
+actions.</p>
+
+<p>But we must not reconstruct his maxims theoretically. We must study
+everything that surrounds, alters, and determines him, for it is at this
+point that a man’s environments and relationships most influence him. As
+Grohmann said, half a century ago, “If you could find an elixir, which
+could cause the vital organs to work otherwise, if you could alter the
+somatic functions of the body, you would be the master of the will.”
+Therefore it is never superfluous to study the individual’s
+environmental conditions, surroundings, all his outer influences. That
+the effort required in such a study is great, is of course obvious, but
+the criminal lawyer must make it if he is to perform his task
+properly.<a name="FNanchor_238_238" id="FNanchor_238_238"></a><a href="#Footnote_238_238" class="fnanchor">[238]</a></p>
+
+<h4>Topic 8. EMOTION.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 58.</h5>
+
+<p>Little as emotion, as generally understood, may have to do with the
+criminalist, it is, in its intention, most important for him. The motive
+of a series of phenomena and events, both in prisoners and witnesses, is
+emotion. In what follows, therefore, we shall attempt to show that
+feeling, in so far as we need to consider it, need not be taken as an
+especial function. This is only so far significant as to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_284" id="page_284"></a>{284}</span> make our work
+easier by limiting it to fewer subjects. If we can reduce some one
+psychic function to another category we can explain many a thing even
+when we know only the latter. In any event, the study of a single
+category is simpler than that of many.<a name="FNanchor_239_239" id="FNanchor_239_239"></a><a href="#Footnote_239_239" class="fnanchor">[239]</a></p>
+
+<p>Abstractly, the word emotion is the property or capacity of the mind to
+be influenced pleasantly or unpleasantly by sensations, perceptions, and
+ideas. Concretely, it means the conditions of desire or disgust which
+are developed by the complex of conditions thereby aroused. We have
+first to distinguish between the so-called animal and the higher
+emotions. We will assume that this distinction is incorrect, inasmuch as
+between these classes there is a series of feelings which may be counted
+as well with one as with the other, so that the transition is incidental
+and no strict differentiation is possible. We will, however, retain the
+distinction, as it is easier by means of it to pass from the simpler to
+the more difficult emotions. The indubitably animal passions we shall
+take to be hunger, thirst, cold, etc. These are first of all purely
+physiological stimuli which act on our body. But it is impossible to
+imagine one of them, without, at the same time, inevitably bringing in
+the idea of the defense against this physiological stimulus. It is
+impossible to think of the feeling of hunger without sensing also the
+strain to find relief from this feeling, for without this sensation
+hunger would not appear as such. If I am hungry I go for food; if I am
+cold I seek for warmth; if I feel pain I try to wipe it out. How to
+satisfy these desiderative actions is a problem for the understanding,
+whence it follows that successful satisfaction, intelligent or
+unintelligent, may vary in every possible degree. We see that the least
+intelligent&mdash;real cretins&mdash;sometimes are unable to satisfy their hunger,
+for when food is given the worst of them, they stuff it, in spite of
+acute sensations of hunger, into their ears and noses, but not into
+their mouths. We must therefore say that there is always a demand for a
+minimum quantity of intelligence in order to know that the feeling of
+hunger may be vanquished by putting food into the mouth.</p>
+
+<p>One step further: In the description of the conduct of anthropoid apes
+which are kept in menageries, etc., especial intelligence is assigned to
+those who know how to draw a blanket over themselves as protection
+against cold. The same action is held to be a sign of intelligence in
+very young children.</p>
+
+<p>Still more thoroughly graded is the attitude toward pain, inasmuch<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_285" id="page_285"></a>{285}</span> as
+barely a trace of intelligence is required, in order to know that it is
+necessary to wipe away a hot liquid drop that has fallen on the body.
+Every physiological text-book mentions the fact that a decapitated frog
+makes such wiping movements when it is wet with acid. From this
+unconscious activity of the understanding to the technically
+highest-developed treatment of a burn, a whole series of progressively
+higher expressions of intelligence may be interpolated, a series so
+great as to defy counting.</p>
+
+<p>Now take another, still animal, but more highly-developed feeling, for
+example, the feeling of comfort. We lay a cat on a soft bolster&mdash;she
+stretches herself, spreads and thins herself out, in order to bring as
+many nerve termini as possible into contact with the pleasant stimuli of
+the bolster. This behavior of the cat may be construed as instinctive,
+also as the aboriginal source of the sense of comfort and as leading to
+luxury in comfort, the stage of comfort which Roscher calls highest. (I.
+Luxury in eating and drinking. II. Luxury in dress. III. Luxury in
+comfort.)</p>
+
+<p>Therefore we may say that the reaction of the understanding to the
+physiological stimulus aims to set it aside when it is unpleasant, and
+to increase and exhaust it when it is pleasant, and that in a certain
+sense both coincide (the ousting of unpleasant darkness is equivalent to
+the introduction of pleasant light). We may therefore say generally,
+that feeling is a physiological stimulus indivisibly connected with the
+understanding’s sensitive attitude thereto. Of course there is a far cry
+from instinctive exclusion and inclusion to the most refined defensive
+preparation or interpretation, but the differences which lie next to
+each, on either side, are only differences in degree.</p>
+
+<p>Now let us think of some so-called higher feeling and consider a special
+case of it. I meet for the first time a man who is unpleasantly marked,
+e.g., with badly colored hair. This stimulates my eyes disagreeably, and
+I seek either by looking away or by wishing the man away to protect
+myself from this physiologically-inimical influence, which already
+eliminates all feeling of friendship for this harmless individual. Now I
+see that the man is torturing an animal,&mdash;I do not like to see this, it
+affects me painfully; hence I wish him out of the way still more
+energetically. If he goes on so, adding one disagreeable characteristic
+to another, I might break his bones to stop him, bind him in chains to
+hinder him; I even might kill him, to save myself the unpleasant
+excitation he causes me. I strain my intelligence to think of some means
+of opposing him, and clearly, in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_286" id="page_286"></a>{286}</span> this case, also, physiological
+stimulus and activity of the understanding are invincibly united.</p>
+
+<p>The emotion of anger is rather more difficult to explain. But it is not
+like suddenly-exploding hatred, for it is acute, while hatred is
+chronic. I might be angry with my beloved child. But though at the
+moment of anger, the expression is identical with that of hatred, it is
+also transitive. In the extremest cases the negating action aims to
+destroy the stimulus. This is the most radical means of avoiding
+physiological excitation, and hence I tear in pieces a disagreeable
+letter, or stamp to powder the object on which I have hurt myself. Where
+persons are involved, I proceed either directly or symbolically when I
+can not, or may not, get my hands on the responsible one.</p>
+
+<p>The case is the same with feeling of attraction. I own a dog, he has
+beautiful lines which are pleasant to my eye, he has a bell-like bark
+that stimulates my ear pleasantly, he has a soft coat which is pleasant
+to my stroking hand, I know that in case of need the dog will protect me
+(and that is a calming consideration), I know that he may be otherwise
+of use to me&mdash;in short my understanding tells me all kinds of pleasant
+things about the beast. Hence I like to have him near me; i.e., I like
+him. The same explanation may be applied to all emotions of inclination
+or repulsion. Everywhere we find the emotion as physiological stimulus
+in indivisible union with a number of partly known, partly unknown
+functions of the understanding. The unknown play an important rôle. They
+are serial understandings, i.e., inherited from remote ancestors, and
+are characterized by the fact that they lead us to do the things we do
+when we recognize intelligently any event and its requirements.</p>
+
+<p>When one gets thirsty, he drinks. Cattle do the same. And they drink
+even when nobody has told them to, because this is an inherited action
+of countless years. If a man is, however, to proceed intelligently about
+his drinking, he will say, “By drying, or other forms of segregation,
+the water will be drawn from the cells of my body, they will become
+arid, and will no longer be sufficiently elastic to do their work. If,
+now, by way of my stomach, through endosmosis and exosmosis, I get them
+more water, the proper conditions will return.” The consequences of this
+form of consideration will not be different from the instinctive action
+of the most elementary of animals&mdash;the wise man and the animal drink. So
+the whole content of every emotion is physiological stimulation and
+function of the understanding.</p>
+
+<p>And what good is all this to the criminal lawyer? Nobody<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_287" id="page_287"></a>{287}</span> doubts that
+both prisoners and witnesses are subject to the powerful influence of
+emotional expression. Nobody doubts that the determination,
+interpretation, and judgment of these expressions are as difficult as
+they are important to the judge. And when we consider these emotions as
+especial conditions of the mind it is indubitable that they are able to
+cause still greater difficulty because of their elusiveness, their very
+various intensity, and their confused effect. Once, however, we think of
+them as functions of the understanding, we have, in its activities,
+something better known, something rather more disciplined, which offers
+very many fewer difficulties in the judgment concerning the fixed form
+in which it acts. Hence, every judgment of an emotional state must be
+preceded by a reconstruction in terms of the implied functions of the
+understanding. Once this is done, further treatment is no longer
+difficult.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic 9. THE FORMS OF GIVING TESTIMONY.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 59.</h5>
+
+<p>Wherever we turn we face the absolute importance of language for our
+work. Whatever we hear or read concerning a crime is expressed in words,
+and everything perceived with the eye, or any other sense, must be
+clothed in words before it can be put to use. That the criminalist must
+know this first and most important means of understanding, completely
+and in all its refinements, is self-evident. But still more is required
+of him. He must first of all undertake a careful investigation of the
+essence of language itself. A glance over literature shows how the
+earliest scholars have aimed to study language with regard to its
+origins and character. Yet, who needs this knowledge? The lawyer. Other
+disciplines can find in it only a scientific interest, but it is
+practically and absolutely valuable only for us lawyers, who must, by
+means of language, take evidence, remember it, and variously interpret
+it. A failure in a proper understanding of language may give rise to
+false conceptions and the most serious of mistakes. Hence, nobody is so
+bound as the criminal lawyer to study the general character of language,
+and to familiarize himself with its force, nature, and development.
+Without this knowledge the lawyer may be able to make use of language,
+but failing to understand it, will slip up before the slightest
+difficulty. There is an exceedingly rich literature open to
+everybody.<a name="FNanchor_240_240" id="FNanchor_240_240"></a><a href="#Footnote_240_240" class="fnanchor">[240]</a></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_288" id="page_288"></a>{288}</span></p>
+
+<h5>Section 60. (a) General Study of Variety in Forms of Expression.</h5>
+
+<p>Men being different in nature and bringing-up on the one hand, and
+language, being on the other, a living organism which varies with its
+soil, i.e., with the human individual who makes use of it, it is
+inevitable that each man should have especial and private forms of
+expression. These forms, if the man comes before us as witness or
+prisoner, we must study, each by itself. Fortunately, this study must be
+combined with another that it implies, i.e., the character and nature of
+the individual. The one without the other is unthinkable. Whoever aims
+to study a man’s character must first of all attend to his ways of
+expression, inasmuch as these are most significant of a man’s qualities,
+and most illuminating. A man is as he speaks. It is not possible, on the
+other hand, to study modes of expression in themselves. Their
+observation requires the study of a group of other conditions, if the
+form of speech is to be explained, or its analysis made even possible.
+Thus, one is involved in the other, and once you know clearly the tricks
+of speech belonging to an individual, you also have a clear conception
+of his character and conversely. This study requires, no doubt,
+considerable skill. But that is at the command of anybody who is devoted
+to the lawyer’s task.</p>
+
+<p>Tylor is correct in his assertion, that a man’s speech indicates his
+origin much less than his bringing-up, his education, and his power.
+Much of this fact is due to the nature of language as a living growth
+and moving organism which acquires new and especial forms to express new
+and especial events in human life. Geiger<a name="FNanchor_241_241" id="FNanchor_241_241"></a><a href="#Footnote_241_241" class="fnanchor">[241]</a> cites the following
+example of such changes in the meaning of words. “Mriga” means in
+Sanscrit, “wild beast;” in Zend it means merely “bird,” and the
+equivalent Persian term “mrug” continues to mean only “bird,” so that
+the barnyard fowls, song-birds, etc., are now called “mrug.” Thus the
+first meaning, “wild animal” has been transmuted into its opposite,
+“tame animal.” In other cases we may incorrectly suppose certain
+expressions to stand for certain things. We say, “to bake bread, to bake
+cake, to bake certain meats,” and then again, “to roast apples, to roast
+potatoes, to roast certain meats.” We should laugh if some foreigner
+told us that he had “roasted” bread.</p>
+
+<p>These forms of expression have, as yet, no relation to character,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_289" id="page_289"></a>{289}</span> but
+they are the starting-point of quite characteristic modes which
+establish themselves in all corporations, groups, classes, such as
+students, soldiers, hunters, etc., as well as among the middle classes
+in large cities. Forms of this kind may become so significant that the
+use of a single one of them might put the user in question into
+jeopardy. I once saw two old gentlemen on a train who did not know each
+other. They fell into conversation and one told the other that he had
+seen an officer, while jumping from his horse, trip over his sword and
+fall. But instead of the word sword he made use of the old
+couleur-student slang word “speer,” and the other old boy looked at him
+with shining eyes and cried out “Well, brother, what color?”</p>
+
+<p>Still more remarkable is the mutation and addition of new words of
+especially definite meaning among certain classes. The words become more
+modern, like so much slang.</p>
+
+<p>The especial use of certain forms is individual as well as social. Every
+person has his private usage. One makes use of “certainly,” another of
+“yes, indeed,” one prefers “dark,” another “darkish.” This fact has a
+double significance. Sometimes a man’s giving a word a definite meaning
+may explain his whole nature. How heartless and raw is the statement of
+a doctor who is telling about a painful operation, “The patient sang!”
+In addition, it is frequently necessary to investigate the connotation
+people like to give certain words, otherwise misunderstandings are
+inevitable. This investigation is, as a rule, not easy, for even when it
+is simple to bring out what is intended by an expression, it is still
+quite as simple to overlook the fact that people use peculiar
+expressions for ordinary things. This occurs particularly when people
+are led astray by the substitution of similars and by the repetition of
+such a substitution. Very few persons are able to distinguish between
+identity and similarity; most of them take these two characters to be
+equivalent. If A and B are otherwise identical, save that B is a little
+bigger, so that they appear similar, there is no great mistake if I hold
+them to be equivalent and substitute B for A. Now I compare B with C, C
+with D, D with E, etc., and each member of the series is progressively
+bigger than its predecessor. If now I continue to repeat my first
+mistake, I have in the end substituted for A the enormously bigger E and
+the mistake has become a very notable one. I certainly would not have
+substituted E for A at the beginning, but the repeated substitution of
+similars has led me to this complete incommensurability.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_290" id="page_290"></a>{290}</span></p>
+
+<p>Such substitutions occur frequently during the alterations of meanings,
+and if you wish to see how some remarkable signification of a term has
+arisen you will generally find it as a progression through gradually
+remoter similarities to complete dissimilarity. All such extraordinary
+alterations which a word has undergone in the course of long usage, and
+for which each linguistic text-book contains numerous examples, may,
+however, develop with comparative speed in each individual speaker, and
+if the development is not traced may lead, in the law-court, to very
+serious misunderstandings.</p>
+
+<p>Substitutions, and hence, sudden alterations, occur when the material of
+language, especially in primitive tongues, contains only simple
+differentiations. So Tylor mentions the fact, that the language of the
+West African Wolofs contains the word “da<i>goú</i>,” to go, “<i>dá</i>gou,” to
+stride proudly; “dágana,” to beg dejectedly; “dagána,” to demand. The
+Mpongwes say, “mì tonda,” I love, and “mi tônda,” I do not love. Such
+differentiations in tone our own people make also, and the mutation of
+meaning is very close. But who observes it at all?</p>
+
+<p>Important as are the changes in the meanings of words, they fall short
+beside the changes of meaning of the conception given in the mode of
+exposition. Hence, there are still greater mistakes, because a single
+error is neither easily noticeable nor traceable. J. S. Mill says,
+justly, that the ancient scientists missed a great deal because they
+were guided by linguistic classification. It scarcely occurred to them
+that what they assigned abstract names to really consisted of several
+phenomena. Nevertheless, the mistake has been inherited, and people who
+nowadays name abstract things, conceive, according to their
+intelligence, now this and now that phenomenon by means of it. Then they
+wonder at the other fellow’s not understanding them. The situation being
+so, the criminalist is coercively required, whenever anything abstract
+is named, first of all to determine accurately what the interlocutor
+means by his word. In these cases we make the curious discovery that
+such determination is most necessary among people who have studied the
+object profoundly, for a technical language arises with just the persons
+who have dealt especially with any one subject.</p>
+
+<p>As a rule it must be maintained that time, even a little time, makes an
+essential difference in the conception of any object. Mittermaier, and
+indeed Bentham, have shown what an influence the interval between
+observation and announcement exercises on the form of exposition. The
+witness who is immediately examined may,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_291" id="page_291"></a>{291}</span> perhaps, say the same thing
+that he would say several weeks after&mdash;but his presentation is
+different, he uses different words, he understands by the different
+words different concepts, and so his testimony becomes altered.</p>
+
+<p>A similar effect may be brought about by the conditions under which the
+evidence is given. Every one of us knows what surprising differences
+occur between the statements of the witness made in the silent office of
+the examining justice and his secretary, and what he says in the open
+trial before the jury. There is frequently an inclination to attack
+angrily the witnesses who make such divergent statements. Yet more
+accurate observation would show that the testimony is essentially the
+same as the former but that the manner of giving it is different, and
+hence the apparently different story. The difference between the members
+of the audience has a powerful influence. It is generally true that
+reproductive construction is intensified by the sight of a larger number
+of attentive hearers, but this is not without exception. In the words
+“attentive hearers” there is the notion that the speaker is speaking
+interestingly and well, for otherwise his hearers would not be
+attentive, and if anything is well done and is known to be well done,
+the number of the listeners is exciting, inasmuch as each listener is
+reckoned as a stimulating admirer. This is invariably the case. If
+anybody is doing a piece of work under observation he will feel pleasant
+when he knows that he is doing it well, but he will feel disturbed and
+troubled if he is certain of his lack of skill. So we may grant that a
+large number of listeners increases reproductive constructivity, but
+only when the speaker is certain of his subject and of the favor of his
+auditors. Of the latter, strained attention is not always evidence. When
+a scholar is speaking of some subject chosen by himself, and his
+audience listens to him attentively, he has chosen his subject
+fortunately, and speaks well; the attention acts as a spur, he speaks
+still better, etc. But this changes when, in the course of a great trial
+which excites general interest, the witness for the government appears.
+Strained attention will also be the rule, but it does not apply to him,
+it applies to the subject. He has not chosen his topic, and no
+recognition for it is due him&mdash;it is indifferent to him whether he
+speaks ill or well. The interest belongs only to the subject, and the
+speaker himself receives, perhaps, the undivided antipathy, hatred,
+disgust, or scorn, of all the listeners. Nevertheless, attention is
+intense and strained, and inasmuch as the speaker knows that this does
+not pertain to him or his merits, it confuses and depresses him.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_292" id="page_292"></a>{292}</span> It is
+for this reason that so many criminal trials turn out quite contrary to
+expectation. Those who have seen the trial only, and were not at the
+prior examination, understand the result still less when they are told
+that “nothing” has altered since the prior examination&mdash;and yet much has
+altered; the witnesses, excited or frightened by the crowd of listeners,
+have spoken and expressed themselves otherwise than before until, in
+this manner, the whole case has become different.</p>
+
+<p>In a similar fashion, some fact may be shown in another light by the
+manner of narration used by a particular witness. Take, as example, some
+energetically influential quality like humor. It is self-evident that
+joke, witticism, comedy, are excluded from the court-room, but if
+somebody has actually introduced real, genuine humor by way of the dry
+form of his testimony, without having crossed in a single word the
+permissible limit, he may, not rarely, narrate a very serious story so
+as to reduce its dangerous aspect to a minimum. Frequently the testimony
+of some funny witness makes the rounds of all the newspapers for the
+pleasure of their readers. Everybody knows how a really humorous person
+may so narrate experiences, doubtful situations of his student days,
+unpleasant traveling experiences, difficult positions in quarrels, etc.,
+that every listener must laugh. At the same time, the events told of
+were troublesome, difficult, even quite dangerous. The narrator does not
+in the least lie, but he manages to give his story the twist that even
+the victim of the situation is glad to laugh at.<a name="FNanchor_242_242" id="FNanchor_242_242"></a><a href="#Footnote_242_242" class="fnanchor">[242]</a> As Kräpelin says,
+“The task of humor is to rob a large portion of human misfortune of its
+wounding power. It does so by presenting to us, with our fellows as
+samples, the comedy of the innumerable stupidities of human life.”</p>
+
+<p>Now suppose that a really humorous witness tells a story which involves
+very considerable consequences, but which he does not really end with
+tragic conclusions. Suppose the subject to be a great brawl, some really
+crass deception, some story of an attack on honor, etc. The attitude
+toward the event is altered with one turn, even though it would seem to
+have been generated progressively by ten preceding witnesses and the new
+view of the matter makes itself valid at least mildly in the delivery of
+the sentence. Then whoever has not heard the whole story understands the
+results least of all.</p>
+
+<p>In the same way we see really harmless events turned into tragedies<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_293" id="page_293"></a>{293}</span> by
+the testimony of a black-visioned, melancholy witness, without his
+having used, in this case or any other, a single untrue word. In like
+manner the bitterness of a witness who considers his personal
+experiences to be generally true, may color and determine the attitude
+of some, not at all serious, event. Nor is this exaggeration. Every man
+of experience will, if he is only honest enough, confirm the fact, and
+grant that he himself was among those whose attitude has been so
+altered; I avoid the expression&mdash;“duped.”</p>
+
+<p>It is necessary here, also, to repeat that the movements of the hands
+and other gestures of the witnesses while making their statements will
+help much to keep the correct balance. Movements lie much less
+frequently than words.<a name="FNanchor_243_243" id="FNanchor_243_243"></a><a href="#Footnote_243_243" class="fnanchor">[243]</a></p>
+
+<p>Another means of discovering whether a witness is not seduced by his
+attitude and his own qualities is the careful observation of the
+impression his narrative makes on himself. Stricker has controlled the
+conditions of speech and has observed that so long as he continued to
+bring clearly described complexes into a causal relation, <i>satisfactory
+to him</i>, he could excite his auditors; as soon as he spoke of a relation
+which <i>did not</i> satisfy him the attitude of the audience altered. We
+must invert this observation; we are the auditors of the witness and
+must observe whether his own causal connections satisfy him. So long as
+this is the case, we believe him. When it fails to be so he is either
+lying, or he himself knows that he is not expressing himself as he ought
+to make us correctly understand what he is talking about.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 61. (b) Dialect Forms.</h5>
+
+<p>What every criminal lawyer must unconditionally know is the dialect of
+those people he has most to deal with. This is so important that I
+should hold it conscienceless to engage in the profession of criminology
+without knowing the dialects. Nobody with experience would dispute my
+assertion that nothing is the cause of so great and so serious
+misunderstandings, of even inversions of justice, as ignorance of
+dialects, ignorance of the manner of expression of human groups. Wrongs
+so caused can never be rectified because their primary falsehood starts
+in the protocol, where no denial, no dispute and redefinition can change
+them.</p>
+
+<p>It is no great difficulty to learn dialects, if only one is not seduced<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_294" id="page_294"></a>{294}</span>
+by comic pride and foolish ignorance of his own advantage into believing
+that popular speech is something low or common. Dialect has as many
+rights as literary language, is as living and interesting an organism as
+the most developed form of expression. Once the interest in dialect is
+awakened, all that is required is the learning of a number of meanings.
+Otherwise, there are no difficulties, for the form of speech of the real
+peasant (and this is true all over the world), is always the simplest,
+the most natural, and the briefest. Tricks, difficult construction,
+circumlocutions are unknown to the peasant, and if he is only left to
+himself he makes everything definite, clear, and easily intelligible.</p>
+
+<p>There are many more difficulties in the forms of expression of the
+uncultivated city man, who has snapped up a number of uncomprehended
+phrases and tries to make use of them because of their suppositious
+beauty, regardless of their fitness. Unpleasant as it is to hear such a
+screwed and twisted series of phrases, without beginning and without
+end, it is equally difficult to get a clear notion of what the man
+wanted to say, and especially whether the phrases used were really
+brought out with some purpose or simply for the sake of showing off,
+because they sound “educated.”</p>
+
+<p>In this direction nothing is more significant than the use of the
+imperfect in countries where its use is not customary and where as a
+rule only the perfect is used; not “I was going,” but “I have gone”
+(went). In part the reading of newspapers, but partly also the
+unfortunate habit of our school teachers, compel children to the use of
+the imperfect, which has not an iota more justification than the
+perfect, and which people make use of under certain circumstances, i.e.,
+when they are talking to educated people, and then only before they have
+reached a certain age.</p>
+
+<p>I confess that I regularly mistrust a witness who makes use of an
+imperfect or some other form not habitual to him. I presuppose that he
+is a weak-minded person who has allowed himself to be persuaded; I
+believe that he is not altogether reliable because he permits untrue
+forms to express his meaning, and I fear that he neglects the content
+for the sake of the form. The simple person who quietly and without
+shame makes use of his natural dialect, supplies no ground for mistrust.</p>
+
+<p>There are a few traits of usage which must always be watched. First of
+all, all dialects are in certain directions poorer than the literary
+language. E. g., they make use of fewer colors. The blue grape, the red
+wine, may be indicated by the word black, the light<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_295" id="page_295"></a>{295}</span> wine by the word
+white. Literary language has adopted the last term from dialect. Nobody
+says water-colored or yellow wine, although nobody has ever yet seen
+white wine. Similarly, no peasant says a “brown dog,” a “brown-yellow
+cow”&mdash;these colors are always denoted by the word red. This is important
+in the description of clothes. There is, however, no contradiction
+between this trait and the fact that the dialect may be rich in terms
+denoting objects that may be very useful, e.g. the handle of a tool may
+be called handle, grasp, haft, stick, clasp, etc.</p>
+
+<p>When foreign words are used it is necessary to observe in what tendency,
+and what meaning their adoption embodies.<a name="FNanchor_244_244" id="FNanchor_244_244"></a><a href="#Footnote_244_244" class="fnanchor">[244]</a></p>
+
+<p>The great difficulty of getting uneducated people to give their
+testimony in direct discourse is remarkable. You might ask for the words
+of the speaker ten times and you always hear, “He told me, I should
+enter,” you never hear “He told me, ‘Go in.’&nbsp;” This is to be explained by
+the fact, already mentioned, that people bear in mind only the meaning
+of what they have heard. When the question of the actual words is
+raised, the sole way to conquer this disagreeable tendency is to develop
+dialogue and to say to the witness, “Now you are A and I am B; how did
+it happen?” But even this device may fail, and when you finally do
+compel direct quotation, you can not be certain of its reliability, for
+it was too extraordinary for the witness to quote directly, and the
+extraordinary and unhabitual is always unsafe.</p>
+
+<p>What especially wants consideration in the real peasant is his silence.
+I do not know whether the reasons for the silence of the countrymen all
+the world over have ever been sought, but a gossiping peasant is rare to
+find. This trait is unfortunately exhibited in the latter’s failure to
+defend himself when we make use of energetic investigation. It is said
+that not to defend yourself is to show courage, and this may, indeed, be
+a kind of nobility, a disgust at the accusation, or certainty of
+innocence, but frequently it is mere incapacity to speak, and
+inexperienced judges may regard it as an expression of cunning or
+conviction. It is wise therefore, in this connection, not to be in too
+great a hurry, and to seek to understand clearly the nature of the
+silent person. If we become convinced that the latter is by nature
+uncommunicative, we must not wonder that he does not speak, even when
+words appear to be quite necessary.</p>
+
+<p>In certain cases uneducated people must be studied from the same<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_296" id="page_296"></a>{296}</span> point
+of view as children. Geiger<a name="FNanchor_245_245" id="FNanchor_245_245"></a><a href="#Footnote_245_245" class="fnanchor">[245]</a> speaks of a child who knew only one
+boy, and all the other boys were Otho to him because this first boy was
+called Otho. So the recruit at the Rhine believed that in his country
+the Rhine was called Donau. The child and the uneducated person can not
+subordinate things under higher concepts. Every painted square might be
+a bon-bon, and every painted circle a plate. New things receive the
+names of old ones. And frequently the skill of the criminalists consists
+in deriving important material from apparently worthless statements, by
+way of discovering the proper significance of simple, inartistic, but in
+most cases excellently definitive images. It is of course self-evident
+that one must absolutely refrain from trickery.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 62. (c) Incorrect Forms of Expression.</h5>
+
+<p>If it is true that by the earnest and repeated study of the meanings of
+words we are likely to find them in the end containing much deeper sense
+and content than at the beginning, we are compelled to wonder that
+people are able to understand each other at all. For if words do not
+have that meaning which is obvious in their essential denotation, every
+one who uses them supplies according to his inclination, and status the
+“deeper and richer sense.” As a matter of fact many more words are used
+pictorially than we are inclined to think. Choose at random, and you
+find surprisingly numerous words with exaggerated denotations. If I say,
+“I posit the case, I press through, I jump over, the proposition, etc.,”
+these phrases are all pictures, for I have posited nothing, I have
+pressed through no obstacle, and have jumped over no object. My words,
+therefore, have not stood for anything real, but for an image, and it is
+impossible to determine the remoteness of the latter from the former, or
+the variety of direction and extent this remoteness may receive from
+each individual. Wherever images are made use of, therefore, we must, if
+we are to know what is meant, first establish how and where the use
+occurred. How frequently we hear, e.g., of a “four-cornered” table
+instead of a square table; a “very average” man, instead of a man who is
+far below the average. In many cases this false expression is
+half-consciously made for the purpose of beautifying a request or making
+it appear more modest. The smoker says: “May I have some light,”
+although you know that it is perfectly indifferent whether much or<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_297" id="page_297"></a>{297}</span>
+little light is taken from the cigar. “May I have just a little piece of
+roast,” is said in order to make the request that the other fellow
+should pass the heavy platter seem more modest. And again: “Please give
+me a little water,” does not modify the fact that the other fellow must
+pass the whole water flask, and that it is indifferent to him whether
+afterwards you take much or little water. So, frequently, we speak of
+borrowing or lending, without in the remotest thinking of returning. The
+student says to his comrade, “Lend me a pen, some paper, or some ink,”
+but he has not at all any intention of giving them back. Similar things
+are to be discovered in accused or witnesses who think they have not
+behaved properly, and who then want to exhibit their misconduct in the
+most favorable light. These beautifications frequently go so far and may
+be made so skilfully that the correct situation may not be observed for
+a long time. Habitual usage offers, in this case also, the best
+examples. For years uncountable it has been called a cruel job to earn
+your living honestly and to satisfy the absolute needs of many people by
+quickly and painlessly slaughtering cattle. But, when somebody, just for
+the sake of killing time, because of ennui, shoots and martyrs harmless
+animals, or merely so wounds them that if they are not retrieved they
+must die terrible deaths, we call it noble sport. I should like to see a
+demonstration of the difference between killing an ox and shooting a
+stag. The latter does not require even superior skill, for it is much
+more difficult to kill an ox swiftly and painlessly than to shoot a stag
+badly, and even the most accurate shot requires less training than the
+correct slaughter of an ox. Moreover, it requires much more courage to
+finish a wild ox than to destroy a tame and kindly pheasant. But usage,
+once and for all, has assumed this essential distinction between men,
+and frequently this distinction is effective in criminal law, without
+our really seeing how or why. The situation is similar in the difference
+between cheating in a horse trade and cheating about other commodities.
+It occurs in the distinction between two duellists fighting according to
+rule and two peasant lads brawling with the handles of their picks
+according to agreement. It recurs again in the violation of the law by
+somebody “nobly inspired with champagne,” as against its violation by
+some “mere” drunkard. But usage has a favoring, excusing intent for the
+first series, and an accusing, rejecting intent for the latter series.
+The different points of view from which various events are seen are the
+consequence of the varieties of the usage which first distinguished the
+view-points from one another.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_298" id="page_298"></a>{298}</span></p>
+
+<p>There is, moreover, a certain dishonesty in speaking and in listening
+where the speaker knows that the hearer is hearing a different matter,
+and the hearer knows that the speaker is speaking a different matter. As
+Steinthal<a name="FNanchor_246_246" id="FNanchor_246_246"></a><a href="#Footnote_246_246" class="fnanchor">[246]</a> has said, “While the speaker speaks about things that he
+does not believe, and the reality of which he takes no stock in, his
+auditor, at the same time, knows right well what the former has said; he
+understands correctly and does not blame the speaker for having
+expressed himself altogether unintelligibly.” This occurs very
+frequently in daily routine, without causing much difficulty in human
+intercourse, but it ought, for this reason, to occur inversely in our
+conversation with witnesses and accused. I know that the manner of
+speaking just described is frequently used when a witness wants to
+clothe some definite suspicion without expressing it explicitly. In such
+cases, e.g., the examiner as well as the witness believes that X is the
+criminal. For some reason, perhaps because X is a close relation of the
+witness or of “the man higher up,” neither of them, judge nor witness,
+wishes to utter the truth openly, and so they feel round the subject for
+an interminable time. If now, both think the same thing, there results
+at most only a loss of time, but no other misfortune. When, however,
+each thinks of a different object, e.g., each thinks of another
+criminal, but each believes mistakenly that he agrees with the other,
+their separating without having made explicit what they think, may lead
+to harmful misunderstandings. If the examiner then believes that the
+witness agrees with him and proceeds upon this only apparently certain
+basis, the case may become very bad. The results are the same when a
+confession is discussed with a suspect, i.e., when the judge thinks that
+the suspect would like to confess, but only suggests confession, while
+the latter has never even thought of it. The one thing alone our work
+permits of is open and clear speaking; any confused form of expression
+is evil.</p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, confusions often occur involuntarily, and as they can not
+be avoided they must be understood. Thus, it is characteristic to
+understand something unknown in terms of some known example, i.e., the
+Romans who first saw an elephant, called it “bos lucani.” Similarly
+“wood-dog” = wolf; “sea-cat” = monkey, etc. These are forms of common
+usage, but every individual is accustomed to make such identifications
+whenever he meets with any strange object. He speaks, therefore, to some
+degree in images,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_299" id="page_299"></a>{299}</span> and if his auditor is not aware of the fact he can
+not understand him. His speaking so may be discovered by seeking out
+clearly whether and what things were new and foreign to the speaker.
+When this is learned it may be assumed that he will express himself in
+images when considering the unfamiliar object. Then it will not be
+difficult to discover the nature and source of the images.</p>
+
+<p>Similar difficulties arise with the usage of foreign terms. It is of
+course familiar that their incorrect use is not confined to the
+uneducated. I have in mind particularly the weakening of the meaning in
+our own language. The foreign word, according to Volkmar, gets its
+significance by robbing the homonymous native word of its definiteness
+and freshness, and is therefore sought out by all persons who are
+unwilling to call things by their right names. The “<i>triste</i> position”
+is far from being so sad as the “sad” position. I should like to know
+how a great many people could speak, if they were not permitted to say
+<i>malheur</i>, <i>méchant</i>, <i>perfide</i>, etc.&mdash;words by means of which they
+reduce the values of the terms at least a degree in intensity of
+meaning. The reason for the use of these words is not always the
+unwillingness of the speaker to make use of the right term, but really
+because it is necessary to indicate various degrees of intensity for the
+same thing without making use of attributes or other extensions of the
+term. Thus the foreign word is in some degree introduced as a technical
+expression. The direction in which the native word weakens, however,
+taken as that is intended by the individual who uses its substitute, is
+in no sense universally fixated. The matter is entirely one of
+individual usage and must be examined afresh in each particular case.</p>
+
+<p>The striving for abbreviated forms of expression,&mdash;extraordinary enough
+in our gossipy times,&mdash;manifests itself in still another direction. On
+my table, e.g., there is an old family journal, “From Cliff to Sea.”
+What should the title mean? Obviously the spatial distribution of the
+subject of its contents and its subscribers&mdash;i.e., “round about the
+whole earth,” or “Concerning all lands and all peoples.” But such titles
+would be too long; hence, they are synthesized into, “From Cliff to
+Sea,” without the consideration that cliffs often stand right at the
+edge of the sea, so that the distance between them may be only the
+thickness of a hair:&mdash;cliff and sea are not local opposites.</p>
+
+<p>Or: my son enters and tells me a story about an “old semester.” By “old
+semester” he means an old student who has spent many terms, at least
+more than are required or necessary, at the university.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_300" id="page_300"></a>{300}</span> As this
+explanation is too long, the whole complex is contracted into “old
+semester,” which is comfortable, but unintelligible to all people not
+associated with the university. These abbreviations are much more
+numerous than, as a rule, they are supposed to be, and must always be
+explained if errors are to be avoided. Nor are silent and monosyllabic
+persons responsible for them; gossipy individuals seek, by the use of
+them, to exhibit a certain power of speech. Nor is it indifferent to
+expression when people in an apparently nowise comfortable fashion give
+approximate circumlocutive figures, e.g., <i>half-a-dozen</i>, four
+syllables, instead of the monosyllable <i>six</i>; or “the bell in the dome
+at St. Stephen’s has as many nicks as the year has days,” etc. It must
+be assumed that these circumlocutive expressions are chosen, either
+because of the desire to make an assertion general, or because of the
+desire for some mnemonic aid. It is necessary to be cautious with such
+statements, either because, as made, they only “round out” the figures
+or because the reliability of the aid to memory must first be tested.
+Finally, it is well-known that foreign words are often changed into
+senseless words of a similar sound. When such unintelligible words are
+heard, very loud repeated restatement of the word will help in finding
+the original.</p>
+
+<h3><a name="Title_B_Differentiating_Conditions_of_Giving_Testimony" id="Title_B_Differentiating_Conditions_of_Giving_Testimony"></a><span class="smcap">Title B. Differentiating Conditions of Giving Testimony.</span></h3>
+
+<h4>Topic 1. GENERAL DIFFERENCES.</h4>
+
+<h5>(a) Woman.</h5>
+
+<h5>Section 63. (1) <i>General Considerations.</i><a name="FNanchor_247_247" id="FNanchor_247_247"></a><a href="#Footnote_247_247" class="fnanchor">[247]</a></h5>
+
+<p>One of the most difficult tasks of the criminalist who is engaged in
+psychological investigation is the judgment of woman. Woman is not only
+somatically and psychically rather different from man; man never is able
+wholly and completely to put himself in her place. In judging a male the
+criminalist is dealing with his like, made of the same elements as he,
+even though age, conditions of life, education, and morality are as
+different as possible. When the criminalist is to judge a gray-beard
+whose years far outnumber his own, he still sees before him something
+that he may himself become, built as he, but only in a more advanced
+stage. When he is studying a boy, he knows what he himself felt and
+thought as boy. For we<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_301" id="page_301"></a>{301}</span> never completely forget attitudes and judgments,
+no matter how much time has elapsed&mdash;we no longer grasp them en masse,
+but we do not easily fail to recall how they were constructed. Even when
+the criminalist is dealing with a girl before puberty he is not without
+some point of approach for his judgment, since boys and girls are at
+that period not so essentially different as to prevent the drawing of
+analogous inferences by the comparison of his own childhood with that of
+the girl.</p>
+
+<p>But to the nature of woman, we men totally lack avenues of approach. We
+can find no parallel between women and ourselves, and the greatest
+mistakes in criminal law were made where the conclusions would have been
+correct if the woman had been a man.<a name="FNanchor_248_248" id="FNanchor_248_248"></a><a href="#Footnote_248_248" class="fnanchor">[248]</a> We have always estimated the
+deeds and statements of women by the same standards as those of men, and
+we have always been wrong. That woman is different from man is testified
+to by the anatomist, the physician, the historian, the theologian, the
+philosopher; every layman sees it for himself. Woman is different in
+appearance, in manner of observation, of judgment, of sensation, of
+desire, of efficacy,&mdash;but we lawyers punish the crimes of woman as we do
+those of man, and we count her testimony as we do that of man. The
+present age is trying to set aside the differences in sex and to level
+them, but it forgets that the law of causation is valid here also. Woman
+and man have different bodies, hence they must have different minds. But
+even when we understand this, we proceed wrongly in the valuation of
+woman. We can not attain proper knowledge of her because we men were
+never women, and women can never tell us the truth because they were
+never men.</p>
+
+<p>Just as a man is unable to discover whether he and his neighbor call the
+same color red, so, eternally, will the source of the indubitably
+existent differences in the psychic life of male and female be
+undiscovered. But if we can not learn to understand the essence of the
+problem of the eternal feminine, we may at least study its
+manifestations and hope to find as much clearness as the difficulty of
+the subject will permit. An essential, I might say, unscientific
+experience seems to come to our aid here. In this matter, we trust the
+real researches, the determinations of scholars, much less than the
+conviction of the people, which is expressed in maxims, legal
+differences, usage, and proverbs. We instinctively feel that the popular
+conception presents the experience of many hundreds of years,
+experiences of both men and women. So that we may assume that the
+mistakes of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_302" id="page_302"></a>{302}</span> observations of individuals have corrected each other
+as far as has been possible, and yield a kind of average result. Now,
+even if averages are almost always wrong, either because they appear too
+high or too low, the mistake is not more than half a mistake. If in a
+series of numbers the lowest was 4, the highest 12, and the average 8,
+and if I take the latter for the individual problem, I can at most have
+been mistaken about four, never about eight, as would have been the case
+if I had taken 4 or 12 for each other. The attitude of the people gives
+us an average and we may at least assume that it would not have
+maintained itself, either as common law or as proverb, if centuries had
+not shown that the mistake involved was not a very great one.</p>
+
+<p>In any event, the popular method was comparatively simple. No delicate
+distinctions were developed. A general norm of valuation was applied to
+woman and the result showed that woman is simply a less worthy creature.
+This conception we find very early in the history of the most civilized
+peoples, as well as among contemporary backward nations and tribes. If,
+now, we generally assume that the culture of a people and the position
+of its women have the same measure, it follows only that increasing
+education revealed that the simple assumption of the inferiority of
+woman was not correct, that the essential difference in psyche between
+man and woman could not be determined, and that even today, the old
+conception half unconsciously exercises an influence on our valuation of
+woman, when in any respect we are required to judge her. Hence, we are
+in no wise interested in the degree of subordination of woman among
+savage and half-savage peoples, but, on the other hand, it is not
+indifferent for us to know what the situation was among peoples and
+times who have influenced our own culture. Let us review the situation
+hastily.</p>
+
+<p>A number of classical instances which are brought together by Fink<a name="FNanchor_249_249" id="FNanchor_249_249"></a><a href="#Footnote_249_249" class="fnanchor">[249]</a>
+and Smith,<a name="FNanchor_250_250" id="FNanchor_250_250"></a><a href="#Footnote_250_250" class="fnanchor">[250]</a> show how little the classic Greek thought of woman, and
+W. Becker<a name="FNanchor_251_251" id="FNanchor_251_251"></a><a href="#Footnote_251_251" class="fnanchor">[251]</a> estimates as most important the fact that the Greek
+always gave precedence to children and said, “τἑχνα χαἱ γυναἱχας.” The
+Greek naturalists, Hippocrates and Aristotle, modestly held woman to be
+half human, and even the poet Homer is not free from this point of view
+(cf. the advice of Agamemnon to Odysseus). Moreover, he speaks mostly
+concerning the scandalmongering<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_303" id="page_303"></a>{303}</span> and lying of women, while later,
+Euripides directly reduces the status of women to the minimum (cf.
+Iphigenia).</p>
+
+<p>The attention of ancient Rome is always directed upon the puzzling,
+sphinx-like, unharmonious qualities in woman. Horace gives it the
+clearest expression, e.g., “Desinite in piscem mulier formosa superne.”</p>
+
+<p>The Orientals have not done any better for us. The Chinese assert that
+women have no souls. The Mohammedan believes that women are denied
+entrance to paradise, and the Koran (xliii, 17) defines the woman as a
+creature which grows up on a soil of finery and baubles, and is always
+ready to nag. How well such an opinion has sustained itself, is shown by
+the Ottomanic Codex 355, according to which the testimony of two women
+is worth as much as the testimony of one man. But even so, the Koran has
+a higher opinion of women than the early church fathers. The problem,
+“An mulier habeat animam,” was often debated at the councils. One of
+them, that of Macon, dealt earnestly with the MS. of Acidalius,
+“Mulieres homines non esse.” At another, women were forbidden to touch
+the Eucharist with bare hands. This attitude is implied by the content
+of countless numbers of evil proverbs which deal with the inferior
+character of woman, and certainly by the circumstance that so great a
+number of women were held to be witches, of whom about 100,000 were
+burned in Germany alone. The statutes dealt with women only in so far as
+their trustworthiness as witnesses could be depreciated. The
+Bambergensis (Art. 76), for example, permits the admission of young
+persons and women only in special cases, and the quarrels of the older
+lawyers concerning the value of feminine testimony is shown by
+Mittermaier.<a name="FNanchor_252_252" id="FNanchor_252_252"></a><a href="#Footnote_252_252" class="fnanchor">[252]</a></p>
+
+<p>If we discount Tacitus’ testimony concerning the high status of women
+among the Germanic tribes on the basis that he aimed at shaming and
+reforming his countrymen, we have a long series of assertions, beginning
+with that of the Norseman Havamál,&mdash;which progressively speaks of women
+in depreciatory fashion, and calls them inconstant, deceitful, and
+stupefying,&mdash;to the very modern maxim which brings together the extreme
+elevation and extreme degradation of woman: “Give the woman wings and
+she is either an angel or a beast.” Terse as this expression is, it
+ought to imply the proper point of view&mdash;women are either superior or
+inferior to us, and may be both at the same time. There are women who
+are superior and there are women who are inferior, and further, a
+single<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_304" id="page_304"></a>{304}</span> woman may be superior to us in some qualities and inferior in
+others, but she is not like us in any. The statement that woman is as
+complete in her own right as man is in his, agrees with the attitude
+above-mentioned if we correlate the superiority and inferiority of women
+with “purposefulness.” We judge a higher or lower organism from our
+standpoint of power to know, feel, and do, but we judge without
+considering whether these organisms imply or not the purposes we assume
+for them. Thus a uniform, monotonous task which is easy but requires
+uninterrupted attention can be better performed by an average, patient,
+unthinking individual, than by a genial fiery intellect. The former is
+much more to the purpose of this work than the latter, but he does not
+stand higher. The case is so with woman. For many of the purposes
+assigned to her, she is better constructed. But whether this
+construction, from our standpoint of knowing and feeling, is to be
+regarded as higher or lower is another question.</p>
+
+<p>Hence, we are only in a sense correct, when calling some feminine trait
+which does not coincide with our own a poorer, inferior quality. We are
+likely to overlook the fact that this quality taken in itself, is the
+right one for the nature and the tasks of woman, whereas we ought with
+the modern naturalist assume that every animal has developed correctly
+for its own purposes. If this were not the case with woman she would be
+the first exception to the laws of natural evolution. Hence, our task is
+not to seek out peculiarities and rarities in woman, but to study her
+status and function as given her by nature. Then we shall see that what
+we would otherwise have called extraordinary appears as natural
+necessity. Of course many of the feminine qualities will not bring us
+back to the position which has required them. Then we may or may not be
+able to infer it according to the laws of general co-existence, but
+whether we establish anything directly or indirectly must be for the
+time, indifferent; we do know the fact before us. If we find only the
+pelvis of a human skeleton we should be able to infer from its broad
+form that it belonged to a woman and should be able to ground this
+inference on the business of reproduction which is woman’s. But we shall
+also be able, although we have only the pelvis before us, to make
+reliable statements concerning the position of the bones of the lower
+extremities of <i>this</i> individual. And we shall be able to say just what
+the form of the thorax and the curve of the vertebral column were. This,
+also, we shall have in our power, more or less, to ground on the
+child-bearing function of woman. But we might go still further<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_305" id="page_305"></a>{305}</span> and say
+that this individual, who, according to its pelvic cavity, was a woman,
+must have had a comparatively smaller skull, and although we can not
+correlate the present mark with the child-bearing function or any other
+special characteristic of woman, we may yet infer it safely, because we
+know that this smaller skull capacity stands in regular relation to the
+broad pelvis, etc. In a like manner it will be possible to bring
+together collectively various psychical differences of woman, to define
+a number of them as directly necessary, and to deduce another number
+from their regular co-existence. The certainty here will be the same as
+in the former case, and once it is attained we shall be able
+satisfactorily to interpret the conduct, etc., of woman.</p>
+
+<p>Before turning to feminine psychology I should like briefly to touch
+upon the use of the literature in our question and indicate that the
+poets’ results are not good for us so long as we are trying to satisfy
+our particular legal needs. We might, of course, refer to the poet for
+information concerning the feminine heart,&mdash;woman’s most important
+property,&mdash;but the historically famous knowers of the woman’s heart
+leave us in the lurch and even lead us into decided errors. We are not
+here concerned with the history of literature, nor with the solution of
+the “dear riddle of woman;” we are dry-souled lawyers who seek to avoid
+mistakes at the expense of the honor and liberty of others, and if we do
+not want to believe the poets it is only because of many costly
+mistakes. Once we were all young and had ideals. What the poets told us
+we supposed to be the wisdom of life&mdash;nobody else ever offers any&mdash;and
+we wanted compulsorily to solve the most urgent of human problems with
+our poetical views. Illusions, mistakes, and guiltless remorse, were the
+consequence of this topsy-turvy work.</p>
+
+<p>Of course I do not mean to drag our poets to court and accuse them of
+seducing our youth with false gods&mdash;I am convinced that if the poets
+were asked they would tell us that their poetry was intended for all
+save for physicians and criminalists. But it is conceivable that they
+have introduced points of view that do not imply real life. Poetical
+forms do not grow up naturally, and then suddenly come together in a
+self-originated idea. The poet creates the idea first, and in order that
+this may be so the individual form must evolve according to sense. The
+more natural and inevitable this process becomes the better the poem,
+but it does not follow that since we do not doubt it because it seems so
+natural, it mirrors the process of life. Not one of us criminalists has
+ever seen a form<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_306" id="page_306"></a>{306}</span> as described in a poem&mdash;least of all a woman.
+Obviously, in our serious and dry work, we may be able to interpret many
+an observation and assertion of the poet as a golden truth, but only
+when we have tested its correctness for the daily life. But it must be
+understood that I am not saying here, that we ourselves might have been
+able to make the observation, or to abstract a truth from the flux of
+appearances, or at least to set it in beautiful, terse, and I might say
+convincing, form. I merely assert, that we must be permitted to examine
+whether what has been beautifully said may be generalized, and whether
+we then have found the same, or a similar thing, in the daily life.
+Paradoxical as it sounds, we must never forget that there is a kind of
+evidentiality in the form of beauty itself. One of Klopstock’s
+remarkable psalms begins: “Moons wander round the earth, earths round
+suns, the whole host of suns wander round a greater sun, Our Father,
+that art thou.” In this inexpressibly lofty verse there is essentially,
+and only in an extremely intensified fashion, evidence of the existence
+of God, and if the convinced atheist should read this verse he would, at
+least for the moment, believe in his existence. At the same time, a real
+development of evidence is neither presented nor intended. There are
+magnificent images, unassailable true propositions: the moon goes round
+about the earth, the earth about the sun, the whole system around a
+central sun&mdash;and now without anything else, the fourth proposition
+concerning the identity of the central sun with our heavenly Father is
+added as true. And the reader is captivated for at least a minute! What
+I have tried here to show by means of a drastic example occurs many
+times in poems, and is especially evident where woman is the subject, so
+that we may unite in believing that the poet can not teach us that
+subject, that he may only lead us into errors.</p>
+
+<p>To learn about the nature of woman and its difference from that of man
+we must drop everything poetical. Most conscientiously we must drop all
+cynicism and seek to find illumination only in serious disciplines.
+These disciplines may be universal history and the history of culture,
+but certainly not memoirs, which always represent subjective experience
+and one-sided views. Anatomy, physiology, anthropology, and serious
+special literature, presupposed, may give us an unprejudiced outlook,
+and then with much effort we may observe, compare, and renew our tests
+of what has been established, sine ira et studio, sine odio et gratia.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_307" id="page_307"></a>{307}</span></p>
+
+<p>I subjoin a list of sources and of especial literature which also
+contains additional references.<a name="FNanchor_253_253" id="FNanchor_253_253"></a><a href="#Footnote_253_253" class="fnanchor">[253]</a></p>
+
+<h5>Section 64. 2. <i>Difference between Man and Women.</i></h5>
+
+<p>There are many attempts to determine the difference between the feminine
+and masculine psyche. Volkmar in his “Textbook of Psychology” has
+attempted to review these experiments. But the individual instances show
+how impossible is clear and definite statement concerning the matter.
+Much is too broad, much too narrow; much is unintelligible, much at
+least remotely correct only if one knows the outlook of the discoverer
+in question, and is inclined to agree with him. Consider the following
+series of contrasts.</p>
+
+<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="">
+<tr><td align="center"><i>Male</i></td><td align="center"><i>Female</i></td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Individuality</td><td align="left">Receptivity (Burdach, Berthold)</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Activity</td><td align="left">Passivity (Daub, Ulrici, Hagemann)</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Leadership</td><td align="left">Imitativeness (Schleiermacher)</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Vigor</td><td align="left">Sensitivity to stimulation (Beneke)</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Conscious activity</td><td align="left">Unconscious activity (Hartmann)</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Conscious deduction&nbsp; </td><td align="left">Unconscious induction (Wundt)</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Will</td><td align="left">Consciousness (Fischer)</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Independence</td><td align="left">Completeness (Krause, Lindemann)</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Particularity</td><td align="left">Generally generic (Volkmann)</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="left">Negation</td><td align="left">Affirmation (Hegel and his school)</td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<p>None of these contrasts are satisfactory, many are unintelligible.
+Burdach’s is correct only within limits and Hartmann’s is approximately
+true if you accept his point of view. I do not believe that these
+explanations would help anybody or make it easier for him to understand
+woman. Indeed, to many a man they will appear to be saying merely that
+the psyche of the male is masculine, that of the female feminine. The
+thing is not to be done with epigrams however spirited. Epigrams merely
+tend to increase the already great confusion.</p>
+
+<p>Hardly more help toward understanding the subject is to be derived from
+certain expressions which deal with a determinate<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_308" id="page_308"></a>{308}</span> and also with a
+determining trait of woman. For example, the saying, “On forbidden
+ground woman is cautious and man keen,” may, under some circumstances,
+be of great importance in a criminal case, particularly when it is
+necessary to fix the sex of the criminal. If the crime was cautiously
+committed a woman may be inferred, and if swiftly, a man. But that maxim
+is deficient in two respects. Man and woman deal in the way described,
+not only in forbidden fields, but generally. Again, such characteristics
+may be said to be ordinary but in no wise regulative: there are enough
+cases in which the woman was much keener than the man and the man much
+more cautious than the woman.</p>
+
+<p>The greatest danger of false conceptions lies in the attribution of an
+unproved peculiarity to woman, by means of some beautifully expressed,
+and hence, apparently true, proverb. Consider the well known maxim: Man
+forgives a beautiful woman everything, woman nothing. Taken in itself
+the thing is true; we find it in the gossip of the ball-room, and in the
+most dreadful of criminal cases. Men are inclined to reduce the conduct
+of a beautiful sinner to the mildest and least offensive terms, while
+her own sex judge her the more harshly in the degree of her beauty and
+the number of its partisans. Now it might be easy in an attempt to draw
+the following consequences from the correctness of this proposition: Men
+are generally inclined to forgive in kindness, women are the unforgiving
+creatures. This inference would be altogether unjustified, for the maxim
+only incidentally has woman for its subject; it might as well read:
+Woman forgives a handsome man everything, man nothing. What we have at
+work here is the not particularly remarkable fact that envy plays a
+great rôle in life.</p>
+
+<p>Another difficulty in making use of popular truths in our own
+observations, lies in their being expressed in more or less definite
+images. If you say, for example, “Man begs with words, woman with
+glances,” you have a proposition that might be of use in many criminal
+cases, inasmuch as things frequently depend on the demonstration that
+there was or was not an amour between two people (murder of a husband,
+relation of the widow with a suspect).</p>
+
+<p>Now, of course, the judge could not see how they conversed together, how
+he spoke stormily and she turned her eyes away. But suppose that the
+judge has gotten hold of some letters&mdash;then if he makes use of the
+maxim, he will observe that the man becomes more explicit than the
+woman, who, up to a certain limit, remains ashamed. So if the man speaks
+very definitely in his letters, there<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_309" id="page_309"></a>{309}</span> is no evidence contradictory to
+the inference of their relationship, even though nothing similar is to
+be found in her letters. The thing may be expressed in another maxim:
+What he wants is in the lines; what she wants between the lines.</p>
+
+<p>The great difficulty of distinguishing between man and woman is
+mentioned in “Levana oder Erziehungslehre,” by Jean Paul, who says, “A
+woman can not love her child and the four continents of the world at the
+same time. A man can.” But who has ever seen a man love four continents?
+“He loves the concept, she the appearance, the particular.” What lawyer
+understands this? And this? “So long as woman loves, she loves
+continuously, but man has lucid intervals.” This fact has been otherwise
+expressed by Grabbe, who says: “For man the world is his heart, for
+woman her heart is the world.” And what are we to learn from this? That
+the love of woman is greater and fills her life more? Certainly not. We
+only see that man has more to do than woman, and this prevents him from
+depending on his impressions, so that he can not allow himself to be
+completely captured by even his intense inclinations. Hence the old
+proverb: Every new affection makes man more foolish and woman wiser,
+meaning that man is held back from his work and effectiveness by every
+inclination, while woman, each time, gathers new experiences in life. Of
+course, man also gets a few of these, but he has other and more valuable
+opportunities of getting them, while woman, who has not his position in
+the midst of life, must gather her experiences where she may.</p>
+
+<p>Hence, it remains best to stick to simple, sober discoveries which may
+be described without literary glamour, and which admit of no exception.
+Such is the statement by Friedreich<a name="FNanchor_254_254" id="FNanchor_254_254"></a><a href="#Footnote_254_254" class="fnanchor">[254]</a>: “Woman is more excitable, more
+volatile and movable spiritually, than man; the mind dominates the
+latter, the emotions the former. Man thinks more, woman senses more.”
+These ungarnished, clear words, which offer nothing new, still contain
+as much as may be said and explained. We may perhaps supplement them
+with an expression of Heusinger’s, “Women have much reproductive but
+little productive imaginative power. Hence, there are good landscape and
+portrait painters among women, but as long as women have painted there
+has not been any great woman-painter of history. They make poems,
+romances, and sonnets, but not one of them has written a good tragedy.”
+This expression shows that the imaginative power of woman is really more
+reproductive than productive,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_310" id="page_310"></a>{310}</span> and it may be so observed in crimes and
+in the testimony of witnesses.</p>
+
+<p>In crimes, this fact will not be easy to observe in the deed itself, or
+in the manner of its execution; it will be observable in the nature of
+the plan used. To say that the plan indicates productive creation would
+not be to call it original. Originality can not be indicated, without
+danger of misunderstanding, by means of even a single example; we have
+simply to cling to the paradigm of Heusinger, and to say, that when the
+plan of a criminal act appears more independent and more completely
+worked out, it may be assumed to be of masculine origin; if it seeks
+support, however, if it is an imitation of what has already happened, if
+it aims to find outside assistance during its execution, its originator
+was a woman. This truth goes so far that in the latter case the woman
+must be fixed upon as the intellectual source of the plan, even though
+the criminal actually was a man. The converse inference could hardly be
+held with justice. If a man has thought out a plan which a woman is to
+execute, its fundamental lines are wiped out and the woman permits the
+productive aspect of the matter to disappear, or to become so indefinite
+that any sure conclusion on the subject is impossible.</p>
+
+<p>Our phenomenon is equally important in statements by witnesses. In many
+a case in which we suppose the whole or a portion of a witness’s
+testimony to be incorrect, intentionally invented, or involuntarily
+imagined, we may succeed in extracting a part of the testimony as
+independent construction, and thus determining what might be incorrect
+in it. If, when this happens, the witness is a man and his lies show
+themselves in productive form, and if the witness is a woman and her
+lies appear to be reproduced, it is possible, at least, that we are
+being told untruths. The procedure obviously does not in itself contain
+anything evidential, but it may at least excite suspicion and thus
+caution, and that, in many cases, is enough. I may say of my own work
+that I have often gained much advantage from this method. If there were
+any suspicion that the testimony of a witness, especially the conception
+of some committed crime, was untrue, I recalled Heusinger, and asked
+myself “If the thing is untrue, is it a sonnet or a tragedy?” If the
+answer was “tragedy” and the witness a man, or, if the answer was
+“sonnet” and the witness a woman, I concluded that everything was
+possibly invented, and grew quite cautious. If I could come to no
+conclusion, I was considerably helped by Heusinger’s other proposition,
+asking myself, “Flower-pictures or historical subjects?<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_311" id="page_311"></a>{311}</span>” And here again
+I found something to go by, and the need to be suspicious. I repeat, no
+evidence is to be attained in this way, but we frequently win when we
+are warned beforehand.</p>
+
+<h5>(3) <i>Sexual Peculiarities.</i></h5>
+
+<h5>Section 65. (a) General Considerations.</h5>
+
+<p>Even if we know that hunger and love are not the only things that
+sustain impulse, we also know the profound influence that love and all
+that depends upon it exercise from time immemorial on the course of
+events. This being generally true, the question of the influence of sex
+on woman is more important than that of its influence on man, for a
+large number of profound conditions are at work in the former which are
+absent in the latter. Hence, it is in no way sufficient to consider only
+the physiological traits of the somatic life of woman, i.e.,
+menstruation, pregnancy, child-birth, the suckling period, and finally
+the climacterium. We must study also the possibly still more important
+psychical conditions which spring from the feminine nature and are
+developed by the demands of civilization and custom. We must ask what it
+means to character when an individual is required from the moment
+puberty begins, to conceal something for a few days every month; what it
+means when this secrecy is maintained for a long time during pregnancy,
+at least toward children and the younger people. Nor can it be denied
+that the custom which demands more self-control in women must exercise a
+formative influence on their natures. Our views do not permit the woman
+to show without great indirection whom she hates or whom she likes; nor
+may she indicate clearly whom she loves, nor must she appear solicitous.
+Everything must happen indirectly, secretly, and approximately, and if
+this need is inherited for centuries, it must, as a characteristic,
+impart a definite expression to the sex. This expression is of great
+importance to the criminalist; it is often enough to recall these
+circumstances in order to find explanation for a whole series of
+phenomena. What differences the modern point of view and modern
+tendencies will make remains to be seen.</p>
+
+<p>Let us now consider particular characteristics.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 66. (b) Menstruation.</h5>
+
+<p>We men, in our own life, have no analogy, not even a remote one, to this
+essentially feminine process. In the mental life of woman it is of
+greater importance than we are accustomed to suppose. In<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_312" id="page_312"></a>{312}</span> most cases in
+which it may be felt that the fact of menstruation influences a crime or
+a statement of facts, it will be necessary to make use of the court
+physician, who must report to the judge. The latter absolutely must
+understand the fact and influence of menstruation. Of course he must
+also have general knowledge of the whole matter, but he must require the
+court physician definitely to tell him when the event began and whether
+any diseased conditions were apparent. Then it is the business of the
+judge to interpret the physician’s report psychologically&mdash;and the judge
+knows neither more nor less psychology, according to his training, than
+the physician. Any text-book on physiology will give the important facts
+about menstruation. It is important for us to know that menses begin, in
+our climate, from the thirteenth to the fifteenth year, and end between
+the forty-fifth and the fiftieth year. The periods are normally a solar
+month&mdash;from twenty-seven to twenty-eight days, and the menstruation
+lasts from three to five days. After its conclusion the sexual impulse,
+even in otherwise frigid women, is in most cases intensified. It is
+important, moreover, to note the fact that most women, during their
+periods, show a not insignificant alteration of their mental lives,
+often exhibiting states of mind that are otherwise foreign to them.</p>
+
+<p>As in many cases it is impossible without other justification to ask
+whether menses have begun, it is worth while knowing that most women
+menstruate, according to some authorities, during the first quarter of
+the moon, and that only a few menstruate during the new or full moon.
+The facts are very questionable, but we have no other cues for
+determining that menstruation is taking place. Either the popularly
+credited signs of it (e.g., a particular appearance, a significant
+shining of the eyes, bad odor from the mouth, or susceptibility to
+perspiration) are unreliable, or there are such signs as feeling unwell,
+tension in the back, fatigue in the bones, etc., which are much more
+simply and better discovered by direct interrogation, or examination by
+a physician.</p>
+
+<p>If there is any suspicion that menstruation has influenced testimony or
+a crime, and if the other, especially the above-mentioned facts, are not
+against it, we are called upon to decide whether we are considering a
+mental event, due to the influence of menstruation. Icard<a name="FNanchor_255_255" id="FNanchor_255_255"></a><a href="#Footnote_255_255" class="fnanchor">[255]</a> has
+written the best monograph on this subject.</p>
+
+<p>Considering the matter in detail, our attention is first called to the
+importance of the beginning of menstruation. Never is a girl<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_313" id="page_313"></a>{313}</span> more
+tender or quiet, never more spiritual and attractive, nor more inclined
+to good sense, than in the beginning of puberty, generally a little
+before the menstrual periods have begun, or have become properly
+ordered. At this time, then, the danger that the young girl may commit a
+crime is very small, perhaps smaller than at any other time. And hence,
+it is the more to be feared that such a creature may become the victim
+of the passions of a roué, or may cause herself the greatest harm by
+mistaken conduct. This is the more possible when the circumstances are
+such that the child has little to do, though naturally gifted. Unused
+spiritual qualities, ennui, waking sensitivity and charm, make a
+dangerous mixture, which is expressed as a form of interest in exciting
+experiences, in the romantic, or at least the unusual. Sexual things are
+perhaps wholly, or partly not understood, but their excitation is
+present and the results are the harmless dreams of extraordinary
+experiences. The danger is in these, for from them may arise fantasies,
+insufficiently justified principles, and inclination to deceit. Then all
+the prerequirements are present which give rise to those well-known
+cases of unjust complaints, false testimony about seduction, rape,
+attempts at rape and even arson, accusing letters, and slander.<a name="FNanchor_256_256" id="FNanchor_256_256"></a><a href="#Footnote_256_256" class="fnanchor">[256]</a>
+Every one of us is sufficiently familiar with such accusations, every
+one of us knows how frequently we can not sufficiently marvel how such
+and such an otherwise quiet, honest, and peaceful girl could perform
+things so incomprehensible. If an investigation had been made to see
+whether the feat did not occur at the time of her first mensis; if the
+girl had been watched during her next mensis to determine whether some
+fresh significant alteration occurred, the police physician might
+possibly have been able to explain the event. I know many cases of
+crimes committed by half-grown girls who would under no circumstances
+have been accused of them; among them arson, lese majeste, the writing
+of numerous anonymous letters, and a slander by way of complaining of a
+completely fanciful seduction. In one of these cases we succeeded in
+showing that the girl in question had committed her crime at the time of
+her first mensis; that she was otherwise quiet and well conducted, and
+that she showed at her next mensis some degree of significant unrest and
+excitement. As soon as the menses got their proper adjustment not one of
+the earlier phenomena could be observed, and the child exhibited no
+further inclination to commit crimes.<a name="FNanchor_257_257" id="FNanchor_257_257"></a><a href="#Footnote_257_257" class="fnanchor">[257]</a></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_314" id="page_314"></a>{314}</span></p>
+
+<p>Creatures like her undergo similar danger when they have to make
+statements about perceptions which are either interesting in themselves,
+or have occurred in an interesting way. Here caution must be exercised
+in two directions. First: Discover whether the child in question was
+passing through her monthly period at the time when she saw the event
+under discussion, or when she was telling about it. In the former case,
+she has told of more than could have been perceived; in the second case
+she develops the delusion that she had seen more than she really had.
+How unreliable the testimony of youthful girls is, and what mistakes it
+has caused, are familiar facts, but too little attention is paid to the
+fact that this unreliability is not permanent with the individuals, and
+in most cases changes into complete trustworthiness. As a rule, the
+criminal judge is almost never in a position to determine the
+inconsistencies in the testimony of a menstruating girl, inasmuch as he
+sees her, at most, just a few times, and can not at those times observe
+differences in her love for truth. Fortunately the statements of newly
+menstruating girls, when untrue, are very characteristic, and present
+themselves in the form of something essentially romantic, extraordinary,
+and interesting. If we find this tendency of transforming simple daily
+events into extraordinary experiences, then, if the testimony of the
+girl does not agree with that of other witnesses, etc., we are warned.
+Still greater assurance is easy to gain, by examining persons who know
+the girl well on her trustworthiness and love of truth before this time.
+If their statements intensify the suspicion that menses have been an
+influence, it is not too much to ask directly, to re-examine, and, if
+necessary, to call in medical aid in order to ascertain the truth. The
+direct question is in a characteristically great number of cases
+answered falsely. If in such cases we learn that the observation was
+made or the testimony given at the menstrual period, we may assume it
+probably justifiable to suspect great exaggeration, if not pure
+invention.</p>
+
+<p>The menstrual period tends, at all ages from the youngest child to the
+full-grown woman, to modify the quality of perception and the truth of
+description. Von Reichenbach<a name="FNanchor_258_258" id="FNanchor_258_258"></a><a href="#Footnote_258_258" class="fnanchor">[258]</a> writes that sensitivity is intensified
+during the menstrual period, and even if this famous discoverer has said
+a number of crazy things on the subject, his record is such that he must
+be regarded as a clever man and an excellent observer. There is no doubt
+that his sensitive people were simply very nervous individuals who
+reacted vigorously to all external<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_315" id="page_315"></a>{315}</span> stimulations, and inasmuch as his
+views agree with others, we may assume that his observation shows at
+least how emotional, excitable, and inclined to fine perceptions
+menstruating women are. It is well-known how sharpened sense-perception
+becomes under certain conditions of ill-health. Before you get a cold in
+the head, the sense of smell is regularly intensified; certain headaches
+are accompanied with an intensification of hearing so that we are
+disturbed by sounds that otherwise we should not hear at all; every
+bruised place on the body is very sensitive to touch. All in all, we
+must believe that the senses of woman, especially her skin sensations,
+the sensations of touch, are intensified during the menstrual period,
+for at that time her body is in a “state of alarm.” This fact is
+important in many ways. It is not improbable that one menstruating woman
+shall have heard, seen, felt, and smelt, things which others, and she
+herself, would not have perceived at another time. Again, if we trace
+back many a conception of menstruating women we learn that the boundary
+between more delicate sensating and sensibility can not be easily drawn.
+Here we may see the universal transition from sensibility to acute
+excitability which is a source of many quarrels. The witness, the
+wounded, or accused are all, to a considerable degree, under its
+influence. It is a generally familiar fact that the incomparably larger
+number of complaints of attacks on women’s honor, fall through. It would
+be interesting to know just how such complaints of menstruating women
+occur. Of course, nobody can determine this statistically, but it is a
+fact that such trials are best conducted, never exactly four weeks after
+the crime, nor four weeks after the accusation. For if most of the
+complaints of menstruating women are made at the period of their menses,
+they are just as excited four weeks later, and opposed to every attempt
+at adjustment. This is the much-verified fundamental principle! I once
+succeeded by its use in helping a respectable, peace-loving citizen of a
+small town, whose wife made uninterrupted complaints of inuriam causa,
+and got the answer that his wife was an excellent soul, but, “gets the
+devil in her during her monthlies, and tries to find occasions for
+quarrels with everybody and finds herself immediately much insulted.”</p>
+
+<p>A still more suspicious quality than the empty capacity for anger is
+pointed out by Lombroso,<a name="FNanchor_259_259" id="FNanchor_259_259"></a><a href="#Footnote_259_259" class="fnanchor">[259]</a> who says that woman during menstruation is
+inclined to anger and to falsification. In this regard Lombroso may be
+correct, inasmuch as the lie may be combined<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_316" id="page_316"></a>{316}</span> with the other qualities
+here observed. We often note that most honorable women lie in the most
+shameless fashion. If we find no other motive and we know that the woman
+periodically gets into an abnormal condition, we are at least justified
+in the presupposition that the two are coordinate, and that the periodic
+condition is cause of the otherwise rare feminine lie. Here also, we are
+required to be cautious, and if we hear significant and not otherwise
+confirmed assertions from women, we must bear in mind that they may be
+due to menstruation.</p>
+
+<p>But we may go still further. Du Saulle<a name="FNanchor_260_260" id="FNanchor_260_260"></a><a href="#Footnote_260_260" class="fnanchor">[260]</a> asserts on the basis of
+far-reaching investigations, that a significant number of thefts in
+Parisian shops are committed frequently by the most elegant ladies
+during their menstrual period, and this in no fewer than 35 cases out of
+36, while 10 more cases occurred at the beginning of the period.</p>
+
+<p>Other authorities<a name="FNanchor_261_261" id="FNanchor_261_261"></a><a href="#Footnote_261_261" class="fnanchor">[261]</a> who have studied this matter have shown how the
+presentation of objects women much desire leads to theft. Grant that
+during her mensis the woman is in a more excitable and less actively
+resisting condition, and it may follow she might be easily overpowered
+by the seductive quality of pretty jewelry and other knickknacks. This
+possibility leads us, however, to remoter conclusions. Women desire more
+than merely pretty things, and are less able to resist their desires
+during their periods. If they are less able to resist in such things,
+they are equally less able to resist in other things. In handling those
+thefts which were formerly called kleptomaniac, and which, in spite of
+the refusal to use this term, are undeniable, it is customary, if they
+recur repeatedly, to see whether pregnancy is not the cause. It is well
+to consider also the influence of menstruation.</p>
+
+<p>Menstruation may bring women even to the most terrible crimes. Various
+authors cite numerous examples in which otherwise sensible women have
+been driven to the most inconceivable things&mdash;in many cases to murder.
+Certainly such crimes will be much more numerous if the abnormal
+tendency is unknown to the friends of the woman, who should watch her
+carefully during this short, dangerous period.</p>
+
+<p>The fact is familiar that the disturbances of menstruation lead to
+abnormal psychoses. This type of mental disease develops<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_317" id="page_317"></a>{317}</span> so quietly
+that in numerous cases the maladies are overlooked, and hence it is more
+easily possible, since they are transitive, to interpret them commonly
+as “nervous excitement,” or to pay no attention to them, although they
+need it.<a name="FNanchor_262_262" id="FNanchor_262_262"></a><a href="#Footnote_262_262" class="fnanchor">[262]</a></p>
+
+<h5>Section 67. (c) Pregnancy.</h5>
+
+<p>We may speak of the conditions and effects of pregnancy very briefly.
+The doubt of pregnancy will be much less frequent than that of
+menstruation, for the powerful influence of pregnancy on the psychic
+life of woman is well-known, and it is hence the more important to call
+in the physician in cases of crimes committed by pregnant women, or in
+cases of important testimony to be given by such women. But, indeed, the
+frequently obvious remarkable desires, the significant conduct, and the
+extraordinary, often cruel, impulses, which influence pregnant women,
+and for the appearance of which the physician is to be called in, are
+not the only thing. The most difficult and most far-reaching conditions
+of pregnancy are the purely psychical ones which manifest themselves in
+the sometimes slight, sometimes more obvious alterations in the woman’s
+point of view and capacity for producing an event. In themselves they
+seem of little importance, but they occasion such a change in the
+attitude of an individual toward a happening which she must describe to
+the judge, that the change may cause a change in the judgment. I repeat
+here also, that it may be theoretically said, “The witness must tell us
+facts, and only facts,” but this is not really so. Quite apart from the
+fact that the statement of any perception contains a judgment, it
+depends also and always on the point of view, and this varies with the
+emotional state. If, then, we have never experienced any of the
+emotional alteration to which a pregnant woman is subject, we must be
+able to interpret it logically in order to hit on the correct thing. We
+set aside the altered somatic conditions of the mother, the disturbance
+of the conditions of nutrition and circulation; we need clearly to
+understand what it means to have assumed care about a developing
+creature, to know that a future life is growing up fortunately or
+unfortunately, and is capable of bringing joy or sorrow, weal or woe to
+its parents. The woman knows that her condition is an endangerment of
+her own life, that<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_318" id="page_318"></a>{318}</span> it brings at least pains, sufferings, and
+difficulties (as a rule, over-estimated by the pregnant woman).
+Involuntarily she feels, whether she be educated or uneducated, the
+secrecy, the elusiveness of the growing life she bears, the life which
+is to come out into the world, and to bring its mother’s into jeopardy
+thereby. She feels nearer death, and the various tendencies which are
+attached to this feeling are determined by the nature and the conditions
+of each particular future mother’s sensations. How different may be the
+feeling of a poor abandoned bride who is expecting a child, from that of
+a young woman who knows that she is to bring into the world the
+eagerly-desired heir of name and fortune. Consider the difference
+between the feeling of a sickly proletarian, richly blessed with
+children, who knows that the new child is an unwelcome superfluity whose
+birth may perhaps rob the other helpless children of their mother, with
+the feeling of a comfortable, thoroughly healthy woman, who finds no
+difference between having three or having four children.</p>
+
+<p>And if these feelings are various, must they not be so intense and so
+far-reaching as to influence the attitude of the woman toward some event
+she has observed? It may be objected that the subjective attitude of a
+witness will never influence a judge, who can easily discover the
+objective truth in the one-sided observation of an event. But let us not
+deceive ourselves, let us take things as they are. Subjective attitude
+may become objective falsehood in spite of the best endeavor of the
+witness, and the examiner may fail altogether to distinguish between
+what is truth and what poetry. Further, in many instances the witness
+must be questioned with regard to the impression the event made on her.
+Particularly, if the event can not be described in words.</p>
+
+<p>We must ask whether the witness’s impression was that an attack was
+dangerous, a threat serious, a blackmail conceivable, a brawl
+intentional, a gesture insulting, an assault premeditated. In these, and
+thousands of other cases, we must know the point of view, and are
+compelled to draw our deductions from it. And finally, who of us
+believes himself to be altogether immune to emotional induction? The
+witness describes us the event in definite tones which are echoed to us.
+If there are other witnesses the incomplete view may be corrected, but
+if there is only one witness, or one whom for some reason we believe
+more than others, or if there are several, but equally-trusted
+witnesses, the condition, view-point, and “fact,” remain inadequate in
+us. Whoever has before him a pregnant woman with<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_319" id="page_319"></a>{319}</span> her impressions
+altered in a thousand ways, may therefore well be “up in the air!”<a name="FNanchor_263_263" id="FNanchor_263_263"></a><a href="#Footnote_263_263" class="fnanchor">[263]</a></p>
+
+<p>The older literature which develops an elaborate casuistic concerning
+cases in which pregnant women exhibited especial desires, or abnormal
+changes in their perceptions and expressions, is in many directions of
+considerable importance. We must, however, remember that the old
+observations are rarely exact and were always made with less knowledge
+than we nowadays possess.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 68. (d) Erotic.</h5>
+
+<p>A question which is as frequent as it is idle, concerns the degree of
+sexual impulse in woman. It is important for the lawyer to know
+something about this, of course, for many a sexual crime may be more
+properly judged if it is known how far the woman encouraged the man, and
+in similar cases the knowledge might help us to presume what attitude
+feminine witnesses might take toward the matter. First of all, the needs
+of individual women are as different as those of individual men, and as
+varied as the need for food, drink, warmth, rest, and a hundred other
+animal requirements. We shall be unable to find any standard by
+determining even an average. It is useless to say that sexual
+sensibility is less in woman than in man; because specialists contradict
+each other on this matter. We are not aided either by Sergi’s<a name="FNanchor_264_264" id="FNanchor_264_264"></a><a href="#Footnote_264_264" class="fnanchor">[264]</a>
+assertion, that the sensibility is less than the irritability in woman,
+or by Mantegazza’s statement, that women rarely have such powerful
+sexual desire that it causes them pain. We can learn here, also, only by
+means of the interpretation of good particular observations. When, for
+example, the Italian positivists repeatedly assert that woman is less
+erotic and more sexual, they mean that man cares more about the
+satisfaction of the sexual impulse, woman about the maternal instinct.
+This piece of information may help us to explain some cases; at least we
+shall understand many a girl’s mistake without needing immediately to
+presuppose rape, seduction by means of promises of marriage, etc. Once
+we have in mind soberly what fruits dishonor brings to a girl,&mdash;scorn
+and shame, the difficulties of pregnancy, alienation from relatives,
+perhaps even banishment<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_320" id="page_320"></a>{320}</span> from the paternal home, perhaps the loss of a
+good position, then the pains and sorrows of child-birth, care of the
+child, reduction of earnings, difficulties and troubles with the child,
+difficulties in going about, less prospect of care through
+wedlock,&mdash;these are of such extraordinary weight, that it is impossible
+to adduce so elementary a force to the sexual impulse as to enable it to
+veil the outlook upon this outcome of its satisfaction.</p>
+
+<p>The well-known Viennese gynaecologist, Braun, said, “If it were
+naturally so arranged that in every wedlock man must bear the second
+child, there would be no more than three children in any family.” His
+intention is, that even if the woman agrees to have the third child, the
+man would be so frightened at the pains of the first child-birth that he
+never again would permit himself to bear another. As we can hardly say
+that we have any reason for asserting that the sexual needs of woman are
+essentially greater, or that woman is better able to bear more pain than
+man, we are compelled to believe that there must be in woman an impulse
+lacking in man. This impulse must be supposed to be so powerful that it
+subdues, let us say briefly, all the fear of an illegitimate or
+otherwise undesirable child-birth, and this is the impulse we mean by
+sexuality, by the maternal instinct.</p>
+
+<p>It would seem as if nature, at least in isolated cases, desires to
+confirm this view. According to Icard there are women who have children
+simply for the pleasure of suckling them, the suckling being a pleasant
+sensation. If, now, nature has produced a sexual impulse purely for the
+sake of preserving the species, she has given fuller expression to
+sexuality and the maternal instinct when she has endowed it with an
+especial impulse in at least a few definite cases. This impulse will
+explain to the criminalist a large number of phenomena, especially the
+accommodation of woman to man’s desires; and from this alone he may
+deduce a number of otherwise difficultly explainable psychical
+phenomena.</p>
+
+<p>There is, of course, a series of facts which deny the existence of this
+impulse&mdash;but they only seem to. Child-murder, the very frequent cruelty
+of mothers to their children, the opposition of very young women to
+bearing and bringing up children (cf. the educated among French and
+American women), and similar phenomena seem to speak against the
+maternal instinct. We must not forget, however, that all impulses come
+to an end where the opposed impulse becomes stronger, and that under
+given circumstances even the most powerful impulse, that of
+self-preservation, may be opposed. All actions of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_321" id="page_321"></a>{321}</span> despair, tearing the
+beard, beating hands and feet together, rage at one’s own health, and
+finally suicide may ensue. If the mother kills her own child, this
+action belongs to the same series as self-damage through despair. The
+more orderly and numerous actions and feelings in this direction, e.g.,
+the disinclination of women toward bearing children, may be explained
+also by the fact that it is the consequence of definite conditions of
+civilization. If we recall what unnatural, senseless, and half crazy
+habits with regard to nutrition, dressing, social adjustments, etc.,
+civilization and fashion have forced upon us, we do not need to adduce
+real perversity in order to understand how desire for comfort, how
+laziness and the scramble for wealth lead to suppression of the maternal
+instinct. This may also be called degeneration. There are still other
+less important circumstances that seem to speak against the maternal
+instinct. These consist primarily in the fact that the sexual impulse
+endures to a time when the mother is no longer young enough to bear a
+child. We know that the first gray hair in no sense indicates the last
+lover, and according to Tait, a period of powerful sex-impulsion ensues
+directly after the climacterium. Now of what use, so far as child-birth
+is concerned, can such an impulse be?</p>
+
+<p>But because natural instincts endure beyond their period of purposive
+efficiency, it does not follow that they are unconnected with that
+efficiency; we eat and drink also when the food is superfluous as
+nourishment. Wonderfully as nature has adjusted the instincts and
+functions to definite purposes, she still has at no point drawn fixed
+boundaries and actually destroyed her instrument where the need for it
+ceased. Just because nature is elsewhere parsimonious, she seems
+frequently extravagant; yet that extravagance is the cheapest means of
+attaining the necessary end. Thus, when woman’s passion is no longer
+required for the function of motherhood, its impulsion may yet be
+counted on for the psychological explanation of more than one criminal
+event.</p>
+
+<p>What is important, is to count the maternal instinct as a factor in
+criminal situations. If we have done so, we find explanations not only
+of sexual impropriety, but of the more subtle questions of the more or
+less pure relation between husband and wife. What attitude the woman
+takes toward her husband and children, what she demands of them, what
+she sacrifices for them, what makes it possible for her to endure an
+apparently unendurable situation; what, again, undermines directly and
+suddenly, in spite of seemingly small value, her courage in life;&mdash;these
+are all conditions which<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_322" id="page_322"></a>{322}</span> appear in countless processes as the
+distinguishing and explaining elements, and they are to be understood in
+the single term, “maternal instinct.” For a long time the
+inexplicability of love and sexual impulse were offered as excuses, but
+these otherwise mighty factors had to be assigned such remarkable and
+self-contradictory aspects that only one confusion was added to another
+and called explanation. Now suppose we try to explain them by means of
+the maternal instinct.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 69. (e) Submerged Sexual Factors.</h5>
+
+<p>The criminal psychologist finds difficulties where hidden impulses are
+at work without seeming to have any relation to their results. In such
+cases the starting-point for explanation is sought in the wrong
+direction. I say starting-point, because “motive” must be conscious, and
+“ground” might be misunderstood. We know of countless criminal cases
+which we face powerless because we do indeed know the criminal but are
+unable to explain the causal connection between him and the crime, or
+because, again, we do not know the criminal, and judge from the facts
+that we might have gotten a clew if we had understood the psychological
+development of the crime. If we seek for “grounds,” we may possibly
+think of so many of them as never to approach the right one; if we seek
+motives, we may be far misled because we are able only to bring the
+criminal into connection with his success, a matter which he must have
+had in mind from the beginning. It is ever easy for us when motive and
+crime are in open connection: greed, theft; revenge, arson; jealousy,
+murder; etc. In these cases the whole business of examination is an
+example in arithmetic, possibly difficult, but fundamental. When,
+however, from the deed to its last traceable grounds, even to the
+attitude of the criminal, a connected series may be discovered and yet
+no explanation is forthcoming, then the business of interpretation has
+reached its end; we begin to feel about in the dark. If we find nothing,
+the situation is comparatively good, but it is exceedingly bad in the
+numerous cases in which we believe ourselves to have sighted and pursued
+the proper solution.</p>
+
+<p>Such a hidden source or starting-point of very numerous crimes is sex.
+That it often works invisibly is due to the sense of shame. Therefore it
+is more frequent in women. The hidden sexual starting-point plays its
+part in the little insignificant lie of an unimportant woman witness, as
+well as in the poisoning of a husband for the sake of a paramour still
+to be won. It sails everywhere under a<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_323" id="page_323"></a>{323}</span> false flag; nobody permits the
+passion to show in itself; it must receive another name, even in the
+mind of the woman whom it dominates.</p>
+
+<p>The first of the forms which the sexual impulse takes is false piety,
+religiosity. This is something ancient. Friedreich points to the
+connection between religious activity and the sexual organization, and
+cites many stories about saints, like that of the nun Blanbekin, of whom
+it was said, “eam scire desiderasse cum lacrimis, et moerore maximo,
+ubinam esset praeputium Christi.” The holy Veronica Juliani, in memory
+of the lamb of God, took a lamb to bed with her and nursed it at her
+breast. Similarly suggestive things are told of St. Catherine of Genoa,
+of St. Armela, of St. Elizabeth, of the Child Jesus, etc. Reinhard says
+correctly that sweet memories are frequently nothing more or less than
+outbursts of hidden passion and attacks of sensual love. Seume is
+mistaken in his assertion that mysticism lies mainly in weakness of the
+nerves and colic&mdash;it lies a span deeper.</p>
+
+<p>The use of this fact is simple. We must discover whether a woman is
+morally pure or sensual, etc. This is important, not only in violations
+of morality, but in every violation of law. The answers we receive to
+questions on this matter are almost without exception worthless or
+untrue, because the object of the question is not open to view, is
+difficult to observe, and is kept hidden from even the nearest. Our
+purpose is, therefore, best attained by directing the question to
+religious activity, religiosity, and similar traits. These are not only
+easy to perceive, but are openly exhibited because of their nature.
+Whoever assumes piety, does so for the sake of other people, therefore
+does not hide it. If religious extravagance can be reliably confirmed by
+witnesses, it will rarely be a mistake to assume inclination to more or
+less stifled sexual pleasure.</p>
+
+<p>Examples of the relationship are known to every one of us, but I want to
+cite two out of my own experience as types. In one of them the question
+turned on the fact that a somewhat old, unmarried woman had appropriated
+certain rather large trust sums and had presented them to her servant.
+At first every suspicion of the influence of sex was set aside. Only the
+discovery of the fact that in her ostentatious piety she had set up an
+altar in her house, and compelled her servant to pray at it in her
+company, called attention to the deep interest of this very moral maiden
+in her servant.</p>
+
+<p>The second case dealt with the poisoning of an old, impotent<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_324" id="page_324"></a>{324}</span> husband by
+his young wife. The latter was not suspected by anybody, but at her
+examination drew suspicion to herself by her unctuous, pious appearance.
+She was permitted to express herself at length on religious themes and
+showed so very great a love of saints and religious secrets that it was
+impossible to doubt that a glowing sensuality must be concealed
+underneath this religious ash. Adultery could not be proved, she must
+have for one reason or another avoided it, and that her impotent husband
+was unsatisfactory was now indubitable. The supposition that she wanted
+to get rid of him in order to marry somebody else was now inevitable;
+and as this somebody else was looked for and discovered, the adduction
+of evidence of her guilt was no longer difficult.</p>
+
+<p>How captious it is to prove direct passion and to attach reasonable
+suspicion thereto, and how necessary it is, first of all, to establish
+what the concealing material is, is shown in a remark of Kraus,<a name="FNanchor_265_265" id="FNanchor_265_265"></a><a href="#Footnote_265_265" class="fnanchor">[265]</a> who
+asserts that the wife never affects to be passionate with her husband;
+her desire is to seduce him and she could not desire that if she were
+not passionate. This assertion is only correct in general. It is not,
+however, true that woman has no reason for affectation, for there are
+enough cases in which some woman, rendered with child by a poor man,
+desires to seduce a man of wealth in order to get a wealthy father for
+her child. In such and similar cases, the woman could make use of every
+trick of seduction without needing to be in the least passionately
+disposed.</p>
+
+<p>Another important form of submerged sexuality is ennui. Nobody can say
+what ennui is, and everybody knows it most accurately. Nobody would say
+that it is burdensome, and yet everybody knows, again, that a large
+group of evil deeds spring from ennui. It is not the same as idleness; I
+may be idle without being bored, and I may be bored although I am busy.
+At best, boredom may be called an attitude which the mind is thrown into
+because of an unsatisfied desire for different things. We speak of a
+tedious region, a tedious lecture, and tedious company only by way of
+metonymy&mdash;we always mean the emotional state they put us into. The
+internal condition is determinative, for things that are boresome to one
+may be very interesting to another. A collection, a library, a lecture,
+are all tedious and boresome by transposition of the emotional state to
+the objective content, and in this way the idea of boredom gets a wide
+scope. We, however, shall speak of boredom as an emotional state. We
+find it most frequently among girls, young women, and among<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_325" id="page_325"></a>{325}</span> undeveloped
+or feminine men as a very significant phenomenon. So found, it is that
+particular dreamful, happy, or unhappy attitude expressed in desire for
+something absent, in quiet reproaches concerning the lack of the
+satisfaction of that desire, with the continually recurring wish for
+filling out an inner void. The basis of all this is mainly sex. It can
+not be proved as such mathematically, but experience shows that the
+emotional attitude occurs only in the presence of sexual energy, that it
+is lacking when the desires are satisfied, but that otherwise, even the
+richest and best substitution can offer no satisfaction. It is not
+daring, therefore, to infer the erotic starting-point. Again we see how
+the moralizing and training influence of rigidly-required work
+suppresses all superfluous states which themselves make express demands
+and might want complete satisfaction.</p>
+
+<p>But everything has its limits, and frequently the gentle, still power of
+sweet ennui is stronger than the pressure and compulsion of work. When
+this power is present, it never results in good, rarely in anything
+indifferent, and frequently forbidden fruit ripens slowly in its shadow.
+Nobody will assert that ennui is the cause of illicit relations, of
+seduction, of adultery and all the many sins that depend on it&mdash;from
+petty misappropriations for the sake of the beloved, to the murder of
+the unloved husband. But ennui is for the criminal psychologist a sign
+that the woman was unsatisfied with what she had and wanted something
+else. From wishing to willing, from willing to asking, is not such a
+great distance. But if we ask the repentant sinner when she began to
+think of her criminal action we always learn that she suffered from
+incurable ennui, in which wicked thoughts came and still more wicked
+plans were hatched. Any experienced criminal psychologist will tell you,
+when you ask him, whether he has been much subject to mistakes in trying
+to explain women’s crimes from the starting-point of their ennui. The
+neighborhood knows of the periods of this ennui, and the sinner thinks
+that they are almost discovered if she is asked about them. Cherchez la
+femme, cherchez l’amour; cherchez l’ennui; and hundreds of times you
+find the solution.</p>
+
+<p>Conceit, too, may be caused by hidden sexuality. We need only to use the
+word denotatively, for when we speak of the conceit of a scholar, an
+official, or a soldier, we mean properly the desire for fame, the
+activity of getting oneself praised and recognized. Conceit proper is
+only womanish or a property of feminine men, and just as, according to
+Darwin, the coloration of birds, insects, and even<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_326" id="page_326"></a>{326}</span> plants serves only
+the purposes of sexual selection and has, therefore, sexual grounds, so
+also the conceit of woman has only sexual purpose. She is conceited for
+men alone even though through the medium of other women. As Lotze wrote
+in his “Mikrokosmus,” “Everything that calls attention to her person
+without doing her any harm is instinctively used by woman as a means in
+sexual conflict.” There is much truth in the terms “means” and “sexual
+conflict.” The man takes the battle up directly, and if we deal with
+this subject without frills we may not deny that animals behave just as
+men do. The males battle directly with each other for the sake of the
+females, who are compelled to study how to arouse this struggle for
+their person, and thus hit upon the use of conceit in sexual conflict.
+That women are conceited does not much matter to us criminal
+psychologists; we know it and do not need to be told. But the forms in
+which their conceit expresses itself are important; its consequences and
+its relation to other conditions are important.</p>
+
+<p>To make use of feminine conceit in the court-room is not an art but an
+unpermissible trick which might lead too far. Whoever wants to succeed
+with women, as Madame de Rieux says, “must bring their self-love into
+play.” And St. Prospère: “Women are to be sought not through their
+senses&mdash;their weakness is in their heart and conceit.” These properties
+are, however, so powerful that they may easily lead to deception. If the
+judge does not understand how to follow this prescription it does no
+good, but if he does understand it he has a weapon with which woman may
+be driven too far, and then wounded pride, anger, and even suggestion
+work in far too vigorous a manner. For example, a woman wants to defend
+her lover before the judge. Now, if the latter succeeds by the
+demonstration of natural true facts in wounding her conceit, in
+convincing her that she is betrayed, harmed, or forgotten by her
+protected lover, or if she is merely made to believe this, she goes, in
+most cases, farther than she can excuse, and accuses and harms him as
+much as possible; tries, if she is able, to destroy him&mdash;whether rightly
+or wrongly she does not care. She has lost her lover and nobody else
+shall have him. “Feminine conceit,” says Lombroso, “explains itself
+especially in the fact that the most important thing in the life of
+woman is the struggle for men.” This assertion is strengthened by a long
+series of examples and historical considerations and can serve as a
+guiding thread in many labyrinthine cases. First of all, it is important
+to know in many trials whether a woman has already taken up this
+struggle for men, i.e., whether she has a lover,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_327" id="page_327"></a>{327}</span> or wishes to have a
+lover. If it can be shown that she has suddenly become conceited, or her
+conceit has been really intensified, the question has an unconditionally
+affirmative answer. Frequently enough one may succeed even in
+determining the particular man, by ascertaining with certainty the time
+at which this conceit first began, and whether it had closer or more
+distant reference to some man. If these conditions, once discovered, are
+otherwise at all confirmed, and there are no mistakes in observation,
+the inference is inevitably certain.</p>
+
+<p>We learn much concerning feminine conceit when we ask how a man could
+have altered the inclination of a woman whose equal he in no sense was.
+It is not necessary in such cases to fuss about the insoluble riddle of
+the female heart and about the ever-dark secrets of the feminine soul.
+Vulpes vult fraudem, lupus agnum, femina laudem&mdash;this illuminates every
+profundity. The man in question knew how to make use of laudem&mdash;he knew
+how to excite feminine conceit, and so vanquished others who were worth
+much more than he.</p>
+
+<p>This goes so far that by knowing the degree of feminine conceit we know
+also the vivacity of feminine sexuality, and the latter is
+criminologically important. Heinroth<a name="FNanchor_266_266" id="FNanchor_266_266"></a><a href="#Footnote_266_266" class="fnanchor">[266]</a> says, “The feminine
+individual, so long as it has demands to make, or believes itself to
+have them, has utmost self-confidence. Conceit is the sexual
+characteristic.” And we may add, “and the standard of sexuality.” As
+soon as the child has the first ribbon woven into its hair, sexuality
+has been excited. It increases with the love of tinsel and glitter and
+dies when the aging female begins to neglect herself and to go about
+unwashed. Woman lies when she asserts that everything is dead in her
+heart, and sits before you neatly and decoratively dressed; she lies
+when she says that she still loves her husband, and at the same time
+shows considerable carelessness about her body and clothes; she lies
+when she assures you that she has always been the same and her conceit
+has come or gone. These statements constitute unexceptionable rules. The
+use of them involves no possible error.</p>
+
+<p>We have now the opportunity to understand what feminine knowledge is
+worth and in what degree it is reliable. This is no place to discuss the
+capacity of the feminine brain, and to venture into the dangerous field
+which Schopenhauer and his disciples and modern anthropologists have
+entered merely to quarrel in. The judge’s business is the concrete case
+in which he must test the expressions<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_328" id="page_328"></a>{328}</span> of a woman when they depend upon
+real or apparent knowledge, either just as he must test the testimony of
+any other witness, or by means of experts. We shall therefore indicate
+only the symptomatic value of feminine knowledge with regard to feminine
+conceit. According to Lotze, women go to theater and to church only to
+show their clothes and to appear artistic and pious; while M.
+d’Arconville says, that women learn only that it may be said of them,
+“They are scholars,” but for knowledge they care not at all.</p>
+
+<p>This is important because we are likely, with regard to knowledge in the
+deepest sense of the word, to be frequently unjust to women. We are
+accustomed to suppose that the accumulation of some form of knowledge
+must have some definite, hence causally related, connection with
+purpose. We ask why the scholar is interested in his subject, why he has
+sought this knowledge? And in most cases we find the right reason when
+we have found the logical connection and have sought it logically. This
+might have explained difficult cases, but not where the knowledge of
+women is concerned. Women are interested in art, literature, and
+science, mainly out of conceit, but they care also for hundreds of other
+little things in order, by the knowledge of them, to show off as
+scholars. Conceit and curiosity are closely related. Women therefore
+often attain information that might cause them to be listed as suspects
+if it could not be harmlessly explained by conceit. Conceit, however,
+has itself to be explained by the struggle for men, because woman knows
+instinctively that she can use knowledge in this struggle. And this
+struggle for the other sex frequently betrays woman’s own crime, or the
+crime of others. Somebody said that Eve’s first thought after eating the
+apple was: “How does my fig-leaf fit?” It is a tasteful notion, that
+Eve, who needed only to please her Adam, thought only of this after all
+the sorrow of the first sin! But it is true, and we may imagine Eve’s
+state of mind to be as follows: “Shall I now please him more or less?”
+It is characteristic that the question about dress is said to have been
+the <i>first</i> question. It shows the power of conceit, the swiftness with
+which it presses to the front. Indeed, of all crimes against property
+half would have remained undiscovered if the criminals had been
+self-controlled enough to keep their unjustly acquired gains dark for a
+while. That they have not, constitutes the hope of every judge for the
+discovery of the criminal, and the hope is greater with the extent of
+the theft. It may be assumed that the criminal exhibits the fruits of
+his crime, but that it is difficult to discover when there is not much
+of it. This general<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_329" id="page_329"></a>{329}</span> rule is much more efficacious among women than
+among men, for which reason a criminalist who suspects some person
+thinks rather of arresting this person’s wife or mistress than himself.
+When the apprentice steals something from his master, his girl gets a
+new shawl, and that is not kept in the chest but immediately decorates
+the shoulders of the girl. Indeed, women of the profoundest culture can
+not wait a moment to decorate themselves with their new gauds, and we
+hear that gypsies, who have been caught in some fresh crime, are
+betrayed mainly by the fact that the women who had watched the house to
+be robbed had been trying on bits of clothing while the men were still
+inside cleaning the place up. What was most important for the women was
+to meet the men already decorated anew when the men would finally come
+back.</p>
+
+<p>The old maid is, from the sexual standpoint, legally important because
+she is in herself rather different from other women, and hence must be
+differently understood. The properties assigned to these very pitiful
+creatures are well-known. Many of the almost exclusively unpleasant
+peculiarities assigned to them they may be said really to possess. The
+old maid has failed in her natural function and thus exhibits all that
+is implied in this accident; bitterness, envy, unpleasantness, hard
+judgment of others’ qualities and deeds, difficulty in forming new
+relationships, exaggerated fear and prudery, the latter mainly as
+simulation of innocence. It is a well-known fact that every experienced
+judge may confirm that old maids (we mean here, always, childless,
+unmarried women of considerable age&mdash;not maids in the anatomical sense)
+as witnesses, always bring something new. If you have heard ten
+mutually-corroborating statements and the eleventh is made by an old
+maid, it will be different. The latter, according to her nature, has
+observed differently, introduces a collection of doubts and suggestions,
+introduces nasty implications into harmless things, and if possible,
+connects her own self with the matter. This is as significant as
+explicable. The poor creature has not gotten much good out of life, has
+never had a male protector, was frequently enough defenseless against
+scorn and teasing, the amenities of social life and friendship were
+rarely her portion. It is, therefore, almost inevitable that she should
+see evil everywhere. If she has observed some quarrel from her window
+she will testify that the thing was provoked in order to disturb her; if
+a coachman has run over a child, she suggests that he had been driving
+at her in order to frighten her; the thief who broke into her neighbor’s
+house really wanted to break into hers because she is<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_330" id="page_330"></a>{330}</span> without
+protection and therefore open to all attacks, so that it is conceivable
+that he should want to hurt her. As a rule there will be other
+witnesses, or the old maid will be so energetic in her testimonies that
+her “perceptions” will not do much damage, but it is always wise to be
+cautious.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, there are exceptions, and it is well-known that exceptions
+occur by way of extreme contrast. If an old maid does not possess the
+unpleasant characteristics of her breed, she is extraordinarily kind and
+lovable, in such a way generally, that her all too mild and rather blind
+conceptions of an event make her a dangerous witness. It is also true
+that old maids frequently are better educated and more civilized than
+other women, as De Quincey shows. They are so because, without the care
+of husband and children, they have time for all kinds of excellences,
+especially when they are inclined thereto. It is notable that the
+founders of women’s charitable societies are generally old maids or
+childless widows, who have not had the joys and tasks of motherhood. We
+must take care, therefore, in judging the kindness of a woman, against
+being blinded by her philanthropic activity. That may be kindness, but
+as a rule it may have its source in the lack of occupation, and in
+striving for some form of motherhood. In judging old maids we deceive
+ourselves still more easily because, as Darwin keenly noted, they always
+have some masculine quality in their external appearance as well as in
+their activity and feeling. Now that kind of woman is generally strange
+to us. We start wrong when we judge her by customary standards and miss
+the point when, in the cases of such old maids, we presuppose only
+feminine qualities and overlook the very virile additions. We may add to
+these qualities the intrinsic productivity of old maids. Benneke, in his
+“Pragmatische Psychologie,” compares the activity of a very busy
+housewife with that of an unmarried virgin, and thinks the worth of the
+former to be higher, while the latter accomplishes more by way of
+“erotic fancies, intrigues, inheritances, winnings in the lottery, and
+hypochondriac complaints.” This is very instructive from the
+criminological point of view. For the criminalist can not be too
+cautious when he has an old maid to examine. Therefore, when a case
+occurs containing characteristic intrigues, fanciful inheritances, and
+winnings in the lottery, it will be well to seek out the old maid behind
+these things. She may considerably help the explanation.</p>
+
+<p>Both professional and popular judgment agree that the largest majority
+of women have great fear of becoming old maids. We are<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_331" id="page_331"></a>{331}</span> told how this
+fear expresses itself in foreign countries. In Spain, e.g., it is said
+that a Spanish woman who has passed her first bloom takes the first
+available candidate for her hand in order to avoid old-maidenhood; and
+in Russia every mature girl who is able to do so, goes abroad for a
+couple of years in order to return as “widow.” Everybody knows the
+event, nobody asks for particulars about it. Some such process is
+universal, and many an unfortunate marriage and allied crime may be
+explained by it. Girls who at seventeen or eighteen were very particular
+and had a right to be, are modest at twenty, and at twenty-six marry at
+any price, in order not to remain old maids. That this is not
+love-marriage and is often contrary to intelligence, is clear, and when
+neither heart nor head rule, the devil laughs, and it is out of such
+marriages that adultery, the flight of the wife, cruelty, robbery from
+the spouse, and worse things, arise. Therefore it will be worth while to
+study the history of the marriage in question. Was it a marriage in the
+name of God, i.e., the marriage of an old maid? Then double caution must
+be used in the study of the case.</p>
+
+<p>There is some advantage in knowing the popular conception of when a girl
+becomes an old maid, for old-maidenhood is a matter of a point of view;
+it depends on the opinion of other people. Belles-lettres deals
+considerably with this question, for it can itself determine the popular
+attitude to the unmarried state. So Brandes discovers that the heroines
+of classical novelists, of Racine, Shakespeare, Moliere, Voltaire,
+Ariosto, Byron, Lesage, Scott, are almost always sixteen years of age.
+In modern times, women in novels have their great love-adventure in the
+thirties. How this advance in years took place we need not bother to
+find out, but that it has occurred, we must keep in mind.</p>
+
+<p>Before concluding the chapter on sexual conditions, we must say a word
+about hysteria, which so very frequently has deceived the judge.
+Hysteria was named by the ancients, as is known, from ἡ ὑστἑρα, the
+womb,&mdash;and properly&mdash;for most of the causes of evil are there hidden.
+The hysterics are legally significant in various ways. Their fixed ideas
+often cause elaborate unreasonable explanations; they want to attract
+attention, they are always concerned with themselves, are always wildly
+enthusiastic about somebody else; often they persecute others with
+unwarranted hatred, and they are the source of the coarsest
+denunciations, particularly with regard to sexual crimes. Incidentally,
+most of them are smart and have a diseased acuity of the senses. Hearing
+and smell in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_332" id="page_332"></a>{332}</span> particular, are sometimes remarkably alert, although not
+always reliable, for hysterics frequently discover more than is there.
+On the other hand, they often are useful because of their delicate
+senses, and it is never necessary to show the correctness of their
+perception out of hand. Bianchi rightly calls attention to the fact,
+that hysterics like to write anonymous letters. Writers of these are
+generally women, and mainly hysterical women; if a man writes them, he
+is indubitably feminine in nature.</p>
+
+<p>Most difficulties with hysterics occur when they suffer some
+damage,<a name="FNanchor_267_267" id="FNanchor_267_267"></a><a href="#Footnote_267_267" class="fnanchor">[267]</a> for they not only add a number of dishonest phenomena, but
+also actually feel them. I might recall by way of example Domrich’s
+story, that hysterics regularly get cramps laughing, when their feet get
+cold. If this is true it is easy to conceive what else may happen.</p>
+
+<p>All this, clearly, is a matter for the court physician, who alone should
+be the proper authority when a hysteric is before the court. We lawyers
+have only to know what significant dangers hysterics threaten, and
+further, that the physician is to be called whenever one of them is
+before us. Unfortunately there are no specific symptoms of hysteria
+which the layman can make use of. We must be satisfied with the little
+that has just been mentioned. Hysteria, I had almost said <i>fortunately</i>,
+is nowadays so widespread that everybody has some approximate knowledge
+of how it affects its victims.</p>
+
+<h5>(4) <i>Particular Feminine Qualities.</i></h5>
+
+<h5>Section 70. (a) Intelligence.</h5>
+
+<p>Feminine intelligence properly deserves a separate section. Intelligence
+is a function that has in both sexes some basis and purpose and proceeds
+according to the same rules, but the meaning of intelligence must be
+abandoned if we are to suppose it so rigid and so difficult to hold,
+that the age-long differences between man and woman could have had no
+influence on it. The fundamentally distinct bodies, the very different
+occupations of both sexes, their different destinies, must have had
+profound mutative influence on their intelligence. Moreover, we must
+always start with a difference of attitude in the two sexes, in which
+the purely positive belongs to one only, and we must see whether it is
+not intensified by the negative of the other. When one body presses on
+another the resulting impression is due, not only to the hardness of the
+first, but<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_333" id="page_333"></a>{333}</span> also to the softness of the second, and when we hear about
+the extraordinary wit of a woman we must blame the considerable idiocy
+of the men she associates with. How many women are to be trusted for
+intelligence, is a question of great importance for the criminalist,
+inasmuch as right judgment depends on the attitude and good sense of the
+witnesses, and must determine the value of the material presented us.</p>
+
+<p>We wish to make no detailed sub-divisions in what follows. We shall
+merely consider in their general aspects those functions which we are
+accustomed to find in our own work.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 71. 1. Conception.</h5>
+
+<p>Concerning feminine sense-perception we have already spoken. There is no
+significant difference between the two sexes, although in conceptual
+power we find differences very distinct.</p>
+
+<p>It may be generally said, as the daily life shows, that women conceive
+differently from men. Whatever a dozen men may agree on conceptually,
+will be differently thought of by any one woman. Now what is significant
+in this fact is, that generally the woman is correct, that she has a
+better conception,&mdash;and still under the same circumstances we continue
+to conceive in the same way, even for the tenth time. This fact
+demonstrates that a different form of organization, i.e., an essential
+difference in nature, determines the character of conception in the two
+sexes. If we compare values, the result will be different according to
+sex, even with regard to the very material compared, or to the manner in
+which it has been discovered. In the apprehension of situations, the
+perception of attitudes, the judgment of people in certain relations, in
+all that is called tact, i.e., in all that involves some abstraction or
+clarification of confused and twisted material, and finally, in all that
+involves human volitions, women are superior, and more reliable
+individually, then ten men together. But the manner in which the woman
+obtains her conception is less valuable, being the manner of pure
+instinct. Or suppose that we call it more delicate feeling&mdash;the name
+does not matter&mdash;the process is mainly unconscious, and is hence of less
+value only, if I may say so, as requiring less thought. In consequence,
+there is not only not a decrease in the utility of feminine testimony;
+also its reliability is very great. There may be hundreds of errors in
+the dialectical procedure of a man, while there is much more certainty
+in the instinctive conception and the direct reproduction of a woman.
+Hence, her statements are more reliable.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_334" id="page_334"></a>{334}</span></p>
+
+<p>We need not call the source of this instinct God’s restitution for
+feminine deficiency in other matters; we can show that it is due to
+natural selection, and that the position and task of woman requires her
+to observe her environment very closely. This need sharpened the inner
+sense until it became unconscious conception. Feminine interest in the
+environment is what gives female intuition a swiftness and certainty
+unattainable in the meditations of the profoundest philosophers. The
+swiftness of the intuition, which excludes all reflection, and which
+merely solves problems, is the important thing. Woman perceives clearly,
+as Spencer says somewhere, the mental status of her personal
+environment; while Schopenhauer has incorrectly suggested that women
+differ from men intellectually because they are lazy and want short-cuts
+to attain their purpose. In point of fact, they do not want
+short-cuts&mdash;they simply avoid complicated inference and depend upon
+intuition, as they very safely may. Vision is possible only where
+perception is possible, i.e., when things are near. The distant and the
+veiled can not be seen, but must be inferred; hence, women let inference
+alone and do what they can do better. This suggests the value of these
+different interpretations of the feminine mode of conception. As lawyers
+we may believe women where intuition is involved; where inference is a
+factor we must be very careful. Sensory conception is to be understood
+in the same way as intellectual conception. According to
+Mantegazza,<a name="FNanchor_268_268" id="FNanchor_268_268"></a><a href="#Footnote_268_268" class="fnanchor">[268]</a> woman has a particularly good eye for the delicate
+aspects of things but has no capacity for seeing things on the horizon.
+A remote, big object does not much excite her interest. This is
+explained by the supposed fact that women as a rule can not see so far
+as men, and are unable to distinguish the distant object so well. This
+is no explanation because it would be as valid of all short-sighted
+people. The truth is, that the definition of distant objects requires
+more or less reason and inference. Woman does not reason and infer, and
+if things miss her intuition, they do not exist for her.</p>
+
+<p>Objectivity is another property that women lack. They tend always to
+think in personalities, and they conceive objects in terms of personal
+sympathies. Tell a woman about a case so that her interest will be
+excited without your naming the individuals save as A and B, and it will
+be impossible to get her to take a stand or to make a judgment. Who are
+the people, what are they, how old are they, etc.? These questions must
+be answered first. Hence the divergent feminine conceptions of a case
+before and after the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_335" id="page_335"></a>{335}</span> names are discovered. The personalizing tendency
+results in some extraordinary things. Suppose a woman is describing a
+brawl between two persons, or two groups. If the sides were equally
+matched in strength and weapons, and if the witness in question did not
+know any of the fighters before, she will nevertheless redistribute sun
+and wind in her description if one of the brawlers happens accidentally
+to have interested her, or has behaved in a “knightly” fashion, though
+under other circumstances he might have earned only her dislike. In such
+cases the fairy tale about telling mere facts recurs, and I have to
+repeat that nobody tells mere facts&mdash;that judgment and inference always
+enter into statements and that women use them more than men. Of course
+real facts and inferred ones can be distinguished,&mdash;infrequently
+however, and never with certainty. It is best, therefore, to determine
+whether the witness bears any relation to one of the parties, and what
+it is. And this relation will be an element in most cases inasmuch as
+one rarely is present at a quarrel without some share in it. But even if
+the latter case should occur, it is necessary, first of all, to hear
+every detail so as to get the woman’s attitude clearly in mind. The
+evidence of the woman’s mode of conception is of more importance than
+the evidence concerning the fact itself. And finding the former is easy
+enough if the woman is for a short time allowed to speak generally. When
+her attitude is known, the standard for adjusting her excuses of one and
+accusations of another, is easily discovered.</p>
+
+<p>The same is true in purely individual cases. In the eyes of woman the
+same crime committed by one man is black as hell; committed by another,
+it is in all respects excusable. All that is necessary for this attitude
+is the play of sympathies and antipathies generated from whatever
+source. Just as the woman reader of romances favors one hero and hates
+another, so the woman witness behaves toward her figures. And it may
+happen that she finds one of them to have murdered with such “exciting
+excellence,” and the victim to have been “such a boresome Philistine,”
+that she excuses the crime. Caution is here the most necessary thing. Of
+course women are not alone in taking such attitudes, but they are never
+so clear, so typical, nor so determined as when taken by women.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 72. 2. Judgment.</h5>
+
+<p>Avenarius tells of an English couple who were speaking about angels’
+wings. It was the man’s opinion that this angelic possession was
+doubtful, the woman’s that it could not be. Many a woman<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_336" id="page_336"></a>{336}</span> witness has
+reminded me of this story, and I have been able to explain by use of it
+many an event. Woman says, “that must be” when she knows of no reason;
+“that must be” when her own arguments bore her; “that must be” when she
+is confused; when she does not understand the evidence of her opponent,
+and particularly when she desires something. Unfortunately, she hides
+this attitude under many words, and one often wishes for the simple
+assertion of the English woman, “that must be.” In consequence, when we
+want to learn their ratio sciendi from women, we get into difficulties.
+They offer us a collection of frequently astonishing and important
+things, but when we ask for the source of this collection we get “that
+must be,” in variations, from a shrug of the shoulders to a flood of
+words. The inexperienced judge may be deceived by the positiveness of
+such expressions and believe that such certainty must be based on
+something which the witness can not utter through lack of skill. If,
+now, the judge is going to help the “unaided” witness with “of course
+you mean because,” or “perhaps because,” etc., the witness, if she is
+not a fool, will say “yes.” Thus we get apparently well-founded
+assertions which are really founded on nothing more than “that must be.”</p>
+
+<p>Cases dealing with divisions, distinctions and analysis rarely contain
+ungrounded assertions by women. Women are well able to analyse and
+explain data, and what one is capable of and understands, one succeeds
+in justifying. Their difficulty is in synthetic work, in progressive
+movement, and there they simply assert. The few observations of this
+characteristic confirm this statement. For example, Lafitte says that at
+medical examinations women are unable to do anything which requires
+synthetic power. Women’s judgments of men further confirm this position,
+for they are said to be more impressed with a minimal success, than with
+a most magnificent effort. Now there is no injustice, no superficiality
+in this observation; its object is simply parallel to their incapacity
+for synthesis. Inasmuch as they are able to follow particular things
+they will understand a single success, but the growth of efficiency
+toward the future requires composition and wide horizon, hence they can
+not understand it. Hence, also, the curious contradictions in women’s
+statements as suspicion rises and falls. A woman, who to-day knows of a
+hundred reasons for the guilt of some much-compromised prisoner, tries
+to turn everything the other way when she later learns that the prisoner
+has succeeded in producing some apparent alibi. So again, if the
+prosecution seems to be successful,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_337" id="page_337"></a>{337}</span> the women witnesses for the defence
+often become the most dangerous for the defenders.</p>
+
+<p>But here, also, women find a limit, perhaps because like all weaklings
+they are afraid to draw the ultimate conclusions. As Leroux says in “De
+l’Humanité,” “If criminals were left to women they would kill them all
+in the first burst of anger, and if one waited until this burst had
+subsided they would release them all.” The killing points to the easy
+excitability, the passionateness, and the instinctive sense of justice
+in women which demands immediate revenge for evil deeds. The liberation
+points to the fact that women are afraid of every energetic deduction of
+ultimate consequences, i.e., they have no knowledge of real justice.
+“Men look for reasons, women judge by love; women can love and hate, but
+they can not be just without loving, nor can they ever learn to value
+justice.” So says Schiller, and how frequently do we not hear the
+woman’s question whether the accused’s fate is going to depend on her
+evidence. If we say yes, there is as a rule a restriction of testimony,
+a titillation and twisting of consequences, and this circumstance must
+always be remembered. If you want to get truth from a woman you must
+know the proper time to begin, and what is more important, when to stop.
+As the old proverb says, and it is one to take to heart: “Women are wise
+when they act unconsciously; fools when they reflect.”</p>
+
+<p>It is a familiar fact that women, committing crimes, go to extremes. It
+may be correct to adduce, as modern writers do, the weakness of feminine
+intelligence to social conditions, and it may, perhaps, be for this
+reason that the future of woman lies in changing the feminine milieu.
+But also with regard to environment she is an extremist. The most pious
+woman, as Richelieu says, will not hesitate to kill a troublesome
+witness. The most complicated crimes are characteristically planned by
+women, and are frequently swelled with a number of absolutely
+purposeless criminal deeds.</p>
+
+<p>In this circumstance we sometimes find the explanation for an otherwise
+unintelligible crime which, perhaps, indicates also, that the first
+crime was committed by woman. It is as if she has in turpitude a certain
+pleasure to which she abandons herself as soon as she has passed the
+limit in her first crime.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 73. 3. Quarrels with Women.</h5>
+
+<p>This little matter is intended only for very young and inexperienced
+criminal justices. There is nothing more exciting or instructive than<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_338" id="page_338"></a>{338}</span> a
+quarrel with clever and trained women concerning worthy subjects; but
+this does not happen in court, and ninety per cent. of our woman
+witnesses are not to be quarrelled with. There are two occasions on
+which a quarrel may arise. The first, when we are trying to show a
+denying prisoner that her crime has already been proved and that her
+denials are silly, and the second, when we are trying to show a witness
+that she must know something although she refuses to know it, or when we
+want to show her the incorrectness of her conclusion, or when we want to
+lead her to a point where her testimony can have further value. Now a
+verbal quarrel will hurt the case. This is a matter of ancient
+experience, for whoever quarrels with women is, as Börne says, in the
+condition of a man who must unceasingly polish lights.<a name="FNanchor_269_269" id="FNanchor_269_269"></a><a href="#Footnote_269_269" class="fnanchor">[269]</a></p>
+
+<p>Women have an obstinacy, and it is no easy matter to be passive against
+it. But in the interest of justice, the part of the wise is not to lose
+any time by making an exhibition of himself through verbal quarrels with
+women witnesses. The judge may be thoroughly convinced that his success
+with the woman may help the case, but such success is very rare, and
+when he thinks he has it, it is only apparent and momentary, or is
+merely naïve self-deception. For women do like, for the sake of a
+momentary advantage, to please men and to appear convinced, but the
+judge for whom a woman does this is in a state that requires
+consideration.</p>
+
+<p>A few more particulars concerning feminine intelligence. They are,
+however, only indirectly connected with it, and are as unintelligible as
+the fact that left-handedness is more frequent and color-blindness less
+frequent among women than among men. If, however, we are to explain
+feminine intelligence at all we must do so by conceiving that women’s
+intellectual functioning stops at a definite point and can not pass
+beyond it.</p>
+
+<p>Consider their attitude toward money. However distasteful Mammon may be
+in himself, money is so important a factor in life itself that it is not
+unintelligibly spoken of as the “majesty of cold cash.” But to make
+incorrect use of an important thing is to be unintelligent. Whoever
+wastes money is not intelligent enough to understand what important
+pleasures he may provide for himself, and whoever hoards it does not
+know its proper use. Now single women are either hoarders or wasters;
+they rarely take the middle way and assume the prudence of the
+housewife, which generally develops into miserliness. This is best
+observable in the foolish<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_339" id="page_339"></a>{339}</span> bargaining of women at markets, in their
+supposing that they have done great things by having reduced the price
+of their purchase a few cents. Every dealer confirms the fact that the
+first price he quotes a woman is increased in order to give her a chance
+to bargain. But she does not bargain down to the proper price, she
+bargains down to a sum above the proper price, and she frequently buys
+unnecessary, or inferior things, simply because the dealer was smart
+enough to captivate her by allowing reductions. This is indicated in a
+certain criminal case,<a name="FNanchor_270_270" id="FNanchor_270_270"></a><a href="#Footnote_270_270" class="fnanchor">[270]</a> in which the huckster-woman asserted that
+she immediately suspected a customer of passing counterfeit coins
+because she did not bargain.</p>
+
+<p>Now this tendency to hoard is not essentially miserliness, for the chief
+purpose of miserliness is to bring together and to own money; to enjoy
+merely the look of it. This tendency is an unintelligent attitude toward
+money, a failure to judge its value and properties. Now this failure is
+one of the principal reasons for numerous crimes. A woman needing money
+for her thousand several objects, demands it from her husband, and the
+latter has to provide it without her asking whether he honestly can or
+not. A wife is said to be uncurious only with regard to the source of
+her husband’s money. She knows his income, she knows the necessary
+annual expenses; she can immediately count up the fact that the two are
+equal&mdash;but she calmly asks for more.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, I am not referring to the courageous helpmeet who stands by
+her husband in bearing the burdens of life. With her the criminalist has
+nothing to do. I mean only those light-headed, pleasure-loving women,
+who nowadays make the great majority, and that army of “lovers,” who
+have cost the country a countless number of not unworthy men. The love
+of women is the key to many a crime, even murder, theft, swindling, and
+treachery. First, there is the woman’s unintelligible arithmetic, then
+her ceaseless requirements, finally the man’s surrender to the limit of
+his powers; then fresh demands, a long period of opposition, then
+surrender, and finally one unlawful action. From that it is only a step
+to a great crime. This is the simple theme of the countless variations
+that are played in the criminal court. There are proverbs enough to show
+how thoroughly the public understands this connection between love and
+money.<a name="FNanchor_271_271" id="FNanchor_271_271"></a><a href="#Footnote_271_271" class="fnanchor">[271]</a></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_340" id="page_340"></a>{340}</span></p>
+
+<p>An apparently insignificant feminine quality which is connected with her
+intelligence is her notorious, “never quite ready.” The criminalist
+meets this when he is looking for an explanation of the failure of some
+probably extraordinarily intelligent plan of crime. Or when a crime
+occurs which might have been prevented by a step at the right minute,
+women are always ten minutes behind the time. But these minutes would
+not be gained if things were begun ten minutes earlier, and once a woman
+suffers real damage through tardiness, she resolves to be ten minutes
+ahead of time. But when she does so she fails in her resolution and this
+failure is to be explained by lack of intelligence. The little fact that
+women are never quite on time explains many a difficulty.</p>
+
+<p>Feminine conservatism is as insignificant as feminine punctuality.
+Lombroso shows how attached women are to old things. Ideas, jewelry,
+verses, superstitions, and proverbs are better retained by women than by
+men. Nobody would venture to assert that a conservative man must be less
+intelligent than a liberal. Yet feminine conservatism indicates a
+certain stupidity, less excitability and smaller capacity for accepting
+new impressions. Women have a certain difficulty in assimilating and
+reconstructing things, and because of this difficulty they do not like
+to surrender an object after having received it. Hence, it is well not
+to be too free with the more honorable attributes such as piety, love,
+loyalty, respect to what they have already learned; closer investigation
+discovers altogether too many instances of intellectual rigidity.</p>
+
+<p>In our profession we meet the fact frequently that men pass much more
+easily from honesty to dishonesty, and vice versa, that they more easily
+change their habits, begin new plans, etc. Generalizations, of course,
+can not be made; each case has to be studied on its merits. Yet, even
+when questions of fact arise, e.g., in searching houses, it is well to
+remember the distinction. Old letters, real corpora delicti, are much
+more likely to be found in the woman’s box than in the man’s. The latter
+has destroyed the thing long ago, but the former may “out of piety” have
+preserved for years even the poison she once used to commit murder with.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 74. (b) Honesty.</h5>
+
+<p>We shall speak here only of the honesty of the sort of women the courts
+have most to do with, and in this regard there is little to give us joy.
+Not to be honest, and to lie, are two different things; the latter is
+positive, the former negative, the dishonest person<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_341" id="page_341"></a>{341}</span> does not tell the
+truth, the liar tells the untruth. It is dishonest to suppress a portion
+of the truth, to lead others into mistakes, to fail to justify
+appearances, and to make use of appearances. The dishonest person may
+not have said a single untrue word and still have introduced many more
+difficulties, confusions and deceptions than the liar. He is for this
+reason more dangerous than the latter. Also, because his conduct is more
+difficult to uncover and because he is more difficult to conquer than
+the liar. Dishonesty is, however, a specially feminine characteristic,
+and in men occurs only when they are effeminate. Real manliness and
+dishonesty are concepts which can not be united. Hence, the popular
+proverb says, “Women always tell the truth, but not the whole truth.”
+And this is more accurate than the accusation of many writers, that
+women lie. I do not believe that the criminal courts can verify the
+latter accusation. I do not mean that women never lie&mdash;they lie
+enough&mdash;but they do not lie more than men do, and none of us would
+attribute lying to women as a sexual trait. To do so, would be to
+confuse dishonesty with lying.</p>
+
+<p>It would be a mistake to deal too sternly in court with the dishonesty
+of women, for we ourselves and social conditions are responsible for
+much of it. We dislike to use the right names of things and choose
+rather to suggest, to remain in embarrassed silence, or to blush. Hence,
+it is too much to ask that this round-aboutness should be set aside in
+the courtroom, where circumstances make straight talking even more
+difficult. According to Lombroso,<a name="FNanchor_272_272" id="FNanchor_272_272"></a><a href="#Footnote_272_272" class="fnanchor">[272]</a> women lie because of their
+weaknesses, and because of menstruation and pregnancy, for which they
+have in conversation to substitute other illnesses; because of the
+feeling of shame, because of the sexual selection which compels them to
+conceal age, defects, diseases; because finally of their desire to be
+interesting, their suggestibility, and their small powers of judgment.
+All these things tend to make them lie, and then as mothers they have to
+deceive their children about many things. Indeed, they are themselves no
+more than children, Lombroso concludes. But it is a mistake to suppose
+that these conditions lead to lying, for women generally acquire
+silence, some other form of action, or the negative propagation of
+error. But this is essentially dishonesty. To assert that deception,
+lying, have become physiological properties of women is, therefore,
+wrong. According to Lotze, women hate analysis and hence can not
+distinguish between the true and the false, but then women hate
+analysis<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_342" id="page_342"></a>{342}</span> only when it is applied to themselves. A woman does not want
+to be analyzed herself simply because analysis would reveal a great deal
+of dishonesty; she is therefore a stranger to thorough-going honest
+activity. But for this men are to blame. Nobody, as Flaubert says, tells
+women the truth. And when once they hear it they fight it as something
+extraordinary. They are not even honest with themselves. But this is not
+only true in general; it is true also in particular cases which the
+court room sees. We ourselves make honesty difficult to women before the
+court. Of course, I do not mean that to avoid this we are to be rude and
+shameless in our conversation with women, but it is certain that we
+compel them to be dishonest by our round-about handling of every
+ticklish subject. Any half-experienced criminal justice knows that much
+more progress can be made by simple and absolutely open discussion. A
+highly educated woman with whom I had a frank talk about such a matter,
+said at the end of this very painful sitting, “Thank God, that you spoke
+frankly and without prudery&mdash;I was very much afraid that by foolish
+questions you might compel me to prudish answers and hence, to complete
+dishonesty.”</p>
+
+<p>We have led women so far by our indirection that according to Stendhal,
+to be honest, is to them identical with appearing naked in public.
+Balzac asks, “Have you ever observed a lie in the attitude and manner of
+woman? Deceit is as easy to them as falling snow in heaven.” But this is
+true only if he means dishonesty. It is not true that it is easy for
+women really to lie. I do not know whether this fact can be proven, but
+I am sure the feminine malease in lying can be observed. The play of
+features, the eyes, the breast, the attitude, betrays almost always even
+the experienced female offender. Now, nothing can reveal the play of her
+essential dishonesty. If a man once confesses, he confesses with less
+constraint than a woman, and he is less likely, even if he is very bad,
+to take advantage of false favorable appearances, while woman accepts
+them with the semblance of innocence. If a man has not altogether given
+a complete version, his failure is easy to recognize by his hesitation,
+but the opinions of woman always have a definite goal, even though she
+should tell us only a tenth of what she might know and say.</p>
+
+<p>Even her simplest affirmation or denial is not honest. Her “no” is not
+definite; e.g., her “no” to a man’s demands. Still further, when a man
+affirms or denies and there is some limitation to his assertion. He
+either announces it expressly or the more trained ear<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_343" id="page_343"></a>{343}</span> recognizes its
+presence in the failure to conclude, in a hesitation of the tone. But
+the woman says “yes” and “no,” even when only a small portion of one or
+the other asserts a truth behind which she can hide herself, and this is
+a matter to keep in mind in the courtroom.</p>
+
+<p>Also the art of deception or concealment depends on dishonesty rather
+than on pure deceit, because it consists much more in the use of
+whatever is at hand, and in suppression of material, than on direct
+lies. So, when the proverb says that a woman was ill only three times
+during the course of the year, but each time for four months, it will be
+unjust to say that she intentionally denies a year-long illness. She
+does not, but as a matter of fact, she is ill at least thirteen times a
+year, and besides, her weak physique causes her to feel frequently
+unwell. So she does not lie about her illness. But then she does not
+immediately announce her recovery and permits people to nurse and
+protect her even when she has no need of it. Perhaps she does so
+because, in the course of the centuries, she found it necessary to
+magnify her little troubles in order to protect herself against brutal
+men, and had, therefore, to forge the weapon of dishonesty. So
+Schopenhauer agrees: “Nature has given women only one means of
+protection and defence&mdash;hypocrisy; this is congenital with them, and the
+use of it is as natural as the animal’s use of its claws. Women feel
+they have a certain degree of justification for their hypocrisy.”</p>
+
+<p>With this hypocrisy we have, as lawyers, to wage a constant battle.
+Quite apart from the various ills and diseases which women assume before
+the judge, everything else is pretended; innocence, love of children,
+spouses, and parents; pain at loss and despair at reproaches; a breaking
+heart at separation; and piety,&mdash;in short, whatever may be useful. This
+subjects the examining justice to the dangers and difficulties of being
+either too harsh, or being fooled. He can save himself much trouble by
+remembering that in this simulation there is much dishonesty and few
+lies. The simulation is rarely thorough-going, it is an intensification
+of something actually there.</p>
+
+<p>And now think of the tears which are wept before every man, and not
+least, before the criminal judge. Popular proverbs tend to undervalue,
+often to distrust tearful women. Mantegazza<a name="FNanchor_273_273" id="FNanchor_273_273"></a><a href="#Footnote_273_273" class="fnanchor">[273]</a> points out that every
+man over thirty can recall scenes in which it was difficult to determine
+how much of a woman’s tears meant real<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_344" id="page_344"></a>{344}</span> pain, and how much was
+voluntarily shed. In the notion that tears represent a mixture of poetry
+and truth, we shall find the correct solution. It would be interesting
+to question female virtuosos in tears (when women see that they can
+really teach they are quite often honest) about the matter. The
+questioner would inevitably learn that it is impossible to weep at will
+and without reason. Only a child can do that. Tears require a definite
+reason and a certain amount of time which may be reduced by great
+practice to a minimum, but even that minimum requires some duration.
+Stories in novels and comic papers in which women weep bitterly about a
+denied new coat, are fairy tales; in point of fact the lady begins by
+feeling hurt because her husband refused to buy her the thing, then she
+thinks that he has recently refused to buy her a dress, and to take her
+to the theatre; that at the same time he looks unfriendly and walks away
+to the window; that indeed, she is really a pitiful, misunderstood,
+immeasurably unhappy woman, and after this crescendo, which often occurs
+presto prestissimo, the stream of tears breaks through. Some tiny
+reason, a little time, a little auto-suggestion, and a little
+imagination,&mdash;these can keep every woman weeping eternally, and these
+tears can always leave us cold. Beware, however, of the silent tears of
+real pain, especially of hurt innocence. These must not be mistaken for
+the first. If they are, much harm may be done, for these tears, if they
+do not represent penitence for guilt, are real evidences of innocence. I
+once believed that the surest mark of such tears was the deceiving
+attempt to beat down and suppress them; an attempt which is made with
+elementary vigor. But even this attempt to fight them off is frequently
+not quite real.</p>
+
+<p>As with tears, so with fainting. The greater number of fainting fits are
+either altogether false, or something between fainting and wakefulness.
+Women certainly, whether as prisoners or witnesses, are often very
+uncomfortable in court, and if the discomfort is followed immediately by
+illness, dizziness, and great fear, fainting is natural. If only a
+little exaggeration, auto-suggestion, relaxation, and the attempt to
+dodge the unpleasant circumstance are added, then the fainting fit is
+ready to order, and the effect is generally in favor of the fainter.
+Although it is wrong to assume beforehand that fainting is a comedy, it
+is necessary to beware of deception.</p>
+
+<p>An interesting question, which, thank heaven, does not concern the
+criminal justice, is whether women can keep their word. When a
+criminalist permits a woman to promise not to tell anybody else<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_345" id="page_345"></a>{345}</span> of her
+testimony, or some similar naïveté, he may settle his account with his
+conscience. The criminalist must not accept promises at all, and he is
+only getting his reward when women fool him. The fact is, that woman
+does not know the definite line between right and wrong. Or better, she
+draws the line in a different way; sometimes more sharply, but in the
+main more broadly than man, and in many cases she does not at all
+understand that certain distinctions are not permitted. This occurs
+chiefly where the boundaries are really unstable, or where it is not
+easy to understand the personality of the sufferer. Hence, it is always
+difficult to make woman understand that state, community, or other
+public weal, must in and for themselves be sacred against all harm. The
+most honest and pious woman is not only without conscience with regard
+to dodging her taxes, she also finds great pleasure in having done so
+successfully. It does not matter what it is she smuggles, she is glad to
+smuggle successfully, but smuggling is not, as might be supposed, a
+sport for women, though women need more nervous excitement and sport
+than men. Their attitude shows that they are really unable to see that
+they are running into danger because they are violating the law. When
+you tell them that the state is justified in forbidding smuggling, they
+always answer that they have smuggled such a very little, that nobody
+would miss the duties. Then the interest in smugglers and
+smuggling-stories is exceedingly great. We once had a girl who was born
+on the boundary between Italy and Austria. Her father was a notorious
+smuggler, the chief of a band that brought coffee and silk across the
+border. He grew rich in the trade, but he lost everything in an
+especially great venture, and was finally shot by the customs-officers
+at the boundary. If you could see with what interest, spirit, and
+keenness the girl described her father’s dubious courses you would
+recognize that she had not the slightest idea that there was anything
+wrong in what he was doing.</p>
+
+<p>Women, moreover, do not understand the least regulation. I frequently
+have had cases in which even intelligent women could not see why it was
+wrong to make a “small” change in a public register; why it was wrong to
+give, in a foreign city, a false name at the hotel; or why the police
+might forbid the shaking of dust-cloths over the heads of pedestrians,
+even from her “own” house; why the dog must be kept chained; and what
+good such “vexations” could do, anyway.</p>
+
+<p>Again, tiny bits of private property are not safe from women. Note how
+impossible it is to make women understand that private<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_346" id="page_346"></a>{346}</span> property is
+despoiled when flowers or fruit are plucked from a private garden. The
+point is so small, and as a rule, the property owner makes no
+objections, but it must be granted that he has the right to do so. Then
+their tendency to steal, in the country, bits of ground and boundaries
+is well known. Most of the boundary cases we have, involved the activity
+of some woman.</p>
+
+<p>Even in their own homes women do not conceive property too rigidly. They
+appropriate pen, paper, pencils, clothes, etc., without having any idea
+of replacing what they have taken away. This may be confirmed by anybody
+whose desk is not habitually sacrosanct, and he will agree that it is
+not slovenliness, but defective sense of property that causes women to
+do this, for even the most consummate housekeepers do so. This defective
+property-sense is most clearly shown in the notorious fact that women
+cheat at cards. According to Lombroso, an educated, much experienced
+woman told him in confidence that it is difficult for her sex not to
+cheat at cards. Croupiers in gambling halls know things much worse. They
+say that they must watch women much more than men because they are not
+only more frequent cheaters, but more expert. Even at croquet and
+lawn-tennis girls are unspeakably smart about cheating if they can
+thereby put their masculine opponents impudently at a disadvantage.</p>
+
+<p>We find many women among swindlers, gamblers, and counterfeiters; and
+moreover, we have the evidence of experienced housewives, that the
+cleverest and most useful servants are frequently thievish. What is
+instructive in all these facts is the indefiniteness of the boundary
+between honesty and dishonesty, even in the most petty cases. The defect
+in the sense of property with regard to little things explains how many
+a woman became a criminal&mdash;the road she wandered on grew, step by step,
+more extended. There being no definite boundary, it was inevitable that
+women should go very far, and when the educated woman does nothing more
+than to steal a pencil from her husband and to cheat at whist, her sole
+fortune is that she does not get opportunities or needs for more serious
+mistakes. The uneducated, poverty-stricken woman has, however, both
+opportunity and need, and crime becomes very easy to her. Our life is
+rich in experiment and our will too weak not to fail under the
+exigencies of existence, if, at the outset, a slightest deviation from
+the straight and narrow road is not avoided. If the justice is in doubt
+whether a woman has committed a great crime against property, his study
+will concern, not the deed, but<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_347" id="page_347"></a>{347}</span> the time when the woman was in
+different circumstances and had no other opportunity to do wrong than
+mere nibbling at and otherwise foolish abstractions from other people’s
+property. If this inclination can be proved, then there is justification
+for at least suspecting her of the greater crime.</p>
+
+<p>The relation of women to such devilment becomes more instructive when it
+has to be discovered through woman witnesses. As a rule, there is no
+justification for the assumption that people are inclined to excuse
+whatever they find themselves guilty of. On the contrary, we are
+inclined to punish others most harshly where we ourselves are most
+guilty. And there is still another side to the matter. When an honest,
+well-conducted woman commits petty crimes, she does not consider them as
+crimes, she is unaware of their immorality, and it would be illogical
+for her to see as a crime in others that which she does not recognize as
+a crime in herself. It is for this reason that she tends to excuse her
+neighbor’s derelictions. Now, when we try to find out from feminine
+witnesses facts concerning the objects on which we properly lay stress,
+they do not answer and cause us to make mistakes. What woman thinks is
+mere “sweet-tooth” in her servant girl, is larceny in criminal law; what
+she calls “pin-money,” we call deceit, or violation of trust; for the
+man whom the woman calls “the dragon,” we find in many cases quite
+different terms. And this feminine attitude is not Christian charity,
+but ignorance of the law, and with this ignorance we have to count when
+we examine witnesses. Of course, not only concerning some theft by a
+servant girl, but always when we are trying to understand some human
+weakness.</p>
+
+<p>From honesty to loyalty is but a step. Often these traits lie side by
+side or overlap each other. Now, the criminal justice has, more
+frequently than appears, to deal with feminine loyalty. Problems of
+adultery are generally of subordinate significance only, but this
+loyalty or disloyalty often plays the most important rôle in trials of
+all conceivable crimes, and the whole problem of evidence takes a
+different form according to the assumption that this loyalty does, or
+does not, exist. Whether it is the murder of a husband, doubtful
+suicide, physical mutilation, theft, perversion of trust, arson, the
+case takes a different form if feminine disloyalty can be proved. The
+rare reference to this important premise in the presentation of evidence
+is due to the fact that we are ignorant of its significance, that its
+determinative factors are hidden, and finally that its presentation is
+as a rule difficult.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_348" id="page_348"></a>{348}</span></p>
+
+<p>Public opinion on feminine loyalty is not flattering. Diderot asserts
+that there is no loyal woman who has not ceased being so, at least, in
+her imagination. Of course this does not mean much, for all of us have
+ideally committed many sins, but if Diderot is right, one may assume a
+feminine inclination to disloyalty. Most responsible for this is, of
+course, the purely sexual character of woman, but we must not do her the
+injustice, and ourselves the harm, of supposing that this character is
+the sole regulative principle; the illimitable feminine need for change
+is also responsible to a great degree. I doubt whether it could be
+proved in any collection of cases worth naming that a woman grew
+disloyal although her sexual needs were small; but that her sex does so
+is certain, and thence we must seek other reasons for their disloyalty.
+The love of change is fundamental and may be observed in recorded
+criminal cases. “Even educated women,” says Goltz,<a name="FNanchor_274_274" id="FNanchor_274_274"></a><a href="#Footnote_274_274" class="fnanchor">[274]</a> “can not bear
+continuous and uniform good fortune, and feel an inconceivable impulse
+to devilment and foolishness in order to get some variety in life.” Now
+it will be much easier for the judge to determine whether the woman in
+the case had at the critical time an especial inclination to this
+“devilment,” than to discover whether her own husband was sexually
+insufficient, or whatever similar secrets might be involved.</p>
+
+<p>If woman, however, once has the impulse to seek variety, and the
+harmless and permissible changes she may provide herself are no longer
+sufficient or are lacking, the movement of her daily life takes a
+questionable direction. Then there is a certain tendency to deceit which
+is able to bring its particular consequences to bear. A woman has
+married, let us say, for love, or for money, for spite, to please her
+parents, etc., etc. Now come moments in her life in which she reflects
+concerning “her” reason for marriage, and the cause of these moments
+will almost always be her husband, i.e., he may have been ill-mannered,
+have demanded too much, have refused something, have neglected her,
+etc., and thus have wounded her so that her mood, when thinking of the
+reason of her marriage, is decidedly bad, and she begins to doubt
+whether her love was really so strong, whether the money was worth the
+trouble, whether she ought not to have opposed her parents, etc. And
+suppose she had waited, might she not have done better? Had she not
+deserved better? Every step in her musing takes her farther<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_349" id="page_349"></a>{349}</span> from her
+husband. A man is nothing to a woman to whom he is not everything, and
+if he is nothing he deserves no especial consideration, and if he is
+undeserving, a little disloyalty is not so terrible, and finally, the
+little disloyalty gradually and naturally and smoothly leads to
+adultery, and adultery to a chain of crimes. That this process is not a
+thousand times more frequent, is merely due to the accident that the
+right man is not at hand during these so-called weak moments. Millions
+of women who boast of their virtue, and scorn others most nobly, have to
+thank their boasted virtue only to this accident. If the right man had
+been present at the right time they would have had no more ground for
+pride. There is only a simple and safe method for discovering whether a
+woman is loyal to her husband&mdash;lead her to say whether her husband
+neglects her. Every woman who complains that her husband neglects her is
+an adulteress or in the way of becoming one, for she seeks the most
+thrifty, the really sound reason which would justify adultery. How close
+she has come to this sin is easily discoverable from the degree of
+intensity with which she accuses her husband.</p>
+
+<p>Besides adultery, the disloyalty of widow and of bride, there is also
+another sense in which disloyalty may be important. The first is
+important only when we have to infer some earlier condition, and we are
+likely to commit injustice if we judge the conduct of the wife by the
+conduct of the widow. As a rule there are no means of comparison. In
+numerous cases the wife loves her husband and is loyal to him even
+beyond the grave, but these cases always involve older women whom lust
+no longer affects. If the widow is at all young, pretty, and
+comparatively rich, she forgets her husband. If she has forgotten him,
+if after a very short time she has again found a lover and a husband,
+whether for “the sake of the poor children,” or because “my first one,
+of blessed memory, desired it,” or because “the second and the first
+look so much alike,” or whatever other reason she might give, there is
+still no ground for supposing that she did not love her first husband,
+was disloyal to him, robbed and murdered him. She might have borne the
+happiest relations with him; but he is dead, and a dead man is no man.
+There are, again, cases in which the almost immediate marriage of a
+new-made widow implies all kinds of things, and often reveals in the
+person of the second husband the murderer of the first. When suspicions
+of such a situation occur, it is obviously necessary to go very slowly,
+but the first thing of importance is to keep tabs carefully on the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_350" id="page_350"></a>{350}</span>
+second husband. It is exceedingly self-contradictory in a man to marry a
+woman he knows to have murdered her first husband&mdash;but if he had cared
+only about being her lover there would not have been the necessity of
+murdering the first.</p>
+
+<p>The opposite of this type is anticipatory disloyalty of a woman who
+marries a man in order to carry on undisturbed her love-affair with
+another. That there are evil consequences in most cases is easy to see.
+Such marriages occur very frequently among peasants. The woman, e.g., is
+in love with the son of a wealthy widower. The son owns nothing, or the
+father refuses his permission, so the woman makes a fool of the father
+by marrying him and carries on her amour with the son, doubly sinful.
+Instead of a son, the lover may be only a servant, and then the couple
+rob the husband thoroughly&mdash;especially if the second wife has no
+expectations of inheritance, there being children of a former marriage.
+Variations on this central theme occur as the person of the lover
+changes to neighbor, cousin, friend, etc., but the type is obvious, and
+it is necessary to consider its possibilities whenever suspicion arises.</p>
+
+<p>The disloyalty of a bride&mdash;well, we will not bother with this poetical
+subject. Everybody knows how merciless a girl can be, how she leaves her
+lover for practical, or otherwise ignoble reasons, and everybody knows
+the consequences of such things.<a name="FNanchor_275_275" id="FNanchor_275_275"></a><a href="#Footnote_275_275" class="fnanchor">[275]</a></p>
+
+<h5>Section 75. (c) Love, Hate and Friendship.</h5>
+
+<p>If Emerson is right and love is no more than the deification of persons,
+the criminalist does not need to bother about this very rare paroxysm of
+the human soul. We might translate, at most, a girl’s description of her
+lover who is possibly accused of some crime, from deified into human,
+but that is all. However, we do not find that sort of love in the law
+courts. The love we do find has to be translated into a simpler and more
+common form than that of the poet. The sense of self-sacrifice, with
+which Wagner endows his heroines, is not altogether foreign in our work;
+we find it among the lowest proletarian women, who immolate themselves
+for their husbands, follow them through the most tremendous distress,
+nurse and sustain them with hungry heroism. This is more remarkable than
+poetical self-sacrifice, but it is also different and is to be
+differently explained. The conditions which cause love can be understood
+in terms of the effects and forces of the daily life. And where we can
+not see it<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_351" id="page_351"></a>{351}</span> differently we shall be compelled to speak of it as if it
+were a disease. If disease is not sufficient explanation, we shall have
+to say with the Italians, “l’amore é une castigo di Dio.”</p>
+
+<p>Love is of greater importance in the criminal court than the statutes
+allow, and we frequently make great mistakes because we do not count it
+in. We have first of all to do our duty properly, to distinguish the
+biological difference between the human criminal and the normal human
+being, rather than to subsume every criminal case under its proper
+statute. When a woman commits a crime because of jealousy, when in spite
+of herself she throws herself away on a good-for-nothing; when she
+fights her rival with unconquerable hatred; when she bears unbelievable
+maltreatment; when she has done hundreds of other things&mdash;who counts her
+love? She is guilty of crime; she is granted to have had a motive; and
+she is punished. Has enough been done when the jury acquits a jealous
+murderess, or a thrower of vitriol? Such cases are spectacular, but no
+attention is paid to the love of the woman in the millions of little
+cases where love, and love only, was the impulse, and the statute
+sentencing her to so and so much punishment was the outcome.</p>
+
+<p>Now, study the maniacally-clever force of jealousy and then ask who is
+guilty of the crime. Augustine says, that whoever is not jealous is not
+in love, and if love and jealousy are correlate, one may be inferred
+from the other. What is at work is jealousy, what is to to be shown is
+love. That is, the evil in the world is due to jealousy, but this cause
+would be more difficult to prove than its correlate, love. And we know
+how difficult it is to conceal love,&mdash;so difficult that it has become a
+popular proverb that when a woman has a paramour, everybody knows it but
+her husband. Now, if a crime has been committed through jealousy it
+would be simply naïve to ask whether the woman was jealous. Jealousy is
+rare to discover and unreliable, while her love-affair is known to
+everybody. Once this becomes an established fact, we can determine also
+the degree of her jealousy.</p>
+
+<p>Woman gives the expression of her jealousy characteristic direction. Man
+attempts to possess his wife solely and without trouble, and hence is
+naturally jealous. The deceived woman turns all her hatred on her rival
+and she excuses the husband if only she believes that she still
+possesses, or has regained his love. It will therefore be a mistake to
+suppose that because a woman has again begun to love her husband,
+perhaps after a long-enduring jealousy, that<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_352" id="page_352"></a>{352}</span> no such jealousy preceded
+or that she had forgiven her rival. It may be that she has come to an
+understanding with her husband and no longer cares about the rival, but
+this is only either mere semblance or temporary, for the first suspicion
+of danger turns loose the old jealousy with all its consequences. Here
+again her husband is safe and all her rage is directed upon her rival.
+The typical cases are those of the attacks by abandoned mistresses at
+the weddings of their lovers. They always tear the wreath and veil from
+the bride’s head, but it never is said that they knock the groom’s
+top-hat off.</p>
+
+<p>Another characteristic of feminine love which often causes difficulties
+is the passion with which the wife often gives herself to her husband.
+Two such different authors as Kuno Fischer and George Sand agree to this
+almost verbatim. The first says: “What nature demands of woman is
+complete surrender to man,” and the second: “Love is a voluntary slavery
+for which woman craves by nature.” Here we find the explanation of all
+those phenomena in which the will of the wife seems dead beside that of
+the husband. If a woman once depends on a man she follows him
+everywhere, and even if he commits the most disgusting crimes she helps
+him and is his loyalest comrade. We simply catalogue the situation as
+complicity, but we have no statutes for the fact that the woman
+naturally could do nothing else. We do not find it easy to discover the
+accomplices of a man guilty of a crime, but if there is a woman who
+really loves him we may be sure that she is one of them.</p>
+
+<p>For the same reason women often bear interminably long maltreatment at
+the hands of their husbands or lovers. We think of extraordinary
+motives, but the whole thing is explained if the motive was really
+feminine love. It will be more difficult for us to believe in this love
+when the man is physically and mentally not an object of love. But the
+motives of causes of love of woman for man, though much discussed, have
+never been satisfactorily determined. Some authorities make strength and
+courage the motives, but there are innumerable objections, for historic
+lovers have been weak and cowardly, intellectual rather than foolish,
+though Schopenhauer says, that intelligence and genius are distasteful
+to women. No fixed reasons can be assigned. We have to accept the fact
+that a most disgusting man is often loved by a most lovely woman. We
+have to believe that love of man turns women from their romantic ideals.
+There has been the mistaken notion that only a common crime compels a
+woman to remain loyally with a thoroughly worthless<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_353" id="page_353"></a>{353}</span> man, and again, it
+has been erroneously supposed that a certain woman who refused a most
+desirable heirloom left her by a man, must have known of some great
+crime committed by him. But we need no other motive for this action than
+her infinite love, and the reason of that infinity we find in the nature
+of that love. It is, in fact, woman’s life, whereas it is an episode in
+the life of man. Of course, we are not here speaking of transitory
+inclinations, or flirtations, but of that great and profound love which
+all women of all classes know, and this love is overmastering; it
+conquers everything, it forgives everything, it endures everything.</p>
+
+<p>There is still another inexplicable thing. Eager as man is to find his
+woman virgin, woman cares little about the similar thing in man. Only
+the very young, pure, inexperienced girl feels an instinctive revulsion
+from the real roué, but other women, according to Rochebrune, love a man
+in proportion to the number of other women who love or have loved him.
+This is difficult to understand, but it is a fact that a man has an easy
+task with women if he has a reputation of being a great hand with them.
+Perhaps this ease is only an expression of the conceit and envy of
+women, who can not bear the idea that a man is interested in so many
+others and not in themselves. As Balzac says, “women prefer most to win
+a man who already belongs to another.” The inconceivable ease with which
+certain types of men seduce women, and at whose heads women throw
+themselves in spite of the fact that these men have no praiseworthy
+qualities whatever, can only be so explained. Perhaps it is true, as is
+sometimes said, that here is a case of sexuality expressing itself in an
+inexplicable manner.</p>
+
+<p>Of course there are friendships between men and women, although such
+friendships are very rare. There is no doubt that sexual interests tend
+easily to dominate such relations. We suppose them to be rare just
+because their existence requires that sexual motives be spontaneously
+excluded. There are three types of such friendships. 1. When the age of
+the friends is such as to make the suspicion of passion impossible. 2.
+When from earliest childhood, for one reason or another, a purely
+fraternal relationship has developed. 3. When both are of such nature
+that the famous divine spark can not set them afire. Whether there is an
+electrical influence between couples, as some scientists say, or not, we
+frequently see two people irrationally select each other, as if
+compelled by some evil force. Now this selection may result in nothing
+more than a friendship. Such friendships are frequently claimed in
+trials, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_354" id="page_354"></a>{354}</span> of course, they are never altogether believed in. The
+necessary thing in treating these cases is caution, for it will be
+impossible to prove these friendships unlikely, and hence unjust to deny
+them without further evidence. It will be necessary to discover whether
+the sexual interest is or can be excluded. If not, the friendship is
+purely a nominal one.</p>
+
+<p>Friendship between women is popularly little valued. Comedies, comic
+papers, and criticisms make fun of it, and we have heard all too often
+that the news of the first gray hair, or the disloyalty of a husband,
+has its starting-point in a woman friend, and that women decorate
+themselves and improve themselves in order to worry their friends. One
+author wanted to show that friendships between two women were only
+conspiracies against a third, and Diderot said that there is a secret
+union among women as among priests of one and the same religion&mdash;they
+hate each other, but they protect each other. The latter fact we see
+frequently enough in the examination of women witnesses. Envy, dislike,
+jealousy, and egoism play up vividly, and he is a successful judge who
+can discover how much of the evidence is born of these motives. But
+beyond a certain point, women co-operate. This point is easy to find,
+for it is placed where-ever feminine qualities are to be generalized. So
+long as we stick, during an examination, to a concrete instance, and so
+long as the witness observes no combination of her conduct and opinions
+with that of the object of her testimony, she will allow herself to be
+guided partly by the truth, partly by her opinions of the woman in
+question. But just as soon as we expressly or tacitly suggest common
+feminine qualities, or start to speak of some matter in which the
+witness herself feels guilty, she turns about and defends where before
+she had been attacking. In these cases we must try to find out whether
+we have become “general.” If we have, we know why the witness is
+defending the accused.</p>
+
+<p>We may say the same things of feminine hate that we have said of
+feminine love. Love and hate are only the positive and negative aspects
+of the same relation. When a woman hates you she has loved you, does
+love you, or will love you,&mdash;this is a reliable rule for the many cases
+in which feminine hatred gives the criminalist work. Feminine hatred is
+much intenser than masculine hatred. St. Gregory says that it is worse
+than the devil’s, for the devil acts alone while woman gets the devil to
+help her, and Stolle believes that a woman seeking revenge is capable of
+anything. We have here to remember that among women of the lower
+classes, hate,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_355" id="page_355"></a>{355}</span> anger, and revenge are only different stages of the same
+emotion. Moreover, nobody finds greater joy in revenge than a woman.
+Indeed I might say that revenge and the pursuit of revenge are
+specifically feminine. The real, vigorous man is not easily turned
+thereto. In woman, it is connected with her greater sensibility which
+causes anger, rage, and revenge to go further than in men. Lombroso has
+done most to show this, and Mantegazza cites numberless examples of the
+superior ease with which woman falls into paroxysms of rage. Hence, when
+some crime with revenge as motive is before us, and we have no way of
+getting at the criminal, our first suspicion should be directed toward a
+woman or an effeminate man. Further, when we have to make an orderly
+series of inferences, we will start from this proposition into the past,
+present, and future, and shall not have much to wonder at if the
+successful vengeance far exceeds its actual or fanciful occasion, and
+if, perhaps, a very long time has elapsed before its accomplishment.
+Nulla irae super iram mulieris.</p>
+
+<p>Feminine cruelty is directly connected with feminine anger and hatred.
+Lombroso has already indicated how fundamental woman’s inclination to
+cruelty is. The cases are well known, together with the frequent and
+remarkable combination of real kindness of heart with real bestiality.
+Perhaps it would be proper to conceive this cruelty as a form of
+defence, or the expression of defence, for we often find cruelty and
+weakness paired elsewhere, as among children, idiots, etc. It is
+particularly noticeable among cretins in the Alps. The great danger of
+the cretin’s anger is well known there. Once, one of these unfortunates
+was tortured to death by another because he thought that his victim had
+received from the charitable monks a larger piece of bread than he.
+Another was killed because he had received a gift of two trousers
+buttons. These instances, I should think, indicate the real connection
+between cruelty and weakness. Cruelty is a means of defence, and hence
+is characteristic of the weaker sex. Moreover, many a curious bit of
+feminine cruelty is due to feminine traits misunderstood, suppressed,
+but in themselves good. Just as we know that frugality and a tendency to
+save in housekeeping may often lead to dishonesty, so we perceive that
+these qualities cause cruelty to servants, and even the desire to put
+out of the way old and troublesome relatives who are eating the bread
+that belongs to husband and children.</p>
+
+<p>These facts serve not only to explain the crime, but to reveal the
+criminal. If we succeed, other things being equal, in adducing<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_356" id="page_356"></a>{356}</span> a number
+of feminine characteristics with one of which the cruelty of the crime
+may be connected and explained, we have a clew to the criminal. The
+instances mentioned,&mdash;the motherly care of house and family, frugality,
+miserliness, hardness to servants, cruelty to aged parents,&mdash;seem rare
+and not altogether rational, yet they occur frequently and give the
+right clew to the criminal. There are still other similar combinations.
+Everybody knows feminine love for trials at court, for the daily paper’s
+reports of them, and for public executions. While the last were still
+common in Austria, newspapers concluded regularly with the statement
+that the “tender” sex was the great majority of the crowd that witnessed
+them. At public executions women of the lower class; at great trials,
+women of the higher classes, make up the auditors and spectators. Here
+the movement from eagerness, curiosity, through the desire for vigorous
+nervous stimulation, to hard-heartedness and undeniable cruelty, is
+clear enough.</p>
+
+<p>There would be nothing for us to do with this fact if we had not to deal
+with the final expression of cruelty, i.e., murder; especially the
+specifically feminine forms of murder,&mdash;child-murder and poisoning.
+These, of course, in particular the former, involve abnormal conditions
+which are subjects for the physician. At the same time it is the judge
+who examines and sentences, and he is required to understand these
+conditions and to consider every detail that may help him in drawing his
+conclusion.</p>
+
+<p>That poisoning is mainly a feminine crime is a familiar fact of which
+modern medico-legal writers have spoken much; even the ancient authors,
+not medical, like Livy, Tacitus, etc., have mentioned it. It is
+necessary, therefore, carefully to study the feminine character in order
+to understand how and why women are given to this form of murder. To do
+so we need consider, however, only the ordinary factors of the daily
+life; the extraordinary conditions, etc., are generally superfluous.</p>
+
+<p>Every crime that is committed is committed when the reasons for doing it
+outweigh the reasons for not doing it. This is true even of passional
+crimes, for a <i>pro</i> and <i>contra</i> must have presented themselves in spite
+of the lightninglike swiftness of the act. One appeared and then the
+other, the <i>pro</i> won and the deed was done. In other crimes this
+conflict lasts at least so long as to be definitely observable, and in
+the greater crimes it will, as a rule, take more time and more motive.
+The principles of good and of evil will really battle with each other,
+and when the individual is so depraved as no longer to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_357" id="page_357"></a>{357}</span> have good
+principles, their place is taken by fear of discovery and punishment,
+and by the question whether the advantage to be gained is worth the
+effort, etc. The commission of the crime is itself evidence that the
+reasons for it were all-powerful. Now suppose that a woman gets the idea
+of killing somebody. Here for a time <i>pro</i> and <i>contra</i> will balance
+each other, and when the latter are outweighed she will think that she
+<i>must</i> commit murder. If she does not think so she will not do so. Now,
+every murder, save that by poison, requires courage, the power to do,
+and physical strength. As woman does not possess these qualities, she
+spontaneously makes use of poison. Hence, there is nothing extraordinary
+or significant in this fact, it is due to the familiar traits of woman.
+For this reason, when there is any doubt as to the murderer in a case of
+poisoning, it is well to think first of a woman or of a weak, effeminate
+man.</p>
+
+<p>The weakness of woman will help us in still another direction. It is
+easily conceivable that all forms of weakness will seek support and
+assistance, whether physical or moral. The latter is inclined in cases
+of need to make use, also, of such assistance as may be rendered by
+personal inward reflection. Now this reflection may be on the one hand,
+dissuasion, on the other hand persuasion, self-persuasion; the first
+subduing self-reproach, the latter, fear of discovery. Hence, a woman
+will try to persuade not only herself, but others also that she was
+justified in her course and will assign as reason, bad treatment. Now
+there might have been some bad treatment, but it will have been altered
+and twisted so utterly as to lose its original form and to become
+imaginatively unbearable. Thus, a series of conclusions from the
+reactions of the suspect to her environment may be easily found, and
+these are the more convincing if they have occurred within a rather long
+period of time, in which they may be chronologically arranged, and from
+which a slow and definite intensification, usque ad ultimum, can be
+proved. Such an analysis is, of course, troublesome, but if done
+systematically, almost always rich in results.</p>
+
+<p>The tricks of persuasion which are to suppress the fears of discovery
+are always helps of another sort. As a rule they are general, and point
+to the fact that the crime contemplated had occurred before without
+danger, that everything was intelligently provided for, etc. Now these
+circumstances are less dangerous, but they require consideration when
+they count on certain popular views, especially superstitions and
+certain customs and assumptions. Suppose, for example, that a young wife
+wants to get rid of her<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_358" id="page_358"></a>{358}</span> old husband whom she had married for the sake
+of his money. Now certain proverbs point to the fact that old men who
+marry young women die soon after marriage. This popular view may be
+entirely justified in the fact that the complete alteration in the mode
+of life, the experience of uncustomary things, the excitement, the
+extreme tension, then the effort <i>in venere</i>, finally, perhaps also the
+use of popularly well-known stimulants, etc., may easily cause
+weakening, sickening, and as conclusion the death of the old man. But
+the public does not draw this kind of inference, it simply assumes,
+without asking the reason, that when an old man marries a young woman,
+he dies. Therefore a young wife may easily think, “If I make use of
+poison nobody will wonder, nobody will see anything suspicious about the
+death. It is only an event which is universally supposed to happen. The
+old man died because he married me.” Such ideas may easily seduce an
+uneducated woman and determine her conduct. Of course, they are not
+subject to observation, but they are not beyond control, if the popular
+views concerning certain matters are known as the views which determine
+standards. Therefore their introduction into the plot of the suspect may
+help us in drawing some useful inference.<a name="FNanchor_276_276" id="FNanchor_276_276"></a><a href="#Footnote_276_276" class="fnanchor">[276]</a></p>
+
+<p>With regard to child-murder the consideration of psychopathic conditions
+need not absolutely be undertaken. Whether they are present must, of
+course, be determined, and therefore it is first of all necessary to
+learn the character of the suspect’s conduct. The opportunity for this
+is given in any text-book on legal medicine, forensic psychopathology,
+and criminal psychology. There are a good many older authors.<a name="FNanchor_277_277" id="FNanchor_277_277"></a><a href="#Footnote_277_277" class="fnanchor">[277]</a> Most
+of the cases cited by authorities show that women in the best of
+circumstances have behaved innumerable times in such a way that if they
+had been poor girls child-murder would immediately have been assumed.
+Again, they have shown that the sweetest and most harmless creatures
+become real beasts at the time of accouchement, or shortly after it
+develop an unbelievable hatred toward child and husband. Many a
+child-murder may possibly be explained by the habit of some animals of
+consuming their young immediately after giving birth to them. Such cases
+bind us in every trial for child-murder to have the mental state of the
+mother thoroughly examined by a psychiatrist, and to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_359" id="page_359"></a>{359}</span> interpret
+everything connected with the matter as psychologist and humanitarian.
+At the same time it must not be forgotten that one of the most dangerous
+results is due to this attitude. Law-makers have without further
+consideration kept in mind the mental condition of the mother and have
+made child-murder much less punishable than ordinary murder. It is
+inferred, therefore, that it is unnecessary to study the conditions
+which cause it. This is dangerous, because it implies the belief that
+the case is settled by giving a minimum sentence, where really an
+infinity of grades and differences may enter. The situation that the
+law-maker has studied is one among many, the majority of which we have
+yet to apprehend and to examine.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 76. (d) Emotional Disposition and Related Subjects.</h5>
+
+<p>Madame de Krüdener writes in a letter to Bernardin de St. Pierre: “Je
+voulais être sentie.” These laconic words of this wise pietist give us
+an insight into the significance of emotional life of woman. Man wants
+to be understood, woman felt. With this emotion she spoils much that man
+might do because of his sense of justice. Indeed, a number of qualities
+which the woman uses to make herself noted are bound up with her
+emotional life, more or less. Compassion, self-sacrifice, religion,
+superstition,&mdash;all these depend on the highly developed, almost diseased
+formation of her emotional life. Feminine charity, feminine activity as
+a nurse, feminine petitions for the pardon of criminals, infinite other
+samples of women’s kindly dispositions must convince us that these
+activities are an integral part of their emotional life, and that women
+perform them only, perhaps, in a kind of dark perception of their own
+helplessness. On the one side an unconscious egoism impels them to the
+defence of those who find themselves in a <i>similar</i> condition; on the
+other side, it is a feminine characteristic to apply anything she is to
+judge to herself first, and then to make her choice. That she does this,
+rests on the eminent overweight of emotion. So Schopenhauer says: “Women
+are very sympathetic, but they are behind man in all matters of justice,
+probity, and scrupulous conscientiousness. Injustice is the fundamental
+feminine defect.”<a name="FNanchor_278_278" id="FNanchor_278_278"></a><a href="#Footnote_278_278" class="fnanchor">[278]</a> Schopenhauer should have added, “because they are
+too sympathetic, because emotion takes up so much place in their minds
+that they have not enough left for justice.” According to Proudhon, “The
+conscience of woman<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_360" id="page_360"></a>{360}</span> is as much weaker than man’s as her intelligence is
+smaller. Her morality is of a different sort, her ideas of right and
+wrong are different, being always on this or that side of justice, and
+never requiring any equivalence between rights and duties which are such
+a painful necessity to man.” Spencer says,<a name="FNanchor_279_279" id="FNanchor_279_279"></a><a href="#Footnote_279_279" class="fnanchor">[279]</a> briefly, that the
+feminine mind shows a definite lack with regard to the sense of justice.</p>
+
+<p>These assertions show that women are deficient in justice, but do not
+show why. The deficiency is to be explained only in the superabundance
+of emotional life. This superabundance clarifies a number of facts of
+their daily routine. We have, of course, to make a distinction between
+the feeling of a gentlewoman, of a peasant woman, and of the innumerable
+grades between the two, but this distinction is not essential. Both
+noble and proletarian are equally unjust, but the rich emotion restores
+a thousand times what may be missing in justice, and perhaps in many
+cases hits better upon what is absolutely right than the bare masculine
+sense of justice. We are, of course, frequently mistaken by relying on
+the testimony of women, but only when we assume that our rigorously
+judicial sentence is the only correct one, and when we do not know how
+women judge. Hence, we interpret women’s testimonies with difficulty and
+rarely with correctness; we forget that almost every feminine statement
+contains in itself much more judgment than the testimony of men; we fail
+to examine how much real judgment it contains; and finally, we weigh
+this judgment in other scales than those used by the woman. We do best,
+therefore, when we take the testimony of man and woman together in order
+to find the right average. This is not easy, for we are unable to enter
+properly into the emotional life of woman, and can not therefore
+discount that tendency of hers to drag the objective truth in some
+biased direction. It might be theoretically supposed that a noble,
+kindly, feminine feeling would tend to reflect everything as better and
+gentler, and would tend to excuse and conceal. If that were so we might
+have a definite standard of valuation, and might be able to discount the
+feminine bias. But that is so in perhaps no more than half the cases
+that come before us. In all others woman has allowed herself to be moved
+to displeasure, and appears as the punishing avenger. Hence, she fights
+with all her strength on the side that seems to her to be oppressed and
+innocently persecuted, irrespective of whether it is<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_361" id="page_361"></a>{361}</span> the side of the
+accused or of his enemy. In consequence, we must first of all, when
+judging her statements, determine the direction in which her emotion
+impels her, and this can not be done with a mere knowledge of human
+nature. Nothing will do except a careful study of the specific feminine
+witness at the time she gives her evidence. And this requires the
+expenditure of much time, for, to plunge directly into the middle of
+things without having any means of comparison or relation, is to make
+judgment impossible or very unsafe. If you are to do it at all you must
+discuss other things first and even permit yourself the dishonesty of
+asking about matters which you already know in order to find some
+measure of the degree of feminine obliqueness. Of course, one discovers
+here only the degree of obliqueness, not its direction&mdash;in the case
+selected for comparison the woman might have judged too kindly, in the
+case in hand she may just as well be too rigorous. But all things have a
+definite limit, and hence, much practice and much goodwill will help us
+to discover the direction of obliqueness.</p>
+
+<p>When we inquire into the emotional life of the simple, uneducated women,
+we find it to be fundamentally the same as that of women of other
+classes, but different in expression, and it is the expression we have
+to observe. Its form is often raw, therefore difficult to discover. It
+may express itself in cursing and swearing, but it is still an
+expression of emotion, just as are the mother’s curses or beatings of
+her child because it has fallen and hurt itself. But observe that the
+prevalence of emotion is so thoroughly a feminine condition that it is
+clearly noticeable only where femininity itself is explicit&mdash;therefore,
+always weaker among masculine women, and in the single individual most
+powerful when femininity is most fully developed. It grows in the child,
+remains at a constant level when woman becomes completely woman, and
+decreases when, in advanced age, the differences in sex begin to
+disappear. Very old men and very old women are also in this matter very
+close together.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 77. (e) Weakness.</h5>
+
+<p>“Frailty, thy name is woman,” says Shakespeare, and Corvin explains this
+in teasing fashion: “Women pray every day, ‘Lead us not into temptation,
+for see, dear God, if you do so I can’t resist it.’&nbsp;” Even Kant<a name="FNanchor_280_280" id="FNanchor_280_280"></a><a href="#Footnote_280_280" class="fnanchor">[280]</a>
+takes feminine weakness as a distinguishing criterion: “In order to
+understand the whole of mankind we need<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_362" id="page_362"></a>{362}</span> only to turn our attention to
+the feminine sex, for where the force is weaker the tool is so much the
+more artistic.” Experienced criminalists explain the well-known fact
+that women are the chief sources of anonymous letters by their weakness.
+From the physical inferiority of woman her mental inferiority may be
+deduced, and though we learn a hundred times that small, weak men can be
+mentally stronger than great and strong ones, it is, of course, natural,
+that as a rule the outcome of a powerful body is also a powerful mind.
+The difficulty is to discover in <i>what</i> feminine weakness expresses
+itself. The frequently joked-about hen-pecking of men has been explained
+by Voltaire as the fulfilment of the divine purpose of taming men
+through the medium of the specially created instrument&mdash;woman. Victor
+Hugo calls men only woman’s toys. “Oh, this lofty providence which gives
+each one its toy, the doll to the child, the child to the man, the man
+to the woman, the woman to the devil.” The popular proverb also seems to
+assign them considerable strength, at least to aged women. For we hear
+in all kinds of variations the expression, “An old woman will venture
+where the devil does not dare to tread.” Nor must we underestimate the
+daily experience of feminine capacity to bear pain. Midwives of
+experience unanimously assure us that no man would bear what a woman
+regularly has to, every time she gives birth to a child; and surgeons
+and dentists assure us similarly. Indeed the great surgeon, Billroth, is
+said to have asserted that he attempted new methods of operation on
+women first because they are less subject to pain, for like savages they
+are beings of a lower status and hence better able to resist than men.
+In the light of such expressions we have to doubt the assertion that
+women are distinguished by weakness, and yet that assertion is correct.
+The weakness must, however, not be sought where we expect to find it,
+but in the quite different feminine intelligence. Wherever intelligence
+is not taken into consideration, woman is likely to show herself
+stronger than man. She is better able to stand misfortune, to nurse
+patients, to bear pain, to bring up children, to carry out a plan, to
+persevere in a plan. It would be wrong to say that feminine weakness is
+a weakness of will, for most examples show that women’s wills are
+strong. It is in matters of intelligence that they fail. When somebody
+has to be persuaded, we find that a normally-organized man may agree
+when he is shown a logically-combined series of reasons. But the
+feminine intelligence is incapable of logic; indeed, we should make a
+mistake in paying honor to the actual feminine in woman if she<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_363" id="page_363"></a>{363}</span> were
+capable of logic. She is rather to be persuaded with apparent reasons,
+with transitory and sparkling matters that have only the semblance of
+truth. We find her too ready to agree, and blame her will when it is
+only her different form of intelligence. She persuades herself in the
+same way. An epithet, a sparkling epigram, a pacifying reflection is
+enough for her; she does not need a whole construction of reason, and
+thus she proceeds to do things that we again call “weak.” Take so
+thoroughly a feminine reflection as this: “The heart seems to beat&mdash;why
+shouldn’t it beat for somebody?” and the woman throws herself on the
+breast of some adventurer. The world that hears of this fact weeps over
+feminine “weakness,” while it ought really to weep over defective
+intelligence and bad logic. That the physiological throb of the heart
+need not become significant of love, that the owner of a beating heart
+need not be interested in some man, and certainly not in that particular
+adventurer, she does not even consider possible. She is satisfied with
+this clean-cut, sparkling syllogism, and her understanding is calm. The
+judge in the criminal court must always first consider the weakness of
+the feminine intelligence, not of the feminine will.</p>
+
+<p>It is supposed to be weakness of will which makes woman gossipy, unable
+to keep a secret. But here again it is her understanding that is at
+fault. This is shown by the fact, already thoroughly discussed by Kant,
+that women are good keepers of their own secrets, but never of the
+secrets of others. If this were not a defect of intelligence they would
+have been able to estimate the damage they do. Now, every one of us
+criminalists knows that the crime committed, and even the plan for it,
+has in most cases been betrayed by women. We can learn most about this
+matter from detectives, who always go to women for the discovery of
+facts, and rarely without success. Of course, the judge must not act
+like a detective, but he must know, when something is already a matter
+of discussion and its source is sought, where to look. He is to look for
+the woman in the case.</p>
+
+<p>Another consideration of importance is the fact that women who have told
+secrets have also altered them. This is due to the fact that because
+they are secrets the whole is not told them and they have had to infer
+much, or they have not properly understood what was told. Now, if we
+perceive that only a part of the revealed secret can be correct, the
+situation may be inferred with complete safety, but only by remembering
+this curious trait of feminine intelligence. We have only to ask what
+illogical elements does the matter contain? When these are discovered we
+have to ask, what<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_364" id="page_364"></a>{364}</span> is their logical form? If the process is followed
+properly we get at the truth that what happens happens logically, but
+what is thought, is thought illogically even by women.</p>
+
+<p>When we summarise all we know about woman we may say briefly: Woman is
+neither better nor worse, neither more nor less valuable than man, but
+she is different from him and inasmuch as nature has created every
+object correctly for its purpose, woman has also been so created. The
+reason of her existence is different from that of man’s and hence, her
+nature is different.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 78. (b) Children.</h5>
+
+<p>The special character of the child has to be kept in mind both when it
+appears as witness and as accused. To treat it like an adult is always
+wrong. It would be wrong, moreover, to seek the differences in its
+immaturity and inexperience, in its small knowledge and narrower
+outlook. This is only a part of the difference. The fact is, that
+because the child is in the process of growth and development of its
+organs, because the relations of these to each other are different and
+their functions are different, it is actually a different kind of being
+from the adult. When we think how different the body and actions of the
+child are, how different its nourishment, how differently foreign
+influences affect it, and how different its physical qualities are, we
+must see that its mental character is also completely different. Hence,
+a difference in degree tells us nothing, we must look for a difference
+in kind. Observations made by individuals are not enough. We must
+undertake especial studies in the very rich literature.<a name="FNanchor_281_281" id="FNanchor_281_281"></a><a href="#Footnote_281_281" class="fnanchor">[281]</a></p>
+
+<h5>Section 79. (1) <i>General Consideration.</i></h5>
+
+<p>One does not need to have much knowledge of children to know that as a
+rule, children are more honest and straightforward than adults. They are
+good observers, more disinterested and hence unbiased in giving
+evidence, but because of their weakness, more subject to the influence
+of other people. Apart from intentional influences<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_365" id="page_365"></a>{365}</span> there is the
+tremendous influence of selected preconceptions. If a child is an
+important witness we can never get the truth from him until we discover
+what his ideals are. It is, of course, true that everybody who has
+ideals is influenced by them, but it is also true that children who have
+adventurous, imaginative tendencies are so steeped in them that
+everything they think or do gets color, tone, and significance from
+them. What the object of adventure does is good, what it does not do is
+bad, what it possesses is beautiful, and what it asserts is correct.
+Numerous unexplainable assertions and actions of children are cleared up
+by reference to their particular ideals, if they may be called ideals.</p>
+
+<p>As a rule, we may hold that children have a certain sense of justice,
+and that they find it decidedly unpleasant to see anybody treated
+otherwise than he deserves. But in this connection it must be considered
+that the child has its own views as to what a person’s deserts are, and
+that these views can rarely be judged by our own. In the same way it is
+certain that, lacking things to think or to trouble about, children are
+much interested in and remember well what occurs about them. But, again,
+we have to bear in mind that the interest itself develops from the
+child’s standpoint and that his memory constructs new events in terms of
+his earlier experiences. As a rule, we may presuppose in his memory only
+what is found already in his occupations. What is new, altogether new,
+must first find a function, and that is difficult. If, now, a child
+remembers something, he will first try to fit it to some function of
+memory already present and this will then absorb the new fact, well or
+ill, as the case may be. The frequent oversight of this fact is the
+reason for many a false interpretation of what the child said; he is
+believed to have perceived falsely and to have made false restatements,
+when he has only perceived and restated in his own way.</p>
+
+<p>As children have rarely a proper sense of the value of life, they
+observe an undubitable death closely without much fear. This explains
+many an unbelievable act of courage or clear observation in a child in
+cases where an adult, frightened, can see nothing. It is, hence, unjust
+to doubt many a statement of children, because you doubt their
+“courage.” “Courage” was not in question at all.</p>
+
+<p>Concerning the difference between boys and girls, Löbisch<a name="FNanchor_282_282" id="FNanchor_282_282"></a><a href="#Footnote_282_282" class="fnanchor">[282]</a> says
+rightly, that girls remember persons better, and boys, things. He adds,
+moreover: “The more silent girl, who is given to observe<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_366" id="page_366"></a>{366}</span> what is before
+her, shows herself more teachable than the spiteful and also more
+imaginative boy who understands with difficulty because he is intended
+to be better grounded and to go further in the business of knowing. The
+girl, all in all, is more curious; the boy, more eager to know. What he
+fails in, what he is not spurred to by love or talent, he throws
+obstinately aside. While the girl loyally and trustfully absorbs her
+teachings, the boy remains unsatisfied without some insight into the
+<i>why</i> or <i>how</i>, without some proof. The boy enters daily more and more
+into the world of concepts, while the girl thinks of objects not as
+members of a class, but as definite particular things.”</p>
+
+<h5>Section 80. (2) <i>Children as Witnesses.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Once, in an examination of the value of the testimony of children, I
+found it to be excellent in certain directions because not so much
+influenced by passion and special interest as that of adults, and
+because we may assume that children have classified too little rather
+than too much; that they frequently do not understand an event but
+perceive instinctively that it means disorder, and hence, become
+interested in it. Later the child gets a broader horizon and understands
+what he has not formerly understood, although, possibly, not altogether
+with correctness.</p>
+
+<p>I have further found that the boy just growing out of childhood, in so
+far as he has been well brought up, is especially the best observer and
+witness there is. He observes everything that occurs with interest,
+synthesizes events without prejudice, and reproduces them accurately,
+while the girl of the same age is often an unreliable, even dangerous
+witness. This is almost always the case when the girl is in some degree
+talented, impulsive, dreamy, romantic, and adventurous,&mdash;she expresses a
+sort of weltschmerz connected with ennui. This comes early, and if a
+girl of that age is herself drawn into the circle of the events in
+question, we are never safe from extreme exaggeration. The merest
+larceny becomes a small robbery; a bare insult, a remarkable attack; a
+foolish quip, an interesting seduction; and a stupid, boyish
+conversation, an important conspiracy. Such causes of mistakes are
+well-known to all judges; at the same time they are again and again
+permitted to recur.</p>
+
+<p>The sole means of safety from them is the clearest comprehension
+possible of the mental horizon of the child in question. We have very
+little general knowledge about it, and hence, are much indebted to the
+contemporary attempts of public-school teachers to supply<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_367" id="page_367"></a>{367}</span> the
+information. We all know that we must make distinctions between city and
+country children, and must not be surprised at the country child who has
+not seen a gas-lamp, a railroad, or something similar. Stanley Hall
+tried to discover from six year old children whether they really knew
+the things, the names of which they used freely. It seemed, as a result,
+that 14% of them had never seen a star; 45% had never been in the
+country; 20% did not know that milk came from a cow; 50% that fire-wood
+comes from trees; 13% to 15% the difference between green, blue and
+yellow; and 4% had never made the acquaintance of a pig.</p>
+
+<p>Karl Lange made experiments (reported in “Über Apperzeption,” Plauen,
+1889) on 500 pupils in 33 schools in small towns. The experiment showed
+that 82% had never seen sun-rise; 77% a sunset; 36% a corn field; 49% a
+river; 82% a pond; 80% a lock; 37% had never been in the woods, 62%
+never on the mountains, and 73% did not know how bread was made from
+grain. Involuntarily the question arises, what must be the position of
+the unfortunate children of large cities, and moreover, what may we
+expect to hear from children who do not know things like that, and at
+the same time speak of them easily? Adults are not free from this
+difficulty either. We have never yet seen a living whale, or a sandstorm
+in the Sahara, or an ancient Teuton, yet we speak of them confidently
+and profoundly, and never secure ourselves against the fact that we have
+never seen them. Now, as we of the ancient Teuton, so children of the
+woods; neither have seen them, but one description has as much or as
+little value as the other.</p>
+
+<p>Concerning the integration of senses, Binet and Henri<a name="FNanchor_283_283" id="FNanchor_283_283"></a><a href="#Footnote_283_283" class="fnanchor">[283]</a> have examined
+7200 children, whom they had imitate the length of a model line, or pick
+out from a collection of lines those of similar length. The latter
+experiment was extraordinarily successful.</p>
+
+<p>The senses of children are especially keen and properly developed. It is
+anatomically true that very young children do not hear well; but that is
+so at an age which can not be of interest to us. Their sense of smell
+is, according to Heusinger, very dull, and develops at the time of
+puberty, but later observers, in particular those who, like Hack,
+Cloquet and others, have studied the sense of smell, say nothing about
+this.</p>
+
+<p>Concerning the accuracy of representation in children authorities are
+contradictory. Montaigne says that all children lie and are<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_368" id="page_368"></a>{368}</span> obstinate.
+Bourdin corroborates him. Maudsley says that children often have
+illusions which seem to them indubitably real images, and Mittermaier
+says that they are superficial and have youthful fancies. Experience in
+practice does not confirm this judgment. The much experienced Herder
+repeatedly prizes children as born physiognomists, and Soden values the
+disinterestedness of children very highly. According to Löbisch,
+children tell untruths without lying. They say only what they have in
+mind, but they do not know and care very little whether their mental
+content is objective and exists outside of them, or whether only half
+real and the rest fanciful. This is confirmed by legal experience which
+shows us, also, that the subjective half of a child’s story may be
+easily identified. It is characteristically different from the real
+event and a confusion of the two is impossible.</p>
+
+<p>We must also not forget that there are lacunae in the child’s
+comprehension of what it perceives. When it observes an event, it may,
+e.g., completely understand the first part, find the second part
+altogether new and unintelligible, the third part again comprehensible,
+etc. If the child is only half-interested, it will try to fill out these
+lacunae by reflection and synthesis, and may conceivably make serious
+blunders. The blunders and inaccuracies increase the further back the
+event goes into the child’s youth. The real capacity for memory goes far
+back. Preyer<a name="FNanchor_284_284" id="FNanchor_284_284"></a><a href="#Footnote_284_284" class="fnanchor">[284]</a> tells of cases in which children told of events that
+they had experienced at thirty-two, twenty-four, and even eighteen
+months, and told them correctly. Of course, adults do not recall
+experiences of such an early age, for they have long since forgotten
+them. But very small children can recall such experiences, though in
+most cases their recollection is worthless, their circle of ideas being
+so small that the commonest experiences are excluded from adequate
+description. But they are worth while considering when a mere fact is in
+question, or is to be doubted (Were you beaten? Was anybody there? Where
+did the man stand?).</p>
+
+<p>Children’s determinations of time are unreliable. Yesterday and to-day
+are easily confused by small children, and a considerably advanced
+intelligence is necessary to distinguish between yesterday and a week
+ago, or even a week and a month. That we need, in such cases, correct
+individualization of the witness is self-evident. The conditions of the
+child’s bringing-up, the things he learned to know, are what we must
+first of all learn. If the question in hand<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_369" id="page_369"></a>{369}</span> can fit into the notion the
+child possesses, he will answer better and more if quite unendowed, than
+if a very clever child who is foreign to the notions of the defined
+situation. I should take intelligence only to be of next importance in
+such cases, and advise giving up separating clever from stupid children
+in favor of separating practical and unpractical children. The latter
+makes an essential difference. Both the children of talent and stupid
+children may be practical or unpractical. If a child is talented and
+practical he will become a useful member of society who will be at home
+everywhere and will be able to help himself under any circumstances. If
+a child is talented and unpractical, it may grow up into a professor, as
+is customarily expected of it. If a child is untalented and practical,
+it will properly fill a definite place, and if it has luck and “pull”
+may even attain high station in life. If it is untalented and
+unpractical it becomes one of those poor creatures who never get
+anywhere. For the rôle of witness the child’s practicality is the
+important thing. The practical child will see, observe, properly
+understand, and reproduce a group of things that the unpractical child
+has not even observed. Of course, it is well, also, to have the child
+talented, but I repeat: the least clever practical child is worth more
+as witness than the most clever unpractical child.</p>
+
+<p>What the term “practical” stands for is difficult to say, but everybody
+knows it, and everybody has seen, who has cared about children at all,
+that there are practical children.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 81. (3) <i>Juvenile Delinquency.</i></h5>
+
+<p>There have never lacked authors who have assigned to children a great
+group of defects. Ever since Lombroso it has been the custom in a
+certain circle to find the worst crimes already foreshadowed in
+children. If there are congenital criminals it must follow that there
+are criminals among children. It is shown that the most cruel and most
+unhuman men, like Nero, Caracalla, Caligula, Louis XI, Charles IX, Louis
+XIII, etc., showed signs of great cruelty, even in earliest childhood.
+Perez cites attacks of anger and rage in children; Moreau, early
+development of the sense of vengeance, Lafontaine, their lack of pity.
+Nasse also calls attention to the cruelty and savagery of large numbers
+of children, traits shown in their liking for horror-stories, in the
+topsy-turvy conclusion of the stories they tell themselves, in their
+cruelty to animals. Broussais<a name="FNanchor_285_285" id="FNanchor_285_285"></a><a href="#Footnote_285_285" class="fnanchor">[285]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_370" id="page_370"></a>{370}</span> says, “There is hardly a lad who
+will not intentionally abuse weaker boys. This is his first impulse. His
+victim’s cries of pain restrain him for a moment from further
+maltreatment, if the love of bullying is not native with him. But at the
+first offered opportunity he again follows his instinctive impulse.”</p>
+
+<p>Even the power of training is reduced and is expressed in the proverb,
+that children and nations take note only of their last beating. The time
+about, and especially just before, the development of puberty seems to
+be an especially bad one, and according to Voisin<a name="FNanchor_286_286" id="FNanchor_286_286"></a><a href="#Footnote_286_286" class="fnanchor">[286]</a> and
+Friedreich,<a name="FNanchor_287_287" id="FNanchor_287_287"></a><a href="#Footnote_287_287" class="fnanchor">[287]</a> modern man sees in this beginning of masculinity the
+cause of the most extraordinary and doubtful impulses. Since Esquirol
+invented the doctrine of monomanias there has grown up a whole
+literature, especially concerning pyromania among girls who are just
+becoming marriageable, and Friedreich even asserts that all pubescent
+children suffer from pyromania, while Grohmann holds that scrofulous
+children are in the habit of stealing.</p>
+
+<p>When this literature is tested the conclusion is inevitable that there
+has been overbold generalization. One may easily see how. Of course
+there are badly behaved children, and it is no agreement with the
+Italian positivists to add, also, that a large number of criminals were
+good for nothing even in their earliest youth. But we are here concerned
+with the specific endowment of childhood, and it is certainly an
+exaggeration to set this lower than that of maturity. If it be asked,
+what influence nurture and training have if children are good without
+it, we may answer at once, that these have done enough in having
+supplied a counterbalance to the depraving influences of life,&mdash;the
+awakening passions and the environment.</p>
+
+<p>Children who are bad at an early age are easily noticeable. They make
+noise and trouble as thousands of well-behaved children do not, and a
+poor few of such bad ones are taken to be representative of all. What is
+silent and not significant, goes of itself, makes no impression, even
+though it is incomparably of greater magnitude. Individual and noisy
+cases require so much attention that their character is assigned to the
+whole class. Fortune-telling, dreams, forewarnings, and prophecies are
+similarly treated. If they do not succeed, they are forgotten, but if in
+one case they succeed, they make a great noise. They appear, therefore,
+to seduce the mind<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_371" id="page_371"></a>{371}</span> into incorrectly interpreting them as typical. And
+generally, there is a tendency to make sweeping statements about
+children. “If you have understood this, you understand that also,”
+children are often told, and most of the time unjustly. The child is
+treated like a grown man to whom <i>this</i> has occurred as often as <i>that</i>,
+and who has intelligence enough and experience enough to apply <i>this</i> to
+<i>that</i> by way of identification. Consider an exaggerated example. The
+child, let us say, knows very well that stealing is dishonorable,
+sinful, criminal. But it does not know that counterfeiting, treachery,
+and arson are forbidden. These differences, however, may be reduced to a
+hair. It knows that stealing is forbidden, but considers it permissible
+to “rag” the neighbors’ fruit. It knows that lying is a sin, but it does
+not know that certain lies become suddenly punishable, according to law,
+and are called frauds. When, therefore, a boy tells his uncle that
+father sent him for money because he does not happen to have any at
+home, and when the little rascal spends the money for sweets, he may
+perhaps believe that the lie is quite ugly, but that he had done
+anything objectively punishable, he may be totally unaware. It is just
+as difficult for the child to become subjective. The child is more of an
+egoist than the adult; on the one hand, because it is protected and
+watched in many directions by the adult; on the other, because, from the
+nature of things, it does not have to care for anybody, and would go
+ship-wreck if it were not itself cared for. The natural consequences are
+that it does not discover the limits between what is permissible, and
+what is not permissible. As Kraus says,<a name="FNanchor_288_288" id="FNanchor_288_288"></a><a href="#Footnote_288_288" class="fnanchor">[288]</a> “Unripe youth shows a
+distinct quality in distinguishing good and evil. A child of this age,
+that is required to judge the action or relations of persons, will not
+keep one waiting for the proper solution, but if the action is brought
+into relation to its selfhood, to its own personality, there is a sudden
+disingenuity, a twisting of the judgment, an incapacity in the child to
+set itself at the objective point of view.” Hence, it is wrong to ask a
+child: “Didn’t you know that you should not have done this thing?” The
+child will answer, “Yes, I knew,” but it does not dare to add, “I knew
+that other people ought not do it, but I might.” It is not necessary
+that the spoiled, pampered pet should say this; any child has this
+prejudiced attitude. And how shall it know the limit between what is
+permitted it, and what is not? Adults must work, the child plays; the
+mother must cook, the child comes to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_372" id="page_372"></a>{372}</span> laden table; the mother must
+wash, the child wears the clean clothes; it gets the titbits; it is
+protected against cold; it is forgiven many a deed and many a word not
+permitted the adult. Now all of a sudden it is blamed because it has
+gone on making use of its recognized privileges. Whoever remembers this
+artificial, but nevertheless necessary, egoism in children will have to
+think more kindly of many a childish crime. Moreover, we must not
+overlook the fact that the child does many things simply as blind
+imitation. More accurate observation of this well known psychological
+fact will show how extensive childish imitation is. At a certain limit,
+of course, liability is here also present, but if a child is imitating
+an imitable person, a parent, a teacher, etc., its responsibility is at
+an end.</p>
+
+<p>All in all, we may say that nobody has brought any evidence to show that
+children are any worse-behaved than adults. Experience teaches that
+hypocrisy, calculating evil, intentional selfishness, and purposeful
+lying are incomparably rarer among children than among adults, and that
+on the whole, they observe well and willingly. We may take children,
+with the exception of pubescent girls, to be good, reliable witnesses.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 82. (c) Senility.</h5>
+
+<p>It would seem that we lawyers have taken insufficient account of the
+characteristics of senility. These characteristics are as definitive as
+those of childhood or of sex, and to overlook them may lead to serious
+consequences. We shall not consider that degree of old age which is
+called second childhood. At that stage the question seriously arises
+whether we are not dealing with the idiocy of age, or at least with a
+weakness of perception and of memory so obvious that they can not be
+mistaken.</p>
+
+<p>The important stage is the one which precedes this, and in which a
+definite decline in mental power is not yet perceivable. Just as we see
+the first stage of early youth come to an end when the distinction
+between boy and girl becomes altogether definite, so we may observe that
+the important activity of the process of life has run its course when
+this distinction begins to degenerate. It is essentially defined by the
+approximation to each other of the external appearance of the two
+sexes,&mdash;their voices, their inner character, and their attitude. What is
+typically masculine or feminine disappears. It is at this point that
+extreme old age begins. The number of years, the degree of intelligence,
+education, and other differences<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_373" id="page_373"></a>{373}</span> are of small importance, and the
+ensuing particularities may be easily deduced by a consideration of the
+nature of extreme old age. The task of life is ended, because the
+physical powers have no longer any scope. For the same reason resistance
+to enemies has become lessened, courage has decreased, care about
+physical welfare increased, everything occurs more slowly and with
+greater difficulty, and all because of the newly-arrived weakness which,
+from now on, becomes the denotative trait of that whole bit of human
+nature. Hence, Lombroso<a name="FNanchor_289_289" id="FNanchor_289_289"></a><a href="#Footnote_289_289" class="fnanchor">[289]</a> is not wrong in saying that the
+characteristic diseases of extreme old age are rarer among women than
+among men. This is so because the change in women is not so sudden, nor
+so powerful, since they are weak to begin with, while man becomes a weak
+graybeard suddenly and out of the fullness of his manly strength. The
+change is so great, the difference so significant and painful, that the
+consequence must be a series of unpleasant properties,&mdash;egoism,
+excitability, moroseness, cruelty, etc. It is significant that the very
+old man assumes all those unpleasant characteristics we note in
+eunuchs&mdash;they result from the consciousness of having lost power.</p>
+
+<p>It is from this fact that Kraus (loc. cit.) deduces the crimes of
+extreme old age. “The excitable weakness of the old man brings him into
+great danger of becoming a criminal. The excitability is opposed to
+slowness and one-sidedness in thought; he is easily surprised by
+irrelevancies; he is torn from his drowse, and behaves like a somnolent
+drunkard.... The very old individual is a fanatic about rest&mdash;every
+disturbance of his rest troubles him. Hence, all his anger, all his
+teasing and quarreling, all his obstinacy and stiffness, have a single
+device: ‘Let me alone.’&nbsp;”</p>
+
+<p>This somnolent drunkenness is variously valued. Henry Holland, in one of
+his “Fragmentary Papers,” said that age approximates a condition of
+dreams in which illusion and reality are easily confused. But this can
+be true only of the last stages of extreme old age, when life has become
+a very weak, vegetative function, but hardly any crimes are committed by
+people in this stage.</p>
+
+<p>It would be simpler to say that the old man’s weakness gives the earlier
+tendencies of his youth a definite direction which may lead to crime.
+All diseases develop in the direction of the newly developing weakness.
+But selfishness or greed are not young. Hence we must assume that an
+aging man who has turned miser began by being prudent, but that he did
+not deny himself and his friends because he knew that he was able to
+restore, later, what they consumed.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_374" id="page_374"></a>{374}</span> Now he is old and weak, he knows
+that he can no longer do this easily, i.e., that his money and property
+are all that he has to depend on in his old age, and hence, he is very
+much afraid of losing or decreasing them, so that his prudence becomes
+miserliness, later mania for possession, and even worse; finally it may
+turn him into a criminal.</p>
+
+<p>The situation is the same sexually. Too weak to satisfy natural
+instincts in adults, he attacks immature girls, and his fear of people
+he can no longer otherwise oppose turns him into a poisoner. Drobisch
+finds that by reason of the alteration of characteristics, definite
+elements of the self are distinguishable at every stage. The
+distinguishing element in extreme old age, in senility, is the loss of
+power, and if we keep this in mind we shall be able to explain every
+phenomenon characteristic of this period.</p>
+
+<p>Senile individuals require especial treatment as witnesses. An accurate
+study of such people and of the not over-rich literature concerning them
+will, however, yield a sufficient basis to go on. What is most important
+can be found in any text-book on psychology. The individual cases are
+considerably helped by the assumption that the mental organization of
+senility is essentially simplified and narrowed to a few types. Its
+activities are lessened, its influences and aims are compressed, the
+present brings little and is little remembered, so that its collective
+character is determined by a resultant, composed of those forces that
+have influenced the man’s past life. Accurate observation will reveal
+only two types of senility.<a name="FNanchor_290_290" id="FNanchor_290_290"></a><a href="#Footnote_290_290" class="fnanchor">[290]</a> There is the embittered type, and there
+is the character expressed in the phrase, “to understand all is to
+forgive all.” Senility rarely succeeds in presenting facts objectively.
+Everything it tells is bound up with its judgment, and its judgment is
+either negative or positive. The judgment’s nature depends less on the
+old man’s emotional character than on his experience in life. If he is
+one of the embittered, he will probably so describe a possibly harmful,
+but not bad event, as to be able to complain of the wickedness of the
+world, which brought it about, that at one time such and such an evil
+happened to him. The excusing senile will begin with “Good God, it
+wasn’t so bad. The people were young and merry, and so one of them&mdash;.”
+That the same event is presented in a fundamentally different light by
+each is obvious. Fortunately, the senile is easily seen through and his
+first words show how he looks at things. He makes difficulties mainly by
+introducing memories<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_375" id="page_375"></a>{375}</span> which always color and modify the evidence. The
+familiar fact that very old men remember things long past better than
+immediate occurrences, is to be explained by the situation that the
+ancient brain retains only that which it has frequently experienced. Old
+experiences are recalled in memory hundreds and hundreds of times, and
+hence, may take deep root there, while the new could be repeated, only a
+few times, and hence had not time to find a place before being
+forgotten. If the old man tells of some recent event, some similar
+remote event is also alive in his mind. The latter has, however, if not
+more vivid at least equally vigorous color, so that the old man’s story
+is frequently composed of things long past. I do not know how to
+eliminate these old memories from this story. There are always
+difficulties, particularly as personal experiences of evil generally
+dominate these memories. It is not unjust, that proverb which says “If
+youth is at all silly, old age remembers it well.”</p>
+
+<h5>Section 83. (d) Differences in Conception.</h5>
+
+<p>I should like to add to what precedes, that senility presents fact and
+judgment together. In a certain sense every age and person does so and,
+as I have repeatedly said, it would be foolish to assert that we have
+the right to demand only facts from witnesses. Setting aside the
+presence of inferences in most sense-perceptions, every exposition
+contains, without exception, the judgment of its subject-matter, though
+only, perhaps, in a few dry words. It may lie in some choice expression,
+in the tone, in the gesture but it is there, open to careful
+observation. Consider any simple event, e.g., two drunkards quarreling
+in the street. And suppose we instruct any one of many witnesses to tell
+us only the facts. He will do so, but with the introductory words, “It
+was a very ordinary event,” “altogether a joke,” “completely harmless,”
+“quite disgusting,” “very funny,” “a disgusting piece of the history of
+morals,” “too sad,” “unworthy of humanity,” “frightfully dangerous,”
+“very interesting,” “a real study for hell,” “just a picture of the
+future,” etc. Now, is it possible to think that people who have so
+variously characterized the same event will give an identical
+description of the mere fact? They have seen the event in accordance
+with their attitude toward life. One has seen nothing; another this;
+another that; and, although the thing might have lasted only a very
+short time, it made such an impression that each has in mind a
+completely different picture which he now reproduces.<a name="FNanchor_291_291" id="FNanchor_291_291"></a><a href="#Footnote_291_291" class="fnanchor">[291]</a> As Volkmar
+said, “One<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_376" id="page_376"></a>{376}</span> nation hears in thunder the clangor of trumpets, the
+hoof-beats of divine steeds, the quarrels of the dragons of heaven;
+another hears the mooing of the cow, the chirp of the cricket, the
+complaint of the ancestors; still another hears the saints turn the
+vault of heaven, and the Greenlander, even the quarrel of bewitched
+women concerning a dried skin.” And Voltaire says, “If you ask the devil
+what beauty is, he will tell you that beauty is a pair of horns, four
+hoofs, and a tail.” Yet, when we ask a witness what is beautiful, we
+think that we are asking for a brute fact, and expect as reliable an
+answer as from a mathematician. We might as well ask for cleanliness
+from a person who thinks he has set his house in order by having swept
+the dirt from one corner to another.</p>
+
+<p>To compare the varieties of intellectual attitude among men generally,
+we must start with sense-perception, which, combined with mental
+perception, makes a not insignificant difference in each individual.
+Astronomers first discovered the existence of this difference, in that
+they showed that various observers of contemporaneous events do not
+observe at the same time. This fact is called “the personal equation.”
+Whether the difference in rate of sense-perception, or the difference of
+intellectual apprehension, or of both together, are here responsible, is
+not known, but the proved distinction (even to a second) is so much the
+more important, since events which succeed each other very rapidly may
+cause individual observers to have quite different images. And we know
+as little whether the slower or the quicker observer sees more
+correctly, as we little know what people perceive more quickly or more
+slowly. Now, inasmuch as we are unable to test individual differences
+with special instruments, we must satisfy ourselves with the fact that
+there are different varieties of conception, and that these may be of
+especial importance in doubtful cases, such as brawls, sudden attacks,
+cheating at cards, pocket-picking, etc.</p>
+
+<p>The next degree of difference is in the difference of observation.
+Schiel says that the observer is not he who sees the thing, but who sees
+of what parts it is made. The talent for such vision is rare. One man
+overlooks half because he is inattentive or is looking at the wrong
+place; another substitutes his own inferences for objects, while another
+tends to observe the quality of objects, and neglects their quantity;
+and still another divides what is to be united, and unites what is to be
+separated. If we keep in mind what profound differences may result in
+this way, we must recognize the source of the conflicting assertions by
+witnesses. And we shall have to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_377" id="page_377"></a>{377}</span> grant that these differences would
+become incomparably greater and more important if the witnesses were not
+required to talk of the event immediately, or later on, thus
+approximating their different conceptions to some average. Hence we
+often discover that when the witnesses really have had no chance to
+discuss the matter and have heard no account of it from a third person,
+or have not seen the consequences of the deed, their discussions of it
+showed distinct and essential differences merely through the lack of an
+opportunity or a standard of correction. And we then suppose that a part
+of what the witnesses have said is untrue, or assume that they were
+inattentive, or blind.</p>
+
+<p>Views are of similar importance.<a name="FNanchor_292_292" id="FNanchor_292_292"></a><a href="#Footnote_292_292" class="fnanchor">[292]</a> Fiesto exclaims, “It is scandalous
+to empty a full purse, it is impertinent to misappropriate a million,
+but it is unnamably great to steal a crown. The shame decreases with the
+increase of the sin.” Exner holds that the ancients conceived Oedipus
+not as we do; they found his misfortune horrible; we find it unpleasant.</p>
+
+<p>These are poetical criminal cases presented to us from different points
+of view; and we nowadays understand the same action still more
+differently, and not only in poetry, but in the daily life. Try, for
+example, to get various individuals to judge the same formation of
+clouds. You may hear the clouds called flower-stalks with spiritual
+blossoms, impoverished students, stormy sea, camel, monkey, battling
+giants, swarm of flies, prophet with a flowing beard, dunderhead, etc.
+We have coming to light, in this accidental interpretation of fact, the
+speaker’s view of life, his intimacies, etc. This emergence is as
+observable in the interpretation also of the ordinary events of the
+daily life. There, even if the judgments do not vary very much, they are
+still different enough to indicate quite distinct points of view. The
+memory of the curious judgment of one cloud-formation has helped me many
+a time to explain testimonies that seemed to have no possible
+connection.</p>
+
+<p><i>Attitude or feeling</i>&mdash;this indefinable factor exercises a great
+influence on conception and interpretation. It is much more wonderful
+than even the march of events, or of fate itself. Everybody knows what
+attitude (stimmung) is. Everybody has suffered from it, everybody has
+made some use of it, but nobody can altogether define it. According to
+Fischer, attitude consists in the compounded feelings of all the inner
+conditions and changes of the organism,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_378" id="page_378"></a>{378}</span> expressed in consciousness.
+This would make attitude a sort of vital feeling, the resultant of the
+now favorable, now unfavorable functioning of our organs. The
+description is, however, not unexceptionable, inasmuch as single,
+apparently insignificant influences upon our senses may create or alter
+our attitudes for a long time without revealing its effect on any organ
+or its integration with the other mental states. I know how merely good
+or bad weather determines attitude, how it may be helped immediately by
+a good cigar, and how often we may pass a day, joyous or dejected, only
+to discover that the cause is a good or a bad dream of the foregoing
+night. Especially instructive in this regard was a little experience of
+mine during an official journey. The trouble which brought me out was an
+ordinary brawl between young peasants, one of whom was badly cut up and
+was to be examined. Half-way over, we had to wait at a wayside inn where
+I expected a relieving gendarme. A quarter of an hour after the stop,
+when we renewed the journey, I found myself overcome by unspeakable
+sadness, and this very customary brawl seemed to me especially
+unpleasant. I sympathized with the wounded boy, his parents, his
+opponents, all strangers to me, and I bewrayed the rawness of mankind,
+its love for liquor, etc. This attitude was so striking that I began to
+seek its cause. I found it, first of all, in the dreary region,&mdash;then in
+the cup of hot coffee that I had drunk in the restaurant, which might
+possibly have been poisonous;&mdash;finally, it occurred to me that the
+hoof-beats of the horses were tuned to a very saddening minor chord. The
+coachman in his hurry had forgotten to take bells with him, and in order
+to avoid violating police regulations he had borrowed at the inn another
+peal, and my sad state dated from the moment I heard it. I banished the
+sound and immediately I found myself enjoying the pretty scenery.</p>
+
+<p>I am convinced that if I had been called to testify in my sad state, I
+would have told the story otherwise than normally. The influence of
+music upon attitude is very well known. The unknown influence of
+external conditions also makes a difference on attitude. “If you are
+absorbed in thought,” says Fechner, “you notice neither sunshine nor the
+green of the meadows, etc., and still you are in a quite different
+emotional condition from that which would possess you in a dark room.”</p>
+
+<p>The attitude we call indifference is of particular import. It appears,
+especially, when the ego, because of powerful impressions, is concerned
+with itself; pain, sadness, important work, reflection,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_379" id="page_379"></a>{379}</span> disease, etc.
+In this condition we depreciate or undervalue the significance of
+everything that occurs about us. Everything is brought into relation to
+our personal, immediate condition, and is from the point of view of our
+egoism, more or less indifferent. It does not matter whether this
+attitude of indifference occurs at the time of perception or at the time
+of restatement during the examination. In either case, the fact is
+robbed of its hardness, its significance, and its importance; what was
+white or black, is described as gray.</p>
+
+<p>There is another and similar attitude which is distinguished by the fact
+that we are never quite aware of it but are much subject to it.
+According to Lipps<a name="FNanchor_293_293" id="FNanchor_293_293"></a><a href="#Footnote_293_293" class="fnanchor">[293]</a> and Lotze,<a name="FNanchor_294_294" id="FNanchor_294_294"></a><a href="#Footnote_294_294" class="fnanchor">[294]</a> there is to be observed in
+neurotic attitudes a not rare and complete indifference to feeling, and
+in consciousness an essential lack of feeling-tone in perception. Our
+existence, our own being, seems to us, then, to be a foreign thing,
+having little concern with us&mdash;a story we need not earnestly consider.
+That in such condition little attention is paid to what is going on
+around us seems clear enough. The experiences are shadowy and
+superficial; they are indifferent and are represented as such only. This
+condition is very dangerous in the law court, because, where a
+conscientious witness will tell us that, e.g., at the time of the
+observation or the examination he was sick or troubled, and therefore
+was incorrect, a person utterly detached in the way described does not
+tell the judge of his condition, probably because he does not know
+anything about it.</p>
+
+<p>There are certain closely-related mental and physical situations which
+lead to quite a different view. Those who are suffering physically,
+those who have deeply wounded feelings, and those who have been reduced
+by worry, are examined in the same way as normal people, yet they need
+to be measured by quite a different standard. Again, we are sometimes
+likely to suppose great passions that have long since passed their
+period, to be as influential as they were in their prime. We know that
+love and hate disappear in the distance, and that love long dead and a
+long-deferred hatred tend to express themselves as a feeling of mildness
+and forgiveness which is pretty much the same in spite of its diverse
+sources. If the examiner knows that a great passion, whether of hate or
+of love, exists, he thinks he is fooled when he finds a full, calm and
+objective judgment instead of it. It seems impossible to him, and he
+either does not believe the probably accurate witness, or colors his
+testimony with that knowledge.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_380" id="page_380"></a>{380}</span></p>
+
+<p>Bodily conditions are still more remarkable in effecting differences in
+point of view. Here no sense-illusion is presented since no change
+occurs in sense-perception; the changes are such that arise after the
+perception, during the process of judgment and interpretation. We might
+like an idea when lying down that displeases us when we stand up.
+Examination shows that this attitude varies with the difference in the
+quantity of blood in the brain in these two positions, and this fact may
+explain a whole series of phenomena. First of all, it is related to
+plan-making and the execution of plans. Everybody knows how, while lying
+in bed, a great many plans occur that seem good. The moment you get up,
+new considerations arise, and the half-adopted plan is progressively
+abandoned. Now this does not mean anything so long as nothing was
+undertaken in the first situation which might be binding for the
+resolution then made. For example, when two, lying in bed, have made a
+definite plan, each is later ashamed before the other to withdraw from
+it. So we often hear from criminals that they were sorry about certain
+plans, but since they were once resolved upon, they were carried out.
+Numbers of such phenomena, many of them quite unbelievable in
+appearance, may be retroduced to similar sources.</p>
+
+<p>A like thing occurs when a witness, e.g., reflects about some event
+while he is in bed. When he thinks of it again he is convinced, perhaps,
+that the matter really occurred in quite another way than he had newly
+supposed it to. Now he may convince himself that the time at which he
+made the reflections was nearer the event, and hence, those reflections
+must have been the more correct ones&mdash;in that case he sticks to his
+first story, although that might have been incorrect. Helmholtz<a name="FNanchor_295_295" id="FNanchor_295_295"></a><a href="#Footnote_295_295" class="fnanchor">[295]</a> has
+pointed to something similar: “The colors of a landscape appear to be
+much more living and definite when they are looked at obliquely, or when
+they are looked at with the head upside down, than when they are looked
+at with the head in its ordinary position. With the head upside down we
+try correctly to judge objects and know that, e.g., green meadows, at a
+certain distance, have a rather altered coloration. We become used to
+that fact, discount the change and identify the green of distant objects
+with the shade of green belonging to near objects. Besides, we see the
+landscape from the new position as a flat image, and incidentally we see
+clouds in right perspective and the landscape flat, like clouds when we
+see them in the ordinary way.” Of course, everybody knows this. And of
+course, in a criminal case such considerations will<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_381" id="page_381"></a>{381}</span> hardly ever play
+any rôle. But, on the other hand, it is also a matter of course that the
+reason for these differences might likewise be the reason for a great
+many others not yet discovered, and yet of great significance to
+criminalists.</p>
+
+<p>Such is the situation with regard to comparison. Schiel laid much
+emphasis on the fact that two lines of unequal length seem equal when
+they diverge, although their difference is recognized immediately if
+they are parallel, close together, and start from the same level. He
+says that the situation is similar in all comparison. If things may be
+juxtaposed they can be compared; if not, the comparison is bound to be
+bad. There is no question of illusion here, merely of convenience of
+manipulation. Juxtaposition is frequently important, not for the
+practical convenience of comparison, but because we must know whether
+the witness has discovered the right juxtaposition. Only if he has, can
+his comparison have been good. To discover whether he has, requires
+careful examination.</p>
+
+<p>Conception and interpretation are considerably dependent on the interest
+which is brought to the object examined. There is a story of a child’s
+memory of an old man, which was not a memory of the <i>whole</i> man, but
+only of a green sleeve and a wrinkled hand presenting a cake of
+chocolate. The child was interested only in the chocolate, and hence,
+understood it and its nearest environment&mdash;the hand and the sleeve. We
+may easily observe similar cases. In some great brawl the witness may
+have seen only what was happening to his brother. The numismatist may
+have observed only a bracelet with a rare coin in a heap of stolen
+valuables. In a long anarchistic speech the witness may have heard only
+what threatened his own welfare. And so on. The very thing looks
+different if, for whatever reason, it is uninteresting or intensely
+interesting. A color is quite different when it is in fashion, a flower
+different when we know it to be artificial, the sun is brighter at home,
+and home-grown fruit tastes better. But there is still another group of
+specific influences on our conceptions and interpretations, the examples
+of which have been increasing unbrokenly. One of these is the variety in
+the significance of words. Words have become symbols of concepts, and
+simple words have come to mean involved mathematical and philosophical
+ideas. It is conceivable that two men may connote quite different things
+by the word “symbol.” And even in thinking and construing, in making use
+of perceived facts, different conceptions may arise through presenting
+the fact to another with symbols, that to him, signify different things.
+The<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_382" id="page_382"></a>{382}</span> difference may perhaps not be great, but when it is taken in
+connection with the associations and suggestions of the word used, small
+mistakes multiply and the result is quite different from what it might
+have been if another meaning had been the starting-point. The use of
+foreign words, in a sense different from that used by us, may lead us
+far astray. It must be borne in mind that the meaning of the foreign
+word frequently does not coincide with the sense it has in the
+dictionary. Hence, it is dangerous in adducing evidence to use foreign
+expressions when it is important to adhere strictly to a single meaning.
+Taine says, correctly: “Love and amour, girl and jeune fille, song and
+chanson, are not identical although they are substituted for one
+another.” It is, moreover, pointed out that children, especially, are
+glad to substitute and alter ideas for which one word stands, so that
+they expand or contract its meaning haphazard. Bow-wow may first mean a
+dog, then a horse, then all animals, and a child who was once shown a
+fir tree in the forest said it wasn’t a fir tree, for fir trees come
+only at Christmas.</p>
+
+<p>This process is not confined to children. At one time or another we hear
+a word. As soon as we hear it we connect it with an idea. This
+connection will rarely be correct, largely because we have heard the
+word for the first time. Later, we get our idea from events in which
+this word occurs, of course, in connection with the object we
+instantaneously understand the word to mean. In time we learn another
+word, and word and meaning have changed, correctly or incorrectly. A
+comparison of these changes in individuals would show how easy both
+approximations and diversifications in meaning are. It must follow that
+any number of misunderstandings can develop, and many an alteration in
+the conception of justice and decency, considered through a long period,
+may become very significant in indicating the changes in the meaning of
+words. Many a time, if we bear thoroughly in mind the mere changes in
+the meaning of the word standing for a doubtful fact, we put ourselves
+in possession of the history of morals. Even the most important quarrels
+would lapse if the quarreling persons could get emotionally at the
+intent of their opponent’s words.</p>
+
+<p>In this connection questions of honor offer a broad field of examples.
+It is well known that German is rich in words that show personal
+dislikes, and also, that the greater portion of these words are harmless
+in themselves. But one man understands this, the other that, when he
+hears the words, and finally, German is in the curious position of being
+the cause of the largest number of attacks on honor<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_383" id="page_383"></a>{383}</span> and of cases of
+slander in the world. Where the Frenchman laughs and becomes witty, the
+German grows sullen, insulting, and looks for trouble. The French call
+sensitiveness to insignificant and worthless things, the German way of
+quarreling (faire querelle d’allemand). Many a slander case in court is
+easily settled by showing people the value of the word. Many who
+complained that they were called a creature, a person, etc., went away
+satisfied as soon as the whole meaning of the words had been explained
+to them.</p>
+
+<p>In conclusion, just a word concerning the influence of time on
+conception. Not the length of past time, but the value of the time-span
+is what is important in determining an event. According to Herbart,
+there is a form of temporal repetition, and time is the form of
+repetition. If he is right it is inevitable that time, fast-moving or
+slow-moving, must influence the conception of events. It is well-known
+that monotony in the run of time makes it seem slow, while time full of
+events goes swiftly, but appears long in memory, because a large number
+of points have to be thought through. Münsterberg shows that we have to
+stop at every separate point, and so time seems, in memory, longer. But
+this is not universally valid. Aristotle had already pointed out that a
+familiar road appears to be shorter than an unfamiliar one, and this is
+contradictory to the first proposition. So, a series of days flies away
+if we spend them quietly and calmly in vacation in the country. Their
+swiftness is surprising. Then when something of importance occurs in our
+life and it is directly succeeded by a calm, eventless period, this
+seems very long in memory, although it should have seemed long when it
+occurred, and short in the past. These and similar phenomena are quite
+unexplained, and all that can be said after numerous experiments is,
+that we conceive short times as long, and long times as short. Now, we
+may add the remarkable fact that most people have no idea of the
+duration of very small times, especially of the minute. Ask any
+individual to sit absolutely quiet, without counting or doing anything
+else, and to indicate the passing of each minute up to five. He will say
+that the five minutes have passed at the end of never more than a minute
+and a half. So witnesses in estimating time will make mistakes also, and
+these mistakes, and other nonsense, are written into the protocols.</p>
+
+<p>There are two means of correction. Either have the witness determine the
+time in terms of some familiar form, i.e., a paternoster, etc., or give
+him the watch and let him observe the second hand. In the latter case he
+will assert that his ten, or his five, or<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_384" id="page_384"></a>{384}</span> his twenty minutes were, at
+most, no more than a half or a whole minute.</p>
+
+<p>The problem of time is still more difficult when the examination has to
+be made with regard to the estimation of still longer periods&mdash;weeks,
+months, or years. There is no means of making any test. The only thing
+that experience definitely shows is, that the certainty of such
+estimates depends on their being fixed by distinct events. If anybody
+says that event A occurred four or five days before event B, we may
+believe him if, e.g., he adds, “For when A occurred we began to cut
+corn, and when B occurred we harvested it. And between these two events
+there were four or five days.” If he can not adduce similar judgments,
+we must never depend upon him, for things may have occurred which have
+so influenced his conception of time that he judges altogether falsely.</p>
+
+<p>It often happens in such cases that defective estimates, made in the
+course of lengthy explanations, suddenly become points of reference, and
+then, if wrong, are the cause of mistakes. Suppose that a witness once
+said that an event occurred four years ago. Much later an estimation of
+the time is undertaken which shows that the hasty statement sets the
+event in 1893. And then all the most important conclusions are merely
+argued from that. It is best, as is customary in such cases, to test the
+uncertainty and incorrectness of these estimates of time on oneself. It
+may be assumed that the witness, in the case in question, is likely to
+have made a better estimate, but it may equally be assumed that he has
+not done so. In short, the conception of periods of time can not be
+dealt with too cautiously.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 84. (e) Nature and Nurture.</h5>
+
+<p>Schopenhauer was the first to classify people according to nature and
+nurture. Just where he first used the categories I do not know, but I
+know that he is responsible for them. “Nature” is physical and mental
+character and disposition, taken most broadly; “nurture” is bringing up,
+environment, studies, scholarship, and experience, also in the broadest
+sense of those words. Both together present what a man is, what he is
+able to do, what he wants to do. A classification, then, according to
+nature and nurture is a classification according to essence and
+character. The influence of a man’s nature on his face, we know, or try
+to know, but what criminal relationships his nurture may develop for us,
+we are altogether ignorant of. There are all sorts of intermediaries,
+connections and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_385" id="page_385"></a>{385}</span> differences between what the goddess of civilization
+finds to prize, and what can be justified only by a return to simplicity
+and nature.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 85. I. <i>The Influence of Nurture.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Criminologically the influence of nurture on mankind is important if it
+can explain the development of morality, honorableness, and love of
+truth. The criminalist has to study relations, actions, and assertions,
+to value and to compare them when they are differentiable only in terms
+of the nurture of those who are responsible for them. The most
+instructive works on this problem are those of Tarde,<a name="FNanchor_296_296" id="FNanchor_296_296"></a><a href="#Footnote_296_296" class="fnanchor">[296]</a> and
+Oelzelt-Newin.<a name="FNanchor_297_297" id="FNanchor_297_297"></a><a href="#Footnote_297_297" class="fnanchor">[297]</a> Among the older writers Leibnitz had already said,
+“If you leave education to me I’ll change Europe in a century.”
+Descartes, Locke, Helvetius assign to nurture the highest possible value
+while Carlyle, e.g., insists that civilization is a cloak in which wild
+human nature may eternally burn with hellish fire. For moderns it is a
+half-way house. Ribot says that training has least effect at the two
+extremes of humanity&mdash;little and transitively on the idiot, much on the
+average man, not at all on the genius. I might add that the circle of
+idiots and geniuses must be made extremely large, for average people are
+very few in number, and the increase in intellectual training has made
+no statistical difference on the curve of crime. This is one of the
+conclusions arrived at by Adolf Wagner<a name="FNanchor_298_298" id="FNanchor_298_298"></a><a href="#Footnote_298_298" class="fnanchor">[298]</a> which corroborates the
+experience of practising lawyers and we who have had, during the growth
+of popular education, the opportunity to make observations from the
+criminalistic standpoint, know nothing favorable to its influence. If
+the general assertion is true that increased national education has
+reduced brawling, damages to property, etc., and has increased
+swindling, misappropriations, etc., we have made a great mistake. For
+the psychological estimation of a criminal, the crime itself is not
+definitive; there is always the question as to the damage this
+individual has done his own nature with his deed. If, then, a peasant
+lad hits his neighbor with the leg of a chair or destroys fences, or
+perhaps a whole village, he may still be the most honorable of youths,
+and later grow up into a universally respected man. Many of the best and
+most useful village mayors have been guilty in their youth of brawls,
+damages to property, resistance to authority, and similar things.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_386" id="page_386"></a>{386}</span> But
+if a man has once swindled or killed anybody, he has lost his honor,
+and, as a rule, remains a scoundrel for the rest of his life. If for
+criminals of the first kind we substitute the latter type we get a very
+bad outlook.</p>
+
+<p>Individuals yield similar experiences. The most important characteristic
+of a somewhat cultivated man who not only is able to read and to write,
+but makes some use of his knowledge, is a loudly-expressed discontent
+with his existence. If he once has acquired the desire to read, the
+little time he has is not sufficient to satisfy it, and when he has more
+time he is always compelled to lay aside his volume of poetry to feed
+the pigs or to clean the stables. He learns, moreover, of a number of
+needs which he can not satisfy but which books have instilled in him,
+and finally, he seeks illegal means, as we criminalists know, for their
+satisfaction.</p>
+
+<p>In many countries the law of such cases considers extenuating
+circumstances and defective bringing-up, but it has never yet occurred
+to a single criminalist that people might be likely to commit crime
+because they could not read or write. Nevertheless, we are frequently in
+touch with an old peasant as witness who gives the impression of
+absolute integrity, reliability, and wisdom, so much so that it is gain
+for anybody to talk to him. But though the black art of reading and
+writing has been foreign to him through the whole of his life, nobody
+will have any accusation to make against him about defective
+bringing-up.</p>
+
+<p>The exhibition of unattainable goods to the mass of mankind is a
+question of conscience. We must, of course, assume that deficiency in
+education is not in itself a reason for doubting the witness, or for
+holding an individual inclined to crime. The mistakes in bringing-up
+like spoiling, rigor, neglect, and their consequences, laziness, deceit,
+and larceny, have a sufficiently evil outcome. And how far these are at
+fault, and how far the nature of the individual himself, can be
+determined only in each concrete case by itself. It will not occur to
+anybody to wish for a return to savagery and anarchy because of the low
+value we set on the training of the mind. There is still the business of
+moral training, and its importance can not be overestimated. Considering
+the subject generally, we may say that the aim of education is the
+capacity of sympathizing with the feeling, understanding, and willing of
+other minds. This might be supplemented, perhaps, also with the
+limitation that the sympathy must be correct, profound, and implicative,
+for external, approximate, or inverted sympathy will obviously not do.
+The servant girl knows<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_387" id="page_387"></a>{387}</span> concerning her master only his manner of
+quarreling and his manner of spitting but is absolutely unaffected by,
+and strange to his inner life. The darker aspects of culture and
+civilization are most obvious in the external contacts of mankind.</p>
+
+<p>When we begin to count an intelligent sympathy, it must follow that the
+sympathy is possible only with regard to commonly conceivable matters;
+that we must fundamentally exclude the essential inward construction of
+the mind and the field of scientific morality. Hence we have left only
+religion, which is the working morality of the populace.</p>
+
+<p>According to Goethe, the great fundamental conflict of history is the
+conflict of belief with doubt. A discussion of this conflict is
+unnecessary here. It is mentioned only by way of indicating that the
+sole training on which the criminalist may rely is that of real
+religion. A really religious person is a reliable witness, and when he
+is behind the bar he permits at least the assumption that he is
+innocent. Of course it is difficult to determine whether he is genuinely
+religious or not, but if genuine religion can be established we have a
+safe starting point. Various authors have discussed the influence of
+education, <i>pro</i> and <i>con</i>. Statistically, it is shown that in Russia,
+only 10% of the population can read and write, and still of 36,868
+condemned persons, no fewer than 26,944 were literate. In the seventies
+the percentage of criminals in Scotland was divided as follows, 21%
+absolutely illiterate, 52.7 half educated; 26.3% well educated.</p>
+
+<p>The religious statistics are altogether worthless. A part of them have
+nothing to do with religion, e.g., the criminality of Jews. One part is
+worthless because it deals only with the criminality of baptized
+Protestants or Catholics, and the final section, which might be of great
+interest, i.e., the criminality of believers and unbelievers, is
+indeterminable. Statistics say that in the country <i>A</i> in the year <i>n</i>
+there were punished x% Protestants, y% Catholics, etc. Of what use is
+the statement? Both among the x and the y percentages there were many
+absolute unbelievers, and it is indifferent whether they were Protestant
+or Catholic unbelievers. It would be interesting to know what percentage
+of the Catholics and of the Protestants are really faithful, for if we
+rightly assume that a true believer rarely commits a crime, we should be
+able to say which religion from the view point of the criminalist should
+be encouraged. The one which counts the greater percentage of believers,
+of course, but we shall never know which one that is. The numbers of
+the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_388" id="page_388"></a>{388}</span> “Protestant” criminals, and those of the “Catholics,” can not help
+us in the least in this matter.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 86. (2) <i>The Views of the Uneducated.</i></h5>
+
+<p>“To discourse is nature, to assimilate discourse as it is given, is
+culture.” With this statement, Goethe has shown where the deficiencies
+in culture begin, and observation verifies the fact that the uncultured
+person is unable to accept what is told him as it is told him. This does
+not mean that uncultured people are unable to remember statements as
+they are made, but that they are unable to assimilate any perception in
+its integrity and to reproduce it in its natural simplicity. This is the
+alpha and the omega of every thing observable in the examination of
+simple people. Various thinkers in different fields have noted this
+fact. Mill, e.g., observes that the inability to distinguish between
+perception and inference is most obvious in the attempt of some ignorant
+person to describe a natural phenomenon. Douglas Stewart notices that
+the village apothecary will rarely describe the simplest case without
+immediately making use of a terminology in which every word is a theory.
+The simple and true presentation of the phenomenon will reveal at once
+whether the mind is able to give an accurate interpretation of nature.
+This suggests why we are frequently engaged in some much-involved
+process of description of a fact, in itself simple. It has been
+presented to us in this complicated fashion because our informants did
+not know how to speak simply. So Kant: “The testimony of common people
+may frequently be intended honestly, but it is not often reliable
+because the witnesses have not the habit of prolonged attention, and so
+they mistake what they think themselves for what they hear from others.
+Hence, even though they take oaths, they can hardly be believed.” Hume,
+again, says somewhere in the Essay, that most men are naturally inclined
+to differentiate their discourse, inasmuch as they see their object from
+one side only, do not think of the objections, and conceive its
+corroborative principles with such liveliness that they pay no attention
+to those which look another way. Now, whoever sees an object from one
+side only does not see it as it comes to him, and whoever refuses to
+think of objections, has already subjectively colored his objects and no
+longer sees them as they are.</p>
+
+<p>In this regard it is interesting to note the tendency of uneducated
+people to define things. They are not interested in the immediate<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_389" id="page_389"></a>{389}</span>
+perception, but in its abstract form. The best example of this is the
+famous barrack-room definition of honor: Honor is that thing belonging
+to the man who has it. The same fault is committed by anybody who fails
+to apprehend the <i>whole</i> as it comes, but perceives only what is most
+obvious and nearest. Mittermaier has pointed out that the light-minded,
+accidental witness sees only the nearest characteristics. Again, he
+says, “It is a well-known fact that uneducated people attend only to the
+question that was asked them last.”<a name="FNanchor_299_299" id="FNanchor_299_299"></a><a href="#Footnote_299_299" class="fnanchor">[299]</a> This fact is important. If a
+witness is unskilfully asked in one breath whether he murdered A, robbed
+B, and stole a pear from C, he will probably answer with calmness, “No,
+I have not stolen a pear,” but he pays no attention to the other two
+portions of the question. This characteristic is frequently made use of
+by the defense. The lawyers ask some important witness for the
+prosecution: “Can you say that you have seen how the accused entered the
+room, looked around, approached the closet, and then drew the watch
+toward himself?” The uneducated witness then says dryly, “No, I can not
+say that,” although he has seen everything except the concealment of the
+watch. He denies the whole thing solely because he has been able to
+attend to the last portion of the question only. It is very easy to look
+out for these characteristics, by simply not permitting a number of
+questions in one, by having questions put in the simplest and clearest
+possible form. Simple questions are thankfully received, and get better
+answers than long, or tricky ones.</p>
+
+<p>For the same reason that prevents uneducated people from ever seeing a
+thing as it comes to them, their love of justice depends on their
+eagerness to avoid becoming themselves subjects of injustice. Hence,
+weak people can never be honest, and most uneducated people understand
+by duty that which <i>others</i> are to do. Duty is presented as required of
+all men, but it is more comfortable to require it of others, so that it
+is understood as only so required. It may be due to the fact that
+education develops quiet imperturbability, and that this is conducive to
+correcter vision and more adequate objectivity in both events and
+obligations.</p>
+
+<p>There is another series of processes which are characteristic of the
+point of view of the uneducated. There is, e.g., a peculiar recurring
+mental process with regard to the careful use of life preservers, fire
+extinguishers, and other means of escape, which are to be used <i>hastily</i>
+in case of need. They are found always carefully<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_390" id="page_390"></a>{390}</span> chained up, or hidden
+in closets by the ignorant. This is possible only if the idea of
+protecting oneself against sudden need does not make itself effective as
+such, but is forced out of the mind by the desire to protect oneself
+against theft.</p>
+
+<p>Why must the uneducated carefully feel everything that is shown them, or
+that they otherwise find to be new? Children even smell such things,
+while educated people are satisfied with looking at them. The request in
+public places, “Do not touch,” has very good reason. I believe that the
+level of culture of an individual may be determined without much
+mistake, by his inclination to touch or not to touch some new object
+presented him. The reason for this desire can hardly be established but
+it is certainly the wish of the uneducated to study the object more
+fundamentally and hence, to bring into play other senses than that of
+sight. It may be that the educated man sees more because he is better
+trained in careful observation, so that the uneducated man is really
+compelled to do more than merely to look. On the other hand, it may be
+that the uneducated man here again fails to perceive the object as it
+is, and when it appears to him as object A, or is indicated as that
+object, he is inclined to disbelieve, and must convince himself by
+careful feeling that it is really an A.<a name="FNanchor_300_300" id="FNanchor_300_300"></a><a href="#Footnote_300_300" class="fnanchor">[300]</a> It may be, again, that
+“trains of association” can help to explain the matter.</p>
+
+<p>That an understanding of the character of an object is dependent on
+training and educated observation has been verified many times,
+incidentally, also by the fact that the uneducated find it difficult to
+get on with representations. Now this can not be accounted for by only
+their defective practice. The old, but instructive story of the
+peasant-woman who asked her son what he was reading, the black or the
+white, repeats itself whenever uneducated people are shown images,
+photographs, etc. For a long time I had not noticed that they see the
+background as the thing to be attended to. When, for example, you show
+an uneducated man a bust photograph, it may happen that he perceives the
+upper surroundings of shoulder and head as the lower contours of the
+background which is to indicate some fact, and if these contours happen
+to be, e.g., those of a dog, the man sees “a white dog.” This is more
+frequent than we think, and hence, we must pay little attention to
+failures to recognize people in photographs.<a name="FNanchor_301_301" id="FNanchor_301_301"></a><a href="#Footnote_301_301" class="fnanchor">[301]</a> One more story by way
+of example&mdash;that of a photographer who snapped a dozen parading young
+dragoons,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_391" id="page_391"></a>{391}</span> and had gotten the addresses, but not the street numbers of
+their parents. He sent for that reason to the twelve parents, for
+inspection, a photograph each with the notice that if some mistake had
+occurred he would rectify it. But not a parent complained of the
+photographer’s failure to have sent them the pictures of their own
+children. Each had received a soldier, and appeared to be quite
+satisfied with the correctness of his image. Hence it follows again,
+that denials of photographic identity by the uneducated are altogether
+without value.</p>
+
+<p>In another direction images have a peculiar significance for children
+and ignorant people, because they show ineradicable ideas, particularly
+with regard to size. Nobody recalls any book so vividly as his first
+picture book and its contents. We remember it even though we are
+convinced that the people who made our picture book were quite mistaken.
+Now, as it frequently happens that the sizes are incorrectly reproduced,
+as when, e.g., a horse and a reindeer occur in the same picture, and the
+latter seems bigger than the former, the reindeer appears in imagination
+always bigger. It does not matter if we learn later how big a reindeer
+is, or how many times we have seen one, we still find the animal
+“altogether too small, it must be bigger than a horse.” Educated adults
+do not make this mistake, but the uneducated do, and many false
+statements depend on ideas derived from pictures. If their derivation is
+known we may discover the source of the mistake, but if the mistake
+occurred unconsciously, then we have to combine the circumstances and
+study further to find the reason.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, the general influence of the failure of ignorant people to see
+things as they are, upon their feeling-tone is shown in two
+characteristic stories. Bulwer tells of a servant whose master beat him
+and who was instigated to seek protection in court. He refused
+indignantly inasmuch as his master was too noble a person to be subject
+to law. And Gutberlet tells the story of the director of police,
+Serafini, in Ravenna, who had heard that a notorious murderer had
+threatened to shoot him. Serafini had the assassin brought to him, gave
+him a loaded pistol and invited him to shoot. The murderer grew pale and
+Serafini boxed his ears and kicked him out.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 87. (3) <i>One-Sided Education.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Just a few words about the considerable danger in the testimony
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_392" id="page_392"></a>{392}</span>presented by persons of one-sided education. Altogether uneducated
+people warn us in their own way, but people who have a certain amount of
+training, in at least one direction, impress us to such a degree that we
+assume them to be otherwise also educated and thus get involved in
+mistakes.</p>
+
+<p>It is hard to say correctly what constitutes an educated man. We demand,
+of course, a certain amount of knowledge, but we do not know the
+magnitude of that amount of knowledge, and still less its subject
+matter. It is remarkable that our time, which has devoted itself more
+than all others to natural science, does not include knowledge of such
+science in its concept of the educated man. Some ignorance of history,
+or of the classics, or even of some modern novels, failure to visit the
+theaters and the picture exhibitions, neglect of French and English,
+etc., classifies a man at once as lacking essential “culture.” But if he
+knows these things, and at the same time exhibits in the most naïve way
+an incredible ignorance of zoölogy, botany, physics, chemistry,
+astronomy, etc., he still remains “an educated man.” The contradiction
+is inexplicable, but it exists, and because of it, nobody can definitely
+say what is meant by a one-sided education. The extent of one-sidedness
+is, however, illustrated by many examples. We mention only two.
+Linnaeus’ own drawings with remarks by Afzelius show that in spite of
+his extraordinary knowledge of botany and his wonderful memory, he did
+not know a foreign language. He was in Holland for three years, and
+failed to understand even the Dutch language, so very similar to his
+own. It is told of Sir Humphrey Davy, that during the visit to the
+Louvre, in Paris, he admired the extraordinary carving of the frames of
+the pictures, and the splendid material of which the most famous of the
+Greek sculptures were made.</p>
+
+<p>Now, how are we to meet people of this kind when they are on the witness
+stand? They offer no difficulty when they tell us that they know nothing
+about the subject in question. Suppose we have to interrogate a
+philologist on a subject which requires only that amount of knowledge of
+natural science which may be presupposed in any generally educated
+individual. If he declares honestly that he has forgotten everything he
+had learned about the matter in college, he is easily dealt with in the
+same way as “uneducated people.” If, however, he is not honest enough
+immediately to confess his ignorance, nothing else will do except to
+make him see his position by means of questions, and even then to
+proceed carefully. It would be conscienceless to try to spare this man
+while another is shown up.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_393" id="page_393"></a>{393}</span></p>
+
+<p>The same attitude must be taken toward autodidacts and dilettantes who
+always measure the value of their knowledge by the amount of effort they
+had to use in getting it, and hence, always overestimate their
+acquirements. It is to be observed that they assert no more than their
+information permits them to, and their personality is easily
+discoverable by the manner in which they present their knowledge. The
+self-taught man is in the end only the parvenu of knowledge, and just as
+the parvenu, as such, rarely conceals his character, so the autodidact
+rarely conceals his character.</p>
+
+<p>There is an additional quality of which we must beware&mdash;that is the
+tendency of experts to take pride in some different, incidental, and
+less important little thing than their own subject. Frederick the Great
+with his miserable flute-playing is an example. Such people may easily
+cause mistakes. The knowledge of their attainment in one field causes us
+involuntarily to respect their assertions. Now, if their assertions deal
+with their hobbies many a silly thing is taken at its face value, and
+that value is counterfeit.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 88. (4) <i>Inclination.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Whether a scientific characterization of inclination is possible,
+whether the limits of this concept can be determined, and whether it is
+the result of nature, culture, or both together, are questions which can
+receive no certain answer. We shall not here speak of individual forms
+of inclination, i.e., to drink, to gamble, to steal, etc., for these are
+comparatively the most difficult of our modern problems. We shall
+consider them generally and briefly. Trees and men, says the old
+proverb, fall as they are inclined. Now, if we examine the inclination
+of the countless fallen ones we meet in our calling we shall have fewer
+difficulties in qualifying and judging their crimes. As a rule, it is
+difficult to separate inclination, on the one hand, from opportunity,
+need, desire, on the other. The capacity for evil is a seduction to its
+performance, as Alfieri says somewhere, and this idea clarifies the
+status of inclination. The ability may often be the opportune cause of
+the development of an evil tendency, and frequent success may lead to
+the assumption of the presence of an inclination.</p>
+
+<p>Maudsley points out that feelings that have once been present leave
+their unconscious residua which modify the total character and even
+reconstruct the moral sense as a resultant of particular experiences.
+That an inclination or something similar thereto might<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_394" id="page_394"></a>{394}</span> develop in this
+way is certain, for we may even inherit an inclination,&mdash;but only under
+certain conditions. This fact is substantiated by the characteristics of
+vagabonds. It may, perhaps, be said that the enforcement of the laws of
+vagabondage belongs to the most interesting of the psychological
+researches of the criminal judge. Even the difference between the real
+bona fide tramp, and the poor devil who, in spite of all his effort can
+get no work, requires the consideration of a good deal of psychological
+fact. There is no need of description in such cases; the difference must
+be determined by the study of thousands of details. Just as interesting
+are the results of procedure, especially certain statistical results.
+The course of long practice will show that among real tramps there is
+hardly ever an individual whose calling requires very hard or difficult
+work. Peasants, smiths, well-diggers, mountaineers, are rarely tramps.
+The largest numbers have trades which demand no real hard work and whose
+business is not uniform. Bakers, millers, waiters are hence more
+numerous. The first have comparatively even distribution of work and
+rest; the latter sometimes have much, sometimes little to do, without
+any possible evenness of distribution. Now, we should make a mistake if
+we inferred that because the former had hard work, and an equivalent
+distribution of work and rest, they do not become tramps, while the
+latter, lacking these, do become tramps. In truth, the former have
+naturally a need and inclination for hard work and uniform living, have,
+therefore, no inclination to tramping, and have for that reason chosen
+their difficult calling. The latter, on the other hand, felt an
+inclination for lighter, more irregular work, i.e., were already
+possessed of an inclination for vagabondage, and had, hence, chosen the
+business of baking, grinding, or waiting. The real tramp, therefore, is
+not a criminal. Vagabondage is no doubt the kindergarten of criminals,
+because there are many criminals among tramps, but the true vagabond is
+one only because of his inclination for tramping. He is a degenerate.</p>
+
+<p>Possibly a similar account of other types may be rendered. If it is
+attained by means of a statistic developed on fundamental psychological
+principles, it would give us ground for a number of important
+assumptions. It would help us to make parallel inferences, inasmuch as
+it would permit us to determine the fundamental inclination of the
+person by considering his calling, his way of approaching his work, his
+environment, his choice of a wife, his preferred pleasures, etc. And
+then we should be able to connect this inclination with the deed in
+question. It is difficult to fix upon the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_395" id="page_395"></a>{395}</span> relation between inclination
+and character, and the agreement will be only general when a man’s
+character is called all those things to which he is naturally, or by
+education, inclined. But it is certain that a good or bad character
+exists only then when its maxims of desire and action express themselves
+in fact. The emphasis must be on the fact; what is factual may be
+discovered, and these discoveries may be of use.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 89. (5) <i>Other Differences.</i></h5>
+
+<p>The ancient classification of individuals according to temperaments is
+of little use. There were four of them, called humors, and a series of
+characteristics was assigned to each, but not one of them had all of its
+characteristics at once. Hence temperaments determined according to
+these four categories do not really exist, and the categorical
+distinction can have no practical value. If, however, we make use of the
+significant general meaning of temperament, the apparatus of
+circumstance which is connected with this distinction becomes
+superfluous. If you call every active person choleric, every truculent
+one sanguine, every thoughtful one phlegmatic, and every sad one
+melancholy, you simply add a technical expression to a few of the
+thousands of adjectives that describe these things. These four forms are
+not the only ones there are. Apart from countless medial and
+transitional forms, there are still large numbers that do not fit in any
+one of these categories. Moreover, temperament alters with age, health,
+experience, and other accidents, so that the differentiation is not even
+justified by the constancy of the phenomenon. Nevertheless, it is to
+some degree significant because any form of it indicates a certain
+authority, and because each one of these four categories serves to
+connect a series of phenomena and assumes this connection to be
+indubitable, although there is absolutely no necessity for it. When
+Machiavelli says that the world belongs to the phlegmatic, he certainly
+did not have in mind that complex of phenomena which are habitually
+understood as the characteristics of the phlegmatic humor. He wanted
+simply to say that extremes of conduct lead to as little in the daily
+life as in politics; that everything must be reflected upon and
+repeatedly tested before its realization is attempted; that only then
+can progress, even if slow, be made. If he had said, the world belongs
+to the cautious or reflective person, we should not have found his
+meaning to be different.</p>
+
+<p>When we seek clearly to understand the nature and culture of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_396" id="page_396"></a>{396}</span> an
+individual, an investigation into his temperament does not help us in
+the least. Let us consider then, some other characteristic on which is
+based the judgment of individuals. The proverb says that laughter
+betrays a man. If in the theater, you know the subject of laughter, the
+manner of laughter, and the point at which laughter first occurred, you
+know where the most educated and the least educated people are.
+Schopenhauer says that the intelligent man finds everything funny, the
+logical man nothing; and according to Erdmann (in Über die Dummheit),
+the distressing or laughable characteristics of an object, shows not its
+nature, but the nature of the observer. It would seem that the
+criminalist might save himself much work by observing the laughter of
+his subjects. The embarrassed, foolish snickering of the badly observing
+witness; the painful smile of the innocent prisoner, or the convicted
+penitent; the cruel laughter of the witness glad of the damage he has
+done; the evil laughter of the condemning accomplice; the happy, weak
+laughter of the innocent who has adduced evidence of his innocence, and
+the countless other forms of laughter, all these vary so much with the
+character of the laugher, and are so significant, that hardly anything
+compares with them in value. When you remember, moreover, that
+concealment during laughter is not easy, at least at the moment when the
+laughter ceases, you see how very important laughter may be in
+determining a case.</p>
+
+<p>Of equal importance with laughter are certain changes which may occur in
+people during a very short time. If we observe in the course of the
+daily life, that people, without any apparent reason, so change that we
+can hardly recognize them, the change becomes ten times more intense
+under the influence of guilt or even of imprisonment. Somebody said that
+isolation has revealed the greatest men, the greatest fools, and the
+greatest criminals. What, then, might be the influence of compulsory
+isolation, i.e., of imprisonment! We fortunately do not live in a time
+which permits imprisonment for months and years in even the simplest
+cases, but under certain circumstances even a few days’ imprisonment may
+completely alter a person. Embitterment or wildness may exhibit itself,
+just as sorrow and softness, during the stay under arrest. And hence,
+the criminalist who does not frequently see and deal with his subjects
+does not perform his duty. I do not mean, of course, that he should see
+them for the purpose of getting a confession out of an attack of
+morbidity; I mean only, that this is the one way of getting a just and
+correct notion of the case. Every criminalist of experience will<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_397" id="page_397"></a>{397}</span> grant
+that he sees the event, particularly the motives of the criminal,
+otherwise after the first examination than after the later ones, and
+that his later notions are mainly the more correct ones. If we set aside
+the unfortunate cases in which the individual held for examination is
+instructed by his prison-mates and becomes still more spoiled, I might
+permit myself the assertion that imprisonment tends to show the
+individual more correctly as he is; that the strange surroundings, the
+change from his former position, the opportunity to think over his
+situation may, if there are no opposing influences, help the criminalist
+a great deal, and this fact is confirmed in the superior results of
+later to earlier examinations.</p>
+
+<p>In addition, the bodily condition and the health of the prisoner change
+almost always. The new mode of life, the different food and
+surroundings, the lack of movement, the moral effect, work directly on
+the body, and we must confess, unfortunately, on health. There are,
+however, cases in which health has been improved by imprisonment,
+especially the health of people who have led a wild, irregular, drunken
+life, or such who have had to worry and care too much. But these are
+exceptions, and as a rule the prisoner’s physique suffers a great deal,
+but fortunately for a short time only. The influence of such effects on
+the mind is familiar. The bodily misfortune gives a wide opening for
+complete change in moral nature; health sustains the atheist in
+darkness. This fact, as mentioned by Bain, may serve to explain the
+origin of many a confession which has saved an innocent person at the
+last moment.</p>
+
+<p>Nor must we forget that time&mdash;and for the prisoner, imprisonment is time
+endowed with power&mdash;effects many an adjustment of extremes. We know that
+utter evil is as rare as perfect virtue. We have nothing to do with the
+latter, but we almost as infrequently meet the former. The longer we
+deal with “bad men,” the more inclined are we to see the very summit of
+devilment as the result of need and friendlessness, weakness,
+foolishness, flightiness, and just simple, real, human poorness of
+spirit. Now, what we find so redistributed in the course of years, we
+often find crushed together and fallen apart in a short time. Today the
+prisoner seems to us the most dreadful criminal; in a few days, we have
+calmed down, have learned to know the case from another side, the
+criminal has shown his real nature more clearly, and our whole notion of
+him has changed.</p>
+
+<p>I frequently think of the simple story of Charles XII’s sudden entry
+into Dresden. The city fathers immediately called an extraordinary<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_398" id="page_398"></a>{398}</span>
+session for the next day in order to discuss, as the Swedish king
+supposed, what they should have done the day before. Every examined
+prisoner does the same thing. When he leaves the court he is already
+thinking of what he should have said differently, and he repeats his
+reflections until the next examination. Hence, his frequently almost
+inexplicable variety of statements, and hence, also, the need of
+frequent examination.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, there is the fact Mittermaier has pointed to&mdash;the importance of
+the criminalist’s own culture and character. “If a girl testifies for
+her lover and against her brother, the question in judgment arises,
+which voice is the more powerful? The judge will not easily be able to
+divorce this standard of judgment from himself and his own view of
+life.” This is a frequent occurrence. You consider a difficult
+psychological case in all its aspects, and suddenly, without knowing how
+or why, you have found its solution: “It must have been so and not
+otherwise; he has acted so and so for this reason, etc.” A close
+examination of such a definite inference will convince you that it is
+due to the pathetic fallacy, i.e., you have so inferred because you
+would have done so, thought and desired so, under similar circumstances.
+The commission of the pathetic fallacy is the judge’s greatest danger.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 90. (6) <i>Intelligence and Stupidity.</i></h5>
+
+<p>The three enemies of the criminalist are evil nature, untruth, and
+stupidity or foolishness. The last is not the least difficult. Nobody is
+safe from its attacks; it appears as the characteristic of mankind in
+general, in their prejudices, their preconceptions, their selfishness,
+and their high-riding nature. The criminalist has to fight it in
+witnesses, in jurymen, and frequently in the obstinacy,
+dunder-headedness, and amusing self-conceit of his superiors. It hinders
+him in the heads of his colleagues and of the defendant, and it is his
+enemy not least frequently in his own head. The greatest foolishness is
+to believe that you are not yourself guilty of foolishness. The
+cleverest people do the most idiotic things. He makes the most progress
+who keeps in mind the great series of his own stupidities, and tries to
+learn from them. One can only console oneself with the belief that
+nobody else is better off, and that every stupidity is a basis for
+knowledge. The world is such that every foolishness gets somebody to
+commit it.</p>
+
+<p>Foolishness is an isolated property. It is not related to intelligence
+as cold to warmth. Cold is the absence of heat, but foolishness<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_399" id="page_399"></a>{399}</span> is not
+the absence of intelligence. Both are properties that look in the same
+direction. Hence, it is never possible to speak of intelligence or
+stupidity by itself. Whoever deals with one deals with the other, but it
+would be a mistake to conceive them as a developing series at one end of
+which is intelligence, and at the other, stupidity. The transition is
+not only frequent, but there are many remarkable cases in which one
+passes into the other, gets mixed up with it, and covers it. Hence, a
+thing may often be at one and the same time intelligent and stupid,
+intelligent in one direction and stupid in another; and it is not
+incorrect, therefore, to speak of clever stupidities, and of clever
+deeds that are heartily foolish.</p>
+
+<p>The importance of stupidity is due not only to the fact that it may lead
+to important consequences, but also to the difficulty of discovering it
+in certain cases. It is before all things correct, that foolish people
+often seem to be very wise, and that as a rule, much intercourse alone
+is able to reveal the complete profundity of a man’s foolishness. But in
+our work we can have little intercourse with the people whom we are to
+know, and there are, indeed, persons whom we take to be foolish at the
+first encounter, and who really are so when we know them better. And
+even when we have learned the kind and degree of a man’s foolishness, we
+have not learned his way of expressing it, and that discovery requires
+much wisdom. Moreover, an incredible amount of effort, persistence, and
+slyness is often made use of for the purpose of committing an immense
+act of foolishness. Every one of us knows of a number of criminal cases
+that remained unexplained for a long time simply because some one
+related event could be explained by a stupidity so great as to be
+unbelievable. Yet the knowledge that such stupidity actually exists
+could explain many a similar matter, simply and easily. This is
+especially true with regard to the much discussed “one great stupidity,”
+which the criminal commits in almost every crime. Assume that such a
+stupidity is impossible, and the explanation of the case is also
+impossible. We must never forget that it is exactly the wise who refuse
+to think of the possibility of foolishness. Just as everything is clean
+to the cleanly, and everything is philosophic to the philosopher,
+everything is wise to the wise. Hence, he finds it unintelligible that a
+thing may be explained from the point of view of pure unreason. His duty
+therefore, is, to learn as much and as accurately as possible about the
+nature of foolishness.</p>
+
+<p>There are, perhaps, few books on earth that contain so many clever
+things as Erdmann’s little text “Concerning Foolishness<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_400" id="page_400"></a>{400}</span>” (Über die
+Dummheit). Erdmann starts with small experiences. For example, he once
+came early to the Hamburg Railway Station and found in the waiting-room
+one family with many children, from whose conversation he learned that
+they were going to visit a grandfather in Kyritz. The station filled up,
+to the increasing fear of the smallest member of the family, a boy. When
+the station grew quite full he suddenly broke out: “Look here, what do
+all these people want of grandfather in Kyritz.” The child supposed that
+because he himself was travelling to Kyritz all other people in the same
+place could have had no different intention. This narrowness of the
+point of view, the generalization of one’s own petty standpoint into a
+rule of conduct for mankind is, according to Erdmann, the essence of
+foolishness. How far one may go in this process without appearing
+foolish may be seen from another example. When, in the sixties, a
+stranger in Paris spoke admiringly of the old trees on a certain avenue,
+it was the habit of the Parisians to answer, “Then you also do not agree
+with Haussmann?” because everybody knew about the attempt by the
+Parisian prefect, Baron Haussmann, to beautify Paris by killing trees.
+If, however, the trees in the churchyard of the little village are
+praised, and the native peasant replies, “So you know also that our
+Smith wants to have the trees chopped down,” the remark is foolish,
+because the peasant had no right to assume that the world knows of the
+intentions of the village mayor.</p>
+
+<p>Now, if you decrease the number of view-points, and narrow the horizon,
+you reach a point where the circumference of ideas is identical with
+their center, and this point is the kernel of stupidity, the idiot.
+Stupidity is the state of mind in which a man judges everything by
+himself. This again may be best illustrated by a figure of speech. If
+you go about a room and observe its contents you soon notice how the
+objects change place and appearance with the change in your point of
+view. If you look <i>only</i> through the key-hole, you do not, however,
+recognize that fact; everything seems equal. The idiot is he whose
+egoistic eye is the only key-hole through which he looks into the
+decorated parlor we call the world. Hence, the defective individual,
+l’homme borné, who has real narrowness of mind, possesses only a small
+number of ideas and points of view, and hence, his outlook is restricted
+and narrow. The narrower his outlook, the more foolish the man.</p>
+
+<p>Foolishness and egoism are privileges of the child; we are all born
+foolish and raw. Only light sharpens our wits, but as the process is
+very slow, there is not one of us who has not some blunt edges.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_401" id="page_401"></a>{401}</span> To
+distinguish objects is to be clever; to confound them, to be foolish.
+What one first notices in defective minds is the unconditional
+universality of their remarks. The generalizations of stupid people are
+then unjustly called exaggerations. Where they say “always,” the clever
+will say, “two or three times.” The foolish man interrupts his fellow
+because he presses to the front as the only justified speaker. What is
+most characteristic of him is his attempt to set his ego in the
+foreground, “<i>I</i> do this always,” “This is one of my traits,” “<i>I</i> do
+this thing in quite another way.” Indeed, every high grade of
+foolishness exhibits a certain amount of force which the fool in
+question uses to bring his personality forward. If he speaks about
+reaching the North Pole, he says, “Of course, I have never been at the
+North Pole, but I have been at Annotook,” and when the subject of
+conversation is some great invention, he assures us that he has not
+invented anything, but that he is able to make brooms, and incidentally,
+he finds fault with the invention, and the more foolish he is, the more
+fault he finds.</p>
+
+<p>These characteristics must, of course, be kept apart, and foolishness
+must not be confused with related qualities, although its extent or
+boundaries must not be fixed too absolutely. Kraus, e.g., distinguishes
+between the idiot, the fool, the weak-minded, the idea-less, etc., and
+assigns to each distinguishing character-marks. But as the notions for
+which these expressions stand vary very much, this classification is
+hardly justified. A fool in one country is different from a fool in
+another, an idiot in the South from an idiot in the North, and even when
+various individuals have to be classified at the same place and at the
+same time, each appears to be somewhat unique. If, for example, we take
+Kraus’s definitions of the idiot as one who is least concerned with
+causal relations, who understands them least, and who can not even grasp
+the concept of causation, we may say the same thing about the
+weak-minded, the untalented, etc. Kant says, rightly, that inasmuch as
+fools are commonly puffed-up and deserve to be degraded, the word
+foolishness must be applied to a “swell-headed” simpleton, and not to a
+good and honest simpleton. But Kant is not here distinguishing between
+foolishness and simplicity, but between pretentiousness and kindly
+honesty, thus indicating the former as the necessary attribute of
+foolishness. Another mode of distinction is to observe that
+forgetfulness is a quality of the simpleton who is defective in
+attention, but not of the fool who has only a narrow outlook. Whether or
+not this is true, is hard to say. There is still another differentiation
+in which foolishness<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_402" id="page_402"></a>{402}</span> and simplicity are distinguished by the lack of
+extent, or the intensity of attention.</p>
+
+<p>It is just as difficult to determine what we mean by naïveté, and how to
+distinguish that from foolishness. That the concepts nowhere coincide is
+indubitable. The contact appears only where one is uncertain whether a
+thing is foolish or naïve. The real fool is never naïve, for foolishness
+has a certain laziness of thought which is never a characteristic of
+naïveté. The great difficulty of getting at the difference is most
+evident in the cases of real and artificial naïveté. Many people make
+use of the latter with great success. To do so requires the appearance
+of sufficient foolishness to make the real simpleton believe that he is
+the cleverer of the pair. If the simpleton believes, the mummer has won
+the game, but he has not simulated real foolishness; he has simulated
+naïveté. Kant defines naïveté as conduct which pays no attention to the
+possible judgment of other people. This is not the modern notion of
+naïveté, for nowadays we call naïveté an uncritical attitude toward
+one’s environment, and its importance in our profession is, perhaps, due
+to the fact that&mdash;pardon me&mdash;many of us practise it. Naturalness,
+openness of heart, lovable simplicity, openness of mind, and whatever
+else the efflorescence of naïveté may be called, are fascinating
+qualities in children and girls, but they do not become the criminal
+judge. It is naïve honestly to accept the most obvious denials of
+defendant and witness; it is naïve not to know how the examinees
+correspond with each other; it is naïve to permit a criminal to talk
+thieves’ patter with another in your own hearing; it is still more naïve
+to speak cordially with a criminal in this patter; it is naïve not to
+know the simplest expressions of this patter; and it is most naïve to
+believe that the criminal can discover his duty by means of the
+statutes, their exposition, and explanation; it is naïve to attempt to
+impose on a criminal by a bald exhibition of slyness; and it is most
+naïve of all not to recognize the naïveté of the criminal. A criminalist
+who studies himself will recognize how frequently he was naïve through
+ignorance of the importance of apparently insignificant circumstances.
+“The greatest wisdom,” says La Rochefoucauld, “consists in knowing the
+values of things.” But it would be a mistake to attempt always to bring
+out directly that alone which appears to be hidden behind the naïve
+moment. The will does not think, but it must turn the attention of the
+mind to knowledge. It can not will any particular result of knowledge.
+It can only will that the mind shall investigate without prejudice.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_403" id="page_403"></a>{403}</span></p>
+
+<p>The proper use of this good will will consist in trying to find out the
+quantity of intelligence and stupidity which may be taken for granted in
+the interlocutor. I have once shown that it is a great mistake to
+suppose the criminal more foolish than oneself, but that one is not
+compelled to suppose him to be more intelligent than oneself. Until one
+can gain more definite knowledge of his nature, it is best to believe
+him to be just as intelligent as oneself. This will involve a mistake,
+but rarely a damaging one. Otherwise, one may hit on the correct
+solution by accident in some cases, and make great mistakes in all
+others.</p>
+
+<p>Intelligence in the sense of wisdom is the important quality in our
+interlocutor. The witness helps us with it, and the defendant deceives
+and eludes us by its means. According to Kant, a man is wise when he has
+the power of practical judgment. According to Dörner, certain
+individuals have especial intuitive talents, others have capacity for
+empirical investigations, and still others for speculative synthesis. In
+the former, their capacity serves to render the object clearly, to
+observe it sharply, to analyze it into its elements. In the latter,
+there is the capacity for the synthesis, for the discovery of
+far-reaching relationships. Again, we hear that the wise head invents,
+the acute mind discovers, the deep mind seeks out. The first combines,
+the second analyzes, the third founds. Wit blends, sharpness clarifies,
+deepness illuminates. Wit persuades, sharpness instructs, deepness
+convinces.</p>
+
+<p>In individual cases, a man is completely and suddenly understood,
+perhaps, in terms of the following proverb: “There are two kinds of
+silence, the silence of the fool and the silence of the wise man&mdash;both
+are clever.” Kant says, somewhere, that the witty person is free and
+pert, the judicious person reflective, and unwilling to draw
+conclusions. In a certain direction we may be helped, also, by
+particular evidences. So, when, e.g., Hering<a name="FNanchor_302_302" id="FNanchor_302_302"></a><a href="#Footnote_302_302" class="fnanchor">[302]</a> says, “One-sidedness
+is the mother of virtuosity. The work of the spider is wonderful, but
+the spider can do nothing else. Man makes a bow and arrow when he can
+get no prey in his net, the spider goes hungry.” This distinguishes
+mechanical cleverness from conscious wisdom completely. Of the same
+illuminating, character are such salse dicta as: “The fool never does
+what he says, the wise man never says what he does.” “You can fool one
+man, but you can not fool all men.” “Stupidity is natural, wisdom is a
+product of art.” “To depend on accident is foolishness, to use accident
+is wisdom.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_404" id="page_404"></a>{404}</span>” “There are stupidities which can be committed only by the
+wise.” “Wisdom is as different from foolishness, as man from monkey.”
+“Fools speak what wise men think.” “Understanding is deficient, but
+stupidity never is.” etc. These and countless other help us considerably
+in individual cases, but give us no general characterization of the
+function of wisdom. We may, therefore, get some sort of pragmatic
+insight into the wisdom or unwisdom, of an action in the assertion: “To
+be wise is to be able to sacrifice an immediate petty advantage to a
+later and greater advantage.” This proposition seems not to have
+sufficient scope, but on closer examination seems to fit all cases. The
+wise man lives according to law, and sacrifices the petty advantage of
+immediate sensual pleasure for the greater advantage of sustained
+health. He is prudent and sacrifices the immediate petty delights to the
+advantage of a carefree age. He is cautious in his speculation, and
+sacrifices momentary doubtful, and hence, petty successes, to the
+greater later success of certain earning. He is silent, and sacrifices
+the petty advantage of appearing for the moment well-informed about all
+possible matters, to the greater advantage of not getting into trouble
+on account of this. He commits no punishable deeds, and sacrifices
+advantages that might be gained for the moment to the later greater
+advantage of not being punished. So the analysis might be continued, and
+in each case we should find that there was no wisdom which could not be
+explained in this way.</p>
+
+<p>The use of our explanatory proposition is possible in all cases which
+require determining the real or apparent participation of some
+individual in a crime. If the degree of wisdom a man may be credited
+with can be determined by means of this analysis, it is not difficult
+afterwards to test by its use the probability of his having a share in
+the crime in question.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, cases are again and again observed in which very foolish
+people&mdash;idiots and lunatics&mdash;either because of anxiety, terror, wounds
+in the head, or shortly before death, become intelligent for a brief
+period. It is conceivable that the improvement of mental activity in
+these cases arises when the defect has depended on the pathological
+dominance of an inhibitory center, the abnormally intensified activity
+of which has as its result an inhibition of other important centers
+(acute, curable dementia, paranoia). A light, transitory, actual
+increase of mental activity, might, possibly, be explained by the
+familiar fact that cerebral anemia, in its early stages, is exciting
+rather than dulling. Theoretically this might<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_405" id="page_405"></a>{405}</span> be connected, perhaps,
+with the molecular cell-changes which are involved in the disintegration
+of the brain. The difference between the effects of these two causes
+will hardly be great, but testimony dependent on this altered character
+of mental activity will have little reliability. Hallucinations, false
+memories, melancholic accusations of self, particularly, may also be
+explained in terms of such excitement. We criminalists have frequently
+to deal with people in above-named conditions, and when we receive
+intelligent answers from them we must never set them aside, but must
+carefully make note of them and estimate them in the light of expert
+advice.</p>
+
+<p>To this class belongs the interesting phenomenon that we very frequently
+meet fools who never do anything foolish. It is not true that these are
+simply misjudged and only appear to be foolish. They are really foolish
+but they are helped by certain conditions in every instance of their
+conduct. To begin with, they are not so foolish as to deceive
+themselves; they are, therefore, in possession of a certain notion of
+their own weakness, and do not attempt things which are too much for
+them. Then, they must have a certain degree of luck in their
+undertakings. The proverb says that conceit is the force behind the
+fool, and if these fools apply their conceit to appropriate situations,
+they succeed. Then again, they sometimes fail to see dangers, and are
+therefore free from swindles which are dangerous, even to the cleverest
+persons. “The fool stumbles across the abyss into which the wise man
+regularly tumbles,” says the proverb again. And if routine may properly
+be called the surrogate of talent, we must suppose that custom and
+practice may carry the biggest fool so far as to help him in many cases
+to success.</p>
+
+<p>According to Esser, the fool thinks in terms of the following
+proposition: “Things that are alike in a few points are identical, and
+things that are unlike in a few points are altogether diverse.” If this
+is true, the fool can fail only when he is drawing inferences of this
+kind; if, however, none of the important events in his life involve such
+inferences, he has no opportunity to exhibit his essential foolishness.
+The same thing is true of his interests. No fool has a real eagerness
+for knowledge. He has, instead, curiosity, and this can never be
+distinguished with certainty from knowledge. Now, if the fool is lucky,
+he seems to be moving forward, shows himself possessed of interests, and
+nobody proves that this possession is only idiotic curiosity. The fool
+must protect himself against one thing&mdash;action. Foolishness in action is
+rawness&mdash;true rawness is always foolish and can not be mistaken.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_406" id="page_406"></a>{406}</span></p>
+
+<p>Here, again, we draw the extraordinary conclusion that we criminalists,
+as in all other cases, must not take man to be what he seems most of the
+time, but what he shows himself as, in exceptional cases. The worst man
+may have done something absolutely good, the greatest liar may today
+tell the truth, and the simpleton may today act wisely. We are not
+concerned with man as such; what is important for us is his immediate
+self-expression. The rest of his nature is a matter of judgment.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic 2. ISOLATED INFLUENCES.</h4>
+
+<h5>Section 91. (a) Habit.</h5>
+
+<p>Habit may be of considerable importance in criminal law. We have, first
+of all, to know how far we ourselves are influenced in our thinking and
+acting by habit; then it is important, in judging the testimony of
+witnesses, to know whether and how far the witness behaved according to
+his habits. For by means of this knowledge we may be able to see the
+likelihood of many a thing that might have otherwise seemed improbable.
+Finally, we may be able properly to estimate many an excuse offered by a
+defendant through considering his habits, especially when we are dealing
+with events that are supposed to have occurred under stupefaction,
+absolute intoxication, distraction, etc.<a name="FNanchor_303_303" id="FNanchor_303_303"></a><a href="#Footnote_303_303" class="fnanchor">[303]</a> Hume, indeed, has assigned
+to habit the maximum of significance; his whole system depends upon the
+use of habit as a principle of explanation. He shows that the essence of
+all our inferences with regard to facts relates to the principle of
+causation, and the foundation of all our beliefs in causation is
+experience, while the foundation of inference from experience is habit.
+As a matter of fact, it is strange how often an obscure event becomes
+suddenly clear by an inquiry into the possibility of habit as its cause.
+Even everything we call fashion, custom, presumption, is at bottom
+nothing more than habit, or explicable by habit. All new fashions in
+clothes, in usages, etc., are disliked until one becomes habituated to
+them, and custom and morality must attach themselves to the iron law of
+habit. What would my grandmother have said of a woman whom she might
+have seen happily bicycling through the streets! How every German
+citizen crosses himself when he sees French sea-bathing! And if we had
+no idea of a ball among the four hundred what should we say if we heard
+that in the evening men meet half-naked women, embrace them vigorously,
+pull them<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_407" id="page_407"></a>{407}</span> round, and bob and stamp through the hall with disgusting
+noise until they must stop, pouring perspiration, gasping for breath?
+But because we are accustomed to it, we are satisfied with it. To see
+what influence habit has on our views of this subject, just close your
+ears tightly at some ball and watch the dancers. As soon as you stop
+hearing the music you think you are in a lunatic asylum. Indeed, you do
+not need to select such a really foolish case. Helmholtz suggests
+looking at a man walking in the distance, through the large end of a
+telescope. What extraordinary humping and rocking of the body the
+passer-by exhibits! There are any number of such examples, and if we
+inquire concerning the permissibility of certain events we simply carry
+the question of habit into the field of conduct. Hunting harmless
+animals, vivisection, the execution of back-breaking tricks, ballets,
+and numerous other things, will seem to us shocking, inconceivable,
+disgusting, if we are not habituated to them. What here requires thought
+is the fact that we criminalists often judge situations we do not know.
+When the peasant, the unskilled laborer, or the craftsman, does
+anything, we know only superficially the deed’s nature and real status.
+We have, as a rule, no knowledge of the perpetrator’s habits, and when
+we regard some one of his actions as most reprehensible,&mdash;quarrel or
+insult or maltreatment of his wife or children&mdash;he responds to us with a
+most astounded expression. He is not habituated to anything else, and we
+do not teach him a better way by punishing him.</p>
+
+<p>Questions of this sort, however, deal with the generality of human
+nature, and do not directly concern us. But directly we are required to
+make a correct judgment of testimony concerning habit, they will help us
+to more just interpretations and will reduce the number of crass
+contradictions. This is so because many an assertion will seem probable
+when the witness shows that the thing described was habitual. No
+definite boundary can be drawn between skill and habit, and we may,
+perhaps, say rightly, that skill is possible only where habit exists,
+and habit is present where a certain amount of skill has been attained.
+Skill, generally, is the capacity of speedy habituation. But a
+distinction must be drawn. Habit makes actions easy. Habituation makes
+them necessary. This is most obvious in cases of bodily skill,&mdash;riding,
+swimming, skating, cycling,&mdash;everything in which habit and skill can not
+be separated, and with regard to which we can not see why we and other
+untrained people can not immediately do the same thing. And when we can
+do it, we do it without thinking, as if half asleep. Such action is not<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_408" id="page_408"></a>{408}</span>
+skilled, but habitual, i.e., a part of it is determined by the body
+itself without the especial guidance of the mind.</p>
+
+<p>We find the hunter’s power to see so many animals, tracks, etc.,
+inconceivable. When, e.g., we have once properly mastered the principle
+of a quite complicated crystal, we cannot understand why we had not done
+so before. We feel in the same way with regard to an unclear drawing, a
+new road, some bodily activity, etc. Anybody who has not acquired the
+habit might have to take all day to learn the business of dressing and
+undressing himself. And how difficult it is just to walk, a thing we do
+unconsciously, is confirmed by the mechanic who wants to construct a
+walking figure.</p>
+
+<p>That all people are equally subject to habit, is not asserted. The thing
+is a matter of disposition, in the sense of the recurrence of past ideas
+or tendencies. We must assume that an inclination evinced by idea A
+makes possible ideas a´, a´´, a´´´. Habits may develop according to
+these dispositions, but the knowledge of the conditions of this
+development we do not yet possess. Nevertheless, we tend to assume that
+the famous historian X and the famous Countess Y will not get the habit
+of drinking or opium-smoking&mdash;but in this case our assumption is deduced
+from their circumstances, and not from their personality. Hence, it is
+difficult to say with certainty that a person is incapable of acquiring
+this or that habit. So that it is of importance, when the question
+arises, to discover the existence of implied habits whenever these are
+asserted in the face of apparently contradictory conditions. There is a
+certain presumption for the correctness of the implication, when, e.g.,
+the practised physician asserts that he counted the pulse for a minute
+without a watch, or when the merchant accurately estimates the weight of
+goods within a few grams, etc. But it will be just as well to test the
+assertion, since, without this test, the possibility of error is still
+great.</p>
+
+<p>Somebody asserts, e.g., that he had been distracted and had paid no
+attention to what two persons close to him had said. Suddenly he began
+to take notice and found himself able to recapitulate all their remarks.
+Or again, a musician, who is almost altogether deaf, says that he is so
+accustomed to music that in spite of his deafness he is able to hear the
+smallest discord in the orchestra. Yet again, we hear of insignificant,
+hardly controllable habits that become accidentally significant in a
+criminal case. Thus the crime of arson was observed by the firebrand’s
+neighbor, who could have seen the action through the window, only if he
+had leaned far out<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_409" id="page_409"></a>{409}</span> of it. When he was asked what he wanted to see in
+the cold winter night, he replied, that he had the habit daily of
+spitting out of the window just before going to bed. Another, who was
+surprised in his sleep by an entering thief, had heavily wounded the
+latter with a great brush, “because he happened to have had it in his
+hand.” The happening was due to his habit of being unable to fall asleep
+without a brush in his hand. If such habits are demonstrable facts they
+serve to explain otherwise unexplainable events.</p>
+
+<p>They are, however, the more difficult to establish, because they occur
+mainly in isolated people&mdash;old bachelors and old maids&mdash;so that their
+confirmation by others is rare. On the other hand, every one of us knows
+habits of his own or of his friends which would not be believed when
+cited, and which would be very difficult to prove when the need arose.
+The influence of habit on indifferent matters can be shown by numerous
+examples. There is Kant’s citation, that if anybody happened to send his
+doctor nine ducats the latter would have to believe that the messenger
+had stolen the tenth. If you give a bride most beautiful linen, but only
+eleven pieces, she will weep. Give her thirteen pieces, and she will
+certainly throw one of them away. If you keep these deep-rooted habits
+in mind, you may possibly say that they must have had a definite,
+determinative, and alternative influence on body and mind. For example,
+from time immemorial mankind has taken medications at definite
+intervals, e.g., every hour, every two hours, etc.; hence, a powder
+ordered every seventy-seven minutes will cause us complete surprise. But
+by what authority does the body require exactly these quantities of time
+or weight? Or again, our lectures, private or public, so and so much
+time? Of course it would be inconvenient if professors lectured only 52
+minutes, yet how much difficulty must not the mind have met in becoming
+habituated to exactly 60 minutes of instruction! This habituation has
+been going on for a long time, and now children, like nations, regard
+the new in the light of the old, so that the old, especially when it is
+fixed by language, becomes the mind’s instrument for the control of the
+new. Indeed, we often stick linguistically to old things, although they
+have been long superannuated.</p>
+
+<p>There is the characteristic state of mind which might be called the
+refraction of an idea by the presence of another idea. An example is the
+habit of saying, “Unprepared, as I have&mdash;” before beginning a speech.
+The speaker means to say that he has not prepared himself, but, as he
+really has prepared himself, both expressions come out<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_410" id="page_410"></a>{410}</span> together. This
+habitual concurrence of the real thought is of importance, and offers,
+frequently, the opportunity of correcting what is said by what is
+thought. This process is similar to that in which a gesture contradicts
+a statement. We often hear: “I had to take it because it was right
+there.” This assertion indicates theft through need, and at the same
+time, theft through opportunity. Or again, we hear: “We had not agreed,
+before”&mdash;this assertion denies agreement and can indicate merely,
+because of the added “before,” that the agreement was not of already
+<i>long</i> standing. Still again, we hear, “When we fell to the floor, I
+defended myself, and struck down at him.” Here what is asserted is
+self-defense, and what is admitted is that the enemy was underneath the
+speaker. Such refractions of thought occur frequently and are very
+important, particularly in witnesses who exaggerate or do not tell the
+whole truth. They are, however, rarely noticed because they require
+accurate observation of each word and that requires time, and our time
+has no time.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 92. (b) Heredity.<a name="FNanchor_304_304" id="FNanchor_304_304"></a><a href="#Footnote_304_304" class="fnanchor">[304]</a></h5>
+
+<p>However important the question of heredity may be to lawyers
+psychologically, its application to legal needs is impossible. It would
+require, on the one hand, the study of all the literature concerning it,
+together with the particular teachings of Darwin and his disciples, and
+of Lombroso and his. The criminal-psychological study of it has not yet
+been established. The unfounded, adventurous, and arbitrary assertions
+of the Lombrosists have been contradicted, especially through the
+efforts of German investigators. But others, like Debierre in Lille,
+Sernoff in Moscow, Taine, Drill, Marchand have also had occasion to
+controvert the Italian positivists. At the same time, the problem of
+heredity is not dead, and will not die. This is being shown particularly
+in the retort of Marchand concerning the examinations he made with M. E.
+Koslow, in the asylum for juvenile offenders founded by the St.
+Petersburg Anthropological Society. Between Buckle, who absolutely
+denies heredity, and the latest of the modern doctrines, there are a
+number of intermediate views, one of which may possibly be true. There
+is an enormous literature which every criminalist should study.<a name="FNanchor_305_305" id="FNanchor_305_305"></a><a href="#Footnote_305_305" class="fnanchor">[305]</a></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_411" id="page_411"></a>{411}</span></p>
+
+<p>Nevertheless, this literature can tell us nothing about the legitimacy
+of the premise of heredity. Every educated man still believes Darwin’s
+doctrines, and the new theories that seek to emancipate themselves from
+it do so only by pushing them out of the big front door, and insinuating
+them through the little back door. But according to Bois-Reymond
+Darwinism is only the principle of the hereditary maintenance of the
+child’s variation from its parents. Everybody knows of real inherited
+characters, and many examples of it are cited. According to Ribot,
+suicide is hereditary; according to Despine, kleptomania; according to
+Lucas, vigorous sexuality; according to Darwin, hand-writing, etc. Our
+personal acquaintances show the inheritance of features, figure, habits,
+intellectual properties, particularly cleverness, such as, sense of
+space and time, capacity for orientation, interests, diseases, etc. Even
+ideas have their ancestors like men, and we learn from the study of
+animals how instincts, capacities, even acquired ones, are progressively
+inherited. And yet we refuse to believe in the congenital criminal! But
+the contradiction is only apparent.</p>
+
+<p>A study of the works of Darwin, Weismann, DeVries, etc., shows us
+indubitably that no authority asserts the inheritance of great
+alterations appearing for the first time in an individual. And as to the
+inheritance of acquired characteristics, some authorities assert this to
+be impossible.</p>
+
+<p>Until Darwin the old law of species demanded that definite traits of a
+species should not change through however long a period. The Darwinian
+principle indicates the inheritance of minute variations, intensified by
+sexual selection, and, in the course of time, developed into great
+variations. Now nobody will deny that the real criminal is different
+from the majority of other people. That this difference is great and
+essential, is inferred from the circumstance that a habit, a single
+characteristic, an unhappy inclination, etc., does not constitute a
+criminal. If a man is a thief it will not be asserted that he is
+otherwise like decent people, varying only in the accidental inclination
+to theft. We know that, besides the inclination to theft, we may assign
+him a dislike for honest work, lack of moral power, indifference to the
+laws of honor when caught, the lack of real religion,&mdash;in short, the
+inclination to theft must be combined with a large number of very
+characteristic qualities in order to make a thief of a man. There must,
+in a word, be a complete and profound change in his whole nature. Such
+great changes in the individual are never directly inherited; only
+particular properties can be<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_412" id="page_412"></a>{412}</span> inherited, but these do not constitute a
+criminal. Hence, the son of a criminal need not in his turn be a
+criminal.</p>
+
+<p>This does not imply that in the course of generations characters might
+not compound themselves until a criminal type is developed, but this is
+as rare as the development of new species among the animals. Races are
+frequently selected; species develop rarely.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 93. (c) Prepossession.</h5>
+
+<p>Prepossession, prejudice, and anticipatory opinion are, perhaps, the
+most dangerous foes of the criminalist. It is believed that the danger
+from them is not great, since, in most cases, prepossession controls
+only one individual, and a criminal case is dealt with by several, but
+this proves nothing. When the elegant teacher of horseback riding has
+performed his subtlest tricks, he gracefully removes his hat and bows to
+the public, and only at that moment does the public observe that it has
+been seeing something remarkable and applauds heartily, not because it
+has understood the difficulty of the performance, but because the rider
+has bowed. This happens to us however good our will. One man has a case
+in hand; he develops it, and if, at the proper time, he says “Voilà,”
+the others say, “Oh, yes,” and “Amen.” He may have been led by a
+prepossession, but its presence is now no longer to be perceived. Thus,
+though our assumptions may be most excellently meant, we still must
+grant that a conviction on false grounds, even when unconsciously
+arrived at, so suffuses a mind that the event in itself can no longer be
+honestly observed. To have no prejudices indicates a healthy, vigorous
+mind in no sense. That is indicated by the power to set aside prejudices
+as soon as their invalidity is demonstrated. Now this demonstration is
+difficult, for when a thing is recognized as a prejudice, it is one no
+longer. I have elsewhere,<a name="FNanchor_306_306" id="FNanchor_306_306"></a><a href="#Footnote_306_306" class="fnanchor">[306]</a> under the heading “anticipatory opinion,”
+indicated the danger to which the examining justice is subject thereby,
+and have sought to show how even a false idea of location may lead to a
+prepossession in favor of a certain view; how vigorous the influence of
+the first witness is, inasmuch as we easily permit ourselves to be taken
+in by the earliest information, and later on lack time to convince
+ourselves that the matter may not be as our earliest advice paints it.
+Hence, false information necessarily conceals a danger, and it always is
+a matter of effort to see that the crime is a fictitious one, or that
+something which has been called accident may conceal a crime. The
+average man knows<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_413" id="page_413"></a>{413}</span> this well, and after a brawl, after contradictory
+testimony, etc., both parties hurry to be beforehand in laying the
+information. Whoever lays the information first has the advantage. His
+story effects a prepossession in favor of his view, and it requires
+effort to accustom oneself to the opposite view. And later it is
+difficult to reverse the rôles of witness and defendant.</p>
+
+<p>But we have to deal with prepossession in others besides ourself, in
+witnesses, accused, experts, jury, colleagues, subordinates, etc. The
+more we know, the newer new things seem. Where, however, the
+apperceptive mass is hard and compact, the inner reconstruction ceases,
+and therewith the capacity for new experiences, and hence, we get those
+judges who can learn nothing and forget nothing. Indefiniteness in the
+apperceptive masses results in the even movement of apperception. Minds
+with confused ideational complexes hit little upon the particular
+characteristic of presented fact, and find everywhere only what they
+have in mind.</p>
+
+<p>The one-sidedness of apperception frequently contains an error in
+conception. In most cases, the effective influence is egoism, which
+inclines men to presuppose their own experiences, views, and principles
+in others, and to build according to them a system of prepossessions and
+prejudices to apply to the new case. Especially dangerous are the
+<i>similar</i> experiences, for these tend to lead to the firm conviction
+that the present case can in no sense be different from former ones. If
+anybody has been at work on such earlier, similar cases, he tends to
+behave now as then. His behavior at that time sets the standard for the
+present, and whatever differs from it he calls false, even though the
+similarity between the two cases is only external and apparent.</p>
+
+<p>It is characteristic of egoism that it causes people to permit
+themselves to be bribed by being met half-way. The inclination and favor
+of most men is won by nothing so easily and completely as by real or
+apparent devotion and interest. If this is done at all cleverly, few can
+resist it, and the prepossession in their favor is complete. How many
+are free of prejudice against ugly, deformed, red-haired, stuttering,
+individuals, and who has no prejudice in favor of handsome, lovable
+people? Even the most just must make an effort so to meet his neighbor
+as to be without prejudice for or against him, because of his natural
+endowment.</p>
+
+<p>Behavior and little pleasantnesses are almost as important. Suppose that
+a criminalist has worked hard all morning. It is long past the time at
+which he had, for one reason or another, hoped to<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_414" id="page_414"></a>{414}</span> get home, and just as
+he is putting his hat on his head, along comes a man who wants to lay
+information concerning some ancient apparent perjury. The man had let it
+go for years, here he is with it again at just this inconvenient moment.
+He has come a long distance&mdash;he can not be sent away. His case,
+moreover, seems improbable and the man expresses himself with
+difficulty. Finally, when the protocol is made, it appears that he has
+not been properly understood, and moreover, that he has added many
+irrelevant things&mdash;in short, he strains one’s patience to the limit.
+Now, I should like to know the criminalist who would not acquire a
+vigorous prejudice against this complainant? It would be so natural that
+nobody would blame one for such a prejudice. At the same time it is
+proper to require that it shall be only transitive, and that later, when
+the feeling has calmed, everything shall be handled with scrupulous
+conscientiousness so as to repair whatever in the first instance might
+have been harmed.</p>
+
+<p>It is neither necessary nor possible to discuss all the particular forms
+of prepossession. There is the unconditional necessity of merely making
+a thoroughly careful search for their presence if any indication
+whatever, even the remotest, shows its likelihood. Of the extremest
+limit of possible prejudice, names may serve as examples. It sounds
+funny to say that a man may be prejudiced for or against an individual
+by the sound of his name, but it is true. Who will deny that he has been
+inclined to favor people because they bore a beloved name, and who has
+not heard remarks like, “The very name of that fellow makes me sick.” I
+remember clearly two cases. In one, Patriz Sevenpounder and Emmerenzia
+Hinterkofler were accused of swindling, and my first notion was that
+such honorable names could not possibly belong to people guilty of
+swindling. The opposite case was one in which a deposition concerning
+some attack upon him was signed by Arthur Filgré. I thought at first
+that the whole complaint was as windy as the complainant’s name. Again,
+I know that one man did not get the job of private secretary he was
+looking for because his name, as written, was Kilian Krautl. “How can a
+man be decent, who has such a foolish name?” said his would-be employer.
+Then again, a certain Augustinian monk, who was a favorite in a large
+city, owed his popularity partly to his rhythmical cognomen Pater Peter
+Pumm.</p>
+
+<p>Our poets know right well the importance for us short-sighted
+earth-worms of so indifferent a thing as a name, and the best among them
+are very cautious about the selection and composition of names. Net the
+smallest part of their effects lies in the successful tone of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_415" id="page_415"></a>{415}</span> names
+they use. And it was not unjust to say that Bismark could not possibly
+have attained his position if he had been called Maier.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 94. (d) Imitation and the Crowd.</h5>
+
+<p>The character of the instinct of imitation and its influence on the
+crowd has long been studied in animals, children, and even men, and has
+been recognized as a fundamental trait of intellect and the prime
+condition of all education. Later on its influence on crowds was
+observed, and Napoleon said, “Les crimes collectifs n’engagent
+personnes.” Weber spoke of moral contagion, and it has long been known
+that suicide is contagious. Baer, in his book on “Die Gefängnisse,” has
+assigned the prison-suicides “imitative tendency.” There is the
+remarkable fact that suicides often hang themselves on trees which have
+already been used for that purpose. And in jails it is frequently
+observed that after a long interval a series of suicides suddenly
+appear.</p>
+
+<p>The repetition of crimes, once one has been committed in a particular
+way, is also frequent; among them, the crime of child-murder. If a girl
+has stifled her child, ten others do so; if a girl has sat down upon it,
+or has choked it by pressing it close to her breast, etc., there are
+others to do likewise. Tarde believes that crime is altogether to be
+explained by the laws of imitation. It is still unknown where imitation
+and the principles of statistics come into contact, and it is with
+regard to this contact we find our greatest difficulties. When several
+persons commit murder in the same way we call it imitation, but when
+definite forms of disease or wounds have for years not been noticed in
+hospitals and then suddenly appear in numbers, we call it duplication.
+Hospital physicians are familiar with this phenomenon and count on the
+appearance of a second case of any disease if only a first occurs.
+Frequently such diseases come from the same region and involve the same
+extraordinary abnormalities, so that nothing can be said about
+imitation. Now, how can imitation and duplication be distinguished in
+individual cases? Where are their limits? Where do they touch, where
+cover each other? Where do the groups form?</p>
+
+<p>There is as yet no solution for the crimino-political interpretation of
+the problems of imitation, and for its power to excuse conduct as being
+conduct’s major basis. But the problems have considerable symptomatic
+and diagnostic value. At the very least, we shall be able to find the
+sole possibility of the explanation of the nature or manner of a crime
+in the origin of the stimulus to some particular<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_416" id="page_416"></a>{416}</span> imitation. Among
+youthful persons, women especially, there will be some anticipatory
+image which serves as a plan, and this will explain at least the
+otherwise inexplicable and superfluous concomitants like unnecessary
+cruelty and destruction. The knowledge of this anticipatory image may
+give even a clew to the criminal, for it may indicate the nature of the
+person who could act it out and realize it. Also in our field there
+exists “duplication of cases.”</p>
+
+<p>The condition of action in great crowds offers remarkable
+characteristics. The most instructive are the great misfortunes in which
+almost every unhappy individual conducts himself, not only irrationally
+but, objectively taken, criminally towards his fellows, inasmuch as he
+sacrifices them to his own safety without being in real need. To this
+class belong the crossing of bridges by retreating troops in which the
+cavalry stupidly ride down their own comrades in order to get through.
+Again, there are the well-known accidents, e.g., at the betrothal of
+Louis XVI., in which 1200 people were killed in the crush, the fires at
+the betrothal of Napoleon, in the Viennese Ringtheater in 1881, and the
+fire on the picnic-boat “General Slocum,” in 1904. In each of these
+cases horrible scenes occurred, because of the senseless conduct of
+terrified people. It is said simply and rightly, by the Styrian poet,
+“One individual is a man, a few are people, many are cattle.” In his
+book on imitation, Tarde says, “In crowds, the calmest people do the
+silliest things,” and in 1892, at the congress for criminal
+anthropology, “The crowd is never frontal and rarely occipital; it is
+mainly spinal. It always contains something childish, puerile, quite
+feminine.” He, Garnier, and Dekterew, showed at the same congress how
+frequently the mob is excited to all possible excesses by lunatics and
+drunkards. Lombroso, Laschi, etc., tell of many cruelties which
+rebelling crowds committed without rhyme or reason.<a name="FNanchor_307_307" id="FNanchor_307_307"></a><a href="#Footnote_307_307" class="fnanchor">[307]</a> The “soul of
+the crowd,” just recently invented, is hardly different from
+Schopenhauer’s Macroanthropos, and it is our important task to determine
+how much the anthropos and how much the macroanthropos is to be blamed
+for any crime.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 95. (e) Passion and Affection.</h5>
+
+<p>Passion and affection occasion in our own minds and in those of
+witnesses considerable confusion of observations, influence, or even<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_417" id="page_417"></a>{417}</span>
+effect the guilt of the defendant and serve to explain many things at
+the moment of examination. The essence of passion or affection, its
+definition and influence, its physical and physiological explanation, is
+discussed in any psychology. The use of this discussion for the lawyer’s
+purposes has been little spoken of, and possibly can not have more said
+about it. Things that are done with passion show themselves as such, and
+require no particular examination in that respect. What we have to do is
+to discover what might have happened without passion, and especially to
+protect ourselves from being in person overcome by passion or affection.
+It is indubitable that the most “temperamental” of the criminalists are
+the best, for phlegm and melancholy do not carry one through an
+examination. The lively and the passionate judges are the most
+effective, but they also have the defects of their virtues. No one will
+deny that it is difficult to maintain a calm demeanor with an impudent
+denying criminal, or in the face of some very cruel, unhuman, or
+terrible crime. But it is essential to surmount this difficulty.
+Everyone of us must recall shameful memories of having, perhaps justly,
+given way to passion. Of course the very temperamental Count Gideon
+Raday freed his county in a short time from numberless robberies by
+immediately hanging the mayor of the town in which the robberies
+occurred, but nowadays so much temperament is not permissible. It is
+well to recall the painful position of an excellent presiding justice at
+a murder trial, who attacked the defendant passionately, and had to
+submit to the latter’s really justified reprimand.</p>
+
+<p>The only means of avoiding such difficulties is not to begin
+quarrelling. Just as soon as a single word is uttered which is in any
+way improper in polite society, everything is lost. The word is the
+rolling snow-ball, and how much momentum it may gather depends upon the
+nature and the training of the judge. Lonely insults are not frequent,
+and a single improper word breaks down the boundaries. The criminal
+knows this and often makes use of his knowledge. A man who has “cussed
+out” the other fellow is no longer dangerous, he becomes calm and kind,
+and feels instinctively the need of repairing the damage he has
+committed by “going too far.” He then exhibits an exaggerated geniality
+and care upon which many criminals count, and hence intentionally
+provoke the examiner until he does things and says things he is sorry
+for.</p>
+
+<p>The emotions of witnesses, especially of those who have been harmed by
+the crime and of those who have seen something terrible<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_418" id="page_418"></a>{418}</span> and disgusting,
+and who still tend to get excited over it, constitute a great many
+difficulties. Against the unconditional reliability of such persons’
+testimony experienced judges take measures of defence. The participant
+of this class is never calm; passion, anxiety, anger, personal interest,
+etc., either anticipate or exaggerate trouble. Of course, we are not
+speaking of cases in which a wound is considerably exaggerated, or even
+invented for the sake of money, but of those in which people under
+emotional stress often say unthinkable things about their enemy, just to
+get him punished. This, however, is comparatively rare where the damage
+has been very great. A man who has lost his eye, the father of a raped
+daughter, the victim impoverished by arson, often behaves very calmly
+toward the criminal. He makes no especial accusation, does not
+exaggerate, and does not insult. A person, however, whose orchard has
+suffered damage, may behave much worse.</p>
+
+<p>It frequently happens that the sufferer and the defendant really hate
+each other. Not necessarily because one had broken the other’s head, or
+robbed him; frequently the ostensible reason for coming to trial is the
+result of a long and far-reaching hatred. That this emotion can go to
+any length is well known and it is therefore necessary, though not
+always easy, to seek it out. Hatred is possible among peers, or people
+who are peers in one connection or another. As a rule, the king will not
+be able to hate his musketeer, but he will when they are both
+passionately in love with the same girl, for they are peers in love.
+Similarly, the high-bred lady will hardly hate her maid, but if she
+observes the maid’s magnificent hair and believes that it is better than
+her own, she will hate the maid, for there is no difference in rank with
+regard to the love of hair.</p>
+
+<p>Real hate has only three sources: pain, jealousy, or love. Either the
+object of hatred has caused his enemy a great irremediable pain or
+jealousy, or hatred is, was, or will become love. Some authorities
+believe that there is another source of hatred which becomes apparent
+when we have done harm to somebody. That this might show itself as
+hatred or passion similar to hatred is possible, but in most cases it
+will probably be a feeling of deep shame and regret, which has certain
+particular characteristics in common with hatred. If it is really
+hatred, it is hatred through pain. Hatred is difficult to hide, and even
+criminalists of small experience will overlook it only in exceptional
+cases. The discovery of envy, which is less forgiving than hatred, less
+explosive, much profounder and much more extensive, is incomparably more
+difficult. Real hatred,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_419" id="page_419"></a>{419}</span> like exquisite passion, requires temperament,
+and under circumstances may evoke sympathy, but friendless envy, any
+scamp is capable of. Possibly no other passion endangers and destroys so
+many lives, chokes off so much service, makes impossible so many
+significant things, and finally, judges so falsely an endless number of
+persons. When you remember, moreover, its exaggerated extent, and the
+poor-spirited, easy trick of hiding it, its dangerous nature can not be
+overestimated. We lawyers are even more imperilled by it because we do
+not easily allow people to be praised before us; we require witnesses,
+etc., to speak incriminatingly most of the time, and we cannot easily
+see whether they are envious.</p>
+
+<p>However freely one man may speak against another, we may assume that he
+is telling the truth, or at worst, that he has a false notion of the
+matter, or was badly instructed, but we rarely think that his envy
+dictates it all. This idea occurs to us when he is to praise the other
+man. Then he exhibits a cautious, tentative, narrowing attitude, so that
+even a person of little experience infers envy. And here the
+much-discussed fact manifests itself, that real envy requires a certain
+equality. By way of example the petty shop-keeper is cited as envying
+his more fortunate competitor, but not the great merchant whose ships go
+round the world. The feeling of the private toward his general, the
+peasant toward his landlord, is not really envy, it is desire to be like
+him. It is anger that the other is better off, but inasmuch as the
+emotion lacks that effective capacity which we require for envy, we can
+not call it envy. It becomes envy when something by way of intrigue or
+evil communication, etc., has been undertaken against the envied person.
+Thus the mere <i>feeling</i> is confessed at once. People say, “How I envy
+him this trip, his magnificent health, his gorgeous automobile, etc.”
+They do not say: “I have enviously spoken evil of him, or done this or
+that against him.” Yet it is in the latter form that the actual passion
+of envy expresses itself.</p>
+
+<p>The capacity of the envious for false representation makes them
+particularly dangerous in the court-room. If we want to discover
+anything about an individual we naturally inquire of his colleagues, his
+relatives, etc. But it is just among these that envy rules. If you
+inquire of people without influence you learn nothing from them, since
+they do not understand the matter; if you ask professional people they
+speak enviously or selfishly, and that constitutes our dilemma. Our
+attention may be called to envy by the speaker’s hesitation, his
+reserved manner of answering. This is the same in<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_420" id="page_420"></a>{420}</span> all classes, and is
+valuable because it may warn us against very bad misunderstandings.</p>
+
+<p>As a rule, nothing can be said about passion as a source of crime. We
+may assume that passion passes through three periods. The first is
+characterized by the general or partial recurrence of older images; in
+the second, the new idea employs its dominating place negatively or
+positively with respect to the older one,&mdash;the passion culminates; and
+in the third, the forcibly-disturbed emotional equilibrium is restored.
+Most emotions are accompanied by well-known physical phenomena. Some
+have been thoroughly studied, e.g., the juristically important emotion
+of fear. In fear, breathing is irregular, inspiration is frequently
+broken, a series of short breaths is followed by one or more deep ones,
+inspiration is short, expiration is prolonged, one or the other is
+sobbing. All these phenomena are only a single consequence of the
+increase of respiratory changes. The irregularity of the latter causes
+coughing, then a disturbance of speech, which is induced by the
+irregular action of the muscles of the jaw, and in part by the
+acceleration of the breathing. In the stages of echoing fear, yawning
+occurs, and the distention of the pupils may be noticed as the emotion
+develops. This is what we often see when a denying defendant finds
+himself confounded by evidence, etc.</p>
+
+<p>The most remarkable and in no way explicable fact is, that these
+phenomena do not occur in innocent people. One might think that the fear
+of being innocently convicted would cause an expression of dread, anger,
+etc., but it does not cause an expression of real terror. I have no
+other than empirical evidence of the fact, so that many more
+observations are required before any fresh inferences are deduced
+therefrom anent a man’s guilt or innocence. We must never forget that
+under such circumstances passions and emotions often change into their
+opposites according to rule. Parsimony becomes extravagance, and
+conversely; love becomes hate. Many a man becomes altogether too
+foolhardy because of despairing fear. So it may happen that terror may
+become petrifying coldness, and then not one of the typical marks of
+terror appears. But it betrays itself just as certainly by its icy
+indifference as by its own proper traits. Just as passions transmute
+into their opposites, so they carry a significant company of subordinate
+characteristics. Thus, dread or fear is accompanied by disorderly
+impertinence, sensuality by cruelty. The latter connection is of great
+importance to us, for it frequently eliminates difficulties in the
+explanation of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_421" id="page_421"></a>{421}</span> crime. That cruelty and lasciviousness have the same
+root has long been known. The very ecstasy of adventurous and passionate
+love is frequently connected with a certain cruel tendency. Women are,
+as a rule, more ferocious than men.<a name="FNanchor_308_308" id="FNanchor_308_308"></a><a href="#Footnote_308_308" class="fnanchor">[308]</a> It is asserted that a woman in
+love is constantly desiring her man. If this be true, the foregoing
+statement is sufficiently explained. In one sense the connection between
+sexual passion and cruelty is bound up with that unsatiability which is
+characteristic of several passions. It is best to be observed in
+passions for property, especially such as involve the sense-perception
+of money. It is quite correct to speak of the overwhelming, devilish
+power of gold, of the sensual desire to roll in gold, of the
+irresistible ring of coins, etc. And it is also correctly held that
+money has the same definite influence on man as blood on preying
+animals. We all know innumerable examples of quite decent people who
+were led to serious crimes by the mere sight of a large sum of money.
+Knowledge of this tendency may, on occasion, lead to clues, and even to
+the personality of the criminal.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 96. (f) Honor.</h5>
+
+<p>Kant says that a man’s honor consists in what people think about him, a
+woman’s in what people say about her. Another authority believes that
+honor and a sense of honor are an extension of the sense of self in and
+through others. The essence of my honor is my belief that I exist for
+others, that my conduct will be judged and valued not only by myself but
+by others. Falstaff calls honor the painted picture at a funeral. Our
+authors are both right and wrong, for honor is simply the position a man
+takes with regard to the world, so that even gamins may be said to have
+honor. Unwillingness to see this may cause us criminalists considerable
+trouble. One of the worst men I ever met in my profession, a person
+guilty of the nastiest crimes, so nasty that he had driven his honorable
+parents to suicide, had at the expiration of his last sentence of many
+years in prison, said literally, “I offer no legal objection against the
+sentence. I beg, however, for three days’ suspension so that I may write
+a series of farewell letters which I could not write as a prisoner.”
+Even in the heart of this man there was still the light of what other
+people call honor. We often find similar things which may be used to our
+advantage in examination. Not, of course, for the purpose of getting
+confession, accusation of accomplices, etc. This might,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_422" id="page_422"></a>{422}</span> indeed, serve
+the interests of the case, but it is easy to identify a pliable attitude
+with an honorable inclination, and the former must certainly not be
+exploited, even with the best intention. Moreover, among persons of low
+degree, an inclination toward decency will hardly last long and will
+briefly give way to those inclinations which are habitual to bad men.
+Then they are sorry for what they had permitted to occur in their better
+moment and curse those who had made use of that moment.</p>
+
+<p>It is often funny to see the points at which the criminal seeks his
+“honor.” What is proper for a thief, may be held improper for a robber.
+The burglar hates to be identified with the pick-pocket. Many a one
+finds his honor in this wise deeply attacked, particularly when it is
+shown him that he is betraying an accomplice, or that he has swindled
+his comrades in the division of booty, etc. I remember one thief who was
+inconsolable because the papers mentioned that he had foolishly
+overlooked a large sum of money in a burglary. This would indicate that
+criminals have professional ambitions and seek professional fame.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 97. (g) Superstition.</h5>
+
+<p>For a discussion of Superstition see my Handbuch für
+Untersuchungsrichter, etc. (English translation by J. Adam, New York,
+1907), and H. Gross’s Archiv I, 306; III, 88; IV, 340; V, 290, 207; IX,
+253; IV, 168; VI, 312; VII, 162; XII, 334.</p>
+
+<h4>Topic 3. MISTAKES.</h4>
+
+<h5>(a) Mistakes of the Senses.</h5>
+
+<h5>Section 98. (1) General Considerations.</h5>
+
+<p>As sensation is the basis of knowledge, the sensory process must be the
+basis of the correctness of legal procedure. The information we get from
+our senses and on which we construct our conclusion, may be said, all in
+all, to be reliable, so that we are not justified in approaching things
+we assume to depend on sense-perception with exaggerated caution.
+Nevertheless, this perception is not always completely correct, and the
+knowledge of its mistakes must help us and even cause us to wonder that
+we make no greater ones.</p>
+
+<p>Psychological examination of sense-perception has been going on since
+Heraclitus. Most of the mistakes discovered have been used for various
+purposes, from sport to science. They are surprising and attract and
+sustain public attention; they have, hence, become<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_423" id="page_423"></a>{423}</span> familiar, but their
+influence upon other phenomena and their consequences in the daily life
+have rarely been studied. For two reasons. First, because such illusions
+seem to be small and their far-reaching effects are rarely thought of,
+as when, e.g., a line drawn on paper seems longer or more inclined than
+it really is. Secondly, it is supposed that the influence of sensory
+illusions can not easily make a difference in practical life. If the
+illusion is observed it is thereby rendered harmless and can have no
+effect. If it is not observed and later on leads to serious
+consequences, their cause can not possibly be sought out, because it can
+not be recognized as such, and because there have been so many
+intermediate steps that a correct retroduction is impossible.</p>
+
+<p>This demonstrates the rarity of a practical consideration of
+sense-perception, but does not justify that rarity. Of course, there are
+great difficulties in applying results of limited experiments to
+extensive conditions. They arise from the assumption that the conditions
+will be similar to those which the scientist studies, and that a
+situation which exhibits certain phenomena under narrow experimental
+conditions will show them, also, in the large. But this is not the case,
+and it is for this reason that the results of modern psychology have
+remained practically unproductive. This, of course, is not a reproach to
+the discipline of experimental psychology, or an assault upon the value
+of its researches. Its narrow limitations were necessary if anything
+definite was to be discovered. But once this has been discovered the
+conditions may be extended and something practical may be attained to,
+particularly in the matter of illusion of sense. And this possibility
+disposes of the second reason for not paying attention to these
+illusions.</p>
+
+<p>Witnesses do not of course know that they have suffered from illusions
+of sense; we rarely hear them complain of it, anyway. And it is for this
+very reason that the criminalist must seek it out. The requirement
+involves great difficulties for we get very little help from the immense
+literature on the subject. There are two roads to its fulfilment. In the
+first place, we must understand the phenomenon as it occurs in our work,
+and by tracing it back determine whether and which illusion of the sense
+may have caused an abnormal or otherwise unclear fact. The other road is
+the theoretical one, which must be called, in this respect, the
+preparatory road. It requires our mastery of all that is known of
+sense-illusion and particularly of such examples of its hidden nature as
+exist. Much of the material of this kind is, however, irrelevant to our
+purpose, particularly<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_424" id="page_424"></a>{424}</span> all that deals with disease and lies in the field
+of medicine. Of course, where the nature of the disease is uncertain or
+its very presence is unknown, it is as well for us to consider the case
+as for the physician. But above all, it is our duty to consult the
+physician.</p>
+
+<p>Apart from what belongs to the physician there is the material which
+concerns other professions than ours. That must be set aside, though
+increasing knowledge may require us to make use even of that. It is
+indubitable that we make many observations in which we get the absolute
+impression that matters of sensory illusion which do not seem to concern
+us lie behind some witnesses’ observations, etc., although we can not
+accurately indicate what they are. The only thing to do when this occurs
+is either to demonstrate the possibility of their presence or to wait
+for some later opportunity to test the witness for them.</p>
+
+<p>Classification will ease our task a great deal. The apparently most
+important divisions are those of “normal” and “abnormal.” But as the
+boundary between them is indefinite, it would be well to consider that
+there is a third class which can not fall under either heading. This is
+a class where especially a group of somatic conditions either favor or
+cause illusory sense-perceptions, e.g., a rather over-loaded stomach, a
+rush of blood to the head, a wakeful night, physical or mental
+over-exertion. These conditions are not abnormal or diseased, but as
+they are not habitual, they are not normal either. If the overloaded
+stomach has turned into a mild indigestion, the increase of blood into
+congestion, etc., then we are very near disease, but the boundary
+between that and the other condition can not be determined.</p>
+
+<p>Another question is the limit at which illusions of sense begin, how,
+indeed, they can be distinguished from correct perceptions. The
+possibility of doing so depends upon the typical construction of the
+sense-organs in man. By oneself it would be impossible to determine
+which sensation is intrinsically correct and which is an illusion. There
+are a great many illusions of sense which all men suffer from under
+similar conditions, so that the judgment of the majority can not be
+normative. Nor can the control of one sense by another serve to
+distinguish illusory from correct perception. In many cases it is quite
+possible to test the sense of sight by touch, or the sense of hearing by
+sight, but that is not always so. The simplest thing is to say that a
+sense-impression is correct and implies reality when it remains
+identical under various circumstances, in various conditions, when
+connected with other senses, and observed<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_425" id="page_425"></a>{425}</span> by different men, with
+different instruments. It is illusory when it is not so constant. But
+here again the limit of the application of the term “illusion” is
+difficult to indicate. That distant things seem to be smaller than they
+are; that railway tracks and two sides of a street seem to run together
+are intrinsically real illusions of sense, but they are not so
+called&mdash;they are called the laws of perspective, so that it would seem
+that we must add to the notion of sense-perception that of rarity, or
+extraordinary appearance.</p>
+
+<p>I have found still another distinction which I consider important. It
+consists in the difference between real illusions and those false
+conceptions in which the mistake originates as false inference. In the
+former the sense organ has been really registering wrongly, as when, for
+example, the pupil of the eye is pressed laterally and everything is
+seen double. But when I see a landscape through a piece of red glass,
+and believe the landscape to be really red, the mistake is one of
+inference only, since I have not included the effect of the glass in my
+concluding conception. So again, when in a rain I believe mountains to
+be nearer than they really are, or when I believe the stick in the water
+to be really bent, my sensations are perfectly correct, but my
+inferences are wrong. In the last instance, even a photograph will show
+the stick in water as bent.</p>
+
+<p>This difference in the nature of illusion is particularly evident in
+those phenomena of expectation that people tend to miscall “illusions of
+sense.” If, in church, anybody hears a dull, weak tone, he will believe
+that the organ is beginning to sound, because it is appropriate to
+assume that. In the presence of a train of steam cars which shows every
+sign of being ready to start you may easily get the illusion that it is
+already going. Now, how is the sense to have been mistaken in such
+cases? The ear has really heard a noise, the eye has really seen a
+train, and both have registered correctly, but it is not their function
+to qualify the impression they register, and if the imagination then
+effects a false inference, that can not be called an illusion of
+sensation.</p>
+
+<p>The incorrectness of such classification becomes still more obvious when
+some numerical, arithmetical demonstration can be given of the presence
+of faulty inference. For example, if I see through the window a man very
+far away clearing a lot with an ax, I naturally see the ax fall before I
+hear the noise of the blow. Now, it may happen that the distance may be
+just great enough to make me hear the sound of the second blow at the
+moment in which I see the delivery of the third blow. Thus I perceive at
+the same moment,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_426" id="page_426"></a>{426}</span> in spite of the great distance, both the phenomena of
+light and of sound, just as if I were directly on the spot. Perhaps I
+will wonder at first about these physical anomalies, and then, if I have
+made my simple mistake in inference, I shall tell somebody about the
+remarkable “sensory illusion” I had today, although no one had ever
+supposed me capable of being deceived in this way. Schopenhauer calls
+attention to the familiar fact that on waking after a short nap all
+localizations are apparently perverted, and the mind does not know what
+is in front, what behind, what to the right, and what to the left. To
+call also this sensory illusion, would again be wrong, since the mind is
+not fully awake, and sufficiently orientated to know clearly its
+condition. The matter is different when we do not properly estimate an
+uncustomary sense-impression. A light touch in an unaccustomed part of
+the body is felt as a heavy weight. After the loss of a tooth we feel an
+enormous cave in the mouth, and what a nonsensical idea we have of what
+is happening when the dentist is drilling a hole in a tooth! In all
+these cases the senses have received a new impression which they have
+not yet succeeded in judging properly, and hence, make a false
+announcement of the object. It is to this fact that all fundamentally
+incorrect judgments of new impressions must be attributed,&mdash;for example,
+when we pass from darkness into bright light and find it very sharp;
+when we find a cellar warm in winter that we believe to be ice-cold in
+summer; when we suppose ourselves to be high up in the air the first
+time we are on horseback, etc. Now, the actual presence of sensory
+illusions is especially important to us because we must make certain
+tests to determine whether testimony depends on them or not, and it is
+of great moment to know whether the illusions depend on the individual’s
+mind or on his senses. We may trust a man’s intellect and not his
+senses, and conversely, from the very beginning.</p>
+
+<p>It would be superfluous to talk of the importance of sensory illusion in
+the determination of a sentence. The correctness of the judgment depends
+on the correctness of the transmitted observations, and to understand
+the nature of sense-illusion and its frequency is to know its
+significance for punishment. There are many mistakes of judges based
+entirely on ignorance of this matter. Once a man who claimed, in spite
+of absolute darkness, to have recognized an opponent who punched him in
+the eye, was altogether believed, simply because it was assumed that the
+punch was so vigorous that the wounded man saw sparks by the light of
+which he could recognize<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_427" id="page_427"></a>{427}</span> the other. And yet already Aristotle knew that
+such sparks are only subjective. But that such things were believed is a
+notable warning.<a name="FNanchor_309_309" id="FNanchor_309_309"></a><a href="#Footnote_309_309" class="fnanchor">[309]</a></p>
+
+<h5>Section 99. (2) <i>Optical Illusions.</i></h5>
+
+<p>It will be best to begin the study of optical illusions with the
+consideration of those conditions which cause extraordinary, lunatic
+images. They are important because the illusion is recognizable with
+respect to the possibility of varied interpretations by any observer,
+and because anybody may experiment for himself with a bit of paper on
+the nature of false optical apprehension. If we should demonstrate no
+more than that the simplest conditions often involve coarse mistakes,
+much will have been accomplished for the law, since the “irrefutable
+evidence” of our senses would then show itself to need corroboration.
+Nothing is proved with “I have seen it myself,” for a mistake in one
+point shows the equal possibility of mistakes in all other points.</p>
+
+<p>Generally, it may be said that the position of lines is not without
+influence on the estimation of their size.<a name="FNanchor_310_310" id="FNanchor_310_310"></a><a href="#Footnote_310_310" class="fnanchor">[310]</a> Perpendicular dimensions
+are taken to be somewhat greater than they are. Of two crossed lines,
+the vertical one seems longer, although it is really equal to the
+horizontal one. An oblong, lying on its somewhat longer side, is taken
+to be a square; if we set it on the shorter side it seems to be still
+more oblong than it really is. If we divide a square into equal angles
+we take the nearer horizontal ones to be larger, so that we often take
+an angle of thirty degrees to be forty-five. Habit has much influence
+here. It will hardly be believed, and certainly is not consciously
+known, that in the letter S the upper curve has a definitely smaller
+radius than the lower one; but the inverted S shows this at once. To
+such types other false estimations belong: inclinations, roofs, etc.,
+appear so steep in the distance that it is said to be impossible to move
+on them without especial help. But whoever does move on them finds the
+inclination not at all so great. Hence, it is necessary, whenever the
+ascension of some inclined plane is declared impossible, to inquire
+whether the author of the declaration was himself there, or whether he
+had judged the thing at a distance.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_428" id="page_428"></a>{428}</span></p>
+
+<p>Slight crooks are underestimated. Exner<a name="FNanchor_311_311" id="FNanchor_311_311"></a><a href="#Footnote_311_311" class="fnanchor">[311]</a> rightly calls attention to
+the fact that in going round the rotunda of the Viennese Prater, he
+always reached the exit much sooner than he expected. This is due to the
+presence of slight deviations and on them are based the numerous false
+estimates of distance and the curious fact that people, on being lost at
+night in the woods, go round in a significantly small circle. It is
+frequently observed that persons, who for one reason or another, i.e.,
+robbery, maltreatment, a burglarious assault, etc., had fled into the
+woods to escape, found themselves at daybreak, in spite of their flight,
+very near the place of the crime, so that their honesty in fleeing seems
+hardly believable. Nevertheless it may be perfectly trustworthy, even
+though in the daytime the fugitive might be altogether at home in the
+woods. He has simply underestimated the deviations he has made, and
+hence believes that he has moved at most in a very flat arc. Supposing
+himself to be going forward and leaving the wood, he has really been
+making a sharp arc, and always in the same direction, so that his path
+has really been circular.</p>
+
+<p>Some corroboration for this illusion is supplied by the fact that the
+left eye sees objects on the left too small, while the right eye
+underestimates the right side of objects. This underestimation varies
+from 0.3 to 0.7%. These are magnitudes which may naturally be of
+importance, and which in the dark most affect deviations that are
+closely regarded on the inner side of the eye&mdash;i.e., deviations to the
+left of the left eye or the right of the right eye.</p>
+
+<p>Such confusions become most troublesome when other estimations are added
+to them. So long as the informant knows that he has only been
+estimating, the danger is not too great. But as a rule the informant
+does not regard his conception as an estimate, but as certain knowledge.
+He does not say, “I estimate,” he says, “It is so.” Aubert tells how the
+astronomer Förster had a number of educated men, physicians, etc.,
+estimate the diameter of the moon. The estimation varied from 1´´ to 8´´
+and more. The proper diameter is 1.5´´ at a distance of 12´´.</p>
+
+<p>It is well known that an unfurnished room seems much smaller than a
+furnished one, and a lawn covered with snow, smaller than a
+thickly-grown one. We are regularly surprised when we find an enormous
+new structure on an apparently small lot, or when a lot is parcelled out
+into smaller building lots. When they are planked off we marvel at the
+number of planks which can be laid on the surface.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_429" id="page_429"></a>{429}</span> The illusions are
+still greater when we look upward. We are less accustomed to estimation
+of verticals than of horizontals. An object on the gutter of a roof
+seems much smaller than at a similar distance on the ground. This can be
+easily observed if any figure which has been on the roof of a house for
+years is once brought down. Even if it is horizontally twice as far as
+the height of the house, the figure still seems larger than before. That
+this illusion is due to defective practice is shown by the fact that
+children make mistakes which adults find inconceivable. Helmholtz tells
+how, as child, he asked his mother to get him the little dolls from the
+gallery of a very high tower. I remember myself that at five years I
+proposed to my comrades to hold my ankles so that I could reach for a
+ball from the second story of a house down to the court-yard. I had
+estimated the height as one-twelfth of its actual magnitude. Certain
+standards of under and overestimations are given us when there is near
+the object to be judged an object the size of which we know. The reason
+for the fact that trees and buildings get such ideal sizes on so-called
+heroic landscape is the artistically reduced scale. I know that few
+pictures have made such a devilish impression on me as an enormous
+landscape, something in the style of Claude Lorraine, covering half a
+wall. In its foreground there is to be seen a clerk riding a horse in a
+glen. Rider and horse are a few inches high, and because of this the
+already enormous landscape becomes frightfully big. I saw the picture as
+a student, and even now I can describe all its details. Without the
+diminutive clerk it would have had no particular effect.</p>
+
+<p>In this connection we must not forget that the relations of magnitude of
+things about us are, because of perspective, so uncertain that we no
+longer pay any attention to them. “I find it difficult,” says
+Lipps,<a name="FNanchor_312_312" id="FNanchor_312_312"></a><a href="#Footnote_312_312" class="fnanchor">[312]</a> “to believe that the oven which stands in the corner of the
+room does not look larger than my hand when I hold it a foot away from
+my eyes, or that the moon is not larger than the head of a pin, which I
+look at a little more closely.... We must not forget how we are in the
+custom of comparing. I compare hand and oven, and I think of the hand in
+terms of the oven.” That is because we know how large the hand and the
+oven are, but very often we compare things the sizes of which we do not
+know, or which we can not so easily get at, and then there are many
+extraordinary illusions.</p>
+
+<p>In connection with the cited incident of the estimation of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_430" id="page_430"></a>{430}</span> moon’s
+diameter, there is the illusion of Thomas Reid who saw that the moon
+seemed as large as a plate when looked at with the unhampered eye, but
+as large as a dollar when looked at through a tube. This mistake
+establishes the important fact that the size of the orifice influences
+considerably the estimation of the size of objects seen through it.
+Observations through key-holes are not rarely of importance in criminal
+cases. The underestimations of sizes are astonishing.</p>
+
+<div class="figcenter"><a name="fig1" id="fig1"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_430-a.jpg" alt="Fig. 1." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption">Fig. 1.</span>
+</div>
+
+<div class="figcenter"><a name="fig2" id="fig2"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_430-b.jpg" alt="Fig. 2." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption">Fig. 2.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>Aërial perspective has a great influence on the determination of these
+phenomena, particularly such as occur in the open and at great
+distances. The influence is to be recognized through the various
+appearances of distant objects, the various colors of distant mountains,
+the size of the moon on the horizon, and the difficulties which aërial
+perspective offers painters. Many a picture owes<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_431" id="page_431"></a>{431}</span> its success or failure
+to the use of aërial perspective. If its influence is significant in the
+small space of a painting, the illusions in nature can easily become of
+enormous significance, particularly when extremes are brought together
+in the observations of objects in unknown regions. The condition of the
+air, sometimes foggy and not pellucid, at another time particularly
+clear, makes an enormous difference, and statements whether about
+distance, size, colors, etc., are completely unreliable. A witness who
+has several times observed an unknown region in murky weather and has
+made his important observation under very clear skies, is not to be
+trusted.</p>
+
+<p>An explanation of many sensory illusions may be found in the so-called
+illusory lines. They have been much studied, but Zöllner<a name="FNanchor_313_313" id="FNanchor_313_313"></a><a href="#Footnote_313_313" class="fnanchor">[313]</a> has been
+the first to show their character. Thus, really quite parallel lines are
+made to appear unparallel by the juxtaposition of inclined or crossing
+lines. In figures 1 and 2 both the horizontal lines are actually
+parallel, as may be determined in various ways.</p>
+
+<p>The same lines looked at directly or backwards seem, in <a href="#fig1">Fig. 1</a>, convex,
+in <a href="#fig2">Fig. 2</a> concave.</p>
+
+<div class="figcenter"><a name="fig3" id="fig3"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_431.jpg" alt="Fig. 3." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption">Fig. 3.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>Still more significant is the illusion in <a href="#fig3">Fig. 3</a>, in which the convexity
+is very clear. The length, etc., of the lines makes no difference in the
+illusion.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_432" id="page_432"></a>{432}</span></p>
+
+<p>On the other hand, in <a href="#fig4">Fig. 4</a> the diagonals must be definitely thicker
+than the parallel horizontal lines, if those are to appear not parallel.
+That the inclination is what destroys the appearance of parallels is
+shown by the simple case given in <a href="#fig5">Fig. 5</a>, where the distance from A to B
+is as great as from B to C, and yet where the first seems definitely
+smaller than the second.</p>
+
+<p>Still more deceptive is <a href="#fig6">Fig. 6</a>, where the first line with the angle
+inclined inwards seems incomparably smaller than the second with the
+angle inclined outwards.</p>
+
+<div class="figleft"><a name="fig4" id="fig4"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_432-a.jpg" alt="Fig. 4." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption">Fig. 4.</span>
+</div>
+
+<div class="figleft"><a name="fig5" id="fig5"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_432-b.jpg" alt="Fig. 5." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption">Fig. 5.</span>
+</div>
+
+<div class="figright"><a name="fig6" id="fig6"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_432-c.jpg" alt="Fig. 6." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption">Fig. 6.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>All who have described this remarkable subject have attempted to explain
+it. The possession of such an explanation might put us in a position to
+account for a large number of practical difficulties. But certain as the
+facts are, we are still far from their <i>why</i> and <i>how</i>. We may believe
+that the phenomenon shown in Figs. 1 and 2 appears when the boundaries
+of a field come straight up to a street with parallel sides, with the
+result that at the point of meeting the street seems to be bent in.
+Probably we have observed this frequently without being aware of it, and
+have laid no particular stress on it, first of all, because it was
+really unimportant, and secondly, because we thought that the street was
+really not straight at that point.</p>
+
+<p>In a like manner we may have seen the effect of angles as shown in Figs.
+5 and 6 on streets where houses or house-fronts were built cornerwise.
+Then the line between the corners seemed longer or shorter, and as we
+had no reason for seeking an accurate judgment<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_433" id="page_433"></a>{433}</span> we paid no attention to
+its status. We simply should have made a false estimate of length if we
+had been required to judge it. It is also likely that we may have
+supposed an actual or suppository line on the side of the gables of a
+house enclosed by angles of the gables, to be short,&mdash;but until now the
+knowledge of this supposition has had no practical value. Nevertheless,
+the significance of these illusions should not be underestimated. They
+mean most of all the fact that we really can be much deceived, even to
+the degree of swearing to the size of a simple thing and yet being quite
+innocently mistaken. This possibility shows, moreover, that the
+certainty of our judgment according to sensible standards is inadequate
+and we have no way of determining how great this inadequacy is. We have
+already indicated that we know only the examples cited by Zöllner,
+Delboeuf and others. It is probable that they were hit upon by accident
+and that similar ones can not be discovered empirically or
+intentionally. Hence, it may be assumed that such illusions occur in
+great number and even in large dimensions. For example, it is known that
+Thompson discovered his familiar “optical circle illusion” (six circles
+arranged in a circle, another in the middle. Each possesses bent radii
+which turn individually if the whole drawing is itself turned in a
+circle) by the accident of having seen the geometrical ornament drawn by
+a pupil. Whoever deals with such optical illusions may see very
+remarkable ones in almost every sample of ladies’ clothes, particularly
+percale, and also in types of carpets and furniture. And these are too
+complicated to be described. In the course of time another collection of
+such illusions will be discovered and an explanation of them will be
+forthcoming, and then it may be possible to determine how our knowledge
+of their existence can be turned to practical use.</p>
+
+<div class="figcenter"><a name="fig7" id="fig7"></a><a name="fig8" id="fig8"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_433.jpg" width="455" height="217" alt="Fig. 7." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption"><span class="smcap">Fig. 7.
+
+<span class="s10">Fig. 8.</span></span></span>
+</div>
+
+<p>Practical application is easier in the so-called inversion of the visual
+object. <a href="#fig7">Fig. 7</a> shows the simplest case of it&mdash;the possibility of seeing
+the middle vertical line as either deeper or higher than the others. In
+the first instance you have before you a gutter, in the second a room.
+Similar relations are to be observed in the case of a cube in which the
+corner <i>a</i> may be seen as either convex or concave according as<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_434" id="page_434"></a>{434}</span> you
+think it behind or before the background of the angles from which <i>a</i>
+proceeds. It is still clearer when, in a rhomboid, the line <i>XY</i> is
+drawn. Then <i>x</i> or <i>y</i> may be seen alternately as nearer or further and
+the figure can thereby be brought into a different position. (<a href="#fig9">Fig. 9</a>.)
+Done once it may be repeated voluntarily.</p>
+
+<div class="figleft"><a name="fig9" id="fig9"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_434-a.jpg" alt="Fig. 9." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption">Fig. 9.</span>
+</div>
+
+<div class="figright"><a name="fig10" id="fig10"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_434-b.jpg" alt="Fig. 10." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption">Fig. 10.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>There are many practical examples of these illusions. Sinsteden saw one
+evening the silhouette of a windmill against a luminous background. The
+arms seemed now to go to the right, now to the left&mdash;clearly because he
+did not make out the body of the mill and might equally assume that he
+saw it from the front or from the rear, the wheels going toward the
+right in the first, and toward the left in the other case. An analogous
+case is cited by Bernstein. If (<a href="#fig10">Fig. 10</a>) the cross made of the thin
+lines stand for the bars of a weather vane and the heavy lines represent
+the weather vane itself, it may be impossible under the conditions of
+illumination for an eye looking from N to distinguish whether the
+weather vane points NE or SW; there is no way of determining the
+starting point of motion. All that can certainly be said is that the
+weather vane lies between NE and SW and that its angle is at the
+crossing of the two lines, but the direction in which its heads point
+can not be determined at even a slight distance. Both forms of this
+illusion may occur in a criminal trial. If once a definite idea of some
+form of order has been gained, it is not abandoned or doubted, and is
+even sworn to. If asked, for example, whether the mill-wheel moved right
+or left, the observer will consider hardly one time in a hundred whether
+there might not have been an optical illusion. He will simply assure<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_435" id="page_435"></a>{435}</span> us
+that the thing was as he thinks he saw it, and whether he saw it
+correctly is purely a matter of luck.</p>
+
+<p>To all these illusions may be added those which are connected with
+movement or are exposed by movement. During the movement of certain
+bodies we can distinguish their form only under definite conditions. As
+their movement increases they seem shorter in the direction of movement
+and as it decreases they seem broader than normally. An express train
+with many cars seems shorter when moving directly near us, and rows of
+marching men seem longer. The illusion is most powerful when we look
+through a stationary small opening. The same thing occurs when we move
+quickly past bodies, for this makes them seem very short as we go by.</p>
+
+<p>Of such cases sense-illusion does not constitute an adequate
+explanation; it must be supplemented by a consideration of certain
+inferences which are, in most instances, comparatively complex.<a name="FNanchor_314_314" id="FNanchor_314_314"></a><a href="#Footnote_314_314" class="fnanchor">[314]</a> We
+know, e.g. that objects which appear to us unexpectedly at night,
+particularly on dark, cloudy nights, seem inordinately magnified. The
+process is here an exceedingly complex one. Suppose I see, some cloudy
+night, unexpectedly close to me a horse whose environment, because of
+the fog, appears indistinct. Now I know from experience that objects
+which appear from indistinct environments are as a rule considerably
+distant. I know, further, that considerably distant objects seem much
+smaller, and hence I must assume that the horse, which in spite of its
+imaginary distance appears to retain its natural size, is really larger
+than it is. The train of thought is as follows: “I see the horse
+indistinctly. It seems to be far away. It is, in spite of its distance,
+of great size. How enormous it must be when it is close to me!” Of
+course these inferences are neither slow nor conscious. They occur in
+reflection with lightning-like swiftness and make no difference to the
+certainty of the instantaneous judgment. Hence it is frequently very
+difficult to discover the process and the mistake it contains.</p>
+
+<p>If, however, the observer finds an inexplicable hiatus in an event he
+happens to notice, he finds it strange because unintelligible. In this
+way is created that notion of strangeness which often plays so great a
+rôle in the examination of witnesses. Hence when under otherwise
+uncomfortable conditions, I see a horse run without hearing the beat of
+his hoofs, when I see trees sway without feeling any storm; when I meet
+a man who, in spite of the moonlight, has no shadow, I feel them to be
+very strange because something is lacking<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_436" id="page_436"></a>{436}</span> in their logical development
+as events. Now, from the moment a thing becomes strange to an individual
+his perceptions are no longer reliable, it is doubtful whether he knows
+what he has really experienced before his world became strange to him.
+Add to this that few people are unwilling to confess that they felt ill
+at ease, that perhaps they do not even know it,<a name="FNanchor_315_315" id="FNanchor_315_315"></a><a href="#Footnote_315_315" class="fnanchor">[315]</a> and you get the
+complicated substitution of sensory illusions and uncanny sensation, the
+one causing the other, the other magnifying the one, and so on until the
+whole affair is turned into something quite unrecognizable. So we find
+ourselves in the presence of one of the inexplicable situations of the
+reality of which we are assured by the most trustworthy individuals.</p>
+
+<p>To magnify this phenomenon, we need only think of a few slightly
+abnormal cases. It has already been indicated that there are many such
+which are not diseased, and further, that many diseased cases occur
+which are not known as such, at least, as being so much so as to make
+the judge call in the doctor. This is the more likely because there are
+frequently, if I may say so, localized diseases which do not exhibit any
+extraordinary symptoms, at least to laymen, and hence offer no reason
+for calling in experts. If we set aside all real diseases which are
+connected with optical illusions as not concerning us, there are still
+left instances enough. For example, any medical text-book will tell you
+that morphine fiends and victims of the cocaine habit have very strong
+tendencies to optical illusions and are often tortured by them. If the
+disease is sufficiently advanced, such subjects will be recognized by
+the physician at a single glance. But the layman can not make this
+immediate diagnosis. He will get the impression that he is dealing with
+a very nervous invalid, but not with one who is subject to optical
+illusions. So, we rarely hear from a witness that he knows such people,
+and certainly not that he is one himself. A very notable oculist, Himly,
+was the first to have made the observation that in the diseased
+excitability of the retina every color is a tone higher. Luminous black
+looks blue, blue looks violet, violet looks red, red looks yellow.
+Torpor of the retina inverts the substitution.</p>
+
+<p>Dietz<a name="FNanchor_316_316" id="FNanchor_316_316"></a><a href="#Footnote_316_316" class="fnanchor">[316]</a> tells of color-illusions following upon insignificant
+indigestion; Foderè of hysterics who see everything reversed, and
+Hoppe<a name="FNanchor_317_317" id="FNanchor_317_317"></a><a href="#Footnote_317_317" class="fnanchor">[317]</a> says, “If the order of the rods and cones of the retina is
+somewhat disturbed by an inflammatory touch, the equilibrium of vision
+is<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_437" id="page_437"></a>{437}</span> altered and changes in size, in form, or appearance occur.”
+Naturally the criminalist can not perceive slight indigestion, weak
+hysteria, or an inflamed area in the retina when he is examining
+witnesses, yet false observations like those described may have a
+definite influence upon the decision in a case.</p>
+
+<p>If such abnormal occasions are lacking the reasons for optical illusions
+are of another nature. As a rule optical illusions occur when there is
+an interruption in the communication between the retina, the sense of
+movement, and the sense of touch, or when we are prevented from reducing
+the changes of the retinal image to the movement of our body or of our
+eyes. This reduction goes on so unconsciously that we see the idea of
+the object and its condition as a unit. Again, it is indubitable that
+the movement of the body seems quicker when we observe it with a fixed
+glance than when we follow it with our eyes. The difference may be so
+significant that it is often worth while, when much depends on
+determining the speed of some act in a criminal case, to ask how the
+thing was looked at.</p>
+
+<p>Fechner has made a far-reaching examination of the old familiar fact
+that things on the ground appear to run when we ride by them
+rapidly.<a name="FNanchor_318_318" id="FNanchor_318_318"></a><a href="#Footnote_318_318" class="fnanchor">[318]</a> This fact may be compared with the other, that when you
+look directly into swift-moving water from a low bridge, the latter
+seems all of a sudden to be swimming rapidly up stream, though the water
+does not appear to stand still. Here some unknown factor is at work and
+may exercise considerable influence on many other phenomena without our
+being able to observe the results. To this class may be added the
+extraordinary phenomenon that from the train objects easily seem too
+near and hence appear smaller than they are. It may be, however, that
+the converse is true and objects appear smaller, or at least shorter,
+and that inasmuch as we are in the habit of attributing the diminution
+of size in objects to their distance, we tax the latter as false. So
+much is certain&mdash;that whenever we ourselves move quickly we make false
+judgments of size, distance, and even color. The last may be due to the
+fact that during a quick passage, colors may so compose themselves, that
+green and red become white, and blue and yellow, green, etc. I believe
+that all these illusions are increasing in connection with the spread of
+bicycling, inasmuch as many observations are made from the fleeting
+wheel and its motion tends to increase the illusions considerably.
+Concerning the differences in movement Stricker<a name="FNanchor_319_319" id="FNanchor_319_319"></a><a href="#Footnote_319_319" class="fnanchor">[319]</a><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_438" id="page_438"></a>{438}</span> says: “If I lie on
+my back and see a bird fly in the uniformly blue heaven, I recognize the
+movement although I have no object with which to compare it. This can
+not be explained by the variety of points on the retina which are
+affected, for when the bird pauses and I turn my eye, I know that it is
+not moving.” The last argument is not correct. If the bird is sitting on
+a branch I know, in spite of all my occipital movement, that it is
+quiet, but only because I perceive and observe the bird’s immobility.
+If, however, I lie on my back like Stricker and see above me a bird of
+the class that, so to speak, swim motionless in the air for minutes at a
+time, and if then I turn my head, I can not tell when the bird begins to
+move. Here then we have no exception to the general rule and can always
+say that we are speaking of movement optically perceived when the rays
+issuing from any body progressively touch various points on the retina.
+And since this occurs when we are in motion as well as when the object
+is in motion it happens that we can not locate the movement, we cannot
+say whether it be in us or in the object.</p>
+
+<p>Of course, the possibility that fanciful images may appear during
+movement is familiar. If I sit quietly in the forest and at some
+distance see a stone or a piece of wood or a little heap of dried
+leaves, etc., it may be that, because of some illusion, I take it to be
+a rolled up hedgehog, and it may happen that I am so convinced of the
+nature of the object while I am looking at it that I see how the
+hedgehog stretches itself, sticks out its paws and makes other
+movements. I remember one winter when, because of some delay, a
+commission on which I was serving had failed to reach a village not far
+from the capital. We had gone to investigate a murder case and had found
+the body frozen stiff. The oven in the room was heated and the
+grave-digger placed the stiff body near the oven in order to thaw it
+out. We at this time were examining the place. After a while I was
+instructed by the examining justice to see about the condition of the
+corpse, and much to my disgust, I found it sitting near the oven, bent
+over. It had thawed out and collapsed. During the subsequent obduction I
+saw most clearly how the corpse made all kinds of movements, and even
+after the section, during the dictation, of the protocol, my imagination
+still seemed to see the corpse moving a hand or a foot.</p>
+
+<p>The imagination may also cause changes in color. Once, I saw on my desk,
+which stood next to a window, a great round drop of water on the left
+side of which the panes of the window were reflected. (<a href="#fig11">Fig. 11</a>). The
+whole business was about a meter<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_439" id="page_439"></a>{439}</span> from my eye. I saw it repeatedly while
+working and it finally occurred to me to inquire how such a great drop
+of water could get there. I had sat at my desk for hours without moving.
+I must have observed it if it had dropped there. Refraining
+intentionally from going closer, I started, without avail, to consider
+how it could have come. Some time after I examined the drop of water and
+found it to be an ink-blot, long ago completely dried, and bearing on
+its left side a few grains of white cigar ash. I had taken these to be
+the image of the window, and hence, had immediately attached to it the
+idea of the shining, raised drop of water. I had altogether overlooked
+the deep black color of the drop. On the witness stand I would have
+sworn that I had seen a drop of water, even if I had known the evidence
+on the matter to be important.</p>
+
+<div class="figright" style="width: 100px;"><a name="fig11" id="fig11"></a>
+<img src="images/ill_pg_439.jpg" alt="Fig. 11." title="" />
+<br />
+<span class="caption">Fig. 11.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>In many cases it is possible to control the imagination, but only when
+it is known that the images can not be as they are seen. Everybody is
+aware how a half-covered object at a distance, or objects accidentally
+grouped in one way or another, are taken for God knows what. Thus once,
+looking from my desk to my smoking table, I saw an enormous pair of
+tailor’s scissors half-covered by a letter. It remained identical under
+a number of repeated glances. Only when I thought vigorously that such a
+thing could not possibly be in my room did it disappear. A few scales of
+ashes, the lower round of the match safe, the metal trimmings of two
+cigar boxes half-covered by a letter and reflected by the uncertain
+light breaking through the branches of a tree, were all that the
+tailor’s scissors was composed of. If there had been such a thing in the
+house, or if I had believed something like it to exist in the house, I
+should have sought no further and should have taken my oath that I had
+seen the thing. It is significant that from the moment I understood the
+phenomenon I could not restore the image of the scissors. How often may
+similar things be of importance in criminal trials!</p>
+
+<p>The so-called captivation of our visual capacity plays a not unimportant
+part in distinguishing correct from illusory seeing. In order to see
+correctly we must look straight and fully at the object. Looking askance
+gives only an approximate image, and permits the imagination free play.
+Anybody lost in a brown study who pictures some point in the room across
+the way with his eyes can easily mistake a fly, which he sees confusedly
+askance, for a great big bird. Again, the type of a book seems
+definitely smaller if the eyes are fixed on the point of a lead pencil
+with a certain distance<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_440" id="page_440"></a>{440}</span> before or above the book. And yet again, if you
+stand so that at an angle of about 90 degrees from the fixation point,
+you look at a white door in a dark wall, observing its extent in
+indirect vision, you will find it much higher than in direct vision.</p>
+
+<p>These examples indicate how indirect vision may be corrected by later
+correct vision, but such correction occurs rarely. We see something
+indirectly; we find it uninteresting, and do not look at it directly.
+When it becomes of importance later on, perhaps enters into a criminal
+case, we think that we have seen the thing as it is, and often swear
+that “a fly is a big bird.”</p>
+
+<p>There are a number of accidents which tend to complete illusion. Suppose
+that the vision of a fly, which has been seen indirectly and taken for a
+big bird happens to be synchronous with the shriek of some bird of prey.
+I combine the two and am convinced that I have seen that bird of prey.
+This may increase, so much so that we may have series of
+sense-illusions. I cite the example of the decorative theatrical artist,
+who can make the most beautiful images with a few, but very
+characteristic blots. He does it by emphasising what seems to us
+characteristic, e.g., of a rose arbor, in such a way that at the
+distance and under the conditions of illumination of the theatre we
+imagine we really see a pretty rose arbor. If the scene painter could
+give definite rules he would help us lawyers a great deal. But he has
+none, he proceeds according to experience, and is unable to correct
+whatever mistakes he has committed. If the rose arbor fails to make the
+right impression, he does not try to improve it&mdash;he makes a new one.
+This may lead to the conclusion that not all people require the same
+characteristics in order to identify a thing as such, so that if we
+could set the rose arbor on the stage by itself, only a part of the
+public would recognize it as properly drawn, the other part would
+probably not recognize it at all. But if, of an evening, there is a
+large number of decorations on the stage, the collective public will
+find the arbor to be very pretty. That will be because the human senses,
+under certain circumstances, are susceptible to sympathetic induction.
+In the case of the rose arbor we may assume that the artist has
+typically represented the necessary characteristics of the arbor for one
+part of the audience, for another part those of a castle, for another
+part those of a forest, and for a fourth those of a background. But once
+an individual finds a single object to be correct, his senses are
+already sympathetically inductive, i.e., captivated for the correctness
+of the whole collection, so that the correctness passes from one object
+to the total<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_441" id="page_441"></a>{441}</span> number. Now, this psychic process is most clear in those
+optical illusions which recently have been much on public exhibition
+(the Battle of Gravelotte, the Journey of the Austrian Crown Prince in
+Egypt, etc.). The chief trick of these representations is the presenting
+of real objects, like stones, wheels, etc., in the foreground in such a
+way that they fuse unnoticeably with the painted picture. The sense of
+the spectator rests on the plastic objects, is convinced of their
+materiality and transfers the idea of this plasticity to the merely
+pictured. Thus the whole image appears as tri-dimensional.</p>
+
+<p>The decorations of great parks at the beginning of the last century
+indicate that illumination and excited imagination are not alone in
+causing such illusions. Weber tells ecstatically of an alley in
+Schwetzing at the end of which there was a highly illuminated concave
+wall, painted with a landscape of mountains and water-falls. Everybody
+took the deception for a reality because the eye was captivated and
+properly inducted. The artist’s procedure must have been psychologically
+correct and must have counted upon the weakness of our observation and
+intellection. Exner points to the simple circumstance that we do not
+want to see that things under certain conditions must terminate. If we
+draw a straight line and cover an end with a piece of paper, every one
+wonders that the line is not longer when the paper is removed.</p>
+
+<p>I know of no case in criminal procedure where illusions of this kind
+might be of importance, but it is conceivable that such illusions enter
+in numberless instances. This is especially susceptible of observation
+when we first see some region or object hastily and then observe it more
+accurately. We are astonished how fundamentally false our first
+conception was. Part of this falseness may be adduced to faults of
+memory, but these play little or no part if the time is short and if we
+are able to recall that the false conception appeared just as soon as we
+observed the situation in question. The essential reason for false
+conception is to be found only in the fact that our first hasty view was
+incorrectly inducted, and hence, led to illusions like those of the
+theatre. Thus, it is possible to take a board fence covered at points
+with green moss, for a moss-covered rock, and then to be led by this to
+see a steep cliff. Certain shadows may so magnify the size of the small
+window of an inn that we may take it to be as large as that of a sitting
+room. And if we have seen just one window we think all are of the same
+form and are convinced that the inn is a mansion. Or again, we see,
+half-covered, through the woods, a distant pool, and in memory we then
+see the possibly,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_442" id="page_442"></a>{442}</span> but not necessarily, present river. Or perhaps we see
+a church spire, and possibly near it the roof of a house rises above the
+trees; then we are inducted into having seen a village, although there
+really are visible only the church and the house.</p>
+
+<p>These illusions again, I must repeat, are of no importance if they are
+at all doubted, for then the truth is ascertained. When, however, they
+are not doubted and are sworn to, they cause the greatest confusion in
+trials. A bar-room quarrel, a swung cane, and a red handkerchief on the
+head, are enough to make people testify to having seen a great brawl
+with bloody heads. A gnawing rat, a window accidentally left open
+through the night, and some misplaced, not instantaneously discovered
+object, are the ingredients of a burglary. A man who sees a rather quick
+train, hears a shrill blowing of the whistle, and sees a great cloud,
+may think himself the witness of a wreck. All these phenomena, moreover,
+reveal us things as we have been in the habit of seeing them. I repeat,
+here also, that the photographic apparatus, in so far as it does not
+possess a refracting lens, shows things much more truly than our eye,
+which is always corrected by our memory. If I permit a man sitting on a
+chair to be photographed, front view, with his legs crossed and
+stretched far out, the result is a ludicrous picture because the boots
+seem immensely larger than the head of the subject. But the photograph
+is not at fault, for if the subject is kept in the same position and
+then the apparent size of head and boot are measured, we get accurately
+the same relation as on the photograph. We know by experience how big a
+head is. And hence, we ordinarily see all relations of size in proper
+proportion. But on the photograph we can not apply this “natural”
+standard because it is not given in nature, and we blame the camera.</p>
+
+<p>If, in a criminal case, we are dealing with a description of size, and
+it is given as it is known from experience, not as it really appears,
+then if experience has deceived us, our testimony is also wrong,
+although we pretend to have testified on the basis of direct
+sense-perception.</p>
+
+<p>The matter of after-images, probably because of their short duration, is
+of no criminalistic importance. I did once believe that they might be of
+considerable influence on the perception of witnesses, but I have not
+succeeded in discovering a single example in which this influence is
+perceptible.</p>
+
+<p>On the other hand, the phenomenon of irradiation, the appearance of dark
+bodies as covered with rays of light by adjacent luminosities,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_443" id="page_443"></a>{443}</span> is of
+importance. This phenomenon is well-known, as are Helmholtz’s and
+Plateau’s explanations of it. But it is not sufficiently applied. One
+needs only to set a white square upon the blackest possible ground and
+at the same time a similar black square of equal size on a white ground,
+and then to place them under a high light, to perceive how much larger
+the white square appears to be. That such phenomena often occur in
+nature need not be expounded. Whenever we are dealing with questions of
+size it is indubitably necessary to consider the color of the object and
+its environment with respect to its background and to the resulting
+irradiation.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 100. (3) <i>Auditory Illusions.</i></h5>
+
+<p>From the point of view of the criminalist, auditory illusions are hardly
+less significant than visual illusions, the more so, as incorrect
+hearing is much more frequent than incorrect seeing. This is due to the
+greater similarity of tones to each other, and this similarity is due to
+the fact that sound has only one dimension, while vision involves not
+only three but also color. Of course, between the booming of cannons and
+the rustling of wings there are more differences than one, but the most
+various phenomena of tones may be said to vary only in degree. For
+purposes of comparison moreover, we can make use only of a class of
+auditory images on the same plane, e.g., human voices, etc. Real
+acoustic illusions are closely connected with auditory misapprehension
+and a distinction between these two can not be rigorously drawn. A
+misapprehension may, as a rule, be indicated by almost any external
+condition, like the relations of pitch, echo, repetition, false
+coincidence of waves of sound, etc. Under such circumstances there may
+arise real illusions.</p>
+
+<p>The study of auditory illusions is rendered especially difficult by the
+rarity of their repetition, which makes it impossible reliably to
+exclude accidents and mistakes in observation. Only two phenomena are
+susceptible of accurate and sufficient study. For three summers a man
+used to ride through the long street in which I live. The man used to
+sell ice and would announce himself by crying out, “Frozen,” with the
+accent on the Fro. This word was distinctly audible, but if the man came
+to a definite place in the street, there were also audible the words
+“Oh, my.” If he rode on further the expression became confused and
+gradually turned into the correct, “Frozen.” I observed this daily, got
+a number of others to do so, without telling them of the illusion, but
+each heard<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_444" id="page_444"></a>{444}</span> the same thing in spite of the distinct difference between
+“frozen,” and “oh, my.”</p>
+
+<p>I made a similar observation at a bicycle school. As is known, beginners
+are able frequently to ride by themselves but need help in mounting and
+dismounting their machines. To do so they call a teacher by crying out:
+“Herr Maier.” At a certain place this sound would seem distinctly to be
+“mamma.” I was at first much surprised to hear people of advanced age
+cry cheerfully, “mamma.” Later I discovered what the word really was and
+acquaintances whose attention I called to the matter confirmed my
+observation. Such things are not indifferent, they show that really very
+different sounds may be mistaken for one another, that the test of
+misunderstandings may often lead to false results, since only during the
+test of an illusion are both auditor and speaker accurately in the same
+position as before. Finally, these things show that the whole business
+of correcting some false auditions is very difficult. Yet this work of
+correction may be assumed to be much more easy with respect to hearing
+than with respect to seeing. If, e.g., it is asserted that the revolver
+has been seen somewhere, and if it has been known that the sight was
+impossible, it becomes just as impossible, almost, to determine what the
+object seen really was. In the rarest cases only will it be something
+altogether similar, e.g., a pistol; most of the time it will be an
+object which could not be inferred from no matter what combinations. In
+hearing, on the contrary, if once it is determined that there has been a
+false audition, the work of placing it, though difficult, need not be
+unprofitable. This work is often compulsory upon the criminalist who
+receives protocols which have not been read aloud, and in which mistakes
+of hearing and dictation have been made. Such mistakes are considerably
+disturbing, and if the case is important their source and status must be
+inferred. This may almost always be done. Of course, strange, badly
+heard proper names can not be corrected, but other things can.</p>
+
+<p>As regards the general treatment of auditory illusions, it is necessary,
+first of all, to consider their many and significant differences. In the
+first place, there are the varieties of good hearing. That normal and
+abnormal hearers vary in degree of power is well known. There are also
+several special conditions, causing, e.g., the so called hyper-auditive
+who hear more acutely than normal people. Of course, such assertions as
+those which cite people who can hear the noise of sulphur rubbed on the
+poles of quartz crystals and so on, are incorrect, but it is certain
+that a little attention will reveal a<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_445" id="page_445"></a>{445}</span> surprising number of people whose
+hearing is far acuter than that of normal individuals. Apart from
+children, the class is made up of musicians, of young girls, and of very
+nervous, excitable, and sickly persons. The musicians in fact have
+become so because of their ears; the young girls hear well largely
+because of their delicate organization and the very fine construction of
+their ears; and the nervous people because of their sensibility to the
+pain involved in loud noises. Many differences of perception among
+witnesses are to be explained by differences of audition, and the
+reality of apparent impossibilities in hearing must not be denied but
+must be tested under proper conditions. One of these conditions is
+location. The difference between hearing things in the noisy day and in
+the quiet night, in the roar of the city, or in the quiet of the
+mountains, is familiar. The influence of resonance and pitch, echo and
+absorption of tones, i.e., the location of the sound, is of great
+importance. Finally, it must not be forgotten that people’s ability to
+hear varies with the weather. Colds reduce the power, and not a few
+people are influenced by temperature, atmospheric pressure, etc. These
+considerations show the degree in which auditory illusions can be of
+importance even in tests of their nature and existence. They show above
+all that the same object of comparison under the same circumstances must
+be used in every test. Otherwise much confusion inevitably results.</p>
+
+<p>The presence of auditory illusions in diseases, fever, hysteria,
+nervousness, alcoholism and its associates, mental disturbances,
+hyperæmia, diseases of the ear, etc., is well known, but concerns us
+only as pointing to the necessity of calling in the physician
+immediately. They have their definite characteristics and rarely leave
+the layman in doubt of his duty in that direction. The great difficulty
+comes in dealing with diseases or apparent diseases while it is still
+impossible to know of their existence, or where the pain is of such
+character that the layman does not know of its presence and thus has no
+ground for consulting the doctor. For example, it is well known that a
+large amount of ear wax in the aural passage may cause all sorts of
+ringing and sighing in the ear, and may even produce real
+hallucinations. Yet a person having an abnormal amount of ear wax may be
+otherwise absolutely sound. How is the need of a physician to be guessed
+in such a case? Again, the perforation of the drum, especially when it
+follows a catarrh, may cause a definite auditory illusion with regard to
+the sound of voices, or the illusion may be effected by the irritation
+of the skin in the ear passage, or<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_446" id="page_446"></a>{446}</span> by anemia, or by a strong carotid
+pulse and a distention of the bloodvessels, as happens in alcoholism.
+Many people become abnormally sensitive to sound at the beginning of
+fevers. Women at the time of their climacterium hear all kinds of
+voices. Inasmuch as this soon stops, the abnormality and incorrectness
+of their audition is hard to establish. Childbirth, too, makes a
+difference. Old, otherwise conscientious midwives claim to have heard
+unborn children breathe and cry.</p>
+
+<p>Examples of this sort of thing are innumerable and they teach that
+whenever any questionable assertion is made about a thing heard the
+doctor must be called in to determine whether the witness heard it under
+abnormal, though not diseased conditions. Again, merely accidental or
+habitual general excitability tends to intensify all sounds, and whether
+the witness under consideration was in such condition can be determined
+only by the expert physician.</p>
+
+<p>The illusions of hearing which completely normal people are subject to
+are the most difficult of all. Their number and frequency is variously
+estimated. The physician has nothing to do with them. The physicist, the
+acoustician and physiologist do not care about the criminalist’s needs
+in this matter, and we ourselves rarely have time and opportunity to
+deal with it. As a result our information is very small, and no one can
+say how much is still undiscovered. One of my friends has called my
+attention to the fact that when the beats of the clock are counted
+during sleepiness, one too many is regularly counted. I tested this
+observation and my experience confirmed it. If, now, we consider how
+frequently the determination of time makes the whole difference in a
+criminal case and how easily it is possible to mistake a whole hour, we
+can get some notion of the importance of this illusion. Its explanation
+is difficult and it may be merely a single instance of a whole series of
+unknown auditory illusions resting on the same basis. Another and
+similar phenomenon is the “double beat of the hammer.” If you have an
+assistant strike the table with a hammer while you hold both ears with
+your fingers and then open them half a second or a second after the
+blow, you hear the blow again. And if you open and shut your ears
+quickly you can hear the blow several times. This is explained through
+the fact that a number of reflections of the sound occur in the room,
+and that these are perceivable only by the unfatigued ear. The
+explanation is unsatisfactory because the experiment is sometimes
+successful in the open. Taken in itself, this matter seems very
+theoretical and without practical value. But this kind of action may
+occur<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_447" id="page_447"></a>{447}</span> automatically. It is well known that swallowing closes the
+Eustachian tubes for a moment, especially if done when lying down. Now,
+if this occurs during a blow, a shot, etc., the sound must be heard
+twice. Again, it may easily happen that because of the noise a man wakes
+up half asleep and, frightened, swallows the collected saliva; then this
+accident, which in itself seems unimportant, may lead to very
+significant testimony. Such occurrences are not infrequent.</p>
+
+<p>The intensity of a sound already heard may be of considerable influence.
+Certain experimenters have indicated the remarkable character of
+slightly intensive effects of sound. If you hold a watch so far from the
+ear as to hear it clearly but weakly, the sound decreases until finally
+it is not heard at all, and after awhile it is again heard, etc. This
+may lead to hearing distinct sounds made up of many tones, and need not
+evince any great illusion with regard to the ticking of a watch. But the
+thing may occur also in connection with more powerful and more distant
+sounds, e.g., the murmur of a brook, the rush of a train, the pounding
+in a distant factory. Noises far removed are influenced by reflections
+of sound, waves of air, etc., and it is possible that all kinds of
+things may be heard in a completely monotonous noise. This can be easily
+learned by listening to the soft murmur of a distant brook at night.
+Given the disposition and supposing the existence of the brook unknown,
+it is easy to hear in its monotonous murmur, human voices, sighs,
+shrieks, etc.</p>
+
+<p>Another remarkable observation shows that in the dark very distinct
+things are heard during the playing of delicate instruments, such as
+mouth-organs. The humming approaches and withdraws, then it comes on
+various sides, and finally one has the feeling that the whole room is
+full of humming and winging insects. And this may go on indefinitely.
+There is a large collection of reasons for this reduplication of
+monotonous sounds. Everybody knows the accord of the æolian harp which
+consists of identical notes, and the melodies which seem to lie in the
+pounding of the train on the rails. This can become especially clear
+when one is half asleep. If ever thinking begins to be ousted by
+slumber, the rhythmic pound begins to dominate consciousness. Then the
+rhythm gets its appropriate melody which becomes progressively more
+intense, and if one grows suddenly wide awake one wonders why the
+clearly-heard music is missing. Similarly, it is often asserted that a
+row of travelling wild swans make pleasant chords, although each swan is
+able to utter<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_448" id="page_448"></a>{448}</span> only one cry. Difference in distance and alterations in
+the air cause the chords.</p>
+
+<p>The difficulties in distinguishing the intensity or weakness of a sound
+are of importance. Fechner learned from the violinist Wasilewski that he
+observed that a male choir of four hundred voices did not sound
+essentially louder than one of two hundred. At the same time one clock
+is not heard at a great distance, a hundred clocks are heard. One locust
+can not be heard eating; when 1000 eat they are heard; hence each one
+must make a definite noise.<a name="FNanchor_320_320" id="FNanchor_320_320"></a><a href="#Footnote_320_320" class="fnanchor">[320]</a> Early authorities have already
+indicated how difficult it is to distinguish the number of bells ringing
+together. Even musicians will often take two or three to be five or six.</p>
+
+<p>Certain dispositions make some difference in this respect. The operating
+physician hears the low groaning of the patient after the operation
+without having heard his loud cries during the operation. During the
+operation the physician must not hear anything that is likely to disturb
+his work, but the low groan has simply borne in upon him. The sleeping
+mother often is deaf to considerable noise, but wakes up immediately
+when her child draws a deeper breath than usual. Millers and factory
+hands, travellers, etc., do not hear the pounding of their various
+habitual environmental noises, but they perceive the slightest call, and
+everybody observes the considerable murmur of the world, the sum of all
+distant noises, only in the silence of the night that misses it.</p>
+
+<p>Illusions of direction of sound are very common. It is said that even
+animals are subject to them; and everybody knows how few human beings
+can distinguish the source and direction of street music, a rolling
+wagon, or a ringing bell. Even when long practice enables one to
+determine direction with correctness, an accidental event, perhaps the
+weather, especial sounds, a different grouping of individuals on the
+street, may result in serious mistakes. I tried to learn to judge from
+my office-desk whether the ring of the horse-car came from above or
+below. I succeeded so well that I could not understand how it was
+difficult not to learn the difference, and yet I failed many a time
+altogether in judgment. The reason for it I do not know.</p>
+
+<p>All these enumerated circumstances must show how very uncertain all
+acoustic perceptions are, and how little they may be trusted if they are
+not carefully tested under similar conditions, and if&mdash;what is most
+important&mdash;they are not isolated. We are here led back<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_449" id="page_449"></a>{449}</span> to the old
+principle that every observation is not proof but means of proof, and
+that it may be trusted only when it is confirmed by many parallel
+actions which are really consistent. That even after that mistakes are
+possible, is true, but “after that” is when we have done all that lies
+within human power.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 101. (4) <i>Illusions of Touch.</i></h5>
+
+<p>The high standing of the sense of touch which make it in certain
+directions even the organ of control of the sense of sight, is well
+known, and Condillac’s historic attempt to derive all the senses from
+this one is still plausible. If what is seen is to be seen accurately
+there is automatic resort to the confirmatory aid of the sense of touch,
+which apprehends what the eye has missed. Hence we find many people
+touching things, whose vision is not altogether reliable&mdash;i.e., people
+of considerable age, children unpracticed in seeing, an uneducated
+people who have never learned to see quickly and comprehensively.
+Moreover, certain things can be determined only by touching, i.e., the
+fineness of papers, cloth, etc., the sharpness or pointedness of
+instruments, or the rawness of objects. Even when we pat a dog kindly we
+do so partly because we want to see whether his skin is as smooth and
+fine as the eye sees it; moreover, we want to test the visual impression
+by that of touch.</p>
+
+<p>But important and reliable as the sense of touch is, it is nevertheless
+not to be trusted when it is the sole instrument of perception. We must
+never depend on the testimony of a witness based entirely on perceptions
+by touch, and the statements of a wounded person concerning the time,
+manner, etc., of his wound are unreliable unless he has also seen what
+he has felt. We know that most knife and bullet wounds, i.e., the most
+dangerous ones, are felt, in the first instance, as not very powerful
+blows. Blows on the extremities are not felt as such, but rather as
+pain, and blows on the head are regularly estimated in terms of pain,
+and falsely with regard to their strength. If they were powerful enough
+to cause unconsciousness they are said to have been very massive, but if
+they have not had that effect, they will be described by the most honest
+of witnesses as much more powerful than they actually were. Concerning
+the location of a wound in the back, in the side, even in the upper arm,
+the wounded person can give only general indications, and if he
+correctly indicates the seat of the wound, he has learned it later but
+did not know it when it occurred. According to Helmholtz,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_450" id="page_450"></a>{450}</span> practically
+all abdominal sensations are attributed to the anterior abdominal wall.
+Now such matters become of importance when an individual has suffered
+several wounds in a brawl or an assault and wants to say certainly that
+he got wound A when X appeared, wound B when Y struck at him, etc. These
+assertions are almost all false because the victim is likely to identify
+the pain of the moment of receiving the wound with its later
+painfulness. If, for example, an individual has received a rather long
+but shallow knife wound and a deep stab in the back, the first will
+cause him very considerable burning sensation, the latter only the
+feeling of a heavy blow. Later on, at the examination, the cut has
+healed and is no longer painful; the dangerous stab which may have
+reached the lung, causes pain and great difficulty in breathing, so that
+the wounded man assigns the incidence of the stab to the painful
+sensation of the cut, and conversely.</p>
+
+<p>Various perceptions of victims on receiving a wound are remarkable, and
+I have persuaded a police surgeon of considerable learning and
+originality to collect and interpret his great mass of material. It is
+best done by means of tabulation, accurate description of wounds
+according to their place, size, form, and significance, the statement of
+the victim concerning his feeling at the moment of receiving the wound,
+the consequences of healing, and at the end explanatory observations
+concerning the reasons for true or incorrect sensations of the victim.
+As this work is to have only psychological value it is indifferent
+whether the victim is veracious or not. What we want to know is what
+people say about their perception. The true and the false will
+distinguish themselves automatically, the material being so rich, and
+the object will be to compare true subjective feelings with true
+subjective deeds. Perhaps it may even be possible to draw
+generalizations and to abstract certain rules.</p>
+
+<p>There are many examples of the fact that uncontrolled touch leads to
+false perceptions. Modern psychophysics has pointed to a large group of
+false perceptions due to illusions of pressure, stabs, or other contact
+with the skin. The best known, and criminalistically most important
+experiments, are those with open compasses. Pressed on the less
+sensitive parts of the body, the back, the thigh, etc., they are always
+felt as one, although they are quite far apart. The experiments of
+Flournoy, again, show how difficult it is to judge weights which are not
+helped by the eye’s appreciation of their form and appearance. Ten
+objects of various forms were judged by fifty<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_451" id="page_451"></a>{451}</span> people for their weight;
+only one discovered that they all had the same weight.</p>
+
+<p>Similarly, mere touch can not give us proper control over the organs of
+the body. Sully says that in bed we may voluntarily imagine that a leg
+has a position quite different from that it really has. Let me cite some
+similar examples from my “Manual for Investigating Judges.” If we take a
+pea between the thumb and the index finger, we feel the pea simply,
+although its tactile image comes to us through two fingers, i.e.,
+double. If now we cross the third finger over the fourth and hold the
+pea between the ends of these two fingers, we feel it to be double
+because the fingers are not in their customary positions and hence give
+double results. From one point of view this double feeling is correct,
+but when we touch the pea naturally, experience helps us to feel only
+one pea. Another example consists in crossing the hands and turning them
+inward and upward, so that the left fingers turn to the left and the
+right fingers to the right. Here the localization of the fingers is
+totally lost, and if a second person points to one of the fingers
+without touching it, asking you to lift it, you regularly lift the
+analogous finger of the other hand. This shows that the tactile sense is
+not in a very high stage of development, since it needs, when unhelped
+by long experience, the assistance of the sense of sight. Perceptions
+through touch alone, therefore, are of small importance; inferences are
+made on the basis of few and more coarse characteristic impressions.</p>
+
+<p>This is shown by a youthful game we used to play. It consisted of
+stretching certain harmless things under the table&mdash;a soft piece of
+dough, a peeled, damp potato stuck on a bit of wood, a wet glove filled
+with sand, the spirally cut rind of a beet, etc. Whoever got one of
+these objects without seeing it thought he was holding some disgusting
+thing and threw it away. His sense of touch could present only the
+dampness, the coldness, and the motion, i.e., the coarsest traits of
+reptilian life, and the imagination built these up into a reptile and
+caused the consequent action. Foolish as this game seems, it is
+criminalistically instructive. It indicates what unbelievable illusions
+the sense of touch is capable of causing. To this inadequacy of the
+tactile imagination may be added a sort of transferability of certain
+touch sensations. For example, if ants are busy near my seat I
+immediately feel that ants are running about under my clothes, and if I
+see a wound or hear it described, I often feel pain in the analogous
+place on my own body. That this may lead to considerable illusion in
+excitable witnesses is obvious.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_452" id="page_452"></a>{452}</span></p>
+
+<p>Finally, this dependence of the sense of touch may be supplemented by
+the fact that it is counted only relatively, and its value varies with
+the individual. We find the cellar warm in winter and cold in summer,
+because we only feel the difference with the outer air, and when we put
+one hand in hot, and the other in cold water, and then put both in tepid
+water one finds the tepid water cold, the other warm. The record of
+tactile sensations is frequent in our protocols and requires constant
+consideration of the sense’s unreliability.</p>
+
+<p>Diseased conditions are of course to be referred to the physician. I
+need only mention that slight poisonings by means of chloroform,
+morphine, atropine, daturine, decrease, and that strychnine increases
+the sensitivity of the touch organ.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 102. (5) <i>Illusions of the Sense of Taste.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Illusions of taste are of importance for us only in cases of poisoning
+in which we want the assistance of the victim, or desire to taste the
+poison in question in order to determine its nature. That taste and odor
+are particularly difficult to get any unanimity about is an old story,
+and it follows that it is still more difficult clearly to understand
+possible illusions of these senses. That disease can cause mistaken
+gustatory impressions is well known. But precedent poisoning may also
+create illusions. Thus, observation shows that poisoning by
+rose-santonin (that well-known worm remedy to which children are so
+abnormally sensitive) causes a long-enduring, bitter taste;
+sub-cutaneous morphine poisoning causes illusory bitter and sour tastes.
+Intermittent fevers tend to cause, when there is no attack and the
+patient feels comparatively well, a large number of metallic,
+particularly coppery tastes. If this is true it may lead to unjustified
+suspicions of poisoning, inasmuch as the phenomena of intermittent fever
+are so various that they can not all be identified.</p>
+
+<p>Imagination makes considerable difference here. Taine tells somewhere of
+a novelist, who so graphically described the poisoning of his heroine
+that he felt the taste of arsenic and got indigestion. This may be
+possible, for perhaps everybody has already learned the great influence
+of the false idea of the nature of a food. If some salt meat is taken to
+be a sweet pastry, the taste becomes disgusting because the imaginary
+and the actual tastes seem to be mixed. The eye has especial influence,
+and the story cited and denied a hundred times, that in the dark, red
+wine and white wine, chicken and goose,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_453" id="page_453"></a>{453}</span> can not be distinguished, that
+the going out of a cigar is not noted, etc., is true. With your eyes
+closed it may be possible to eat an onion instead of an apple.</p>
+
+<p>Prior tastes may cause significant gustatory illusions. Hence, when
+assertions are made about tastes, it is always necessary to inquire at
+the outset what had been eaten or drunk before. Experienced housewives
+take this fact into consideration in setting their tables and arranging
+their wines. The values of the wines are considerably raised by complete
+illusions of taste. All in all, it must not be forgotten that the
+reliability of the sense of taste can not be estimated too low. The
+illusions are greatest especially when a thing has been tasted with a
+preconceived notion of its taste.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 103. (6) <i>The Illusions of the Olfactory Sense.</i></h5>
+
+<p>Olfactory illusions are very rare in healthy people and are hence of
+small importance. They are frequent among the mentally diseased, are
+connected in most cases with sexual conditions and then are so vivid
+that the judge can hardly doubt the need of calling in the physician.
+Certain poisons tend to debauch the olfactory sense. Strychnine, e.g.,
+tends to make it finer, morphine duller. People with weak lungs try, in
+most cases, to set their difficulty of breathing outside themselves and
+believe that they are inhaling poisoned air, coal-gas, etc. If one
+considers in this connection the suspiciousness which many people
+suffering from lung trouble often exhibit, we may explain many
+groundless accusations of attempted murder by stifling with poisonous or
+unbreathable gas. If this typical illusion is unknown to the judge he
+may find no reason for calling in the physician and then&mdash;injustice.</p>
+
+<p>The largest number of olfactory illusions are due to imagination.
+Carpenter’s frequently cited case of the officials who smelled a corpse
+while a coffin was being dug up, until finally the coffin was found to
+be empty, has many fellows. I once was making an examination of a case
+of arson, and on approaching the village noted a characteristic odor
+which is spread by burned animals or men. When we learned that the
+consumed farm lay still an hour’s ride from the village, the odor
+immediately disappeared. Again, on returning home, I thought I heard the
+voice of a visitor and immediately smelled her characteristic perfume,
+but she had not been there that day.</p>
+
+<p>Such illusions are to be explained by the fact that many odors are in
+the air, that they are not very powerfully differentiated and<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_454" id="page_454"></a>{454}</span> may hence
+be turned by means of the imagination into that one which is likely to
+be most obvious.</p>
+
+<p>The stories told of hyper-sensitives who think they are able to smell
+the pole of a magnet or the chemicals melted into a glass, belong to
+this class. That they do so in good faith may be assumed, but to smell
+through melted glass is impossible. Hence it must be believed that such
+people have really smelled something somewhere and have given this odor
+this or that particular location. Something like this occurs when an
+odor, otherwise found pleasant, suddenly becomes disgusting and
+unbearable when its source is unknown. However gladly a man may eat
+sardines in oil he is likely to turn aside when his eyes are closed and
+an open can of sardines is held under his nose. Many delicate forms of
+cheese emit disgusting odors so long as it is not known that cheese is
+the source. The odor that issues from the hands after crabs have been
+eaten is unbearable; if, however, one bears in mind that the odor is the
+odor of crabs, it becomes not at all so unpleasant.</p>
+
+<p>Association has much influence. For a long time I disliked to go to a
+market where flowers, bouquets, wreaths, etc., were kept because I
+smelled dead human bodies. Finally, I discovered that the odor was due
+to the fact that I knew most of these flowers to be such as are laid on
+coffins&mdash;are smelled during interment. Again, many people find perfumes
+good or bad as they like or dislike the person who makes use of them,
+and the judgment concerning the pleasantness or unpleasantness of an
+odor is mainly dependent upon the pleasantness or unpleasantness of
+associative memories. When my son, who is naturally a vegetarian and who
+could never be moved to eat meat, became a doctor, I thought that he
+could never be brought to endure the odor of the dissecting room. It did
+not disturb him in the least, however, and he explained it by saying: “I
+do not eat what smells like that, and I can not conceive how you can eat
+anything from the butcher shops where the odor is exactly like that of
+the dissecting room.” What odor is called good or bad, ecstatic or
+disgusting, is purely a subjective matter and never to be the basis of a
+universal judgment. Statements by witnesses concerning perceptions of
+odor are valueless unless otherwise confirmed.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 104. (b) Hallucinations and Illusions.</h5>
+
+<p>The limits between illusions of sense and hallucinations and illusions
+proper can in no sense be definitely determined inasmuch<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_455" id="page_455"></a>{455}</span> as any
+phenomena of the one may be applied to the other, and vice versa.<a name="FNanchor_321_321" id="FNanchor_321_321"></a><a href="#Footnote_321_321" class="fnanchor">[321]</a>
+Most safely it may be held that the cause of illusions of sense lies in
+the nature of sense-organs, while the hallucinations and illusions are
+due to the activity of the brain. The latter are much more likely to
+fall within the scope of the physician than sense-illusions, but at the
+same time many of them have to be determined upon by the lawyer,
+inasmuch as they really occur to normal people or to such whose disease
+is just beginning so that the physician can not yet reach it.
+Nevertheless, whenever the lawyer finds himself face to face with a
+supposed illusion or hallucination he must absolutely call in the
+physician. For, as rarely as an ordinary illusion of sense is explicable
+by the rules of logic or psychology, or even by means of other knowledge
+or experience at the command of any educated man, so, frequently, do
+processes occur in cases of hallucination and illusion which require, at
+the very least, the physiological knowledge of the physician. Our
+activity must hence be limited to the perception of the presence of
+hallucination or illusion; the rest is matter for the psychiatrist.
+Small as our concern is, it is important and difficult, for on the one
+hand we must not appeal to the physician about every stupid fancy or
+every lie a prisoner utters, and on the other hand we assume a heavy
+responsibility if we interpret a real hallucination or illusion as a
+true and real observation. To acquire knowledge of the nature of these
+things, therefore, can not be rigorously enough recommended.</p>
+
+<p>Hallucination and illusion have been distinguished by the fact that
+hallucination implies no external object whatever, while in illusion
+objects are mistaken and misinterpreted. When one thing is taken for
+another, e.g., an oven for a man, the rustle of the wind for a human
+song, we have illusion. When no objective existence is perceived, e.g.,
+when a man is seen to enter, a voice is heard, a touch is felt, although
+nothing whatever has happened, we have hallucination. Illusion is
+partial, hallucination complete, supplementation of an external object.
+There is not a correct and definite difference between illusion and
+hallucination inasmuch as what is present may be so remotely connected
+with what is perceived that it is no more than a stimulus, and thus
+illusion may be turned into real hallucination. One authority calls
+illusion the conception of an actually present external event which is
+perceived by the peripheral organs in the form of an idea that does not
+coincide with the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_456" id="page_456"></a>{456}</span> event. The mistake does not lie in the defective
+activity of the senses so much as in the fact that an apperceptive idea
+is substituted for the perceptive view. In hallucination every external
+event is absent, and hence, what is seen is due to a stimulation of the
+periphery. Some authorities believe hallucination to be caused by cramp
+of the sensory nerve. Others find illusions to be an externally
+stimulated sense-perception not corresponding to the stimulus, and still
+others believe it to be essentially normal. Most human beings are from
+time to time subject to illusions; indeed, nobody is always sober and
+intelligent in all his perceptions and convictions. The luminous center
+of our intelligent perceptions is wrapped in a cloudy half-shadow of
+illusion.</p>
+
+<p>Sully<a name="FNanchor_322_322" id="FNanchor_322_322"></a><a href="#Footnote_322_322" class="fnanchor">[322]</a> aims to distinguish the essential nature of illusion from
+that characterized by ordinary language. Illusion, according to him, is
+often used to denote mistakes which do not imply untrue perceptions. We
+say a man has an illusion who thinks too much of himself, or when he
+tells stories otherwise than as they happen because of a weakness of
+memory. Illusion is every form of mistake which substitutes any direct
+self-evident or intuitive knowledge, whether as sense-perception or as
+any other form.</p>
+
+<p>Nowadays the cause of hallucination and illusion is sought in the
+over-excitement of the cerebro-spinal system. As this stimulation may be
+very various in its intensity and significance, from the momentary rush
+of blood to complete lunacy, so hallucinations and illusions may be
+insignificant or signs of very serious mental disturbances. When we seek
+the form of these phenomena, we find that all those psychical events
+belong to it which have not been <i>purposely</i> performed or lied about.
+When Brutus sees Cæsar’s ghost; Macbeth, Banquo’s ghost; Nicholas, his
+son; these are distinctly hallucinations or illusions of the same kind
+as those “really and truly” seen by our nurses. The stories of such
+people have no significance for the criminalist, but if a person has
+seen an entering thief, an escaping murderer, a bloody corpse, or some
+similar object of criminal law, and these are hallucinations like
+classical ghosts, then are we likely to be much deceived. Hoppe<a name="FNanchor_323_323" id="FNanchor_323_323"></a><a href="#Footnote_323_323" class="fnanchor">[323]</a>
+enumerates hallucinations of apparently sound (?) people. 1. A priest
+tired by mental exertion, saw, while he was writing, a boy’s head look
+over his shoulder. If he turned toward it it disappeared, if he resumed
+writing it reappeared. 2. “A thoroughly intelligent<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_457" id="page_457"></a>{457}</span>” man always was
+seeing a skeleton. 3. Pascal, after a heavy blow, saw a fiery abyss into
+which he was afraid he would fall. 4. A man who had seen an enormous
+fire, for a long time afterward saw flames continually. 5. Numerous
+cases in which criminals, especially murderers, always had their victims
+before their eyes. 6. Justus Möser saw well-known flowers and
+geometrical figures very distinctly. 7. Bonnet knows a “healthy” man who
+saw people, birds, etc., with open eyes. 8. A man got a wound in his
+left ear and for weeks afterward saw a cat. 9. A woman eighty-eight
+years old often saw everything covered with flowers,&mdash;otherwise she was
+quite “well.”</p>
+
+<p>A part of these stories seems considerably fictitious, a part applies to
+indubitable pathological cases, and certain of them are confirmed
+elsewhere. That murderers, particularly women-murderers of children,
+often see their victims is well known to us criminalists. And for this
+reason the habit of confining prisoners in a dark cell for twenty-four
+hours on the anniversary of a crime must be pointed to as refined and
+thoroughly mediæval cruelty. I have repeatedly heard from people so
+tortured of the terror of their visions on such days of martyrdom. Cases
+are told of in which prisoners who were constipated had all kinds of
+visual and auditory hallucinations and appeared, e.g., to hear in the
+rustling of their straw, all sorts of words. That isolation predisposes
+people to such things is as well known as the fact that constipation
+causes a rush of blood to the head, and hence, nervous excitement. The
+well-known stories of robbers which are often told us by prisoners are
+not always the fruit of malicious invention. Probably a not
+insignificant portion are the result of hallucination.</p>
+
+<p>Hoppe tells of a great group of hallucinations in conditions of waking
+and half-waking, and asserts that everybody has them and can note them
+if he gives his attention thereto. This may be an exaggeration, but it
+is true that a healthy person in any way excited or afraid may hear all
+kinds of things in the crackling of a fire, etc., and may see all kinds
+of things, in smoke, in clouds, etc. The movement of portraits and
+statues is particularly characteristic, especially in dim light, and
+under unstable emotional conditions. I own a relief by Ghiberti called
+the “Rise of the Flesh,” in which seven lemurs dance around a corpse and
+sing. If, at night, I put out the lamp in my study and the moon falls on
+the work, the seven lemurs dance as lively as may be during the time it
+takes my eyes to adapt themselves from the lamplight to the moonlight.
+Something similar<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_458" id="page_458"></a>{458}</span> I see on an old carved dresser. The carving is so
+delicate that in dim light it shows tiny heads and flames after the
+fashion of the Catholic church pictures of “poor souls,” in purgatory.
+Under certain conditions of illumination the flames flicker, the heads
+move, and out of the fire the arms raise themselves to the clouds
+floating above. Now this requires no unusual excitement, simply the
+weary sensing of evening, when the eyes turn from prolonged uniform
+reading or writing to something else.<a name="FNanchor_324_324" id="FNanchor_324_324"></a><a href="#Footnote_324_324" class="fnanchor">[324]</a> It has happened to me from my
+earliest childhood. High bodily temperature may easily cause
+hallucinations. Thus, marching soldiers are led to shoot at nonexisting
+animals and apparently-approaching enemies. Uniform and fatiguing mental
+activity is also a source of hallucination. Fechner says that one day
+having performed a long experiment with the help of a stop-watch, he
+heard its beats through the whole evening after. So again when he was
+studying long series of figures he used to see them at night in the dark
+so distinctly that he could read them off.</p>
+
+<p>Then there are illusions of touch which may be criminalistically
+important. A movement of air may be taken for an approaching man. A
+tight collar or cravat may excite the image of being stifled! Old people
+frequently have a sandy taste while eating,&mdash;when this is told the
+thought occurs that it may be due to coarsely powdered arsenic, yet it
+may be merely illusion.</p>
+
+<p>The slightest abnormality makes hallucinations and illusions very easy.
+Persons who are in great danger have all kinds of hallucinations,
+particularly of people. In the court of law, when witnesses who have
+been assaulted testify to having seen people, hallucination may often be
+the basis of their evidence. Hunger again, or loss of blood, gives rise
+to the most various hallucinations. Menstruation and hæmorrhoids may be
+the occasions of definite periodic visions, and great pain may be
+accompanied by hallucinations which begin with the pain, become more
+distinct as it increases, and disappear when it ceases.</p>
+
+<p>It might seem that in this matter, also, the results are destructive and
+that the statements of witnesses are untrue and unreliable. I do not
+assert that our valuation of these statements shall be checked from all
+possible directions, but I do say that much of what we have considered
+as true depends only on illusions in the broad sense of the word and
+that it is our duty before all things rigorously to test everything that
+underlies our researches.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_459" id="page_459"></a>{459}</span></p>
+
+<h5>Section 105. (c) Imaginative Ideas.</h5>
+
+<p>Illusions of sense, hallucinations, and illusions proper taken as a
+group, differ from imaginative representations because the individual
+who has them is more or less passive and subject to the thing from which
+they arise, while with the latter the individual is more active and
+creates new images by the <i>combination</i> of existing or only imagined
+conditions. It does not matter whether these consist of the idea only,
+or whether they are the product of word, manuscript, picture, sculpture,
+music, etc. We have to deal only with their occurrence and their
+results. Of course there is no sharp boundary between imaginative ideas
+and sense-perception, etc. Many phenomena are difficult to classify and
+even language is uncertain in its usage. The notion “illusion” has
+indicated many a false ideal, many a product of incoherent fancy.</p>
+
+<p>The activity of the imagination, taken in the ordinary sense, requires
+analysis first of all. According to Meinong<a name="FNanchor_325_325" id="FNanchor_325_325"></a><a href="#Footnote_325_325" class="fnanchor">[325]</a> there are two kinds of
+imaginative images&mdash;a generative, and a constructive kind. The first
+exhibits elements, the second unites them. Thus: I imagine some familiar
+house, then I reproduce the idea of fire (generative), now I unite these
+two elements, and imagine the house in question in flames
+(constructive). This involves several conditions.</p>
+
+<p>The conditions of generation offer no difficulties. The difficulty lies
+in the constructive aspect of the activity, for we can imagine
+astonishingly little. We can not imagine ourselves in the fourth
+dimension, and although we have always had to make use of such
+quantities, we all have the idea that the quantity A represents, e.g., a
+line, A<sup>2</sup>, a square, A<sup>3</sup>, a cube, but as soon as we have to say what
+image A<sup>5</sup>, A<sup>6</sup>, etc., represents, our mathematical language is at an
+end. Even twelve men or a green flame seen through red glass or two
+people speaking different things can barely be imagined with any
+clearness. We have the elements but we can not construct their
+compounds. This difficulty occurs also in the consideration of certain
+objects. Suppose we are looking at an artistically complete angel; we
+are always bothered by the idea that his wings are much too small to
+enable him to fly. If an angel constructed like a man is to be borne by
+his wings, they must be so gigantic as to be unreproducible by an
+artist. Indeed a person slightly more grubby,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_460" id="page_460"></a>{460}</span> and interested in
+anatomy, will bother, at the sight of the most beautiful statue of an
+angel, concerning the construction of the limbs, the wings, and their
+relation to the skeleton. In certain directions, therefore, the
+imagination is too weak to conceive an ethereal being in human form
+floating in the air. Further, one authority points out that we think
+more frequently of centaurs than of human beings with serpentine bodies,
+not because centaurs are more æsthetic but because horses are more
+massive than serpents. I do not believe this to be the true explanation,
+for otherwise we should have had to imagine people with canine bodies,
+inasmuch as we see as many dogs as horses, if not more. But the fact is
+correct and the explanation may be that we imagine a centaur because of
+the appropriate size, the implied power, and because it is not a wide
+leap from a horseman to a centaur. In short, here also we see that the
+imagination prefers to work where difficulties are fewer. Thus, with the
+ease of imagining an object there goes its definite possibility. I know
+an old gentleman in A and another one in B who have never seen each
+other, but I can easily imagine them together, speaking, playing cards,
+etc., and only with difficulty can I think of them as quarreling or
+betting. In the <i>possibility</i> there is always a certain ease, and this
+is appropriated by the imagination.</p>
+
+<p>It is significant that when others help us and we happen to find
+pleasure therein, we answer to very difficult demands upon the
+imagination. In the opera the deviation from reality is so powerful that
+it seems silly to one unaccustomed to it. But we do not need the
+unaccustomed person. We need only to imagine the most ordinary scene in
+an opera, i.e., a declaration of love, sung; an aria declining it; an
+aria before committing suicide; a singing choir with a moral about this
+misfortune. Has anything even remotely like it ever been seen in real
+life? But we accept it quietly and find it beautiful and affecting
+simply because others perform it without difficulty before our eyes and
+we are willing to believe it possible.</p>
+
+<p>The rule to be derived from all the foregoing is this. Whenever we
+believe a statement to be based on imagination, or to have been learned
+from some imaginative source, we must always connect it with its most
+proximate neighbors, and step by step seek out its elements and then
+compound them in the simplest possible form. We may, in this fashion,
+get perhaps at the proper content of the matter. Of course it need not
+yield another imaginary image. And its failure to do so would be an
+objection if the compound were the end of the work and were to be used
+in itself. But that is not the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_461" id="page_461"></a>{461}</span> case. All that is required is to derive
+a certain starting-point from the hodge-podge of uncertainties and
+unintelligibility. When the construction is made it must be compared
+with all the material at hand and tested by that material. If the two
+agree, and only when they agree, may it be assumed that the
+starting-point has been properly chosen. But not to make this
+construction means to feel around aimlessly, and to give up the job
+before it has been really begun.</p>
+
+<p>Let us take the simplest possible instance of such a situation. In a
+bowling alley, two youths, A and B, had a lively quarrel, in which A
+held the ball in his hand and threatened to throw it at B’s head. B,
+frightened, ran away, A pursued him, after a few steps threw the ball
+into the grass, caught B, and then gave him an easy blow with the flat
+of his hand on the back of his head. B began to wabble, sank to the
+ground, became unconscious, and showed all the signs of a broken head
+(unconsciousness, vomiting, distention of the pupils, etc.). All the
+particular details of the event are unanimously testified to by many
+witnesses, non-partisan friends of A and B, and among them the parish
+priest. Simulation is completely excluded inasmuch as B, a simple
+peasant lad, certainly did not know the symptoms of brain-fever, and
+could not hope for any damages from the absolutely poor A. Let us now
+consider what the nearest facts are. The elements of the case are: B
+sees a heavy ball in A’s hand; A threatens B with it and pursues him; B
+feels a blow on the head. The compounding of these elements results in
+the invincible assumption on B’s part that A had struck him on the head
+with the ball. The consequence of this imaginative feeling was the
+development of all the phenomena that would naturally have followed if B
+had actually been struck on the head.</p>
+
+<p>It would be wrong to say that these cases are so rare as to be useless
+in practice. We simply do not observe them for the reason that we take
+much to be real because it is confirmed reliably. More accurate
+examination would show that many things are merely imaginative. A large
+portion of the contradictions we meet in our cases is explicable by the
+fact that one man is the victim of his fancies and the other is not. The
+great number of such fancies is evinced by the circumstance that there
+can nowhere be found a chasm or boundary between the simplest fancies of
+the normal individual and the impossible imaginings of the lunatic.
+Every man imagines frequently the appearance of an absent friend, of a
+landscape he has once seen. The painter draws even the features of an
+absent<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_462" id="page_462"></a>{462}</span> model; the practised chess-master plays games without having the
+board before him; persons half asleep see the arrival of absentees;
+persons lost in the wood at night see spirits and ghosts; very nervous
+people see them at home, and the lunatic sees the most extraordinary and
+disgusting things&mdash;all these are imaginations beginning with the events
+of the daily life, ending with the visions of diseased humanity. Where
+is the boundary, where a lacuna?</p>
+
+<p>Here, as in all events of the daily life, the natural development of the
+extremely abnormal from the ordinary is the incontrovertible evidence
+for the frequency of these events.</p>
+
+<p>Of course one must not judge by one’s self. Whoever does not believe in
+the devil, and never as a child had an idea of him in mind, will never
+see him as an illusion. And whoever from the beginning possesses a
+restricted, inaccessible imagination, can never understand the other
+fellow who is accompanied by the creatures of his imagination. We
+observe this hundreds of times. We know that everybody sees a different
+thing in clouds, smoke, mountain tops, ink blots, coffee stains, etc.;
+that everybody sees it according to the character and intensity of his
+imagination, and that whatever seems to be confused and unintelligible
+is to be explained as determined by the nature of the person who
+expresses or possesses it.</p>
+
+<p>So in the study of any work of art. Each is the portrayal of some
+generality in concrete form. The concrete is understood by anybody who
+knows enough to recognize it. The generality can be discovered only by
+him who has a similar imagination, and hence each one draws a different
+generalization from the same work of art. This variety holds also in
+scientific questions. I remember how three scholars were trying to
+decipher hieroglyphs, when that branch of archæology was still very
+young. One read the inscription as a declaration of war by a nomadic
+tribe, another as the acquisition of a royal bride from a foreign king;
+and the third as an account of the onions consumed by Jews contributing
+forced labor. “Scientific” views could hardly of themselves have made
+such extraordinary differences; only imagination could have driven
+scholars in such diverse directions.</p>
+
+<p>And how little we can apprehend the imaginations of others or judge
+them! This is shown by the fact that we can no longer tell whether
+children who vivify everything in their imagination see their fancies as
+really alive. It is indubitable that the savage who takes his fetish to
+be alive, the child that endows its doll with life, would wonder if
+fetish and doll of themselves showed signs of<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_463" id="page_463"></a>{463}</span> vitality&mdash;but whether
+they really take them to be alive is unknown to the adult. And if we can
+not sympathetically apprehend the views and imaginings of our own youth,
+how much less possible is it so to apprehend those of other people. We
+have to add to this fact, moreover, the characteristic circumstance that
+less powerful effects must be taken into consideration. The power of
+imagination is much more stimulated by mild, peaceful impressions than
+by vigorous ones. The latter stun and disquiet the soul, while the
+former lead it to self-possession. The play of ideas is much more
+excited by mild tobacco smoke, than by the fiery column of smoking
+Vesuvius; the murmur of the brook is much more stimulating than the roar
+of the stormy sea. If the converse were true it would be far easier to
+observe the effects in others. We see that a great impression is at
+work, our attention is called to its presence, and we are then easily in
+the position of observing its effect in others. But the small,
+insignificant phenomena we observe the less, the less obvious their
+influence upon the imagination of others appears to be. Such small
+impressions pass hundreds of times without effect. For once, however,
+they find a congenial soul, their proper soil, and they begin to
+ferment. But how and when are we to observe this in others?</p>
+
+<p>We rarely can tell whether a man’s imagination is at work or not.
+Nevertheless, there are innumerable stories of what famous men did when
+their imagination was at work. Napoleon had to cut things to pieces.
+Lenau used to scrape holes in the ground. Mozart used to knot and tear
+table-cloth and napkins. Others used to run around; still others used to
+smoke, drink, whistle, etc. But not all people have these
+characteristics, and then we who are to judge the influence of the
+imagination on a witness or a criminal are certainly not present when
+the imagination is at work. To get some notion of the matter through
+witnesses is altogether too unsafe a task. Bain once justly proposed
+keeping the extremities quiet as a means of conquering anger. Thus it
+may be definitely discovered whether a man was quite angry at a given
+instant by finding out whether his hands and feet were quiet at the
+time, but such indices are not given for the activity of imagination.</p>
+
+<p>Moreover, most people in whom the imagination is quite vigorously at
+work know nothing about it. Du Bois-Reymond says somewhere, “I’ve had a
+few good ideas in my life, and have observed myself when I had them.
+They came altogether involuntarily, without my ever having thought of
+them.” This I do not believe. His imagination, which was so creative,
+worked so easily and without<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_464" id="page_464"></a>{464}</span> effort that he was not aware of its
+activity, and moreover, his fundamental ideas were so clear that
+everything fell into lines spontaneously without his being conscious of
+it later. This “working” of the imagination is so effortless to
+fortunate natures that it becomes an ordinary movement. Thus Goethe
+tells of an imaginary flower which broke into its elements, united
+again, broke again, and united in another form, etc. His story reveals
+one of the reasons for the false descriptions of perception. The
+perception is correct when made, then the imagination causes movements
+of ideas and the question follows which of the two was more vigorous,
+the perceptive or the imaginal activity? If the one was intenser, memory
+was correct; if the other, the recollection was erroneous. It is hence
+important, from the point of view of the lawyer, to study the nature and
+intensity of witnesses’ imagination.<a name="FNanchor_326_326" id="FNanchor_326_326"></a><a href="#Footnote_326_326" class="fnanchor">[326]</a> We need only to observe the
+influence of imaginal movements on powerful minds in order to see
+clearly what influence even their weak reflection may have on ordinary
+people. Schopenhauer finds the chief pleasure of every work of art in
+imagination; and Goethe finds that no man experiences or enjoys anything
+without becoming productive.</p>
+
+<p>Most instructive is the compilation of imaginative ideas given by
+Höfler<a name="FNanchor_327_327" id="FNanchor_327_327"></a><a href="#Footnote_327_327" class="fnanchor">[327]</a> and put together from the experiences of scholars,
+investigators, artists, and other important persons. For our purposes it
+would be better to have a number of reliable statements from other
+people which would show how normal individuals were led astray by their
+imaginations. We might then learn approximately what imaginative notions
+might do, and how far their limits extend. Sully calls attention to the
+fact that Dickens’s characters were real to him and that when the novel
+was completed, its dramatis personæ became personal memories. Perhaps
+all imaginative people are likely to take their imaginings as actual
+remembered events and persons. If this happens to a witness, what
+trouble he may cause us!</p>
+
+<p>A physician, Dr. Hadekamp, said that he used to see the flow of blood
+before he cut the vein open. Another physician, Dr. Schmeisser, confirms
+this experience. Such cases are controlled physically, the flow of blood
+can not be seen before the knife is removed. Yet how often, at least
+chronologically, do similar mistakes occur when no such control is
+present? There is the story of a woman who could describe so accurately
+symptoms which resulted from a swallowed needle, that the physicians
+were deceived and undertook<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_465" id="page_465"></a>{465}</span> operations which only served to show that
+the woman had merely imagined it all. A similar case is that of a man
+who believed himself to have swallowed his false teeth. He even had
+serious feelings of choking which immediately disappeared on the
+discovery of the teeth under his night-table. A prominent oculist told
+me that he had once treated for some time a famous scholar because the
+latter so accurately described a weakening of the retina that the
+physician, in spite of his objective discoveries, was deceived and
+learned his mistake only when it appeared that the great scholar
+fortunately had been made game of by his own imagination. Maudsley tells
+how Baron von Swieten once saw burst a rotten corpse of a dog, and, for
+years after, saw the same thing whenever he came to the same place. Many
+people, Goethe, Newton, Shelley, William Black, and others, were able
+completely to visualize past images. Fechner tells of a man who claimed
+voluntarily to excite anywhere on his skin the feeling of pressure,
+heat, and cold, but not of cut, prick or bruise, because such
+imaginations tended to endure a long time. There is the story of another
+man who had a three days’ pain in his finger because he had seen his
+child crush an analogous finger.</p>
+
+<p>Abercrombie tells of an otherwise very excitable person who believed in
+the reality of the luck that a fortune-teller had predicted for him, and
+some authorities hold that practically everybody who eagerly awaits a
+friend hears his step in every sound. Hoppe’s observation that pruritus
+vulvæ excites in imaginative women the illusion of being raped is of
+considerable importance, and we criminalists must watch for it in
+certain cases. Lieber tells of a colored preacher who so vividly painted
+the tortures in hell that he himself could merely cry and grunt for
+minutes at a time. Müller cites a lady who was permitted to smell from
+an empty bottle and who regularly lost consciousness when she was told
+that the bottle contained laughing gas. Women often assert that when
+about to change their homes they often see the new residence in dreams
+just as it really appears later on. Then there is a story of a man blind
+for fourteen years who nevertheless saw the faces of acquaintances and
+was so troubled thereby that the famous Graefe severed his optic nerve
+and so released him from his imagination.</p>
+
+<p>Taine describes the splendid scene in which Balzac once told Mad. de
+Girardin that he intended to give Sandeau a horse. He did not do so, but
+talked so much about it that he used to ask Sandeau how the horse was.
+Taine comments that it is clear that the starting point of such an
+illusion is a voluntary fiction. The person<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_466" id="page_466"></a>{466}</span> in question knows it as
+such in the beginning but forgets it at the end. Such false memories are
+numerous among barbarous peoples and among raw, untrained, and childish
+minds. They see a simple fact; the more they think of it the more they
+see in it; they magnify and decorate it with environing circumstances,
+and finally, unite all the details into a whole in memory. Then they are
+unable to distinguish what is true from what is not. Most legends
+develop in this way. A peasant assured Taine that he saw his sister’s
+soul on the day she died,&mdash;though it was really the light of a brandy
+bottle in the sunset.</p>
+
+<p>In conclusion, I want to cite a case I have already mentioned, which
+seems to me significant. As student I visited during vacation a village,
+one of whose young peasant inhabitants had gone to town for the first
+time in his life. He was my vacation play-mate from earliest childhood,
+and known to me as absolutely devoted to the truth. When he returned
+from his visit, he told me of the wonders of the city, the climax of
+which was the menagerie he had visited. He described what he saw very
+well, but also said that he had seen a battle between an anaconda and a
+lion. The serpent swallowed the lion and then many Moors came and killed
+the serpent. As was immediately to be inferred and as I verified on my
+return, this battle was to be seen only on the advertising posters which
+are hung in front of every menagerie. The lad’s imagination had been so
+excited by what he had seen that day that the real and the imagined were
+thoroughly interfused. How often may this happen to our witnesses!</p>
+
+<p>If the notion of imagination is to be limited to the activity of
+representation, we must class under it the premonitions and forewarnings
+which are of influence not only among the uneducated. Inasmuch as
+reliable observations, not put together a posteriori, are lacking,
+nothing exact can be said about them. That innumerable assertions and a
+semi-scientific literature about the matter exists, is generally
+familiar. And it is undeniable that predictions, premonitions, etc., may
+be very vivid, and have considerable somatic influence. Thus, prophecy
+of approaching death, certain threats or knowledge of the fact that an
+individual’s death is being prayed for, etc., may have deadly effect on
+excited people. The latter superstition especially, has considerable
+influence. Praying for death, etc., is aboriginal. It has been traced
+historically into the twelfth century and is made use of today. Twelve
+years ago I was told of a case in which an old lady was killed because
+an enemy of hers had the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_467" id="page_467"></a>{467}</span> death-mass read for her. The old lady simply
+died of fright. In some degree we must pay attention to even such
+apparently remote questions.</p>
+
+<h5>(d) <i>Misunderstandings.</i></h5>
+
+<h5>Section 106. (1) Verbal Misunderstandings.<a name="FNanchor_328_328" id="FNanchor_328_328"></a><a href="#Footnote_328_328" class="fnanchor">[328]</a></h5>
+
+<p>Here too it is not possible to draw an absolutely definite boundary
+between acoustic illusions and misunderstandings. Verbally we may say
+that the former occur when the mistake, at least in its main
+characteristic, is due to the aural mechanism. The latter is intended
+when there is a mistake in the comprehension of a word or of a sentence.
+In this case the ear has acted efficiently, but the mind did not know
+how to handle what had been heard and so supplements it by something
+else in connection with matter more or less senseless. Hence,
+misunderstandings are so frequent with foreign words. Compare the
+singing of immigrant school children, “My can’t three teas of tea” for
+“My country ’tis of thee,” or “Pas de lieu Rhone que nous” with “Paddle
+your own canoe.”<a name="FNanchor_329_329" id="FNanchor_329_329"></a><a href="#Footnote_329_329" class="fnanchor">[329]</a></p>
+
+<p>The question of misunderstandings, their development and solution, is of
+great importance legally, since not only witnesses but clerks and
+secretaries are subject to them. If they are undiscovered they lead to
+dangerous mistakes, and their discovery causes great trouble in getting
+at the correct solution.<a name="FNanchor_330_330" id="FNanchor_330_330"></a><a href="#Footnote_330_330" class="fnanchor">[330]</a> The determination of texts requires not
+only effort but also psychological knowledge and the capacity of putting
+one’s self in the place of him who has committed the error. To question
+him may often be impossible because of the distance, and may be useless
+because he no longer knows what he said or wanted to say. When we
+consider what a tremendous amount of work classical philologists, etc.,
+have to put into the determination of the proper form of some misspelled
+word, we can guess how needful it is to have the textual form of a
+protocol absolutely correct. The innocence or guilt of a human being may
+depend upon a misspelled syllable. Now, to determine the proper and
+correct character of the text is as a rule difficult, and in most cases
+impossible. Whether a witness or the secretary has misunderstood, makes
+no difference in the nature of the work. Its importance remains
+unaffected, but in the latter case the examining justice, in so far as
+he correctly<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_468" id="page_468"></a>{468}</span> remembers what he has heard, may avoid error. The mistakes
+of the secretaries may in any event be reduced to a minimum if all
+protocols are read immediately, and not by the secretary but by the
+examining judge himself. If the writer reads them he makes the same
+mistakes, and only a very intelligent witness will perceive them and
+call attention to them. Unless it so happens the mistake remains.</p>
+
+<p>I cite a few of the errors that I have observed. From a protocol with
+the suspect: “On the twelfth of the month I left Marie Tomizil” (instead
+of, “my domicile”). Instead of “irrelevant,”&mdash;“her elephant.” Very often
+words are written in, which the dictator only says by the way; e.g.,
+“come in,” “go on,” “hurry up,” “look out,” etc. If such words get into
+the text at all it is difficult to puzzle out how they got in. How
+easily and frequently people misunderstand is shown by the oath they
+take. Hardly a day passes on which at least one witness does not say
+some absolute nonsense while repeating it.</p>
+
+<p>The discovery of such errors and the substitution of what is correct
+brings us back to the old rule that the mere study of our own cases can
+not teach us anything, since the field of view is too narrow, the
+material too uniform, and the stimulation too light. Other disciplines
+must be studied and examples from the daily life must be sought. Goethe,
+in particular, can teach us here. In his little monograph, “Hör-,
+Schreib-and Druckfehler,” he first tells that he had discovered the most
+curious mistakes in hearing when he reread dictated letters, mistakes
+which would have caused great difficulty if not immediately looked
+after. The only means for the solution of these errors is, he says, “to
+read the matter aloud, get thoroughly into its meaning and repeat the
+unintelligible word so long that the right one occurs in the flow of
+speech. Nobody hears all that he knows, nobody is conscious of all that
+he senses, is able to imagine, or to think. Persons who have never been
+to school tend to turn into German all Latin and Greek expressions. The
+same thing happens just as much with words from foreign languages whose
+pronunciation is unknown to the writer ... and in dictation it occurs
+that a hearer sets his inner inclination, passion, and need in the place
+of the word he has heard, and substitutes for it the name of some loved
+person, or some much desired good morsel.” A better device for the
+detection of errors than that suggested by Goethe cannot be found, but
+the protocol or whatever else it may be must be <i>read</i>; otherwise
+nothing helps. Many mistakes are due, as<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_469" id="page_469"></a>{469}</span> Münsterberg points out, to the
+fact that the word is seen for just an instant, and it is easy to
+misread a word so seen if some similar word had been heard or seen just
+before. The most senseless corruptions of text occur often, and it seems
+extraordinary how they may be overlooked. Andresen points out that the
+reason for all popular explanations is the consciousness of language
+which struggles against allowing any name to be an empty sound, and
+still more, strives to give each term a separate meaning and an
+indubitable intelligibility. The human mind acts here instinctively and
+naïvely without any reflection, and is determined by feeling or
+accident. Then it makes all kinds of transformations of foreign words.</p>
+
+<p>This fits with the analogous observation that a group of Catholic patron
+saints depend for their character on their names. Santa Clara makes
+clear vision; St. Lucy sounds like lucida, and is the saint of the
+blind; St. Mamertus is analogous to mamma, the feminine breast, and is
+the patron saint of nurses and nursing women. Instructive substitutions
+are Jack Spear, for Shakespeare, Apolda for Apollo; Great victory at le
+Mans, for Great victory at Lehmanns; “plaster depot,” for “place de
+Repos.”</p>
+
+<p>Andresen warns us against going too far in analysis. Exaggerations are
+easy, particularly when we want to get at the source of a
+misunderstanding because of the illegibility of the style. Our task
+consists, first of all, in getting at the correctness of what has been
+said or written, otherwise we have nothing whatever to go by. Only when
+that is quite impossible may we assume misunderstandings and seek them
+out. The procedure then must be necessarily linguistic and psychological
+and requires the consultation of experts in both fields. Certain
+instructive misunderstandings of the most obvious sort occur when the
+half-educated drop their dialect, or thoroughly educated people alter
+the dialectical expressions and try to translate them into high German.</p>
+
+<p>It is frequently important to understand the curious transposition in
+meaning which foreign words get, e.g., commode, fidel, and famos. A
+commode gentleman means in German, a pliable person; and a fidel lad is
+not a loyal soul, but a merry, pleasure-seeking one; famos&mdash;originally
+“famous,”&mdash;means expensive or pleasant.</p>
+
+<p>It may be not unimportant to understand how names are altered. Thus, I
+know a man who curiously enough was called Kammerdiener, whose father
+was an immigrant Italian called Comadina, and I know two old men,
+brothers, who lived in different parts of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_470" id="page_470"></a>{470}</span> country, one of whom was
+called Joseph Waldhauser, the other Leopold Balthasar. In the course of
+the generation the name had so completely changed that it is impossible
+to say which is correct. Again, a family bearing the name Theobald is of
+French origin and used really to be called Du Val. In Steiermark, which
+had been over-run with Turks two hundred years ago, there are many
+family names of Turkish origin. Thus Hasenöhrl may come from Hassan Öri;
+Salata from Saladin; Mullenbock, from Mullei Beg; Sullman from Soliman.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 107. (2) <i>Other Misunderstandings.</i></h5>
+
+<p>The quantitative method of modern psychophysics may lead to an exact
+experimental determination of such false conceptions and
+misunderstandings as those indicated above, but it is still too young to
+have any practical value. It is vitiated by the fact that it requires
+artificial conditions and that the results have reference to artificial
+conditions. Wundt has tried to simplify apparatus, and to bring
+experiment into connection with real life. But there is still a far cry
+from the psychological laboratory to the business of life. With regard
+to misunderstandings the case is certainly so. Most occur when we do not
+hear distinctly what another person is saying and supplement it with our
+own notions. Here the misunderstanding is in no sense linguistic, for
+words do not receive a false meaning. The misunderstanding lies in the
+failure to comprehend the sense of what we have heard, and the
+substitution of incorrect interpretations. Sometimes we may quite
+understand an orator without having heard every word by simply adding
+these interpretations, but the correctness of the additions is always
+questionable, and not only nature and training, but momentary conditions
+and personal attitude, make a considerable difference. The worst thing
+about the matter is the fact that nobody is likely to be aware that he
+has made any interpretations. Yet we do so not only in listening, but in
+looking. I see on a roof in the distance four white balls about the
+nature of which I am uncertain. While looking, I observe that one of the
+balls stretches out head and tail, flaps its wings, etc., and I
+immediately think, “Oh, those are four pigeons.” Now it may be true that
+they are four pigeons, but what justification had I for such an
+interpretation and generalization from the action of one pigeon? In this
+instance, no doubt, it would have been difficult for me to make a
+mistake, but there are many cases which are not so obvious and where the
+interpretation is nevertheless made, and then the misunderstanding<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_471" id="page_471"></a>{471}</span> is
+ready to hand. Once my wife and I saw from our seats in the car a
+chimney-sweep who stood in a railroad station. As he bent over, looking
+for a lost coin, my very myopic wife cried out, “Look at the beautiful
+Newfoundland dog.” Now this is a conceivable illusion for a
+short-sighted individual, but on what basis could my good lady interpret
+what she saw into the judgment that it was a Newfoundland dog, and a
+beautiful one at that? Taine illustrates a similar process with the
+story of a child who asked why his mother had put on a white dress. He
+was told that his mother was going to a party and had to put on her
+holiday clothes for that purpose. After that, whenever the child saw
+anybody in holiday attire, green or red or any other color, it cried
+out,&mdash;“Oh, you have a white dress on!” We adults do exactly the same
+thing. As Meinong says so well, we confuse identity with agreement. This
+proposition would save us from a great many mistakes and
+misunderstandings if kept in mind.</p>
+
+<p>How frequently and hastily we build things out is shown by a simple but
+psychologically important game. Ask anybody at hand how the four and the
+six look on his watch, and let him draw it. Everybody calmly draws, IV
+and VI, but if you look at your watch you will find that the four looks
+so, IIII, and that there is no six. This raises the involuntary
+question, “Now what do we see when we look at the watch if we do not see
+the figures?” and the further question, “Do we make such beautiful
+mistakes with all things?”</p>
+
+<p>I assert that only that has been reliably seen which has been drawn. My
+father asked my drawing teacher to teach me not to draw but to observe.
+And my teacher, instead of giving me copies, followed the instruction by
+giving me first one domino, then two, then three, one upon the other,
+then a match box, a book, a candlestick, etc. And even today, I know
+accurately only those objects in the household which I had drawn. Yet
+frequently we demand of our witnesses minutely accurate descriptions of
+things they had seen only once, and hastily at that.</p>
+
+<p>And even if the thing has been seen frequently, local and temporal
+problems may make great difficulties. With regard to the first class of
+problems, Exner<a name="FNanchor_331_331" id="FNanchor_331_331"></a><a href="#Footnote_331_331" class="fnanchor">[331]</a> cites the example of his journey from Gmunden to
+Vienna in which, because of a sharp curve in the road, he saw everything
+at Lambach reversed, although the whole stretch of road was familiar to
+him. The railroad trains, the public buildings, the rivers, all the
+notable places seemed to lie on the wrong side. This<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_472" id="page_472"></a>{472}</span> is particularly
+characteristic if a city is entered, especially at night, through a
+railroad terminal, and the locomotive is attached to the rear of the
+train. In the daily life the alteration of objects by locations is
+familiar. How different a landscape seems at night or in winter,
+although it has been observed hundreds of times during the day or in
+summer. It is good to look around frequently on the road, particularly
+at cross-roads, if the way back is to be kept in mind. Even the starting
+point may have a disturbing effect on the sense of place. For example,
+if you have traveled numerous times on the train from A to B, and for
+once you start your journey from C, which is beyond A, the familiar
+stretch from A to B looks quite different and may even become
+unrecognizable. The estimation of time may exercise considerable
+influence on such and similar local effects. Under most circumstances we
+tend, as is known, to reduce subjectively great time-spans, and hence,
+when more time than customary is required by an event, this becomes
+subjectively smaller, not only for the whole event but also for each of
+its parts. In this way what formerly seemed to extend through an
+apparently long period seems now to be compressed into a shorter one.
+Then everything appears too soon and adds to the foreign aspect of the
+matter.</p>
+
+<p>The case is similar for time-differences. Uphues<a name="FNanchor_332_332" id="FNanchor_332_332"></a><a href="#Footnote_332_332" class="fnanchor">[332]</a> cites an example:
+“If a person has not heard a bell or anything else for some time and
+then hears it again, the question whether the object existed in the
+interval does not arise. It is recognized again and that is enough.”
+Certainly it is enough for <i>us</i>, but whether the thing is true, whether
+really the same phenomena or only similar ones have been noted, is
+another question rarely asked. If the man or the bell is the same that
+we now perceive anew, the inference is involuntarily drawn that they
+must have persisted, but we eliminate altogether the lapse of time and
+suppose unconsciously that the entity in question must have been on the
+spot through the whole period. One needs only to observe how quickly
+witnesses tend to identify objects presented for identification: e.g.
+knives, letters, purses, etc. To receive for identification and to say
+yes, is often the work of an instant. The witness argues, quite
+unconsciously, in this fashion: “I have given the judge only one clew
+(perhaps different from the one in question), now here again is a clew,
+hence, it must be the one I gave him.” That the matter may have changed,
+that there has been some confusion, that perhaps<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_473" id="page_473"></a>{473}</span> other witnesses have
+given similar things, is not at all considered. Here again we have to
+beware of confusing of identities with agreements.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, we must consider fatigue and other conditions of excitation.
+Everybody knows how things read late at night seem absolute nonsense,
+and become simple and obvious the next morning. In the same way, we may
+take a thing to be thus and so while tired in the evening, and in the
+morning see our notion to be a coarse misunderstanding. Hoppe tells of a
+hospital interne who became so excited and tired through frequent calls
+that he heard the tick-tack of his watch as “Oh-doc-tor.” A witness who
+has been subjected to a prolonged and fatiguing examination falls into a
+similar condition and knows at the end much less than at the beginning.
+Finally, he altogether misunderstands the questions put to him. The
+situation becomes still worse when the defendant has been so subjected
+to examination, and becomes involved, because of fatigue, etc., in the
+famous “contradictions.” If “convincing contradictions” occur at the end
+of a long examination of a witness or a defendant, it is well to find
+out how long the examination took. If it took much time the
+contradictions mean little.</p>
+
+<p>The same phenomena of fatigue may even lead to suspicion of negligence.
+Doctors, trained nurses, nursery maids, young mothers, etc., who became
+guilty of “negligence” of invalids and children have, in many instances,
+merely “misunderstood” because of great fatigue. It is for this reason
+that the numerous sad cases occur in which machine-tenders,
+switch-tenders, etc., are punished for negligence. If a man of this
+class, year after year, serves twenty-three hours, then rests seven
+hours, then serves twenty-three hours again, etc., he is inevitably
+overtaken by fatigue and nervous relaxation in which signals, warnings,
+calls, etc., are simply misunderstood. Statistics tend to show that the
+largest number of accidents occur at the end of a period of service,
+i.e., at the time of greatest fatigue. But even if this were not the
+case some reference must be made to chronic fatigue. If a man gets only
+seven hours’ rest after intense labor, part of the fatigue-elements must
+have remained. They accumulate in time, finally they summate, and
+exercise their influence even at the beginning of the service.
+Socialists complain justly about this matter. The most responsible
+positions are occupied by chronically fatigued individuals, and when
+nature extorts her rights we punish the helpless men.</p>
+
+<p>The case is the same with people who have much to do with<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_474" id="page_474"></a>{474}</span> money&mdash;tax,
+post, bank, and treasury officials, who are obliged to attend rigorously
+to monotonous work&mdash;the reception and distribution of money, easily grow
+tired. Men of experience in this profession have assured me that they
+often, when fatigued, take money, count it, sign a receipt and
+then&mdash;return the money to the person who brought it. Fortunately they
+recognize their mistake in the astonishment of the receiver. If,
+however, they do not recognize it, or the receiver is sly enough calmly
+to walk off with the money, if the sum is great and restitution not
+easily possible, and if, moreover, the official happens to be in the bad
+graces of his superiors, he does not have much chance in the prosecution
+for embezzlement, which is more likely than not to be begun against
+him.<a name="FNanchor_333_333" id="FNanchor_333_333"></a><a href="#Footnote_333_333" class="fnanchor">[333]</a> Any affection, any stimulus, any fatigue may tend to make
+people passive, and hence, less able to defend themselves.</p>
+
+<p>A well known Berlin psychiatrist tells the following story: “When I was
+still an apprentice in an asylum, I always carried the keys of the cells
+with me. One day I went to the opera, and had a seat in the parquette.
+Between the acts I went into the corridor. On returning I made a
+mistake, and saw before me a door which had the same kind of lock as the
+cell-doors in the asylum, stuck my hand into my pocket, took out my
+key&mdash;which fitted, and found myself suddenly in a loge. Now would it not
+be possible in this way, purely by reflex action, to turn into a
+burglar?” Of course we should hardly believe a known burglar if he were
+to tell us such a story.</p>
+
+<h5>(e) <i>The Lie.</i></h5>
+
+<h5>Section 108. (1) 1. General Considerations.</h5>
+
+<p>In a certain sense a large part of the criminalist’s work is nothing
+more than a battle against lies. He has to discover the truth and must
+fight the opposite. He meets this opposite at every step. The accused,
+often one who has confessed completely, many of the witnesses, try to
+get advantage of him, and frequently he has to struggle with himself
+when he perceives that he is working in a direction which he can not
+completely justify. Utterly to vanquish the lie, particularly in our
+work, is of course, impossible, and to describe its nature exhaustively
+is to write a natural history of mankind. We must limit ourselves to the
+consideration of a definite number of means, great and small, which will
+make our work easier,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_475" id="page_475"></a>{475}</span> will warn us of the presence of deception, and
+will prevent its playing a part. I have attempted to compile forms of it
+according to intent, and will here add a few words.<a name="FNanchor_334_334" id="FNanchor_334_334"></a><a href="#Footnote_334_334" class="fnanchor">[334]</a></p>
+
+<p>That by the lie is meant the intentional deliverance of a conscious
+untruth for the purpose of deception is as familiar as the variety of
+opinion concerning the permissibility of so-called necessary lies, of
+the pious, of the pedagogic, and the conventional. We have to assume
+here the standpoint of absolute rigorism, and to say with Kant,<a name="FNanchor_335_335" id="FNanchor_335_335"></a><a href="#Footnote_335_335" class="fnanchor">[335]</a>
+“The lie in its mere form is man’s crime against his own nature, and is
+a vice which must make a man disreputable in his own eyes.” We can not
+actually think of a single case in which we find any ground for lying.
+For we lawyers need have no pedagogical duties, nor are we compelled to
+teach people manners, and a situation in which we may save ourselves by
+lying is unthinkable. Of course, we will not speak all we know; indeed,
+a proper silence is a sign of a good criminalist, but we need never lie.
+The beginner must especially learn that the “good intention” to serve
+the case and the so-called excusing “eagerness to do one’s duty,” by
+which little lies are sometimes justified, have absolutely no worth. An
+incidental word as if the accomplice had confessed; an expression
+intending to convey that you know more than you do; a perversion of some
+earlier statement of the witness, and similar “permissible tricks,” can
+not be cheaper than the cheapest things. Their use results only in one’s
+own shame, and if they fail, the defense has the advantage. The lost
+ground can never be regained.<a name="FNanchor_336_336" id="FNanchor_336_336"></a><a href="#Footnote_336_336" class="fnanchor">[336]</a></p>
+
+<p>Nor is it permissible to lie by gestures and actions any more than by
+words. These, indeed, are dangerous, because a movement of the hand, a
+reaching for the bell, a sudden rising, may be very effective under
+circumstances. They easily indicate that the judge knows more about the
+matter than he really does, or suggest that his information is greater,
+etc. They make the witness or defendant think that the judge is already
+certain about the nature of the case; that he has resolved upon
+important measures, and other such things. Now movements of this kind
+are not recorded, and in case the denial of blame is not serious, a
+young criminalist allows himself easily to be misled by his desire for
+efficiency. Even accident may help. When I was examining justice I had
+to hear the testimony of a rather weak-minded lad, who was suspected of
+having stolen and hidden a large sum of money. The lad firmly and
+cleverly denied<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_476" id="page_476"></a>{476}</span> his guilt. During the examination a comrade entered who
+had something official to tell me, and inasmuch as I was in the midst of
+dictation he wanted to wait until the end of the sentence. Happening to
+see two swords that had just been brought from a student duel, he took
+one in his hand and examined the hilt, the point and the blade. The
+defendant hardly saw this action before he got frightened, raised his
+hands, ran to the sword-examiner, crying “I confess, I confess! I took
+the money and hid it in the hollow hickory tree.”</p>
+
+<p>This event was rather funny. Another, however, led, I will not say to
+self-reproach, but to considerable disquiet on my part. A man was
+suspected of having killed his two small children. As the bodies were
+not found I undertook a careful search of his home, of the oven, of the
+cellar, the drains, etc. In the latter we found a great deal of animal
+entrails, apparently rabbits. As at the time of this discovery I had no
+notion of where they belonged, I took them, and in the meantime had them
+preserved in alcohol. The great glass receptacle which contained them
+stood on my writing table when I had the accused brought in to answer
+certain questions about one or two suspicious matters we had discovered.
+He looked anxiously at the glass, and said suddenly, “Since you have got
+it all, I must confess.” Almost reflexly I asked, “Where are the
+corpses?” and he immediately answered that he had hidden them in the
+environs of the city, where they were found. Clearly, the glass
+containing the intestines had led him to the notion that the bodies were
+found and in part preserved here, and when I asked him where they were
+he did not observe how illogical the question would be if the bodies had
+really been found. The whole thing was a matter of accident, but I still
+have the feeling that the confession was not properly obtained; that I
+should have thought of the effect of the glass and should have provided
+against it before the accused was brought before me.</p>
+
+<p>In the daily life such an open procedure is, of course, impossible, and
+if the circumstances were to be taken for what they seem we should
+frequently make mistakes. Everybody knows, e.g., how very few happy
+marriages there are. But how do we know it? Only because the fortune of
+close observation always indicates that the relation is in no way so
+happy as one would like it to be. And externally? Has anybody ever seen
+in even half-educated circles a street quarrel between husband and wife?
+How well-mannered they are in society, and how little they show their
+disinclination for<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_477" id="page_477"></a>{477}</span> each other. And all this is a lie in word and deed,
+and when we have to deal with it in a criminal case we judge according
+to the purely external things that we and others have observed. Social
+reasons, deference for public opinion which must often be deceived, the
+feeling of duty toward children, not infrequently compel deception of
+the world. The number of fortunate marriages is mainly
+overestimated.<a name="FNanchor_337_337" id="FNanchor_337_337"></a><a href="#Footnote_337_337" class="fnanchor">[337]</a></p>
+
+<p>We see the same thing with regard to property, the attitude of parents
+and children, the relation between superiors and inferiors, even in the
+condition of health,&mdash;conduct in all these cases does not reveal the
+true state of affairs. One after another, people are fooled, until
+finally the world believes what it is told and the court hears the
+belief sworn to as absolute truth. It is, perhaps, not too much to say
+that we are far more deceived by appearances than by words. Public
+opinion should least of all impose on us. And yet it is through public
+opinion that we learn the external relations of the people who come
+before us. It is called vox populi and is really rot. The phrases, “they
+say,” “everybody knows,” “nobody doubts,” “as most neighbors agree,” and
+however else these seeds of dishonesty and slander may be
+designated&mdash;all these phrases must disappear from our papers and
+procedure. They indicate only appearances&mdash;only what people <i>wanted</i> to
+have seen. They do not reveal the real and the hidden. Law too
+frequently makes normative use of the maxim that the bad world says it
+and the good one believes it. It even constructs its judgments thereby.</p>
+
+<p>Not infrequently the uttered lies must be supported by actions. It is
+well-known that we seem merry, angry, or friendly only when we excite
+these feelings by certain gestures, imitations and physical attitudes.
+Anger is not easily simulated with an unclenched fist, immovable feet,
+and uncontracted brow. These gestures are required for the appearance of
+real anger. And how very real it becomes, and how very real all other
+emotions become because of the appropriate gestures and actions, is
+familiar. We learn, hence, that the earnest assertor of his innocence
+finally begins to believe in it a little, or altogether. And lying
+witnesses still more frequently begin to hold their assertions to be
+true. As these people do not show the common marks of the lie their
+treatment is extraordinarily difficult.</p>
+
+<p>It is, perhaps, right to accuse our age of especial inclination for that
+far-reaching lie which makes its perpetrator believe in his own<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_478" id="page_478"></a>{478}</span>
+creation. Kiefer<a name="FNanchor_338_338" id="FNanchor_338_338"></a><a href="#Footnote_338_338" class="fnanchor">[338]</a> cites examples of such “self-deceiving liars.”
+What drives one to despair is the fact that these people are such clever
+liars that they make a game of the business. It is a piece of luck that
+these lies, like every lie, betray themselves by the characteristic
+intensity with which they seek to assume the appearance of truth. This
+important mark of the lie can not be too clearly indicated. The number
+and vigor of lies must show that we more frequently fail to think of
+their possibility than if they did not exist at all. A long time ago I
+read an apparently simple story which has helped me frequently in my
+criminalistic work. Karl was dining with his parents and two cousins,
+and after dinner said at school, “There were fourteen of us at table
+to-day.” “How is it possible?” “Karl has lied again.” How frequently
+does an event seem inexplicable, mysterious, puzzling. But if you think
+that here perhaps, “Karl has lied again,” you may be led to more
+accurate observation and hence, to the discovery of some hiatus by means
+of which the whole affair may be cleared up.</p>
+
+<p>But frequently contradictions are still more simply explained by the
+fact that they are not contradictions, and by the fact that we see them
+as such through inadequate comprehension of what has been said, and
+ignorance of the conditions. We often pay too much attention to lies and
+contradictions. There is the prejudice that the accused is really the
+criminal, and that moves us to give unjustified reasons for little
+accidental facts, which lead afterwards to apparent contradictions. This
+habit is very old.</p>
+
+<p>If we inquire when the lie has least influence on mankind we find it to
+be under emotional stress, especially during anger, joy, fear, and on
+the death-bed.<a name="FNanchor_339_339" id="FNanchor_339_339"></a><a href="#Footnote_339_339" class="fnanchor">[339]</a> We all know of various cases in which a man, angry
+at the betrayal of an accomplice, happy over approaching release, or
+terrified by the likelihood of arrest, etc., suddenly declares, “Now I
+am going to tell the truth.” And this is a typical form which introduces
+the subsequent confession. As a rule the resolution to tell the truth
+does not last long. If the emotion passes, the confession is regretted,
+and much thought is given to the withdrawal of a part of the confession.
+If the protocols concerning the matter are very long this regret is
+easily observable toward the end.</p>
+
+<p>That it is not easy to lie during intoxication is well known.<a name="FNanchor_340_340" id="FNanchor_340_340"></a><a href="#Footnote_340_340" class="fnanchor">[340]</a> What<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_479" id="page_479"></a>{479}</span>
+is said on the death-bed may always, especially if the confessor is
+positively religious, be taken to be true. It is known that under such
+circumstances the consciousness of even mentally disturbed people and
+idiots becomes remarkably clear, and very often astonishing
+illuminations result. If the mind of the dying be already clouded it is
+never difficult to determine the fact, inasmuch as particularly such
+confessions are distinguished by the great simplicity and clearness of
+the very few words used.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 109. (2) <i>The Pathoformic Lie.</i></h5>
+
+<p>As in many other forms of human expression, there is a stage in the
+telling of lies where the normal condition has passed and the diseased
+one has not yet begun. The extreme limit on the one side is the harmless
+story-teller, the hunter, the tourist, the student, the lieutenant,&mdash;all
+of whom boast a little; on the other side there is the completely insane
+paralytic who tells about his millions and his monstrous achievements.
+The characteristic pseudologia phantastica, the lie of advanced
+hysteria, in which people write anonymous letters and send messages to
+themselves, to their servants, to high officials and to clergy, in order
+to cast suspicion on them, are all diseased. The characteristic lie of
+the epileptics, and perhaps also, the lies of people who are close to
+the idiocy of old age, mixes up what has been experienced, read and
+told, and represents it as the experience of the speaker.<a name="FNanchor_341_341" id="FNanchor_341_341"></a><a href="#Footnote_341_341" class="fnanchor">[341]</a></p>
+
+<p>Still there is a class of people who can not be shown to be in any sense
+diseased, and who still lie in such a fashion that they can not be well.
+The development of such lies may probably be best assigned to
+progressive habituation. People who commit these falsehoods may be
+people of talent, and, as Goethe says of himself, may have “desire to
+fabulate.” Most of them are people, I will not say who are desirous of
+honor, but who are still so endowed that they would be glad to play some
+grand part and are eager to push their own personality into the
+foreground. If they do not succeed in the daily life, they try to
+convince themselves and others by progressively broader stories that
+they really hold a prominent position. I had and still have opportunity
+to study accurately several well-developed types of these people. They
+not only have in common the fact that they lie, they also have common
+themes. They tell how important<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_480" id="page_480"></a>{480}</span> personages asked their advice, sought
+their company and honored them. They suggest their great influence, are
+eager to grant their patronage and protection, suggest their great
+intimacy with persons of high position, exaggerate when they speak of
+their property, their achievements, and their work, and broadly deny all
+events in which they are set at a disadvantage. The thing by which they
+are to be distinguished from ordinary “story-tellers,” and which defines
+what is essentially pathoformic in them, is the fact that they lie
+without considering that the untrue is discovered immediately, or very
+soon. Thus they will tell somebody that he has to thank their patronage
+for this or that, although the person in question knows the case to be
+absolutely different. Or again, they tell somebody of an achievement of
+theirs and the man happens to have been closely concerned with that
+particular work and is able to estimate properly their relation to it.
+Again they promise things which the auditor knows they can not perform,
+and they boast of their wealth although at least one auditor knows its
+amount accurately. If their stories are objected to they have some
+extraordinarily unskilful explanation, which again indicates the
+pathoformic character of their minds. Their lies most resemble those of
+pregnant women, or women lying-in, also that particular form of lie
+which prostitutes seem typically addicted to, and which are cited by
+Carlier, Lombroso, Ferrero, as representative of them, and as a
+professional mark of identification. I also suspect that the essentially
+pathoformic lie has some relation to sex, perhaps to perversity or
+impotence, or exaggerated sexual impulse. And I believe that it occurs
+more frequently than is supposed, although it is easily known in even
+its slightly developed stages. I once believed that the pathoformic lie
+was not of great importance in our work, because on the one hand, it is
+most complete and distinct when it deals with the person of the speaker,
+and on the other it is so characteristic that it must be recognized
+without fail by anybody who has had the slightest experience with it.
+But since, I have noticed that the pathoformic lie plays an enormous
+part in the work of the criminalist and deserves full consideration.</p>
+
+<p>TOPIC IV. ISOLATED SPECIAL CONDITIONS.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 110. (a) Sleep and Dream.</h5>
+
+<p>If a phenomenon occurs frequently, its frequency must have a certain
+relation to its importance to the criminalist. Hence, sleep<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_481" id="page_481"></a>{481}</span> and dream
+must in any event be of great influence upon our task. As we rarely hear
+them mentioned, we have underestimated their significance. The
+literature dealing with them is comparatively rich.<a name="FNanchor_342_342" id="FNanchor_342_342"></a><a href="#Footnote_342_342" class="fnanchor">[342]</a></p>
+
+<p>The physician is to be called in not only when we are dealing with
+conditions of sleep and dream which are in the least diseased, i.e.,
+abnormally intense sleepiness, sleep-walking, hallucinatory dreams,
+etc., but also when the physiological side of sleep and dream are in
+question, e.g., the need of sleep, the effect of insomnia, of normal
+sleepiness, etc. The criminalist must study also these things in order
+to know the kind of situation he is facing and when he is to call in the
+physician for assistance. Ignorance of the matter means spoiling a case
+by unskilful interrogation and neglect of the most important things. At
+the very least, it makes the work essentially more difficult.</p>
+
+<p>But in many cases the criminalist must act alone since in those cases
+there is neither disease nor a physiological condition by way of
+explanation but merely a simple fact of the daily life which any
+educated layman must deal with for himself. Suppose, e.g., we are
+studying the influence of a dream upon our emotions. It has been shown
+that frequently one may spend a whole day under the influence of a
+dream, that one’s attitude is happy and merry as if something pleasant
+had been learned, or one is cross, afraid, excited, as if something
+unhappy had happened. The reason and source of these attitudes is
+frequently a pleasant or unpleasant dream, and sometimes this may be at
+work subconsciously and unremembered. We have already shown that
+so-called errors of memory are to a large extent attributable to
+dreams.<a name="FNanchor_343_343" id="FNanchor_343_343"></a><a href="#Footnote_343_343" class="fnanchor">[343]</a></p>
+
+<p>This effect of the dream may be of significance in women, excitable men,
+and especially in children. There are children who consider their dreams
+as real experiences, and women who are unable to distinguish between
+dreams and real experience, while the senile and aged can not
+distinguish dreams and memories because their memories and the power to
+distinguish have become weakened.<a name="FNanchor_344_344" id="FNanchor_344_344"></a><a href="#Footnote_344_344" class="fnanchor">[344]</a></p>
+
+<p>I know of an eight-year-old child who after dinner had gone looking for
+chestnuts with a man. In the evening it came home happy but woke up in
+tears and confessed that the man in question had<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_482" id="page_482"></a>{482}</span> raped it. Another case
+concerns a great burglary which had caused its victims considerable
+excitement. The second day after the event the ten or twelve-year-old
+daughter of the victim asserted with certainty that she had recognized
+the son of a neighbor among the thieves. In both cases there were
+serious legal steps taken against the suspects, and in both cases the
+children finally admitted, after much thinking, that they had possibly
+dreamed the whole matter of their complaints.</p>
+
+<p>The character-mark of such cases is the fact that the children do not
+make their assertions immediately, but after one or two nights have
+passed. Hence, whenever this occurs one must entertain at least the
+suspicion that reality and dreams have been confused.</p>
+
+<p>Similarly, Taine narrates that Baillarger once dreamed that he had been
+made director of a certain journal, and believed it so definitely that
+he told it to a number of people. Then there is the familiar dream of
+Julius Scaliger. Leibnitz writes that Scaliger had praised in verse the
+famous men of Verona. In dream he saw a certain Brugnolus who complained
+that he had been forgotten. Later Scaliger’s son Joseph discovered that
+there really had been a Brugnolus who had distinguished himself as
+grammarian and critic. Obviously Scaliger senior had once known, and had
+completely forgotten about him. In this case the dream had been just a
+refreshing of the memory. Such a dream may be of importance, but is
+unreliable and must be dealt with carefully.</p>
+
+<p>To get at a point of departure concerning the nature of the sleep and
+the dreams of any given person, we may classify them with reference to
+the following propositions:<a name="FNanchor_345_345" id="FNanchor_345_345"></a><a href="#Footnote_345_345" class="fnanchor">[345]</a> 1. The vividness of dreams increases
+with their frequency. 2. The lighter the sleep the more frequent the
+dreams. 3. Women sleep less profoundly than men and hence dream more. 4.
+With increasing age dreams become rarer and sleep less profound. 5. Who
+sleeps lightly needs less sleep. 6. The feminine need of sleep is
+greater. I might add with regard to the last point that the fact that
+women are better able to endure nursing children or invalids constitutes
+only an apparent contradiction of this point. The need of sleep is not
+decreased, but the goodwill and the joy of sacrifice is greater in woman
+than in man.</p>
+
+<p>The extraordinary things people do in half-dream and in sleep are
+numerously exemplified by Jessen. Most of them are taken from the older
+literature, but are quite reliable. A comparison indicates<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_483" id="page_483"></a>{483}</span> that such
+somnambulistic conduct occurs most frequently among the younger, more
+powerful, over-strained people, who, e.g., have not slept for two
+successive nights, and then have been awakened from deep sleep. It is
+remarkable that they often act intelligently under such
+circumstances&mdash;that the physician writes the proper prescription or the
+factory superintendent gives the proper orders, but neither knows
+anything about it later on. Criminalistically their significance lies on
+the one hand in the fact that they can be investigated with regard to
+their correctness; and on the other that they occur to people who had no
+reason to falsify. If a defendant tells about some such experience, we
+lack the means and the power to make an accurate examination of the
+matter, and tend for this reason to disbelieve him. Moreover, his very
+position throws doubt upon his statements. But this is just the ground
+for a careful study of similar occurrences in trustworthy people.<a name="FNanchor_346_346" id="FNanchor_346_346"></a><a href="#Footnote_346_346" class="fnanchor">[346]</a>
+All authorities agree that actions during sleepiness<a name="FNanchor_347_347" id="FNanchor_347_347"></a><a href="#Footnote_347_347" class="fnanchor">[347]</a> occur almost
+always in the first deep sleep, disturbed by dreams, of over-fatigued,
+strong individuals.</p>
+
+<p>An important circumstance is the phenomenon cited by Jessen and
+others&mdash;the capacity of some people to fall calmly asleep in spite of
+tremendous excitement. Thus, Napoleon fell into deep sleep during the
+most critical moment at Leipzig. This capacity is sometimes cited as
+evidence of innocence. But it is not convincing.</p>
+
+<p>We have yet to mention the peculiar illusions of the phenomena of
+movement which occur just before falling asleep. Panum tells how he once
+inhaled ether, and then observed, lying in bed, how the pictures on the
+wall went further and further back, came forward and withdrew, again and
+again. Similar things happen to sleepy people. Thus, the preacher in
+church seems progressively to withdraw and return. The criminalistic
+significance of such illusions may be in the observation of movements by
+people who are falling asleep, e.g., of thieves who seemed to be
+approaching the witnesses’ beds, though standing still.</p>
+
+<p>That sleeping people may be influenced in definite ways is indubitable.
+Cases are mentioned in which sleepers could be made to believe any
+story; they would dream of it, and later on believe it. There is in this
+connection the story of the officer who acquired the love of a young
+girl in this fashion; the girl had shown definite distaste for him at
+first, but after he had told her during her sleep,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_484" id="page_484"></a>{484}</span> in her mother’s
+presence, of his love and loyalty, she began in the course of time to
+return it. It is a fact that certain of our burglars believe similar
+things, and carry them out in most cases with the assistance of red
+light, to which they assign hypnotic power. They claim that with a
+lantern with red glass they are able to do anything in the room
+containing a sleeping individual, and can intensify his sleep by letting
+the red light fall on his face, and speaking to him softly. Curiously
+enough this is corroborated by a custom of our mountain lads. They cover
+a lantern with a red cloth and go with it to the window of a sleeping
+girl. It is asserted that when the red light falls on the latter’s face
+and it is suggested to her softly to go along, she does so. Then a
+pointed stone is placed in the girl’s way, she steps on it, it wakes her
+up, and the crude practical joke is finished. It would be interesting,
+at least, to get some scientific information concerning these cited
+effects of red light upon sleeping people.</p>
+
+<p>O. Mönnigshoff and F. Piesbergen<a name="FNanchor_348_348" id="FNanchor_348_348"></a><a href="#Footnote_348_348" class="fnanchor">[348]</a> have thrown some light on the
+profoundness of sleep&mdash;why, e.g., a person hears a thing today and not
+at another time; why one is awakened and another not; why one is
+apparently deaf to very loud noise, etc. These authorities found that
+the profundity of sleep culminates in the third quarter of the second
+hour. Sleep intensifies and grows deeper until the second quarter of the
+second hour. In the second and third quarters of that hour, the
+intensification is rapid and significant, and then it decreases just as
+rapidly, until the second quarter of the third hour. At that point sleep
+becomes less and less profound until morning, in the second half of the
+fifth hour. At this moment the intensity of sleep begins again to
+increase, but in contrast with the first increase is very light and
+takes a long time. Sleep, then, reaches its culmination in one hour out
+of five and a half; from that culmination-point it decreases until it
+reaches the general level of sleep.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 111. (b) Intoxication.</h5>
+
+<p>Apart from the pathological conditions of intoxication, especially the
+great intolerance toward alcohol,<a name="FNanchor_349_349" id="FNanchor_349_349"></a><a href="#Footnote_349_349" class="fnanchor">[349]</a> which are the proper subjects for
+the physician, there is a large group of the stigmata of intoxication
+which are so various that they require a more accurate study than usual
+of their causes and effects. As a rule, people are<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_485" id="page_485"></a>{485}</span> satisfied to
+determine the degree of intoxication by the answers to a few stereotyped
+questions: Did the man wabble while walking? Was he able to run? Could
+he talk coherently? Did he know his name? Did he recognize you? Did he
+show great strength? An affirmative answer to these questions from two
+witnesses has been enough to convict a man.<a name="FNanchor_350_350" id="FNanchor_350_350"></a><a href="#Footnote_350_350" class="fnanchor">[350]</a></p>
+
+<p>As a rule, this conviction is justified, and it is proper to say that if
+a person is still sufficiently in control of himself to do all these
+things he must be considered capable of understanding the difference
+between right and wrong. But this is not always the case. I do not say
+that irrationality through drink must always obtain when the drunkard is
+unable to remember what happened while he was drunk. His inability is
+not determinative, because the circumstances following a deed have no
+reflex effect. Even if after the deed a person is ignorant of what he
+has done it is still possible that he was aware of its nature while
+committing it, and this possibility is the determinative factor. But the
+knowledge of what is being done does not in itself make the doer
+responsible, for if the drunkard beats the policeman he knows that he is
+fighting somebody; he could not do so without knowing it, and what
+excuses him is the fact that while he was drunk, he was not aware that
+he was fighting a policeman, that so far as he is capable of judgment at
+all, he judges himself to be opposed to some illegal enemy, against whom
+he must defend himself.</p>
+
+<p>If it be said in opposition that a drunkard is not responsible if he
+does, when drunk, what he would not do when sober, this again would be
+an exaggeration. Why, is shown by the many insults, the many revelations
+of secrets, the many new friendships of slight intoxication. These would
+not have occurred if the drunkard had been sober, and yet nobody would
+say that they had occurred during a state of irresponsibility.</p>
+
+<p>Hence, we can say only that intoxication excuses when an action either
+follows directly and solely as the reflex expression of an impulse, or
+when the drunkard is so confused about the nature of his object that he
+thinks himself justified in his conduct. Hence, the legal expressions
+(e.g., “complete drunkenness” of Austrian criminal law, and
+“unconsciousness” of the German imperial criminal statute book) will in
+practice be pushed one degree higher up than ordinary usage intends. For
+complete intoxication or drunkenness into loss of consciousness usually
+means that condition in which the individual lies stiff on the ground.
+But in this condition he can not do anything,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_486" id="page_486"></a>{486}</span> and is incapable of
+committing a crime. It must follow that the statutes could not have been
+thinking of this, but of the condition in which the individual is still
+active and able to commit crimes by the use of his limbs, but absolutely
+without the control of those limbs.</p>
+
+<p>If we compare innumerable stories that are told, with verbal
+reliability, about drunkards, or those that are readable in daily
+papers, police news, and in legal texts, we find groups in which a
+drunkard makes his bed on a wintry night on a snow bank, undresses
+himself, carefully folds his clothes beside him, and runs away at the
+approach of a policeman, climbs over a fence and runs so fast that he
+can not be caught. Such a man certainly has not only the use of his
+organs, but also uses them with comparative correctness in undressing,
+folding his clothes, and in running away. If now somebody should pass
+the drunkard’s lair and if he should think that a burglar is in his
+house and should wound the passer-by, who would believe the drunkard
+when he tells this story?</p>
+
+<p>In the street there is frequent opportunity of observing some of the
+arrests of drunkards who fight with fists and feet and teeth, and often
+have to be taken to the police station in a wheel-barrow. Now if the man
+has had the misfortune of recognizing the policeman in his first
+opposition, and of giving his own name properly, we say that he has
+“shown definite signs of responsibility,” and we sentence him. But in
+most cases it was merely the instantaneous illumination of his cindery
+mind (which was, perhaps, stimulated to the recognition of the policeman
+and the pronunciation of his name by the latter’s rather bearish
+remarks) which then dies away as swiftly as it rose, and is followed by
+instinctive self-defense. Anybody who has frequently observed how
+utterly senseless is the battle of a drunkard with the overwhelming
+power of three or four or more people, and how he continues to struggle,
+even when wholly or completely conquered, must feel convinced that such
+a man is no longer responsible.</p>
+
+<p>In the same way we must never forget that the prosecution of some very
+habitual activity is in no sense evidence of responsibility. Especially
+when some action has very fine-drawn limits, and the actor knows that a
+false grip will result in questionable consequences, the habitual
+movement will be made instinctively. The soldier will properly carry out
+his obligations of service, the coachman drive home, unharness, and look
+after the horses, even the locomotive engineer will complete his
+difficult task without a break&mdash;then, however, they fall and sleep their
+drunkenness off. Now, if something intervenes unexpectedly during the
+performance of this habitual<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_487" id="page_487"></a>{487}</span> activity, especially some opposition, some
+superfluous cajolement, correction, or similar thing, the intoxicated
+actor is thrown completely out of gear, and can not be restored to it,
+nor is he able properly to oppose this obstacle. Hence he acts against
+it reflexly, and in most cases explosively.</p>
+
+<p>It may be perceived that such a drunkard works unconsciously; having
+been thrown out of gear by some sudden remark, he is unable to complete
+what he is trying to do, and this develops a despairing expression of
+emotion for which he is decidedly not responsible. A countless number of
+popular maxims indicate the popular opinion that it is best to get out
+of the way of a drunkard, never to help him, because he can best look
+after himself. The public seems to know this very well, theoretically,
+but in practice no wife applies this theory when her drunken husband
+comes home; in practice the policeman looks after the drunkard, in
+practice the peasant and the master quarrel with the drunken servant and
+the apprentice,&mdash;and then everybody wonders when suddenly superiors are
+hurt, maimed, and otherwise opposed.</p>
+
+<p>The best evidence for the certain but very definite routine in which the
+drunkard moves, is the example cited by Combe<a name="FNanchor_351_351" id="FNanchor_351_351"></a><a href="#Footnote_351_351" class="fnanchor">[351]</a> concerning the porter
+who, while drunk, had wrongly delivered a packet. Later on he could not
+think where he had brought it, but as by chance he got drunk again, he
+fetched the packet, and brought it to its proper destination. This
+process indicates that the “in vino veritas” depends not merely on
+speech, but on action, and that this coming to the surface of what is
+really thought is the reason for so many insults offered during
+intoxication. Such phenomena are best studied at the beginning of
+narcosis, in which all the conditions of intoxication come together in a
+much briefer period of time, and hence appear much more clearly. How
+involuntarily the inmost thought breaks through under such
+circumstances, is shown by an occurrence in a surgical clinic. An old
+peasant was to have been subjected to a not dangerous but rare
+operation. The famous surgeon of the University had one student after
+another make a diagnosis, and asked one student after another what kind
+of an operation he would perform. The peasant misunderstood it
+altogether, and as he was half stupefied he cried out involuntarily:
+“The old donkey is asking one loafer after another what to do. Nobody
+knows anything, and yet they are going to operate on me.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_488" id="page_488"></a>{488}</span>” Things that
+are thought are expressed just as involuntarily during intoxication, and
+thus the insults, etc., are accomplished.</p>
+
+<p>What is never believed, but yet may be true, is the defence of a
+prisoner that intoxication led him to steal. I know of a talented,
+kindly, and thoroughly honorable young man, who during slight
+intoxication steals everything he can lay his hands on. His drunkenness
+is so light that he can remove with complete skill his comrades’
+cigarette cases, pocket handkerchiefs, and worst of all, their
+latchkeys. At the same time, he is still drunk enough to have great
+difficulty in remembering, the next day, who the owners of these things
+are. Now suppose a thief told such a story in court!</p>
+
+<p>I cite from the excellent account of Hoffbauer,<a name="FNanchor_352_352" id="FNanchor_352_352"></a><a href="#Footnote_352_352" class="fnanchor">[352]</a> the development of
+intoxication: “At first the consumption of liquor intensifies the
+feeling of physical health, or increases that health. It appears to have
+a proportionately similar effect upon the powers of the mind. Ideas move
+easily, expression is smoother and more adequate. The condition and
+emotional attitude are such that one might very well always wish for
+one’s self and one’s friends. Until this point no intoxication is
+visible. The flow of ideas only increases and becomes more intense.
+Excellent, appropriate notions occur to one, but there is effort to
+restrain the irregular flow of thought. This state is visible in the
+effort which must be used to carry on any rather involved story. The
+ideas flow too rapidly to be easily ordered according to the
+requirements of the story. At this point the beginning of intoxication
+is already perceptible. In its development the flow of ideas becomes
+continually stronger, the senses lose their ordinary sharpness, and as
+these fail the imagination grows stronger. The drinker’s language is
+now, at least in particular expressions and turns of speech, more
+voluminous and poetical, and rather louder than is natural. The former
+indicates an intensification of imaginative power, and the latter a
+dulling of the senses which becomes more and more obvious in the
+development of the intoxication. For the drinker speaks louder because
+he hears his words less clearly than before, and judges the hearing of
+his auditors by his own, although the vividness and the more rapid flow
+of ideas induced by intoxication have a share in this. Soon the dulling
+of the senses becomes still more obvious. For example, it is seen that a
+person who is so drunk that he confuses otherwise well-known companions,
+even if only for a minute, thinks he puts his glass softly on the
+table,<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_489" id="page_489"></a>{489}</span> although it falls to the ground. And then there are still other
+forms of physical helplessness to be perceived. From his speech it may
+be judged that the connection between his ideas has significantly
+decreased: although still very vivid, they are now like luminous sparks
+that appear and disappear. This vividness of ideas, or their rapid flow,
+gives the inebriate’s desires an unmanageable intensity which reason can
+no longer control. He follows them instantaneously if some accident does
+not turn him aside. His physical helplessness becomes now obvious in
+stammering, in a wabbly gait, etc., until finally he falls into a deep
+sleep in which physical and intellectual repair begin.</p>
+
+<p>“If the conditions of intoxication were to be divided into periods, we
+should have the following: In the first period of intoxication ideas
+have only an extraordinary degree of vividness. The rule of the
+understanding over actions is not altogether suppressed, so that the
+drunken fellow is fully conscious of his external relations and is aware
+of what is going on within and about him. But the rapid flow of ideas
+hinders careful reflection and leads to an intensified excitability,
+particularly to those emotional expressions which are characterized by
+the more rapid flow. This is due to the familiar psychological law
+according to which one emotional condition leads into another as it is
+more like that other in tone. Anger and merriment, hence, show
+themselves more and more among uneducated people who are not habituated
+to the limitation of their emotional expression by reference to the
+forms of the world of fashion. Without this control, every stimulation
+intensifies the emotion, since every natural expression adds to its
+vividness. The irritability taken in itself is at this stage less
+dominant, inasmuch as the drinker is at the same time satisfied with
+himself, and the self-satisfaction makes the irritability endurable.
+Only some accidental circumstance can intensify and spread this
+irritability. Such circumstances intensify the drunkard’s liveliness and
+lead to the outbreak of merriment approximating upon hilarity, then to a
+verbal quarrel, which need not yet be a real quarrel and may be
+conducted in all friendship. It seems that in most cases the
+irritability is excited through the fact that the drunkard’s
+self-satisfaction speedily lapses, or that he is disturbed in doing
+things about which he is conceited. Now so long as the intoxication does
+not exceed this stage, its effects and the outbreaks of its passions may
+be suppressed. The drinker is here still self-possessed and is not
+likely to lose control of himself unless he is progressively excited
+thereto.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_490" id="page_490"></a>{490}</span></p>
+
+<p>“In the next period of intoxication, the drunkard still has his senses,
+although, all in all, they are considerably weaker than usual, and he is
+somewhat beside himself. Memory and understanding have quite left him.
+Hence, he acts as if the present moment were the only one, the idea of
+the consequences of his actions having no effect upon him because he no
+longer sees the connection between the two. And since his whole past has
+disappeared from his mind he can not consider his more remote
+circumstances. He acts, therefore, as he might if the memories of his
+circumstances and ideas of the consequences of his actions did not
+control his conduct, and lead him to rule himself. The slightest
+excitation may awaken all his strongest passion which then carry him
+away. Again, the slightest excuse may turn him from what he has in mind.
+In this condition he is much more dangerous to himself and others
+because he is impelled not only by the irresistible force of his
+passions, but because, also, he rarely knows what he is doing and must
+be considered a pure fool.</p>
+
+<p>“In the last period, the drunkard has so lost his senses that he has no
+more idea of his external environment.”</p>
+
+<p>With regard to particular conditions, it may be held that the quantity
+of drink is indifferent. Apart from the fact that we know nothing about
+the quantity of alcohol a man has taken when we hear merely about so and
+so many liters of wine or so and so much brandy, the influence of
+quantities is individual, and no general rule whatever can be laid down.
+As a matter of fact, there are young and powerful men who may become
+quite foolish on half a glass of wine, especially when they are angry,
+frightened, or otherwise excited, and there are weak old people who can
+carry unbelievable quantities. In short, the question of quantity is
+altogether foolish. The appearance and constitution of an individual
+offers as little ground for inference as quantity. The knowledge of a
+man’s regular attitude toward the consumption of alcohol is a safer
+guide. Hellenbach asserts that wine has always the same influence on the
+same individual; one always becomes more loquacious, another more
+silent, a third more sad, a fourth merrier. And up to a certain limit
+this is true, but there is always the question of what the limit is,
+inasmuch as many individuals pass through different emotional conditions
+at different stages. It often happens that a person in the first stage
+who wants to “embrace the world and kiss everybody,” may change his mood
+and become dangerous. Thus, anybody who has seen him several times in
+the first stage may make the mistake of believing that he<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_491" id="page_491"></a>{491}</span> can not pass
+it. In this direction explanations must be made very carefully if they
+are not to be false and deceptive.</p>
+
+<p>It is important, also, to know how a man drinks. It is known that a
+small quantity of wine can intoxicate if it is soaked up with bread
+which is repeatedly dipped into the wine. Wine drunk in the cellar works
+with similar vigor if one laughs, is merry, is vexed, while drinking, or
+if a large variety of drinks is taken, or if they are taken on an empty
+stomach. For the various effects of alcohol, and for its effects on the
+same person under different conditions, see Münsterberg’s “Beitrage zur
+Experimentellen Psychologie,” Heft IV.</p>
+
+<p>The effect of alcohol on memory is remarkable in so far as it often
+happens that many people lose their memory only with respect to a single
+very narrow sphere. Many are able to remember everything except their
+names, others everything except their residence, still others everything
+except the fact that they are married, and yet others every person
+except their friends (though they know all the policemen), and the last
+class are mistaken about their own identity. These things are believed
+like many another thing, when told by a friend, but never under any
+circumstances when the defendant tells them in the court room.</p>
+
+<h5>Section 112. (c) Suggestion.</h5>
+
+<p>The problems of hypnotism and suggestion are too old to permit the mere
+mention of a few books, and are too new to permit the interpretation of
+the enormous literature. In my “Manual for Examining Judges,” I have
+already indicated the relation of the subject to criminal law, and the
+proper attitude of criminalists to it. Here we have only to bear in mind
+the problem of characteristic suggestion; the influence of the judge on
+the witnesses, the witnesses upon each other, the conditions upon the
+witnesses. And this influence, not through persuasion, imagination,
+citation, but through those still unexplained remote effects which may
+be best compared with “determining.” Suggestion is as widespread as
+language. We receive suggestions through the stories of friends, through
+the examples of strangers, through our physical condition, through our
+food, through our small and large experiences. Our simplest actions may
+be due to suggestion and the whole world may appear subject to the
+suggestion of a single individual. As Emerson says somewhere, nature
+carries out a task by creating a genius for its accomplishment; if you
+follow the genius you will see what the world cares about.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_492" id="page_492"></a>{492}</span></p>
+
+<p>This multiple use of the word “suggestion” has destroyed its early
+intent. That made it equivalent to the term “suggestive question.” The
+older criminalists had a notion of the truth, and have rigorously
+limited the putting of suggestive questions. At the same time,
+Mittermaier knew that the questioner was frequently unable to avoid them
+and that many questions had to suggest their answers. If, for example, a
+man wants to know whether A had made a certain statement in the course
+of a long conversation, he must ask, for good or evil, “Has A said that
+...?”</p>
+
+<p>Mittermaier’s attitude toward the problem shows that he had already seen
+twenty-five years ago that suggestive questions of this sort are the
+most harmless, and that the difficulty really lies in the fact that
+witnesses, experts, and judges are subject, especially in great and
+important cases, to the influence of public opinion, of newspapers, of
+their own experiences, and finally, of their own fancies, and hence give
+testimony and give judgments in a way less guided by the truth than by
+these influences.</p>
+
+<p>This difficulty has been made clear by the Berchthold murder-trial in
+München, in which the excellent psychiatrists Schrenck-Notzing and
+Grashey had their hands full in answering and avoiding questions about
+witnesses under the influence of suggestion.<a name="FNanchor_353_353" id="FNanchor_353_353"></a><a href="#Footnote_353_353" class="fnanchor">[353]</a> The development of
+this trial showed us the enormous influence of suggestion on witnesses,
+and again, how contradictory are the opinions concerning the
+determination of its value&mdash;whether it is to be determined by the
+physician or by the judge; and finally, how little we know about
+suggestion anyway. Everything is assigned to suggestion. In spite of the
+great literature we still have too little material, too few
+observations, and no scientifically certain inferences. Tempting as it
+is to study the influence of suggestion upon our criminalistic work, it
+is best to wait and to give our attention mainly to observation, study,
+and the collection of material.<a name="FNanchor_354_354" id="FNanchor_354_354"></a><a href="#Footnote_354_354" class="fnanchor">[354]</a></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_493" id="page_493"></a>{493}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="APPENDIX_A" id="APPENDIX_A"></a>APPENDIX A.</h2>
+
+<p class="c"><i>Bibliography including texts more easily within the reach of English
+readers.</i></p>
+
+<div class="blockquot"><p><span class="smcap">Abbott, A.</span> Brief for the Trial of Criminal Causes. New York, 1889.
+2d ed., Rochester, 1902.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Abbott, B. V.</span> Judge and Jury. New York, 1880.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Antonini, G.</span> Studi di psicopatologia forense. 1901.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Archer, T.</span> The Pauper, the Thief and the Convict; Sketches of
+Names, Haunts and Habits. London, 1865.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Arnold, G. F.</span> Psychology applied to Legal Evidence and other
+Constructions of Law. New York &amp; Calcutta, 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Aschaffenburg, G.</span> Das Verbrechen und seine Bekämpfung;
+Kriminalpsychologie für Mediziner, Juristen und Soziologen; ein
+Beitrag zur Reform der Strafgesetzgebung. Heidelberg, 1903; 2d ed.,
+1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Aschaffenburg, G.</span>, <span class="smcap">Schultze, E.</span>, and <span class="smcap">Wallenberg</span>. Handbuch der
+gerichtlichen Psychiatrie. Berlin, 1901.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Battaglia.</span> La dinamica del delitto. Napoli, 1886.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Beck, T. R.</span> and J. B. Elements of Medical Jurisprudence. 5th ed.
+Philadelphia, 1835. 7th ed., 1838. 10th ed., 1850. 11th ed., 1860.
+12th ed., 1863.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Beggs, T.</span> Extent and Causes of Juvenile Depravity. London, 1849.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Bell, J. S.</span> The Use and Abuse of Expert Testimony. Philadelphia,
+1879.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Beneke, H. F.</span> Gefängnisstudien mit besonderer Berücksichtigung der
+Seelsorge im Untersuchungsgefängnis. Hamburg, 1903.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Best, W. M.</span> Law of Evidence. 1st ed., London, 1849. 2d ed., 1855.
+3d ed., 1860. 4th ed., 1866. 5th ed., by Russell, 1870. 6th ed., by
+Russell, 1875. 7th ed., by Lely, 1882. 8th ed., by Lely, 1893.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Bevill, R.</span> Homicide and Larceny. London, 1799.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Bidwell, G.</span> Forging his own Chains; the story of George Bidwell.
+1891.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Billiod, E.</span> Wie Man stiehlt und mordet. Leipzig, 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Blacket, J.</span> Social Diseases and Suggested Remedies. Stockwell,
+1905.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Blashfield, D. C.</span> Instructions to Juries, Civil and Criminal. St.
+Paul, 1902.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Boone, A. B.</span> Increase of Crime and its Cause. Boston, 1872.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Bragg, J.</span> (ed. Ardill, G. E.). Confessions of a Thief. Sydney, N.
+S. W., 189-.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Bresler.</span> Greisenalter und Kriminalität. Halle, 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Brown.</span> The Dark Side of the Trial by Jury. London, 1859.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Browne, H. C. B.</span> Medical Jurisprudence of Insanity. 2d ed., San
+Francisco, 1875.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Buchanan, W.</span> Juvenile Offenders. Remarks on the causes and state of
+juvenile crime in the metropolis; with hints for preventing its
+increase. London, 1867.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_494" id="page_494"></a>{494}</span></p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Buchnet.</span> The Relation of Madness to Crime. New York, 1884.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Buckham, T. R.</span> Insanity considered in its medico-legal relations.
+Philadelphia, 1883.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Bucknill, J. C.</span> Criminal Lunacy. Phil., 1856.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Bucknill, J. C.</span> and <span class="smcap">Tuke, D. H.</span> Psychological Medicine. 3d ed.,
+London, 1874.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Burrill, A. M.</span> Circumstantial Evidence. New York, 1868.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Campbell, J.</span> Experience of a Medical Officer in the English Convict
+Service. London, 1884.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Chapple, W. A.</span> The Fertility of the Unfit. Melbourne &amp; London,
+1903.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Chitty, J.</span> Practical Treatise on the Criminal Law. 2d Eng. ed., 4
+vols., London, 1826.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Practical Treatise on Medical Jurisprudence. London, 1834;
+Philadelphia, 1886. (Part I only published.)</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Christian.</span> Crime of Medical Legislation. 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Christison, J. S.</span> Crime and Criminals. Chicago, 1897.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Christison, J. S.</span> The Confessions of Ivins. Chicago, 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Christison, R.</span> Poisons. 2d ed., Edinburgh, 1832; 1st Amer. from 4th
+Eng. ed., Philadelphia, 1845.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Clark, C.</span> An Analysis of Criminal Liability. London, 1880.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Clark.</span> Heredity and Crime in Epileptic Criminals. Braunn, 1880.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Cole, W. R.</span> Criminal Informations and Quo Warranto. London, 1843.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Comstock, A. W.</span> Drunkenness in Extenuation of Murder. Phil., 1890.
+(In Johnson’s Prize Essays on Legal Subjects.)</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Carr, W. W.</span> Insanity in Criminal Cases. Phila., 1890.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Crocq.</span> L’hypnotisme et le crime. Bruxelles, 1894.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Delbrueck, A.</span> Die pathologische Lüge und die psychisch abnormen
+Schwindler. Stuttgart, 1891.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Delman, G.</span> Der Verbrecher. Ein psychologisches Problem. Leipzig und
+Wien, 1896.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Despine.</span> Psychologic naturelle. Essai sur les facultés
+intellectuelles et morales dans leur état normal et dans leur
+manifestations anomales chez les aliénés et chez les criminels. 3
+vols., Paris, 1868.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Dobbins, E. S.</span> Errors; chains forged and broken. 1883.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Draehms, A.</span> The Criminal; his personnel and environment; a
+scientific study. New York, 1900.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Dugdale, R. L.</span> The Jukes. A study in crime, pauperism, disease and
+heredity. 1st ed., New York, 1877; 5th ed., 1895.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Ellis, H.</span> The Criminal. 1st ed., London &amp; New York, 1890; 2d ed.,
+1901; 3d ed., 1907.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Criminal Sociology.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Elwell, J. J.</span> Malpractice and Medical Evidence. 4th ed., New York,
+1881.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Evans, D. M.</span> Facts, Failures, and Frauds; revelations, financial,
+mercantile, criminal. London, 1859.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_495" id="page_495"></a>{495}</span></p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Flynt, J. A.</span> The World of Graft. New York, 1901.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Notes of an Itinerant Policeman. Boston, 1900.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Tramping with Tramps. 1903.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; tr. German, by du Bois-Raymond. Berlin, 1904.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; The Powers that Prey.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; My Life. New York, 1908.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Fourguet.</span> Les faux témoins; Essai de psychologie criminelle.
+Châlon-sur-Saône, 1901.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Grasserie, R.</span> de la. De la classification des actes criminels.
+Paris, 1902.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; De la criminologie des collectives. Paris, 1903.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Graves, W. W.</span> Law for Criminal Catchers. 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Green, S. M.</span> Crime; its nature, causes, treatment and prevention.
+Philadelphia, 1889.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Greenwood, J.</span> The Prisoner in the Dock; my four years’ daily
+experiences in the London police courts. London, 1902.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Gross, H.</span> Die Ehrenfolge bei strafgerichtlichen Verurtheilungen.
+Graz, 1875.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Handbuch für Untersuchungsrichter als System der
+Kriminalistik. (tr. English by Adam J. &amp; J. C., s. t. Criminal
+Investigation. Calcutta, New York, 1907.)</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Enzyclopädie der Kriminalistik, 1st ed., Leipzig, 1901; 2d
+ed., 1904.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Zurechnung und strafrechtliche Verantwortlichkeit in positiver
+Beleuchtung. Berlin, 1903.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Hall, C. R.</span> Uncodified Crimes. Albany, 1890.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Harris, G. E.</span> Treatise on the Law of Identification. Albany, 1892.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Hill, F.</span> Crime: its Amount, Causes, and Remedies. London, 1853.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Hirschl, A. J.</span> Legal Hygiene. Davenport, 1890.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Hoppe, H.</span> Alkohol und Kriminalität in allen ihren Beziehungen.
+Wiesbaden, 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Hoppe, J.</span> Die Zurechnungsfähigkeit und die Kriminal-Anthropologie.
+1903.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Horsley, J. W.</span> Jottings from Jail. 1887.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Prisons and Prisoners. New York, 1899.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Hrdlicka, A.</span> Anthropological Investigation of one thousand white
+and colored Children of both sexes, the inmates of the New York
+Juvenile Asylum. New York and Albany.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Joy, H. H.</span> Evidence of Accomplices. Dublin, 1836; Philadelphia,
+1844.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Admissibility of Confessions. Challenge of Jurors in Criminal
+Cases Dublin, 1842; Philadelphia, 1843.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Kellor, F. A.</span> Experimental Sociology. Descriptive and analytical.
+Delinquents. New York, London, 1901.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Kerr, N.</span> Inebriety or Narcomania; its etiology, pathology,
+treatment and jurisprudence. 3d ed., London, 1894.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Kovalevsky, P.</span> La psychologic criminelle. Paris, 1903.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_496" id="page_496"></a>{496}</span></p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Krafft-Ebing, R.</span> Lehrbuch der gerichtlichen Psychopathologie. 1st
+ed., Stuttgart, 1875; 2d ed., 1881; 3d ed., 1892 (1899?).</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Grundzüge der Criminalpsychologie auf Grundlage der deutschen
+und österreichischen Strafgesetzgebung; für Juristen. 2d ed.,
+Stuttgart, 1882.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Kubella, H. G.</span> Naturgeschichte des Verbrechers: Grundzüge der
+kriminallen Anthropologie und Kriminalpsychologie; für
+Gerichtsärtzte, Psychiater, Juristen und Verwaltungsbeamte.
+Stuttgart, 1893.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Lombroso, C.</span>, and <span class="smcap">Ferrero, G.</span> tr. English, ed., Morrison, s. t. The
+Female Offender. New York, 1895.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">MacDonald, A.</span> Criminology. 2d ed., New York, 1893.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Abnormal Man, being essays on education and crime and related
+subjects. Washington, 1893.</p>
+
+<p class="c">
+(Pub. as Bureau of Education Circular of Information No. 2, 1893.)<br />
+</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Statistics of Crime, Suicide, Insanity, and other forms of
+Abnormality, and Criminological Studies, with a bibliography.
+Washington, 1903; reprinted 1908.</p>
+
+<p class="c">
+(Pub. as U. S. Sen. Doc. No. 12, 58th Cong., Spec. sess.)<br />
+</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Man and abnormal Man, including a study of children. Wash.,
+1903.</p>
+
+<p class="c">
+(Pub. as U. S. Senate Doc. No. 187, 58th Cong., 3d sess.)<br />
+</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Juvenile Crime and Reformation, including stigmata of
+degeneration. Washington, 1908.</p>
+
+<p class="c">
+(Pub. as U. S. Senate Doc. No. 532, 60th Cong., 1st sess.)<br />
+</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Mayhew, H.</span> Criminal Life. London, 1860.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Meredith, Mrs.</span> A book about Criminals. London, 1881.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Miller, D. R.</span> The Criminal Classes; causes and cures. Dayton, 1903.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Mills.</span> Arrested and Aberrant Development and Gyres in the Brain of
+Paranoiacs, Criminals, Idiots, Negroes. Philadelphia, 1889.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Mittermaier, C. J. A.</span> Treatise in German; tr. English, by Gushing
+s. t. Effect of Drunkenness on Criminal Responsibility. Edinburgh,
+1841.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Moore, C. C.</span> A Treatise on Facts, or the Weight and Value of
+Evidence. 2 vols., Northport, N. Y., 1908.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Motet.</span> Les faux témoignages des enfants devant la justice. Paris,
+1887.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Muensterberg, H.</span> On the Witness Stand; Essays on Psychology and
+Crime. New York, 1908.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Negri, ed C.</span> La delinquenza in Italia dal 1890 al 1905. Roma.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Nicolay.</span> Les enfants mal éléves. Paris, 1890.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Noellner, F.</span> Criminal-psychologische Denkwürdigkeiten. Stuttgart,
+1858.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Parigot, J.</span> Moral Insanity in relation to Criminal Acts. N. Y.,
+1861.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Parmelee, M.</span> The Principles of Anthropology and Sociology in
+Relations to Criminal Procedure. New York, 1908.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Plowden, A. C.</span> Grain or Chaff? The Autobiography of a Police
+Magistrate. London, 1903.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_497" id="page_497"></a>{497}</span></p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Rhoades, M. C.</span> The Case Study of Delinquent Boys in the Juvenile
+Court of Chicago. Chicago, 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Roscoe, H.</span> Law of Evidence in Criminal Cases. 2d ed., London, 1840;
+9th ed., 1878; 11th ed., by Smith and Kennedy, 1890; 12th ed., by
+Keep, 1898.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; U. S.: 2d ed., 1840; 4th ed., 1852; 6th ed., 1866; 7th ed., by
+Sharswood, Philadelphia, 1874; 8th ed., by Sharswood and Wayland, 2
+vols., Philadelphia, 1888.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Russell, C. E. B.</span>, and <span class="smcap">Rigby, L. M.</span> The Making of the Criminal.
+London, New York, 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Ryan, W. B.</span> Infanticide; its law, prevalence, prevention, and
+history. London, 1862.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Rylands, L. G.</span> Crime, Its Causes and Remedy. London, 1889.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Sawin, C. D.</span> Criminals. Boston, 1890.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Seager, C.</span> Magistrate’s Manual. Toronto, 1901.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Sommer, R.</span> Kriminalpsychologie und strafrechtliche Psychopathologie
+auf naturwissenschaftlicher Grundlage. Leipzig, 1904.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Spooner, L.</span> Essay on Trial by Jury. Boston, 1852.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Stephen, Herbert.</span> Prisoners on Oath, Present and Future. London,
+1898.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Stevens, J. G.</span> Indictable Offences and Summary Convictions.
+Toronto, 1880.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Stole, J.</span> Cause and Cure of Crime; with a treatise on Capital
+Punishment. Philadelphia, 1880.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Strahan, S. A. K.</span> Instinctive Criminality. London, 1891.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Suicide and Insanity. 1893.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Tarde, G.</span> La criminalité comparée. 1st ed., Paris, 1886; 5th ed.,
+1902.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; L’opinion et la foule. Paris, 1901.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; L’homme souterrain. Paris, 19&mdash;.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Thompson.</span> Physiology of Criminality. 1870.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Thompson, S. D.</span>, and <span class="smcap">Merriam, E. G.</span> Organization, Custody and
+Conduct of Juries. St. Louis, 1882.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Tourrenc, E.</span> État mental des incendiaires. Paris, 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Train, A. C.</span> The Prisoner at the Bar; sidelights on the
+administration of Criminal Justice. New York, 1906; 2d ed., N. Y.,
+1908.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Valette, P.</span> De l’érostratisme, ou, Vanité criminelle. Lyon, 1908.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Wassermann, R.</span> Beruf, Konfession und Verbrechen. München, 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Weingart, A.</span> Kriminaltaktik. Ein Handbuch für das Untersuchen von
+Verbrechen. Leipzig, 1904.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Wey, H.</span> Criminal Anthropology. Elmira, 1890.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Wheaton, E. R.</span> Prisons and Prayer. Tabor, Ia., 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Whiteway, A. R.</span> Recent Object-Lessons in Penal Science. 1st series,
+London, 1898; 2d series, 1900; 3d series, 1902.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Wigmore, J. H.</span> A Treatise on the System of Evidence in Trials at
+Common Law, 5 vols., Boston, 1904-1907.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_498" id="page_498"></a>{498}</span></p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Wilmanns.</span> Zur Psychopathologie des Landstreichers. Leipzig, 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Wilson, G. R.</span> Clinical Studies in Vice and Insanity. Boston.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Winslow, R.</span> Youthful Eccentricity a Precursor of Crime. N. Y.,
+1895.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Woods, C. H.</span> Woman in Prison. 1869.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Woods, L.</span> Essay on Native Depravity. 1885.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Wooldridge, C. R.</span> The Grafters of America, who they are and how
+they work. Chicago, 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Wulffen, E.</span> Handbuch für den exekutiven Polizei-und
+Kriminalbeamten, für Geschworene und Schöffen, sowie für
+Strafansaltsbeamte. Dresden, 1905.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Psychologic des Verbrechers. 2 vols., Gross-Lichterfelde-Ost,
+1908 (in Langenscheidt’s Enzyclopädie der modernen
+Kriminal-statistik.)</p></div>
+
+<h3><a name="SERIALS" id="SERIALS"></a><i>SERIALS</i></h3>
+
+<div class="blockquot">
+<p class="c">(o. p.) Indicates that the journal is known to have ceased publication.</p>
+
+<p class="c">* Indicates that the journal is continued from the date given.</p>
+
+<p>UNITED STATES.</p>
+
+<p>(o.p.) Criminal Law Magazine. Jersey City, Vols. I-XVIII,
+1890-1896.</p>
+
+<p>Medico-Legal Journal, ed. Bell, C. New York, 1884.*</p>
+
+<p>(o.p.) Psychological and Medico-Legal Journal. New York, 1874-1875.</p>
+
+<p>AUSTRIA.</p>
+
+<p>Archiv für Kriminal-Antropologie und Kriminalistik. ed. Gross, H.
+Graz, Leipzig, 1899.*</p>
+
+<p>FRANCE.</p>
+
+<p>Archives d’anthropologie criminelle, de criminologie, et de
+psychologic normale et pathologique (entitled, till Vol. 8,
+Archives de l’anthropologie criminelle et des sciences penales).
+Founded Laccassagne, Garraud, et al.; ed. Dubuisson. Paris, Lyon,
+1886.*</p>
+
+<p>GERMANY.</p>
+
+<p>Abhandlungen des kriminalistischen Seminars an der Universität
+Berlin. ed. Liszt, F. von. Berlin, 1888 * (irregular; new ser.,
+Vol. V, 1908.)</p>
+
+<p>Allgemeine deutsche Criminalzeitung. ed. Roskoschny. Leipzig, 18&mdash;.</p>
+
+<p>Blätter für gerichtliche Anthropologie, etc. See <i>Friedreich’s
+Blätter</i>.</p>
+
+<p>Juristisch-psychiatrische Grenzfragen. ed. Finger, A., Hoche, A.,
+and Bresler, J. Halle, 1905 * (irregular; Vol. VI, 1908).</p>
+
+<p>Monatsschrift für Kriminalpsychologie und Strafrechtsreform. ed.,
+Aschaffenburg, Kloss, von Lilienthal, and von Liszt. Heidelberg,
+1904.*</p>
+
+<p>Zeitschrift für angewandte Psychologie und psychologische
+Sammelforschung (continuation of Beiträge zur Psychologie der
+Aussage). ed. Stern, L. W., and Lipmann. O. Leipzig, 1907.*</p>
+
+<p>(o.p.) Zeitschrift für Criminal-Anthropologie, Gefängniswissenchaft
+und Prostitutionswesen. ed. Wenge, W. 1 vol., Berlin, 1897.
+<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_499" id="page_499"></a>{499}</span></p>
+
+<p>ITALY</p>
+
+<p>Archivio di psichiatria, scienze penale, ed. antropologia criminale
+(formerly entitled, Archivio di psichiatria, neuropathologia,
+antropologia criminale, e medicina legale). Dir., Lombroso, C.,
+Garofalo, B. R., and Ferri, E.; ed. Andenino. Torino, 1880.*</p>
+
+<p>SOUTH AMERICA</p>
+
+<p>Archivos de criminologia, medicina legal y psiquiatria. ed. Ramos e
+Ingegnieros, J. Buenos Aires, 1902.*</p>
+
+<p>Criminologia moderna. ed. Gori, P. Buenos Aires, 1899.*</p></div>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_500" id="page_500"></a>{500}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="APPENDIX_B" id="APPENDIX_B"></a>APPENDIX B.</h2>
+
+<p class="c"><i>Works on Psychology of General Interest.</i></p>
+
+<div class="blockquot"><p><span class="smcap">Angell, James R.</span> Psychology. New York. H. Holt &amp; Co. 1904.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Baldwin, J. M.</span> Handbook of Psychology. New York, 1891.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Bell, Sir Charles.</span> The Hand&mdash;Its Mechanism and Vital Endowments.
+Philadelphia, 1835.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Binet, A.</span> Le fatigue intellectuelle. Paris, 1898.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Bourdon, B.</span> L’expression des émotions et des tendances dan le
+langage. Paris, 1892.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Chamberlain, Alexander Francis.</span> The Child: a study in the evolution
+of man. London, 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Cowles, E.</span> The Mental Symptoms of Fatigue. New York, 1893.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Dewey, John.</span> Psychology. 3d ed. New York.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Ebbinghaus, H.</span> Psychology. An Elementary Text-book (translated by
+Max Meyer). Boston, 1908.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Freud, S.</span> Zur psychopathologie des alltagslebens, etc. 2<sup>e</sup> aufl.,
+Berlin, 1907.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; Die Traumdeutung.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Hall, G. Stanley.</span> Youth; its Educative Regimen and Hygiene. New
+York, 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">James, W.</span> The Principles of Psychology. 2 vols. New York, 1890.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Janet, Pierre.</span> L’automatisme psychologique. Paris, 1889.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; The Major Symptoms of Hysteria. N. Y., 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Jastrow, J.</span> The Subconscious.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Jones, E. E.</span> The Influence of Bodily Posture on Mental Activities.
+N. Y., 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Judd, C. H.</span> Psychology. N. Y., 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">King, Irving.</span> The Psychology of Child-development. Chicago, 1904.
+2d ed.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">MacDonald, A.</span> Abnormal Man. Washington, 1893 (United States Bureau
+of Education Circular of Information, 1893, No. 4).</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Manaseine, Mariya.</span> Sleep, its physiology, pathology, hygiene and
+psychology. London, 1908.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_501" id="page_501"></a>{501}</span></p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Marsh, H. D.</span> The Diurnal Course of Efficiency. N. Y., 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Mercier, Charles A.</span> Psychology, normal and morbid. London, 1901.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Moore, C. C.</span> A treatise on facts or the weight and value of
+Evidence. 2 vols. Northport, 1908.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Mosso, A.</span> Fatigue. (Tr. by Margaret Drummond and W. B. Drummond.)
+N. Y. and London, 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Norsworthy, Naomi.</span> The psychology of mentally deficient children.
+N. Y., 1906.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Offner, Max.</span> Das Gedächtnis, etc. Berlin, 1909.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Paulhan, F.</span> La fonction de la memoire et le souvenirs affectif.
+Paris, 1904.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Pillsbury, W. B.</span> Attention. New York, 1908.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Ribot, T.</span> The Psychology of the Emotions. London, 1897.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Scott, W. D.</span> The Psychology of Public Speaking. Phil., 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Sidis, B.</span> The Psychology of Suggestion. N. Y., 1898.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Sighele, Scipio.</span> La foule criminelle: essai de psychologie
+collective. Paris, 1901.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Stout, G. F.</span> Manual of Psychology. London, 1907.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Tarde, G.</span> L’opinion et la foule. 2d éd. Paris, 1904.</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Titchener, E. B.</span> Lectures on the Elementary Psychology of Feeling
+and Attention. N. Y., 1908.</p>
+
+<p>&mdash;&mdash; A Text-book of Psychology. N. Y., 1909. (New ed. with
+additions.)</p>
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Wells, Frederic L.</span> Linguistic Lapses. With especial reference to
+the perception of linguistic sounds. N. Y., 1906.</p></div>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_502" id="page_502"></a>{502}</span></p>
+
+<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="page_503" id="page_503"></a>{503}</span></p>
+
+<h2><a name="INDEX" id="INDEX"></a>INDEX.</h2>
+
+<p class="c"><a href="#A">A</a>,
+<a href="#B">B</a>,
+<a href="#C">C</a>,
+<a href="#D">D</a>,
+<a href="#E">E</a>,
+<a href="#F">F</a>,
+<a href="#G">G</a>,
+<a href="#H">H</a>,
+<a href="#I-i">I</a>,
+<a href="#J">J</a>,
+<a href="#K">K</a>,
+<a href="#L">L</a>,
+<a href="#M">M</a>,
+<a href="#N">N</a>,
+<a href="#O">O</a>,
+<a href="#P">P</a>,
+<a href="#Q">Q</a>,
+<a href="#R">R</a>,
+<a href="#S">S</a>,
+<a href="#T">T</a>,
+<a href="#U">U</a>,
+<a href="#V-i">V</a>,
+<a href="#W">W</a>,
+<a href="#Z">Z</a></p>
+
+<p class="nind">
+<span class="lettre"><a name="A" id="A"></a>A</span>
+<br />
+<span class="smcap">Abercrombie</span>, <a href="#page_216">216</a>, <a href="#page_274">274</a>.<br />
+
+Accompaniments, imitative, of action, <a href="#page_048">48</a>.<br />
+
+Accuracy, psychological, and requirements of law, <a href="#page_107">107</a>.<br />
+
+Affection, and passion, in judges, <a href="#page_417">417</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in witnesses, <a href="#page_418">418</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and hatred, <a href="#page_418">418</a>.</span><br />
+
+After-images, <a href="#page_442">442</a>.<br />
+
+Aged, memory of, <a href="#page_272">272</a>.<br />
+
+Aim, of applied psychology of states of mind, <a href="#page_003">3</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Alembert</span>, <a href="#page_172">172</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Alfieri</span>, <a href="#page_393">393</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Altmann</span>, <a href="#page_481">481</a>.<br />
+
+Amnesia, retrograde, <a href="#page_274">274</a>.<br />
+
+Analogy, <a href="#page_144">144</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">danger of, <a href="#page_145">145</a>, <a href="#page_147">147</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">justification of, <a href="#page_146">146</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Andresen</span>, <a href="#page_469">469</a>.<br />
+
+Anger, <a href="#page_286">286</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as motive, <a href="#page_072">72</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">against object, <a href="#page_071">71</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">against self, <a href="#page_075">75</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Angell</span>, <a href="#page_187">187</a>.<br />
+
+Apriorism, <a href="#page_127">127</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Aristotle</span>, <a href="#page_101">101</a>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>, <a href="#page_165">165</a>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_254">254</a>, <a href="#page_271">271</a>, <a href="#page_302">302</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Arnheim</span>, <a href="#page_210">210</a>.<br />
+
+Arrest, influence of, <a href="#page_067">67</a>.<br />
+
+Association, <a href="#page_254">254</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">difficulties of, <a href="#page_255">255</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">physical expression of, <a href="#page_256">256</a>.</span><br />
+
+Assumption, <a href="#page_148">148</a>, <a href="#page_149">149</a>.<br />
+
+Astonishment, described, <a href="#page_092">92</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">causes of, <a href="#page_093">93</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">significant in law, <a href="#page_093">93</a>.</span><br />
+
+Attention, effect of, <a href="#page_040">40</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and the subconscious, <a href="#page_248">248</a>.</span><br />
+
+Attitude, intellectual, varieties of, <a href="#page_376">376</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">emotional, <a href="#page_377">377</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of indifference, <a href="#page_378">378</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of bodily conditions on, <a href="#page_380">380</a>.</span><br />
+
+Attraction, feeling of, <a href="#page_286">286</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Aubert</span>, <a href="#page_169">169</a>, <a href="#page_191">191</a>, <a href="#page_199">199</a>, <a href="#page_202">202</a>, <a href="#page_203">203</a>, <a href="#page_205">205</a>, <a href="#page_206">206</a>, <a href="#page_225">225</a>, <a href="#page_247">247</a>, <a href="#page_428">428</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Auerbach</span>, <a href="#page_192">192</a>.<br />
+
+Authority, <a href="#page_242">242</a>.<br />
+
+Autodidacts, <a href="#page_393">393</a>.<br />
+
+Avocation, and error, <a href="#page_065">65</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="B" id="B"></a>B</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Baer</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_415">415</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Baëts</span>, <a href="#page_005">5</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bain</span>, <a href="#page_075">75</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Baldwin</span>, <a href="#page_364">364</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Balzac</span>, <a href="#page_102">102</a>, <a href="#page_342">342</a>, <a href="#page_353">353</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bazerque</span>, <a href="#page_272">272</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bechterew</span>, <a href="#page_245">245</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Becker</span>, <a href="#page_302">302</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bell</span>, <a href="#page_044">44</a>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>, <a href="#page_101">101</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ben David</span>, <a href="#page_067">67</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Benedict</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Beneke</span>, <a href="#page_223">223</a>, <a href="#page_229">229</a>, <a href="#page_330">330</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bergson</span>, <a href="#page_043">43</a>, <a href="#page_076">76</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Berkeley</span>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bernard</span>, <a href="#page_125">125</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bernhardi</span>, <a href="#page_072">72</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bernstein</span>, <a href="#page_191">191</a>, <a href="#page_200">200</a>, <a href="#page_434">434</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bergqvist</span>, <a href="#page_192">192</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Berillon</span>, <a href="#page_492">492</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Berzé</span>, <a href="#page_079">79</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bezold</span>, <a href="#page_211">211</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Binet</span>, <a href="#page_367">367</a>.<br />
+
+Blank, expression of the eyes, <a href="#page_098">98</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bleuler</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+Blind spot, <a href="#page_207">207</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Blumröder</span>, <a href="#page_077">77</a>.<br />
+
+Blushing, <a href="#page_050">50</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how prevented, <a href="#page_051">51</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">evidential value, <a href="#page_052">52</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">relation to age, artificial, <a href="#page_053">53</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Boccaccio</span>, <a href="#page_029">29</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bois-Reymond</span>, <a href="#page_182">182</a>, <a href="#page_227">227</a>, <a href="#page_282">282</a>, <a href="#page_411">411</a>, <a href="#page_463">463</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bolton</span>, <a href="#page_271">271</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Boltzmann</span>, <a href="#page_124">124</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bonfigli</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Borée</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Borst</span>, <a href="#page_227">227</a>, <a href="#page_377">377</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_504" id="page_504"></a>{504}</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bourdin</span>, <a href="#page_368">368</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Bourdon</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+Boys, as witnesses, <a href="#page_366">366</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Braun</span>, <a href="#page_320">320</a>.<br />
+
+Brief, and jury, <a href="#page_164">164</a>.<br />
+
+Brightness and clearness, <a href="#page_199">199</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Broussais</span>, <a href="#page_369">369</a>.<br />
+
+Brow, contraction of, <a href="#page_097">97</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Buckle</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="C" id="C"></a>C</span><br />
+
+Captivation of visual capacity, <a href="#page_439">439</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Carlier</span>, <a href="#page_480">480</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Carpenter</span>, <a href="#page_453">453</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Carus</span>, <a href="#page_024">24</a>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>, <a href="#page_101">101</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Cattell</span>, <a href="#page_231">231</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+Causal principle, as method, <a href="#page_118">118</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">mistakes in inference of, <a href="#page_119">119</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">nexus of, and observation, <a href="#page_120">120</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and habit, <a href="#page_126">126</a>.</span><br />
+
+Causation, law of, neglected, <a href="#page_005">5</a>.<br />
+
+Cause, similarity to effect, <a href="#page_121">121</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and impulse, <a href="#page_121">121</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">danger of argument from, <a href="#page_123">123</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and immediately preceding condition, <a href="#page_123">123</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">not a priori, <a href="#page_126">126</a>.</span><br />
+
+Chance, <a href="#page_159">159</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and law, <a href="#page_161">161</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">theory of, <a href="#page_160">160</a>.</span><br />
+
+Change, in effect, <a href="#page_012">12</a>.<br />
+
+Character, correlated with crime, <a href="#page_055">55</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and promises, <a href="#page_058">58</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and religion, <a href="#page_387">387</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and laughter, <a href="#page_396">396</a>.</span><br />
+
+Character-units, somatic, <a href="#page_069">69</a>.<br />
+
+Child-murder, <a href="#page_358">358</a>.<br />
+
+Children, <a href="#page_364">364</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as subjects of, physiognomics, <a href="#page_087">87</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">justice in, <a href="#page_365">365</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">sexual differences, <a href="#page_366">366</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as witnesses, <a href="#page_366">366</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in city and country, <a href="#page_367">367</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">senses of, <a href="#page_367">367</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">representation in, <a href="#page_368">368</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">time-sense of, <a href="#page_368">368</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">practical and unpractical, <a href="#page_369">369</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">delinquency of, <a href="#page_371">371</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">egoism of, <a href="#page_371">371</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">memory of, <a href="#page_270">270</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Choulant</span>, <a href="#page_001">1</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Cicero</span>, <a href="#page_165">165</a>, <a href="#page_265">265</a>.<br />
+
+Circumstances, irrelevant to proof, <a href="#page_114">114</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Claparède</span>, <a href="#page_049">49</a>, <a href="#page_050">50</a>, <a href="#page_227">227</a>.<br />
+
+Classes, the conscienceless, <a href="#page_017">17</a>.<br />
+
+Clearness, and brightness, <a href="#page_199">199</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influences of background on, <a href="#page_199">199</a>.</span><br />
+
+Color, <a href="#page_204">204</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">existence of, <a href="#page_205">205</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">disappearance of in darkness, <a href="#page_206">206</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Combe</span>, <a href="#page_487">487</a>.<br />
+
+Comparison, influence of bodily conditions on, <a href="#page_381">381</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and inference, <a href="#page_170">170</a>.</span><br />
+
+Conceit, causes guarded statement, <a href="#page_008">8</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">caused by sexuality, <a href="#page_325">325</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of, on knowledge, <a href="#page_328">328</a>.</span><br />
+
+Conception, <a href="#page_221">221</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">basis of, <a href="#page_225">225</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">subjective nature of, <a href="#page_225">225</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influenced by environment and training, <a href="#page_228">228</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">feminine, <a href="#page_333">333</a>.</span><br />
+
+Concomitants, accidental, and cause, <a href="#page_127">127</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Condillac</span>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>.<br />
+
+Conditions, influence of on language, <a href="#page_291">291</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">constantification of, <a href="#page_011">11</a>.</span><br />
+
+Confession, <a href="#page_031">31</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and secrets, <a href="#page_031">31</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">motives of, <a href="#page_032">32</a>, <a href="#page_109">109</a>, <a href="#page_114">114</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">begins judge’s work, <a href="#page_033">33</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">not proof, <a href="#page_033">33</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">uses of, <a href="#page_034">34</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">suggestive influence of, <a href="#page_036">36</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how offset, <a href="#page_036">36</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">truth of, <a href="#page_114">114</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">partial, <a href="#page_110">110</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">accusing, <a href="#page_112">112</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">reliability of, <a href="#page_114">114</a>.</span><br />
+
+Connection, logical, and experience, <a href="#page_142">142</a>.<br />
+
+Consequences, and knowledge, <a href="#page_184">184</a>.<br />
+
+Conservatism, of woman, <a href="#page_340">340</a>.<br />
+
+Constantification, of conditions, <a href="#page_011">11</a>.<br />
+
+Contact, reaction-time to, <a href="#page_218">218</a>.<br />
+
+Contraction, of brow, <a href="#page_097">97</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">significance of, <a href="#page_098">98</a>.</span><br />
+
+Contradiction, insurance against, <a href="#page_007">7</a>.<br />
+
+Conviction, self-developed, <a href="#page_068">68</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Copernicus</span>, <a href="#page_222">222</a>, <a href="#page_223">223</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Corre</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>, <a href="#page_307">307</a>.<br />
+
+Correctness, formal vs. material, <a href="#page_004">4</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of effort on, <a href="#page_142">142</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Cotta</span>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Cournot</span>, <a href="#page_153">153</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Cramer</span>, <a href="#page_427">427</a>, <a href="#page_492">492</a>.<br />
+
+Crime, objective, <a href="#page_003">3</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and desire, <a href="#page_068">68</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and need, <a href="#page_057">57</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and woman, <a href="#page_310">310</a>.</span><br />
+
+Criminalist, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+Crooks, underestimated, <a href="#page_428">428</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_505" id="page_505"></a>{505}</span><br />
+
+Cruelty, related to bloodthirstiness, etc., <a href="#page_077">77</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and sex, <a href="#page_077">77</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and epilepsy, <a href="#page_078">78</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">feminine, <a href="#page_355">355</a>.</span><br />
+
+Custom, influence of on visual perception, <a href="#page_203">203</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="D" id="D"></a>D</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Dallemagne</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+“Dark” perceptions, <a href="#page_228">228</a>.<br />
+
+Darkness, vision in, <a href="#page_204">204</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Darwin</span>, <a href="#page_044">44</a>, <a href="#page_046">46</a>, <a href="#page_051">51</a>, <a href="#page_073">73</a>, <a href="#page_074">74</a>, <a href="#page_076">76</a>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>, <a href="#page_087">87</a>, <a href="#page_088">88</a>, <a href="#page_090">90</a>, <a href="#page_092">92</a>, <a href="#page_099">99</a>, <a href="#page_104">104</a>, <a href="#page_237">237</a>, <a href="#page_287">287</a>, <a href="#page_330">330</a>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>, <a href="#page_411">411</a>.<br />
+
+Deafness, <a href="#page_211">211</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Debierre</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+Defiance, <a href="#page_094">94</a>.<br />
+
+Deformity, evil results of maltreating, <a href="#page_070">70</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Dehn</span>, <a href="#page_213">213</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Dekterew</span>, <a href="#page_416">416</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Delboeuf</span>, <a href="#page_433">433</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Delbrück</span>, <a href="#page_479">479</a>.<br />
+
+Delinquency, juvenile, <a href="#page_369">369</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of puberty on, <a href="#page_370">370</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">exaggerated accounts of, <a href="#page_370">370</a>.</span><br />
+
+Deprivation, <a href="#page_095">95</a>.<br />
+
+Derision, <a href="#page_095">95</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Descartes</span>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>.<br />
+
+Desire, <a href="#page_067">67</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and crime, <a href="#page_068">68</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Despine</span>, <a href="#page_411">411</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Dessoir</span>, <a href="#page_492">492</a>.<br />
+
+Dialect, <a href="#page_293">293</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Diehl</span>, <a href="#page_021">21</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Dietz</span>, <a href="#page_436">436</a>.<br />
+
+Dilettantes, <a href="#page_393">393</a>.<br />
+
+Dimension, third, and image, <a href="#page_235">235</a>.<br />
+
+Discursiveness, help against, <a href="#page_019">19</a>.<br />
+
+Dishonesty, in women, <a href="#page_341">341</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">causes hypocrisy, <a href="#page_343">343</a>.</span><br />
+
+Dispositions, <a href="#page_234">234</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and habit, <a href="#page_408">408</a>.</span><br />
+
+Distribution, equal, and probability, <a href="#page_133">133</a>.<br />
+
+Disturbance, factors of, <a href="#page_021">21</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Dorner</span>, <a href="#page_192">192</a>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>, <a href="#page_403">403</a>.<br />
+
+Dream, <a href="#page_481">481</a>.<br />
+
+Dress, <a href="#page_082">82</a>, <a href="#page_083">83</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Drill</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+Drink, quantity of, <a href="#page_490">490</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Drobisch</span>, <a href="#page_180">180</a>, <a href="#page_269">269</a>, <a href="#page_282">282</a>, <a href="#page_283">283</a>, <a href="#page_374">374</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Drucker</span>, <a href="#page_492">492</a>.<br />
+
+Drugs, influence of on sense of touch, <a href="#page_215">215</a>.<br />
+
+Duality, of causal problem, <a href="#page_118">118</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Duchenne</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+Duplication and imitation, <a href="#page_415">415</a>.<br />
+
+Dying, memory of the, <a href="#page_274">274</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="E" id="E"></a>E</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ebbinghaus</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>, <a href="#page_262">262</a>, <a href="#page_265">265</a>, <a href="#page_271">271</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Eckartshausen</span>, <a href="#page_001">1</a>.<br />
+
+Education; by examples, necessary, <a href="#page_024">24</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">dangers of, <a href="#page_386">386</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of jury, <a href="#page_024">24</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">one-sided, in witnesses, <a href="#page_392">392</a>.</span><br />
+
+Effect, <a href="#page_011">11</a>.<br />
+
+Effort, influence of on correctness, <a href="#page_142">142</a>.<br />
+
+Ego, influence of dual nature of, <a href="#page_252">252</a>.<br />
+
+Egoism, potent in law, <a href="#page_025">25</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">important in examination, <a href="#page_026">26</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">criterion of veracity, <a href="#page_028">28</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of children, <a href="#page_371">371</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of foolishness, <a href="#page_401">401</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and prejudice, <a href="#page_413">413</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ellis</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+Eloquence, of judge, <a href="#page_163">163</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and jury, <a href="#page_164">164</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of pleaders, <a href="#page_164">164</a>.</span><br />
+
+Emotionalism of woman, <a href="#page_359">359</a>.<br />
+
+Emotions, <a href="#page_283">283</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">effect of, <a href="#page_100">100</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">gradations in, <a href="#page_284">284</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how to judge, <a href="#page_287">287</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Engel</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+Ennui as submerged sexuality, <a href="#page_324">324</a>.<br />
+
+Envy, <a href="#page_419">419</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Epicurus</span>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Erdmann</span>, <a href="#page_232">232</a>, <a href="#page_248">248</a>, <a href="#page_396">396</a>, <a href="#page_399">399</a>, <a href="#page_400">400</a>.<br />
+
+Error, and avocation, <a href="#page_065">65</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how excluded, <a href="#page_013">13</a>.</span><br />
+
+<i>Esprit de corps</i>, <a href="#page_064">64</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and evidence, <a href="#page_065">65</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Esser</span>, <a href="#page_102">102</a>, <a href="#page_405">405</a>.<br />
+
+Estimation, of optical magnitudes, <a href="#page_428">428</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Eulenberg</span>, <a href="#page_421">421</a>.<br />
+
+Events, psychical, and physical processes, <a href="#page_042">42</a>.<br />
+
+Evidence, conditions of taking, <a href="#page_007">7</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">method of taking, <a href="#page_007">7</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">effect of persuasive, <a href="#page_036">36</a>.</span><br />
+
+Examples, education by, necessary, <a href="#page_024">24</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">dangers of, <a href="#page_251">251</a>.</span><br />
+
+Excellences characterise, <a href="#page_252">252</a>.<br />
+
+Exceptions and rules, <a href="#page_134">134</a>, <a href="#page_135">135</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_506" id="page_506"></a>{506}</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Exner</span>, <a href="#page_166">166</a>, <a href="#page_174">174</a>, <a href="#page_228">228</a>, <a href="#page_230">230</a>, <a href="#page_237">237</a>, <a href="#page_238">238</a>, <a href="#page_263">263</a>, <a href="#page_377">377</a>, <a href="#page_428">428</a>, <a href="#page_441">441</a>, <a href="#page_471">471</a>.<br />
+
+Expectation, influence of, <a href="#page_251">251</a>.<br />
+
+Experts, <a href="#page_014">14</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">are human, <a href="#page_014">14</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">their opinion of judiciary, <a href="#page_037">37</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and rules of inference, <a href="#page_133">133</a>.</span><br />
+
+Exposition, influence of on meaning, <a href="#page_290">290</a>.<br />
+
+Expression, incorrect forms of, <a href="#page_296">296</a>.<br />
+
+Expressions, emotional, <a href="#page_043">43</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">inheritance of, <a href="#page_043">43</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">contradictory, <a href="#page_043">43</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Darwinian principles of, <a href="#page_088">88</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">danger of mistaking, <a href="#page_089">89</a>.</span><br />
+
+Eyes, closing of, <a href="#page_089">89</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="F" id="F"></a>F</span><br />
+
+Factors, of disturbance, <a href="#page_021">21</a>.<br />
+
+Facts, why overlooked, <a href="#page_250">250</a>.<br />
+
+Fainting, cause of, <a href="#page_076">76</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of women, <a href="#page_344">344</a>.</span><br />
+
+Fallacies, <a href="#page_177">177</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">the pathetic, <a href="#page_398">398</a>.</span><br />
+
+Fancy, and memory, <a href="#page_264">264</a>.<br />
+
+Far-sightedness, and myopia, <a href="#page_201">201</a>.<br />
+
+Fatigue, and misunderstanding, <a href="#page_473">473</a>.<br />
+
+Fear, described, <a href="#page_074">74</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and innocence, <a href="#page_420">420</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Fechner</span>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_200">200</a>, <a href="#page_220">220</a>, <a href="#page_378">378</a>, <a href="#page_437">437</a>, <a href="#page_448">448</a>, <a href="#page_458">458</a>, <a href="#page_465">465</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ferrero</span>, <a href="#page_215">215</a>, <a href="#page_315">315</a>, <a href="#page_339">339</a>, <a href="#page_480">480</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ferri</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ferriani</span>, <a href="#page_364">364</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Fichte</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Fick</span>, <a href="#page_150">150</a>, <a href="#page_191">191</a>.<br />
+
+Figures, memory for, <a href="#page_268">268</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Fink</span>, <a href="#page_302">302</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Fischer, E. I.</span>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>, <a href="#page_191">191</a>, <a href="#page_197">197</a>, <a href="#page_221">221</a>, <a href="#page_377">377</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Fischer, Kuno</span>, <a href="#page_352">352</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Flournoy</span>, <a href="#page_450">450</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Foderé</span>, <a href="#page_436">436</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Földes</span>, <a href="#page_179">179</a>.<br />
+
+Foolishness, <a href="#page_253">253</a>, <a href="#page_399">399</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Erdmann on, <a href="#page_400">400</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">egoism of, <a href="#page_401">401</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">intellection of, <a href="#page_405">405</a>.</span><br />
+
+Foot, <a href="#page_104">104</a>.<br />
+
+Forgetting, time of, <a href="#page_271">271</a>.<br />
+
+Form, of life, <a href="#page_067">67</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and inference, <a href="#page_168">168</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">visual perception of, <a href="#page_201">201</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Freud</span>, <a href="#page_161">161</a>, <a href="#page_268">268</a>, <a href="#page_467">467</a>, <a href="#page_481">481</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Friedmann</span>, <a href="#page_416">416</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Friedreich</span>, <a href="#page_045">45</a>, <a href="#page_052">52</a>, <a href="#page_077">77</a>, <a href="#page_309">309</a>, <a href="#page_323">323</a>, <a href="#page_370">370</a>.<br />
+
+Friendships, of women, <a href="#page_353">353</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Fröbel</span>, <a href="#page_020">20</a>.<br />
+
+Function, feminine, defines woman, <a href="#page_304">304</a>.<br />
+
+Funded thoughts, important, <a href="#page_021">21</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">difficult to discover in jurymen, <a href="#page_022">22</a>.</span><br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="G" id="G"></a>G</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gall</span>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Galton</span>, <a href="#page_215">215</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gassendi</span>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Geiger</span>, <a href="#page_240">240</a>, <a href="#page_288">288</a>, <a href="#page_296">296</a>.<br />
+
+Generalizations, mistaken, <a href="#page_178">178</a>.<br />
+
+General view, importance of, <a href="#page_055">55</a>.<br />
+
+Germany, <a href="#page_001">1</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gerock</span>, <a href="#page_161">161</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gerstäcker</span>, <a href="#page_053">53</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gessmann</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_101">101</a>.<br />
+
+Gesticulation, observation of, <a href="#page_049">49</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">compared with writing, <a href="#page_049">49</a>.</span><br />
+
+Gesture, <a href="#page_043">43</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">importance of, <a href="#page_044">44</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">nature of, <a href="#page_045">45</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">relation to voice, <a href="#page_048">48</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Giraudet</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+Girls, as witnesses, <a href="#page_366">366</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gneist</span>, <a href="#page_005">5</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Goethe</span>, <a href="#page_025">25</a>, <a href="#page_156">156</a>, <a href="#page_239">239</a>, <a href="#page_247">247</a>, <a href="#page_249">249</a>, <a href="#page_387">387</a>, <a href="#page_388">388</a>, <a href="#page_464">464</a>, <a href="#page_468">468</a>, <a href="#page_479">479</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Goldschmidt</span>, <a href="#page_005">5</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Goltz</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_348">348</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Grashey</span>, <a href="#page_115">115</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gratiolet</span>, <a href="#page_087">87</a>, <a href="#page_088">88</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Grohmann</span>, <a href="#page_001">1</a>, <a href="#page_283">283</a>, <a href="#page_370">370</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gross, O.</span>, <a href="#page_176">176</a>, <a href="#page_179">179</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Guggenheim</span>, <a href="#page_007">7</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gurnill</span>, <a href="#page_180">180</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gutberlet</span>, <a href="#page_181">181</a>, <a href="#page_182">182</a>, <a href="#page_391">391</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Gyurkovechky</span>, <a href="#page_069">69</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="H" id="H"></a>H</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Haacke</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+Habit, <a href="#page_406">406</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and skepticism, <a href="#page_127">127</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and skill, <a href="#page_407">407</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and disposition, <a href="#page_408">408</a>.</span><br />
+
+Hair, rising of the, <a href="#page_073">73</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">turning white, <a href="#page_073">73</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hall</span>, <a href="#page_367">367</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_507" id="page_507"></a>{507}</span><br />
+
+Hallucinations, distinguished from illusions, <a href="#page_455">455</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">causes of, <a href="#page_456">456</a>.</span><br />
+
+Hand, the, <a href="#page_100">100</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">effect of use on, <a href="#page_101">101</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">bibliography of, <a href="#page_101">101</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">described, <a href="#page_102">102</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">evidential value of, <a href="#page_101">101</a>, <a href="#page_103">103</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">movements of, <a href="#page_104">104</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Harless</span>, <a href="#page_100">100</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hartenberg</span>, <a href="#page_075">75</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hartenstein</span>, <a href="#page_060">60</a>, <a href="#page_252">252</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hartmann</span>, <a href="#page_167">167</a>, <a href="#page_177">177</a>, <a href="#page_281">281</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Haselbrunner</span>, <a href="#page_039">39</a>.<br />
+
+Hat, <a href="#page_053">53</a>.<br />
+
+Hate, in women, <a href="#page_354">354</a>.<br />
+
+Hatred, <a href="#page_286">286</a>, <a href="#page_418">418</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hausner</span>, <a href="#page_031">31</a>.<br />
+
+Hearing, problems of, <a href="#page_208">208</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Heerwagen</span>, <a href="#page_482">482</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Heinrich</span>, <a href="#page_205">205</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Heinroth</span>, <a href="#page_001">1</a>, <a href="#page_327">327</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hellenbach</span>, <a href="#page_103">103</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hillebrand</span>, <a href="#page_105">105</a>, <a href="#page_106">106</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Helmholtz</span>, <a href="#page_042">42</a>, <a href="#page_189">189</a>, <a href="#page_191">191</a>, <a href="#page_197">197</a>, <a href="#page_202">202</a>, <a href="#page_204">204</a>, <a href="#page_207">207</a>, <a href="#page_218">218</a>, <a href="#page_233">233</a>, <a href="#page_241">241</a>, <a href="#page_242">242</a>, <a href="#page_380">380</a>, <a href="#page_407">407</a>, <a href="#page_429">429</a>, <a href="#page_443">443</a>, <a href="#page_449">449</a>.<br />
+
+Help, against discursiveness, <a href="#page_019">19</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Helvetius</span>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Henle</span>, <a href="#page_050">50</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Henri</span>, <a href="#page_367">367</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hensen</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Herbart</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_236">236</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_383">383</a>.<br />
+
+Heredity, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hering</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_278">278</a>, <a href="#page_403">403</a>.<br />
+
+Heroification, <a href="#page_253">253</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Heusinger</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_309">309</a>, <a href="#page_367">367</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Higier</span>, <a href="#page_245">245</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hippel</span>, <a href="#page_056">56</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hirsch</span>, <a href="#page_492">492</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hobbes</span>, <a href="#page_255">255</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hoffbauer</span>, <a href="#page_001">1</a>, <a href="#page_319">319</a>, <a href="#page_488">488</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Höfler</span>, <a href="#page_161">161</a>, <a href="#page_243">243</a>, <a href="#page_267">267</a>, <a href="#page_464">464</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hofmann</span>, <a href="#page_227">227</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Holland, H.</span>, <a href="#page_274">274</a>, <a href="#page_373">373</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Holtzendorff</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+Home-sickness, influence of, <a href="#page_078">78</a>.<br />
+
+Honor, <a href="#page_421">421</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hoppe</span>, <a href="#page_436">436</a>, <a href="#page_456">456</a>, <a href="#page_457">457</a>, <a href="#page_465">465</a>, <a href="#page_473">473</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hubert</span>, <a href="#page_274">274</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hughes</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Humboldt</span>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>, <a href="#page_201">201</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Hume</span>, <a href="#page_119">119</a>, <a href="#page_126">126</a>, <a href="#page_129">129</a>, <a href="#page_130">130</a>, <a href="#page_131">131</a>, <a href="#page_157">157</a>, <a href="#page_164">164</a>, <a href="#page_171">171</a>, <a href="#page_221">221</a>, <a href="#page_240">240</a>, <a href="#page_254">254</a>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>, <a href="#page_388">388</a>, <a href="#page_406">406</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Huxley</span>, <a href="#page_176">176</a>.<br />
+
+Hypocrisy, feminine, depends on dishonesty, <a href="#page_343">343</a>.<br />
+
+Hysteria, <a href="#page_331">331</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="I-i" id="I-i"></a>I</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Icard</span>, <a href="#page_312">312</a>.<br />
+
+Ideas, imaginative, <a href="#page_459">459</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">personal equation in, <a href="#page_462">462</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">observation of, <a href="#page_463">463</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and perception, <a href="#page_464">464</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and premonition, <a href="#page_466">466</a>.</span><br />
+
+Idiots, memory of, <a href="#page_270">270</a>.<br />
+
+Ignorance, <a href="#page_023">23</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">to be generally presupposed, <a href="#page_023">23</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ihering</span>, <a href="#page_010">10</a>.<br />
+
+Illumination, retrospective, of perception, <a href="#page_194">194</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">differences of, <a href="#page_200">200</a>.</span><br />
+
+Illusions, of memory, <a href="#page_275">275</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how discovered in witnesses, <a href="#page_423">423</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">classification of, <a href="#page_424">424</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">limits of, <a href="#page_424">424</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and false inference, <a href="#page_425">425</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">optical, <a href="#page_428">428</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of movement, <a href="#page_435">435</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">subjects of optical, <a href="#page_436">436</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">reasons for, <a href="#page_437">437</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">auditory, <a href="#page_443">443</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">causes of, <a href="#page_444">444</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of normal people, <a href="#page_446">446</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">tactual, <a href="#page_449">449</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of taste, <a href="#page_452">452</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">olfactory, <a href="#page_453">453</a>.</span><br />
+
+Image, <a href="#page_233">233</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">difference from object, <a href="#page_233">233</a>, <a href="#page_234">234</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and speech, <a href="#page_235">235</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and third dimension, <a href="#page_235">235</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and movement, <a href="#page_236">236</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">alterations observable in, <a href="#page_236">236</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and time, <a href="#page_237">237</a>.</span><br />
+
+Images, and truth, <a href="#page_224">224</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">effect of on views of the uneducated, <a href="#page_391">391</a>.</span><br />
+
+Imagination, <a href="#page_232">232</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">difficulties of, <a href="#page_233">233</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">ideas due to, <a href="#page_459">459</a>.</span><br />
+
+Imitation, accompanying action, <a href="#page_048">48</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and the crowd, <a href="#page_415">415</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and duplication, <a href="#page_415">415</a>.</span><br />
+
+Impatience, <a href="#page_019">19</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">dangers of, <a href="#page_020">20</a>.</span><br />
+
+Inanimate, perversity of the, <a href="#page_072">72</a>.<br />
+
+Inclination, <a href="#page_393">393</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and vagabondage, <a href="#page_394">394</a>.</span><br />
+
+Indifference, attitude of, <a href="#page_378">378</a>.<br />
+
+Induction, <a href="#page_137">137</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and the lawyer, <a href="#page_138">138</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and analogy, <a href="#page_138">138</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">difficulties of, <a href="#page_139">139</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">sympathetic, <a href="#page_440">440</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_508" id="page_508"></a>{508}</span></span><br />
+
+Inference, <a href="#page_105">105</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">relation to logic and psychology, <a href="#page_106">106</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and occupation, <a href="#page_167">167</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and form, <a href="#page_168">168</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">unconscious, <a href="#page_168">168</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and comparison, <a href="#page_170">170</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and possibility, <a href="#page_170">170</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and historical truth, <a href="#page_171">171</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Hume on, <a href="#page_171">171</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and irregularity, <a href="#page_173">173</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">made by witnesses, <a href="#page_175">175</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and MS., <a href="#page_175">175</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">origin of mistakes in, <a href="#page_176">176</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">false, compared with illusion, <a href="#page_425">425</a>.</span><br />
+
+Influences, reciprocal, <a href="#page_121">121</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">isolated, <a href="#page_406">406</a>.</span><br />
+
+Information, source of, <a href="#page_062">62</a>.<br />
+
+Innervation, muscular, and sight, <a href="#page_204">204</a>.<br />
+
+Instinct, maternal, <a href="#page_321">321</a>.<br />
+
+Instruction, public, and understanding, <a href="#page_241">241</a>.<br />
+
+Intellection of foolishness, <a href="#page_405">405</a>.<br />
+
+Intelligence, feminine, <a href="#page_332">332</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">weakness of, <a href="#page_362">362</a>.</span><br />
+
+Intercourse between judges and experts, <a href="#page_014">14</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and jurymen, <a href="#page_015">15</a>.</span><br />
+
+Interest, <a href="#page_037">37</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">importance in judge and expert, <a href="#page_038">38</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how aroused in witnesses, <a href="#page_039">39</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and attention, <a href="#page_039">39</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influences conception, <a href="#page_381">381</a>.</span><br />
+
+Intermediaries, skipping of, <a href="#page_124">124</a>.<br />
+
+Intoxication, <a href="#page_484">484</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and responsibility, <a href="#page_485">485</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and theft, <a href="#page_488">488</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Hoffbauer on, <a href="#page_488">488</a>.</span><br />
+
+Irradiation, <a href="#page_442">442</a>.<br />
+
+Irritation, causes crime, <a href="#page_077">77</a>.<br />
+
+Isolation, effect of on character, <a href="#page_396">396</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">on health, <a href="#page_397">397</a>.</span><br />
+
+Issue, must be defined, <a href="#page_011">11</a>.<br />
+
+Inventors as witnesses, <a href="#page_066">66</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="J" id="J"></a>J</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">James, W.</span>, <a href="#page_187">187</a>, <a href="#page_467">467</a>.<br />
+
+Jealousy, in women, <a href="#page_351">351</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Jessen</span>, <a href="#page_186">186</a>, <a href="#page_275">275</a>, <a href="#page_482">482</a>, <a href="#page_483">483</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Jodl</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Jost</span>, <a href="#page_267">267</a>.<br />
+
+Judge, <a href="#page_009">9</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">relations to witness, <a href="#page_009">9</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and experts, <a href="#page_014">14</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and jury, <a href="#page_015">15</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and confession, <a href="#page_031">31</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">importance of interest to, <a href="#page_014">14</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as persuader, <a href="#page_162">162</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">affection and passion in, <a href="#page_417">417</a>.</span><br />
+
+Judgment, <a href="#page_165">165</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and inference, <a href="#page_165">165</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and numbers, <a href="#page_174">174</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">feminine, <a href="#page_336">336</a>.</span><br />
+
+Jurisprudence a natural science, <a href="#page_010">10</a>.<br />
+
+Jury, <a href="#page_024">24</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">education of, <a href="#page_024">24</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">to be studied, <a href="#page_165">165</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">trial by, <a href="#page_106">106</a>.</span><br />
+
+Justice, criminal, <a href="#page_001">1</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of women, <a href="#page_359">359</a>.</span><br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="K" id="K"></a>K</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Kant</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>, <a href="#page_045">45</a>, <a href="#page_064">64</a>, <a href="#page_131">131</a>, <a href="#page_154">154</a>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>, <a href="#page_173">173</a>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_251">251</a>, <a href="#page_263">263</a>, <a href="#page_264">264</a>, <a href="#page_267">267</a>, <a href="#page_283">283</a>, <a href="#page_361">361</a>, <a href="#page_388">388</a>, <a href="#page_401">401</a>, <a href="#page_402">402</a>, <a href="#page_403">403</a>, <a href="#page_409">409</a>, <a href="#page_421">421</a>, <a href="#page_475">475</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Kemsies</span>, <a href="#page_270">270</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Kiefer</span>, <a href="#page_478">478</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Kirchmann</span>, <a href="#page_152">152</a>.<br />
+
+Knowledge, <a href="#page_183">183</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and consequences, <a href="#page_184">184</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and truth, <a href="#page_184">184</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">possibility of a priori, <a href="#page_007">7</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of human nature, important, <a href="#page_015">15</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">compared with knowledge of law, <a href="#page_016">16</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">feminine, influenced by conceit, <a href="#page_328">328</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Koch</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Koslow</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Krafft-Ebing</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>, <a href="#page_313">313</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Kräpelin</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_277">277</a>, <a href="#page_292">292</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Kraus</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>, <a href="#page_068">68</a>, <a href="#page_324">324</a>, <a href="#page_371">371</a>, <a href="#page_373">373</a>, <a href="#page_401">401</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Kries</span>, <a href="#page_153">153</a>, <a href="#page_192">192</a>, <a href="#page_210">210</a>, <a href="#page_263">263</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Külpe</span>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>, <a href="#page_276">276</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Kurella</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="L" id="L"></a>L</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lafontaine</span>, <a href="#page_369">369</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lagrave</span>, <a href="#page_234">234</a>, <a href="#page_492">492</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lange</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_367">367</a>.<br />
+
+Language, importance of, <a href="#page_287">287</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">related to character, <a href="#page_288">288</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">substitutions of, <a href="#page_289">289</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and tone, <a href="#page_290">290</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Laplace</span>, <a href="#page_150">150</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Landois</span>, <a href="#page_081">81</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Landsberg</span>, <a href="#page_101">101</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Larden</span>, <a href="#page_435">435</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Larochefoucauld</span>, <a href="#page_058">58</a>, <a href="#page_100">100</a>, <a href="#page_123">123</a>, <a href="#page_402">402</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Laschi</span>, <a href="#page_416">416</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lasson</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+Laughter, cause of, <a href="#page_076">76</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and character, <a href="#page_396">396</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lavater</span>, <a href="#page_083">83</a>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_509" id="page_509"></a>{509}</span><br />
+
+Law, empirical, <a href="#page_136">136</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Weber’s, <a href="#page_188">188</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">requirements of, and psychological accuracy, <a href="#page_107">107</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and understanding, <a href="#page_242">242</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lazarus</span>, <a href="#page_025">25</a>, <a href="#page_048">48</a>, <a href="#page_054">54</a>, <a href="#page_252">252</a>.<br />
+
+Leaps, in inference, <a href="#page_167">167</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Le Brun</span>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>.<br />
+
+Legal sciences backward, <a href="#page_005">5</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lehmann</span>, <a href="#page_042">42</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_284">284</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Leibnitz</span>, <a href="#page_135">135</a>, <a href="#page_149">149</a>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_275">275</a>, <a href="#page_385">385</a>, <a href="#page_482">482</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Leroux</span>, <a href="#page_337">337</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lichtenberg</span>, <a href="#page_238">238</a>, <a href="#page_275">275</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Liebmann</span>, <a href="#page_135">135</a>, <a href="#page_199">199</a>, <a href="#page_204">204</a>.<br />
+
+Lie, the, <a href="#page_474">474</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">the pathoformic, <a href="#page_479">479</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Liersch</span>, <a href="#page_101">101</a>.<br />
+
+Lines, position of, <a href="#page_429">429</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">illusory, <a href="#page_431">431</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lipps</span>, <a href="#page_138">138</a>, <a href="#page_144">144</a>, <a href="#page_234">234</a>, <a href="#page_246">246</a>, <a href="#page_254">254</a>, <a href="#page_379">379</a>, <a href="#page_427">427</a>, <a href="#page_429">429</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Löbisch</span>, <a href="#page_365">365</a>, <a href="#page_368">368</a>.<br />
+
+Locality, influence of, on recollection, <a href="#page_266">266</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Locke</span>, <a href="#page_150">150</a>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_262">262</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lohsing</span>, <a href="#page_031">31</a>, <a href="#page_280">280</a>, <a href="#page_474">474</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lombroso</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>, <a href="#page_045">45</a>, <a href="#page_077">77</a>, <a href="#page_195">195</a>, <a href="#page_215">215</a>, <a href="#page_315">315</a>, <a href="#page_326">326</a>, <a href="#page_339">339</a>, <a href="#page_340">340</a>, <a href="#page_341">341</a>, <a href="#page_346">346</a>, <a href="#page_355">355</a>, <a href="#page_369">369</a>, <a href="#page_373">373</a>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>, <a href="#page_416">416</a>, <a href="#page_480">480</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Longet</span>, <a href="#page_212">212</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lotze</span>, <a href="#page_028">28</a>, <a href="#page_078">78</a>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_158">158</a>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>, <a href="#page_199">199</a>, <a href="#page_264">264</a>, <a href="#page_326">326</a>, <a href="#page_328">328</a>, <a href="#page_379">379</a>, <a href="#page_427">427</a>.<br />
+
+Love, in women, <a href="#page_309">309</a>, <a href="#page_350">350</a>.<br />
+
+Loyalty of women, <a href="#page_347">347</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Lucas</span>, <a href="#page_411">411</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="M" id="M"></a>M</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mach</span>, <a href="#page_222">222</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Magnus</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mantegazza</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_319">319</a>, <a href="#page_334">334</a>, <a href="#page_341">341</a>, <a href="#page_343">343</a>, <a href="#page_344">344</a>, <a href="#page_355">355</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Marbe</span>, <a href="#page_039">39</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Marchaud</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Marion</span>, <a href="#page_301">301</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Marro</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Martinak</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Masaryk</span>, <a href="#page_130">130</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Maschka</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+Master-lawyer, the, <a href="#page_009">9</a>.<br />
+
+Material, source of, <a href="#page_004">4</a>.<br />
+
+Maternal instinct, <a href="#page_321">321</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Maudsley</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>, <a href="#page_048">48</a>, <a href="#page_185">185</a>, <a href="#page_237">237</a>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>, <a href="#page_264">264</a>, <a href="#page_276">276</a>, <a href="#page_368">368</a>, <a href="#page_393">393</a>, <a href="#page_465">465</a>, <a href="#page_481">481</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mayer, Max</span>, <a href="#page_117">117</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mayer, von</span>, <a href="#page_184">184</a>, <a href="#page_255">255</a>.<br />
+
+Maxims, about women, dangerous, <a href="#page_308">308</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Meinong</span>, <a href="#page_119">119</a>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_459">459</a>, <a href="#page_471">471</a>.<br />
+
+Memory, <a href="#page_258">258</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and reproduction, <a href="#page_261">261</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and time, <a href="#page_261">261</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">theories of, <a href="#page_262">262</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">proportionate to activity, <a href="#page_263">263</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Kant on, <a href="#page_263">263</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of pain, <a href="#page_264">264</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and fancy, <a href="#page_265">265</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of the dying, <a href="#page_274">274</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of the senile, <a href="#page_375">375</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">anomalies of, <a href="#page_272">272</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and wounds in the head, <a href="#page_273">273</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">illusions of, <a href="#page_275">275</a>.</span><br />
+
+Men of power as witnesses, <a href="#page_066">66</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Menger</span>, <a href="#page_005">5</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Meno</span>, <a href="#page_007">7</a>.<br />
+
+Menstruation, facts of, <a href="#page_312">312</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">effects of beginning of, <a href="#page_313">313</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">modifies perception, <a href="#page_314">314</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and sensibility, <a href="#page_315">315</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">causes theft, <a href="#page_316">316</a>.</span><br />
+
+Method, defined, <a href="#page_003">3</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of drawing out witnesses, <a href="#page_020">20</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Metzger</span>, <a href="#page_001">1</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Meyer, L.</span>, <a href="#page_053">53</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Meyer, M.</span>, <a href="#page_448">448</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Meynert</span>, <a href="#page_052">52</a>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_086">86</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Michel</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Michelet</span>, <a href="#page_307">307</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mill</span>, <a href="#page_121">121</a>, <a href="#page_123">123</a>, <a href="#page_138">138</a>, <a href="#page_153">153</a>, <a href="#page_154">154</a>, <a href="#page_155">155</a>, <a href="#page_156">156</a>, <a href="#page_173">173</a>, <a href="#page_176">176</a>, <a href="#page_178">178</a>, <a href="#page_181">181</a>, <a href="#page_223">223</a>, <a href="#page_290">290</a>, <a href="#page_388">388</a>.<br />
+
+Mistakes, of inference, <a href="#page_176">176</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">aprioristic, <a href="#page_177">177</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of observation, <a href="#page_177">177</a>, <a href="#page_222">222</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of generalization, <a href="#page_177">177</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of confusion, <a href="#page_177">177</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of the senses, <a href="#page_422">422</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in practical affairs, <a href="#page_423">423</a>.</span><br />
+
+Misunderstandings, verbal, <a href="#page_467">467</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">through verbal substitutions, <a href="#page_470">470</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">through fatigue, <a href="#page_473">473</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mitchell</span>, <a href="#page_077">77</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mittermaier</span>, <a href="#page_032">32</a>, <a href="#page_106">106</a>, <a href="#page_149">149</a>, <a href="#page_161">161</a>, <a href="#page_175">175</a>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_303">303</a>, <a href="#page_368">368</a>, <a href="#page_389">389</a>, <a href="#page_398">398</a>, <a href="#page_492">492</a>.<br />
+
+Mnemotechnique, <a href="#page_279">279</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">dangers of, <a href="#page_280">280</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mobius</span>, <a href="#page_307">307</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Moll</span>, <a href="#page_477">477</a>.<br />
+
+Money, and women, <a href="#page_338">338</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mönnigshoff</span>, <a href="#page_484">484</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_510" id="page_510"></a>{510}</span><br />
+
+Moral perversions associated with pathological phenomena, <a href="#page_045">45</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">More</span>, <a href="#page_236">236</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Moreau</span>, <a href="#page_369">369</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Mosso</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_458">458</a>.<br />
+
+Motives, apparent and real, <a href="#page_068">68</a>.<br />
+
+Mouth, closing of, <a href="#page_090">90</a>.<br />
+
+Movement, illusions of, <a href="#page_435">435</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and image, <a href="#page_236">236</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Müller, J.</span>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>, <a href="#page_086">86</a>, <a href="#page_465">465</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Münch</span>, <a href="#page_001">1</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Münsterberg</span>, <a href="#page_174">174</a>, <a href="#page_179">179</a>, <a href="#page_210">210</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_283">283</a>, <a href="#page_469">469</a>, <a href="#page_491">491</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="N" id="N"></a>N</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Näcke</span>, <a href="#page_045">45</a>, <a href="#page_071">71</a>, <a href="#page_077">77</a>, <a href="#page_180">180</a>, <a href="#page_181">181</a>, <a href="#page_238">238</a>, <a href="#page_300">300</a>, <a href="#page_478">478</a>.<br />
+
+Naïveté, <a href="#page_402">402</a>.<br />
+
+Names, memory of, <a href="#page_268">268</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Nasse</span>, <a href="#page_369">369</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Natorp</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+Natural science, method of, in daily routine, <a href="#page_009">9</a>.<br />
+
+Nature, and nurture, <a href="#page_384">384</a>.<br />
+
+Need, and crime, <a href="#page_057">57</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Neumann</span>, <a href="#page_319">319</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Newton</span>, <a href="#page_101">101</a>, <a href="#page_251">251</a>.<br />
+
+Nexus, causal, and observation, <a href="#page_120">120</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Noel</span>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>, <a href="#page_252">252</a>.<br />
+
+Normal people, auditory illusions of, <a href="#page_446">446</a>.<br />
+
+Nostalgia, <a href="#page_077">77</a>.<br />
+
+Number, and judgment, <a href="#page_174">174</a>.<br />
+
+Nurture, and nature, <a href="#page_384">384</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of, <a href="#page_385">385</a>.</span><br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="O" id="O"></a>O</span><br />
+
+Objectivity, feminine lack of, <a href="#page_334">334</a>.<br />
+
+Observation, as corroboration, <a href="#page_055">55</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">differences in, <a href="#page_376">376</a>.</span><br />
+
+Obstinacy a form of egoism, <a href="#page_027">27</a>.<br />
+
+Occupation, and inference, <a href="#page_167">167</a>.<br />
+
+“Occurrence,” <a href="#page_256">256</a>.<br />
+
+Officials, impose on witnesses, <a href="#page_008">8</a>.<br />
+
+Old maid, the, <a href="#page_329">329</a>.<br />
+
+Olfactory illusions, <a href="#page_453">453</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Olzelt-Newin</span>, <a href="#page_385">385</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Oppenheim</span>, <a href="#page_364">364</a>.<br />
+
+Opportunity, <a href="#page_057">57</a>.<br />
+
+Organisation, of case, <a href="#page_012">12</a>.<br />
+
+Orientation, <a href="#page_230">230</a>.<br />
+
+Orifice, influences size of object seen through it, <a href="#page_430">430</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Orth</span>, <a href="#page_255">255</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ostwald, W.</span>, <a href="#page_243">243</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Öttingen</span>, <a href="#page_137">137</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ottolenghi</span>, <a href="#page_195">195</a>, <a href="#page_215">215</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="P" id="P"></a>P</span><br />
+
+Pain, reaction-time to, <a href="#page_218">218</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">memory of, <a href="#page_264">264</a>.</span><br />
+
+Paling, <a href="#page_050">50</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Panum</span>, <a href="#page_483">483</a>.<br />
+
+Paramnesia, <a href="#page_275">275</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">causes of, <a href="#page_276">276</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Parish</span>, <a href="#page_427">427</a>.<br />
+
+Passion, and affection, <a href="#page_417">417</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in judges, <a href="#page_417">417</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in witnesses, <a href="#page_418">418</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and hatred, <a href="#page_418">418</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">process of, <a href="#page_420">420</a>.</span><br />
+
+Pathetic fallacy, the, <a href="#page_398">398</a>.<br />
+
+Patience, importance of, <a href="#page_018">18</a>.<br />
+
+Peculiarities of recollection, <a href="#page_268">268</a>.<br />
+
+Perception, purity of, <a href="#page_190">190</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">visual, <a href="#page_198">198</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and size, <a href="#page_199">199</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">relation to consciousness, etc., <a href="#page_221">221</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">limitations of, <a href="#page_225">225</a>, <a href="#page_226">226</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of environment and training on, <a href="#page_227">227</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">“dark,” <a href="#page_228">228</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how to test differences in, <a href="#page_229">229</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of experts, <a href="#page_229">229</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">subconscious, <a href="#page_230">230</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and orientation, <a href="#page_230">230</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Perez</span>, <a href="#page_369">369</a>.<br />
+
+Personal equation, the, <a href="#page_376">376</a>.<br />
+
+Perspective, <a href="#page_430">430</a>.<br />
+
+Perversions, moral, associated with pathological phenomena, <a href="#page_045">45</a>.<br />
+
+Perversity of the inanimate, <a href="#page_072">72</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Pesch</span>, <a href="#page_189">189</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Petronievics</span>, <a href="#page_147">147</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Petruskewisch</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+Phenomenology, defined, <a href="#page_041">41</a>.<br />
+
+Phrenology, relation to physiognomics, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+Photographs, judgment of the uneducated on, <a href="#page_390">390</a>.<br />
+
+Physiognomics, bibliography of, <a href="#page_084">84</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">defined, <a href="#page_085">85</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">basis of, <a href="#page_086">86</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">best studied in children and simple people, <a href="#page_087">87</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Piderit</span>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>, <a href="#page_087">87</a>, <a href="#page_099">99</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_511" id="page_511"></a>{511}</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Piesbergen</span>, <a href="#page_484">484</a>.<br />
+
+Piety, as submerged sexuality, <a href="#page_323">323</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Plateau</span>, <a href="#page_443">443</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Platner</span>, <a href="#page_001">1</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Plato</span>, <a href="#page_003">3</a>, <a href="#page_004">4</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Plüschke</span>, <a href="#page_364">364</a>.<br />
+
+Poets, the, on woman, <a href="#page_305">305</a>.<br />
+
+Poisoning, a feminine crime, <a href="#page_356">356</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Porta</span>, <a href="#page_083">83</a>.<br />
+
+Position, of lines influences size, <a href="#page_427">427</a>.<br />
+
+Possibility, <a href="#page_157">157</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and inference, <a href="#page_170">170</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Potet, Du</span>, <a href="#page_269">269</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Pouchet</span>, <a href="#page_009">9</a>, <a href="#page_073">73</a>.<br />
+
+Practicality of scientific method, <a href="#page_011">11</a>.<br />
+
+Pregnancy, <a href="#page_317">317</a>.<br />
+
+Prejudices, <a href="#page_177">177</a>, <a href="#page_412">412</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and egoism, <a href="#page_413">413</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and names, <a href="#page_414">414</a>.</span><br />
+
+Premonitions, <a href="#page_466">466</a>.<br />
+
+Prepossession, <a href="#page_412">412</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and egoism, <a href="#page_413">413</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and names, <a href="#page_414">414</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Preyer</span>, <a href="#page_210">210</a>, <a href="#page_368">368</a>.<br />
+
+Principle, the fundamental, <a href="#page_004">4</a>.<br />
+
+Probability, <a href="#page_131">131</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and skepticism, <a href="#page_131">131</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">increases through repetition, <a href="#page_132">132</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and equal distribution, <a href="#page_133">133</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">value of, <a href="#page_148">148</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">conditioned and unconditioned, <a href="#page_151">151</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">Kirchmann on, <a href="#page_152">152</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and criminal procedure, <a href="#page_157">157</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and rule, <a href="#page_158">158</a>.</span><br />
+
+Promises, and character, <a href="#page_058">58</a>.<br />
+
+Promoters as witnesses, <a href="#page_066">66</a>.<br />
+
+Proof, irrelevant circumstances to, <a href="#page_114">114</a>.<br />
+
+Propaedeutic, philosophical, <a href="#page_001">1</a>.<br />
+
+Property, woman’s sense of, <a href="#page_346">346</a>.<br />
+
+“Proved,” <a href="#page_147">147</a>.<br />
+
+Psychological handling, correct and incorrect, <a href="#page_015">15</a>.<br />
+
+Psychology, criminal, of law, <a href="#page_001">1</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">a bone of contention, <a href="#page_002">2</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as psychiatry, <a href="#page_002">2</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as anthropology, <a href="#page_002">2</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">form of, <a href="#page_002">2</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and statistics, <a href="#page_179">179</a>.</span><br />
+
+Puberty, influence of, on juvenile delinquency, <a href="#page_370">370</a>.<br />
+
+Punctuality, feminine, <a href="#page_340">340</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="Q" id="Q"></a>Q</span><br />
+
+Qualities, how related, <a href="#page_061">61</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Quantz</span>, <a href="#page_206">206</a>.<br />
+
+Quarrels with women, <a href="#page_338">338</a>.<br />
+
+Questions, positive and negative, <a href="#page_139">139</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Quetelet</span>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="R" id="R"></a>R</span><br />
+
+Rage, <a href="#page_096">96</a>.<br />
+
+Recognition, <a href="#page_221">221</a>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>.<br />
+
+Reflex actions, <a href="#page_079">79</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how caused, <a href="#page_079">79</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">distinguished from habit, <a href="#page_080">80</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">not inevitable, <a href="#page_081">81</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">require coöperation of brain, <a href="#page_082">82</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Regnault</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>, <a href="#page_292">292</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Reich</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_307">307</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Reichenbach</span>, <a href="#page_076">76</a>, <a href="#page_313">313</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Reid</span>, <a href="#page_089">89</a>, <a href="#page_130">130</a>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_430">430</a>.<br />
+
+Religion, and character, <a href="#page_387">387</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Renooz</span>, <a href="#page_307">307</a>.<br />
+
+Repetition and probability, <a href="#page_132">132</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and touch, <a href="#page_220">220</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influences perception, <a href="#page_228">228</a>.</span><br />
+
+Reproduction, and memory, <a href="#page_261">261</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">forms of, <a href="#page_263">263</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">rules for helping, <a href="#page_265">265</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and locality, <a href="#page_266">266</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">peculiarities of, <a href="#page_268">268</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">field of, <a href="#page_269">269</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of idiots, <a href="#page_270">270</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of children, <a href="#page_270">270</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of the aged, <a href="#page_272">272</a>.</span><br />
+
+Resignation, <a href="#page_096">96</a>.<br />
+
+Resolution, importance as sign, <a href="#page_091">91</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in jurymen, <a href="#page_092">92</a>.</span><br />
+
+Responsibility, and intoxication, <a href="#page_485">485</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Ribot</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_385">385</a>, <a href="#page_411">411</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Richardson</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Roncoroni</span>, <a href="#page_215">215</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Rosegger</span>, <a href="#page_063">63</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Rosenkranz</span>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>.<br />
+
+Rule, <a href="#page_158">158</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and exceptions, <a href="#page_134">134</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and probability, <a href="#page_158">158</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">for helping recollection, <a href="#page_265">265</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Rykère</span>, <a href="#page_307">307</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="S" id="S"></a>S</span><br />
+
+Sadism, <a href="#page_077">77</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sand</span>, <a href="#page_352">352</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sander</span>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_275">275</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Saulle, Du</span>, <a href="#page_316">316</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schack</span>, <a href="#page_084">84</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schaumann</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schebest</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schiel</span>, <a href="#page_109">109</a>, <a href="#page_147">147</a>, <a href="#page_159">159</a>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>, <a href="#page_174">174</a>, <a href="#page_222">222</a>, <a href="#page_376">376</a>, <a href="#page_381">381</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_512" id="page_512"></a>{512}</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schmidt</span>, <a href="#page_054">54</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schneickert</span>, <a href="#page_266">266</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schneider</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schopenhauer</span>, <a href="#page_056">56</a>, <a href="#page_128">128</a>, <a href="#page_343">343</a>, <a href="#page_359">359</a>, <a href="#page_384">384</a>, <a href="#page_396">396</a>, <a href="#page_464">464</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schrenck-Notzing</span>, <a href="#page_077">77</a>, <a href="#page_115">115</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schultze</span>, <a href="#page_079">79</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schuppe</span>, <a href="#page_237">237</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schwartz</span>, <a href="#page_120">120</a>, <a href="#page_192">192</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schweiger-Lerchenfeld</span>, <a href="#page_307">307</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Schwob</span>, <a href="#page_317">317</a>.<br />
+
+Scorn, <a href="#page_093">93</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in witnesses, <a href="#page_094">94</a>.</span><br />
+
+Secrets, <a href="#page_028">28</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">hard to keep, <a href="#page_029">29</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">judge’s duty toward, <a href="#page_029">29</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as confession, <a href="#page_031">31</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">damage through revelation of, <a href="#page_030">30</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how discovered, <a href="#page_031">31</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and women, <a href="#page_364">364</a>.</span><br />
+
+Self, as centre of reference, <a href="#page_248">248</a>.<br />
+
+Self-knowledge, a guide, <a href="#page_058">58</a>.<br />
+
+Senility, <a href="#page_372">372</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in witnesses, <a href="#page_374">374</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">types of, <a href="#page_374">374</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">memory in, <a href="#page_375">375</a>.</span><br />
+
+Sensation, subjective, <a href="#page_191">191</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and nervous system, <a href="#page_192">192</a>.</span><br />
+
+Sense-perception, importance of, <a href="#page_187">187</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">relation to optical and acoustical knowledge, <a href="#page_189">189</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and social status, <a href="#page_190">190</a>.</span><br />
+
+Senses, of children, <a href="#page_367">367</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">vicariousness of the, <a href="#page_193">193</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sergi</span>, <a href="#page_319">319</a>, <a href="#page_350">350</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sernoff</span>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>.<br />
+
+Servants, as sources of information, <a href="#page_063">63</a>.<br />
+
+Sex, as submerged cause of crime, <a href="#page_322">322</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as piety, <a href="#page_323">323</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as ennui, <a href="#page_324">324</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as conceit, <a href="#page_325">325</a>.</span><br />
+
+Sexuality, of women, <a href="#page_320">320</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">as maternal instinct, <a href="#page_320">320</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in criminal situations, <a href="#page_321">321</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Shinn</span>, <a href="#page_364">364</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sicard</span>, <a href="#page_215">215</a>.<br />
+
+Side-issues, confused with central ones, <a href="#page_116">116</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sidis</span>, <a href="#page_481">481</a>, <a href="#page_492">492</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sighele</span>, <a href="#page_416">416</a>.<br />
+
+Sight, sense of, important, <a href="#page_196">196</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">tested by touch, <a href="#page_197">197</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">process of, <a href="#page_197">197</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sinsteden</span>, <a href="#page_434">434</a>.<br />
+
+Size of lines influenced by position, <a href="#page_427">427</a>.<br />
+
+Skepticism, <a href="#page_127">127</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and habit, <a href="#page_130">130</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and probability, <a href="#page_131">131</a>.</span><br />
+
+Skill and habit, <a href="#page_407">407</a>.<br />
+
+Skin, transpositions of, and tactile sense, <a href="#page_219">219</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Skraup</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Slaughter</span>, <a href="#page_040">40</a>.<br />
+
+Sleep, <a href="#page_481">481</a>.<br />
+
+Smell, sense of, <a href="#page_213">213</a>.<br />
+
+Smile, the, <a href="#page_094">94</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Smith</span>, <a href="#page_302">302</a>.<br />
+
+Smuggling, and women, <a href="#page_345">345</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Socrates</span>, <a href="#page_007">7</a>, <a href="#page_169">169</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sommer</span>, <a href="#page_276">276</a>.<br />
+
+Sources, various, of evidence, <a href="#page_012">12</a>.<br />
+
+Sound, direction of, <a href="#page_210">210</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">conduction of, <a href="#page_210">210</a>.</span><br />
+
+Sparkle, <a href="#page_206">206</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of the eyes, <a href="#page_096">96</a>.</span><br />
+
+Specialist, <a href="#page_125">125</a>.<br />
+
+Speech, and image, <a href="#page_235">235</a>.<br />
+
+Speed, a test of knowledge, <a href="#page_231">231</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Spencer</span>, <a href="#page_044">44</a>, <a href="#page_046">46</a>, <a href="#page_074">74</a>, <a href="#page_102">102</a>, <a href="#page_360">360</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Spinoza</span>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>.<br />
+
+Spite, <a href="#page_094">94</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how treated, <a href="#page_095">95</a>.</span><br />
+
+Statistics, and psychology, <a href="#page_179">179</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of suicide, <a href="#page_181">181</a>.</span><br />
+
+Statutes, aprioristic, <a href="#page_005">5</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Steinthal</span>, <a href="#page_298">298</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Stern</span>, <a href="#page_192">192</a>, <a href="#page_307">307</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Stölzel</span>, <a href="#page_434">434</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Storch</span>, <a href="#page_236">236</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Stricker</span>, <a href="#page_048">48</a>, <a href="#page_118">118</a>, <a href="#page_122">122</a>, <a href="#page_166">166</a>, <a href="#page_204">204</a>, <a href="#page_236">236</a>, <a href="#page_255">255</a>, <a href="#page_437">437</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Strindberg</span>, <a href="#page_212">212</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Struve</span>, <a href="#page_056">56</a>, <a href="#page_068">68</a>.<br />
+
+Stupidity, <a href="#page_398">398</a>, <a href="#page_400">400</a>.<br />
+
+Style, and character, <a href="#page_058">58</a>.<br />
+
+Subconscious, the, <a href="#page_245">245</a>.<br />
+
+Substitutions, and misunderstandings, <a href="#page_470">470</a>.<br />
+
+Success, conditions of, <a href="#page_014">14</a>.<br />
+
+Succession, importance of the order of, <a href="#page_013">13</a>.<br />
+
+Suggestion, <a href="#page_491">491</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">not involved in guidance, <a href="#page_009">9</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Sully</span>, <a href="#page_138">138</a>, <a href="#page_259">259</a>, <a href="#page_276">276</a>, <a href="#page_451">451</a>, <a href="#page_456">456</a>, <a href="#page_464">464</a>.<br />
+
+Symbol and symbolized, <a href="#page_244">244</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_513" id="page_513"></a>{513}</span><br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="T" id="T"></a>T</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Taine</span>, <a href="#page_250">250</a>, <a href="#page_274">274</a>, <a href="#page_382">382</a>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>, <a href="#page_452">452</a>, <a href="#page_465">465</a>, <a href="#page_466">466</a>, <a href="#page_471">471</a>, <a href="#page_482">482</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Tarde</span>, <a href="#page_385">385</a>, <a href="#page_410">410</a>, <a href="#page_415">415</a>, <a href="#page_416">416</a>.<br />
+
+Taste, <a href="#page_212">212</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">illusions of, <a href="#page_452">452</a>.</span><br />
+
+Tears, of women, <a href="#page_344">344</a>.<br />
+
+Temperament, <a href="#page_395">395</a>.<br />
+
+Temperature, sense of, <a href="#page_217">217</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Tertullian</span>, <a href="#page_169">169</a>.<br />
+
+Testimony, blind acceptance of, <a href="#page_008">8</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">contradictions in, <a href="#page_108">108</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">interpretation of, <a href="#page_108">108</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of women, <a href="#page_310">310</a>.</span><br />
+
+Thinking, mechanism of, <a href="#page_243">243</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and symbol, <a href="#page_244">244</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Thompson</span>, <a href="#page_433">433</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Thomson</span>, <a href="#page_002">2</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Tigerstedt</span>, <a href="#page_192">192</a>.<br />
+
+Timbre, vocal, <a href="#page_046">46</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of emotions on, <a href="#page_047">47</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">corroborative value of, <a href="#page_047">47</a>.</span><br />
+
+Time, and image, <a href="#page_237">237</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of day and mental processes, <a href="#page_245">245</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">children’s sense of, <a href="#page_368">368</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence on conception, <a href="#page_383">383</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and isolation, <a href="#page_397">397</a>.</span><br />
+
+Timidity, <a href="#page_075">75</a>.<br />
+
+Toes, <a href="#page_104">104</a>.<br />
+
+Touch, <a href="#page_215">215</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">tests sense of sight, <a href="#page_197">197</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">relation to other senses, <a href="#page_215">215</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of drugs on, <a href="#page_215">215</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how affected by transpositions of skin, <a href="#page_219">219</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and wetness, <a href="#page_219">219</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of repetition on, <a href="#page_220">220</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and form, <a href="#page_220">220</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">bodily sensitiveness to, <a href="#page_220">220</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">illusions of, <a href="#page_449">449</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Tracy</span>, <a href="#page_364">364</a>.<br />
+
+Training, of witnesses, <a href="#page_016">16</a>.<br />
+
+Tramps, <a href="#page_017">17</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">congenital, <a href="#page_018">18</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Trendelenburg</span>, <a href="#page_146">146</a>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>.<br />
+
+Truth, and persuasion, <a href="#page_161">161</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and manner, <a href="#page_162">162</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">historical and inference, <a href="#page_171">171</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and knowledge, <a href="#page_184">184</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Tylor</span>, <a href="#page_288">288</a>, <a href="#page_290">290</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Tyndall</span>, <a href="#page_209">209</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="U" id="U"></a>U</span><br />
+
+Understanding, <a href="#page_238">238</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">how gauged in witnesses, <a href="#page_239">239</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and public instruction, <a href="#page_241">241</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and law, <a href="#page_242">242</a>.</span><br />
+
+Uneducated, views of the, <a href="#page_388">388</a>.<br />
+
+Unit-characters, <a href="#page_046">46</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">variety of recognition of, <a href="#page_046">46</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Uphues</span>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>, <a href="#page_267">267</a>, <a href="#page_472">472</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="V-i" id="V-i"></a>V</span><br />
+
+Vagabondage, <a href="#page_394">394</a>.<br />
+
+Valuation, of evidence, <a href="#page_012">12</a>.<br />
+
+Variation of conditions, <a href="#page_012">12</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Vaschide</span>, <a href="#page_192">192</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Venn</span>, <a href="#page_150">150</a>.<br />
+
+Veracity, egoism a criterion of, <a href="#page_028">28</a>.<br />
+
+Vicariousness of the senses, <a href="#page_193">193</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Vierordt</span>, <a href="#page_220">220</a>.<br />
+
+Views, influence of on evidence, <a href="#page_377">377</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">of the uneducated, <a href="#page_388">388</a>.</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Vincent</span>, <a href="#page_202">202</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Vischer</span>, <a href="#page_072">72</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Virchow</span>, <a href="#page_086">86</a>.<br />
+
+Visual perception, artificial differences in, <a href="#page_202">202</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">binocular, <a href="#page_203">203</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence of custom on, <a href="#page_203">203</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">in darkness, <a href="#page_204">204</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and form, <a href="#page_201">201</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and muscular innervation, <a href="#page_204">204</a>.</span><br />
+
+Voice, relation of to gesture, <a href="#page_048">48</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Voisin</span>, <a href="#page_370">370</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Volkmar</span>, <a href="#page_001">1</a>, <a href="#page_015">15</a>, <a href="#page_039">39</a>, <a href="#page_060">60</a>, <a href="#page_067">67</a>, <a href="#page_074">74</a>, <a href="#page_162">162</a>, <a href="#page_244">244</a>, <a href="#page_269">269</a>, <a href="#page_299">299</a>, <a href="#page_307">307</a>, <a href="#page_375">375</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Vurpass</span>, <a href="#page_192">192</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="W" id="W"></a>W</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Wagner</span>, <a href="#page_180">180</a>, <a href="#page_181">181</a>, <a href="#page_385">385</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Waitz</span>, <a href="#page_051">51</a>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Warnkönig</span>, <a href="#page_010">10</a>.<br />
+
+We, as a character-mark, <a href="#page_060">60</a>.<br />
+
+Weakness, of women, <a href="#page_362">362</a>.<br />
+
+Weaknesses, shown to inferiors and servants, <a href="#page_062">62</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Weber</span>, <a href="#page_188">188</a>, <a href="#page_217">217</a>, <a href="#page_220">220</a>, <a href="#page_441">441</a>.<br />
+
+Weber’s law, <a href="#page_188">188</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Wernicke</span>, <a href="#page_455">455</a>.<br />
+
+Wetness, and touch, <a href="#page_219">219</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Whately</span>, <a href="#page_147">147</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Wiener</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Wiersma</span>, <a href="#page_039">39</a>.<br />
+
+Will, <a href="#page_281">281</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Windelband</span>, <a href="#page_160">160</a>, <a href="#page_161">161</a>, <a href="#page_233">233</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Winkelmann</span>, <a href="#page_102">102</a>.<br />
+
+Wisdom, <a href="#page_403">403</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Witasek</span>, <a href="#page_464">464</a>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="page_514" id="page_514"></a>{514}</span><br />
+
+Witnesses, do not know what they know, <a href="#page_008">8</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">imposed on by officials, <a href="#page_008">8</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">wandering of, <a href="#page_017">17</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">wordy, <a href="#page_018">18</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">laconic, <a href="#page_019">19</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">method of drawing out, <a href="#page_020">20</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">difficulty with educated, <a href="#page_023">23</a>.</span><br />
+
+Woman, <a href="#page_300">300</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">basis of judging, <a href="#page_302">302</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">status of, <a href="#page_302">302</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">defined by her function, <a href="#page_304">304</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">poet on, <a href="#page_305">305</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">difference from man, <a href="#page_307">307</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">danger of maxims about, <a href="#page_308">308</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and love, <a href="#page_309">309</a>, <a href="#page_350">350</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">crimes of, <a href="#page_310">310</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">testimony of, <a href="#page_310">310</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">quarrels with, <a href="#page_338">338</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and money, <a href="#page_338">338</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">punctuality of, <a href="#page_340">340</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">conservatism of, <a href="#page_340">340</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">dishonesty in, <a href="#page_341">341</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">hypocrisy in, <a href="#page_344">344</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">tears of, <a href="#page_344">344</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">fainting of, <a href="#page_344">344</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and smuggling, <a href="#page_345">345</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and property, <a href="#page_346">346</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">loyalty of, <a href="#page_347">347</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">jealousy of, <a href="#page_351">351</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">friendships of, <a href="#page_353">353</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">hatred in, <a href="#page_354">354</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">cruelty in, <a href="#page_355">355</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">emotionalism of, <a href="#page_359">359</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">weakness of, <a href="#page_362">362</a>;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">and secrets, <a href="#page_364">364</a>.</span><br />
+
+Words, and conception, <a href="#page_290">290</a>;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">influence on conception, <a href="#page_381">381</a>.</span><br />
+
+Writing, like gesticulation, <a href="#page_049">49</a>.<br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Wundt</span>, <a href="#page_085">85</a>, <a href="#page_210">210</a>, <a href="#page_260">260</a>.<br />
+
+<br />
+<span class="lettre"><a name="Z" id="Z"></a>Z</span><br />
+
+<span class="smcap">Zöllner</span>, <a href="#page_433">433</a>.<br />
+</p>
+
+<div class="footnotes"><p class="cb"><a name="FOOTNOTES" id="FOOTNOTES"></a>FOOTNOTES:</p>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> W. Volkmann v. Volkmar: Lehrbuch der Psychologic (2 vols.).
+Cöthen 1875.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_2_2" id="Footnote_2_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> J. Metzger: “Gerichtlich-medizinische Abhandlungen.”
+Königsberg 1803.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_3_3" id="Footnote_3_3"></a><a href="#FNanchor_3_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></a> Ernst Plainer: Questiones medicinae forensis, tr. German by
+Hederich. Leipzig 1820.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_4_4" id="Footnote_4_4"></a><a href="#FNanchor_4_4"><span class="label">[4]</span></a> J. C. Hoffbauer: Die Psychologic in ihren Hauptanwendungen
+auf die Rechtspflege. Halle 1823.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_5_5" id="Footnote_5_5"></a><a href="#FNanchor_5_5"><span class="label">[5]</span></a> G. A. Grohmann: Ideen zu einer physiognomischen
+Anthropologie. Leipzig 1791.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_6_6" id="Footnote_6_6"></a><a href="#FNanchor_6_6"><span class="label">[6]</span></a> Johann Heinroth: Grundzüge der Kriminalpsychologie. Berlin
+1833.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_7_7" id="Footnote_7_7"></a><a href="#FNanchor_7_7"><span class="label">[7]</span></a> Schaumann: Ideen zu einer Kriminalpsychologie. Halle 1792.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_8_8" id="Footnote_8_8"></a><a href="#FNanchor_8_8"><span class="label">[8]</span></a> Münch: Über den Einfluss der Kriminalpsychologie auf ein
+System der Kriminal-Rechts. Nürnberg 1790.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_9_9" id="Footnote_9_9"></a><a href="#FNanchor_9_9"><span class="label">[9]</span></a> Eckartshausen: Über die Notwendigkeit psychologischer
+Kenntnisse bei Beurteilung von Verbrechern. München, 1791.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_10_10" id="Footnote_10_10"></a><a href="#FNanchor_10_10"><span class="label">[10]</span></a> J. Fries: Handbuch der psychologischer Anthropologie.
+Jena, 1820.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_11_11" id="Footnote_11_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11_11"><span class="label">[11]</span></a> E. Regnault: Das gerichtliche Urteil der Ärzte über
+psychologische Zustände. Cöln, 1830.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_12_12" id="Footnote_12_12"></a><a href="#FNanchor_12_12"><span class="label">[12]</span></a> J. B. Friedreich: System der gerichtlichen Psychologie.
+Regensburg 1832.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_13_13" id="Footnote_13_13"></a><a href="#FNanchor_13_13"><span class="label">[13]</span></a> Wilbrand: Gerichtliche Psychologie. 1858.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_14_14" id="Footnote_14_14"></a><a href="#FNanchor_14_14"><span class="label">[14]</span></a> Kraus: Die Psychologie des Verbrechens. Tübingen, 1884.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_15_15" id="Footnote_15_15"></a><a href="#FNanchor_15_15"><span class="label">[15]</span></a> v. Krafft-Ebing: Die zweifelhaften Geisteszustände.
+Erlangen 1873.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_16_16" id="Footnote_16_16"></a><a href="#FNanchor_16_16"><span class="label">[16]</span></a> Maudsley: Physiology and Pathology of the Mind.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_17_17" id="Footnote_17_17"></a><a href="#FNanchor_17_17"><span class="label">[17]</span></a> v. Holtzendorff&mdash;articles in “Rechtslexikon.”</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_18_18" id="Footnote_18_18"></a><a href="#FNanchor_18_18"><span class="label">[18]</span></a> Lombroso: L’uomo delinquente, etc.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_19_19" id="Footnote_19_19"></a><a href="#FNanchor_19_19"><span class="label">[19]</span></a> Aschaffenburg: Articles in Zeitscheift f. d. gesamten
+Strafrechtwissenschaften, especially in XX, 201.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_20_20" id="Footnote_20_20"></a><a href="#FNanchor_20_20"><span class="label">[20]</span></a> Dr. P. Näcke: Über Kriminal Psychologie, in the
+above-mentioned Zeitschrift, Vol. XVII. Verbrechen und Wahnsinn beim
+Weibe. Vienna, Leipsig, 1884. Moral Insanity: Ärztliche
+Sachverständigen-Zeitung, 1895; Neurologisches Zentralblatt, Nos. 11 and
+16. 1896.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_21_21" id="Footnote_21_21"></a><a href="#FNanchor_21_21"><span class="label">[21]</span></a> Kurella: Naturgeschichte des Verbrechers. Stuttgart 1893.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_22_22" id="Footnote_22_22"></a><a href="#FNanchor_22_22"><span class="label">[22]</span></a> Bleuler: Der geborene Verbrecher. München 1896.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_23_23" id="Footnote_23_23"></a><a href="#FNanchor_23_23"><span class="label">[23]</span></a> Dallemagne: Kriminalanthropologie. Paris 1896.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_24_24" id="Footnote_24_24"></a><a href="#FNanchor_24_24"><span class="label">[24]</span></a> Marro: I caratteri dei deliquenti. Turin 1887. I
+carcerati. Turin 1885.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_25_25" id="Footnote_25_25"></a><a href="#FNanchor_25_25"><span class="label">[25]</span></a> Havelock Ellis: The Criminal. London 1890.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_26_26" id="Footnote_26_26"></a><a href="#FNanchor_26_26"><span class="label">[26]</span></a> A. Baer: Der Verbrecher Leipzig 1893.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_27_27" id="Footnote_27_27"></a><a href="#FNanchor_27_27"><span class="label">[27]</span></a> Koch: Die Frage nach dem geborenen Verbrecher. Ravensberg
+1894.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_28_28" id="Footnote_28_28"></a><a href="#FNanchor_28_28"><span class="label">[28]</span></a> Maschka: Handbuch der Gerichtlichen Medisin (vol. IV).
+Tübingen 1883.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_29_29" id="Footnote_29_29"></a><a href="#FNanchor_29_29"><span class="label">[29]</span></a> Thomson: Psychologie der Verbrecher.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_30_30" id="Footnote_30_30"></a><a href="#FNanchor_30_30"><span class="label">[30]</span></a> Ferri: Gerichtl. Psychologie. Mailand 1893.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_31_31" id="Footnote_31_31"></a><a href="#FNanchor_31_31"><span class="label">[31]</span></a> Bonfigli: Die Natugeschichte des Verbrechers. Mailand
+1892.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_32_32" id="Footnote_32_32"></a><a href="#FNanchor_32_32"><span class="label">[32]</span></a> Corre: Les Criminels. Paris 1889.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_33_33" id="Footnote_33_33"></a><a href="#FNanchor_33_33"><span class="label">[33]</span></a> P. Jessen: Versuch einer wissenechaftlichen Begründung der
+Psychologie. Berlin 1855.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_34_34" id="Footnote_34_34"></a><a href="#FNanchor_34_34"><span class="label">[34]</span></a> R. Gneist: Aphorismen zur Reform des Rechtsstudiums.
+Berlin 1887.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_35_35" id="Footnote_35_35"></a><a href="#FNanchor_35_35"><span class="label">[35]</span></a> A. Menger: in Archiv für soziale Gesetzgebung v. Braun
+II.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_36_36" id="Footnote_36_36"></a><a href="#FNanchor_36_36"><span class="label">[36]</span></a> A. Stölzel: Schulung für die Zivilistiche Praxis. 2d Ed.
+Berlin 1896.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_37_37" id="Footnote_37_37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_37_37"><span class="label">[37]</span></a> S. Goldschmidt: Rechtsstudium und Prüfungsordnung.
+Stuttgart 1887.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_38_38" id="Footnote_38_38"></a><a href="#FNanchor_38_38"><span class="label">[38]</span></a> A. v. Brinz: Über Universalität. Rektorsrede 1876.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_39_39" id="Footnote_39_39"></a><a href="#FNanchor_39_39"><span class="label">[39]</span></a> M. Guggenheim: Die Lehre vom aprioristischen Wissen.
+Berlin 1885.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_40_40" id="Footnote_40_40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_40_40"><span class="label">[40]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv VI, 328 and VIII, 84.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_41_41" id="Footnote_41_41"></a><a href="#FNanchor_41_41"><span class="label">[41]</span></a> R. v. Ihering: Scherz und Ernst in der Jurisprudenz.
+Leipzig 1885.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_42_42" id="Footnote_42_42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_42_42"><span class="label">[42]</span></a> Warnkönig: Versuch einer Begründung des Rechtes. Bonn
+1819.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_43_43" id="Footnote_43_43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_43_43"><span class="label">[43]</span></a> H. Spitzer: Über das Verhältnis der Philosophie zu den
+organischen Naturwissenschaften. Leipzig 1883.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_44_44" id="Footnote_44_44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_44_44"><span class="label">[44]</span></a> Cf. Gross’s Archiv VIII 89.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_45_45" id="Footnote_45_45"></a><a href="#FNanchor_45_45"><span class="label">[45]</span></a> A. v. Öttingen: Moralstatistik. Erlangen 1882.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_46_46" id="Footnote_46_46"></a><a href="#FNanchor_46_46"><span class="label">[46]</span></a> Erdmann: Über die Dummheit. 1886.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_47_47" id="Footnote_47_47"></a><a href="#FNanchor_47_47"><span class="label">[47]</span></a> Ebbinghaus: Über das Gedächtniss. Leipzig 1885.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_48_48" id="Footnote_48_48"></a><a href="#FNanchor_48_48"><span class="label">[48]</span></a> J. S. Mill: System of Logic.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_49_49" id="Footnote_49_49"></a><a href="#FNanchor_49_49"><span class="label">[49]</span></a> Cf. Löwenstimm, in H. Gross’s Archiv, VII, 191.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_50_50" id="Footnote_50_50"></a><a href="#FNanchor_50_50"><span class="label">[50]</span></a> Pathological conditions, if at all distinct, are easily
+recognizable, but there is a very broad and fully occupied border
+country between pathological and normal conditions. (Cf. O. Gross: Die
+Affeklage der Ablehnung. Monatschrift für Psychiatrie u. Neurologie,
+1902, XII, 359.)</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_51_51" id="Footnote_51_51"></a><a href="#FNanchor_51_51"><span class="label">[51]</span></a> Fröbel: Die Menschenerziehung. Keilhau 1826.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_52_52" id="Footnote_52_52"></a><a href="#FNanchor_52_52"><span class="label">[52]</span></a> K. Lange: Über Apperzeption. Plauen 1889.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_53_53" id="Footnote_53_53"></a><a href="#FNanchor_53_53"><span class="label">[53]</span></a> Diehl in H. Gross’s Archiv, XI, 240.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_54_54" id="Footnote_54_54"></a><a href="#FNanchor_54_54"><span class="label">[54]</span></a> Carus: Psychologie. Leipzig 1823.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_55_55" id="Footnote_55_55"></a><a href="#FNanchor_55_55"><span class="label">[55]</span></a> M. Lazarus: Das Leben der Seele. Berlin 1856.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_56_56" id="Footnote_56_56"></a><a href="#FNanchor_56_56"><span class="label">[56]</span></a> Lotze: Der Instinkt. Kleine Schriften. Leipzig 1885.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_57_57" id="Footnote_57_57"></a><a href="#FNanchor_57_57"><span class="label">[57]</span></a> Cf. Lohsing: “Confession” in Gross’s Archiv, IV, 23, and
+Hausner: <i>ibid. </i>XIII, 267.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_58_58" id="Footnote_58_58"></a><a href="#FNanchor_58_58"><span class="label">[58]</span></a> Cf. the extraordinary confession of the wife of the
+“cannibal” Bratuscha. The latter had confessed to having stifled his
+twelve year old daughter, burned and part by part consumed her. He said
+his wife was his accomplice. The woman denied it at first but after
+going to confession told the judge the same story as her husband. It
+turned out that the priest had refused her absolution until she
+“confessed the truth.” But both she and her husband had confessed
+falsely. The child was alive. Her father’s confession was pathologically
+caused, her mother’s by her desire for absolution.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_59_59" id="Footnote_59_59"></a><a href="#FNanchor_59_59"><span class="label">[59]</span></a> C. J. A. Mittermaier: Die Lehre vom Beweise im deutschen
+Strafprosess, Darmstadt 1834.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_60_60" id="Footnote_60_60"></a><a href="#FNanchor_60_60"><span class="label">[60]</span></a> Poe calls such confessions pure perversities.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_61_61" id="Footnote_61_61"></a><a href="#FNanchor_61_61"><span class="label">[61]</span></a> Cf. Elsenshaus: Wesen u. Entstehung des Gewissens. Leipzig
+1894.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_62_62" id="Footnote_62_62"></a><a href="#FNanchor_62_62"><span class="label">[62]</span></a> Cf. above, the case of the “cannibal” Bratuscha.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_63_63" id="Footnote_63_63"></a><a href="#FNanchor_63_63"><span class="label">[63]</span></a> We must not overlook those cases in which false
+confessions are the results of disease, vivid dreams, and toxications,
+especially toxication by coal-gas. People so poisoned, but saved from
+death, claim frequently to have been guilty of murder (Hofman.
+Gerichtliche Medizin, p. 676).</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_64_64" id="Footnote_64_64"></a><a href="#FNanchor_64_64"><span class="label">[64]</span></a> v. Volkmar: Lehrbuch der Psychologie. Cöthen 1875.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_65_65" id="Footnote_65_65"></a><a href="#FNanchor_65_65"><span class="label">[65]</span></a> K. Haselbrunner: Die Lehre von der Aufmerksamkeit. Vienna.
+1901.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_66_66" id="Footnote_66_66"></a><a href="#FNanchor_66_66"><span class="label">[66]</span></a> E. Wiersma and K. Marbe: Untersuchungen über die
+sogenannten Aufmerksamkeitsschwankungen. Ztsch. f. Psych. XXVI, 168
+(1901).</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_67_67" id="Footnote_67_67"></a><a href="#FNanchor_67_67"><span class="label">[67]</span></a> Slaughter: The Fluctuations of Attention. Am. Jour. of
+Psych. XII, 313 (1901).</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_68_68" id="Footnote_68_68"></a><a href="#FNanchor_68_68"><span class="label">[68]</span></a> H. L. Helmholtz: Über die Wechselwirkungen der
+Naturkräfte. Königsberg 1854.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_69_69" id="Footnote_69_69"></a><a href="#FNanchor_69_69"><span class="label">[69]</span></a> A. Lehmann: Die körperliche Äusserungen psychologischer
+Zustände. Leipzig Pt. I, 1899. Pt. II, 1901.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_70_70" id="Footnote_70_70"></a><a href="#FNanchor_70_70"><span class="label">[70]</span></a> H. Bergson: Le Rire. Paris 1900.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_71_71" id="Footnote_71_71"></a><a href="#FNanchor_71_71"><span class="label">[71]</span></a> H. Spencer: Essays, Scientific, etc. 2d Series.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_72_72" id="Footnote_72_72"></a><a href="#FNanchor_72_72"><span class="label">[72]</span></a> Charles Bell: The Anatomy and Philosophy of Expression.
+London 1806 and 1847.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_73_73" id="Footnote_73_73"></a><a href="#FNanchor_73_73"><span class="label">[73]</span></a> J. B. Friedreich: System der Gericht. Psych.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_74_74" id="Footnote_74_74"></a><a href="#FNanchor_74_74"><span class="label">[74]</span></a> Cf. Näcke in Gross’s Archiv, I, 200, and IX, 253.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_75_75" id="Footnote_75_75"></a><a href="#FNanchor_75_75"><span class="label">[75]</span></a> C. Darwin: The Expression of the Emotions.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_76_76" id="Footnote_76_76"></a><a href="#FNanchor_76_76"><span class="label">[76]</span></a> S. Stricker: Studien über die Bewegungsvorstellungen.
+Vienna 1882.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_77_77" id="Footnote_77_77"></a><a href="#FNanchor_77_77"><span class="label">[77]</span></a> E. Claparède: L’obsession de la rougeur. Arch. de Psych.
+de la Suisse Romande, 1902, I, 307.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_78_78" id="Footnote_78_78"></a><a href="#FNanchor_78_78"><span class="label">[78]</span></a> Henle: Über das Erröten. Breslau 1882.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_79_79" id="Footnote_79_79"></a><a href="#FNanchor_79_79"><span class="label">[79]</span></a> Th. Waits: Anthropologie der Naturvölker (Pt. I). Leipzig
+1859.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_80_80" id="Footnote_80_80"></a><a href="#FNanchor_80_80"><span class="label">[80]</span></a> Th. Meynert: Psychiatry. Vienna 1884.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_81_81" id="Footnote_81_81"></a><a href="#FNanchor_81_81"><span class="label">[81]</span></a> L. Meyer: Über künstliches Erröten. Westphals. Archiv,
+IV.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_82_82" id="Footnote_82_82"></a><a href="#FNanchor_82_82"><span class="label">[82]</span></a> Th. G. von Hippel: Lebenläufe nach aufsteigender Linie.
+Ed. v Oettingen. Leipzig 1880.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_83_83" id="Footnote_83_83"></a><a href="#FNanchor_83_83"><span class="label">[83]</span></a> G. Struve: Das Seelenleben oder die Naturgeschichte des
+Menschen. Berlin 1869.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_84_84" id="Footnote_84_84"></a><a href="#FNanchor_84_84"><span class="label">[84]</span></a> La Roche-Foucauld: Maximes et Refléxions Morales.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_85_85" id="Footnote_85_85"></a><a href="#FNanchor_85_85"><span class="label">[85]</span></a> Grundbegriffe der ethischen Wissenschaft. Leipzig 1844.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_86_86" id="Footnote_86_86"></a><a href="#FNanchor_86_86"><span class="label">[86]</span></a> Menschenkunde oder philosophische Anthropologie. Leipzig
+1831. Ch. Starke.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_87_87" id="Footnote_87_87"></a><a href="#FNanchor_87_87"><span class="label">[87]</span></a> Etwas zur Charakterisierung der Juden. 1793.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_88_88" id="Footnote_88_88"></a><a href="#FNanchor_88_88"><span class="label">[88]</span></a> A. Kraus: Die Psychologie des Verbrechens. Tübingen 1884.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_89_89" id="Footnote_89_89"></a><a href="#FNanchor_89_89"><span class="label">[89]</span></a> V. Gyurkovechky: Pathologie und Therapie der männlichen
+Impotenz. Vienna, Leipzig 1889.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_90_90" id="Footnote_90_90"></a><a href="#FNanchor_90_90"><span class="label">[90]</span></a> Cf. Näcke in H. Gross’s Archiv, I, 200; IX, 153.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_91_91" id="Footnote_91_91"></a><a href="#FNanchor_91_91"><span class="label">[91]</span></a> Cf. Bernhardi in H. Gross’s Archiv, V, p. 40.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_92_92" id="Footnote_92_92"></a><a href="#FNanchor_92_92"><span class="label">[92]</span></a> Revue de deux Mondes, Jan. 1, 1872.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_93_93" id="Footnote_93_93"></a><a href="#FNanchor_93_93"><span class="label">[93]</span></a> v. Volkmar: Lehrbuch der Psychologie. Cöthen 1875.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_94_94" id="Footnote_94_94"></a><a href="#FNanchor_94_94"><span class="label">[94]</span></a> A. Bain: The Emotions and the Will. 1875.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_95_95" id="Footnote_95_95"></a><a href="#FNanchor_95_95"><span class="label">[95]</span></a> Les Timides et la Timidité. Paris 1901.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_96_96" id="Footnote_96_96"></a><a href="#FNanchor_96_96"><span class="label">[96]</span></a> K. von Reichenbach: Der sensitive Mensch. Cotta 1854.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_97_97" id="Footnote_97_97"></a><a href="#FNanchor_97_97"><span class="label">[97]</span></a> c.f. H. Bergson: Le Rire. Paris 1900.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_98_98" id="Footnote_98_98"></a><a href="#FNanchor_98_98"><span class="label">[98]</span></a> Mitchell: Über die Mitleidenschaft der Geschlechtsteile
+mit dem Kopfe. Vienna 1804.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_99_99" id="Footnote_99_99"></a><a href="#FNanchor_99_99"><span class="label">[99]</span></a> Blumröder: Über das Irresein. Leipzig 1836.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_100_100" id="Footnote_100_100"></a><a href="#FNanchor_100_100"><span class="label">[100]</span></a> J. B. Friedreich: Gerichtliche Psychologie. Regensburg
+1832.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_101_101" id="Footnote_101_101"></a><a href="#FNanchor_101_101"><span class="label">[101]</span></a> Cf. Näcke. Gross’s Archiv, XV. 114.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_102_102" id="Footnote_102_102"></a><a href="#FNanchor_102_102"><span class="label">[102]</span></a> Schrenck-Notzing: Ztschrft. f. Hypnotismus, VII, 121;
+VIII, 40, 275; IX, 98.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_103_103" id="Footnote_103_103"></a><a href="#FNanchor_103_103"><span class="label">[103]</span></a> Lotze: Medizinische Psychologie. Leipzig 1852.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_104_104" id="Footnote_104_104"></a><a href="#FNanchor_104_104"><span class="label">[104]</span></a> Bersé in Gross’s Archiv, I, 93.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_105_105" id="Footnote_105_105"></a><a href="#FNanchor_105_105"><span class="label">[105]</span></a> E. Schultse. Zeitschrift für Philosophie u. Pädagogie,
+VI, 1.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_106_106" id="Footnote_106_106"></a><a href="#FNanchor_106_106"><span class="label">[106]</span></a> L. Landois: Lehrbuch der Physiologie des Menschen. Vienna
+1892.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_107_107" id="Footnote_107_107"></a><a href="#FNanchor_107_107"><span class="label">[107]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv, II, 140; III, 350; VII, 155; VIII,
+198.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_108_108" id="Footnote_108_108"></a><a href="#FNanchor_108_108"><span class="label">[108]</span></a> J. K. Lavater: Physiognomische Fragmente sur Beförderung
+des Menschenkentniss und Menschenliebe. Leipzig 1775.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_109_109" id="Footnote_109_109"></a><a href="#FNanchor_109_109"><span class="label">[109]</span></a> F. J. Gall: Introduction au Cours du Physiologie du
+Cerveau. Paris 1808. Recherches sur la systéme nerveux. Paris 1809.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_110_110" id="Footnote_110_110"></a><a href="#FNanchor_110_110"><span class="label">[110]</span></a> B. v. Cotta: Geschichte u. Wesen der Phrenologie. Dresden
+1838.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_111_111" id="Footnote_111_111"></a><a href="#FNanchor_111_111"><span class="label">[111]</span></a> R. R. Noel: Die materielle Grundlage des Seelenbens.
+Leipzig 1874.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_112_112" id="Footnote_112_112"></a><a href="#FNanchor_112_112"><span class="label">[112]</span></a> S. Schack: Physiognomische Studien. Jena 1890.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_113_113" id="Footnote_113_113"></a><a href="#FNanchor_113_113"><span class="label">[113]</span></a> Darwin: Expression of the Emotions in Men and Animals.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_114_114" id="Footnote_114_114"></a><a href="#FNanchor_114_114"><span class="label">[114]</span></a> Th. Piderit: Wissenschaftliches System der Mimik und
+Physiognomik. Detmold 1867.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_115_115" id="Footnote_115_115"></a><a href="#FNanchor_115_115"><span class="label">[115]</span></a> Carus: Symbolik der Menschlichen Gestalt. Leipsig 1858.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_116_116" id="Footnote_116_116"></a><a href="#FNanchor_116_116"><span class="label">[116]</span></a> C. Bell: Anatomy and Philosophy of Expression. London
+1847.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_117_117" id="Footnote_117_117"></a><a href="#FNanchor_117_117"><span class="label">[117]</span></a> Le Brun: Conferences sur l’Expression. 1820.
+</p><p>
+Reich: Die Gestalt des Menschen und deren Beziehung sum Seelenleben.
+Heidelberg 1878.
+</p><p>
+P. Mantegazza. Physiognomik u. Mimik. Leipzig 1890.
+</p><p>
+Duchenne: Mechanismus des Menschlichen Physiognomie. 1862.
+</p><p>
+Skraup: Katechismus der Mimik. Leipzig 1892.
+</p><p>
+H. Magnus: Die Sprache der Augen.
+</p><p>
+Gessmann: Katechismus der Gesichtslesekunst. Berlin 1896.
+</p><p>
+A. Schebest: Rede u. Geberde. Leipzig 1861.
+</p><p>
+Engel: Ideen su einer Mimik. Berlin 1785.
+</p><p>
+G. Schneider: Die tierische Wille. 1880.
+</p><p>
+K. Michel: Die Geberdensprache. Köln 1886.
+</p><p>
+Wundt: Grundzüge, etc. Leipzig 1894.
+</p><p>
+C. Lange: Über Gemützbewegungen. 1887.
+</p><p>
+Giraudet: Mimique, Physiognomie et Gestes. Paris 1895.
+</p><p>
+A. Mosso: Die Furcht. 1889.
+</p><p>
+D. A. Baer: Der Verbrecher. Leipzig 1893.
+</p><p>
+Wiener: Die geistige Welt.
+</p><p>
+Lotze. Medizinische Psychologie.
+</p><p>
+Th. Waits. Anthropologie der Naturvölker. Leipzig 1877.
+</p><p>
+Lelut: Physiologie de la Pensée.
+</p><p>
+Monro: Remarks on Sanity.
+</p><p>
+C. F. Heusinger: Grundriss der physiologischen u. psychologischen
+Anthropologie. Eisenach 1829.
+</p><p>
+Herbart: Psychologische Untersuchung. Göttingen 1839.
+</p><p>
+Comte: Systeme de Philosophie Positive. Paris 1824.
+</p><p>
+T. Meynert: Mechanik der Physiognomik. 1888.
+</p><p>
+F. Golts: Über Moderne Phrenologie. Deutsche Rundschau Nov.&mdash;Dec. 1885.
+</p><p>
+H. Hughes: Die Mimik des Menschen auf Grund voluntarischer Psychologie
+Frankfurt a. M. 1900.
+</p><p>
+A. Borée: Physiognom. Studien. Stuttgart 1899.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_118_118" id="Footnote_118_118"></a><a href="#FNanchor_118_118"><span class="label">[118]</span></a> Psychiatrie. Vienna 1884.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_119_119" id="Footnote_119_119"></a><a href="#FNanchor_119_119"><span class="label">[119]</span></a> J. Müller: Handbuch der Physiologie des Menschen. 1840.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_120_120" id="Footnote_120_120"></a><a href="#FNanchor_120_120"><span class="label">[120]</span></a> L. P. Gratiolet: De la Physiognomie et des Mouvements
+d’Expression. Paris 1865.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_121_121" id="Footnote_121_121"></a><a href="#FNanchor_121_121"><span class="label">[121]</span></a> Taylor: Early History of Mankind.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_122_122" id="Footnote_122_122"></a><a href="#FNanchor_122_122"><span class="label">[122]</span></a> J. Reid: The Muscular Sense. Journal of Mental Science,
+XLVII, 510. 1901.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_123_123" id="Footnote_123_123"></a><a href="#FNanchor_123_123"><span class="label">[123]</span></a> Wagner’s Handwörterbuch, III, i.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_124_124" id="Footnote_124_124"></a><a href="#FNanchor_124_124"><span class="label">[124]</span></a> C. Bell: The Human Hand. London 1865.
+</p><p>
+K. G. Carus: Über Grund u. Bedeutung der verschiedenen Hand. Stuttgart
+1864.
+</p><p>
+D’Arpentigny: La Chirognomie. Paris 1843.
+</p><p>
+Allen: Manual of Cheirosophy. London 1885.
+</p><p>
+Gessmann: Die Männerhand, Die Frauenhand, Die Kinderhand. Berlin 1892,
+1893, 1894.
+</p><p>
+Liersch: Die linke Hand. Berlin 1893.
+</p><p>
+J. Landsberg: Die Wahrsagekunst aus der Menschlichen Gestalt. Berlin
+1895.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_125_125" id="Footnote_125_125"></a><a href="#FNanchor_125_125"><span class="label">[125]</span></a> W. Esser: Psychologie. Münster 1854.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_126_126" id="Footnote_126_126"></a><a href="#FNanchor_126_126"><span class="label">[126]</span></a> F. Hillebrand: Zur Lehre der Hypothesenbildung.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_127_127" id="Footnote_127_127"></a><a href="#FNanchor_127_127"><span class="label">[127]</span></a> C. J. A. Mittermaier: Die Lehre vom Beweis im deutschen
+Strafprozess. Darmstadt 1834.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_128_128" id="Footnote_128_128"></a><a href="#FNanchor_128_128"><span class="label">[128]</span></a> J. Schiel: Die Methode der Induktiven Forschung.
+Braunschweig 1865.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_129_129" id="Footnote_129_129"></a><a href="#FNanchor_129_129"><span class="label">[129]</span></a> Max Mayer: Der Kausalzusammenhang swischen Handlung und
+Erfolg in Strafrecht. 1899.
+</p><p>
+von Rohland: Die Kausallehre im Strafrecht. Leipzig 1903.
+</p><p>
+H. Gross’s Archiv, XV, 191.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_130_130" id="Footnote_130_130"></a><a href="#FNanchor_130_130"><span class="label">[130]</span></a> Cf. S. Stricker: Studien über die Assoziation der
+Vorstellungen. Vienna 1883.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_131_131" id="Footnote_131_131"></a><a href="#FNanchor_131_131"><span class="label">[131]</span></a> Meinong: Humestudien. Vienna 1882.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_132_132" id="Footnote_132_132"></a><a href="#FNanchor_132_132"><span class="label">[132]</span></a> Das Wahrnehmungsproblem von Standpunkte des Physikers,
+Physiologen und Philosophen. Leipzig 1892.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_133_133" id="Footnote_133_133"></a><a href="#FNanchor_133_133"><span class="label">[133]</span></a> C. Bernard: Introduction à l’Etude de la Medécine
+Experimentale. Paris 1871.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_134_134" id="Footnote_134_134"></a><a href="#FNanchor_134_134"><span class="label">[134]</span></a> Schopenhauer: Die beiden Grundprobleme der Ethik.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_135_135" id="Footnote_135_135"></a><a href="#FNanchor_135_135"><span class="label">[135]</span></a> Cf. Hume’s Treatise of Human Nature.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_136_136" id="Footnote_136_136"></a><a href="#FNanchor_136_136"><span class="label">[136]</span></a> Masaryk: David Hume’s Skepsis. Vienna 1884.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_137_137" id="Footnote_137_137"></a><a href="#FNanchor_137_137"><span class="label">[137]</span></a> Liebman: Zur Analysis der Wirklichkeit. Strassburg 1888.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_138_138" id="Footnote_138_138"></a><a href="#FNanchor_138_138"><span class="label">[138]</span></a> Öttingen: Die Moralstatistik. Erlangen 1882.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_139_139" id="Footnote_139_139"></a><a href="#FNanchor_139_139"><span class="label">[139]</span></a> James Sully: “Die Illusionen” in Vol. 62 of the
+Internation. Wissenschft. Bibliothek. Leipzig 1884.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_140_140" id="Footnote_140_140"></a><a href="#FNanchor_140_140"><span class="label">[140]</span></a> Th. Lipps: Grundtatsachen des Seelenlebens. Bonn 1883.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_141_141" id="Footnote_141_141"></a><a href="#FNanchor_141_141"><span class="label">[141]</span></a> Manual for Examining Justices.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_142_142" id="Footnote_142_142"></a><a href="#FNanchor_142_142"><span class="label">[142]</span></a> B. Petronievics: Der Satz vom Grunde. Leipzig 1898.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_143_143" id="Footnote_143_143"></a><a href="#FNanchor_143_143"><span class="label">[143]</span></a> Of course we mean by “proof” as by “certainty” only the
+highest possible degree of probability.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_144_144" id="Footnote_144_144"></a><a href="#FNanchor_144_144"><span class="label">[144]</span></a> Locke: Essay on the Human Understanding.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_145_145" id="Footnote_145_145"></a><a href="#FNanchor_145_145"><span class="label">[145]</span></a> Laplace: Essay Philosophique sur les Probabilités. Paris
+1840.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_146_146" id="Footnote_146_146"></a><a href="#FNanchor_146_146"><span class="label">[146]</span></a> Venn: The Logic of Chance.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_147_147" id="Footnote_147_147"></a><a href="#FNanchor_147_147"><span class="label">[147]</span></a> Philos. Versuch über die Wahrscheinlichkeiten. Würsburg
+1883.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_148_148" id="Footnote_148_148"></a><a href="#FNanchor_148_148"><span class="label">[148]</span></a> Über die Wahrscheinlichkeit. Leipzig 1875.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_149_149" id="Footnote_149_149"></a><a href="#FNanchor_149_149"><span class="label">[149]</span></a> J. v. Kries: Über die Wahrscheinlichkeit u. Möglichkeit
+u. ihre Bedeutung in Strafrecht. Zeitschrift f. d. ges. St. R. W. Vol.
+IX, 1889.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_150_150" id="Footnote_150_150"></a><a href="#FNanchor_150_150"><span class="label">[150]</span></a> Windelband: Die Lehren vom Zufall. Berlin 1870.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_151_151" id="Footnote_151_151"></a><a href="#FNanchor_151_151"><span class="label">[151]</span></a> Cf. S. Freud: Psychopathologie des Alltagsleben.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_152_152" id="Footnote_152_152"></a><a href="#FNanchor_152_152"><span class="label">[152]</span></a> C. J. A. Mittermaier: Die Lehre vom Beweise.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_153_153" id="Footnote_153_153"></a><a href="#FNanchor_153_153"><span class="label">[153]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross, Korrigierte Vorstellungen, in the Archiv,
+X, 109.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_154_154" id="Footnote_154_154"></a><a href="#FNanchor_154_154"><span class="label">[154]</span></a> S. Exner: Entwurf zu einer physiologischen Erklärung der
+psychischen Erscheinungen. Leipzig 1894.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_155_155" id="Footnote_155_155"></a><a href="#FNanchor_155_155"><span class="label">[155]</span></a> Studien über die Assoziation der Vorstellungen. Vienna
+1883.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_156_156" id="Footnote_156_156"></a><a href="#FNanchor_156_156"><span class="label">[156]</span></a> von Hartmann: Philosophie des Unbewussten. Berlin 1869.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_157_157" id="Footnote_157_157"></a><a href="#FNanchor_157_157"><span class="label">[157]</span></a> Cf. Gross’s Archiv, I, 93; II, 140; III, 250; VII, 155.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_158_158" id="Footnote_158_158"></a><a href="#FNanchor_158_158"><span class="label">[158]</span></a> H. Aubert: Physiologie der Netzhaut. Breslau 1865.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_159_159" id="Footnote_159_159"></a><a href="#FNanchor_159_159"><span class="label">[159]</span></a> David Hume: Enquiry, p. 33 (Open Court Ed.).</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_160_160" id="Footnote_160_160"></a><a href="#FNanchor_160_160"><span class="label">[160]</span></a> H. Münsterberg: Beiträge zur experimentellen Psychologie,
+III. Freiburg.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_161_161" id="Footnote_161_161"></a><a href="#FNanchor_161_161"><span class="label">[161]</span></a> Cf. O. Gross: Soziale Hemmungsvorstellungen. H. Gross’s
+Archiv: VII, 123.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_162_162" id="Footnote_162_162"></a><a href="#FNanchor_162_162"><span class="label">[162]</span></a> A paragraph is here omitted. Translator.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_163_163" id="Footnote_163_163"></a><a href="#FNanchor_163_163"><span class="label">[163]</span></a> O. Gross: Zur Phyllogenese der Ethik. H. Gross’s Archiv,
+IX, 100.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_164_164" id="Footnote_164_164"></a><a href="#FNanchor_164_164"><span class="label">[164]</span></a> Cf. B. Földes: Einige Ergebnisse der neueren
+Kriminalstatistik. Zeitschrift f. d. ges. Strafrechts-Wissenschaft, XI.
+1891.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_165_165" id="Footnote_165_165"></a><a href="#FNanchor_165_165"><span class="label">[165]</span></a> Näcke: Moralische Werte. Archiv, IX, 213.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_166_166" id="Footnote_166_166"></a><a href="#FNanchor_166_166"><span class="label">[166]</span></a> J. Gurnhill: The Morals of Suicide. London 1900.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_167_167" id="Footnote_167_167"></a><a href="#FNanchor_167_167"><span class="label">[167]</span></a> Näcke in Archiv VI, 325; XIV, 366.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_168_168" id="Footnote_168_168"></a><a href="#FNanchor_168_168"><span class="label">[168]</span></a> K. Gutberlet: Die Willensfreiheit u. ihre Gegner. Fulda
+1893.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_169_169" id="Footnote_169_169"></a><a href="#FNanchor_169_169"><span class="label">[169]</span></a> Die sieben Welträtsel. Leipzig 1882.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_170_170" id="Footnote_170_170"></a><a href="#FNanchor_170_170"><span class="label">[170]</span></a> Henry Maudsley: Physiology and Pathology of the Mind.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_171_171" id="Footnote_171_171"></a><a href="#FNanchor_171_171"><span class="label">[171]</span></a> Jessen: Versuch einer wissenschaftlichen Begründung der
+Psychologie, Berlin 1855.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_172_172" id="Footnote_172_172"></a><a href="#FNanchor_172_172"><span class="label">[172]</span></a> For a general consideration of perception see James,
+Principles of Psychology. Angell, Psychology.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_173_173" id="Footnote_173_173"></a><a href="#FNanchor_173_173"><span class="label">[173]</span></a> Meinong: Über die Bedeutung der Weberschen Gesetzes.
+Hamburg and Leipzig, 1896.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_174_174" id="Footnote_174_174"></a><a href="#FNanchor_174_174"><span class="label">[174]</span></a> T. Pesch: Das Weltphänomen.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_175_175" id="Footnote_175_175"></a><a href="#FNanchor_175_175"><span class="label">[175]</span></a> H. Helmholtz: Die Tatsachen der Wahrnehmung. Braunschweig
+1878.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_176_176" id="Footnote_176_176"></a><a href="#FNanchor_176_176"><span class="label">[176]</span></a> E. L. Fischer: Theorie der Gesichtswahrnehmung. Mainz
+1891.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_177_177" id="Footnote_177_177"></a><a href="#FNanchor_177_177"><span class="label">[177]</span></a> Cf. Archiv, XVI, 371.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_178_178" id="Footnote_178_178"></a><a href="#FNanchor_178_178"><span class="label">[178]</span></a> Vincent: Traité de Médecine légale de Légrand du Saule.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_179_179" id="Footnote_179_179"></a><a href="#FNanchor_179_179"><span class="label">[179]</span></a> W. Heinrich: Übersicht der Methoden bei Untersuchung der
+Farbenwahrnehmungen. Krakau 1900.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_180_180" id="Footnote_180_180"></a><a href="#FNanchor_180_180"><span class="label">[180]</span></a> Physiologie der Netshaut. Breslau 1865.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_181_181" id="Footnote_181_181"></a><a href="#FNanchor_181_181"><span class="label">[181]</span></a> J. O. Quantz: The Influence of the Color of Surfaces on
+our Estimation of their Magnitudes. Am. Journal of Psychology VII, 95.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_182_182" id="Footnote_182_182"></a><a href="#FNanchor_182_182"><span class="label">[182]</span></a> People of extreme old age do not seem to be able to hear
+shrill tones. A friend of mine reports this to be the case with the
+composer, Robert Frans.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_183_183" id="Footnote_183_183"></a><a href="#FNanchor_183_183"><span class="label">[183]</span></a> W. Wundt: Grundzüge.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_184_184" id="Footnote_184_184"></a><a href="#FNanchor_184_184"><span class="label">[184]</span></a> A. Strindberg: Zur Physiologie des Geschmacks. Wiener
+Rundschau, 1900. p. 338 ff.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_185_185" id="Footnote_185_185"></a><a href="#FNanchor_185_185"><span class="label">[185]</span></a> C. Lombroso and G. Ferrero. The Female Offender.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_186_186" id="Footnote_186_186"></a><a href="#FNanchor_186_186"><span class="label">[186]</span></a> E. H. Weber: Die Lehre vom Tastainn u. Gemeingefühl.
+Braunschweig 1851.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_187_187" id="Footnote_187_187"></a><a href="#FNanchor_187_187"><span class="label">[187]</span></a> Students who are members of student societies
+distinguished by particular colors.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_188_188" id="Footnote_188_188"></a><a href="#FNanchor_188_188"><span class="label">[188]</span></a> K. Vierordt: Der Zeitsinn nach Versuchen. Tübingen 1868.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_189_189" id="Footnote_189_189"></a><a href="#FNanchor_189_189"><span class="label">[189]</span></a> The first paragraph, pp. 78-79, is omitted in the
+translation.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_190_190" id="Footnote_190_190"></a><a href="#FNanchor_190_190"><span class="label">[190]</span></a> E. L. Fischer: Theorie der Gesichtswahrnehmung. Mainz
+1891.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_191_191" id="Footnote_191_191"></a><a href="#FNanchor_191_191"><span class="label">[191]</span></a> A sentence is here omitted.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_192_192" id="Footnote_192_192"></a><a href="#FNanchor_192_192"><span class="label">[192]</span></a> E. Benneke: Pragmatische Psychologie.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_193_193" id="Footnote_193_193"></a><a href="#FNanchor_193_193"><span class="label">[193]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv, XV, 125.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_194_194" id="Footnote_194_194"></a><a href="#FNanchor_194_194"><span class="label">[194]</span></a> Cf. Borst u. Claparède: Sur divers Caractères du
+Temoignage. Archives des Sciences Phys. et Nat. XVII. Diehl: Zum Studium
+der Merkfahigkeit. Beitr. zur Psych. der Aussage, II, 1903.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_195_195" id="Footnote_195_195"></a><a href="#FNanchor_195_195"><span class="label">[195]</span></a> Gericht. Medizin. Vienna 1898. p. 447.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_196_196" id="Footnote_196_196"></a><a href="#FNanchor_196_196"><span class="label">[196]</span></a> J. M. Cattell: Über die Zeit der Erkennung u. Benennung
+von Schrift etc. (in Wundt’s: Philosophischen Studien II, 1883).</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_197_197" id="Footnote_197_197"></a><a href="#FNanchor_197_197"><span class="label">[197]</span></a> Cf. Windelband: “Präludien.”</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_198_198" id="Footnote_198_198"></a><a href="#FNanchor_198_198"><span class="label">[198]</span></a> H. Gross: Korregierte Vorstellungen. In H. Gross’s Archiv
+X, 109.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_199_199" id="Footnote_199_199"></a><a href="#FNanchor_199_199"><span class="label">[199]</span></a> C. de Lagrave: L’Autosuggestion Naturelle. Rev. d’Hypnot.
+1889, XIV, 257.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_200_200" id="Footnote_200_200"></a><a href="#FNanchor_200_200"><span class="label">[200]</span></a> Several sentences are here omitted.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_201_201" id="Footnote_201_201"></a><a href="#FNanchor_201_201"><span class="label">[201]</span></a> Cf. E. Storch: Über des räumliche Sehen, in Ztachrft. v.
+Ebbinghaus u. Nagel XXIX, 22.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_202_202" id="Footnote_202_202"></a><a href="#FNanchor_202_202"><span class="label">[202]</span></a> S. Stricker: Studien über die Bewegungsvorstellungen.
+Tübingen 1868.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_203_203" id="Footnote_203_203"></a><a href="#FNanchor_203_203"><span class="label">[203]</span></a> Cf. Näcke in Gross’s Archiv VII, 340.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_204_204" id="Footnote_204_204"></a><a href="#FNanchor_204_204"><span class="label">[204]</span></a> L. Geiger: Der Ursprung der Sprache. Stuttgart 1869.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_205_205" id="Footnote_205_205"></a><a href="#FNanchor_205_205"><span class="label">[205]</span></a> W. Ostwald: Die Überwindung des wissenschaftlichen
+Materialismus.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_206_206" id="Footnote_206_206"></a><a href="#FNanchor_206_206"><span class="label">[206]</span></a> A. Höfler: Psychologie. Vienna 1897.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_207_207" id="Footnote_207_207"></a><a href="#FNanchor_207_207"><span class="label">[207]</span></a> Volkmar: Psychologie. Cöthen 1875.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_208_208" id="Footnote_208_208"></a><a href="#FNanchor_208_208"><span class="label">[208]</span></a> Th. Lipps: Der Begriff des Unbewussten in der
+Psychologie. München 1896.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_209_209" id="Footnote_209_209"></a><a href="#FNanchor_209_209"><span class="label">[209]</span></a> Cf. Symposium on the Subconscious. Journal of Abnormal
+Psychology.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_210_210" id="Footnote_210_210"></a><a href="#FNanchor_210_210"><span class="label">[210]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv, II, 140.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_211_211" id="Footnote_211_211"></a><a href="#FNanchor_211_211"><span class="label">[211]</span></a> H. Münsterberg: Beitrage I-IV. Freiburg 1882-1892.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_212_212" id="Footnote_212_212"></a><a href="#FNanchor_212_212"><span class="label">[212]</span></a> A. Mayer and J. Orth: Zur qualitativen Untersuchung der
+Assoziation. Ztschrft. f. Psychol. u. Physiol. der Sinnesorgane, XXVI,
+1, 1901.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_213_213" id="Footnote_213_213"></a><a href="#FNanchor_213_213"><span class="label">[213]</span></a> H. Münsterberg: Beiträge II, IV.
+</p><p>
+H. Ebbinghaus: Über das Gedächtnis. Leipzig 1885.
+</p><p>
+J. M. Cattell: Mind, Vols. 11-15. (Articles.)
+</p><p>
+J. Bourdon: Influence de l’Age sur la Memoire Immédiate. Revue
+Philosophique, Vol. 38.
+</p><p>
+Kräpelin: Über Erinnerungstäuschungen. Archiv. f. Psychiatrie, XVII, 3.
+</p><p>
+Lasson: Das Gedächtnis. Berlin 1884.
+</p><p>
+Diehl: Zum Studium der Merkfähigkeit. Beitr. s. Psychol. d. Aussage, II.
+1903.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_214_214" id="Footnote_214_214"></a><a href="#FNanchor_214_214"><span class="label">[214]</span></a> E. Hering: Über das Gedächtnis, etc. Vienna 1876.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_215_215" id="Footnote_215_215"></a><a href="#FNanchor_215_215"><span class="label">[215]</span></a> Cf. V. Hensen: Über das Gedächtnis, etc. Kiel 1877.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_216_216" id="Footnote_216_216"></a><a href="#FNanchor_216_216"><span class="label">[216]</span></a> Ethics. Bk. III, Prop. II, Scholium.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_217_217" id="Footnote_217_217"></a><a href="#FNanchor_217_217"><span class="label">[217]</span></a> G. K. Uphues: Über die Erinnerung. Leipzig 1889.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_218_218" id="Footnote_218_218"></a><a href="#FNanchor_218_218"><span class="label">[218]</span></a> H. Dorner: Das menschliche Erkennen. Berlin 1877.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_219_219" id="Footnote_219_219"></a><a href="#FNanchor_219_219"><span class="label">[219]</span></a> O. Külpe: Grundriss der Psychologie. Leipzig 1893.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_220_220" id="Footnote_220_220"></a><a href="#FNanchor_220_220"><span class="label">[220]</span></a> v. Kries: Beiträge zur Lehre vom Augenmass. Hamburg
+1892.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_221_221" id="Footnote_221_221"></a><a href="#FNanchor_221_221"><span class="label">[221]</span></a> Cf. Schneikert in H. Gross’s Archiv, XIII, 193.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_222_222" id="Footnote_222_222"></a><a href="#FNanchor_222_222"><span class="label">[222]</span></a> Jost: Über Gedächtnisbildung.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_223_223" id="Footnote_223_223"></a><a href="#FNanchor_223_223"><span class="label">[223]</span></a> Cf. S. Freud: Psychopathologie des Alltagsleben.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_224_224" id="Footnote_224_224"></a><a href="#FNanchor_224_224"><span class="label">[224]</span></a> Du Potet: Journal du Magnetisme, V. 245.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_225_225" id="Footnote_225_225"></a><a href="#FNanchor_225_225"><span class="label">[225]</span></a> F. Kemsies: Gedächtnis Untersuchungen an Schülern. Ztsch.
+f. pädago. Psych. III, 171 (1901).</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_226_226" id="Footnote_226_226"></a><a href="#FNanchor_226_226"><span class="label">[226]</span></a> T. E. Bolton: The Growth of Memory in School Children.
+Am. Jour. Psych. IV.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_227_227" id="Footnote_227_227"></a><a href="#FNanchor_227_227"><span class="label">[227]</span></a> L. Bazerque: Essai de Psychopathologie sur l’Amnesie
+Hystérique et Epiléptique. Toulouse 1901.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_228_228" id="Footnote_228_228"></a><a href="#FNanchor_228_228"><span class="label">[228]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv. I, 337.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_229_229" id="Footnote_229_229"></a><a href="#FNanchor_229_229"><span class="label">[229]</span></a> J. Hubert: Das Verhalten des Gedächtnisses nach
+Kopfverletzungen. Basel, 1901.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_230_230" id="Footnote_230_230"></a><a href="#FNanchor_230_230"><span class="label">[230]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv. XV, 123.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_231_231" id="Footnote_231_231"></a><a href="#FNanchor_231_231"><span class="label">[231]</span></a> W. Sander: Über Erinnerungstäuschungen, Vol. IV of Archiv
+für Psychiatrie u. Nervenkrankheiten.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_232_232" id="Footnote_232_232"></a><a href="#FNanchor_232_232"><span class="label">[232]</span></a> Sommer: Zur Analyse der Erinnerungstäuschungen. Beiträge
+zur Psych. d. Aussage, 1. 1903.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_233_233" id="Footnote_233_233"></a><a href="#FNanchor_233_233"><span class="label">[233]</span></a> James Sully: Illusions. London.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_234_234" id="Footnote_234_234"></a><a href="#FNanchor_234_234"><span class="label">[234]</span></a> H. Gross’s Archiv I, 261, 335.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_235_235" id="Footnote_235_235"></a><a href="#FNanchor_235_235"><span class="label">[235]</span></a> E. Hering: Über das Gedächtnis, etc. Vienna 1876.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_236_236" id="Footnote_236_236"></a><a href="#FNanchor_236_236"><span class="label">[236]</span></a> M. W. Drobisch: Die moralische Statistik. Leipzig 1867.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_237_237" id="Footnote_237_237"></a><a href="#FNanchor_237_237"><span class="label">[237]</span></a> Neues Archiv des Kriminal-Rechts. Vol. 14.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_238_238" id="Footnote_238_238"></a><a href="#FNanchor_238_238"><span class="label">[238]</span></a> H. Münsterberg: Die Willeshandlung and various chapters
+on will in the psychologies of James, Titchener, etc.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_239_239" id="Footnote_239_239"></a><a href="#FNanchor_239_239"><span class="label">[239]</span></a> A. Lehman: Die Hauptgesetze des menschlichen
+Gefühlsleben. Leipzig 1892.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_240_240" id="Footnote_240_240"></a><a href="#FNanchor_240_240"><span class="label">[240]</span></a> Cf. Darwin: Descent of Man.
+</p><p>
+Jakob Grimm: Über den Ursprung der Sprache.
+</p><p>
+E. Renan: De l’Origine du Language, etc., etc.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_241_241" id="Footnote_241_241"></a><a href="#FNanchor_241_241"><span class="label">[241]</span></a> Ursprung u. Entwicklung der Sprache. Stuttgart, 1869.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_242_242" id="Footnote_242_242"></a><a href="#FNanchor_242_242"><span class="label">[242]</span></a> E. Regnault: La Langage par Gestes. La Nature XXVI, 315.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_243_243" id="Footnote_243_243"></a><a href="#FNanchor_243_243"><span class="label">[243]</span></a> Paragraph omitted.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_244_244" id="Footnote_244_244"></a><a href="#FNanchor_244_244"><span class="label">[244]</span></a> Paragraph omitted.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_245_245" id="Footnote_245_245"></a><a href="#FNanchor_245_245"><span class="label">[245]</span></a> Der Ursprung der Sprache. Stuttgart 1869.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_246_246" id="Footnote_246_246"></a><a href="#FNanchor_246_246"><span class="label">[246]</span></a> Cf. Zeitschrift für Völkeranthropologie. Vol. XIX. 1889.
+“Wie denkt das Volk über die Sprache?”</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_247_247" id="Footnote_247_247"></a><a href="#FNanchor_247_247"><span class="label">[247]</span></a> For the abnormal see&mdash;Näcke: Verbrechen und Wahnsinn beim
+Weibe Leipzig 1894.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_248_248" id="Footnote_248_248"></a><a href="#FNanchor_248_248"><span class="label">[248]</span></a> H. Marion: Psychologie de la Femme. Paris 1900.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_249_249" id="Footnote_249_249"></a><a href="#FNanchor_249_249"><span class="label">[249]</span></a> Romantic Love and Personal Beauty. H. Fink. London 1887.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_250_250" id="Footnote_250_250"></a><a href="#FNanchor_250_250"><span class="label">[250]</span></a> Dictionary of Christian Antiquities.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_251_251" id="Footnote_251_251"></a><a href="#FNanchor_251_251"><span class="label">[251]</span></a> Bilder altgriechischer Sitte.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_252_252" id="Footnote_252_252"></a><a href="#FNanchor_252_252"><span class="label">[252]</span></a> Die Lehre vom Beweise. Darmstadt.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_253_253" id="Footnote_253_253"></a><a href="#FNanchor_253_253"><span class="label">[253]</span></a> E. Reich: Das Leben des Menschens als Individuum. Berlin
+1881.
+</p><p>
+L. von Stern: Die Frau auf dem Gebiete etc. Stuttgart 1876.
+</p><p>
+A. Corre: La Mère et l’Enfant dans les Races Humaines. Paris 1882.
+</p><p>
+A. v. Schweiger-Lerchenfeld: Das Frauenleben auf der Erde. Vienna 1881.
+</p><p>
+J. Michelet. La Femme.
+</p><p>
+Rykère: Das weibliches Verbrechertum. Brussels 1898.
+</p><p>
+C. Renoos: Psychologie Comparée de l’Homme et de la Femme. Biblio. de la
+Nouv. Encyclopaedie. Paris 1898.
+</p><p>
+Möbius: Der Physiologische Schwachsinn des Weibes.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_254_254" id="Footnote_254_254"></a><a href="#FNanchor_254_254"><span class="label">[254]</span></a> J. B.Friedreich: System der gerichtlich. Psychol.
+Regensburg 1852.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_255_255" id="Footnote_255_255"></a><a href="#FNanchor_255_255"><span class="label">[255]</span></a> Icard: La Femme dans la Periode Menstruelle. Paris 1890.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_256_256" id="Footnote_256_256"></a><a href="#FNanchor_256_256"><span class="label">[256]</span></a> Cf. Nessel in H. Gross’s Archiv. IV, 343.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_257_257" id="Footnote_257_257"></a><a href="#FNanchor_257_257"><span class="label">[257]</span></a> Cf. Krafft-Ebing: Psychosis Menstrualis. Stuttgart 1902.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_258_258" id="Footnote_258_258"></a><a href="#FNanchor_258_258"><span class="label">[258]</span></a> Der sensitive Mensch.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_259_259" id="Footnote_259_259"></a><a href="#FNanchor_259_259"><span class="label">[259]</span></a> C. Lombroso and G. Ferrero. The Female Offender.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_260_260" id="Footnote_260_260"></a><a href="#FNanchor_260_260"><span class="label">[260]</span></a> La Folie devant les Tribunaux. Paris 1864.
+</p><p>
+Traité de Medicine Légale. Paris 1873.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_261_261" id="Footnote_261_261"></a><a href="#FNanchor_261_261"><span class="label">[261]</span></a> Les Voleuses des Grands Magazins. Archives
+d’Anthropologie Criminelle XVI, 1, 341 (1901).</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_262_262" id="Footnote_262_262"></a><a href="#FNanchor_262_262"><span class="label">[262]</span></a> A. Schwob: Les Psychoses Menstruelles au Point du Vue
+Medico-legal. Lyon, 1895.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_263_263" id="Footnote_263_263"></a><a href="#FNanchor_263_263"><span class="label">[263]</span></a> Neumann: Einfluss der Schwangerschaft. Siebold’s Journal
+f. Geburtshilfe. Vol. II.
+</p><p>
+Hoffbauer: Die Gelüste der Schwangeren. Archiv f. Kriminalrecht. Vol. I.
+1817.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_264_264" id="Footnote_264_264"></a><a href="#FNanchor_264_264"><span class="label">[264]</span></a> Archivio di Psichiatria. 1892. Vol. XIII.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_265_265" id="Footnote_265_265"></a><a href="#FNanchor_265_265"><span class="label">[265]</span></a> A. Kraus: Die Psychologie des Verbrechens. Tübingen
+1884.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_266_266" id="Footnote_266_266"></a><a href="#FNanchor_266_266"><span class="label">[266]</span></a> Lehrbuch des Anthropologie. Leipzig 1822.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_267_267" id="Footnote_267_267"></a><a href="#FNanchor_267_267"><span class="label">[267]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv. VI, 334.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_268_268" id="Footnote_268_268"></a><a href="#FNanchor_268_268"><span class="label">[268]</span></a> Mantegazza: Fisiologia del piacere.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_269_269" id="Footnote_269_269"></a><a href="#FNanchor_269_269"><span class="label">[269]</span></a> Several sentences are here omitted.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_270_270" id="Footnote_270_270"></a><a href="#FNanchor_270_270"><span class="label">[270]</span></a> Chronique des Tribunaux, vol II. Bruxelles 1835.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_271_271" id="Footnote_271_271"></a><a href="#FNanchor_271_271"><span class="label">[271]</span></a> Cf. Lombroso and Ferrero, The Female Offender: Tr. by
+Morrison. N. Y. 1895.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_272_272" id="Footnote_272_272"></a><a href="#FNanchor_272_272"><span class="label">[272]</span></a> Loco cit.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_273_273" id="Footnote_273_273"></a><a href="#FNanchor_273_273"><span class="label">[273]</span></a> Fisiologia del dolore. Firenze 1880.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_274_274" id="Footnote_274_274"></a><a href="#FNanchor_274_274"><span class="label">[274]</span></a> Bogumil Goltz: Zur Charakteristik u. Naturgeschichte der
+Frauen. Berlin 1863.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_275_275" id="Footnote_275_275"></a><a href="#FNanchor_275_275"><span class="label">[275]</span></a> Sergi: Archivio di Psichologia. 1892. Vol. XIII.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_276_276" id="Footnote_276_276"></a><a href="#FNanchor_276_276"><span class="label">[276]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv. I, 306; III, 88; V, 207; V, 290.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_277_277" id="Footnote_277_277"></a><a href="#FNanchor_277_277"><span class="label">[277]</span></a> Wigand: Die Geburt des Menschen. Berlin 1830. Klein: Über
+Irrtum bei Kindesmord, Harles Jahrbuch, Vol. 3. Burdach:
+Gerichtsärtztliche Arbeiten. Stuttgart, 1839.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_278_278" id="Footnote_278_278"></a><a href="#FNanchor_278_278"><span class="label">[278]</span></a> Parerga and Paralipomena.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_279_279" id="Footnote_279_279"></a><a href="#FNanchor_279_279"><span class="label">[279]</span></a> Introduction to the Study of Sociology.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_280_280" id="Footnote_280_280"></a><a href="#FNanchor_280_280"><span class="label">[280]</span></a> Menschenkunde. Leipzig 1831.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_281_281" id="Footnote_281_281"></a><a href="#FNanchor_281_281"><span class="label">[281]</span></a> Tracy: The Psychology of Childhood. Boston 1894.
+</p><p>
+M. W. Shinn: Notes on the Development of a Child. Berkeley 1894.
+</p><p>
+L. Ferriani: Minoretti deliquenti. Milano 1895.
+</p><p>
+J. M. Baldwin: Mental Development in the Child, etc. New York 1895.
+</p><p>
+Aussage der Wirklichkeit bei Schulkindern. Beitrage z. Psych. d.
+Aussage. II. 1903.
+</p><p>
+Plüschke: Zeugenaussage der Schüler: in <i>Rechtsschutz</i> 1902.
+</p><p>
+Oppenheim: The Development of the Child. New York 1890.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_282_282" id="Footnote_282_282"></a><a href="#FNanchor_282_282"><span class="label">[282]</span></a> Löbisch: Entwicklungegeschichte der Seele des Kindes.
+Vienna 1851.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_283_283" id="Footnote_283_283"></a><a href="#FNanchor_283_283"><span class="label">[283]</span></a> Le Développement de la Mémoire Visuelle chez les Enfants.
+Rev. Gen. des Science, V. 5.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_284_284" id="Footnote_284_284"></a><a href="#FNanchor_284_284"><span class="label">[284]</span></a> W. Preyer: Die Seele des Kindes: Leipzig 1890.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_285_285" id="Footnote_285_285"></a><a href="#FNanchor_285_285"><span class="label">[285]</span></a> “Irritation et Folie.”</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_286_286" id="Footnote_286_286"></a><a href="#FNanchor_286_286"><span class="label">[286]</span></a> Des Causes Morales et Physiques des Maladies Mentales.
+Paris 1826.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_287_287" id="Footnote_287_287"></a><a href="#FNanchor_287_287"><span class="label">[287]</span></a> System der Gerichtlichen Psychologie. Regensburg 1852.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_288_288" id="Footnote_288_288"></a><a href="#FNanchor_288_288"><span class="label">[288]</span></a> Die Psychologie des Verbrechens. Tübingen 1884.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_289_289" id="Footnote_289_289"></a><a href="#FNanchor_289_289"><span class="label">[289]</span></a> The Female Offender.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_290_290" id="Footnote_290_290"></a><a href="#FNanchor_290_290"><span class="label">[290]</span></a> H. Gross: Lehrbuch für den Ausforschungsdienst der
+Gendarmerie.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_291_291" id="Footnote_291_291"></a><a href="#FNanchor_291_291"><span class="label">[291]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv XIV, 83.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_292_292" id="Footnote_292_292"></a><a href="#FNanchor_292_292"><span class="label">[292]</span></a> Marie Borst: Recherches experimentales sur l’éducation et
+la fidelité du temoignage. Archives de Psychologie. Geneva. Vol. III.
+no. 11.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_293_293" id="Footnote_293_293"></a><a href="#FNanchor_293_293"><span class="label">[293]</span></a> T. Lipps: Die Grundtatsachen des Seelenlebens. Bonn
+1883.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_294_294" id="Footnote_294_294"></a><a href="#FNanchor_294_294"><span class="label">[294]</span></a> R. H. Lotze: Medizinische Psychologie. Leipzig 1882.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_295_295" id="Footnote_295_295"></a><a href="#FNanchor_295_295"><span class="label">[295]</span></a> Handbuch der physiologischen Optik. Leipzig 1865.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_296_296" id="Footnote_296_296"></a><a href="#FNanchor_296_296"><span class="label">[296]</span></a> G. Tarde: La Philosophie Pénale. Lyon 1890. La
+Criminalité Comparée 1886. Les Lois de l’Imitation. 1890. Psych.
+Économique, 1902.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_297_297" id="Footnote_297_297"></a><a href="#FNanchor_297_297"><span class="label">[297]</span></a> Kosmodicee. Leipzig and Vienna 1897.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_298_298" id="Footnote_298_298"></a><a href="#FNanchor_298_298"><span class="label">[298]</span></a> A. Wagner: Statistisch-anthropologische Untersuchung.
+Hamburg 1864.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_299_299" id="Footnote_299_299"></a><a href="#FNanchor_299_299"><span class="label">[299]</span></a> Die Lehre vom Beweise. Darmstadt 1843.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_300_300" id="Footnote_300_300"></a><a href="#FNanchor_300_300"><span class="label">[300]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv, II, 140; III, 350; VII, 155.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_301_301" id="Footnote_301_301"></a><a href="#FNanchor_301_301"><span class="label">[301]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv, VII, 160.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_302_302" id="Footnote_302_302"></a><a href="#FNanchor_302_302"><span class="label">[302]</span></a> Über das Gedächtnis etc. Vienna 1876.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_303_303" id="Footnote_303_303"></a><a href="#FNanchor_303_303"><span class="label">[303]</span></a> H. Gross’s Archiv. II, 140; III, 350; VII, 155; XIII,
+161; XIV, 189.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_304_304" id="Footnote_304_304"></a><a href="#FNanchor_304_304"><span class="label">[304]</span></a> Benedict: Heredity. Med. Times, 1902, XXX, 289.
+</p><p>
+Richardson: Theories of Heredity. Nature, 1902, LXVI, 630.
+</p><p>
+Petruskewisch: Gedanken zur Vererbung. Freiburg 1904.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_305_305" id="Footnote_305_305"></a><a href="#FNanchor_305_305"><span class="label">[305]</span></a> Galton: Hereditary Genius. 2d Ed. London 1892.
+</p><p>
+Martinak: Einige Ansichten über Vererbung moralischer Eigenschaften.
+Transactions, Viennese Philological Society. Leipzig 1893.
+</p><p>
+Haacke: Gestaltung u. Vererbung. Leipzig 1893.
+</p><p>
+Tarde: Les Lois de l’Imitation. Paris 1904. Etc., etc.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_306_306" id="Footnote_306_306"></a><a href="#FNanchor_306_306"><span class="label">[306]</span></a> Manual.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_307_307" id="Footnote_307_307"></a><a href="#FNanchor_307_307"><span class="label">[307]</span></a> Cf. Friedmann: Die Wahnsinn im Völkerleben. Wiesbaden
+1901.
+</p><p>
+Sighele: La folla deliquente. Studio di psicologia Collettiva 2d Ed.
+Torino 1895. I delitti della folla studiati seconde la psicologia, il
+diritto la giurisprudenza. Torino 1902.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_308_308" id="Footnote_308_308"></a><a href="#FNanchor_308_308"><span class="label">[308]</span></a> A. Eulenberg: Sexuale Neuropathie. Leipzig 1895.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_309_309" id="Footnote_309_309"></a><a href="#FNanchor_309_309"><span class="label">[309]</span></a> For literature, cf. Edmund Parish: Über Trugwahrnehmung.
+Leipzig 1894.
+</p><p>
+A. Cramer: Gerichtliche Psychiatrie. Jena 1897.
+</p><p>
+Th. Lipps: Ästhetische Eindrücke u. optische. Taüschung.
+</p><p>
+J. Sully: Illusions, London, 1888.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_310_310" id="Footnote_310_310"></a><a href="#FNanchor_310_310"><span class="label">[310]</span></a> Cf. Lotze: Medizinische Psychologie. Leipzig 1852.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_311_311" id="Footnote_311_311"></a><a href="#FNanchor_311_311"><span class="label">[311]</span></a> Cf. Entwurf, etc.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_312_312" id="Footnote_312_312"></a><a href="#FNanchor_312_312"><span class="label">[312]</span></a> Die Grundtatsachen des Seelenlebens. Bonn 1883.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_313_313" id="Footnote_313_313"></a><a href="#FNanchor_313_313"><span class="label">[313]</span></a> Poggendorf’s Annelen der Physik, Vol. 110, p. 500; 114,
+587; 117, 477.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_314_314" id="Footnote_314_314"></a><a href="#FNanchor_314_314"><span class="label">[314]</span></a> W. Larden: Optical Illusion. Nature LXIII, 372 (1901).</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_315_315" id="Footnote_315_315"></a><a href="#FNanchor_315_315"><span class="label">[315]</span></a> H. Gross: Lehrbuch für den Ausforschungsdienst der
+Gendarmerie.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_316_316" id="Footnote_316_316"></a><a href="#FNanchor_316_316"><span class="label">[316]</span></a> Über die Quelle der Sinnestäuschungen. Magazin für
+Seelenkunde VIII.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_317_317" id="Footnote_317_317"></a><a href="#FNanchor_317_317"><span class="label">[317]</span></a> Erklärung der Sinnestäuschungen. Würzburg 1888.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_318_318" id="Footnote_318_318"></a><a href="#FNanchor_318_318"><span class="label">[318]</span></a> Elemente die Psychophysik. Leipzig 1889.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_319_319" id="Footnote_319_319"></a><a href="#FNanchor_319_319"><span class="label">[319]</span></a> Studien über die Sprachvorstellung. Vienna 1880.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_320_320" id="Footnote_320_320"></a><a href="#FNanchor_320_320"><span class="label">[320]</span></a> Max Meyer: Zur Theorie der Geräuschempfindungen. Leipzig
+1902.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_321_321" id="Footnote_321_321"></a><a href="#FNanchor_321_321"><span class="label">[321]</span></a> C. Wernicke: Über Halluzinationen, Ratlosigkeit,
+Desorientierung etc. Monatschrift f. Psychiatrie u. Neurologie, IX, 1
+(1901).</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_322_322" id="Footnote_322_322"></a><a href="#FNanchor_322_322"><span class="label">[322]</span></a> James Sully. Illusions.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_323_323" id="Footnote_323_323"></a><a href="#FNanchor_323_323"><span class="label">[323]</span></a> J. J. Hoppe. Erklärungen des Sinnestauschungen.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_324_324" id="Footnote_324_324"></a><a href="#FNanchor_324_324"><span class="label">[324]</span></a> Cf. A. Mosso: Die Ermüdung. Leipzig 1892.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_325_325" id="Footnote_325_325"></a><a href="#FNanchor_325_325"><span class="label">[325]</span></a> Phantasie u. Phantasienvorstellung. Zeitschrift f.
+Philosophie u. philosophische Kritik. Vol. 95.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_326_326" id="Footnote_326_326"></a><a href="#FNanchor_326_326"><span class="label">[326]</span></a> Cf. Witasek: Zeitschrift f. Psychologie. Vol. XII. “Über
+Willkürliche Vorstellungsverbindung.”</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_327_327" id="Footnote_327_327"></a><a href="#FNanchor_327_327"><span class="label">[327]</span></a> Psychologie. Wien u. Prag. 1897.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_328_328" id="Footnote_328_328"></a><a href="#FNanchor_328_328"><span class="label">[328]</span></a> Many omissions have been necessitated by the fact that no
+English equivalents for the German examples could be found.
+[Translator.]</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_329_329" id="Footnote_329_329"></a><a href="#FNanchor_329_329"><span class="label">[329]</span></a> Cf. S. Freud: Psychopathologie des Alltagsleben.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_330_330" id="Footnote_330_330"></a><a href="#FNanchor_330_330"><span class="label">[330]</span></a> Cited by James, Psychology, Buefer Course.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_331_331" id="Footnote_331_331"></a><a href="#FNanchor_331_331"><span class="label">[331]</span></a> S. Exner: Entwurf, etc.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_332_332" id="Footnote_332_332"></a><a href="#FNanchor_332_332"><span class="label">[332]</span></a> Die Wahrnehmung und Empfindung. Leipzig 1888.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_333_333" id="Footnote_333_333"></a><a href="#FNanchor_333_333"><span class="label">[333]</span></a> Cf. Lohsing in H. Gross’s Archiv VII, 331.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_334_334" id="Footnote_334_334"></a><a href="#FNanchor_334_334"><span class="label">[334]</span></a> Cf. my Manual, “When the witness is unwilling to tell the
+truth.”</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_335_335" id="Footnote_335_335"></a><a href="#FNanchor_335_335"><span class="label">[335]</span></a> Kant: “Über ein vermeintliches Recht, aus Menschenliebe
+zu lügen.”</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_336_336" id="Footnote_336_336"></a><a href="#FNanchor_336_336"><span class="label">[336]</span></a> A sentence is here omitted. [Translator.]</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_337_337" id="Footnote_337_337"></a><a href="#FNanchor_337_337"><span class="label">[337]</span></a> A. Moll: Die konträre Sexualempfindung. Berlin 1893.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_338_338" id="Footnote_338_338"></a><a href="#FNanchor_338_338"><span class="label">[338]</span></a> E. Kiefer: Die Lüge u. der Irrtum vor Gericht. Beiblatt
+der “Magdeburgischen Zeitung,” Nos. 17, 18, 19. 1895.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_339_339" id="Footnote_339_339"></a><a href="#FNanchor_339_339"><span class="label">[339]</span></a> Cf. “Manual,” “Die Aussage Sterbender.”</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_340_340" id="Footnote_340_340"></a><a href="#FNanchor_340_340"><span class="label">[340]</span></a> Cf. Näcke: Zeugenaussage in Akohol. Gross’s Archiv. XIII,
+177 and H. Gross, I 337.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_341_341" id="Footnote_341_341"></a><a href="#FNanchor_341_341"><span class="label">[341]</span></a> Delbrück: Die pathologische Lüge, etc. Stuttgart 1891.
+“Manual,” “Das pathoforme Lügen.”</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_342_342" id="Footnote_342_342"></a><a href="#FNanchor_342_342"><span class="label">[342]</span></a> Cf. S. Freud: Traumdeutung. Leipzig 1900 (for the
+complete bibliography).
+</p><p>
+B. Sidis: An Experimental Study of Sleep: Journal of Abnormal
+Psychology. 1909.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_343_343" id="Footnote_343_343"></a><a href="#FNanchor_343_343"><span class="label">[343]</span></a> Maudsley. Physiology and Pathology of the Mind.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_344_344" id="Footnote_344_344"></a><a href="#FNanchor_344_344"><span class="label">[344]</span></a> Cf. Altmann in H. Gross’s Archiv. I, 261.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_345_345" id="Footnote_345_345"></a><a href="#FNanchor_345_345"><span class="label">[345]</span></a> F. Heerwagen: Statistische Untersuchung über Träume und
+Schlaf. Wundt’s Philosophische Studien V, 1889.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_346_346" id="Footnote_346_346"></a><a href="#FNanchor_346_346"><span class="label">[346]</span></a> P. Jessen: Versuch einer wissenschaftlichen Begründung
+der Psychologie. Berlin 1885.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_347_347" id="Footnote_347_347"></a><a href="#FNanchor_347_347"><span class="label">[347]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv. XIII 161, XIV 189.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_348_348" id="Footnote_348_348"></a><a href="#FNanchor_348_348"><span class="label">[348]</span></a> Zeitschrift f. Biologie, Neue Folge, Band I.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_349_349" id="Footnote_349_349"></a><a href="#FNanchor_349_349"><span class="label">[349]</span></a> Cf. H. Gross’s Archiv. XIII, 177.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_350_350" id="Footnote_350_350"></a><a href="#FNanchor_350_350"><span class="label">[350]</span></a> H. Gross’s Archiv. II, 107.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_351_351" id="Footnote_351_351"></a><a href="#FNanchor_351_351"><span class="label">[351]</span></a> Andrew Combe: Observations on Mental Derangement.
+Edinburgh 1841.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_352_352" id="Footnote_352_352"></a><a href="#FNanchor_352_352"><span class="label">[352]</span></a> J. C. Hoffbauer: Die Psychologie in ihren
+Hauptanwendungen auf die Rechtspflege. Halle 1823.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_353_353" id="Footnote_353_353"></a><a href="#FNanchor_353_353"><span class="label">[353]</span></a> Schrenck-Notzing: Über Suggestion u. Errinerungsfälschung
+im Berchthold-Prozess. Leipzig 1897.</p></div>
+
+<div class="footnote"><p><a name="Footnote_354_354" id="Footnote_354_354"></a><a href="#FNanchor_354_354"><span class="label">[354]</span></a> M. Dessoir: Bibliographic des modernen Hypnotismus.
+Berlin 1890.
+</p><p>
+W. Hirsch: Die Menschliche Verantwortlichkeit u. die moderne
+Suggestionslehre. Berlin 1806.
+</p><p>
+L. Drucker: Die Suggestion u. Ihre forense Bedeutung. Vienna 1893.
+</p><p>
+A. Cramer: Gerichtliche Psychiatrie. Jena 1897.
+</p><p>
+Berillon: Les faux temoignages suggérés. Rev. de l’hypnot. VI, 203.
+</p><p>
+C. de Lagrave: L’autosuggestion naturelle. Rev. de l’hypnot. XIV, 257.
+</p><p>
+B. Sidis: The Psychology of Suggestion.</p></div>
+</div>
+
+<p><a name="transcrib" id="transcrib"></a></p>
+
+<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary=""
+style="padding:2%;border:3px dotted gray;">
+<tr><th align="center">Typographical errors corrected by the etext transcriber:</th></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">phenomonon=> phenomenon {pg 137}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">pyschology have nothing to do=> psychology have nothing to do {pg 179}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">stick appears bents=> stick appears bent {pg 190}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">attention in biased=> attention is biased {pg 192}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">men may perceived an enormous=> men may perceive an enormous {pg 192}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">Ou the one side=> On the one side {pg 233}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">without the knowedge=> without the knowledge {pg 278}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">Eutwicklung der Sprache=> Entwicklung der Sprache {pg 288}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">and from this along he may deduce=> and from this alone he may deduce {pg 320}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">the ides of boredom=> the idea of boredom {pg 324}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">according to Stendthal=> according to Stendhal {pg 342}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">the pyschological researches=> the psychological researches {pg 394}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">attention to the familar fact=> attention to the familiar fact {pg 426}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">equilibrum of vision=> equilibrium of vision {pg 436}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">the old familar=> the old familiar {pg 437}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center">inadequate conprehension=> inadequate comprehension {pg 478}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center"><span class="smcap">Bergquist</span>, 192.=> <span class="smcap">Bergqvist</span>, 192. {pg 203}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center"><span class="smcap">Claparede</span>, 49, 50, 227.=> <span class="smcap">Claparède</span>, 49, 50, 227. {pg 504}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center"><span class="smcap">Gerstacker</span>, 53.=> <span class="smcap">Gerstäcker</span>, 53. {pg 506}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center"><span class="smcap">Monnnigshoff</span>, 484.=> <span class="smcap">Mönnnigshoff</span>, 484. {pg 509}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center"><span class="smcap">Störch</span>, 236.=> <span class="smcap">Storch</span>, 236. {pg 512}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center"><span class="smcap">Warkönig</span>, 10.=> <span class="smcap">Warnkönig</span>, 10. {pg 513}</td></tr>
+<tr><td align="center"><span class="smcap">Winklemann</span>, 102.=> <span class="smcap">Winkelmann</span>, 102. {pg 513}</td></tr>
+</table>
+
+<hr class="full" />
+
+<div>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 1320 ***</div>
+</body>
+</html>
diff --git a/1320-h/images/cover.jpg b/1320-h/images/cover.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f239f49
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/cover.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_430-a.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_430-a.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..9664428
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_430-a.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_430-b.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_430-b.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f2e2cf5
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_430-b.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_431.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_431.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c09f68a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_431.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-a.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-a.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f64c631
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-a.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-b.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-b.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..dd47791
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-b.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-c.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-c.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d544106
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_432-c.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_433.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_433.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b15c12e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_433.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_434-a.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_434-a.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..346f865
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_434-a.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_434-b.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_434-b.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..2129e94
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_434-b.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/1320-h/images/ill_pg_439.jpg b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_439.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..261651b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/1320-h/images/ill_pg_439.jpg
Binary files differ